Contributors JOHN ONIANS Director of the World Art Research Programme at the University of East Anglia. He has published widely on topics ranging from the origins of art to twentiethcentury Chinese painting. A recent research interest is the biological basis of artistic activity. Naman Ahuja Research Fellow at the Ashmolean Museum, Oxford. He specializes in the art of India, with particular interest in ancient sculpture and early medieval painting. Daud Ali Lecturer in early Indian History at the School of Oriental and African Studies, London. His recent research has been on medieval Indian polity and the growth and spread of courtly culture. Anne d’Alleva Associate Professor of Art History and Women’s Studies at the University of Connecticut. Her publications include Art of the Pacific Islands (1998) and Look! An Introduction to Art History and Its Methods (2003). Paul Bahn Writer, editor and translator of books on archaeology. His main research interest is prehistoric art, especially rock art of the world, and most notably Palaeolithic art. Norman Bancroft-Hunt Lecturer in design and visual theory at the Kent Institute of Art and Design and at Croydon Art College. He has published 15 books on the arts of the Americas, including the award-winning People of the Totem (1979). Tim Barringer Associate Professor of History of Art at Yale University. He has written widely on British art and is the author of Reading the Pre-Raphaelites (1999) and Men at Work: Art and Labour in Victorian Britain (2004). Jane Beckett Professor of Contemporary British Art at New York University, London. She has published extensively on modernism in Europe and Britain as well as on contemporary art. John Bennet Professor of Aegean Archaeology in the University of Sheffield. He has published on the archaeology of the Minoan and Mycenaean cultures, and on Linear B writing. Elisabeth de Bièvre Reasearcher in Netherlandish art. She has taught at the University of East Anglia and elsewhere, and published in journals in Britain and the Netherlands. She is preparing The Urban Sub-Conscious. Ecology and Art in the Netherlands, 1200-1700 for publication. Sheila Blair Joint Norma Jean Calderwood Professor of Islamic and Asian Art at Boston College and co-author with Jonathan Bloom of The Art and Architecture of Islam: 1250-1800 (1994), Islamic Arts (1997), and Islam: A Thousand Years of Faith and Power (2000). She is the author of ten books and hundreds of articles on Islamic art and architecture. Jeffrey Blomster Researcher in ancient New World art. He has conducted excavations throughout North and Central America, focusing on the emergence of complex societies and interregional interaction. He has taught at both Muhlenberg College and Brandeis University. Jonathan Bloom Joint Norma Jean Calderwood Professor of Islamic and Asian Art at Boston College and co-author with Sheila S. Blair of The Art and Architecture of Islam: 1250-1800 (1994), Islamic Arts (1997), and Islam: A Thousand Years of Faith and Power (2000). He is also the author of Paper Before Print (2001) and Minaret: Symbol of Islam (1989). John Boardman Emeritus Professor of Classical Art and Archaeology at Oxford University. He is the author of several handbooks and monographs on Greek sculpture, vase-painting and gems, and has specialized in studies of the interaction of Greek art with the arts of other ancient peoples. Anna Brodow Editor of the the review Artes in Uppsala, Sweden. She contributes to Svenska Dagbladet and is writing a doctoral thesis on contemporary Swedish artists working with project grants from Konstnärsnämnden 1976–2000. Miranda Bruce-Mitford Author of The Illustrated Guide to Signs and Symbols (1996). She has been tutor and lecturer on the Sotheby’s and Christie’s Asian arts courses at the School of Oriental and African Studies, London, and accompanied tours to Southeast Asia as guest lecturer. She has lectured at the British Museum and written widely on Southeast Asian Art. Anita Callaway Kluge fellow at the Library of Congress, Washington. Author of Visual Ephemera (2000) and past editor of the Australian Journal of Art (1996–99), she was a Getty fellow in 2000 and a Centre for Cross-Cultural Research fellow at the Australian National University until 2003. Bruce Coats Professor of Art History and the Humanities at Scripps College. He teaches courses in East Asian art history for the Claremont Colleges in California. He writes and lectures about East Asian architecture and garden history and about Japanese prints and paintings. Herbert Cole Professor Emeritus of art history at the University of California, Santa Barbara. He is the author, co-author, or editor of eight books on African art and many articles. In 2001 he received the Leadership Award from the Arts Council of the African Studies Association. Paul Collins Research Associate in the Department of Ancient Near Eastern Art of the Metropolitan Museum of Art, New York. He has also worked on Ancient Near East projects for the British Museum. Laura Malosetti Costa Associate Professor of Art History at the University of Buenos Aires. Her books include Los primeros modernos: Arte y sociedad en Buenos Aires a fines del siglo XIX (2003). Jocelyne Dudding Doctoral candidate researching ‘Photographs as Cultural Property: New Zealand Images within British Museums’. She is based at the Photograph Collections Department of the Pitt Rivers Museum, Oxford. Elspeth Dusinberre Assistant Professor of Classics at the University of Colorado at Boulder. She has worked on archaeological sites in the eastern Mediterranean and is interested in cultural interactions in Anatolia. In 2001 she received the University of Colorado Chancellor’s Faculty Recognition Award for her contribution to teaching. Murray Eiland Researcher in archaeological science at the J. W. Goethe University in Frankfurt. He has been a Fulbright lecturer at the University of Damascus and writes for several magazines on the evolution of technology and longdistance trade in the ancient Near East. Stephen Eskilson Professor of the history of art at Eastern Illinois University. He is a co-author of Frames of Reference: Art, History, and the World (2004). Alexandra Gajewsky Researcher of French and German medieval architecture. She studied at Münster University in Germany and at the Courtauld Institute in London. She has taught at the Courtauld Institute, at Birkbeck College and at the Victoria and Albert Museum. Michael Godby Professor of History of Art at the University of Cape Town. He has lectured and published on Early Renaissance Italian art, eighteenth-century English art, nineteenth-century South African art, contemporary and nineteenth-century South African art and the history of photography in South Africa. Martin Henig Visiting Lecturer in Roman Art, University of Oxford. He has published a number of books on gems, including a catalogue of the gems in the Fitzwilliam Museum, Cambridge (1994), and on Roman Britain. He is editor of The Journal of the British Archaeological Association. Alison Hilton Wright Family Distinguished Professor of Art History and Chair of the Department of Art, Music and Theater, Georgetown University. Her publications cover many aspects of Russian and Soviet art. Mary Hollingsworth Author of books on Renaissance patronage, now working on the extensive surviving papers of Cardinal Ippolito d’Este. Her first book on Ippolito, The Cardinal’s Hat, was published in 2004. Peter Kalb Assistant Professor of Art History at Ursinus College. Revising author of H. H. Arnason’s History of Modern Art 5th edn (2004), he is also author of High Drama: The New York Cityscapes of Georgia O’Keeffe and Margaret Bourke-White (2003,) and has contributed to Art in America. Simon Kaner Assistant Director of the Sainsbury Institute for the Study of Japanese Arts and Cultures in Norwich. He publishes and teaches on many different aspects of East Asian archaeology. Thomas DaCosta Kaufmann Professor in the Department of Art and Archaeology at Princeton University. His books include The School of Prague: Painting at the Court of Rudolf II (Chicago and The ART Atlas Edited by John Onians PART I Art, Hunting and Gathering 40,000-5000 BC John Onians 14 THE WORLD Early Ice Age Art 40,000-20,000 BC Paul Bahn . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 16 Later Ice Age Art 20,000-10,000 BC Paul Bahn. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 18 Postglacial Art 10,000-5000 BC Paul Bahn . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 20 PART II Art, Agriculture and Urbanization 5000-500 BC John Onians 22 THE WORLD The World 10,000-3000 BC Chris Scarre. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 24 THE AMERICAS The Americas 5000-500 BC Frank Meddens . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 26 EUROPE Europe 7000-2500 BC Chris Scarre. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 28 Europe 2500-500 BC Chris Scarre. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 30 The Aegean 2000-1000 BC John Bennet . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 32 The Mediterranean 1000-500 BC John Boardman . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 34 AFRICA Africa 5000-500 BC Peter Shinnie . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 36 The Nile Valley 3000-500 BC Christina Riggs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 38 ASIA & THE PACIFIC West Asia 3000-2000 BC Paul Collins . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 40 West Asia 2000-500 BC Paul Collins . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 42 Central and South Asia 5000-500 BC Ruth Young . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 44 East Asia and China 5000-500 BC Wang Tao . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 46 Japan and Korea 5000-500 BC Simon Kaner . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 48 The Pacific and Indonesia 5000-500 BC Robert Welsch. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 50 PART III Art, War and Empire 500 BC-AD 600 John Onians 52 THE AMERICAS North and Central America 500 BC-AD 600 Jeffrey Blomster. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 54 South America 500 BC-AD 600 Frank Meddens . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 56 EUROPE Europe 500 BC-AD 300 Timothy Taylor . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 58 The Aegean 500-300 BC John Onians. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 60 The Eastern Mediterranean 500-100 BC Martin Henig. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 62 The Western Mediterranean 500-100 BC Martin Henig. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 64 The Mediterranean 100 BC-AD 100 Martin Henig. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 66 The Mediterranean AD 100-300 Martin Henig. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 68 Europe AD 300-600 Martin Henig. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 70 AFRICA Africa 500 BC-AD 600 Peter Shinnie . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 72 The Nile Valley 500 BC-AD 300 Christina Riggs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 74 North Africa AD 300-600 Ruth Leader-Newby . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 76 ASIA & THE PACIFIC West Asia 500-300 BC Elspeth Dusinberre . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 78 West Asia 300 BC-AD 600 Murray Eiland. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 80 Central Asia 500 BC-AD 600 Burzine Waghmar and Ruth Young. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 82 South Asia 500 BC-AD 600 Naman Ahuja . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 84 China 500 BC-AD 600 Wang Tao . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 86 Japan and Korea 500 BC-AD 600 Simon Kaner . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 88 Southeast Asia 500 BC-AD 600 Robert Welsch. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 90 The Pacific 500 BC-AD 600 Robert Welsch. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 92 CONTENTS CONTRIBUTORS 5 INTRODUCTION 10 London, 1985), The Mastery of Nature (Princeton, 1993), Court, Cloister, and City (Chicago and London, 1995), and Toward a Geography of Art (Chicago and London, 2004). Susan Koslow Professor Emerita, Brooklyn College, The City University of New York. She has written and lectured extensively on the art of the Netherlands. Her publications include essays on Hugo van der Goes, Dutch perspective boxes, Frans Hals, Rubens, and a monograph on the Flemish still-life and animal painter Frans Snyders. Ruth Leader-Newby Researcher in the interaction between art and literary culture. She has taught at King’s College, London, and the University of Warwick. Mark Lindholm Doctoral candidate in the Department of Art and Archaeology at Princeton University. He researches German Lutheran art in the century following Martin Luther’s death. Frank Meddens Fellow of the Society of Antiquaries and a director of Pre-Construct Archaeology Ltd. He has carried out extensive fieldwork in Peru and the United Kingdom, and has published widely on Andean and British archaeology. Jonathan Meuli Freelance artist and art historian based in Glasgow. He is the author of Shadow House: Interpretations of Northwest Coast Art (2001). Min Mao Journalist, photographer, illustrator and doctoral candidate at the School of Oriental and African Studies, London. She is a visiting scholar at the Institut français d'Études sur l'Asie centrale, Tashkent. John Moffitt Professor Emeritus of Art History at New Mexico State University, where he also taught painting and drawing. His publications include numerous books and over 165 articles in scholarly journals. Myroslava Mudrak Associate Professor in the Department of History of Art at Ohio State University. She teaches modern art between the two world wars, with a concentration on early twentieth-century abstraction, and specializes in the art of Eastern Europe, Ukraine and Russia. Katarzyna Murawska-Muthesius Formerly Curator of the National Museum in Warsaw, she teaches at the Faculty of Continuing Education, Birkbeck College, University of London. She edited Borders in Art: Revisiting ‘Kunstgeographie’ (2000), and the National Museum in Warsaw guide (2001). Stefan Muthesius Research Fellow in the history of art, architecture and design at the University of East Anglia. His books include Das englische Vorbild (1974), The English Terraced House (1982), Art, Architecture and Design in Poland: An Introduction (1994) and The Postwar University. Utopianist Campus and College (2000). Lawrence Nees Professor of Art History at the University of Delaware. He is the author of From Justinian to Charlemagne, European Art 565–787 (1985), The Gundohinus Gospels (1987), A Tainted Mantle: Hercules and the Classical Tradition at the Carolingian Court (1991), and Early Medieval Art (2001). He is editor of Approaches to Early-Medieval Art (1998). Kristoffer Neville Researcher in the arts of the Netherlands, Germany and Scandinavia in the seventeenth century. He is particularly interested in the life and career of the German architect Nicodemus Tessin the elder. Mike O’Mahony Lecturer at the University of Bristol in Russian and Soviet art with broad interests in nineteenth- and twentieth-century art in Europe and the United States. Claire O’Mahony Director of Programmes for History of Art Continuing Education at the University of Bristol. She specializes in nineteenth- and twentieth-century design and art history in Europe and America. Morna O’Neill Doctoral candidate working on Walter Crane at Yale University. She has published on nineteenth-century British photography and was curator of ‘Company Culture’ at the Yale Center for British Art. Rodney Palmer World Art Librarian at the University of East Anglia. He teaches the history of Italian and World art at the University of Leicester and is co-editor of The Rise of the Image: Essays on the History of the Illustrated Art Book (2003). Carole Paul Author of Making a Prince’s Museum: Drawings for the LateEighteenth-Century Redecoration of the Villa Borghese (2000) and the co-editor of ‘Viewing Antiquity: The Grand Tour, Antiquarianism, and Collecting’ (Ricerche di Storia dell’arte 72, 2000). Martin Powers Sally Michelson Davidson Professor of Chinese Arts and Cultures at the University of Michigan. His Art and Political Expression in Early China (1991) received the Levenson Prize for best book in pre-twentieth-century Chinese Studies. Jennifer Purtle Assistant Professor in the Department of Art History at the University of Chicago. Her research interests are in Chinese visual and material culture from the Six Dynasties to the present. Christina Riggs Curator of Egyptology at the Manchester Museum, University of Manchester, and a specialist in the funerary art of Ptolemaic and Roman Egypt. Chris Scarre Deputy Director of the McDonald Institute for Archaeological Research in the University of Cambridge, and editor of The Cambridge Archaeological Journal. He specializes in the prehistory of western Europe, with an interest also in the Mediterranean and the Classical World of Greece and Rome. Peter Shinnie Professor Emeritus in Archaeology, University of Calgary. After service with the Royal Air Force in World War II, he taught and researched at the universities of Khartoum and Ghana. Marcella Sirhandi Associate Professor of Art History at Oklahoma State University, with a research focus on nineteenth- and twentieth-century South Asian art. Her publications include Contemporary Painting in Pakistan (1992). Michael Sullivan Fellow Emeritus of St Catherine’s College, Oxford. He has been Lecturer in Art History, University of Singapore, Lecturer in Asian Art, School of Oriental and African Studies, London, and Christensen Professor of Chinese Art, Stanford University. Timothy Taylor Lecturer in the Department of Archaeological Sciences, University of Bradford. He is a specialist on the later prehistory of Eurasia. David Thomson Author of Renaissance Paris: Architecture and Growth, 1475–1600 (1984) and many articles. He has lectured at the University of East Anglia and is working on the catalogue for an exhibition on Jean Androuet du Cerceau. Thomas Tolley Senior Lecturer in the History of Art in the University of Edinburgh. His publications include Painting the Cannon’s Roar: Music, the Visual Arts and the Rise of an Attentive Public in the Age of Haydn (2001). Stephen Vernoit Author of Occidentalism: Islamic Art in the 19th Century (1997) and Discovering Islamic Art: Scholars, Collectors and Collections, 1850-1950 (2000). He has taught at Al-Akhawayn University in Morocco and at the University of Durham. Burzine Waghmar Doctoral candidate in Iranian and Central Asian studies at the School of Oriental and African Studies, London. Wang Tao Lecturer in Chinese archaeology at the School of Oriental and African Studies, London. He specializes in Chinese paleography and Bronze Age cultures. Robert Welsch Visiting Professor of Anthropology at Dartmouth College and Adjunct Curator of Anthropology at the Field Museum, Chicago. He has conducted field research in Papua New Guinea and Indonesia and published widely on the anthropology of the Pacific. Isobel Whitelegg Art historian and curator based at the Department of Art History and Theory, University of Essex. Her research specialism is modern and contemporary art from Brazil. Benjamin Withers Associate Professor of art history at Indiana University South Bend. He specializes in early medieval English manuscripts. His articles have appeared in The Art Bulletin, Anglo-Saxon England and The Old English Newsletter. He is co-editor of Naked Before God: Uncovering the Body in Anglo-Saxon England (2003). Ruth Young Lecturer in South Asian archaeology and Distance Learning Tutor at the University of Leicester. She has done field work in Pakistan, Nepal and Iran, primarily exploring relationships between urban and rural sites. Barbara Zeitler Independent scholar based in London. She has taught at the University of California in Los Angeles. Her main research interests are in reactions to Byzantine art beyond the Byzantine empire. PART IV Art, Religion and the Ruler 600-1500 John Onians 94 THE AMERICAS North America 600-1500 Norman Bancroft-Hunt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 96 Central America 600-1500 Jeffrey Blomster. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 98 South America 600-1500 Frank Meddens . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 100 EUROPE Europe 600-800 Lawrence Nees . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 102 Europe 800-1000 Lawrence Nees . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 104 Eastern Europe and Southwest Asia 600-1500 Barbara Zeitler. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 106 Northern Europe 1000-1200 Alexandra Gajewsky . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 108 Southern Europe 1000-1200 Alexandra Gajewsky . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 110 Northern Europe 1200-1300 Benjamin Withers. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 112 Southern Europe 1200-1300 Benjamin Withers. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 114 Northern Europe 1300-1500 Thomas Tolley. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 116 Southern Europe 1300-1500 Thomas Tolley. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 118 Italy 1300-1400 Mary Hollingsworth . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 120 Italy 1400-1500 Mary Hollingsworth . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 122 AFRICA North Africa 600-1500 Sheila Blair and Jonathan Bloom. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 124 Sub-Saharan Africa 600-1500 Herbert Cole. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 126 ASIA & THE PACIFIC West Asia and Egypt 600-1000 Sheila Blair and Jonathan Bloom. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 128 West Asia 1000-1500 Sheila Blair and Jonathan Bloom. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 130 Central Asia 600-1500 Sheila Blair and Jonathan Bloom. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 132 South Asia 600-1500 Daud Ali . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 134 China 600-1300 Martin Powers . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 136 China and Tibet 1300-1500 Jennifer Purtle . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 138 Japan and Korea 600-1500 Bruce Coats . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 140 Southeast Asia 600-1500 Robert Welsch. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 142 The Pacific 600-1500 Robert Welsch. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 144 PART V Art, Exploitation and Display 1500-1800 John Onians 146 THE AMERICAS North America 1500-1800 Norman Bancroft-Hunt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 148 Central America 1500-1800 Norman Bancroft-Hunt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 150 South America 1500-1800 Thomas DaCosta Kaufmann . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 152 EUROPE Europe 1500-1600 Mark Lindholm . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 154 Scandinavia and the Baltic 1500-1800 Kristoffer Neville . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 156 Poland and Lithuania 1500-1800 Katarzyna Murawska-Muthesius. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 158 Russia 1500-1800 Alison Hilton . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 160 Britain 1500-1666 Tim Barringer and Morna O’Neill . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 162 Britain 1666-1800 Tim Barringer and Morna O’Neill . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 164 The North Netherlands 1500-1800 Elisabeth de Bièvre . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 166 The South Netherlands 1500-1800 Susan Koslow. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 168 Germany and Switzerland 1500-1650 Kristoffer Neville . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 170 Germany and Switzerland 1650-1800 Kristoffer Neville . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 172 France 1500-1650 David Thomson . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 174 France 1650-1800 David Thomson . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 176 Spain and Portugal 1500-1800 John Moffitt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 178 Italy 1500-1600 Mary Hollingsworth . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 180 Italy 1600-1800 Carole Paul . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 182 Southeast Europe 1500-1800 Stefan Muthesius . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 184 Europe 1600-1800 Thomas DaCosta Kaufmann . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 186 AFRICA North Africa 1500-1800 Stephen Vernoit . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 188 Sub-Saharan Africa 1500-1800 Herbert Cole. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 190 ASIA & THE PACIFIC Asia 1500-1800 Sheila Blair and Jonathan Bloom. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 192 West Asia 1500-1800 Sheila Blair and Jonathan Bloom. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 194 Central Asia 1500-1800 Sheila Blair and Jonathan Bloom. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 196 South Asia 1500-1800 Daud Ali . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 198 China and Tibet 1500-1650 Jennifer Purtle . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 200 China and Tibet 1650-1800 Jennifer Purtle . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 202 Japan and Korea 1500-1800 Bruce Coats . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 204 Southeast Asia 1500-1800 Miranda Bruce-Mitford. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 206 The Pacific 1500-1800 Anne d’Alleva. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 208 PART VI Art, Industry and Science 1800-1900 John Onians 210 THE AMERICAS North America 1800-1860 Peter Kalb . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 212 North America 1860-1900 Jonathan Meuli and Peter Kalb . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 214 Central America and the Caribbean 1800-1900 Norman Bancroft-Hunt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 216 South America 1800-1900 Laura Malosetti Costa. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 218 EUROPE Europe 1800-1900 Claire O’Mahony . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 220 Scandinavia and the Baltic 1800-1900 Kristoffer Neville . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 222 Russia 1800-1900 Alison Hilton . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 224 Britain 1800-1900 Tim Barringer and Morna O’Neill . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 226 The Netherlands and Belgium 1800-1900 Jane Beckett . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 228 Germany and Switzerland 1800-1900 Stefan Muthesius . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 230 France 1800-1900 Claire O’Mahony . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 232 Spain and Portugal 1800-1900 John Moffitt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 234 Italy 1800-1900 Claire O’Mahony . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 236 Austria-Hungary and Southeast Europe 1800-1900 Stefan Muthesius . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 238 AFRICA North Africa 1800-1900 Stephen Vernoit . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 240 Sub-Saharan Africa 1800-1900 Herbert Cole. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 242 ASIA & THE PACIFIC West Asia 1800-1900 Sheila Blair and Jonathan Bloom. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 244 Central Asia 1800-1900 Sheila Blair and Jonathan Bloom. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 246 South Asia 1800-1900 Marcella Sirhandi. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 248 China and Tibet 1800-1900 Jennifer Purtle . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 250 Japan and Korea 1800-1900 Bruce Coats . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 252 Southeast Asia 1800-1900 Miranda Bruce-Mitford. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 254 The Pacific 1800-1900 Jocelyne Dudding . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 256 Australia and New Zealand 1800-1900 Anita Callaway . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 258 PART VII Art, Ideas and Technology 1900-2000 John Onians 260 THE AMERICAS North America 1900-1950 Peter Kalb . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 262 North America 1950-2000 Peter Kalb . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 264 Central America and the Caribbean 1900-2000 Norman Bancroft-Hunt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 266 South America 1900-2000 Isobel Whitelegg . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 268 EUROPE Europe 1900-2000 Mike O’Mahony. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 270 Scandinavia and the Baltic States 1900-2000 Anna Brodow. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 272 Russia 1900-2000 Alison Hilton . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 274 Britain and Ireland 1900-2000 Tim Barringer and Morna O’Neill . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 276 The Netherlands and Belgium 1900-2000 Jane Beckett . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 278 Germany, Switzerland, Austria 1900-2000 Mike O’Mahony. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 280 Eastern Europe 1900-2000 Myroslava Mudrak. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 282 France 1900-2000 Stephen Eskilson . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 284 Spain and Portugal 1900-2000 John Moffitt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 286 Italy 1900-2000 Mike O’Mahony. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 288 AFRICA North Africa 1900-2000 Stephen Vernoit . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 290 East and Central Africa 1900-2000 Herbert Cole. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 292 West Africa 1900-2000 Herbert Cole. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 294 Southern Africa 1900-2000 Michael Godby . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 296 ASIA & THE PACIFIC Asia 1900-2000 Sheila Blair and Jonathan Bloom. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 298 West Asia 1900-2000 Stephen Vernoit . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 300 Central Asia 1900-2000 Min Mao . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 302 South Asia 1900-2000 Marcella Sirhandi. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 304 China 1900-2000 Michael Sullivan. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 306 Japan and Korea 1900-2000 Bruce Coats . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 308 Southeast Asia 1900-2000 Miranda Bruce-Mitford. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 310 The Pacific 1900-2000 Robert Welsch. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 312 Australia and New Zealand 1900-2000 Anita Callaway . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 314 THE WORLD Art Institutions Worldwide 2000 Rodney Palmer. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 316 BIBLIOGRAPHY 318 PICTURE CREDITS AND LOCATIONS/NOTE ON SPELLINGS AND PLACE NAMES 322-3 INDEX 324 INTRODUCTION 11 Pacific, took place from west to east. Continents are taken as the principal units because such large land masses have clear boundaries, and also because continuities in their environmental conditions mean that, in general, there is more movement within than between them. The body of water of the Pacific is treated as a large unit on similar grounds. There was a case for treating Europe and Asia together as the single continent of Eurasia, but the vertical division formed by the Urals and the Caucasus always formed a significant barrier to communication, and it was in any case appropriate to treat Africa between the two, since its junction with the northern land mass at Sinai puts it into connection with both. Within each land mass a sequence from north to south was adopted because the northern hemisphere has more continuity of land surface (and so of communication) than the southern. With the exception of the first movements of humans out of Africa before the Atlas starts, the majority of the ‘vertical’ movements of populations, including the expansion of populations of Asian origin through the Americas, the Bantu expansion into Southern Africa and the expansion of Malay-speaking populations into Indonesia, like the earlier movements of populations from Southeast Asia into Oceania, were in a north-south direction. The Atlas thus covers the globe from North America to South America, from Europe to Africa, and from Asia to the Pacific. The temporal framework of the Atlas is also natural, in the sense that it is structured around divisions marked by the movements of the two most visible heavenly bodies: the months by the moon, and the day, the seasons and the year by the sun. The largest of these divisions, the year, thus forms the basic unit for the division of time. It was less easy to find a natural basis for defining the larger divisions into periods, but, as the Atlas begins with the appearance of art-related activities among humans, it seemed appropriate that further divisions should be defined by the appearance, or rise to predominance, of other human behaviours. Accordingly, new sections begin either with the introduction of a new way of life, such as agriculture or industry, or with the rise to new importance of an existing behaviour, such as war, religion, exploitation or technology. There is no suggestion that new ways of life have a higher status, or that the sequence represents inexorable ‘progress’. When urban merchants, like the Medici, became princes, they tended to take up hunting, and when native Americans gained access to horses and guns with the arrival of European traders, they also largely abandoned tilling the fields to shoot buffalo. Nor were these new ways of life adopted by everybody. The hunting and gathering San of South Africa chose to resist agriculture, while the Inuit were prevented from taking it up by the Arctic climate. New forms of human behaviour are used to mark new periods only because they had so great an impact on a significant portion of the world’s population that, for them at least, they changed the nature of the environment in which art was made and used. The sequence only represents a development in the sense that there is also a development in the behaviours of the first inhabitants of Australia. Although they have remained hunters and gatherers, they have, by invention and exchange, been adding layers to their food-gathering, storytelling, dancing and painting traditions ever since they arrived. Because humans have such good memories and are so good at imitation, lifestyles once adopted tend to remain available to later generations even as they experience modification. As each new behaviour emerges, it joins those that already exist, potentially providing successive generations with more and more options. Based on these principles, time was divided into seven periods. These become progressively shorter. This was mainly because the generally continuous increase in the speed and volume of contacts between populations inevitably accelerated the rapidity of change. Yet another factor was the parallel improvement in access to resources, which meant that with the passage of time more and more art was made – and indeed preserved – and so more and more needed to be shown. It was in partial acknowledgement of this trend that the latest period, 1900–2000, although of the same length as the previous 1800–1900, has been given more pages. As these dates indicate, the calendar followed is one that was originally European. This was done only because it is now the most widely used. It does not imply any pre-eminence and it is easy to recalibrate the dates to fit any other system. The underlying desire to minimize the influence of cultural criteria led to the calendar being divided into round numbers, so creating something like an objective grid. The departure from strict regularity involved in placing a division not in AD 500 but in 600 acknowledges that, in terms of a majority of the religions whose new importance seemed to call for a division around that time, the later date was more significant. Falling close to the founding both of Islam and the Tang Dynasty, AD 600 was more significant for more people. Once both spatial and temporal divisions had been arrived at, it was necessary to decide which should determine the Atlas’ overall structure. Time was chosen because there was a greater likelihood that something that happened in a particular year would soon have global implications than that something that happened in a particular place would affect things that happened in the same place thousands of years later. This means that instead of going through a sequence of continents, beginning with a chronological series of spreads on the Americas and ending with a series on the Pacific, we move through a succession of periods, beginning with a series of spreads covering 50,000–5000 BC. The use of the Atlas thus involves turning the globe from the Americas to the Pacific seven times, beginning with the earliest period and ending with the century 1900–2000. The reader who wishes to give precedence to spatial divisions and follow changes in a particular continent or region can easily do so by choosing to review the seven sets of period spreads for the relevant area as a group. It is into this natural framework of space and time that humans are inserted as natural beings. Most books about art in the European tradition assume that it should be treated as part of culture, something that distinguishes humans absolutely from animals, and even from another type of human: those who live in cities and use writing as opposed to those who do neither. In this they take their cue from those among the ancient Greeks and the ancient Jews who held that the human being is in a special category as a superior god-created and god-like being. This notion lies behind many of the prejudices embedded in European art history. It has prevented the study of art as a worldwide phenomenon and has long inhibited the study of the nature and origins of human artistic behaviour. In order to open up enquiry into these and other topics this Atlas takes a quite different point of view, acknowledging that we are animals and seeing the production of culture as part of our nature. This view, although at odds with the European tradition, is compatible with the perceptions of most peoples throughout history, who, whether Indians or Inuit, whether living in Nigeria or New Guinea, have always recognized human kinship with other creatures. It is also in accord with modern science, which recognizes that we share most of our genetic material with other living things. Instead of taking art for granted as a divine gift, this view requires us to explain both the origins of art and its complex and varied history in terms of our distinctive make-up. If we started to make art between 40,000 and 30,000 years ago, and have gone on making and using it up to the present, it is because our biological nature has led us to do so. Our species, Homo sapiens sapiens, or ‘moderntype’ man, which had emerged from Africa at least 100,000 years ago, was able to complete its spread into Europe and Asia, apparently replacing all its predecessors by 30,000 years ago because it possessed resources that greatly enhanced its success, however challenging the environment in which it found itself. These resources were carried in a brain containing new and more 10 T his Atlas gives a new overview of one of the oldest, most widespread and most important of human activities. Art is, with the exception of tool-making, the human activity with the longest and also the fullest record. People have been making and looking at patterns, and carving and painting images and other visually interesting artefacts for more than 30,000 years, and doing so on every inhabited continent. Music has a long history, too, as is shown by the survival of hollow, perforated bones from a similarly early date, but it was not until the first musical notation appeared 2000 years ago that we have any idea of what was played. It was not until 500 years ago that any substantial body of written transcriptions was produced. Transcription of speech in the form of writing was more widespread, but writing has only existed for 5000 years and was only practised in a limited number of places. It is above all to visual art that we must turn if we want to know about storytelling, religion or any other forms of thought, either before writing was invented, or in areas where it remained unknown. Even for communities in which writing was widespread, art adds a crucial new dimension to our understanding. Art is also of supreme significance in its own right. Through the ages, individuals and communities have invested enormous energies into creating art. In the past, when art was relatively rare, it was the object of the most intense and profound attention, and today, although the growing numbers of objects of visual interest has reduced the amount of attention each is liable to get, visual expression and communication are central to life, and art of all kinds is highly valued. This is why the study of the history of material visual expression mapped in this volume is so revealing and engaging. In this book, people living anywhere in the world can follow the story of the art of their own region, to the extent that it is known. They can also learn the story of their neighbours’ art and, indeed, everybody else’s. There has probably never been an art book of such potential interest to so many people. This breadth of coverage of art through time and space was not easy to achieve. A whole new approach to the subject had to be developed. When art is viewed as a worldwide phenomenon it includes many fields, the knowledge of each controlled by a different group of specialists. There is simply too much disparity in the ways each group deals with its subject for it to be easy to bring them together. Archaeologists are the experts in the earliest art, anthropologists in the art of modern pre-literate peoples, and art historians in the art of literate peoples. Some scholars study a particular medium, such as textiles or film; others, like Egyptologists or Sinologists, study a particular region. Even more restricted is the expertise of the few members of each of the tens of thousands of, often remote, art-using communities worldwide who are the guardians of purely local traditions. Each group works with such different assumptions that to present them together as such in a single volume would draw as much attention to their limitations as to their achievements. This is why the Atlas of World Art sets out to offer a new framework, one in which each specialist can present his or her knowledge, but in a way that relates to those of the others. This has required all the contributors to rethink their fields, and it should enable readers to go through a similar process. The new framework used here for the presentation of knowledge about art also offers a new context for its understanding. With its combination of great breadth and constant clarity of focus, the Atlas allows exceptional insights both into what unites all art and into what makes it so varied. INTRODUCTION Since it is this diversity of assumptions that makes it so difficult to develop an integrated understanding of art as a worldwide phenomenon, this new framework sets out to avoid categories that depend on assumptions that are cultural: that is, preconceptions that reflect the values of this or that community or group. Instead, the categories used are founded as far as possible in nature. It may be argued that to use the term ‘nature’ is still to base oneself in culture, because nature as a concept can be claimed to go back to Greek intellectual traditions, but it is not in that abstract sense that it is used here. The nature referred to here is one familiar to people of all cultures. It is nature as a set of resources and constraints, principally those embodied in the nature of the earth, of time and of man. THE EARTH, TIME AND MAN Here, we are concerned with the nature of the earth as it is experienced by humans, whether as hunters or gatherers, farmers or miners, traders or industrialists, wherever and whenever they live, and however they viewed it culturally. Everyone who has sailed the waters known by Europeans as the Pacific, whether they were the humans who first discovered the place we call Easter Island or their successors, such as James Cook, has needed to exploit the same winds and currents, however differently they saw them. In the deserts of Central Asia Marco Polo and Ghenghis Khan were subject to the same constraints. Indeed, the ‘nature’ referred to here is not just that which supports and constrains humans. It provides the context for the lives of all other animals, it conditions the existence of all plants and determines the relations of all inanimate matter. It is in this sense that this Atlas takes as its initial foundation the nature of the earth, of its waters and its atmosphere, of the life forms that grow on, under and above the earth, and the inorganic material of which it is made. The first immigrants to Australia and their successors tens of thousands years later may have given the rocks, timbers, fibres and pigments they found there different names and told each other different stories of their origins, but they could all exploit only their inherent properties. If the later immigrants could not find materials they needed in their new home, they imported them. Once they had brought them to Australia, these could then be used by the first inhabitants’ descendants, as acrylic paint has been used with such success. Humans, like all life forms, are limited to the resources that they are able either to find locally or to bring in from somewhere else. In the sense that these different resources establish possibilities and set limits on them, they determine lifestyles. They also determine the nature of all activities requiring material expression, including art-making. In order to keep us aware of these limitations, this Atlas adopts a spatial framework that relates the local and global availability of resources by mapping art onto the earth’s spherical surface. Readers should try to keep that continuity of surface in their minds as they look at the sequence of separate two-page spreads into which that surface has been broken. The division into spreads was required by the use of the book format, and this also necessitated further decisions. The book had to begin somewhere on the surface of the planet, and, since the deep sub-oceanic trench along the eastern edge of the Pacific has, for the last 30,000 years, been the single greatest barrier to human movement and exchange, that was taken as the most important dividing line. Coverage moves eastwards from that division because the early occupation of the Americas, like the much later occupation of the INTRODUCTION 13 Chinese technology of printing, that were the chief instruments of another remarkable diffusion: that of Italian artistic traditions to Western and Northern Europe in the period from the sixteenth to eighteenth centuries, as monarchs, princes and merchants competed in displaying their knowledge of how to revive the admired, lost inheritance of Ancient Greece and Rome. The instruments of official censorship and authorization of publications played an important part in this process, as they did more recently in the case of the propagation of new political and artistic traditions in the wake of the militant expansion of Russian Communism after 1917, which for a time saw Socialist Realist painting and monumental sculpture become orthodoxy from Cuba to China. Equally aggressive, though less militant and more warmly welcomed by individual consumers, has been the impact of the commercial expansionism of the United States, which has used the latest technologies to distribute throughout the world such standardized products as cars and packaged food, films and television programmes, as well as political rhetoric, which have sometimes re-emerged in the artistic expressions of other people. This story of the impact of military, religious, ideological and commercial forces might suggest there was always a one-way influence of the dominator on the dominated, but the reverse was often the case. The Romans conquered the Greeks, but were themselves conquered culturally and, above all, artistically. The same thing happened when the Mongols conquered the Chinese in the thirteenth century. Similarly, at the time when Britain was at its most expansionist commercially, it put on the Great Exhibition of 1851, which, besides displaying British and European products, also brought to London works from Asia, Africa and the Americas that were critically to influence the formal vocabulary of much of the ‘modern’ art of the twentieth century. Since then, exhibitions of the art of remote and unfamiliar peoples have become more and more a feature of the life of the wealthier countries, from North America to Japan, and each has tended to have an impact on its visitors. At the same time, artists have left such countries to seek inspiration in exotic locations, while diasporas from Asia, Africa, the Americas and the Pacific have brought artists from such locations to the great metropolitan centres. By doing so, each has unwittingly ensured that their neural networks are transformed, whether by new natural surroundings or artefacts, or by the traditional or modern media of their new homes, with consequences for their output. This reminds us that, whatever the overall patterns of art-related behaviours we observe, they can only be explained if we understand the particular personal experiences of each of the individuals involved, whether as producers or consumers. THE ATLAS AS CONSTRAINT AND RESOURCE Like any environment, the Atlas offers both a set of resources and a set of constraints. Some constraints are inherent to the project. The most obvious are those that depend on its format, the limitation on the number of maps and on the amount of information that can be inserted into them. Much more important, though, is the fundamental limitation on our knowledge. This applies particularly to the art of the past, where little survives because most was made in impermanent materials. But it also applies to particular areas of the globe. In most of the tropics, for example, where the climate was hostile to the art that was made in a wealth of organic materials, we know virtually nothing of what was produced until the last hundred years or so. In other areas of the tropics, and elsewhere in the world, where there was a lack of organic materials, either because, as in the Andean altiplano, the climate did not allow them, or because, as in areas around the Mediterranean, humans destroyed them through farming and other activities, and where durable materials such as stone, metals and baked clay were used, the picture is much fuller. In some spreads there is simply much less knowledge that can be mapped than in others. In spite of this inherent unevenness, every effort has been made to achieve consistency of treatment, while still allowing a variety of approaches to be adopted by the contributors. Each spread visually presents a similar set of information on such subjects as: topography, both of landscape and of cities; raw materials, both local and imported, and their processing; art, its production, use, display and displacement; artists and their movements; social institutions; and the boundaries of linguistic and religious groups, ethnic communities, and states. It also provides a verbal essay on their interrelations. The selection of information and of images, as well as the character of the commentary, reflect the interests of the almost seventy authors, who are themselves of many different cultural, ethnic, linguistic, religious, social, sexual and disciplinary backgrounds. Each spread is a highly personal essay, but taken together they present a vast body of comparable material and comparable ideas. It is possible to go through the Atlas, assessing the degrees of influence of the different factors noted in many different contexts. The reader can also compare the merits of different explanations and the theoretical assumptions on which they are based. Many of the leading authorities on different areas of art have never before presented their arguments in such a compressed and accessible form. The compression inherent in the volume’s configuration brings losses, but also important compensations. The atlas format adopted here for the presentation of knowledge of human artistic activity may be thought by some to be a vestige of an imperialist project. It is better understood as a first template for one that is egalitarian. No group or culture is favoured. All have equal access to each other’s art. Nor is there a primary viewpoint. Instead, the view offered is literally one of a person circling the planet and viewing it from above during the 30–40,000 years that humans have been making art. It is a view helpful to anyone interested in a particular set of activities that are typical of this remarkable animal, those that relate to the visually interesting modification of planet earth’s material resources. The Atlas lifts its readers out of the positions they normally occupy on the globe. It separates them from the conventional assumptions in which their lives are founded, and provides them with new perspectives. It allows them to descend into other places at other times, to experience strange environments, unusual practices and unfamiliar forms of art. Those who take advantage of all the opportunities the Atlas offers will acquire an unprecedented understanding of art as a worldwide human behaviour. They will also acquire a much-needed awareness of our ignorance about it. The Atlas thus challenges its readers, whichever continent or island they come from, to reduce the gaps in their knowledge, whether by new and deeper studies of particular places and times, or by fresh reflections on the broader issues raised. If, wherever they live, they respond to that challenge, or if they simply revel in the pleasures of using a new and visually satisfying intellectual tool, the considerable efforts of the publisher, managing editor, editors, cartographers, contributors and others involved in its production will not have been in vain. JOHN ONIANS INTRODUCTION 12 complex networks, which reinforced important abilities possessed by earlier ancestors. These included a number of tendencies: the ability to look at and mimic each other’s movements and expressions; the use of the visual imagination to search for potential food and tool materials; the tendency to pick up, explore, manipulate and modify such materials, and to understand the importance of such actions when performed by others and, as a result, to imitate them. It was the convergence of all these genetically transmitted inclinations favouring success in the competition with other creatures that led to the emergence of the making and use of art and determined many of the properties that it has retained to this day. These include its inherent fascination. One of the reasons for art’s abiding power is that the neural networks with which we experience it were originally developed not to provide us with aesthetic pleasure but to ensure our very survival. FROM NATURE TO CULTURE The adaptations just referred to, especially the inclinations to look at, to pick up, to manipulate and to modify materials and to respond to the visual experience of materials so modified, are inborn and therefore universal. However, the ways they manifest themselves are transformed through time and space in response to changes in the natural and social environment. This happens because of another distinctive property of our nervous system, its ‘plasticity’. Humans are exceptional in that their brains are only fifty percent formed at birth. The fifty percent that develops later is formed both through passive exposure to the environment and through the active intervention of others. It is the combination of these inputs that largely accounts for the differences between humans, including the differences in the ways in which art is both made and used. The dependence of such differences in art on differences of passive exposure is particularly clear. Looking at anything with particular attention causes the development of neural networks that will help us deal with it better in future, and this results in the formation of visual preferences that will unconsciously influence us should we start to make or look at art. Thus, the knowledge of what precisely people anywhere and at any time were looking at intently will reveal a great deal about their preferences. This knowledge is particularly relevant when we are trying to understand the formation of an artistic tradition, where little or none exists, since in these circumstances we can be certain that the neural networks that shape people’s preferences will be formed less by looking at man-made objects than at important features of their natural environment which can easily be reconstructed. Thus, when the first tradition, that of the European Ice Age, was established around 30,000 BC, the psychologically most important objects to which people were exposed were large herbivorous and predatory animals, and these are precisely the objects which they tended to see in the surfaces around them and became inclined to represent. In the same way, an important feature in the visual experience of those who made the first monumental art, that of Egypt, around 3000 BC, were regular fields and rows of plants, which is why paintings and reliefs are arranged in rectangles and why buildings are full of plant-like columns. The environment of the Nile Valley is soft compared to the bare rocky mountains of Greece, and when the Greeks started their own artistic traditions around 600 BC, they replaced the soft lotus-bud capitals of Egyptian architecture with the angular forms we know as Doric and Ionic. Also, since their well-being depended on the physical strength of men rather than the productivity of agriculture, it was life-size and lifelike naked human figures that they saw in, and extracted from, the limestone and marble with which they were surrounded. In the Yellow River Valley of China, where another great tradition was developing at the same time, wealth depended instead upon the irrigation of fields with water that circulated from clouds to rain and back in the form of mist. It was thus visual exposure to such phenomena that helped to shape everything they made, from billowing clothes to sculpted dragons, and which inspired their most typical painting technique involving the irrigation of flat rectangles of silk and paper with black ink. For the peoples inhabiting tropical areas, where survival depended less on the exploitation of a primary resource, such as stone or water, and where a wild and bountiful nature was predominant in people’s visual experience, the art traditions that developed were quite different. In this rich natural environment it was powerful animals of all sizes – from lions to spiders – and rampant plant life, that most attracted visual attention, an attention that was often confused as both plants and animals sought to camouflage themselves and protect themselves by adopting each other’s attributes. For people brought up in such environments, the masquerade, which allowed humans to participate in a similar mimicry, alternately (and sometimes simultaneously) adopting the appearance of grasses and trees, buffalo and leopards, was an equally natural field of visual expression. In Africa, where large mammals were overwhelmingly powerful, they figured the most prominently. On the islands of the Pacific, where there were no such predominant forces, birds and fish were far more important, and it was their forms that islanders tended to see as they worked the wood of the boats and weapons that were their chief artefacts. In the frozen North, on the other hand, large mammals, such as bear, seals and whales, were again predominant in visual experience. In the absence of flora, these beasts, which were both the principal prey and principal enemy, blended in and out of an environment in which snow, water, ice, mist and wind were in constant flux. In both ivory and bone, materials which came from the animals and were used to make the tools with which they were caught, the Inuit saw the forms of these creatures, and especially their eyes, teeth, paws and so on, which were also the stuff of their stories as well as their shamanic belief systems. If the main influence on the founding of a tradition is likely to be the environment to which people are passively exposed, the main factors that interrupt it and cause it to change are active forces, whether developing within, or coming from outside, society. Inside a society, a group, such as a secret association or otherwise privileged collective, or an individual, such as a chief, priest, king or wealthy citizen, may sense that a particular form or material can be exploited to influence fellow members of the community. Often such a sense may be awakened by the chance experience of what is already done in another society, but the most powerful external influences are those which come, whether welcomed or not, with military conquest, religious conversion or commercial domination. Such upheavals frequently bring an artistic tradition developed in one area into another, replacing or blending with the one that exists there. Alexander’s conquest brought Greek traditions of stone sculpture and architecture deep into Asia, as far as India, and when those traditions became transformed by Indian devotees of Buddha, Shiva and Vishnu, they were then taken further east by traders and monks, often invited by rulers, penetrating China and Japan, Southeast Asia and Indonesia. An even more miscellaneous set of influences brought Egyptian, Mesopotamian, Syrian, Greek and Roman traditions together in the Middle East, from where Muslim missionaries could take this mixed tradition, strong in ceramics and wood- and metal-working, both west to North Africa and Spain and east to Persia, India and beyond. Even more dramatic, because more violent and intolerant, was the impact of the Spanish and Portuguese conquest of the Americas. This absorbed residual local traditions in such media as wood and stone, gold and silver, and textiles into a wave of church-, monastery- and palace-building that represented the dominance of a Christian European monarchy over the preexisting peoples and institutions. Religious literature played an important role in establishing this dominance, and it was books of a more technical nature, on subjects such as how to use the Classical orders or compose paintings, replicated through the new amount of surviving evidence from different areas is highly variable, with most being found in a belt between Russia and northern Spain. This may be due to losses elsewhere, and it is certainly true that the combination of an extremely severe climate and the ready availability of limestone caves in Western Europe encouraged work in more permanent materials in better-protected sites. There are, however, other reasons why such predispositions might have been more intensely activated in the same area. Those who lived in this unusually hostile and unstable environment, close to the edge of the advancing and receding ice sheet, where plant food was relatively rare and the hunting of large animals was both more necessary and more dangerous, would have been more than usually dependent on visual and manual skills. Within this region of greater stress, artistic activity seems to have been often strongest in localities where either survival was most difficult, as at Sungir near Moscow, or where, because of accidents of landscape, food supplies in the form of migrating animals were periodically particularly rich, as at Dolní Ve˘stonice in the Danube Valley or in the Dordogne. LATER, BETWEEN 10,000 AND 5000 BC, as the climate warmed there was some continuation of earlier traditions of artistic activity, but new types also appear and these are increasingly differentiated regionally, reflecting in part an increasing variety of lifestyles as technologies became more complex and adapted to varying ecologies. In Japan, for example, where there were neither large mammals nor predators, the use of fibres to make baskets, nets and lines enabled hunter-gatherers to exploit the smaller-scale food resources of land, water and air so effectively that populations could become increasingly sedentary, developing the first great ceramic culture. The form and decoration of these pots so frequently referred to fibres that they became known as Jomon, from the Japanese for ‘string’. In Europe, too, the resources of water could be intensely exploited, as at Lepenski Vir on the Danube, where many of the fishing community’s houses feature stones in which a natural resemblance to a fish has been enhanced by carving. Elsewhere in Europe, it was the skilled individual hunter with bow and arrow who became more important as woodland expanded north behind the receding ice, and the new dominance of man over nature led to male figures acquiring a prominence they had not had before, as in the rock paintings of Spain. Other art became more schematic, whether it was on the Azilian pebbles from southern France, or the paddles from Denmark, as artefacts generally became more important to people than the foods they helped them to gather or kill. THE GREATEST EXPLOITATION OF TECHNOLOGY and transformation of art, however, was associated with the new understanding of how food production could be expanded through the herding of livestock and the sowing and reaping of grains in West Asia after 7000 BC. Çatal Hüyük in Turkey, the early town whose existence was made possible by this development, is made up of houses whose stone walls are decorated with paintings of animals and landscapes and sculptures of ox heads and leopard. These all testify to a new dominance of man over nature, and this is even clearer in the Jordan valley, where plaster statues celebrate the human body, and clay-covered skulls document a consciousness of the individual. CAVE PAINTINGS in the ‘great hall’ at Lascaux in France, c.15,000 BC. A RT IS FOUNDED IN HUMAN NATURE. Many animals are hunters and gatherers, some are also sociable, and a few, like the chimpanzees, our close relatives, are also tool-users. It is in our special combination of these abilities that art has its origins. Our hominid ancestors had been picking up and shaping stones for use as tools for at least three million years, when, about 500,000 years ago, a more human predecessor, Homo habilis, began collecting objects of more purely visual interest: coloured minerals, such as ochre, and fossil remains, such as animal teeth. The emergence of these behaviours is connected with this creature’s distinctive brain structure linking hand and eye, and enabling it to be successful both at socialization and at gathering and hunting. Inborn visual interests in such features as the redness associated with fruit and other foods, as well as the associated inclinations to reach out for objects having those properties, were becoming so strong that they could be activated by the sight of even inorganic materials. THESE TENDENCIES WERE EVEN STRONGER in the new species of lightboned, large-brained primate, Homo sapiens sapiens, that probably developed in Africa before spreading throughout the world by 35,000 BC. In the brain of Homo sapiens sapiens, modern-type man, the links between the visual and motor systems were even stronger, and during the period to 10,000 BC the manipulation, marking and shaping of natural material resulted not only in an expanded use of personal ornaments and random finger drawings, but in the making of painted, engraved and carved representations. These included animals, both edible and predatory, human hands, and a few human figures, especially of women. Some were made on the walls of caves and rock shelters, others on loose blocks, or out of clay or ivory. Many image types were repeated, suggesting that what began as the chance consequences of spontaneous interactions between individuals and their environment became increasingly satisfying, first to their makers, and then to others. Art began to acquire the social function that was to give it such importance in the future. THE UNIVERSALITY OF THE PREDISPOSITIONS involved is demonstrated by the widespread appearance of this activity from Europe to Africa, from India to South America, and from Siberia to Australia. Yet the ART, HUNTING AND GATHERING 40,000-5000 BC 17 EARLY ICE AGE ART 40,000–20,000 BC Le Placard Pair-non-Pair Grotte des Bernous Cellier Belcayre Laussel Venta de la Perra La Ferrassie La Croze à Gontran Grotte Chauvet Grotte Cosquer Abri Pataud Cougnac Pech-Merle Blanchard (Sergeac) Labattut Brassempouy Isturitz Gargas Castanet Chanlat Lespugue Rhône Loire Garonne Vienne Ardèche Charente Tarn Lot Dordog ne Ariège MEDITER R A N EAN SE A B A Y O F B I S C A Y P Y R E N E E S F R A N C E S P A I N Arcy-sur-Cure N 100 miles0 0 150 kms West European Palaeolithic Art parietal art find site portable art find site 2 music and song leave no trace. So the surviving examples of Early Ice Age art are merely the tip of the iceberg, a tantalizing glimpse of a wealth of varied artistic activity which probably stretches back in time to the very first fossil humans. One particularly important find of recent years is the small ‘Venus’ of Galgenberg (Austria, between Dolní Ve˘stonice and Willendorf), carved in green serpentine, and dated by charcoal around it to c.31,000–32,000 years ago. Its lively pose, so different from those of later, more symmetrical and static female figurines, is quite remarkable. SUBJECT-MATTER Where the Early Ice Age art of Eurasia is concerned – and for the moment this is the greater part of the corpus that is reliably dated to this period – one noteworthy aspect that was already evident in the small but sophisticated ivory carvings from several sites in southwest Germany (Vogelherd, and nearby Geissenklösterle and Hohlenstein-Stadel, all more than 30,000 years old), and in the later terracotta figurines from Central Europe is the marked emphasis on depictions of what might be called large, powerful or dangerous animals. This has really come to the fore through the discovery of the Chauvet Cave. The horse, bison and deer that would dominate in later Ice Age art were already present, but the art of Chauvet is dominated by rhinoceros, mammoths and big cats. When combined with the site's striking bear figures, these four categories account for about two-thirds of the cave’s animal figures. In the Gravettian period (c.25,000–20,000 years ago) in Western Europe this situation appears to alter radically towards the heavy emphasis on herbivores that is so well-known in later caves, though it persists somewhat longer in Central Europe, as seen in the portable art of Dolní Ve˘stonice and Russia’s Kostienki Culture. A CHARCOAL DRAWING of an animal-human from the Apollo 11 cave in Namibia. The rock slabs date from about 25,000 years ago and are the earliest dated rock paintings in Africa. This one shows what appears to be a feline creature with a heavy head, deep chest and thin tapering legs. The drawing seems to have been retouched at some stage, with the possible alteration of the hind legs to resemble those of a human. 2 LARGE NUMBERS OF EARLY ICE AGE SITES have been found in the southwest of France and down to the Pyrenees. Many of the caves discovered contain several chambers with painted walls, such as the hand stencils in the cave of Gargas, or the panel of spotted horses at Pech-Merle. The oldest rock paintings found so far in the region are those at Chauvet, if the radiocarbon dates are correct (many features of this cave’s art suggest a later date). Of the portable art sites, several have yielded female ‘Venus’ figurines, such as that carved in mammoth ivory from Lespugue and the bas-relief carving of the ‘Venus with a horn’ from Laussel. More elaborate is a carved head of a figurine found at Brassempouy. AT L A N T I C O C E A N I N D I A N O C E A N P A C I F I C O C E A N A T L A N T I C O C E A N A R C T I C O C E A N MEDITERRANEAN SEA BLACK SEA CASPIAN SEA Mandu Mandu Creek rock shelter with shell-bead necklace Apollo 11 Cave painted plaquettes Border Cave engraved pieces of wood and bone Nswatugi Cave Zimbabwe palette Patne engraved ostrich eggshell Aq Kupruq carved stone head Mal‘ta Mezin Dolní VestoniceˇDolní Vestonice Pavlov Willendorf Galgenberg Vogelherd Hohlenstein-Stadel Le Trou Magrite Geissenklösterle Sungir Kostienki Tolbaga bone figurine Brno ˇPredmostí Avdeevo Blombos Cave incised rocks Pedra Furada rock shelter; fallen fragments of painted wall Arnhem Land shelters with abundant ochre Tanzania shelters with ochre pencils and palettes Sandy Creek 2 / Walkunder Arch rock shelter with paintings Olary/Wharton Hill Koonalda Cave finger markings on ceilings and walls Carpenter‘s Gap rock shelter with fallen fragments of painted wall N O R T H A M E R I C A S O U T H A M E R I C A MESOAMERICA B E R I N G I A NEW GUINEA JAVA BOR NEO SUMATRA PHILIPPINES mammoth ibex horsereindeer red deer bison giant sloth kangaroo eland antelope cape buffalo JAPAN GREENLAND C H I N A AUSTRALIA A F R I C A A S I A S I B E R I A E U R O P E N 0 0 2400 miles 3600 kms IT HAS BECOME clear in recent years that ‘art’, however it is defined, did not begin with the Upper Palaeolithic or Early Ice Age period (c.40,000 years ago) or with modern humans. Indeed, even the earliest fossil hominids – Australopithecines of two or three million years ago – seem to have had some kind of aesthetic sense. However, it is from the period after about 40,000 BC that a substantial range of examples of art is known. Contrary to popular belief, this later art – Ice Age art – was not confined to Eurasia; instead, in the last few decades it has become clear that art, both parietal (in caves and rock-shelters, and on rocks) and portable, occurs in this period in every continent. The portable art is relatively easy to date, from its stratigraphic position and associated datable materials. The parietal art, on the other hand, can only be reliably dated where it was covered by occupation layers, or where its figures contain organic material such as charcoal (as at the Chauvet Cave, where some animal figures have produced age estimates of more than 30,000 years). TECHNIQUES AND MEDIA Very early dates – of 30,000 and even 42,000 years ago – have been obtained from organic material trapped in the natural varnish covering rock carvings in Australia, which would make the petroglyphs beneath the varnish the oldest dated examples of rock art in the world. However, this dating method remains controversial and of uncertain validity. At present, it is Eurasia which has the greatest number of known sites with art that is more or less reliably dated to this period. The range of techniques and media present at this time is already impressive – in parietal art, there is fingermarking, engraving, and bas-relief sculpture; outline drawing and shaded painting; in portable art, adornments of perforated shells, teeth, bones or stones; engraving on bone, stone, antler, eggshell and ivory; painting on stones, as at Apollo 11 Cave, Namibia, dating to c.25,000 years ago; three-dimensional carving of stone, antler and ivory; and even the production of thousands of fired clay figurines, notably in Central Europe, and dating back to c.22,400 BC. Tests on these figurines from sites in the Czech Republic indicate that they were fired at temperatures from 500° to 800°C, and the shape of their fractures implies that they were broken by thermal shock – in other words, they were placed, while still wet, in the hottest part of the fire or ‘oven’, and thus deliberately caused to explode. Rather than carefully made art objects, therefore, their lack of finish and the manner of their breakage suggest that they may have been used in some special ritual. ART, HUNTING AND GATHERING EARLY ICE AGE ART 40,000-20,000 BC 16 ONE OF THE PAINTED PANELS discovered in the Chauvet Cave in southern France in 1994, possibly dating to more than 30,000 years ago: though this is a matter of great controversy. It shows a number of rhinoceros, while others depict similarly large, dangerous animals – bears, big cats, mammoths. 1 THE LOWER SEA LEVELS in the Early Ice Age created land bridges that allowed colonization of Australia and the Americas. There were two alternative routes into Australia, though both required the crossing of large expanses of sea. The Pedra Furada rock shelter in Brazil contains fragments of painted rock which may be the earliest evidence of art in the Americas. However, the bulk of the currently known finds of this period are in Eurasia, some sites containing large numbers of art objects. At Dolní Ve˘ stonice in Moravia, for example, hundreds of small terracotta figurines have been found, mostly of animals, which seem to have been fragmented by thermal shock, and hence deliberately caused to explode in a fire, presumably for some ritual purpose. MATERIALS The materials used for artworks in this period were all readily to hand, whether inorganic (the various kinds of flint or hardstones) or organic (animals provided an inexhaustible supply of useful, workable materials). Mammoth ivory was a very difficult material to work, but the artisans of the period in Eurasia produced an astonishing array of objects from it, and clearly mastered this medium like the others. Other animals, in different parts of the world, provided bones, teeth, and sometimes antlers or horns. But one should never forget that the archaeological record comprises only those materials which have survived the millennia – untold quantities of art must have existed on rocks in the open air, or in materials that have disintegrated to nothing (wood, bark, fibres, feathers, hides). Body-painting and elaborate hairstyles probably extend far back into pre-history, together with tattooing or piercings; and of course, dance, 1 Palaeolithic Art coastline at height of last Ice Age, c. 20,000 years ago greatest extent of ice cover tundra steppe forest tropical forest desert main routes of colonization using land bridges parietal art find site portable art find site dominant animal, source of food and materials LATER ICE AGE ART 20,000–10,000 BC 19 localized in space and time, and are generally assumed to be ‘ethnic markers’ of some kind. Some decorated caves also served as dwellings; others were never lived in and only visited rarely or even once for the art’s production. Some cave art – and all of that in shelters and the open-air – seems meant for public consumption, whereas a great deal of it is extremely private, hidden away in dark depths, crawl-ways or inaccessible niches. In many cases it seems to have been the arduous journey to reach the place where the art was produced which was important. In such cases, it is likely that the art had a religious motivation. INTERPRETING ICE AGE ART Attempts to interpret Ice Age art tend to reflect their times. It was once thought to be the mindless doodlings of idle hunters (‘art for art’s sake’). Then ethnographic reports from Australia and elsewhere at the turn of the century led to theories of sympathetic magic (hunting magic, fertility magic). Dominant in the first half of the last century, these proved unsatisfactory since there are no hunting or sexual scenes in the art, and in most sites the artists were not drawing the same species as they were hunting. This approach was superseded in the 1950s and 1960s by French structuralism, which saw cave art as ‘mythograms’ incorporating a binary system that was essentially sexual symbolism. The Space Age brought an emphasis on interpretations involving archaeoastronomy and 20˚ 40˚ Rhône Gar onne Ebro Tagus Guadalquivir Saône Loire A T L A N T I C O C E A N BAY O F B I S C AY M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A P Y R E N E E S Fontanet Tête-du-Lion Grotte Cosquer Le Placard Réseau Guy Martin Las Chimeneas Las Monedas Lascaux Cougnac Fuente del Salín Covaciella Niaux La Vache La Colombière Enlène Parpalló Labastide La Garma Ekain Altamira Isturitz Tito Bustillo El Castillo La Marche Angles-sur-l’Anglin Le Mas d’AzilLe Tuc d’Audoubert Le Portel Inset 1 Inset 3Inset 2 Inset 4 N 0 0 150 miles 225 kms Later Ice Age Art, 20,000-10,000 BC finds of parietal art finds of portable art parietal / portable art 1 2 34 2 2 CAVES, ROCK SHELTERS AND OPEN-AIR ROCKS – around 300 sites are currently known in Eurasia which have parietal art of this period, most of them in France and Spain. Even more are known with portable art of the same antiquity. This map features only the best-known and best-dated – there are too many sites with art objects to be included, while relatively few of the parietal sites are attributed to the late Ice Age with complete certainty. Most of them are dated primarily by style, though their chronological attribution is highly probable, through various factors such as comparison with well-dated portable art. ENGRAVING ON BONE from the floor of the cave of La Garma, northern Spain, dating to more than 12,000 BC, and depicting a young ibex or deer looking back over its shoulder. It bears a marked resemblance to threedimensional versions of the same motif, carved in antler on spearthrowers from the French Pyrenees in the same period. BISON PAINTED IN THE CAVE OF LASCAUX (Dordogne, France), which is generally (but not securely) ascribed to about 15,000 BC. Note how perspective is shown by the simple but effective method of not attaching the legs of the far side to the body. notation; the Computer Age saw each cave as a giant floppy disk with retrievable information recorded on its walls; while the New Age brought a return to simplistic notions of a universal ‘shamanism’, and of images recording trance experiences. There may be truth in all of the above, but it is safe to say that no single explanation will ever suffice for a phenomenon which spans at least 30 millennia over a vast area, and which encompasses such a huge range of media, techniques and imagery. Church Hole Cave cave engravings Mississippi M iss ouri Amazon Y angtze Ye llow River Danube Nile Volg a Congo Niger Darling A T L A N T I C O C E A N P A C I F I C O C E A N I N D I A N O C E A N ARABIAN SEA BAY OF BENGAL CARIBBEAN SEA C H INASEA SO UTH HIMALAYAS URALMTS RO CKY MTS A NDES A F R I C A NORTH AMERICA SOUTH AMERICA AUSTRALIA A S I A E U R O P E Pedra Furada, Perna early rock paintings Spring Creek decorated tooth Balawinne Cave hand stencils Koonalda Cave finger markings Gum Tree Valley petroglyphs Devil’s Lair beads Kimberley rock paintings? Snowy River Cave finger markings Early Man Shelter petroglyphs Longgu Cave engraved antler Zhoukoudian jewellery Kapova Cave cave paintings Avdeevo portable art Mezhirich' portable art Urkan e-Rub engraved pebble Mezin portable art Gönnersdorf portable art Ignatiev Cave cave paintings Afalou Bou Rhummel terracotta figurines Matupi Cave incised bored stone Tamar Hat incised ceramic fragment Maininskaya terracotta figurine Kamikuroiwa engraved pebbles Jomon pottery Gasja and Khummi early pottery early petroglyphs N 0 0 1000 miles 1500 kms 1 Later Ice Age Art, 20,000-10,000 BC 18 IT IS IN THE LATTER PART of the last Ice Age that the great majority of what is called Palaeolithic art occurs; and as in the preceding millennia, examples are to be found on every continent, though it is Eurasia, and especially southwest Europe, which has the most numerous and best-known sites at present. Outside Eurasia, most examples of art that is attributable to this period are portable objects of different kinds, such as terracotta figurines in Algeria and Siberia, or engraved pebbles in Israel and Japan. Some rock art, however, in the New World and Australia is also assigned to the late Ice Age. Petroglyphs in different parts of the United States have been dated through the still experimental and controversial method of dating organic material trapped in the natural varnish covering them. AUSTRALIA AND BRAZIL Some rock paintings in shelters in Brazil are clearly from this period. At Pedra Furada, for example, fragments of painted wall fell off over time and became stratified in datable occupation deposits. Even more definite are the petroglyphs at Early Man Shelter in Queensland, Australia, which were actually masked by occupation deposits dated to 13,200 years ago, making it certain that the petroglyphs were even older. Other Australian sites are less securely dated – for example, a wasp nest masking a painted human figure at a rock-shelter in Kimberley produced a luminescence date of 15,500 BC, suggesting that the painting must be at least as old as this, whereas radiocarbon analysis of organic materials in paint from two similar figures has yielded results of only 1900 BC or less. SPAIN, PORTUGAL AND FRANCE In southwest Europe, the past 20 years have seen the discovery of twelve sites – in Spain, Portugal and France – of pecked and engraved figures on rocks in the open air, identical in style to figures known in Ice Age caves and portable art. In consequence, it is now clear that the rock art of the period forms a continuum from the open-air to the dark depths of caves. Every kind of rock surface was being painted, engraved or sculpted. Engravings could be made with any kind of sharp-edged stone. Where paint is concerned, it is clear that it was sometimes applied with fingers, and often spat or sprayed from the mouth or by means of an aerograph. In other cases, the artists appear to have used actual crayons of pigment, or applied paint to walls with pads or brushes. No such implements have yet been found in Eurasia, but experiments suggest that a brush of chewed plant fibres or an animalhair brush (badger hair seems particularly good) would have produced the best results. There are clear regional differences in techniques and content, even within the relatively small area of France and Spain. For example, work in clay – from finger-markings in cave floors to bas-reliefs and full threedimensional statues – has been found only in deep caves in the French Pyrenees, while basrelief sculpture (which, like much portable art, seems to have been originally painted) only occurs in cave entrances or rock-shelters in the Dordogne and Charente areas. The content of the art is generally divided into three major categories: animals, humans and non-figurative or abstract (the ‘signs’). The vast majority of animal figures seem to be adults drawn in profile; there are very few recognizable ‘scenes’, no ground-lines, no landscapes, no vegetation (other than a handful of plant-like forms, primarily in portable art). The same limited range of animals is always depicted so that this is not a prehistoric bestiary simply depicting the outside world. These animals were meant to convey information or (probably highly complex) messages to the people of the time. Humans are extremely rare (other than the famous female figurines), but the artists were clearly capable of depicting them when they wished; their virtual absence from cave art thus suggests that human figures were either taboo, unnecessary or irrelevant to whatever motivations lay behind the art’s production. Simple ‘signs’ – dots, lines – are fairly ubiquitous, as one might expect, whereas complex signs tend to be very LATER ICE AGE ART 20,000-10,000 BC 1 ICE AGE ART has been studied for more than a century, but only in the last few decades have sparse finds begun to be made outside Europe. Still few in number, and so varied in type and content as to defy any unifying link, they are merely the first of many. The map will fill rapidly as more research is carried out and new discoveries are made. ART, HUNTING AND GATHERING POSTGLACIAL ART 10,000–5000 BC 21 carved boulders, with human-like faces but fish-like mouths, and abstract decoration which might represent scales. These boulders, 20–60 cm (8–24 ins) in height, are among the earliest known examples of ‘monumental’ threedimensional sculpture in the world. The best-known portable art of the early postglacial is that of the ‘Azilian’ culture (c.8000 BC), especially its small, flat pebbles bearing dots and lines of red paint. These have been found at sites in France, Spain and Italy, but of the almost 2200 known, more than 1600 are from Le Mas d’Azil in the French Pyrenees. Debate still rages over their possible functions – with gaming pieces, proto-writing and notations among those suggested. The Azilian also produced pebbles bearing a series of engraved lines, and these are likewise known over quite a large part of western Europe. Other than these, the best-known and bestdated portable art objects from this period in Europe are to be found in the north: for example, the carvings of animals in amber, stone and bone from Scandinavia, particularly the Maglemose culture of Denmark (c.7500– 5700 BC), such as the amber bear from Resen Mose with its geometrical decoration. A whole range of objects has been found at sites in northwest and western Russia. They include stone and bone carvings of elk heads and ducks from Zamostje; a carved wooden elk head projection on a ski from Vis I; a profusion of geometric decoration on bone objects from the Veretye culture, east of Lake Onega; and items in wood and birch-bark from waterlogged sites like the Shigirsky bog in the Urals. One spectacular wooden anthropomorphous idol from Shigirsky, dated to about 6600 BC, was no less than 5.3 metres (17 ft) tall. It is therefore in this postglacial or ‘mesolithic’ period that we are afforded our first glimpse of the kinds of materials which have normally not survived. It can hardly be doubted that a vast array of art in perishable materials has irretrievably decomposed and disappeared, not only from this postglacial period but also from the Ice Age itself. At the same time we see the growing importance of new media such as plaster and the advent of more widespread use of ceramics. THE ROCK-SHELTER OF LES ORCHIDES in the Forest of Fontainebleau, near Paris, France, is one of numerous shelters here which contain enigmatic incised grid-like designs on their floors, walls and ceilings. Archaeological investigation in their vicinity points to a probable mesolithic date, but their significance remains a complete mystery. 20 ONE OF THE GREAT unanswered questions of prehistory is: why did Ice Age art come to an end? And part of the answer is that it did not. Since most figures in Ice Age cave art remain undated except by style, we have no means of knowing whether it did indeed end abruptly, or carried on for some time after the end of the Ice Age – itself a gradual and uneven phenomenon depending on latitude, climate and so forth. PROBLEMATIC DATING In recent years some specialists have dared to wonder if some of the art in the caves might not extend into the early postglacial period, beyond the end of what we call the Ice Age – and recent direct dating of some black figures in the Spanish cave of Ojo Gaureña has produced results of 9470 to 8950 BC – quite late for Ice Age cave art. And likewise we know that the Ice Age portable art of southwest Europe continued for a while at sites such as Pont d’Ambon and the Abri Morin. In fact, our knowledge of the art of the millennia following the end of the Ice Age is largely confined to such portable objects, precisely because so little parietal art has yet been reliably dated. A few rock art sites in the New World, Australia and elsewhere are known to belong to this period. Elsewhere, dating is still a matter of faith or conjecture. Some rock art sites in India are attributed to the mesolithic (Middle Stone Age) period. So are the numerous and enigmatic engraved grids in shelters in the Forest of Fontainebleau (near Paris). Spanish Levantine art (so-called because it is mostly found in the eastern part of the country) consists mainly of rock paintings of small, lively human and animal figures in rock shelters. It has traditionally been ascribed to this period because it often shows hunting scenes with deer or boar – staples during the mesolithic in this part of the world. It also neatly filled a gap between the cave art of the Ice Age and the ceramics of the first farmers. There was never any evidence for the Levantine art being mesolithic, though, and recent work has shown that some if not all of it can be ascribed to the neolithic period (New Stone Age) or even later. PORTABLE ART IN THE MESOLITHIC One of the most interesting recent finds from the early postglacial was made at the Syrian site of Jerf el-Ahmar, where a number of stones of about 8000 BC bear a series of pictograms – combinations of lines, arrows and animal outlines – seen by some researchers as an intermediate stage in an evolution from Ice Age art to true writing, which arose about 5000 years later in the form of Sumerian cuneiform. Even more spectacular developments are the plastered skulls and statuettes from Israel and Jordan, dating to about 7000 BC, when clay figurines were becoming widespread in the eastern Mediterranean. The remarkable site of Lepenski Vir, in Serbia, was a fishing village on the Danube dating from c.6000 BC, and many of its houses were found to contain enigmatic limestone POSTGLACIAL ART 10,000-5000 BC PAINTED WOODEN PADDLE from a submerged settlement at Tybrind Vig, in Lille Baelt, Denmark. Its decoration was produced by filling incised designs with brown pigment. Ten such paddles, all heart-shaped and of ash wood, were found at this waterlogged site with exceptional preservation. Only two were decorated. HAND STENCILS IN THE CUEVA DE LAS MANOS (southwest Argentina). Huge clusters and superimpositions of stencils, sometimes hundreds of them, in a wide variety of colours can be found in rock shelters in Patagonia. At this site, archaeological excavation suggests that they date back to c.7300 BC. Some specialists do not regard such stencils as ‘art’, since they are mere impressions, but it is clear from colourful groupings such as this that they were intended to have a striking aesthetic impact. M ississippi M is souri Amazon Y angtze Yel lowRi ver Danube Nile Volga Indus G anges Congo Niger Darling I N D I A N O C E A N A T L A N T I C O C E A N P A C I F I C O C E A N SOU T H CHINASEA HIMALAYAS URALMTS ROCKY MTS A NDES A F R I C A NORTH AMERICA SOUTH AMERICA AUSTRALIA A S I A E U R O P E Jomon pottery Tybrind Vig wooden paddles Aucilla River portable art Gault Site engraved stones Toquepala Cave rock paintings Monte Alegre rock paintings Piauí numerous shelters El Wad Natufian figurines Jericho plastered portrait skulls, plaster statues Sha’ar Hagolan Yarmukian clay figurines Jerf el-Ahmar pictograph tablets Jiahu bone flutes Wargata Mina hand stencils Sturts Meadows petroglyphs Magnificent Gallery paintings Kakadu paintings Çatal Hüyük wall paintings in houses, clay figurines Zamostje/Vis I portable carvings Kunda Culture portable carvings Maglemose Culture portable art Lepenski Vir limestone sculptures Le Mas d’Azil Azilian Culture, decorated pebbles Fontainebleau rock engravings? Ojo Guareña cave paintings rock paintings? Karelia/Lake Onega Veretye Culture/Oleneostrovski Cemetery, portable carvings, decorated implements Shigirsky portable carvings Berelekh portable engraving stone and clay figurines ’Ain Ghazal plaster statues Whalebone figurines, 6000 BC Inca Cueva rock paintings Los Toldos/El Ceibo rock paintings Cueva de las Manos rock paintings petroglyphs N 0 0 1000 miles 1500 kms 1 Postglacial Art, 10,000-5000 BC 1 AFTER THE ICE AGE, art around the world becomes even more varied, with a tremendous variety of forms and motifs encountered around the globe. The lack of firm dating greatly hampers the development of a unifying theory, but one clear phenomenon is the appearance of art in well-preserved organic materials from waterlogged sites in northern Eurasia, as well as the rapidly growing importance of work in other materials such as plaster and fired clay. ART, HUNTING AND GATHERING that could then be transformed into objects, ornaments and representations of people, animals and plants. These objects filled the houses and tombs of rulers and the shrines of deities. Stones, such as granite and alabaster, were extracted from quarries and carved; metals, such as gold, silver and copper, were mined, melted and moulded; clay was dug and baked into bricks and pots; trees were cut down and timbers sawn and polished; pigments were extracted from plants and minerals and used to dye fibres and to colour surfaces. All these resources and techniques were used to create pleasure and confidence in the owner or fear or amazement in others. In different areas, different materials received more attention, depending on variations in availability and aesthetic preferences. In Egypt craftsmen worked in granite and a glass-like substance called faience; in China jade and bronze were used; and in coastal South America the focus was on cotton textiles and painted ceramics. IN REGIONS WHERE THE COMBINATION OF SOIL AND CLIMATE limited the productivity of agriculture, as in the valleys of Europe, the plateaux of Asia, the hills of Southeast Asia and the islands of the Pacfic, communities were on a smaller scale, but were often distinguished by remarkable artefact traditions. In coastal Europe, for example, a shortage of trees, combined with other pressures, brought the erection of massive but simple stone monuments such as the temples of Malta and Britain’s Stonehenge. AGRICULTURE CREATED A NEED FOR LAND, and one of the features of this period is the beginning of the phenomenon of small groups expanding into vast territories, their original homogeneity betrayed by linguistic similarities, as well as belief systems and material traditions. The Bantu who expanded out of West Africa into the rest of Sub-Saharan Africa made little use of permanent materials, leaving us largely ignorant of their art. The same is not true of the peoples who migrated into the western Pacific from Southeast Asia. These founders of Polynesian culture brought with them a refined and elaborate pottery, known as Lapita, only to abandon it after their arrival. On their way they passed, and probably mixed with, the people who had arrived much earlier in neighbouring New Guinea and Australia, whose rock art, although often difficult to date, suggests a continuation of earlier traditions. THE FIRST POLYNESIANS WERE A CLOSE-KNIT GROUP of courageous and competitive sailors, and so were the Phoenicians and Greeks who expanded to dominate most of the Mediterranean between 1000 and 500 BC, but it is the differences between these rival Semitic and Indo-European peoples that is most remarkable. The Phoenicians founded rich and important cities, such as Carthage, which have left little permanent material trace besides their cemeteries (or tophets). The Greeks, by contrast, especially the Athenians, began developing a culture that was unprecedentedly rich in artefacts made of durable materials. The militarization that followed from their need to defend the resources of their narrow, rocky valleys led the Greeks to value the properties of minerals. In mythology they represented themselves as made of stone and metal, and they used the same substances to portray themselves in art. The Greeks had turned themselves into artefacts particularly adapted for war. The success of their culture was to lead others to do the same. PAINTED LIMESTONE RELIEF from the Tomb of Ti in Saqqara, Egypt, c.2450 BC. T HE DEVELOPMENT OF AGRICULTURE added a new and larger dimension to humanity’s involvement with art. Agriculture was in some sense itself an artistic activity. The selection of plants and animals for breeding involved the expression of aesthetic preferences; the process of preparing fields for planting involved the shaping of the land; and the process of tending the sown plants often required a coordination of visual and manual activity that paralleled that of the artist. THE RELATION BETWEEN AGRICULTURE AND ARCHITECTURE was particularly close. In those areas where conditions favourable to intense food production allowed the growth of bigger and bigger and more and more permanent settlements, agriculture led directly to urbanization. Between 3000 BC and 1000 BC cities built in fertile river valleys, such as Ur in Mesopotamia, Memphis in Egypt, Harappa in India, and Anyang in China, set new standards in scale, substance and organization, and a similar process of urbanization was beginning in Meso- and South America. Agriculture indirectly affected both people’s thinking and their visual preferences. Growth now became a vital metaphor in many areas of experience, and those who enjoyed the wealth that farming generated constructed ever larger palaces and tombs for themselves and temples for the deities that were their protectors. Agriculture also involved planning, and this, too, became an increasingly central activity and metaphor, as both town and country were increasingly carefully managed. Irrigation and road-building intensified, and both in and around cities the straight line and the right angle became more and more prominent. First in Egypt, and then elsewhere, design principles were transferred from the horizontal layout of fields and houses to the vertical surfaces of walls, so inaugurating the great tradition of painted and sculpted decoration in rectangular panels. At the same time architectural ornaments acquired the properties desired in agricultural products, as the cornices and colonnades of Egyptian and Mesopotamian buildings were made to look like rows of leaves and sown plants. AGRICULTURAL SURPLUSES COULD BE EXCHANGED for other goods, often from foreign countries, sometimes in the form of raw materials ART, AGRICULTURE AND URBANIZATION 5000-500 BC By 2500 BC farming had spread throughout most of the Old World as it was shortly to do in the New. The growing populations of the urban heartlands were sending feelers deep into their mountainous hinterlands, seeking sources of raw materials and spreading ideas as they did so. On the steppes of Eurasia, the horse was domesticated and used to pull wagons and chariots, though not yet for riding. The transformation since the end of the last Ice Age was profound and far-reaching. Human societies dominated most of the land and POLITICAL propaganda is one of the recurrent themes of art from early state societies. This mace head shows one of the first kings of Egypt ceremonially cutting an irrigation ditch, which waters a small stylized patch of four long, rectangular fields. The king wears the crown of Upper (southern) Egypt, and before his face is carved a small scorpion that is believed to represent his name or title. The king is shown as father or benefactor of the people, bringing water to the land, though in fact it was the annual Nile flood and the trapping of receding floodwater in irrigation basins that provided the basis of ancient Egyptian agriculture. THE WORLD 10,000–3000 BC 25 2 THE EARLIEST CITIES of the Old World were concentrated in four limited regions, each centred on a major river or riverine system. These provided the fertile soils and the water needed to grow regular harvests of wheat, barley, millet and rice. The populations of the first cities were small by modern standards – numbering usually only a few thousand people – but they possessed a wide range of craft skills and administrative functions, including ritual specialists, bureaucrats and traders. These together created both new needs and new potential, giving rise to political and religious art and architecture. intensive, with the development of ploughing in Eurasia and North Africa allowing still larger areas of land to be brought into cultivation. In drier areas towards or beyond the limit of the rain-fed zone, cooperative effort created systems of canals to bring river-water to the fields. On steeply sloping hillsides, terraced fields were laid out to bring yet more land into cultivation to feed the growing populations. THE FIRST CITIES The introduction of irrigation canals in the sixth millennium BC allowed the fertile plains of southern Mesopotamia to be farmed for the first time. Within 2000 years the productive potential of these hot, dry plains had led to the establishment of the world’s first cities. In Egypt and the Indus valley, annual river flood regimes gave rise to similar urban developments around 3000 BC, later to be joined by China during the second millennium BC. The states and city-states of these densely peopled lowlands demanded a new scale of social organization and new types of religious and political ideology that were represented in art. Kings and gods required statues, palaces and temples to proclaim their power and emphasize their status. The tombs of rulers took on a new impressiveness in the pyramids of Egypt. The rich offerings placed in elite graves at Ur in Mesopotamia or Anyang in China revealed high levels of craftsmanship and sophisticated symbolism, and were made of costly imported materials. Representation flourished in other ways too. Writing was invented, originating out of pictographic systems, and used not only for economic control but for ritual texts and literature. The image of the physical world took on new form also in maps and plans, showing the division of landed property, designs for buildings, or the shape of the cosmos. Cities became microcosms of the divine order, with temples and palaces rising in their midst, and rulers assuming the attributes of god-kings. were rapidly clearing the remaining forests. They were also creating artworks which still today speak to us of elite power, craft skill, and religious beliefs. Nippur Kish Shuruppak Umma Susa Lagash Ur Uruk Eridu Ashur Tell Asmar Rupar Alamgirpur Kalibangan Harappa Mehrgarh Rana Ghundai Mohenjo- Daro Nindowari Balakot Allahdino Desalpur Rangpur Lothal Surkotada Chanhu-Daro Amri Kot Diji Xingtai Luoyang Erlitou Zhengzhou Huixian Anyang Gaocheng Liujiahe Heliopolis Memphis El-Amarna Abydus Thebes Hieraconpolis Maidum Giza Saqqara El-Lisht Elephantine Tell Brak Habuba Ebla Mari Sippar Babylon Nile N ig er Danube Volga Don Yenisey C ongo Ganges M ekong Yangtze Amu r Indus Yellow R. Euphrates Tigris PA C I F I C O C E A N A T L A N T I C O C E A N I N D I A N O C E A N N 0 0 2000 miles 3000 kms 2 Early Urbanism, 3500-1500 BC areas of early urban development first cities Egypt: unified state with hieroglyphic script c.3200 BC; construction of pyramids for royal burials from c.2650 BC; agriculture dependent on water and silt from annual Nile floods Indus or Harappan: grid plan cities founded c.3000 BC; pictographic script still undeciphered; standardized system of weights and measures but political organization unclear; seaborne trade with southern Mesopotamia China: Shang state develops in Yellow River valley c.1600 BC; elaborate Anyang tombs with bronzes and lacquerwork c.1300 BC; pictographic script (ancestor of modern Chinese) used for divination and short inscriptions c.1200 BC Mesopotamia: cities founded from c.3400 BC, protected by city walls by 2800 BC; pictographic script c.3400 BC develops into cuneiform script on clay tablets by c.2900 BC; mud-brick temples on raised platforms give rise to ziggurats c.2500 BC; networks of irrigation canals to water the fields from Rivers Tigris and Euphrates ART, AGRICULTURE AND URBANIZATION 24 AS THE WORLD WARMED UP after the last Ice Age, the glaciers retreated and deserts shrank. The water that had been locked up in the ice sheets was released into the sea to evaporate, condense into clouds and fall as rain. Extensive forests developed in temperate and tropical regions, spreading from late glacial pockets to cover much of the earth’s land surface. Forest vegetation supported expanding herbivore populations and the carnivores that in turn fed on them. But arguably the main beneficiaries of the more hospitable climate were the human groups. These grew in size and progressively colonized new areas in both northern and southern latitudes, eventually covering virtually the whole of the world including the inhospitable arctic wastes and the driest deserts. HUNTER-GATHERERS The population of the world 10,000 years ago consisted almost entirely of hunter-gatherers, who lived by hunting and collecting wild plant foods. They also fished in rivers, lakes and sea, and many of the choicest locations for early human settlement were along wetland coastal margins. In some areas, such as Denmark or northern Australia, their seasonal coastal encampments were marked by mounds of shells, the debris from the exploitation of marine molluscs. Despite their growing numbers, these early postglacial peoples have not left such striking imagery as the cave paintings of their Palaeolithic predecessors. Rock art is known from many regions, however, including, for example, Australia, and the central Sahara, which was moister than at present. Many Saharan rock paintings depict parti-coloured figures of domestic cattle, grouped in herds. Already before the end of the last Ice Age, hunter-gatherers in the Levant had begun to exploit the wild large-seeded grasses which were the ancestors of domestic wheat and barley. Around 12,000 years ago this exploitation shifted in character to include the sowing and harvesting of plants that had been removed from their natural habitat and were being intentionally propagated by human intervention. Agriculture had begun. The immediate stimulus in the Levantine case may have been a temporary shift towards colder drier conditions as the Ice Age approached its end. Whatever the specific cause in the Levant, however, the adoption of cultivated plants, sometimes accompanied by domestic animals, was a development that was to be played out in several regions of the world, in the millennia which followed, in diverse human and environmental circumstances: in China, in tropical Africa, in Central and South America, in the southern USA. It altered the human outlook on the world, the relationship of people to the natural world. This changed understanding may be what was represented by the vivid wall paintings and clay sculptures of Çatal Hüyük in Turkey, perhaps the world’s earliest town. THE WORLD 10,000-3000 BC Nil e N ige r Amazon Mississippi Ganges Amu r Mekong Yangtze Yellow R. Indus Tigris Danube PA C I F I C O C E A N A T L A N T I C O C E A N ATLANTIC OCEAN I N D I A N O C E A N ARABIAN SEA ROCKYMTS AND ES HIMALAYAS N.AMERICA EUROPE AFRICA ASIA CHINA JAPAN R U S S I A INDIA ARABIA AUSTRALIA S.AMERICA c.3500 BC c.4500 BC c.4500 BC c.1000 BC c.8000 BC c.2000 BC c.2600 BC c.2600 BC c.300 BC c.3000 BC c.5500 BC c.6500 BC c.2500 BC c.2800 BC c.2500 BC pre-3000 BC c.3500 BC c.3500 BC N 0 0 2000 miles 3000 kms 1 The Origins of Agriculture areas where agriculture first emerged adoption of the plough, with date limit of plough agriculture 1 THE DOMESTICATION of plants and animals occurred independently in several regions of the world, becoming the dominant mode of human subsistence and leading to a significant growth in population levels. New techniques were developed to increase the amount of food that could be produced. In the Old World, one of the most significant innovations was the plough, drawn by a pair of oxen. The New World lacked suitable domestic animals capable of providing the necessary traction, and cultivation there remained dependent on human muscle power and the hoe. THE IMPACT OF FARMING The immediate consequence of agriculture was the development of larger and more permanent settlements – cultivation and herding allowed many more people to be supported from a given plot of land and removed the need for regular or seasonal mobility. Larger settlements in turn led to more complex social arrangements, involving personal displays of status and works of communal labour. By the fifth millennium BC, ground stone and carved or perforated shell had been joined by objects of copper and gold in graves as markers of individual identity and importance. Agriculture became more CARVED ALABASTER TROUGH of the late fourth millennium BC from southern Mesopotamia, possibly from the city of Uruk. In the centre stands a reed hut or byre. This type of structure was traditional in the southern marshlands of Iraq up to recent times. Sheep and rams converge from left and right, to be greeted by their offspring. Reed bundles terminating in open loops project from the roof; they are the symbols of Inanna, goddess of fertility. The precise meaning of the scene is unclear, but the reed hut with goddess symbols may represent her temple, and the sheep and goats her sacred herd. THE AMERICAS 5000–500 BC 27 40˚50˚60˚70˚80˚90˚100˚110˚120˚130˚140˚150˚160˚170˚ 70˚ 60˚ 40˚ 30˚ 20˚ 10˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ Ga Cu Cu Cu Denbigh Saglek Bay Cape Ray Oconto Serpent Mound Adena Poverty Point Altamirano La Venta Tres Zapotes Tlaxcala Tehuacán Valley Oaxaca Valley San Lorenzo Izapa La Pitía Puerto Hormiga Monagrillo Valdivia Osceola Tikoralak Port aux Choix Grave Creek Caverna da Pedra PintadaINSET MINA CERAMIC TRADITION TUTISHCAINYO TRADITION Taperinha culture KOTOSH-MITO TRADITION Asana Qaluyo Taperinha Barra ceramic complex Poverty Point culture Basketmaker culture Grand Gulch Lovelock Cave Marsh Pass NORTHWEST MICROBLADE TRADITION ARCTIC SMALL TOOL TRADITION Old Copper culture Ocós Ceramic complex Early pottery culture WOODLAND TRADITION PALAEO-ESKIMO/ MARITIME ARCHAIC TRADITION CHINCHORRO TRADITION COTTON PRE-CERAMIC TRADITION L. Titicaca Great Lakes L. Poopó Loa M ackenzie Mississippi Ohio RioGr ande Pecos Colorado St L awrence Missouri Amazon Tocantins Marañón Ucayali Japurá Orinoco Maro ni Putumayo M ade ira Magdalena Paragu ay SãoFranci sco Paraná Desaguadero Salado Deseado Tehuantepec Isthmus PA C I F I C O C E A N A T L A N T I C O C E A N A R C T I C O C E A N H U D S O N BAY CARIBBEAN SEA B E R I N G S E A L A B R A D O R S E A GULF OF MEXICO R O C K Y M O U N TAINS APPALA CH IAN M TS ANDE S BAZILIAN HIGH LA N DS ATACAMADESERT GUIANA HIGHLANDS N O R T H A M E R I C A S O U T H A M E R I C A N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 The Americas, 5000-500 BC tradition/culture Olmec heartland principal site resources: gold copper obsidian galena soapstone manioc maize cotton sunflowers/other native crops peppers gourds camelids caribou buffalo fish sea mammals Cu Ga Marcavalle Huaca Prieta Sechín El Aspero Piedra Parada Río Seco Garagay Caral Chanapata Paracas Waywaka Kotosh Tutiscainyo El Paraíso KOTOSH-MITO TRADITION 1 NORTH AND MESOAMERICA between 5000 and 500 BC witnessed changes which involved the development of agriculture and the first steps towards the establishment of complex society. These developments were concentrated in southern North America and Mexico. Between 5000 and 500 BC in South America agriculture and herding developed in the Andes, while pottery-making was invented in the area of the east-central Amazon. At the same time irrigated agriculture developed in the Peruvian coastal desert river valleys, and large architectural complexes began to appear. SOUTH AMERICA The earliest pottery-producing tradition in South America comes from Caverna da Pedra Pintada, dated to c.5530 BC. This is closely related to the Taperinha culture of the lower Amazon dated to c.5030 BC. The pottery comprises small vessels, gourdlike or openbowl in shape, very occasionally with incised or impressed dot designs. The people depended on fishing, shellfish gathering and kitchen gardening. From about 2000 BC fully sedentary agricultural settlements can be found in the Amazon basin. An example is the Tutishcainyo tradition in Peru, with its distinctive incised decorative pottery, which dates to c.3000–1800 BC. Some of the earliest ceramics for northwestern South America are found at Valdivia (c.3200–1500 BC) in Ecuador. This early pottery comprises low-fired incised and rocker-stamped wares with geometric designs. At the Pre-Ceramic coastal village site of Huaca Prieta (2500–1800 BC), in the Chicama valley, pyro-decorated gourds and textiles with bird and serpent designs have been found. By the end of the Pre-Ceramic period the coastal sites in Peru started to include features such a temple mounds, plazas and U-shaped and pyramidal constructions. Irrigation was in use, and there is evidence of social differentation. Ceramics appear on the coast of Peru by c.1800 BC and are of considerable quality and artistic merit. Platform mounds and rectangular and sunken circular courts are all found at the site of Piedra Parada in the lower Supe Valley. But the largest monumental architecture is associated with the Aspero tradition, one of the first Peruvian cultural complexes to show evidence of social differentiation. Mounds served as stages for public ritualized display, for instance at El Paraiso and Río Seco. The Kotosh-Mito tradition, distinguished by its small, single-room temples, was located in the Huánuco region of the northern highlands of Peru and was established c.2500 BC. The temple (Templo de los Manos Cruzados, or temple of the crossed hands) at Kotosh is associated with a twin-mound construction with chambers on the summit. Sechín in the Casma Valley dates to c.1290 BC. It has a perimeter wall with carved monoliths with designs of dismembered bodies and warriors. It is antecedent to the later Chavín tradition. In the Moquegua area at Asana (c.5000 BC), small circular structures are known. From c.3000 BC these were constructed around a temple building. The Chinchorro culture of c.5000 BC practised mummification of their dead, reflecting a form of ancestor worship. The embalming process included the removal of cerebral and visceral matter, skeletal bracing, padding, exterior clay and paint enhancement and addition of hair and wigs. In Andahuaylas at Waywaka, the earliest evidence of gold-working comprises a goldworking kit with a burial, dating to c.1440 BC. ART, AGRICULTURE AND URBANIZATION 26 construction of funerary mounds. The Adena culture has large burial mounds, one of the biggest being the Grave Creek. Elaborately carved stone pipes and tablets are known from the burial sites. In the arid Southwest the Basketmaker culture developed in c.1200 BC, with sites such as Grand Gulch and Marsh Pass. Later Basketmaker culture villages were substantial, with up to 50 pit houses. MESOAMERICA Archaic cultures from Mesoamerica are known from the Tehuacán and Oaxaca valleys of Mexico. In the early Preclassic period (2000–1000 BC) it is possible to see transition from hunter-gathering to settled farming in Mexico and Central America. Ancestor worship, a hierarchical structure of society, forms of kingship, sedentary settlement and agriculture all first appeared during this period. The early Preclassic period saw the rise of Olmec culture on the Tehuantepec Isthmus along the Gulf Coast. The Olmec believed that a human woman had relations with a jaguar, the resulting offspring being a form of werejaguar. Images of beings with baby-like faces with fanged mouths and cleft foreheads occur frequently in three-dimensional Olmec art carved in jadeite, serpentine and basalt. Werejaguars appear to have represented a rain god. The most famous examples are the basalt monumental heads, stelae and altars found at La Venta, Tres Zapotes and San Lorenzo. ASHIFT TO A MORE SEDENTARY, agriculturally based society, frequently associated with increasingly complex social structures, took place in parts of the Americas during this period. NORTH AMERICA The formation of larger and more complex social groups was probably the result of environmental changes between 4000 and 2000 BC, which led to the emergence of more varied ecosystems and wider availability of resources. Settlements were concentrated in transitional zones, where several different environments came together. Rock art was widely distributed, indicating that it was an ancient custom in the Americas. Around 4000 BC the construction of small burial mounds began along the Mississippi River. By 3500 BC copper was being used by the ‘Old Copper’ culture around the Great Lakes. The burial sites of Osceola and Oconto have yielded many cold- and hothammered artefacts. The first pottery in North America appeared c.2500 BC in the southeast, in South Carolina, along the lower Savannah River valley in Georgia and in coastal Florida. Evidence for the use of basketry and featherwork dates back to c.3000 BC, and is known from Lovelock Cave in western Nevada. The Northwest Microblade Tradition (c.4500 BC–AD 1000) is present in Alaska and Canada. The Arctic Small Tool tradition, established between 4000 and 1000 BC, is typified by small, finely pressure-flaked tools. Palaeo-Eskimo culture arose between 2000 and 1000 BC. It was based on the hunting of sea mammals and caribou. In the winter months, semi-sunken houses were used. In the summer a transition was made to tent-like structures. By 1500 BC large earthworks were being constructed, such as the Poverty Point site along the banks of the Mississippi River in Louisiana. The site of Poverty Point measures c.40 hectares (104 acres). Six parallel, halfcircular mounds arranged around a plaza formed the core of the site. A mixed agricultural and hunter-gathering economy was practised, with crops such as sunflower, sumpweed, goosefoot and gourd. Wide-ranging exchange networks existed, demonstrated by finds at the site of copper tools from the Great Lakes region, lead ore (galena) from Missouri and soapstone (steatite) from Alabama and Georgia. The Woodland tradition developed throughout much of eastern North America between 1000 BC and AD 700, and was characterized by cord- and fabric-marked ceramics, incipient agriculture and the THE AMERICAS 5000-500 BC THE SERPENT MOUND IN OHIO This ritual site may relate to astronomical features in Ursa Major and Ursa Minor, the Big and Little Dipper, and was probably made by the Adena Mound Builder culture some time in the first millennium BC (although recent excavators have suggested a more recent date). The Adena people left their burial mounds in the vicinity of the Serpent Mound structure. No artefacts or burials have been found in its construction fill. THE TEMPLE OF SECHÍN IN THE CASMA VALLEY PERU, belongs to the late Pre-Ceramic period/Initial period. The stone carvings on the outer perimeter wall depict warriors and trophy heads, with the victors and defeated being depicted wearing different clothes. The carvings have been dated to c.1290 BC. The temple is part of a large ceremonial complex comprising four sites: Sechín Alto, Taukachi-Konkán, Sechín Bajo and Cerro Sechín (illustrated here). The central structure of Cerro Sechín comprises a multi-roomed adobe structure with painted murals. 0˚10˚ 40˚ 50˚ Dublin Paris Brest A Coruña Oporto Lisbon Huelva Málaga Badajoz St Nazaire Lorient Cork Galway Belfast Escariz Juncais Tanque Carapito Cortiçô Fontão Antelas Cunha Baixa Sobreda Pedralta Fojinho Forles Chão Redondo Lubagueira Vale de Fachas Viseu Mississippi Épone Les Ronces Aveny Les Houyottes Guiry Boury Saran St Piat Vignes Jaunes Razet Dampont La Pierre Turquaise Paris Chartres Reims See Inset 1 See Inset 2 See Inset 3 Inset 3 Inset 1 Brest Dinan St Nazaire Dissignac Lorient Locmariaquer Vannes Petit-Mont Kermarquer Inset 2 St Denec Rungléo Mougau-Bihar Kermorvan Kerguntuil St-Samson Carnanmore Moneydig Donaghanie Kiltierney Aughnagwgan Loughcrew Tara Tournant Baltinglass Sess Kilgreen Carnavanaghan King's Mtn Boyne Ardmulchan Fourknocks Clear Island Knockmany Santa Cruz Dombate Pedra Coberta Espiñaredo Alpériz Corao Baiñas Lijó Castañeira Barrosa Nora Velha Soto Monte Frio Marzo Zambujeiro Vale de Rodrigo Bulhôa Granja de Toninuelo Almendras Vega de Guadancil Codesas Sallas Zedes Aboboreira Vilarinho Lamoso Padrão Alijó Pola de Allande Thames Ouse Tyne Seine Seine Loire Garon ne Forth Severn S hannon Duero Ebro Rhône Tagus Guadalquivir NORTH SEA BAY O F B I S C AY A T L A N T I C O C E A N M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A PENNINES P Y R E N E E S GRAMPIAN MTS ANGLESEY BRITTANY CHANNEL IS. CORSICA SARDINIA BALEARIC IS. ORKNEY IS. I B E R I A F R A N C E BRITAIN A F R I C A N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms EUROPE 7000–2500 BC 29 THE ENTRANCE STONE at Newgrange, a chambered tomb in the Boyne Valley of eastern Ireland, provides one of the finest examples of what has come to be called ‘megalithic art’. The distribution of similar motifs, from Orkney to Iberia, illustrates the links (no doubt by sea) which connected these otherwise diverse areas of Atlantic Europe in the fifth and fourth millennia BC. 2 MEGALITHIC MONUMENTS were built in several areas of Atlantic Europe during the fifth millennium BC. They range from chambered tombs, of stone or timber construction covered by a mound, to simple upright stones (menhirs) and elaborate stone settings and circles. Engraved motifs are found both on standing stones and chambered tombs, and were also carved on exposed rock surfaces. MOST OF THE EARLY FIGURINES of Neolithic southeastern Europe were moulded from clay which was then fired in a kiln. This technology was also used for making ceramics, which was also adopted by these communities at this period. Ceramics and figurines alike were decorated with painted and engraved designs, some of which may mimic patterns that were used in the textiles or clothing of the period. Loss of the less durable remains has, however, deprived us of probably the bulk of the art produced by these early European communities. and sometimes massive stones (hence ‘megalithic’), which were arranged in rows or circles, or as elements in a chambered tomb. Among the most famous of these chambered tombs are those of Brittany and Ireland, which are decorated with carved motifs. The Irish tombs such as Knowth and Newgrange in the Boyne Valley have elaborate spirals, zigzags and lozenges; those of Brittany include an early group showing animals and axes, and an enigmatic series of carved anthropomorphic images which are sometimes interpreted as evidence of a ‘mother goddess’ cult. Painted motifs occur in the megalithic tombs of western Iberia – spirals and zigzags similar to those of ‘megalithic’ art are also found on rock surfaces where they marked out places of special significance in the landscape. The abstract art of Neolithic western Europe has been related to images of trance and hallucination, which may have been features of the rituals practised at this period. The identification of a mother goddess cult in some of the other motifs (which do include pairs of carved breasts on the walls of megalithic tombs) is, however, very difficult to evaluate. The same is true of claims for a mother goddess cult and a matriarchal society in southeast Europe at this early period – it has been postulated that this ideology of peace was subsequently ended by the rise to dominance of male power. There is evidence enough of violence and warfare in European society from earliest times, however, and the figurines themselves (not all of them female in any case) may have represented living individuals or ancestors as easily as divinities. Nevertheless, they do, along with megalithic art, constitute the two most widespread and longest-lasting artistic traditions of Neolithic Europe. 2 Megalithic Art in Western Europe site with Megalithic art 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ Belgrade Bucharest Kiev Sofia Athens Budapest Prague Vienna Hódmezovásárely Parta Malca Dudesti Salcuta Colomfiresti Habasesti Rusestii-Noi Hluboké Masuvky Vulcanesti Frumusica¸ Izvoare Traian ¸ ¸¸˘ ˘ ˘ Larga-Jijia Krynichka Tomashevka Vladimirovka Tripolye Kolomijshchina Zhukovtsi St Buda Koshilovce Bilce-Zlote Hamangia Let¸Petresti Vadastra˘ Potporanj Dudesti¸ Vidra Boian Ruse Khotnitsa Hârsova¸ Cernavoda Gumelnita¸ Cascioarele˘ ˘ Sultana Bolintin-Vale Giulesti¸ ¸ ¸ ¸ ¸ Tangâru Hotarele ˘ Zengovárkony Sarvas˘ ˝ Gomolava Obrez Carsija Selevac Medvednjak Vinca Gornja Tuzla Lepenski Vir Padina TecicGrivac Divostin Gradac Plocnik Gladnice Predionica Valac Zelenikovo Porodin Elateia Lerna Nea Nikomideia Tsangli Achilleio Tsani Argissa Otzaki Pyrasos Corinth Nea Makri Amorgos Knossos Kato Ierapetra Chaironeia Sesklo Soufli Rudnik Pavlovac Kakanj Lengyel Nosa Röske-Lúdvár Kopáncs Kökénydomb TuzkövesSzegvár Perieni Langenzersdorf Vösendorf Srelice˘˚ Branc˘ ˝ Aszód Füzesabony Tiszapolgár Kotacpart Gorza Donja Branjevina Bordjos Starcevo˘ ˘ ˘ ˘ Cuina Turcului Banjica Obre FafosDanilo Smilcic˘ ˘ ˘ ˘ ˘ ´ ´ Borsod Bodrogkeresztúr Ariusd¸ ¸¸ Târpesti Cucuteni Trusesti¸ ¸ ¸ Corlateni˘ Shipintsy Zhvanets Luka Vrublevetskaya Pianu de Jos Turdas Tartaria˘˘ ˘ ˘ Nitra ˘ Dikilitash Sitagroi Banjata Rastu SaveSupska Drenovac Crno-Bara Paradimi Vrsnik˘ Leskovica Anza Kojadermen Kazanluk Veselinovo Lovets Plovdiv Yasatepe Karanovo Azmak Cernica ¸ ˘ ˝ Danube Morava Varda r Maritsa D rava Sava Tisza Vistula Olt Prut Si ret Dniester Dnieper B L A C K S E A T Y R R H E N I A N S E A I O N I A N S E A A E G E A N S E A A D R I A T I C S E A BALKAN MTS TRANSYLVANIAN ALPS CARPATHIAN M TS PINDUS M TS DINARIC ALPS I T A L Y A N A T O L I A CRETE SICILY N 0 0 150 miles 200 kms ART, AGRICULTURE AND URBANIZATION 28 AROUND 9000 YEARS AGO the first communities in Europe to cultivate cereals and raise domestic animals appeared in Thessaly and Thrace, dependent on crops and livestock species that they had adopted from their neighbours in Anatolia. Over the succeeding millennia, the new way of life spread steadily across Europe, reaching the Rhineland before 5000 BC and becoming established in Britain and Scandinavia a millennium later. MESOLITHIC HUNTERS Hunter-gatherers were restricted in numbers by the availability of wild resources, and in many parts of Europe population levels may have been very low. The scattered distribution of the resources on which they relied also meant that most hunter-gatherer communities had mobile lifestyles, moving between a number of seasonal or temporary settlements and camps during the annual cycle. The exceptions were along coasts and rivers in the Danube Gorges, for example, or in Scandinavia, where rich and varied resources made permanent settlements possible. The Mesolithic hunter-gatherers of Europe were the direct descendants of those of the last Ice Age, but as the ice sheets retreated and temperatures improved, they were able to recolonize northern latitudes and take advantage of the spread of temperate woodlands and grasslands with their plant and animal food resources. It is therefore at first sight perplexing that Mesolithic art is so rare when compared with the famous corpus of cave paintings and portable art produced during the European Upper Palaeolithic. It is likely that the Mesolithic communities of Europe were just as culturally sophisticated as any hunter-gatherers of the world, but that much of this sophistication was expressed in forms – such as song, dance, oral tradition, clothing or carving – which have not survived. In northern Europe waterlogged settlements in Scandinavia provide an insight into what may have been lost – a decorated wooden paddle, for example, was excavated at Tybrind Vig (see p.20). The cemetery of Olenii Ostrov in northern Russia has yielded wooden figurines and batons carved with antler heads. Perishable materials such as wood only rarely survive, however, and hunter-gatherer art in the form of rock engravings is limited to marginal areas such as the Alps and the sub-Arctic. ART OF THE NEOLITHIC The spread of domestic plants and animals that marked the transition to the Neolithic age of pottery and farming may have been associated with some movement of population, but it is likely that in many areas of Europe the earlier EUROPE 7000-2500 BC 1 THE EARLIEST FARMING communities of southeast Europe had much in common with their neighbours in western Asia. Their settlements of up to 50 or more rectangular mud-brick houses grew to form tells, and some of the houses themselves were decorated with painted designs and modelled clay mouldings. A certain unity of background is provided by the fired clay figurines which again can be paralleled in Anatolia, but are not common at this period in Europe north of the Danube. In conventional terminology, these first farming communities of south-east Europe mark the transition from the foregoing Mesolithic period of hunters and gatherers, who relied on wild resources, to the Neolithic period with pottery and farming. Europe was by no means a unity at this period, and was indeed marked as much by differences as by similarities. These differences show themselves in the way that the new domesticates spread and were adopted, and the changes in settlement and material culture that accompanied them. hunter-gatherers were not displaced by newcomers but actually chose to adopt the new way of life. The transition was both economic and conceptual. An important new distinction had been introduced between the wild and domestic. Human societies began to alter and control their living environment in unprecedented ways. This included the clearance of forest (at first on only a small scale) to grow cereals, and the creation of more permanent settlements. In the southeast these took the form of villages of mud-brick houses, built and rebuilt in the same place to form settlement mounds or ‘tells’. Associated with these were figurines, mostly made with the new technology of ceramics. The fact that a large proportion of these figurines are female, and relatively few are clearly male, has led many to interpret them as evidence of a fertility cult, related perhaps to the new concern with the fertility of crops. Some have gone even further, and argued that these figurines represent a cult of female divinities at a time when southeast European societies were predominantly matriarchal in character. Further west, the impact of the new way of life had a different character, with settlements remaining small and scattered. Above all, a changed view of landscape was revealed through the construction of monuments. These included structures incorporating large Early Farming Settlements in Southeast Europe early farming settlements 1 EUROPE 2500-500BC 31 tin from limited and distant sources set up a series of networks across Europe, along which other prized materials such as Baltic amber also circulated. The result was a certain ‘international’ character to the metalwork traditions of the European Bronze Age, where similar forms are found across wide areas. THE NEW METALLURGY Polished stone axes were finely crafted objects, demanding many hours of intensive shaping and polishing to produce the prized endproduct. The transformation of the original raw material that they represented, however, was significantly less dramatic than the process of metallurgy, especially where that involved the smelting of metal from the ores and its subsequent casting to produce the desired forms. This demanded new and rather mysterious knowledge, and an entirely new range of technological skills. Large-scale mining for copper was undertaken in some places, such as Great Orme in north Wales and the Mitterberg in the Austrian Alps, where complex systems of shafts and galleries date back to the second millennium BC. The presence of bronze-working tools in a number of third-millennium elite graves in northwest Europe suggests that the possession not only of metal objects but of metallurgical skills themselves may have conferred special status. It is probably a mistake, however, to characterize this entire period by the use of bronze, since metals were only one of a broad range of indicators reflecting new developments in social and economic life during the second millennium BC. The development of metallurgy was not itself an accidental discovery, and it had been known since the sixth millennium BC in parts of southern Europe and the Near East. Its rapid spread during the late third millennium was as much to do with social change as technological need, a fact which is brought home by the contexts in which metal objects are found and the character of the objects themselves: daggers, axes, spearheads and ornaments, the latter fashioned in gold as well as bronze. It was only after 1300 BC that bronze was available in sufficient quantity to make a more general impact on European economy. Much more significant were the changes in individual status marked by the appearance of richly furnished graves in several regions of western and central Europe around 2000 BC, then by the widespread adoption of cremation in urnfields six or seven centuries later. THE RISE OF SOCIAL HIERARCHIES Fortified or defended settlements indicate a rise in inter-group hostility promoted perhaps by growing ethnic awareness and by a general rise in population density. In western and northern Europe, the appearance of field systems towards the end of the second millennium is another sign of social change, with rights to land now more clearly defined and demarcated. The trend towards the development of more complex societies finds its most extreme expression in the Aegean region, where the first European states emerge in Mycenean Greece and Minoan Crete, with palaces, scripts and a warrior aristocracy subsequently immortalized in the works of Homer. The existence of similar warrior elites is suggested by the appearance of bronze shields, helmets and breastplates across many parts of Europe in the late second millennium BC, coupled with heavier and more effective bronze swords. Social complexity and the rise of elites was mirrored in the development of an increasingly rich iconography, most clearly seen at the northern and southern extremities of central Europe: in the rock-art traditions of the Alps and southern Scandinavia, and in the elaborate ritual metalwork of Sardinia and the Danish Bronze Age. These traditions continued into the first millennium BC, but changes during the eighth and seventh centuries BC mark a new stage in European prehistory. By the sixth century BC, a string of ‘princely’ centres had emerged across central Europe, from Burgundy to Bohemia, marked by hilltop enclosures, richly furnished burial mounds and evidence of contact with the Mediterranean world in the form of Greek and Etruscan imports. By this period, the Mediterranean was fringed by Greek, Etruscan and Carthaginian cities and colonies, and a history of interactions between the Mediterranean and temperate Europe was beginning that was to culminate in the expansion of the Roman empire half a millennium later. 13˚12˚11˚10˚9˚54˚ 55˚ 56˚ 57˚ 58˚ Bulbjerg Nyrup Hove Høng Davding Tellerup Blistrup Påarp Karup Gullåkra Mosse Brudevaelte Voldtofte Egebak Skallerup Valsømagle Torupgaarde Fragtrup Fårdal Trindhøj Gedebjerg Trundholm GrevensvaengeFangel Torp Muldbjerg LofthøjGuldhøj K A T T E G A T N O R T H S E A LÜBECK BAY B A LT I C SEA ZEALAND F Y N L O L L A N D J U T L A N D N 0 0 75 miles 100 kms THE BRONZE SUN CHARIOT, found at Trundholm on Zealand in 1902, is among the most elaborate and most clearly symbolic of the products of the Danish Bronze Age. The object was discovered in a bog, were it may have been placed as a ritual offering in around 1650 BC. It represents a bronze disk mounted on four wheels and pulled by a single horse. One face of the disk was covered with a gold sheet, perhaps to represent day, while the other face may indicate night. The chariot may illustrate some kind of solar or astronomical myth or be a miniature depiction of full-sized solar carts that were used in Danish rituals at this period. 2 THE DANISH BRONZE AGE is remarkable for the technical sophistication of its products and for the fact that Denmark itself lacked any natural deposits of bronze and gold and had to import the materials from source regions. One material that may have been exported in exchange was amber, a fossil resin from western Jutland and the southern margin of the Baltic Sea which has special visual and electrical properties. Artefacts of Baltic amber have been found as far afield as the famous Shaft Graves at Mycenae in southern Greece. The Danish Bronze Age, 1800-700 BC settlement lures bronze figurines swords other metalwork 2 ART, AGRICULTURE AND URBANIZATION 30 THE PERIOD 2500 to 800 BC is conventionally known as the European Bronze Age and was marked by the introduction of weapons and ornaments made of the new material. Bronze itself is an alloy of two metals: copper and tin, in proportions of approximately 90 percent copper and 10 percent tin. This produced a harder and more useful material than copper alone. LONG-DISTANCE TRADE The adoption of bronze led to a new traffic in raw materials across Europe. Long-distance transport had been a feature of earlier millennia, when especially prized varieties of flint or hard stone had travelled hundreds of kilometres from their sources. Jadeite from the western Alps, for example, was used for the manufacture of prestigious polished stone axes as far afield as Scotland and southern Scandinavia. Copper sources were much less abundant than hard stone, however, and were concentrated mainly in the Alps and the Carpathians, and in parts of the Atlantic seaboard, notably Britain, Ireland and Iberia. If copper sources were far from widespread, necessitating trade and exchange, the other vital ingredient of bronze – tin – was even rarer. The principal European tin sources exploited in prehistory were in northern Bohemia and the Atlantic seaboard: Brittany, Galicia and south-west Britain. The demand for EUROPE 2500-500 BC 50˚ 40˚ 10˚20˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ Sn Sn Sn Sn Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu CuCu Cu Cu Cu Cu Great Orme Mitterberg Mycenae Ebro Rhône Loire S eine Rh ine Elbe Drava Vistula Danube Ode r Tagus A T L A N T I C O C E A N N O R T H S E A AEGEAN SEA B A LT IC SEA A D R I A T I C S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A PYRENEES DINARIC ALPS C A R PA THIANS A L P S CORSICA BRITTANY B O H E M I A GALICIA CRETE SARDINIA SICILY B A LEA R I C I S B R I T I S H I S L E S I B E R I A S C A N D I N A V I A A F R I C A N 0 0 300 miles 450 kms 1 LONG-DISTANCE connections linking different areas of Europe became increasingly clear during the second millennium BC and are reflected in similarities in the forms of bronze artefacts across the continent. At the same time, important local traditions emerged which gave certain regions a special character. These include rock art traditions, which in Atlantic Europe focused mainly on abstract motifs (cup-marks and concentric circles). In southern Scandinavia and the Alpine region rich figurative traditions of rock art emerged, depicting humans, animals and artefacts, sometimes in scenes which may represent myths or ritual enactments. THE BEDOLINA ROCK CARVING is one of the most complex of the many rock art panels found in the Valcamonica region of northern Italy. The shapes of the interlinked motifs and the fact that the carving looks out across a landscape has suggested that it may be a kind of map. The enclosures (mostly rectangular) might indicate fields, and the spots within them may even be individual trees. The lines linking the ‘fields’ could be trackways or canals, or simply property boundaries. Against this theory, however, must be laid the recognition that we do not know what the scene represents, or if it is indeed intended to be a portrayal of the landscape. Rock Art and Raw Materials, 2000-800 BC area of mainly abstract rock art area of mainly figurative rock art major source of copper major source of tin major source of amber amber trade route Cu Sn 1 THE AEGEAN 2000–1000 BC 33 other hand, tin, a regular ingredient in bronze by the second millennium, was absent from the Aegean and could only be acquired through long-distance exchange (although a source in the Taurus Mountains may have been exploited in the second millennium). Along such exchange routes monopolized by the palatial elites also travelled exotic raw materials – ivory, ostrich eggs, glass, precious stones, including Baltic amber and lapis lazuli – transformed by Aegean craftspeople. Manufactured items travelled as well – highvalue objects in materials like faience – and, more abundantly, pottery containers. Although other archaeologically invisible craft works were exchanged, it is the indestructible fineware ceramics – both exchange items and containers for perfumed oil and wine – that signal the extent of Minoan and Mycenaean exchange links throughout the central and eastern Mediterranean. The Uluburun wreck contained many of these materials and offers a vivid insight into eastern Mediterranean exchange in progress in about 1300 BC. ARTISTIC PRODUCTION AND CONSUMPTION ‘Art for art’s sake’ is an anachronistic concept in relation to eastern Mediterranean artistic production. In the Aegean, monumental art functioned to support and project elite power and ideology, while minor works echoed the STATUETTE OF A MALE YOUTH, one-third life-size, constructed from multiple pieces of hippopotamus ivory, with added details in serpentine and gold. Remarkable for its detailed carving of muscles and veins and the hairstyle indicating age, it reflects the Minoan enthusiasm for depicting youthful vigour. Probably displayed in a shrine, the statuette was deliberately smashed during a destruction at Palaikastro, Crete in the mid-fifteenth century BC. 28˚26˚24˚22˚ 36˚ 38˚ 40˚ M M St St Pb Ag Pb Ag Cu Cu Iolkos/Volos Orchomenos Thebes Troy Chania Kastri Phylakopi Vaphio Gla Perati Ayios Stephanos Kolonna Pylos Athens Tiryns Kakovatos Argos Nichoria Peristeria Mycenae Ialysos Iasus Miletus Palaikastro Pseira Kato Zakros Akrotiri Malia Amnisos Phaistos Kommos Ayia Triada Armenoi Tylissos Knossos Archanes Mt Ida A E G E A N S E A SEA OF MARMARA I O N I A N S E A PELOPONNESE C R E T E RHODESTHERA AEGINA PAROS SAMOS NAXOS KOS GIALI KYTHERA MELOS KEA KYTHNOS SIPHNOS ITHAKA LEMNOS LESBOS CHIOS A N A T O L I A EUBOEA G R E E C E emery lapis lacedaemonius N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 2 The Aegean, 2000-1000 BC Minoan palace site Mycenaean palace site other significant site Minoan fresco Mycenaean fresco source of copper source of silver/lead source of stone source of marble obsidian textile production raw ivory carved stone vessels amber jewellery ostrich egg cemetery St Pb Ag Cu M 2 THE MINOAN PALACES dominated the Aegean politically in the first half of the second millennium BC. Their artistic styles were widely emulated. After the eruption of Thera in the later seventeenth century BC and the destruction of most Minoan palaces in the mid-fifteenth century BC, the palaces of southern mainland Greece became politically dominant. Around 1200 BC most palatial centres in the Aegean were destroyed. and the paintings that often adorned their walls and floors. Minor works also used indigenous materials – stone vessels (some of them carved with relief scenes); jewellery, including seal stones used in administration, many with figured scenes; fineware ceramics, a widespread class of material. Archaeologically invisible, but attested in Linear B documents of the fourteenth and thirteenth centuries BC, were highly crafted textiles, while metals were also used to produce elaborate objects, such as weapons, vessels and jewellery. Although there were silver, lead and copper sources in the Aegean, Cyprus became an increasingly important copper source in the later second millennium, its copper transported from eastern Mediterranean shores as far as Sardinia in characteristic oxhide-shaped ingots. On the iconography of monumental works and circulated among a wider elite group, frequently finding their way into tombs to accompany the dead, particularly in the Mycenaean period. Both Minoan and Mycenaean palaces were architecturally complex, and their interior walls and some floors were often decorated with paintings on plaster, many in true fresco technique, while palace-sponsored workshops produced portable art works using both local and exotic materials. Many of the art works produced in the Aegean owed their inspiration to exotic models (chiefly Egyptian and Mesopotamian), but took on local characteristics and circulated within the Aegean region. The wider elite emulated palatial architecture and its decoration and, ironically, our best examples of Minoan-style frescoes were not preserved on Crete, but in Akrotiri on Thera. They include depictions of humans engaged in ritual, of landscapes with wildlife, and, probably, of narrative, notably the famous miniature fresco from the West House depicting a ‘seascape’. Despite the association of large-scale art with the palaces, in the Aegean there is no explicit iconography of rulers and life-size sculpture is virtually unknown (other than the well-known Lion Gate at Mycenae). Nevertheless, Minoan artists frequently represented the human figure, not only in frescoes, but also in smallscale sculpture in ivory, bronze or clay. Such representations are often associated with sanctuaries in Minoan Crete. Ceramic production, by contrast, was not a palatial monopoly, although the palaces were major consumers of fineware. Many fineware ceramics imitated metal vessels in form and decoration, reflecting the high value of metals and the tendency for non-palatial artists to imitate palatial styles in more accessible materials. ART, AGRICULTURE AND URBANIZATION 32 be relevant to this picture of turmoil that Cyprus became a predominantly Greek-speaking island by the early first millennium. After 1200 BC, with some short-lived exceptions like Tiryns and Perati, a ‘Dark Age’ characterized by the absence of major artistic production ensues. MATERIALS AND EXCHANGE Locally available materials were used in the Aegean to create monumental architectural forms such as palaces and other elite structures THE EASTERN Mediterranean in this millennium formed a ‘seascape’, rather than a landscape, with major sites on its islands and along its coasts, dominated by the inland powers of Anatolia, Mesopotamia and Egypt. In the Aegean, the emergence of a distinctive culture, called ‘Minoan’ after the legendary king Minos, on the island of Crete, is marked by the construction around 2000 BC of palaces inspired by eastern Mediterranean prototypes, with a literate bureaucracy using a script of local adaptation. AEGEAN PALACE CULTURE Minoan styles of material culture were prevalent in the Aegean islands in the first half of the second millennium as local elites actively appropriated them, or as the Minoans themselves colonized them, as they did, for example, on the island of Kythera. The volcanic eruption of Thera, while too early to have been directly responsible for the destruction of the Minoan palaces in the fifteenth century BC, nevertheless disrupted Aegean communication routes and must have had a significant psychological effect. These disruptions may have facilitated a shift of political influence in the Aegean from Crete to southern mainland Greece by about 1400 BC, where a second palatial culture, called ‘Mycenaean’ after the prominent site of Mycenae, had emerged. The mid-second millennium societies on the Greek mainland appropriated and adapted Minoan styles and, like their Minoan counterparts, maintained bureaucratic records, but in a script called Linear B that recorded the Greek language. In about 1200 BC political collapse in the eastern Mediterranean – especially the fall of the Hittite empire and the contraction of Egyptian power – ended this widespread palace-based culture. Symptomatic of this turmoil was the destruction of sites, both in the Aegean and the eastern Mediterranean, notably Ugarit. Egyptian texts refer to an ill-defined group called the ‘peoples of the sea’ who threatened Egypt and may have included Aegean peoples. It may also THE AEGEAN 2000-1000 BC A WALL PAINTING IN FRESCO TECHNIQUE from a house (Xeste 3) at Akrotiri on Thera is one of a number preserved by a volcanic eruption in the later seventeenth century BC. It depicts three female figures, close to life-size, in an outdoor scene. Typically naturalistic, the figures’ ages are distinguished by hairstyle and body form. 25˚ 30˚ 35˚ 30˚ 35˚ 40˚ Cu Gelidonya Uluburun Ugarit Thebes Tiryns Iria Assiros Torone Volos Toumba tou Skourou Troy Pitane Panaztepe Tell el-Ajjul Tell Abu Hawam Megiddo Tell Kabri Sidon Tarsus Memphis Pylos Mycenae Kommos Phaistos Orchomenos Kastanas Miletus Müskebi Antalya Mersa Matruh Kato Zakros Knossos Mallia Chania Kastri Kourion Enkomi Citium Byblos Qatna Mari Qadesh Amman Lachish Avaris (Tell el Dab’a) Alalakh Bogazköy˘ Kültepe Nile Jordan Oronte s Halys M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A E G E A N S E A SEA OF MARMARA DEAD SEA B L A C K S E A amber, tin? ostrich eggs, ivory, faience, semi-precious stone blue glass ingots, raw ivory, ostrich eggs tin, lapis lazuli ivory, glass, faience, semi-precious stone fineware pottery S Y R I A N D E S E R T PINDUSMTS TAURUS MTS PELOPONNESE A N A T O L I A EUBOEA CYPRUSCRETE KYTHERA RHODES CHIOS MELOS THERA NAXOS E G Y P T G R E E C E N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms The Eastern Mediterranean, 2000-1000 BC port shipwreck Aegean palace site Aegean-style fresco copper source copper ingot Mycenaean pictorial pottery Mycenaean fineware pottery trade route imports/exports tin ingots 1 Cu 1 AEGEAN-STYLE FRESCOES in Egypt, Syria and Israel and the broad distribution of Mycenaean ceramics document the involvement of the Aegean in eastern Mediterranean exchange networks. First Minoan Crete, then, by the second half of the second millennium, southern mainland Greece participated in maritime exchange routes that ultimately extended from Sardinia to Cyprus, Syro-Palestine and Egypt. Exotic raw materials and manufactured objects travelled along them. THE MEDITERRANEAN 1000–500 BC 35 Iberian arts to a more monumental expression of native crafts. Here, too, some Greeks were active, as also later in the south of France, whence elements of Greek archaic art were carried up into Europe, and had their effect, superficially, on what is generally regarded as early Celtic art. In their Black Sea colonies the Greeks made luxury objects in Greek style – but of local shape – for the Scythians, whose art style was quite different – that of the eastern nomads. In Italy the most important people affected by the newcomers were the Etruscans, a rich and warlike people who were ready buyers of the more sophisticated arts coming from the east. Their luxury arts were much influenced by Phoenician art, while humbler crafts were more Greek – and these won the day, so that by the end of the sixth century Etruscan art looks like a highly idiosyncratic derivative of archaic Greek. This was an art shared by early Rome. MONUMENTAL ART By 500 BC Greek artists were well on their way to the idealized realism that characterizes the full classical style, while they had already established orders of monumental architecture that are still copied today. Orientalizing sculpture of the seventh century had been small in scale and generally of soft stone or hammered bronze (‘sphyrelaton’), much influenced by Syria. Crete was a major centre. In the later seventh century the establishment of a trading town in Egypt (Naucratis) opened Greek eyes to the possibilities of colossal sculpture executed in hard stone. This, for Greeks, meant the white marble so accessible in the Cyclades islands, where the earliest studios were located. It was soon augmented by other sources, notably the Pentelic marble of Attica. They also had an advantage in using tools that were virtually of steel, whereas the Egyptians still worked stone by abrasion. Another major source of influence was Anatolia, where the sculpture and architecture owed much to the example of Mesopotamia, as well as the domination, often beneficial, of rich Lydian kings (such as Croesus). The Greek Ionians embarked on major architectural projects and introduced influential new sculptural modes. By the end of our period the Persian empire had expanded to embrace all the eastern shores of the Mediterranean, but the new masters learned more than they imposed on their Greek, Levantine and Egyptian subjects. The characteristic figures are standing male nudes (kouroi), which look more Egyptian than they in fact are. On them anatomical patterns were devised which gradually conformed more to live forms. Their female counterparts, korai, have elaborately patterned, pleated dress which is also designed to reveal the forms of the body beneath, unlike such figures in eastern art. Meanwhile, relief sculpture, often now applied to buildings, developed narrative themes more familiar to us from the vase painting of the day, especially the ‘black figure’ incised scenes on vases. They came from Corinth and Athens, but also from many other centres, including wealthy colonies that responded to all the artistic innovations. Greek formulaic presentation of narrative, developed in the archaic period, was to be the mode for much of Western art thereafter. The vases travelled the whole Mediterranean and beyond, from Germany to Upper Egypt, from Morocco to the Caucasus. Through their sheer numbers they proved important messengers of Greek narrative styles to non-Greek peoples. In this respect they were no less influential than the more prestigious metalwork, which was also coveted but was less informative. In mainland Greece the Doric order of architecture was devised before 600 BC, a stone translation of wooden forms. The temples are rectangular in plan, with a peristyle of columns, a porch, and a main room to house the cult statue. Altars stood outside. In eastern Greece (Ionia) the more ornate Ionic order developed, based on orientalizing patterns more familiar in furniture. The orders also spread through the colonial world and beyond, the western colonies being adept at combinations of the orders not admitted in the homeland. Eastern arts had no effect on this development and the temple plans were traditional. The transmuted orientalizing arts of Greece, developed in this period, were to be returned in their new forms to their lands of origin in the following centuries. 36˚ 38˚ 40˚ 26˚22˚ Hermos Maritsa Vardar Ali akmon Evrotas Acheloo s Spercheio s Al pheios Bosporus I O N I A N S E A A E G E A N S E A SEA OF MARMARA M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A P E L O P O N N E S E AT T I C A P IN D O S M TS C R E T E RHODES SAMOS COS THERA PAROS CHIOS LESBOS LEMNOS THASOS T H R A C E LY D I A CHALCIDICE THESSALY PROCONNESOS AEGINA NAXOS DELOS C Y C L A D E S E U B O EA Ephesus SmyrnaEretriaChalcis Phocaea Sardis Troy Thebes EleusisSicyon Sunium Argos Corinth Knossos Clazomenae Olympia Sparta Miletus Delphi Athens N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 2 Major Arts in Greece marble sources in archaic Greece centres for sculpture and architecture centres for vase painting and metalwork 2 MAJOR ARTS IN GREECE Development of the monumental arts – sculpture and architecture – depends in part of the availability of satisfactory marble, but also on other material resources, and on local politics. Figurative vase painting and metalwork were sophisticated crafts which reveal much about life, myth and interaction between Greeks and non-Greeks. Some cities – notably Corinth and Athens – were major exporters. KOUROS DEDICATION in white marble – 3 metres (10 ft) high – from an early sixth-century temple to Poseidon at Sunium in Attica. The pose looks Egyptian but is freer since the figure balances on both feet where Egyptian stone figures of this size stand as against a back pillar. The anatomy is strongly patterned, but barely realistic, and the figure is foursquare with as yet no sense of volume. Details would have been picked out in paint. Similar figures also served as tomb markers. ART, AGRICULTURE AND URBANIZATION 34 THE BEGINNING OF the first millennium BC saw, in much of the Mediterranean world, a profound break with its Bronze Age past. In some places, such as Greece, there was to be a flowering of the arts which owed virtually nothing to the past. The eastern shores of the inland sea were under threat from Assyria to the east and Egypt to the south. Even so, Phoenicia was growing in influence and was responsible for the design of Solomon’s temple in Jerusalem, a model for later sacred buildings. Cyprus was emerging as an important meeting point of east and west, and by the eighth century Greeks were probing eastern shores, in Syria. In Italy and Spain, successors to Bronze Age societies were modest in their arts. The Villanovans in Italy, ancestral to the Etruscans, practised unambitious metalwork related mainly to European crafts. In Sardinia until the eighth century the ‘Nuraghic’ culture produced more sophisticated bronze figures. In Spain, Iberian art was centred on the silver-bearing areas of the south, and waited for trade with the east before developing a distinctive ‘Tartessian’ style. All were to be reawakened by events that added the arts of the Near East to the more mannered ‘geometric’ arts of ninth- and eighth-century Greece. The Greeks then mediated this orientalizing mood to the rest of the Mediterranean world through vigorous colonization, side by side with equally vigorous trading and settlement by Phoenicians, who carried their own brand of eastern, mainly Egyptianizing, arts. ORIENTALIZING AND COLONIZING Greek interest in the east grew by way of a settlement they made on the Syrian coast (Al Mina) and the reciprocal interest shown by easterners in the major cities of central Greece and Crete. It persuaded Greek artisans to develop totally new decorative styles. These are mainly two-dimensional, best studied in vase painting. More realistic figure scenes, with greater detail defining the identity of actors and sometimes helped by inscriptions (the alphabet had just been learnt from the east), soon led to the creation of a lively narrative idiom. To this was added a range of eastern animal and floral motifs which all but overwhelmed Greek geometric styles, with their stick figures and maeander patterns. By the mid-eighth century, the Greek need for land and other material resources led to a busy period of colonization in southern Italy and eastern Sicily, the foundation of new cities and the introduction through them of the new orientalizing styles to neighbouring peoples. The Greeks colonized the long-familiar shores that were nearest to them. At the same time, Phoenicians also moved west, through Greek waters and now no longer in competition with Greeks. They moved to shores beyond the main Greek colonizing area – to Sardinia, Spain and North Africa (Carthage). In Spain they stimulated local THE MEDITERRANEAN 1000-500 BC 1 COLONIZING THE MEDITERRANEAN FROM THE EAST The flow of people and ideas begins in the eighth century. Colonists from Greece and Phoenicia move west, often along shared routes, but the two cultures create definable spheres of influence. A second phase of consolidation north and south follows in the sixth century – mainly by Greeks – in the Black Sea, France and Libya. Winds and currents promote circulation, allowing different routes to be used on outward and return voyages, ensuring varied contacts and facilitating strong links with the homelands. Northerlies take Greeks traders directly to Egypt. They return by the Levant, making these areas a main influence on the arts. ATHENIAN BLACK FIGURE VASE – a mid-sixth century jug by Amasis, showing Perseus decapitating Medusa in a popular myth. This is a typical example of thousands exported around the Greek world and beyond. It was found in an Etruscan grave. 0˚ 10˚10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 40˚ 30˚ Rhône Ebr o Tagus Nile Danube Tigris Po Tiber A T L A N T I C O C E A N M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A D RIATIC SEA B L A C K S E A RED SEA AEGEAN SE A P Y R E N E E S A L P S A T L A S M T S TAURUS M TS SIERRA NEVADA S C Y T H I A N S I B E R I A N S PHRYGIANS & LYDIANS BALEARIC IS SARDINIA Nuraghic art CORSICA SICILY MALTA CRETE RHODES CYPRUS EUBOEA IONIA PHOENICIA ETRURIA A F R I C A ITA LY GREECE A N A T O L I A S Y R I A E G Y P T Iberian art Villanovan / Etruscanar t Massalia Cumae Pithecusae Poseidonia Syracuse Cyrene Naucratis Al Mina Taras Thasos Sinope Olbia Phasis Istrus Sybaris Emporion Sidon Tyre CarthageLixus Ibiza Toscanos Motya Tharros N 0 0 500 miles 750 kms 1 The Colonizing of the Mediterranean from the East flow of Syrian goods and Greek orientalizing styles flow of settlement 8th/7th centuries BC flow of settlement c. post 625 BC flow of Phoenician goods prevailing currents/winds Phoenician colonies and trading posts Greek colonies AFRICA 5000–500 BC 37 30˚ 30˚ Cu L C B S S S S S S S S S S S Elephantine Aniba Amara Buhen Abu Simbel Shalfak Semna Sai Askut Uronarti Kumma Kawa c.650 BC Napata c.700 BC Kurru mound graves of Kushite kings, from c.760 BC Nuri Kushite pyramid burials, from c.664 BC Meroë c.700 BC Sedeinga Sesibi Kerma N ile WhiteNile BlueNile Atbara N U B I A N D E S E R T W E S T E R N D E S E R T S A H A R A D E S E R T First Cataract Second Cataract Third Cataract Fifth Cataract Fourth Cataract Sixth Cataract N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 3 EGYPTIANS BEGAN THEIR colonization of the southern Nile from about 2000 BC. Their presence in the northern part of this region left an indelible mark on indigenous cultures along the river. An important state based at Kerma confronted the southern outposts of Egypt. Large brick structures and a distinctive pottery mark this culture. It was superseded by the state that grew up at Napata, three of whose kings also ruled Egypt. ROCK PAINTING, c.3000 BC, from the central Sahara. It shows men herding what are thought to be sheep and cattle. Similar paintings are widespread across the Sahara. Some, showing wild animals and hunting scenes, are certainly earlier than the ones showing domesticated animals. At this time the Sahara was much greener than now and men and animals were able to move freely. about 5000 BC. Potshards decorated with a distinctive wavy line pattern are found here and at many other sites in the Sahara. In addition, there have also been finds of a distinctive type of bone harpoon (freshwater fishing was then a mainstay of life in what is now desert) and other items which suggest that a similar level of cultural development extended from the Sudanese Nile Valley across much of the Sahara. EARLY EGYPTIAN CULTURE From this time on there was a rather rapid development of cultures along the Nile, both in Egypt and the Sudan. In Egypt the earliest village cultures were found on the edge of the Faiyum and at Merimda on the west edge of the Nile delta. Soon after there were settlements at many places along the Nile. The site at Naqada in Middle Egypt has given its name to the main culture of this period. From about this time there is much evidence of decorated, painted pottery of varying styles, mostly found in burials, and some other artistic items such as female figures frequently made of bone, or sometimes ivory or limestone. From this period there is evidence of village settlements, or even small town settlements. At Hierakonpolis in Upper (southern) Egypt there was a town which may have had as many as 5000 inhabitants. The beginning of an organized state can be seen during this period. Writing, which made administering the state possible, is known from short inscriptions on large slate palettes, which record the activities of early rulers. By about 3000 BC writing was sufficiently developed to meet the needs of the single state that had by then united Upper and Lower Egypt into one kingdom. CULTURES OF THE SOUTHERN NILE Further south, upstream of the First Cataract of the Nile, the situation was rather different, and the cultural remains there can be distinguished from those of Egypt. From about 4000 BC to about 3200 BC the first settled food-producing societies, known as the ‘A Group’, were occupying the Nile banks between the First and the Second Cataracts, living in mud houses of some size. They had a distinctive pottery style. Wheat and barley were cultivated, while fishing and hunting added variety to the diet. The ‘A Group’ were followed in the middle of third millennium by a different culture, known as the ‘C Group’. They are distinguished by quite different pottery styles and by evidence from buildings and tombs of a more advanced lifestyle. The presence of imported Egyptian goods in graves reveal contacts with Egypt, and the great number of graves implies an increase in population. KERMA CULTURE The Egyptians had entered Nubia and established a series of forts as far south as Semna from about 2000 BC, but withdrew a few hundred years later at the time of a spectacular development of an independent Sudanese culture based at Kerma, the first large town on the upper Nile. The Kerma culture is renowned for its new and spectacular developments in pottery styles, in weapons and in elaborate burials, as well as the building of very large mud-brick structures. It is not clear what happened in the final stages of the Kerma civilization, but after c.1500 BC the Egyptians once again entered and conquered the northern Sudan (Nubia) and eventually occupied it as far south as the Fourth Cataract, building temples and towns at many places. The furthest upriver they reached was Napata, where a prominent hill, Jebel Barkal, marked a site considered to be especially holy. THE RISE OF MEROË Near Jebel Barkal, an independent line of Sudanese rulers established the Napatan kingdom some time after 1100 BC. They built palaces and temples, as well as cemeteries of small pyramids. For a short time, from about the middle of the eighth century BC in the reign of Kashta, these Sudanese kings ruled Egypt as its 25th Dynasty. They were defeated and ejected from Egypt after the Assyrian invasion of 671 BC, when King Tanwetamani returned to his own territory, where the Napatan Kingdom continued to develop. After a move of the royal residence to Meroë, in the south, in the seventh century BC, the Napatan kingdom established a fascinating new civilization with its own language and writing. Meroitic towns, temples and other buildings took something from Egyptian styles, but they were sufficiently different to be clearly identifiable. By 500 BC Meroë was a wellestablished city with many manufactures and was the most highly developed society in Africa south of the Sahara. The many towns, temples and cemeteries of this period are all situated along the banks of the River Nile as the desert encroaches closely on both sides of the river and made agriculture and animal herding impossible. The one area where the Meroites were able to live away from the Nile valley was near Meroe itself – here in the vast plains between the rivers Nile and Atbara there was considerable activity, although much of it was only toward the close of the period covered in this section. The Upper Nile, 3000-500 BC ‘C Group’ of cemeteries and dwelling places, c. 2250-c.1500 BC Egyptian occupation of Lower Nubia, c.2000-c.1100 BC Kerma culture, c. 2400-c.1500 BC Egyptian town with temple Egyptian fort Egyptian religious site Kushite town (with date of temple building) Resources: gold copper limestone calcite (Egyptian alabaster) basalt sandstone iron fertile area pastoralism desert tracks Cu L C B S 3 ART, AGRICULTURE AND URBANIZATION 36 eastern Sahara reveal that cereal crops were being cultivated at several sites in what is now desert, but then had plentiful rainfall – for example, Nabta Playa. Large numbers of grindstones provide good evidence for the use of cereals. It is not certain at what point farmers were able to grow domesticated cereal crops to replace the collecting of wild grains, but by 5000 BC it seems that this important advance had been made. The earliest pottery known in Africa is from a site at Khartoum, where it can be dated to THE EARLIEST EVIDENCE of artistic activity in Africa can be seen in rock engravings and rock paintings, which are located mainly in the Sahara and in South and East Africa – those parts of the continent where suitable rock faces are located. Scenes illustrated on rock faces frequently depict animals both wild and, in later times, domesticated. It is difficult to date these works of art, but by 5000 BC they were widespread, and some may be much earlier – examples in Namibia are dated to as early as 25,000 BC. Apart from pottery remains dating from as long ago as 3000 BC, there is no evidence of visual culture preserved in West and Central Africa before 500 BC. Rock art is all we have from southern Africa for this period. AGRICUTURAL LIFE IN THE SAHARA Rock paintings and rock engravings from North and East Africa that date from 5000 BC to 500 BC are significant in that they show the development of herding at about the same time as archaeological excavations in the AFRICA 5000-500 BC ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 30˚ 20˚ 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? ?? ? ? ?? ? ? ? ? ? ? ? Haua Fteah Faiyum Memphis El Khattara Merimda El Badari Hammamiya Nabta PlayaWadi Shaw Daima Arlit Karkarichinkat Amekni Tiltekin Tichitt Kourounkorokale Bosumpra Cave Kintampo Iwo Eleru Njoro River Cave Ele Bor Lowasera Afikpo Birimi Ntereso Yagala Kamabai Yengema Adrar Tioueïine Tamaya Mellet GabrongAcacus Ti-n-Torha Outeidat Meniet Esh Shaheinab Meroë Shaqadud Early Khartoum Lalibela Narosura Long’s Drift North Horr Kadero Shabona Tagra Kiseiba Sarurab Wadi Wassa Jebel et Tomat Capelletti El Mermouta Kristel-Jardins El Khril Nile WhiteNileBlueNile Nige r Benue Congo Zambezi Lake Victoria Lake Chad ATLANTIC OCEAN I N D I A N O C E A N RED SEA MEDITERRANEAN SEA NAMIBDESERT KALAHARI DESERT S A H A R A W E STERN DESERT ATLAS MTS ETHIOPIAN HIGHLANDS UWEINAT TASSILI PLATEAU TIBESTI MASSIF wheat and barley c. 5300 BC c. 1000 BC c. 600 BC before 3000 BC by 1000 BC by 1000 BC pearl millet c. 1500 BC c. 600 BC c. 3000 BCc. 1500 BC barley c. 500 BC Tef and finger millet, c. 5000 BC N 0 0 600 miles 800 kms Agriculture: the probable limits of domestic cattle: c.4500 BC c. 3500 BC c.2000 BC c.500 BC probable spread of sheep and goats from c.5000/500 BC finds of early livestock remains evidence of cereal cultivation evidence of domestication of indigenous African crops Artefacts: earliest known pottery, 6000/5000 BC earliest known pottery in Sub-Saharan Africa best-recorded prehistoric art early copper-working early iron-working 1 Rock Art and Agriculture, 5000-500 BC Sahara Desert, c.6000 BC Vegetation zones, c.500 BC: desert sub-desert dry savannah Lake Chad, c.500 BC woodland cape and Mediterranean vegetation tropical forest 2 The Cultures of the Nile Valley, 5000-3000 BC early predynastic Egyptian sites (c.5500-c.5000 BC) middle predynastic Egyptian sites (c.5000-c.4000 BC) late predynastic Egyptian sites (c.4000-c.3200 BC) main First Dynasty Egyptian sites (from c.3200 BC) southern limit of Egypt under the First Dynasty, c.3200 BC ? ? ? ? ? 1 AND 2 THE OLDEST SURVIVING ART IN AFRICA is rock art, depicting at first only wild animals, found widely in southern and eastern Africa and the Sahara. Northern rock art later depicts both animal herding and crop growing. Early pottery making and metallurgy in the continent flourished, especially in the Nile Valley region. 30˚ 30˚ Faiyum Saqqara Buto Minshat Samara Tell Ibrahim Awad Maadi Omari Memphis Tarkhan Abusir el Malaq Haraga Gerza Beda Mendes Matmar El Badari Naga-ed-Der Hu Naqada Armant Hierakonpolis Hammamiya Mahasna Abydos Gebelein Mostagedda Merimda Heliopolis Nile MEDITERRANEAN SEA EASTERN DESERT WESTERN DESERT Earliest fully developed dated Egyptian writing, tomb of Queen Neithotep (c. 3000 BC) ‘A Group’ cemeteries and dwelling sites (c. 4000-c. 3200 BC) N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms BONE FIGURE OF A WOMAN from a predynastic grave in Egypt, c.3500 BC. Similar figures have been found in graves of both men and women. The eyes of this figure are made of lapis lazuli, a prehistoric trade good that came from Afghanistan. THE NILE VALLEY 3000–500 BC 39 Copper, gold and tin were mined in the eastern deserts and were vital to Egyptian craftsmanship and art. Copper was used for tools and weapons after being hardened through repeated heating and cooling. Sheets of copper could be hammered over a core to make large metal statues, although examples rarely survive from antiquity. Copper mixed with tin produced bronze, which was easily worked into weapons, tools, toiletry items like razors and mirrors, and cast statuettes of gods or royalty. Gold was used lavishly in products destined for temples or the royal household, such as gilded furniture and statuary, gold jewellery and vessels, and the solid gold coffins and mummy mask made for King Tutankhamun (c.1320 BC). Mud and sand were also resources. Sundried mud bricks were the most common building material for the earliest tombs and temples and for urban structures throughout Egyptian history. Sand was formed into a paste with quartzite and fired to produce Egyptian faience, a forerunner of glass which took on a distinctive blue or green colour when exposed to heat in a kiln. Although Egypt is primarily a desert country, wood was available both from native trees, like sycamore and acacia, and from abroad, notably cedar imported from the Levant. Statues, furniture and coffins were among the products crafted from wood. ART IN SOCIETY Royal patronage funded temple and palace construction and royal mortuary complexes. Styles established by royal workshops were imitated in work for private patrons. Even lesser-quality works required considerable outlay for the labour and materials involved, putting them out of reach of most people. Egyptian art from all periods has a homogeneous character, because of the conventions adopted from the outset. Art depicts an idealized world revolving around order and internal logic. In two dimensions, figures and objects are shown in an outline form that combines typical vantage points – the human figure is seen with legs and head in profile, shoulders squared and arms on either side of the torso. To indicate depth, figures are overlapped, and scenes are generally divided into rows called registers. Scale conveys information about the relative importance of figures within a scene, with the most important person as the tallest figure. Statuary also assumes static postures, whether sitting, kneeling or striding forward on the left leg. A statue of a king might represent his wife and children as reaching only to the height of his knees. Wall decoration and most statues were painted in vivid colours with an abundance of green, red and yellow. This representational system is linked strongly to how Egyptians perceived the world and their art. A vital role of the king and the temples was to maintain order, or maat, in the universe. Timelessness and the cycle of life, death and rebirth were reflected in Egyptian artists’ close observation of their natural world in works of all media. Many objects, particularly statues and architectural decoration, were inscribed with invocations, prayers and identifying texts, and the arrangement of the hieroglyphs was an integral component of the artwork. Whereas the image itself might be ideal and universal, the text gave it a specific identity and helped define its purpose. On a funerary stele, for instance, the text names the deceased and grants them a share of the food, drink, linen and ointments required for the afterlife. Precinct of Amun (Karnak) Precinct of Mut Temple of Ramesses II (Ramesseum) Temple of Amenhotep III (Memnon colossi) Temple of Ramesses III Temple of Hatshepsut Temple of Mentuhotep Cache of royal mummies Tomb of Tutankhamun Tomb of Nefertari Workmen’s tombs Precinct of Montu Luxor Temple DRA ABU EL-NAGA DEIR EL-BAHRI DEIR EL-MEDINA SHEIKH ABD EL-QURNA VALLEY OF THE KINGS VALLEY OF THE QUEENS MEDINET HABU MALQATA Nile Nile N 0 0 1 mile 2 kms WALL PAINTING from the tomb of Nebamun at Thebes (New Kingdom, Dynasty 18, c.1400 BC). The abundant plant and animal life of the Nile marshes symbolize erotic pleasure, fertility and rebirth. The scene evokes both life and death: Nebamun and a cat attack birds among their nests, while the young daughter of Nebamun pulls lotus flowers from the river. 2 THE CITY OF THEBES (modern Luxor), was the site of the state god Amun’s temple, Karnak. Nearby temples honoured his consort Mut and falconheaded Montu. In the annual Opet Festival,during the flood season, Amun was carried to Luxor to be united with the reigning king. For the Beautiful Festival of the Valley, Amun crossed the river to royal mortuary temples on the west bank. People celebrated with feasts and visited family tombs. Every 10 days, a form of Amun – Amunemopet – was carried to Medinet Habu, and the offerings of food and drink made during this procession were believed to nurture the dead in the afterlife. 2 Thebes, 1500 BC fertile area estimated extent of ancient city temple palace tomb concentrations of private tombs route of the Opet Festival route of the Beautiful Festival of the Valley route of the Amunemopet procession ART, AGRICULTURE AND URBANIZATION 38 The first kings were buried at Abydos, which was the mythological burial place of Osiris, god of the afterlife, and the site of private cemeteries and chapels, as well. MATERIALS AND TECHNIQUES During periods of strong central government, the state had access to metal mines and stone quarries in Egypt and in regions under Egyptian control, such as Nubia and Sinai. The Egyptians began building in stone as early as the Third Dynasty (c.2600 BC), when the Step Pyramid at Saqqara was constructed as a mortuary complex for king Djoser. Stone sculpture in the round and in relief was another early accomplishment, along with virtuoso carving of stone bowls and vases. Coloured stones from distant parts of the country, like red granite from Aswan, were especially prized, as was calcite (known as ‘Egyptian alabaster’) for its translucency and its veining. THE NILE VALLEY, rich in resources, is equipped with natural boundaries: the western and eastern deserts, on the north the Mediterranean Sea and, to the south, river cataracts that make navigation nearly impossible. These factors, coupled with annual floods that supported agriculture, helped a unified state to form in Egypt around 3000 BC. The north-flowing Nile eased communication. Cooperative action to regulate the floods may have contributed to unifying the country under a sole monarch. Egypt was divided into 42 nomes, or administrative districts, which embraced local deities and sacred sites. Cult centres underwent continual development, and landscapes were adapted through the construction of temples, palaces, causeways and monuments. Certain towns had strong and ancient affiliations with gods who attained national importance: Buto, in the Delta, was the home of the cobra goddess Wadjet; El-Kab, south of Thebes, of the vulture goddess Nekhbet. These goddesses personified the north and south of the country and appeared in the two crowns most often worn by kings. Ptah, the god of artists and craftsmen, was based at Memphis, while Amun was a Theban deity. THE NILE VALLEY 3000-500 BC 25˚ 30˚ 30˚ 35˚ Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Memphis (Mit Rahina) El-Amarna Aswan Luxor Asyut Hibis Balat Elephantine Aniba Qift (Coptos) Karnak Thebes Hierakonpolis Bubastis Buto Sais (Sa el-Hagar) Tanis Mendes Giza Saqqara Abu Simbel Abydos El-Kab Nile BahrYusuf Delta M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A R E D S E A N U B I A N D E S E R T EASTERN DESERT FAIYUM W E S T E R N D E S E R T SINAI E G Y P T First cataract Second cataract Bahariya Oasis Siwa Oasis Farafra Oasis Dakhla Oasis Kharga Oasis N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 Sites and Monuments fertile area desert route political centre other important city religious site fortification pyramid site natural resources gold copper tin natron (salts) limestone calcite (Egyptian alabaster) basalt greywacke coloured stones (jasper, porphyry) quartzite red granite sandstone turquoise Cu PAINTED AND CARVED WALL RELIEF of donkeys, from the tomb of Metjetji at Saqqara (Old Kingdom, Dynasty 5, c.2300 BC). Scenes of agriculture, animal husbandry and manufacture brought the natural world into the context of a funerary monument in order to evoke the plentiful material resources that were at the disposal of the deceased. 1 URBAN AND RELIGIOUS CENTRES played an important role throughout Egyptian history. Capital cities such as Memphis and Thebes, in particular, supported the workshops of artists and craftspeople responsible for architectural decoration, statuary and work in precious metals and stones. If necessary, completed works of art could be moved from their place of manufacture to the temple or tomb in which they were to be set up. The raw materials for artistic production were often obtained through expeditions organized by the state. Limestone, sandstone and hard stones such as calcite and granite were quarried in the Nile Valley, whereas metals and coloured stones had to be mined in the Eastern and Nubian deserts. Art and the Akkadian Empire, 2350-2100 BC Akkadian Empire import of lapis lazuli import of etched carnelian beads import of carved chlorite vessels import of copper chlorite silver gold cedarwood ancient coastline Ch 2 WEST ASIA 3000–2000 BC 41 these areas are now attested in cuneiform texts, written in the Sumerian language. Carved chlorite vessels from Iran increasingly appear in the archaeological record, as do objects made of lapis lazuli from Afghanistan and etched carnelian from the Indus Valley. Although metal deposits are unknown in Mesopotamia, large numbers of metal objects have also been found, especially in the Royal Cemetery of Ur. Sixteen extremely rich graves have been excavated there, and – uniquely in Mesopotamia – were found to contain multiple sacrificial victims. The owners of the majority of the graves are unknown but the wealth buried with them, together with the human victims, suggests that they were kings and queens or religious leaders. Among the grave goods were weapons and vessels in bronze, gold and silver, and an astonishing amount of elaborate jewellery. Inlay was a common feature of many objects including sceptres, musical instruments and, most famously, on the ‘Standard of Ur’. Artistic connections are demonstrated by rich finds from Troy and Alaca Hüyük in Anatolia. 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ 40˚ 30˚ Ch Ch Susa Umm an Nar Tepe Yahya Shahdad Tillya Tepe Lagash Ur Tell Brak Nineveh Tell Asmar Ebla Damascus Byblos Memphis Thebes Ugarit Mari Sippar Kish Nippur Uruk Ashur Alaca HüyükTroy Nile Halys Tigris Khabur Jordan Euphr ates Orontes Maeander L. Van L. Urmia Dead Sea B L A C K S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A RED SEA AEGEANSEA CASPIAN SEA P E R S I A N G U L F C A U C A S U S Z A G R O S M T S TAURUS MTS I R A N I A N P L A T E A U FAILAKA TARUT BAHRAIN CYPRUS A N A T O L I A A K K A D S U M E R A R A B I A E G Y P T N 0 0 300 miles 400 kms 2 MESOPOTAMIA WAS UNITED under the military empire of Akkad, a city thought to lie close to Kish. The Akkadian rulers diverted trade routes through their cities and established connections with the civilizations of Iran, the Indus Valley and Central Asia as well as the resource-rich regions of Anatolia and the eastern Mediterranean. The dynamic art of Akkad influenced many of the surrounding cultures. THE FIRST EMPIRE The commercial and military contacts of Mesopotamia reached a peak with the dynasty of Akkad, around 2350 BC. The rulers seem to have been the first to unite the southern plain, extending their control over much of northern Mesopotamia. The dynasty’s founder was Sargon of the city of Agade (Akkad) – its location remains unconfirmed. The new dynasty displayed strong cultural continuity with the Early Dynastic period. However, under Naram-Sin (c. 2254–2218 BC) an imperial state was born, the ideology of which is reflected in an art which depicts the monarch as intimately associated with both his city and patron goddess Ishtar. Sculpture displays physical naturalism and sensitivity, with many details shown for the first time. For example, Naram-Sin is depicted on a stele wearing the horned headdress that was formerly the exclusive prerogative of gods. Commercial links with the Indus Valley were now focused on Akkad. Ultimately both internal and external forces overwhelmed the Akkadian Empire. Some citystates regained their independence, for instance Lagash which was ruled by King Gudea. This is expressed in the many statues of the ruler carved from diorite, which was imported from the region of modern Oman. In the same period Ur-Nammu established his rule over the city of Ur and founded the Third Dynasty of Ur which came to dominate southern Mesopotamia (c.2100–2000 BC). The Third Dynasty rulers presided over a prosperous kingdom, with an ambitious programme of building, which included palaces and temples. The most spectacular religious monuments are the great ziggurats, or staged towers, of which the best surviving example is that of Ur-Nammu at Ur. THE STANDARD OF UR. Dating from around 2500 BC, this object came from one of the largest graves in the Royal Cemetery at Ur, in which sacrificial victims accompanied the main burial. Its function is not understood though it may have formed the soundbox of a musical instrument. An inlay of shell, limestone and lapis lazuli depicts one of the earliest representations of a Sumerian army. The other side shows animals and other goods brought in procession to a banquet. 1 The Art of West Asia, 3000-2000 BC spread of cuneiform carved chlorite vessels rich burial palace ziggurat schematic female figures copper standards ancient coastline ART, AGRICULTURE AND URBANIZATION 40 power or felt the need to distinguish themselves in inscriptions or monuments. However, finely carved stone sculpture for urban temples continued to be produced, often combining animals and human figures and probably influenced by contemporary artistic traditions of southwestern Iran. THE EMERGENCE OF AN ELITE Over time the rise of a secular elite created changes in the social structure. By around 2600 BC, palace architecture began to appear and kings are depicted as warriors or builders, or presiding over banquets. Statues of men and women, many identified by short cuneiform inscriptions, were set up in temples in Mesopotamia and Syria, which were dedicated to specific gods. Similar figures are also represented on stone plaques carved in relief. The growth of this wealthy class led to an increasing demand for luxury items fashioned from materials obtained largely from abroad. Military encounters with many of WEST ASIA is a vast geographical area covering ancient Mesopotamia (Iraq), Iran, Syria and Anatolia, and extending in a great arc from the Mediterranean Sea to the Indus River valley. Societies throughout the region maintained commercial and cultural contacts across these great distances, although the routes, trade goods, and artistic styles and motifs that were exchanged varied in different periods. The art and culture of Mesopotamia and Syria is central to an understanding of the region, as it had a profound impact on the surrounding areas. THE FIRST CITIES The world’s first literate, urban civilization developed in southern Mesopotamia during the late fourth millennium BC. Increasing trade connections between Mesopotamian cities and the surrounding regions led to major innovations. The rise of elite institutions, such as temples, created greater impetus for artistic creation that would reflect both their power and considerable wealth. Large-scale sculpture in the round and relief carving appeared for the first time, together with metal casting using the lostwax process. A new realism is apparent in the treatment of the human form, and figures appear as part of narratives, especially on the miniature reliefs carved on cylinder seals. Seals were used to authorize transactions by officials, including the allocation of rations, a development probably linked to the expanding administrations of cities. Simple pictographs, drawn on clay tablets, were the precursors of later cuneiform writing. Objects inspired by southern Mesopotamia, such as cylinder seals, are found from central Iran to Egypt. However, around 3000 BC, this widespread culture collapsed. The result was that southern Mesopotamia (Sumer) turned inward, although the cities, centered on temples, continued to grow. It appears that no individuals held supreme WEST ASIA 3000-2000 BC 1 OVER SEVERAL CENTURIES centres of urban life, with associated elites, emerged across West Asia. This stimulated a demand for luxury goods and a flow of materials and ideas began to circulate around 2500 BC. Artistic motifs increasingly linked the eastern Mediterranean with the Indus valley. Cuneiform writing, which had developed in southern Mesopotamia, was adopted by palace administrators to the east and the north. Rich graves and monumental architecture are a testament to the wealth of regional rulers. 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ 40˚ 30˚ Susa Umm an Nar Tepe Yahya Shahdad Lagash Ur Acem Hüyük Kanesh (Kültepe) Banat Tell Brak Nineveh Eshnunna (Tell Asmar) Ebla Byblos Mari Sippar Kish Umm al Marra Nippur Uruk Tell el ’Ubaid Ashur Alaca HüyükTroy Yortan Horoztepe Nile H alys Tigris Khabur Jordan Euphr ates Oront es Maeander L. Van L. Urmia Dead Sea B L A C K S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A R ED SEA AEGEANSEA CASPIAN SEA P E R S I A N G U L F C A U C A S U S Z A G R O S M T S TAURUS MTS I R A N I A N P L A T E A U FAILAKA TARUT BAHRAIN CYPRUS A N A T O L I A A K K A D S U M E R A R A B I A S Y R I A E G Y P T M ESO POTAMIA N 0 0 300 miles 400 kms THE ZIGGURAT OF UR. From around 4000 BC, the temples of Mesopotamia were raised on mud brick platforms. During the Third Dynasty of Ur the platforms were elaborated into ziggurats or staged towers. The best surviving example is at Ur. The exterior is decorated with buttresses and recesses to break the monotony of the flat surfaces. Archaeologist Sir Leonard Woolley created this reconstruction, restoring the upper stages and a temple on the summit. 2 Art and Empire, c.640 BC Assyrian empire, c.640 BC royal tomb capital city Assyrian stele/rock relief Assyrian building local metal production local ivory carving ancient coastline WEST ASIA 2000–500 BC 43 along the coast. In northwest Iran local imagery on finely crafted gold vessels from sites like Marlik and Hasanlu reflects the wealth of settled communities with links to the art of nomadic groups in Central Asia. THE ASSYRIAN EMPIRE After a period of relative weakness, the ninth century BC saw Assyria emerge as a world power and by the mid-seventh century, during the socalled Neo-Assyrian period, it dominated the region from Egypt and the eastern Mediterranean to Iran and the Gulf. This imperial power is well symbolized by enormous palaces and temples built at Ashur, Nimrud and Nineveh. The art of the Neo-Assyrian period consists mainly of architectural decoration in the form of reliefs which, though also a feature of monumental buildings in Syria, were unique in their scale. These carved stone slabs lined the walls of important rooms in both palaces and temples. The slabs, with images and texts recording the activities of the ruler, are carved in low relief, generally in a soft alabaster. Figures are shown in the pose commonly used in Mesopotamian art, with the head and legs in profile and the torso generally shown frontally. The wall reliefs were often complemented or replaced by paintings. It was probably during the period of Assyrian domination that extraordinary bronze objects were manufactured in the region of Luristan. Elaborate standards with complex animal imagery are part of a repertoire of objects known from cemeteries, although many have been plundered from sites or forged in modern times. The great wealth of the empire during these centuries is also reflected in other forms of art, often originating outside Assyria. Huge quantities of ivories found in the palaces, 30˚ 30˚ 35˚ 40˚ 35˚ 40˚ 45˚ 50˚ 55˚ Byblos Sidon Tyre Aleppo Hamath Til Barsip Samal Gaza Samaria Gezer Dor Hazor Arslantas Megiddo Nar al-Kalb Carchemish Gordium Ashur Balawat Dur Sharrukin NinevehTell Halaf Nimrud Babylon Susa Nushijan Nippur Ur Uruk Ziwiye Marlik Hasanlu Van Toprakkale Jerusalem Lachish L. Van L. Urmia Dead Sea Euphrate s Tigris Khabur Nile Halys(Kiz il Irmak) Orontes M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A PERSIAN GULF B L A C K S E A CASPIANSEA CYPRUS FAILAKA QUE E L A M L U R I S T A N PHRYGIA BAB Y L O N I A PHOENICIA I R A N I A N P L A T E A U A N A T O L I A A R A B I A URARTU ASSYRIA N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 2 BETWEEN 900 AND 612 BC the Assyrians came to dominate much of West Asia. Freestanding stele and rock reliefs were carved in Assyrian style to celebrate the furthest extent of the empire under succeeding rulers. Artistic influences flowed into Assyria from the wealthy Phoenician cities to the west and from the lands rich in metal and horses to the north and east. temples and private houses at Nimrud had arrived there as booty or tribute. Carved ivory was used to decorate furniture as well as daggers, cups and dishes and was sometimes overlaid with gold or silver, or inlaid and bejewelled. Three main styles of ivory carving can be identified: a local Assyrian style, similar to the stone reliefs in design; a North Syrian style, with designs related to stone carvings of the north Syrian cities; and a ‘Phoenician’ style, with designs reflecting Egyptian influence. As well as their distinctive ivories, the Phoenician city-states also manufactured and exported purple cloth, timber, copper, and jewellery throughout the Mediterranean region. Seeking new markets and sources of raw materials, the Phoencians, in competition with the Greeks, established trading colonies throughout the Mediterranean. The most famous Phoenician site was Carthage where many elements in art and religion reflected the city’s Near Eastern origins. The Assyrian empire was briefly succeeded by the Babylonian empire. Under kings Nabonidus and his more famous son Nebuchadnezzar II the city of Babylon was rebuilt to become one of the wonders of the ancient world. Rather than using stone reliefs, as in Assyria, royal buildings were decorated in the traditional Babylonian manner – glazed moulded bricks, often depicting animals sacred to the gods of Mesopotamia, were used to decorate the walls. Babylon and its empire fell to the Iranian Persians in 539 BC, and the Near East was united under a new dynamic imperial power which produced an art that fused various styles from throughout its vast empire. ASSYRIAN WALL RELIEF. Important rooms within Assyrian palaces were often decorated with huge slabs of alabaster carved in relief. Many depict the king who is shown as either the chief priest of Assyria or the conqueror of dangerous forces. The latter could take the form of rebellious people or wild animals such as the lion, an animal that had an ancient association with royalty in Mesopotamia. ART, AGRICULTURE AND URBANIZATION 42 were encouraged by an extensive system of international contacts that stretched across the entire region. From western Iran to the Aegean, from Anatolia to Egypt, states were in contact and an exchange of goods and art took place at a high level of society. The exchange of gifts between kings allowed them access to precious materials unavailable at home. Babylonia and Assyria, for instance, actively participated in this system and as a result obtained gold from Egypt. In the eastern Mediterranean, exchange of gifts created international styles for elite objects, many displaying a fusion of the dynamic Aegean animal style with Egyptian and Syrian imagery and compositions. This Mediterranean international style survived into the early first millennium BC, especially in the Canaanite (Phoenician) cities FROM AROUND 2000 BC the Assyrians, a north Mesopotamian people whose civilization was centred on the city of Ashur, established trading colonies throughout Anatolia and exchanged Anatolian silver for textiles and tin. The activities of these Assyrian merchants are recorded in many cuneiform clay letters found in their main colony, or karum, at the site of Kanesh. The letters provide details about all aspects of their culture – from the varieties of Mesopotamian cloth to relations with their home city – as well as preserving the impressions of Assyrian-style cylinder seals. Over the following centuries large kingdoms came to dominate Mesopotamia, especially that of Yamhad (with its capital at Aleppo) in Syria and the successive powers of Isin and Larsa in southern Mesopotamia. Around 1760 BC King Hammurabi of Babylon conquered much of Mesopotamia. A large diorite stele known as the Code of Hammurabi is perhaps the most famous work of art of this time. It continues traditions of representation found in the late third millennium BC. The relief decorating the top of the stele shows the king standing before the seated sun god Shamash. Both the king and Shamash are depicted for the first time with eyes in profile, establishing a real gaze between god and ruler. INTERNATIONAL ART The second half of the second millennium BC saw new styles of art emerge with the growing political and economic importance of a variety of people. These included the Hittites in Anatolia, a people speaking an Indo-European language who had possibly migrated from Europe in the late third millennium BC, and the Canaanites, who spoke a Semitic language and lived along the Mediterranean coast. Much of the art of this period was heavily influenced by Mesopotamian traditions. For example, in Elam (southwest Iran) the religious imagery of Mesopotamia was used to depict Elamite mythology. However, new art-forms 1 DURING THE PERIOD 1500–1100 BC the states of the Near East were linked through diplomatic exchanges of people, precious materials and artistic motifs. International styles developed, particularly in the eastern Mediterranean where Egyptian images fused with Aegean and Syrian forms. Throughout the region, both palaces and temples reflected the wealth of powerful kingdoms. In Mesopotamia the most impressive religious buildings were the solid stepped towers or ziggurats. 30˚ 40˚ 35˚ 40˚ 45˚ 50˚ 55˚ 35˚ 35˚ Alalakh Byblos Aleppo Troy Tell el-Ajjul Mari Kanesh (Kültepe) Hattushash (Bogazköy) Ashur Tell Brak Nineveh Babylon Isin Chogha Zanbil Kish Eshnunna (Tell Asmar) Tell el Rimah Susa Ur Uruk Larsa Hasanlu Ziwiye Marlik Jerusalem Ugarit Dur Kurigalzu Sippar L. Van L. Urmia Dead Sea E uphr ates Tigris Nile Jordan Halys(K izil Irmak) Orontes Diyala M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A PERSIAN GULF B L A C K S E A CASPIANSEA C A U C A S U S Z A G R O S M T S TAURUS M TS I R A N I A N P L A T E A U CYPRUS FAILAKA E L A M LURISTAN MITANNI YAMHAD H AT T I BA B Y L O N I A CANAAN A N A T O L I A E G Y P T A R A B I A ASSYRIA N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms THIS SOLID GOLD bowl from the site of Ugarit demonstrates high quality craftsmanship in metal and the wealth of this important trading centre. The dense composition and diverse motifs are characteristic of the artwork of the coastal Levant. The figures include gazelles, bulls and lions, and mythical creatures. Elements were borrowed from many parts of the eastern Mediterranean and this hybrid art was distributed along trade networks across the region. 1 International Art, 2000-1000 BC royal palace ziggurat movement: tin horses lapis lazuli gold silver textiles copper glass technology local artistic metal production ancient coastline WEST ASIA 2000-500 BC CENTRAL AND SOUTH ASIA 5000–500 BC 45 THE GREAT BATH AT MOHENJO-DARO. One of the finest examples of Indus architecture built from brick, the Great Bath is lined with bitumen, with a dedicated water supply, and is believed to have been used for both public and ritual bathing. It links two major aspects of Indus civilization: the importance of major public buildings within the urban centres, which can be interpreted as indicators of a strongly egalitarian society, and the sophisticated ways in which water management and other public services were approached. The significance of ritual is less well understood, but in addition to bathing is likely to have included the veneration of cattle. 70˚65˚ 75˚ 20˚ 25˚ 30˚ 35˚ Musa Khel Chanhu-Daro Rupar Banavali Rakhigarhi Sukkur Kot Diji Nuhato Allahdino Desalpur Surkotada Lothal Rangpur Rojadi BalakotSutkagen Dor Amri Nindowari Lohumjo-Daro Mohenjo-Daro Delhi Karachi Harappa Naushahro Judeirjo-Daro Alamgirpur Kalibangan Islamabad Indus Chenab Jhelum Narmada Tapi Sutlej Yamuna G anges Chambal A R A B I A N S E A GULF OF CUTCH GULF OF CAM B AY TH A R DESERT SULAIMANRANGE H I N D U K U S H K A C H I P L A I N S I N D I A A F G H A N I S TA N N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 2 Mature Harappan Sites major Harappan site modern city local resources: lapis lazuli gold copper and steatite copper deodar pine elm 2 THE INDUS IN THE BRONZE AGE is one of the world’s great civilizations, and finds of worked goods from copper, gold, lapis lazuli, exotic woods and so forth show an extensive internal trade network between the major cities and the outlying rural areas within South Asia. Craft specialization, uniformity of architecture and standardization of many artefacts are among the main characteristics of the Indus civilization. silver (from Afghanistan or even Iran) and coastal shells at inland sites. Etched carnelian beads and lapis lazuli were exported from the Indus region, particularly to the west. Craft specialization, taken to the point of mass production and great standardization, were trademarks of the Indus, and goods produced included well-fired, wheel-made pottery with distinctive designs and shapes. Bronze-working was significant, and along with tools such as axes and swords, bronze sculptures have also been recovered, one of the most famous of which is the ‘Dancing Girl’ from Mohenjo-Daro. Stone sculptures have also been recovered, including the well-known limestone ‘Priest-King’, also from MohenjoDaro. The pottery decorations tended to be of single subjects, such as people, animals or birds, rather than narrative scenes. The production of steatite seals was particularly important, both for local use and for long-distance trade. These seals were carved with script and animal designs, such as tigers, elephants, rhinoceros and bulls, and were very finely made. Terracotta figurines including zebu (humped cattle) and toy carts, have been recovered from a large number of sites. While these are often interpreted as children’s toys, they may also be linked to the veneration of cattle, an important source of wealth within the Indus. The two major cities of Mohenjo-Daro and Harappa are strikingly similar in terms of planning and layout. Both have two main mounds, an eastern citadel and a western occupation area. There is a lack of conspicuous private buildings that could be interpreted as palaces, giving rise to suggestions that this was an egalitarian society. There are major buildings that are thought to be more public in nature, such as the Great Baths at Mohenjo-Daro, and the ‘granary’ at Harappa. A standard brick size is found throughout the region, with ratios of 1:2:4, suggesting a strong uniformity. The end of Indus civilization is traditionally thought to have been inexplicably sudden. It is now known that while the major urban areas certainly declined, many traits of the Indus civilization continued into the next, or Early Historic, urban period c.1000 BC. Although relatively short-lived during its mature phase, the Indus civilization without doubt achieved remarkable cohesion of artistic style and design across a huge area, and through traded goods spread artefacts and influence across a very large part of Central and South Asia, and to areas beyond. TERRACOTTA CART. Humped cattle or zebu were vital to Indus life, and cattle and carts are frequent subjects of numerous terracotta figurines. The purpose of these figurines is open to debate, with suggestions ranging from their connection to ritual or religion (particularly cattle), a decorative or artistic function, or simply use as children’s toys. 70° 80°60° 50°40° 20° 10° 30° 40° Mehrgarh Mohenjo-Daro Dholavira Amri Lothal Sutkagen Dor Harappa Shortughai Ganweriwala Kalibangan Kili Gul Muhammad Chust Kayrakkum Dal’verzin Zaman-Baba Dzhanbas-Kala Kokcha Altin Tepe Shibe Katanda Pazyryk Ganeshwar Jorwe Inamgaon Gaurimedu Bariduh Rupae Lal Qila Indus Jh elum Ch enab Brahmapu tra God avari Narmada Sutlej Ganges Am uDarya Tig ris Eu phrate s Sy rDarya A R A B I A N S E A I N D I A N O C E A N ARAL SEA PERSIA N G ULF CASPIANSEA H I M A L A Y A S H IN DU KUSH TA K L A M A K A N ZA G R O S M T S PA M I R S T H A R D E S E R T IRANIAN PLATEAU I N D I A CEYLON (SRI LANKA) C H I N A T I B E T P E R S I A A R A B I A M ESO P O T A M I A N 1 Central Asia and India, 5000-500 BC long-distance routes for trade and contact cultures contemporary with Harappan: Harappan/Indus, 2500-1500 BC Bronze Age nomadic groups with graves and grave goods Bactrian-Morgiana complex, 2nd millennium BC peninsular Neolithic Kayatha Ganeswar pre-Harappan site Harappan site Bronze Age settlement site Bronze Age nomadic grave site contemporary sites in India 0 0 300 miles 450 kms ART, AGRICULTURE AND URBANIZATION 44 recent work has shown that early agricultural sites, such as Mehrgarh in the Kachi Plains of Pakistan (7000–3500 BC), are likely to be direct precursors of this great urban civilization, which relied heavily on floodwater irrigation based round the Indus and other rivers. Characterized by great uniformity of architecture and art (although with many local variations), the Indus is known to have been part of a major trade network, both within South Asia and beyond. Lapis lazuli from Afghanistan and jade from China have been recovered, along with gold (likely to have been imported to supplement more local sources), CENTRAL ASIA was an area of trade and movement – not only of people and goods, but also ideas and styles. This had a major impact on the art and culture of this region, while Central Asian materials and styles in turn influenced other regions, particularly to the west. Central Asia, to the north of the Himalaya-Hindu Kush range, was home to a mixture of nomadic cultures which ranged across the lowland area stretching from central Europe right across to China. They are known primarily through their rich graves. Settled peoples exploited river valleys and the fertile loess soils between the mountains and the deserts. To the south of this major physical boundary lies India, a focal point for the exchange of artefacts and ideas. WESTERN INFLUENCES The influences of the great cultures to the west (Mesopotamia, Persia and Greece) can be seen in the architecture, artefacts and archaeology of Central Asia, and similarly, contact with China and the north can be seen here. Bronze tools, figurines, weapons and jewellery are among the many finds that have been recovered from both burial and settlement sites to the north of the great mountain ranges, along with fine pottery painted with both geometric designs and wild animal motifs. The recovery of artefacts of lapis lazuli, carnelian and turquoise shows the extent of trading links within this wider region. Indeed, large numbers of seals very similar to those produced within the Indus Valley have been recovered from the site of Altin Tepe in modern Turkmenia. This is significant evidence for trade and contact between South and Central Asia during the Bronze Age. HARAPPAN CIVILIZATION The Indus, or Harappan, civilization covered an area of 500,000 square kilometres (193,000 square miles) extending across large areas of Pakistan and northwest India. It was one of the great civilizations of antiquity. Traditional dates place its emergence around 2600 BC and suggest that it appeared rather suddenly, but CENTRAL AND SOUTH ASIA 5000-500 BC 1 THE INFLUENCE OF TRADE on the culture and art of many groups in this region is clearly evident. Pottery with distinctive decorations and architectural styles reveal contact with the great civilizations of the west, while jade ornaments, burial patterns and styles of axes and other tools show influences from the north and northeast. In return, etched carnelian beads from the specialized workshops of the Indus have been recovered from Mesopotamian cities. 2 Bronze Age China, 2000-500 BC political centre/capital Shang Western Zhou Eastern Zhou Spring & Autumn other important Bronze Age centre major archaeological site modern city EAST ASIA AND CHINA 5000–500 BC 47 decoration. Its peak is seen in the Longshan culture on the east coast, where fine black pottery was produced using advanced wheelthrowing techniques and superb kiln control. RITUAL AND ORNAMENTAL JADE Early artisans also worked in other materials, such as textiles, wood and bone. The earliest silk production was developed in eastern China. Jade was the most symbolic of all the materials used: owing to its durability, smooth texture, translucency and subtle colours, it was regarded as a spiritual stone, which communicated between man and gods. It also came to symbolize different human qualities. The earliest personal ornaments in jade were found in northeast China, where jade birds, turtles and a dragon with a curved body were found in the elite tombs of the Hongshan culture, which dates to the middle of the fourth millennium BC. Jade was used in a similar fashion in the south, most notably in the Liangzhu culture of the southeast, where the two most important types of ritual jades, the bi-disc, symbolizing heaven, and the congtube, symbolizing earth, were first found in a ritual context. The distinctive taotie-motif, combining both animal and human features, which first appeared on Liangzhu jades, later became the major motif in the decoration of Shang ritual bronzes. THE BRONZE AGE Early use of bronze has been found in northwest China, in the Tarim Basin and on the Tibetan Plateau, but the Bronze Age in China is more closely associated with the three dynasties of the Central Plains: the Xia, the Shang and the Zhou. Historians and archaeologists continue to argue about the existence of the Xia dynasty, but there is no doubt that the Shang dynasty existed. Indeed, archaeology has confirmed that the Shang had a mature writing system and a sophisticated calendar. In contrast to the civilizations of the Near and Middle East, which created prominent stone monuments and sculptures representing their kings and queens, the Shang cast large bronze vessels for use in sacrifice to the ancestors and deities, and buried them in tombs. SQUARE BRONZE DING with a human face decoration, Late Shang period, c.1200 BC. Bronze vessels were used in ritual ceremonies in the Shang dynasty, often involving sacrifices to the ancestors. The decoration on this ding, or cauldron, is unique. The main motif is a human face, but with two horns and animal claws. The whole scheme is realistic, in a manner more typical of the south than of the metropolitan style in the capital city, Anyang (Yinxu). 130˚120˚110˚100˚90˚80˚50˚ 40˚ 30˚ 20˚ Beijing Shanghai Xi’an Luoyang Zhengzhou Erligang (Early Shang capital) Jiang Erlitou (early Bronze Age site/Xia) Sanxingdui (early Bronze Age centre) Zongzhou (Western Zhou capital) Zhouyuan (Western Zhou ritual centre) Chengdu Lhasa Wuhan Dadianzi (Lower Xiajiadian culture) Gaocheng (Shang burial) Zhukaigou (Bronze Age burial) Shilou (Shang burial) Qucun (Jin burial) Baoji (Western Zhou bronzes) Funan (Shang burial) Danyang (Western Zhou burial) Ningxiang (Shang bronzes) Panlongcheng (Shang garrison town) Dayangzhou (Shang burial) Qugong (early Bronze Age site) Kongquehe (early Bronze Age site) Chawuhugou (Bronze/Iron Age site) Anyang (Yinxu) (Late Shang capital) Xincai Kuaiji Xu Xinzheng Qufu Linzi Chengzhou (Eastern Zhou capital) KOREA T I B E T C H I N A G O B I TAKLA MAKAN DESERT Tarim Basin QIN LING QILIAN SH A N A LTA I M T S TAIHANGSHAN K U N L U N M T S P L A T E A U O F T I B E T N O R T H E R N S T E P P E H I M A L A Y A S Hexi Corridor Sichuan Basin Yellow River Yangtze Huai He Qinghai Hu Lop Nor Poyang HuDongting Hu T I E N S H A N BO HAI YELLOW SEA S O U T H C H I NA S E AN 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 2 THE CHINESE BRONZE AGE is marked by the ritual use of bronze. The capitals of the Shang dynasty were located in the Central Plains, and Shang people had an advanced calendar and writing system. In 1045 BC the Zhou conquered the Shang and built a new political system. The king was regarded as the ‘Son of Heaven’, whose mandate was symbolized by the bronze ding (cauldron). The invention of bronze casting, as well as the basic schemes of shape and decoration, were developed from earlier ceramic and jade traditions. The piece-mould technique was very efficient for making hollow vessels and allowed great freedom in surface decoration. The most important decorative feature on Shang ritual bronzes was the taotie-motif, the usually highly stylized animal mask comprising two eyes, two ears and a nose, and sometimes horns and claws. The Shang were conquered in the eleventh century BC by the Zhou, who brought new changes to bronze art. The Zhou people acquired new tastes, and this is reflected in the different forms and surface decoration of their bronze vessels. The taotie-motif gradually disappeared, and the phoenix, bird and ox became the favourite motifs. The changes were not merely decorative: underlying them was the huge transformation taking place in the Zhou belief and ritual practice. Bronze vessels became status symbols. They were buried with the dead, and were displayed in ancestral temples. Ancestor worship predominated and a feudal system was established. Meanwhile, a literary tradition was developed – inscriptions on bronze vessels often carried more significance than the decorations. ART, AGRICULTURE AND URBANIZATION 46 THE BIRTH AND GROWTH of civilizations in East Asia took place in a distinctive environment. Japan is an island country where the indigenous Jomon culture developed independently. The earliest pottery in the world has been discovered in Japan: it is hand-built, and densely decorated with incised or cordimpressed patterns. Similar techniques and motifs are also found in Jomon figurative art. The early cultures in the Korean peninsula, on the other hand, share characteristics, such as pottery with geometrical decoration, with cultures in Siberia and northeast China. China is a vast and geographically diverse country with plateaus, basins, deserts and grasslands. There are huge differences in climate, ranging from the arid Gobi Desert to tropical Hainan Island. Early civilizations in China developed along the two major rivers, the Yellow River (Huang He) and Yangtze River (Chang Jiang). Both have their sources in the Qinling Mountains and flow eastwards to the Pacific Ocean. The Yangtze River has served as a dividing line between north and south from the very beginnings of Chinese civilization. EARLY NEOLITHIC CULTURES By the fifth millennium BC, several distinctive Neolithic cultures had emerged in both north and south China. From its origins in the middle valleys of the Yellow River, the Yangshao culture spread both up and downstream. Its distinctive polychromatic painted pottery, made of carefully selected clays and fired at a high temperature, shows a highly developed aesthetic value and skill. The decoration of Yangshao pottery comprised painted geometric and stylized flower patterns, and more realistic animal and human motifs. Religion played an important role in early Neolithic art and interpretations of these works often relate to the belief and practice of Shamanism. The Neolithic cultures in the south were based mainly on rice-agriculture, differing from the millet-agriculture in the north. Their pottery tradition was also highly developed, usually with incised rather than painted EAST ASIA AND CHINA 5000-500 BC JADE DRAGON, Hongshan Culture, c.3500 BC, greenish nephrite. This is the earliest threedimensional representation of a dragon found in China. The dragon is the most prominent creature in Chinese mythology, symbolizing the concept of transformation and is associated with royalty in much later periods. This jade dragon has a curved body, forming a ring. Its face is similar to that of a pig, with a protruding mouth and wrinkles on its nose. The hole in the back suggests it may have been used as a pendant. 100˚ 110˚ 120˚ 130˚ 140˚ 150˚ 40˚ Beijing Xinle Niuheliang Shanghai Majiabang Hangzhou Xi’an Beishouling Yangshao Xinglongwa Liangzhu Daxi Jiangzhai Laoguantai Longshan Dadiwan Majiayao Liuwan Pyongyang Shenyang Tokyo Guangzhou Zhengzhou Peiligang Jiahu Banpo Miaodigou Dahecun Cishan Dawenkou Hemudu Shijiahe Qujialing Taipei KOREA C H I N A JAPAN CISHAN, PEILIGANG, YANGSHAO CULTURES XINGLONGWA, XINLE, HONGSHAN CULTURES JOMON CULTURE CHULMAN CULTURE DAXI CULTURE QUJIALING, SHIJIAHE CULTURES NEOLITHIC CULTURES YINTAOWEN CULTURE HEMUDU, LIANGZHU CULTURES DAWENKOU, LONGSHAN CULTURES TAIWAN HAINAN G O B IQ I L I A N S H A N TAIHANGSHAN Q I N L I N G HeLiao Yellow River Huai He He Wei Yan gtze U ssuri Xi Jiang Qinghai Hu Tai Hu S E A O F J A PA N S O U T H C H I NA S E A E A S T C H I NA S E A Y E L L O W S E A P A C I F I C O C E A N BO HAI K O R E A S T R A I T N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms Jomon Culture: c.10,000-300 BC; maritime economy, pottery with shells and rotary stamps, clay figurines Chulman Culture: c.8000-700 BC; pottery with incised decoration Cishan, Peiligang, Yangshao Cultures: c.6000-3000 BC; millet agriculture, slash-and-burn technique, semi-subterranean/ground level architecture, reddish pottery with painted decoration Hemudu/Liangzhu Cultures: c.6000-3300 BC; early rice cultivation, timber buildings, weaving, bone and wood carving, earliest lacquer, pottery with incised decoration, carved jade with religious iconography Daxi Culture: c.4400-3300 BC; red/black/gray/white pottery, stamped and painted, bone and stone carving Dawenkou/Longshan Cultures: c.4300-2500 BC; rich burials, great variety of pottery typology and painted decoration, jade carving Xinglongwa, Xinle, Hongshan Cultures: c.6500-3500 BC; early Neolithic settlements; carved jade Qujialing/Shijiahe Cultures: c.3000-2600 BC, c.2500-2000 BC; pottery with painted decoration, weaving; city walls, pottery and stone carving Neolithic Yintaowen Culture: dates c.2000 BC; stamped pottery 1 AGRICULTURE BEGAN IN EAST ASIA as early as 10,000 years ago. From around 6000 BC large numbers of farming communities emerged in the Yellow River valleys and on the the east coast; millet was grown in the north and rice in the south. By 2000 BC competition and interaction among different cultural zones created a new era, and civilization was born. 1 Neolithic China and East Asia, 5000-2000 BC Neolithic cultural zone archaeological site modern city JAPAN AND KOREA 5000–500 BC 49 147˚144˚141˚ 138˚135˚132˚129˚126˚123˚ 42˚ 40˚ 38˚ 36˚ 34˚ 32˚ 30˚ Akyu Tanabatake Ikawazu Shakado Awazu Jinnai Shigasato Yoshigo Kashihara Butsunami Kitamura Togari-ishi Arayashiki Ohatadai Komakino Sugizawadai Teraji Kinsei Horinouchi Nakasawame Satohama Omori Kasori Ogyozuka Chikamori Torihama Mawaki Minamikata Maeike Kuwagaishimo Tsukumo Yamaga Ataka YazeFudodo Unggi Negoyadai Yoksam-dong Oksong-ni Yangpyong-ni Ubayama Kazahari Korekawa Nirakubo Oyu Nishida Chiamigaito Sakuramachi Miharada Higashi-Kushiro Hamanasuno Sannai Maruyama Bibi Kashiwagi B Hupo-ri Mimanda Higashibaru Kyo-dong Amsa-dong Osan-ni Sinmae-ri Kumgang-ni Tosong-ni Mizonoguchi Naepyong-ni Kungsan-ni Soktal-li Simchol-li Namgyong Songgu-ni Chitam-ni Chonjin-dong Hogok-dong Kuksong-dong Hunnam-ni Song-Do Changchon-ni Naju Sougam-dong Taegong-ni Taepyong-ni Mugye-ri Sangnodae-Do Hwangsong-ni Suga-ri Yongsangong Tongsam-dong Tadaepo Tongnae Imbul-li Shinam-ni Taehuksan-do Songgung-ni Namsong-ni Sogong-ni Yangul-li Naedong-ni Undae-ri Choji-ri Kimpo Nongpo-dong Sopohang Naktong-gang Shi nano-gawa Han-gang Imjin-gang L. Biwa Osumi-shoto Oki-gunto Izu-shoto Sado Cheju-do Tsushima P A C I F I C O C E A N S E A O F J A P A N S E A O F O K H O T S K TIARTSAEROK NANGNIM-SANM AEK SOBAEK-SANMAEK TAEBAEK SANMAEK HONSHU HOKKAIDO SHIKOKU KYUSHU KOREA JAPAN C H I N A N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 2 The Forager Communities of Japan and Korea, 6000-500 BC important settlements settlements with large buildings cemeteries burials cist burials stone circles and standing stones waterlogged sites shell middens sites with figurines sites with face masks sites with lacquer sites with bronze rice cultivation millet cultivation Japanese sites, 6000-500 BC Korean sites, 6000-2000 BC Korean sites, 2000-500 BC sources of obsidian and greenstone ancient coastline 2 A SERIES OF RELATIVELY SEDENTARY CULTURES, with no clearly institutionalized social hierarchies, was wellestablished across the Korean peninsula and Japanese archipelago by 5000 BC. While these communities show clearly localized developments in their material culture, they were not totally isolated, as shown by shared pottery styles. There was also some contact between the peninsula and archipelago, as shown by Jomon pottery sherds and by obsidian from Korean Neolithic coastal sites and influences from the peninsula on some Jomon pottery styles. Resistance to change from outside, however, is suggested by the relatively late arrival of metallurgy and agriculture in the region. DECORATING THE BODY was important in Jomon times. Elaborate pottery ear ornaments became especially popular in the Kanto region of Honshu in the final stage of the Jomon period. Over 1000 ear ornaments were discovered at Chiamigaito in central Honshu, indicating they were produced in a specialist workshop. Large numbers of ear ornaments are only found at a few sites, although strikingly similar designs are found from sites separated by long distances. These ornaments were made from specially selected clay and are sometimes decorated with red pigments. They belong to a tradition of ear ornaments that extends back to 5000 BC. sap. Numbers of lacquered objects, including hairpins, were excavated at Torihama on the coast of Honshu. Lacquered bows and bows whose shafts are wrapped in cherry bark were also recovered from waterlogged sites. THE AGE OF BRONZE Bronze working, developed in China from the start of the second millennium BC, appeared in the Korean peninsula by about 1000 BC. At the same time a new form of individual burial monuments, dolmens – in which the remains of clan chiefs were interred – appeared on the Korean peninsula. These dolmens are an important regional manifestation of megalithic burial, examples of which are found around the world, and prefigure the monumental mounded tombs in which later elites were interred on both the Korean peninsula and the Japanese archipelago. Prior to 500 BC, however, social power rested in the hands of local leaders and household heads, and it was in this context of relative domestic independence that the great ceramic traditions of the Jomon and Chulmun flourished. Bronze was a new medium for expressive design, and with its use came new locations for display, often in ritual and funerary contexts away from settlements. 1 Pottery Manufacture in Jomon Japan neolithic style zone with example of characteristic pottery natural resources: cold deciduous forest evergreen broad-leaf forest warm deciduous forest wild boar deer sea lion seal salmon acorns chestnut walnuts buckeyes ART, AGRICULTURE AND URBANIZATION 48 Body symbolism is further demonstrated through the evidence for tooth filing from skulls excavated at sites such as Tsukumo and Yoshigo. This practice may have occurred at age-related rituals and has been used by archaeologists to identify people born in a particular village and those who may have ‘married in’. Pottery masks, often suggesting identifiable character traits, are known from a number of sites across the Japanese archipelago. At other sites, large numbers of ear ornaments have been discovered. THE CRAFTS OF JOMON JAPAN The manufacture of certain objects, notably greenstone jadeite beads and elaborate earspools, luxury commodities which were transported over great distances, indicates that prestige goods were being circulated among these forager societies. The construction of carefully designed and laid out stone and wooden monuments attests to the ability to control and direct labour. These monuments, including the twin circular arrangements of stones at Oyu and the stone lines at Komakino, which are often aligned on significant topographic landmarks, also suggest a concern with measuring and marking time and the seasons. Certain buildings appear to have been constructed using standardized units of measurement. In addition, the analysis of the design structure of pottery vessels suggests that they express the conceptualization of certain numbers, in particular 4, 5 and 7 which may have had particular significance for Jomon communities. In recent years a number of waterlogged sites have been investigated which demonstrate how much of the rich material culture of these early societies has perished. Lacquer was used in Japan from before 5000 BC, and its use demonstrates a high degree of knowledge of the potential of the environment, as the extraction and use of lacquer requires a detailed understanding of the not immediately obvious properties of the lacquer tree and its frogs and snakes, and anthropomorphic designs also occur, executed in relief appliqué attached to the surfaces of some of the vessels. Pottery vessels were often made in very large numbers, as can be seen in the massive pottery dumps at the site of Sannai Maruyama. In the Japanese archipelago, from about 5000 BC, pottery was also used to create clay figurines, both anthropomorphic and zoomorphic. Certain settlements were the focus of figurine manufacture and use. At Shakado over 1000 figurine fragments have been recovered. These figurines were possibly made so as to be easy to break into their component body parts (possibly for use in rituals), and complete figurines are rarely discovered. Figures are varied; some have female bodily attributes, while many others appear more masculine, or androgynous. These figurines bear designs which suggest elaborate coiffures, facial tattooing, and decorative clothing, indicating that bodily ornamentation was important to many Jomon societies. Some have distended stomachs, and are thought to have played an important role in fertility rites. JAPAN AND KOREA 5000-500 BC NEOLITHIC POTTERY from central western Korea was often decorated with incised and impressed geometric patterns, often applied with a comb. This chulmun pottery was replaced in the first millennium BC by plain pottery (mumun). Many pointed-based cooking vessels were found from settlements of the period, such as Amsa-dong on the Han River, where the remains of 20 pit buildings were excavated. These vessels were used to cook the foods derived from gathering, hunting and fishing and, later, cultivated rice and millet. 141˚135˚129˚ 40˚ 36˚ 32˚ 28˚ 44˚ 147˚ Sobata Taishakukyo Torihama Togari-ishi Okinohara Natsushima Kamo Hamanasuno Tokoro S E A O F J A PA N Osumi-Shoto PA C I F I C O C E A N KOREA STRAIT S H I K O K U H O N S H U H O K K A I D O K Y U S H U J A PA N C H I N A K O R E A N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 1 THE DIVERSITY of forested environments that supported a rich array of wild food resources across the Japanese archipelago was matched by a multitude of local pottery styles. ASERIES OF FORAGER SOCIETIES was well-established throughout the Korean peninsula and the Japanese archipelago by 5000 BC. These societies subsisted on the natural resources available in the rich temperate forests, which included mediumsized animals, notably deer and wild boar, nuts and wild grains, as well as abundant aquatic resources, such as shellfish, fish and sea mammals. They lived in villages that were often made up of clusters of pit houses, and on occasion constructed large buildings and stone monuments. These villages were sometimes occupied for many generations and suggest a remarkable degree of residential stability for non-agricultural societies. EARLY POTTERY IN JOMON JAPAN The manufacture of pottery in the Japanese archipelago has been practised for over 7,000 years. As pottery-making developed, a series of regional traditions emerged and these are recognized by Japanese archaeologists as distinct styles, each with its own favourite forms and decorative motifs. Deep, jar-shaped cooking vessels formed the core of the repertoire of forms, supplemented over time with other vessels for the serving and consumption of food. The basic decorative element was cord-marking, produced by pressing twisted cords made of plant fibres into the leather-hard surface of pottery vessels before firing them in bonfires. In some areas, the upper parts of the vessels became highly elaborated with the development of exotic heavily sculptured rims. Abstract designs became very sophisticated, although representational images were relatively uncommon – one good example of a hunting scene is known from a vessel recovered from the site at Nirakubo in northern Honshu. Other motifs include zoomorphic designs similar to THE PACIFIC AND INDONESIA 5000–500 BC 51 LAPITA FIGURATIVE POTTERY from the Santa Cruz Islands. As little as one percent, never more than 30 percent, of the pottery excavated at Lapita sites is decorated. There is a strong continuity in repeated patterns and faces, but over time they become gradually simpler. Among tools potters used to impress patterns into the wet clay were toothed combs and styluses. 180˚ 15˚ 15˚ 0˚ 165˚ 165˚150˚135˚120˚105˚ Duke of York Islands Aitape Manus (250 BC) New Ireland Gazelle Pen. Kandrian Umboi Ambitle Bougainville Tikopia (700 BC) Efate Lifou Ile Maré Futuna Niuatoputapu Uvea Talasea (1000 BC) Reef Islands (800 BC) Aneityum (900 BC) (800 BC) Isle of Pines (800 BC) (900 BC) Sigatoka (750 BC) Lakeba Island (800 BC) Ha’apai Islands (900 BC) Lifuka Island (800 BC) Foa Island (940 BC) Ofu Island (950 BC) New Caledonia (1200 BC) Naigani Island (1100 BC) Mussau (1500 BC) Watom (1450 BC) Arawe (1500 BC) Nissan (1300 BC) Santa Cruz (1100 BC) Anuta (800 BC) Malo (1100 BC) Viti Levu (1200 BC) Tongatapu (1180 BC) Upolu (1200 BC) Samrong Sen (1540 BC) Non Nok Tha (2785 BC) Ma Dong (2755 BC) Hang Gon (2515 BC) Long Thanh (1075 BC) Musang Cave (2722 BC) Tham Ongbah (2490 BC) Niah (1510 BC) Pejaten (650 BC) PRESUMED LAPITA HOMELAND P A C I F I C O C E A N INDIAN OCEAN J A V A S E A BANDA SEA TIMOR SEA CELEBES SEA SULU SEA SOUTH CHINA SEA S U M A T R A MOLUCCAS VANUATU SOLOMON ISLANDS B O R N E O NEW GUINEA FIJI TONGA SAMOA CELEBES JAVA TIMOR A U S T R A L I A C H I N A I N D O N E S I A MALAYSIA BURMA THAILANDLAOS PHILIPPINES CAMBODIA VIETNAM N 0 0 600 miles 900 kms 2 The Lapita Expansion, 2000-500 BC the extent of human settlement, 2000 BC possible expansion of Lapita settlement distribution of Lapita pottery sites, 1500-750 BC Lapita pottery sites: 1500-1000 BC 1000-700 BC date unknown obsidian quarries associated with Lapita sites earliest finds of bronze implements in Southeast Asia 2 THE SPREAD OF LAPITA CULTURE, as indicated by finds of pottery and remains of settlement, is still enigmatic. In the oldest strata, the distribution of Lapita-ware suggests that the pottery may have been associated with quite different functions and diverse social purposes in different places. By 3000 BC many new traditions including pottery began to develop throughout Indonesia and the Philippines and in a few parts of New Guinea. Fully ground stone axes appeared about 3000 BC in Indonesia, representing the final stage of the Hoabinhian culture on mainland Southeast Asia. The inhabitants of Indonesia were in contact with their mainland neighbours during this period, but while mainland peoples started using bronze and iron over the next two millennia, there is no clear evidence for the use of metals in Indonesia until about 500 BC. LAPITA CULTURE The most important artistic development in the Indo-Pacific region began in about 1500 BC. This innovation was the appearance of a certain style of dentate-impressed pottery called Lapita, named after one of the sites where it had been found in New Caledonia. Pottery with more or less comparable dentate designs has been found as far west as Aitape in New Guinea and as far east as Samoa in Western Polynesia. This type of pottery has repeatedly been found associated with obsidian tools, particularly tanged blades, and a variety of shell ornaments or valuables made from conus shells, trochus shell, spondylus oysters and tridacna (giant clams). From an artistic perspective Lapita pottery represents the first class of highly decorated objects in either Melanesia or Polynesia. From an archaeological perspective the importance of this pottery is that it is associated with the earliest settlement of western Polynesia (Tonga and Samoa). Since most scholars accept that the rest of Polynesia was colonized from Tonga and Samoa, Lapita has became associated with the origin of the Polynesians. A second approach accepts that Austronesian languages came into Melanesia and Polynesia from Southeast Asia, but scholars argue that Lapita designs originated in Melanesia and are a local development rather than an Asian tradition – no one has found any Lapita pottery in Indonesia. Many of these scholars accept that the ‘tool kit’ of Lapita pottery, obsidian tools and shell ornaments represents a ‘Lapita cultural complex’, but see this tool kit as one that was put together in the Bismarck archipelago before it was gradually brought to southern parts of Melanesia, especially Vanuatu and New Caledonia and then Fiji, Tonga and Samoa. Both the designs stamped on the earthenware and the delicately flaked obsidian tools that so often accompany Lapita pottery are magnificent artistic expressions – the most elaborate artistic expression in the Pacific world up to 1000 BC. We now know that Lapita pottery began about 1500 BC, and disappeared completely 1500 years later. The most highly decorated forms are in the earliest strata, dating from 1500 BC to about 800 BC. In Tonga and Samoa, in particular, this highly decorative pottery gives way to plain pottery by 500 BC, and pottery disappears altogether during the first millennium AD. Some scholars, drawing on the similarity between Indonesian and Polynesian languages (the Austronesian language family), have proposed that Southeast Asians from the Indonesian region migrated across the top of New Guinea to the Bismarcks in about 1500 BC or slightly earlier, bringing the technology for pottery. They propose that Lapita represents the prehistoric expression of the Neolithic revolution in Melanesia. Thus, Polynesians (and the rest of Austronesian-speaking peoples in Melanesia) were essentially Southeast Asians who had brought agriculture and pottery with them. ART, AGRICULTURE AND URBANIZATION 50 HUMANS HAVE LIVED in island Southeast Asia, New Guinea, the Bismarck Archipelago and Australia for a very long time. In Java and mainland Southeast Asia, human occupation dates back over a million years, while New Guinea and Australia were settled by at least 40,000 BC. When Europeans discovered Australia, the inhabitants – like their earliest ancestors – were still huntergatherers, while most groups in Melanesia were horticulturalists, and many relied heavily on sago and other tree crops. EARLY HORTICULTURE No archaeological sites dating from before 5000 BC in Indonesia or Melanesia have produced evidence of anything except flaked tool industries. The earliest evidence for horticulture in the Pacific occurs at Kuk in the western highlands of Papua New Guinea. Dating to 7000 BC, this site is the earliest known example of swamp drainage for horticultural purposes in the Indo-Pacific. By 5000 BC simple horticulture was probably present in most parts of New Guinea. A mortar and pestle tradition of uncertain date appears to begin by about 3000 BC. Some of these utensils are elaborately carved with faces and representations of animals and birds. In Australia rock-painting sites at Jinmium in the Northern Territory and in the Kakadu area are thought by some to be 6000 years old. The rock-art site near Kakadu, which depicts the rainbow serpent, is evidence of the oldest continuous religious art tradition in Australia – a tradition that continued until recent times. THE PACIFIC AND INDONESIA 5000-500 BC THE PREHISTORIC AMBUM STONE from the highlands of New Guinea. More than 18 cm (7 ins) high, this pecked and ground igneous rock carving appears to join the head of an anteater to the body of a human. Along with sculptures from the same region, exhibiting animal, bird and human motifs, it is among the earliest known Pacific art. Besides free-standing figures, the New Guinea stones include pestles in the form of phallic birds and mortars shaped like birds with spread wings. 180˚ 45˚ 30˚ 15˚ 0˚ 165˚150˚135˚120˚ Ha Lung (5300 BC) Ulu Leang (3130 BC) Niah (5650 BC) Vanimo (c.3000 BC) Sepik River (c.3000 BC) Hang Gon (2515 BC) Laan Spean (5180 BC) Non Nok Tha (4170 BC) Spirit Cave Kok Phanom Di (5720 BC) Dimolit (3940 BC) Sangasanga (5520 BC) Bagumbayan (4280 BC) Gua Harimau (1815 BC) Leuwiliang (3050 BC) Uai Bobo (2160 BC) Kimberley Kakadu Jinmium Ingaladdi Port Hedland Dead Man’s Pocket Papunya Wargata Mina Cavern Spear Hill Ramu River Buka Guadalcanal Pamwak Kuk (earliest Pacific horticulture, from 7000 BC) Nombe rockshelter Bobongara Balof Buang Merabak Matenkupkum Misisil Yombon Matenbek Panakiwuk Kosipe Niah Caves Tabon Caves Madai & Baturong Paso midden Halmahera East Timor Talaud Islands Gua Lawa Maros Kalumpang Bandung DarlingRiver VictoriaRiver P A C I F I C O C E A N I N D I A N O C E A N SOUTH CHINA SEA TIMOR SEA ARAFURA SEA CELEBES SEA SULU SEA BANDA SEA T A S M A N S E A C O R A L S E A JAVA SEA S O U T H E A S T A S I A S U M A T R A I N D O N E S I A BORNEO CELEBES JAVA TIMOR MOLUCCAS NEW GUINEA BISMARCK ARCHIPELAGO SOLOMON ISLANDS M I C R O N E S I A M E L A N E S I A A U S T R A L I A NEW ZEALAND PHILIPPINES N 0 0 600 miles 900 kms 1 The Extent of Early Settlement, 4000 BC pre-Lapita flaked industries non-ceramic sites in Melanesia rock-art sites in Australia areas of early prehistoric stone mortars and pestles in Papua New Guinea pre-Lapita pottery sites, with dates furthest extent of settlement, 4000 BC Ice Age coastline, to 4000 BC PA C I F I C O C E A N HAWAII MARQUESAS ISLANDS EASTER ISLAND MELANESIA MICRONESIA AUSTRALIA NORTH AMERICAA S I A Area of main map 1 IN ABOUT 4000 BC glacial ice finished melting and sea level reached its current level, perhaps 150 metres higher than it had been 10,000 years earlier. Rising sea level gradually inundated low-lying areas leaving hundreds of islands that would formerly have been continental land masses. buildings of baked brick, concrete and marble. Not all cities were built of such permanent materials, but many, like Chang’an, capital of Han China, or Teotihuacan in modern Mexico, had large populations, were extremely extensive and were filled with large structures. Pataliputra (Patna), the Mauryan capital, was the largest city in the world under Ashoka (r.268–232 BC), with as many as 300,000 inhabitants, Jenne on the Niger in Sub-Saharan Africa occupied more than forty hectares (100 acres) by AD 500 and the Huaca del Sol at Moche on the coast of modern Peru was expanded by stages until it incorporated some 143 million adobe bricks. Many of the monuments in these cities, as well as the homes and the tombs of their citizens, were richly decorated and filled with a wide variety of artefacts made of such processed substances as metal and glass. Imperial rule over an unprecedented number of people brought with it a hitherto unprecedented exploitation of nature. ALL THESE LARGE CITIES and empires depended on lands outside their direct control for particularly valued material, such as amber from the Baltic or lapis lazuli from modern Afghanistan. The human contact and the exchange of goods and currency associated with such trade steadily extended the area of intense material consumption. Technologies were exported as part of the same process. The Celtic peoples of Europe became expert metalworkers, as did the nomadic tribes who followed them into the more northerly areas. The same process also occurred in Central Asia. Japan, too, which had long been relatively isolated, acquired bronzeand iron-working and rice and silk production from China and Korea, and took on the appearance of a more and more centralized state. Further south, on the edge of modern Indonesia, improvements in seafaring allowed longer and longer voyages into the Pacific, bringing Neolithic agriculturalists deeper into Polynesia and Micronesia. In Africa, ironworking was adopted south of the Sahara and, when exploited for military purposes and associated agriculture, sustained the Bantu expansion southwards at the expense of the existing hunter-gatherers, who began their withdrawal into the forests and deserts where farming was difficult or impossible. ELSEWHERE, IN ALL CONTINENTS, other groups of hunter-gatherers continued to develop their existing ways of life, which were largely dependent on stone and bone tools, with little outside interference, as did the Australian aborigines or the tundra-dwelling Inuit. The most elaborate artefacts of such people were rock paintings and carvings, vast numbers of which survive from numerous sites in Europe, Asia, Africa, both North and South America and Australia. Although often difficult to date, many must come from this period. The majority of their products were, however, made of less permanent materials such as wood. The main exception were those communities such as the Inuit, Okvik and Ipiutak living on the Bering Straits in northern Alaska two thousand years ago, whose lack of any timber except driftwood led them to exploit walrus ivory, making their traditions more easy to trace. At this period, like all the others that are mapped in this atlas, our ability to document the uncertain record of human material culture depends on wide variations in the natural environment and the lifestyles it supported. TERRACOTTA CAVALRYMEN, Qin Dynasty, 221–202 BC, discovered in Xi’an near the tumulus of the first Chinese emperor, Qin Shihuangdi. D URING THESE CENTURIES the full impact of humanity’s domination of the planet emerged. Agriculture became more widespread and urbanization was extended. Above all, warfare was carried out more effectively. The experience of the Persian and Peloponnesian wars, Alexander’s campaigns in Asia, and the Warring States period in China in particular, brought great improvements in weaponry, tactics, command and communications, and these allowed rapid conquests to be effectively consolidated into vast, centrally managed territories. The greatest of these are today often called empires after one of the most successful, that centred on Rome. RULERS WERE OFTEN GENERALS, as was Augustus, the first Roman imperator or commander (r.31 BC–AD 14). In all cases they relied on military control, as did Qin Shihuangdi, the first emperor (r.221–210 BC) of an area comparable to modern China, and his Han Dynasty successors, or Chandragupta Maurya (r.321–297 BC) and his grandson Ashoka, who extended their authority over most of India. The new power of such figures enabled them to transform both society and the environment. They could use captives and criminals as slaves to extract and work raw materials. They could levy taxes with which to fund public works. They could standardize measures to facilitate such activities as trade and construction. They could impose and maintain peace over such large areas that private wealth was generated on an unprecedented scale. As a result, by AD 600, larger portions of the world had been changed by human activity than ever before. The transformation was also far more drastic. This can be seen in the further material enhancement of the areas that had been urbanized earlier. As the pharaohs of Egypt were succeeded by the Persians, the Ptolemies and the Romans and the kings of Assyria by the Persians, the Parthians and the Sasanians, new and larger cities, such as Alexandria at the mouth of the Nile, were established and the numbers of baked- brick and stone buildings rose steadily. WHEREVER NEW STATES appeared lakes, were drained, canals were cut and ports extended into the sea. Fortifications ringed cities and the walls surrounding the Chinese and Roman empires stretched for thousands of miles. Large areas of the globe were criss-crossed by roads, some of which were paved and carried across rivers on permanent bridges. Food and luxuries were transported along these roads, down the rivers and across the seas for consumption in the great centres. In Rome these luxuries included not only statues looted and bought from Greece, but ancient granite obelisks and modern columns from Egypt. Rome was distinguished by its huge ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 500 BC-AD 600 NORTH AND CENTRAL AMERICA 500 BC–AD 600 55 AT TEOTIHUACÁN IN CENTRAL MEXICO the entire city – including crowded apartments, craft workshops, elegant palaces and towering monumental public structures (such as the Pyramids of the Sun and Moon) – was laid out along a grid. By AD 600 the city covered nearly 21 square kilometres (8 sq miles). 20˚ 30˚ 90˚80˚70˚60˚50˚40˚30˚ Ga M Ch Cu Cu Cu Serpent Mound Squawkie Hill Crystal River Weeden Island Fort Center Mandeville Kolomoki Swift Creek Tremper Gaston Seip Wright Tunacunnhee Mcquorquodale Porter Helena Crossing Fourche Malines Marksville Bynum Miller Pinson Renner Sterns Creek Cahokia Knight Howard Lake Effigy Mounds Trempealeau 1 2 3 4 5 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 19 16 17 18 6 Boone Cresap Grave Creek Abbott Farm Mann Grand Gulch Mogollon Pine Lawn Valley/ Bat cave and Tularosa Cave Mesa Grande Talus Village Igloolik Gulf Hazard Tyara Step House Snaketown Patrick’s Point Port-aux-Choix Lonesome Creek Ozette St Lawrence Island sites Ipiutak Little Diomede Island Iyatayet Norton Walakpa Engigstciak Cottonwood Creek Rolling Bay Joss Dundas Island Keatley Creek site Tuburon Hills Coso Range sites Little Harbor Gunther Island Marpole Rio Gra nde St.Lawrence L. Ontario Columbia Fraser Yukon L. Superior L. Michigan L. Erie L. Huron PA C I F I C O C E A N HUDSON BAY BAFFIN BAY B E R I N G S E A A T L A N T I C O C E A N GULF OF MEXICO R O C K Y M O U NTAINS GREAT PL A IN S Cape Nome VANCOUVER ISLAND KODIAK QUEEN CHARLOTTE ISLANDS SIERRA NEVADA N O R T H A M E R I C A SONORAN DESERT MOJAVE DESERT ballcourt distribution of Beluga whales distribution of Beluga whales distribution of Beluga whales areaofhemlock,cedarandspruce d i s t r i b u t i o n o f p o l a r b e a r s distributi onof Bearded and Ringed seal s distrib ution of Bearded and Ring edseals d i s t r i b u t i o n o f p o l a r be ars d i s t r i b u t i o n o f p o l a r b e a r s northe rn l imit of trees distrib utionof Bearded and Ringed seals 1 Pikes Peak 2 Toolesboro Mounds 3 Norton Mound 4 Crab Orchard 5 Mount Horeb 6 Mound City 7 Serpent Mound 8 Fort Ancient 9 Adena 10 Hopewell 11 Alum Creek 12 Newark 13 Robbins 14 Turner 15 Bedford 16 Havana 17 Goodall 18 Jaketown 19 Harness N 0 0 400 miles 300 kms 2 MANY CULTURES AND LIFESTYLES that continue until the present-day were formed between 500 BC and AD 600 in North America. In the Southwest initial versions of the Hohokam, Mogollon, Ancestral Puebloan and Fremont traditions crystallized. The Adena and slightly later Hopewell traditions spread throughout the Midwest and Eastern United States. Resources from the Gulf of Mexico to the Great Lakes and west to Wyoming moved throughout the Hopewell Interaction Sphere, which exhibited at least thirteen regional variants. Mirador by their complex logophonetic writing system. Architectural innovations such as the corbel vault opened up narrow interior spaces, while roof combs raised the exterior space of plastered palaces and temples. These sat atop large platform pyramids built in tiers that often correlate with sacred numbers, such as the nine levels (of the underworld) seen at Tikal and Palenque. While some cities, such as Tikal and Calakmul, were larger than others and may have formed ‘superstates’, most Mayan cities controlled limited land and competed with adjacent city-states. LOWER CENTRAL AMERICA While this region interacted with Mesoamerica and South America, it also developed distinct indigenous cultures. Mace heads and ceremonial stools from Las Huacas signal the emergence of ranked societies prior to AD 500. In eastern Costa Rica, large hierarchical sites are identified as the El Bosque complex. Artists excelled in jade-working in northern Costa Rica. By AD 500 gold-working, with hammered and lost wax techniques – probably from Colombia, became important in Panama. NORTH AMERICA Over much of North America after 500 BC pottery began to make its first appearance or was more widely accepted. Throughout the continent, groups used local resources to produce various regional traditions. Peoples in the Arctic and Subarctic focused on marine resources, primarily seals, walruses and whales. Artists from Ipiutak carved walruses, bears, humans and fantastic creatures on bone, antler and ivory. By AD 600 Northwest coast peoples mastered carving the abundant cedar from the coastal forests. In the American Southwest and Northwest Mexico the large rocks of the caves and canyons in this semi-arid/desert area served as canvases for styles of pictographs and petroglyphs, many of which have pre-500 BC origins and continued after AD 600. The Adena complex, with roots stretching back to 700 BC, and the slightly later Hopewell complex, peaked between 100 BC (Adena) and AD 400 (Hopewell) in Ohio. Within the so-called Hopewell Sphere elaborate networks moved disparate raw materials and finished products (such as beaten native copper artefacts) among groups east of the Mississippi River. Both Hopewell and Adena people built large earthworks – often in bird, serpent or geometric shapes – to form sacred enclosures. People of both traditions also built burial mounds, placing individuals in large log tombs. Hopewell peoples elaborated Adena traits, generating fine ceramics, human effigy figures and platform pipes. The Hopewell also exhibited more evidence of conspicuous consumption and social differences. Ch Ga M 2 North America, 500 BC-AD 600 areas of cultural influence: Hopewell Adena-Hopewell heartland Ancestral Puebloan (Anasazi) Fremont Mogollon Hohokam Cosumnes tradition Hopewell site Adena site other archaeological site copper ornaments pictograph/petroglyph stone palettes stone pipes beaver pipes female effigy vessels/figurines male figurines antler/ivory/bone carvings shell ornaments mica ornaments raw materials: copper silver chert galena obsidian mica crystal chlorite whelk barracuda shark alligator whale salmon turtle shell shell Cu ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 54 An entire Zapotec barrio (urban area), found at Teotihuacán, symbolizes the complex relationships between states. Much of the population of the Valley of Mexico shifted to Teotihuacán from around 150 BC. By its peak in AD 600, Teotihuacán, with a population of over 100,000 people, was the sixth largest city in the world. Distinctive polychrome pots and stereotyped faces on figurines and masks identify this style throughout Mesoamerica; objects in the Teotihuacán style have been found at Mayan sites such as Copan and Tikal. Teotihuacán’s control over important obsidian sources illustrates its importance in regional trade. The influx of distinctive Teotihuacán talud/tablero architecture (sloping surfaces alternating with vertical ones) around AD 400 at the early Mayan centre of Kaminaljuyú suggests to some scholars an aggressive element to Teotihuacán interaction. Teotihuacán both influenced and received stimuli from Gulf Coast centres such as El Tajín (known for its many ball courts and scrolling sculptural motifs) and Cerro de las Mesas (known for life-size ceramic sculptures). Classic Mayan cities emerged throughout the Petén after AD 300, distinguished from earlier Mayan developments such as El FROM 500 BC TO AD 600, traditions as rich, complex and long-lived as any in the ‘Old’ World coalesced in North and Central America. THE CULTURES OF MESOAMERICA Mesoamerica witnessed both important endings and new beginnings in 500 BC. The last expressions of Olmec-style art, the La Venta Horizon, occur between 500 and 400 BC at Gulf Coast sites and in the Mexican Highlands at Chalcatzingo, where artists familiar with the Olmec style carved low-relief sculptures illustrating enthroned rulers and scenes of supernatural animals attacking humans. Basrelief sculptures, probably marking a coastal trade route, proliferate along the Pacific Coast, from Chiapas, Mexico (Pijijiapan) to El Salvador (Chalchuapa), although most of these date between 800 and 500 BC. New beginnings are seen in both the valleys of Oaxaca and Mexico with the emergence of the first cities and states. Construction at Monte Albán, located on a hilltop in the centre of the Oaxaca Valley, began around 500 BC. Bas-relief sculptures from this date illustrate ancestors and sacrifices vital in the founding of the city, and include some of the earliest examples of Mesoamerican writing. By AD 200 Monte Albán incorporated much of the Oaxaca Valley and adjacent regions through trade, alliances and possibly conquest. Zapotec craftsmen made greyware pottery and anthropomorphic urns; NORTH AND CENTRAL AMERICA 500 BC-AD 600 MAP 1 CENTRAL AMERICA 153.5 X 219mm NB. Map has been skewed 10 degrees E to W to improve size. Can we do this?? 1 CENTRAL AMERICA encompasses three cultural regions: Greater Southwest/Northern Mexico, Mesoamerica, and Lower Central America. In Mesoamerica, several different writing systems, earlier than that of the Maya, emerged after 500 BC. Some groups carved ‘Long Count’ dates that can be correlated to those in our calendar system; the earliest is 36 BC from Chiapa de Corzo. States at El Tajín, Monte Albán and Teotihuacán interacted in various ways with each other and Mesoamerica. AT ITS PEAK BETWEEN AD 400 AND 600 Monte Albán covered 7.5 square kilometres. The Zapotecs approached urbanism by focusing this hilltop city on a large open space, the Main Plaza, surrounded by roughly symmetrically arranged public and administrative structures. Additional civicceremonial features – such as Mound H, in the foreground – lie in the centre of this plaza. 15˚ 80˚85˚ 100˚105˚110˚115˚ 30˚ 25˚ 20˚ CerrosRío Azul Barriles La Cabana Las Mercedes La Montana˜ ˜ Nosara Matapalo Vidor Playa Venado Las Huacas Lotun Cave Acancéh Yaxuná Palenque Cobá Uaxactún Nakbe Seibal Piedras Negras Tonina El Mirador Tikal Calkamul Chiapa de Corzo Altar de Sacrificios Xunantunich Caracol Copán Yaxchilán ChalchuapaKaminaljuyú Sitio Sierra Yarumela Los Naranjos Naco Quiriguá Ceren Santa Leticia El Baúl Abaj TakalikIzapa Pijijiapan Tonalá Remojadas Cholula La Mojarra Cerro de las Mesas Tres Zapotes Miahuatlán Río Grande Etlatongo Cerro de las Minas Yucunudahui˜ Dainzú Ejutla Monte Albán Huamelulpan San Francisco de Arriba San José Mogote Río Viejo Yucuita Monte Negro Tollantzinco TehuacánPavón El Tajín Matacapan Diquiyú Quiotepec La Venta Cuicuilco Teotihuacán Calixtlahuaca Xacalla Apatzingán Xiuhquilpan Itztepetl El Teul Chalcatzingo ZacoalcoAmeca Etzatlán El Arenal Ixtlán del Río Las Cebollas Cueva Pintada Los Ortices Atzcapotzalco Huetamo Tuxtepec Usumacinta Motagua Pánuco GU LF O F CA LIFO R N IA PA C I F I C O C E A N GULF OF CAMPECHE Yucatán Peninsula Isthmus of Tehuantepec T H E G R E A T E R S O U T H W E S T LOWER CENTRAL AMERICA MESOAMERICA PETÉN Mostly hunter-gathering Cultural influences: area impacted by Monte Albán area impacted by trade routes of Teotihuacan area impacted by Cerro de las Mesas Raw materials: jade/jadeite cacao salt feathers obsidian desert and semi-arid scrub zones Cultures of Central America 500 BC-AD 600 major regional centre important city/site site with ballcourt site with pre-Classic Maya writing and/or long count date sites with Late Preclassic giant architectural masks pictographs/petroglyphs Oaxaca Maya Teotihuacán 1 N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms these are found at regional centres well beyond Monte Albán’s sphere of influence, from Río Viejo on the coast to Mixtec centres such as Cerro de las Minas and Yucuñudahui. SOUTH AMERICA 500 BC –AD 600 57 CENTRAL ANDEAN CULTURES Within the Andean area, extensive ritual practices continued to be rooted in complex societies with corporate political and religious leadership throughout the Early Horizon (800–200 BC) and the early Intermediate Period (c.200 BC–AD 600). Chiripa (c.850–400 BC) is located in the Titicaca basin. The site consists of a platform mound with a sunken court and carved stone stelae and plaques, ringed by rectangular chambers. The economy was based on intensive exploitation of lake resources as well as domesticated and wild camelids, seeds and tubers. Textiles and pottery were used, the latter with incised and painted feline and human faces. To the south, Pucará became dominant in the Titicaca area in around 400 BC. Incised pottery found there was decorated with slip-painted panels, felines, birds, llamas and people. Stone carvings occur frequently. Staircases and sunken courts are common in the terraced hillsides. Chavín de Huantár, located on a tributary of the Marañon River, has been dated to c.800–200 BC. Its large U-shaped temple platform contains a sunken court and galleries. Elaborate line carvings of mythical beings include elements of felines, snakes, cayman and plants. Within the core of the principal temple there is a series of corridors and channels. It also contains a crossfigures, sometimes with aspects of a jaguar. The oldest sculptures belong to the Isnos phase (c.100 BC). They are found on hill slopes, sometimes in elaborately painted tombs. San Agustín is associated with the construction of large earthworks and gold smelting as well as wire and sheet metalworking. The Periperí style, which belongs to the eastern Brazilian pottery tradition, is related to the Sambaquí cultures farther south. Houses were post-built. Artefact assemblages are dominated by pounding and grinding tools. Beads from fish vertebrae and shell are common. The pottery is plain and dark brown to black. SOUTHERN CULTURES The Paraná-Pampean cultural tradition (first millennium BC) from Uruguay and Argentina emerged from a hunter-gatherer economy. Much of the pottery is plain, although finds from Mal Abrigo, in the Santa Fe area of Uruguay, include modelled animal head lugs. THE ‘DECAPITATOR GOD’ in painted and modelled plaster work at the ‘Temple of the Moon’, at the site of Moche. Moche iconography was a complex symbolic language expressing in summary a limited number of themes which were understood by society at large. A number of the characters depicted were actual persons and officers within Moche society. 80˚ 0˚ ? St St St St St NawinpuquioHuari Waywaka Chanapata Sipán Chavín de Huantár Cerro Blanco Cajamarquilla Moche Pampa Grande Galindo Pachacamac Moxeke Cahuachi Pucará Chiripa MOCHE Huascarán Chimborazo Ausangate Coropuna Misti Chacani L. Junín L. Titicaca Maranón˜ Chicama Moche Casma Supe Fortaleza Chill ón Hua llaga Puira Urubamba Pampas Oco na˜ Sam a Canete ˜ M ala Pisco Apurimac P A C I F I C O C E A N A N D E S A TACA M A D ESERT SECHURA DESERT L I M A HUARPA NAZCA PARACAS CHAVINOID TRADITION PUCARÁ CHANAPATA N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 2 Early Horizon to Early Intermediate Period desert highland jungle mountain peak/volcano tradition/culture site location principal site secondary site religious site/shrine terraced agriculture raised fields irrigation gold copper cinnebar salt stone, andesite, basaltSt spondylus camelids, wool, textiles cotton and textiles birds and feathers dung and guano wood maize and beans obsidian potatoes gourds and squash manioc hallucinogens coca totora emeralds probable sea trade routes shaped room with a large columnar sculpture shaped like a very large foot plough and carved to represent a large feline deity. This deity mediated between the supernatural world and that of the living. It has been persuasively argued that the channels and vents found throughout the temple enabled the deity to make sounds. On the south coast of Peru the coastal Paracas tradition shared elements of both the Pucará and Chavín cultures. Incised pottery painted with organic paints, and highly ornate textiles showing flying shaman designs, are common. Mummies are seated in shallow baskets, wrapped in multiple textiles. Cemeteries show a pattern which suggests that related kin groups were entombed in the same grave. During the Early Horizon period many innovations in textile production developed, such as tapestry weaving, tie-dye and batik techniques. Metallurgical techniques such as soldering, sweat welding and repoussé decoration developed, and the frequency of metal use increased. Pottery tended to have incised decoration, burnishing, slip painting and organic paint. THE MOCHE AND OTHER CULTURES By the end of the first century BC most of the land which could easily be taken into production was in use. Ceremonial sites were reduced in number and size whereas settlements, including fortified ones, grew and multiplied. Regional kingdoms and chiefdoms were established. On the north coast in the Early Horizon, Cupisnique style was followed by the Salinar, Viru and Gallinazo traditions. In time, Moche became the dominant culture, amalgamating a series of independent valley-based chiefdoms and kingdoms under one central authority. At Cerro Blanco, the capital of the Moche, there are two principal ceremonial sectors: the Huaca del Sol (Temple of the Sun) and the Huaca de la Luna (Temple of the Moon). On these large platform pyramids prisoners were ritually dismembered at times of crisis. The Huaca del Sol is the largest single earth-built structure in the Americas. The Nazca culture dominated four river valleys on the south coast. The Huarpa culture, with sites such as Conchopata, Nawinpuquio and Huari, focused on the Ayacucho basin, where terraced fields and irrigation channels formed the basis of an innovative agricultural strategy. 2 ANDEAN CULTURAL DEVELOPMENT during this period was clearly affected by the comparative closeness of very contrasting ecosystems. Because of the very pronounced topography of South America, a range of environmental zones, including coastal deserts, mountains and tropical jungles were all within easy reach. This proximity resulted in the development of a cultural assemblage that was both materially and symbolically very rich. ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 56 SOUTH AMERICA IS A LARGE and varied continent and so were its cultures during this period. The central Andean area was dominated by complex societies, with elaborate hierarchies, whereas the cultures of the Andes of Ecuador, Colombia and Venezuela, like much of the lowland rainforest, were often chiefdoms. NORTHERN CULTURES In Ecuador, the Guangala phase (340 BC–AD 360) is distinguished by multi-coloured and engraved pottery with geometric designs, small villages and a maize-based agriculture. During this phase metals were used for the first time, particularly in hammered fish hooks and nose rings. In the north and north-west of Venezuela (500 BC–AD 500) societies were predominantly agricultural and were producing pottery. The principal ceramic tradition was the Barrancoid, distinguished by its modelled and incised designs. At sites such as Barrancas in the Lower Orinoco valley, houses were built on piles and on earthen platforms. Manioc cultivation probably originated in this area. The Barrancoid tradition originated in the central Amazon basin and its spread was linked with the Maipuran and Arawak language families. It was widespread within the tropical forest. At Jauari, on the lower Amazon, there are midden remains, where Tshaped and notched axes and pottery are common. The Itacoatiara sites east of Manaus have ceramics with typical scroll designs. The site of Hupa-iya of the central Ucayali had un-walled houses with earthen floors. Spindle whorls indicate that textiles were being produced. In Colombia, near the headwaters of the Rio Magdalena, the San Agustín culture produced stone monolithic sculptures depicting human SOUTH AMERICA 500 BC-AD 600 GOLDEN EAR SPOOLS showing the ‘Spider God’ or ‘Decapitator’, as excavated from ‘Royal’ tomb 2 at the Moche site of Sipán near Chiclayo in Peru. In Moche art, the spider was seen as a spiritual equivalent of the model Moche warrior. Just as spiders capture their prey, bind them with thread, and extract and consume their vital fluids, so Moche warriors took their enemies prisoner, bound them with ropes, and drained and drank their blood in sacrifice. 1 SOUTH AMERICA is a continent with a great variety of mineral resources and environments, which resulted in many diverse cultural adaptations, ranging from the hierarchical societies of the Andes mountain range to the scattered chiefdoms of the lowland rainforests. Many of these societies were based on agriculture, but in the south of the continent smaller groups depended more on hunting, fishing and gathering. 40˚ 50˚60˚70˚80˚ 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ St St St St Barrancas Mangueiras Manta Hupa-iya Caimito Chavín de Huantár Camancaya Moche Pachacamac Cahuachi Pucará Chiripa Mal Abrigo Chotua Jauari Itacoatiara Teso dos Bichos GUASARE BAHIA CANDELARIA PUCARÁ CHIRIPA SAN AGUSTÍN B A R R A N C O I D T R A D I T I O N B A R R A N C O I D T R A D I T I O N B A R R A N C O I D T R A D I T I O N ELMOLLE VALLISERANA LASMERCEDES PARANÁ-PAMPEAN TRADITION EASTERN BRAZILIAN PO TTERY TRADITIO N CHAVINOID TRADITION CHANAPATA Huila Sierra Nevada de Santa Marta Antisana Chimborazo Huascarán Illimani Illampu Coropuna Tacora Llullaillaco Chachani Misti Cotopaxi Amazon M adeira Ju rua Negro JapuraPutumay o Maranón˜ Ucayali Para ná S ãoFrancisco Tocantins Paraná C olorado Negro Loa Maipó Maule Salado Desaguadero Deseado Ch ico Paraguay O rinoco Essequibo Corantijn Maroni O iapoque Branco Cauca M agdalena L. Titicaca L. Poopó A T L A N T I C O C E A N PA C I F I C O C E A N CARIBBEAN SEA A N D ES ATACAMADESERT B R A Z IL IA N H I G H L A N D S GUIANA HIGHLANDS N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 Principal Cultural Traditions, 500 BC-AD 500 dry pampa tropical rain forest pampa desert mountain peak/volcano tradition/culture principal site religious site/shrine raised field irrigation gold silver copper tin cinnebar salt stone, andesite, basalt obsidian St spondylus strombus coral camelids, wool, textiles cotton and textiles birds and feathers dung and guano wood maize and beans potatoes gourds and squash manioc hallucinogens totora EUROPE 500 BC–AD 300 59 30˚20˚10˚0˚ 40˚ 50˚ ˇ Medionemeton Nemetobriga Nemetacum Drunemeton Delphi Roquepertuse Entremont Fellbach-Schmiden Bouray Gournay-sur-Aronde La Tène Msecké Zehroviceˇ Deskford Neuvy-en -Sullias Euffigneix Gundestrup Praha Sarka Salzberg-Reinberg Báta Luncani Malaia Began Mezek Mérida ˇ Turoe Reims Pfalzfeld Glauberg Heidelberg Holzgerlingen Hirschlanden Montbouy Bichl Clonmacnoise Torrs Llyn Cerrig Bach Snettisham Battersea Aylesford Amfreville Basse-Yutz Dürrnberg -bei-Hallein Waldalgesheim Ciumesti¸ Massalia Spina Rhine Elbe Danube Vistula Dnieper D on A T L A N T I C O C E A N M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A N O R T H S E A B L A C K S E A B A LT IC SEA PYRENEES A L P S CARPATHIAN S I B E R I A C E LT I B E R I A G E R M A N I A S C Y T H I A S A R M AT I A D A C I A G A L AT I A T Y L I S I L LY R I A CORSICA SARDINIA SICILY BAL EARIC ISLANDS GREECE S C A N D I N AV I A B R I T I S H I S L E S A N AT O L I A Possible route of Sarmatians' plunder after defeat of Galatian Celts Alexander's Celtic mercenaries N 0 0 300 miles 450 kms sites and artefacts: nemeton sanctuaries and other cult centres colonies stone carvings wood carvings classic metalwork sites wild boar representations late La Tène vessels Etrusco-Italic and Celtic vessels 2 THE CELTIC DIASPORA was both ethnic and economic. From a heartland on the French-German border militaristic elites spread southwest into Spain, and eastwards to set up kingdoms in the Balkans and Turkey. Mercenaries, wars and looting carried La Tène objects to south Russia and beyond. It is uncertain to what extent the ‘Insular’ style in Britain and Ireland was introduced by continental invaders rather than adopted. THE ICONOGRAPHY OF POWER These elite artefacts, preserved from the hoards and burial monuments of the wealthy, express ideologies of power the iconography of which may actively obscure the brutal realities of Iron Age life. The obsession with virtuosity, especially in repoussé metalwork, suggests a high degree of competition among intensely aesthetically-sensitive patrons. Gold-, silverand bronze-smiths, however, may have ranged in social status from mobile entrepreneurs to virtual chattels. By 500 BC the slave trade, powered by endemic warfare, was crucial. Slaves reached the Classical world via the coastal colonies of the Black Sea and Mediterranean in exchange for wine and finished goods, including pottery finewares, jewellery and precious metalwork. The Greek mercantile credit economy was supported by the massive silver output of the slave-worked mines of the Laurium peninsula in Attica and the islands of Thasos and Siphnos. It was such wealth, displayed in votive offerings, that attracted the Celts south to sack the sanctuary of Delphi in 279 BC. The expansion of Celtic warrior society is evident in the nemeton (sacred grove) sites, which extend from Scotland to Spain to Turkey; small groups, serving as mercenaries under Alexander, may have reached India. Trading and raiding brought Achaemenid Persian objects into Europe in the fifth century BC, La Tène bowls to the north Caucasus and Kuban in the third century BC, and Thracian and Dacian motifs as far west as the south coast of Britain by the time of the Roman conquest, and exposed local conventions to broader scrutiny. The development of commercial markets intensified in the second and first centuries BC, THE BASSE-YUTZ FLAGON (one of a pair). This early fourth-century BC vessel refines Italic prototypes. Red champlevé enamel and Mediterranean coral insets form interlace and chequerboard patterns. The La Tène Early Style figural elements include a maned wolf-form handle with engraved palmettes rising from a human face built of S-curves, a chained stopper with zoomorphic decoration and a small duck swimming down the spout in the direction of the pouring wine. illustrated for example by the distribution of mass-produced decorated clay lamps of the types known as Dressel 2-4, which occur from southern Spain and Sicily through to the Rhine and North Sea coast. The extent to which the later Iron Age societies produced and maintained such distinctive styles over time is fascinating. In Celtic art, the Early Style developed via Waldalgesheim and Vegetal, the Plastic and the Hungarian ‘sword style’, into the late Insular styles which were still strong in Ireland as late as AD 300. This is ultimately an issue of ethnic identity, expressed through close control of form and content, the need for which was actually heightened by the fluxes of wars, invasions and resettlements. For the Scythians the beast-fight, whether expressed at a mythical or more realistic level, was central as a metaphor of struggle and conquest. Swordscabbards, belt-plates, bridle appliqués, and pectorals, such as that from Tolstaya Mogila, all depend on the same theme, one that was continued by their martial successors on the steppe, the Sarmatians. This worn art was displayed on the body, expressing ethnicity and social status on the move. The La Tène Celts had their favourite motifs too (the wild boar and horse, among animals) and a penchant for virtuoso, vegetally-based symmetries. The human form, often almost cryptic in metalwork, found clear expression in anthropomorphic grave stelae and in the elaborate stone sacrificial altars of the south French sites near Massalia. 2 The Spread of Celtic Culture area of origin of La Tène style, 500-450 BC Early Celtic world (western), 450-400 BC Early Celtic world (eastern), 450-400 BC primary Celtic expansion (western), 400-250 BC primary Celtic expansion (eastern), 400-350 BC secondary Celtic expansion (western), 250 BC-AD 300 secondary Celtic expansion (eastern), 350-150 BC ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 58 THE LATER IRON AGE was the age of the Celts, Thracians, Scythians, Sarmatians, Germans and Dacians. These quasi-national tribal confederacies were in direct competition with and dependent on the swathe of urban empires – Persian, Greek, Macedonian and Roman – to their south (see the later spreads in this part). Although called ‘barbarian’ by the Greeks (from their babble – ‘bar-bar’ – of languages), it would be a mistake to judge their arts ‘barbaric’. The Celts and Scythians developed two of the most seductive and sophisticated styles in world art: the La Tène Style and the Steppe, or Scythian, Animal Style. INDIGENOUS STYLES Grounded in indigenous themes and craftskills, the La Tène and Scythian styles transformed Classical and Oriental elements in memorable visual syntheses. In the CarpathoBalkans the styles overlap to create lessintegrated fusion styles, such as Thracian, Thraco-Getic and Daco-Sarmatian, which all owe debts to Greek, Achaemenid and central Asian production. Other lesser style zones include the Celt-Iberian, the Insular Celtic, the Germanic-Scandinavian and the Etruscaninfluenced southeast Alpine region with its frieze-based situla (bronze bucket) style. Everywhere there was a reawakening of vibrant iconic content after the formulaic themes of the later Bronze Age Urnfield period and the restricted early Iron Age (Hallstatt) repertoire. Significantly, with certain exceptions among the situlae and in the most Hellenized Thracian art, the literal narrative approach of the Mediterranean area is eschewed in favour of an emblematic or hieratic style – a significant pre-figuration of medieval heraldry. The rare preservation of wood-carving, as at the Celtic sacred site of Fellbach-Schmiden in Germany, indicates that conventions such as symetrically paired animals extended to more fugitive media: the richness of barbarian tattooing, often remarked on by commentators, can only be guessed at. The military, political and economic complexity of the period is immense. Most of the art that survives is of a portable nature, made in gilded bronze, silver and gold, used for decking out horses, worn on the body as part of a costume, or displayed at feasts. There is evidence from metrology that the convertible or bullion value of the art was of considerable significance, and that pieces (such as the 165 silver and silver-gilt vessels that make up the Rogozen hoard from Bulgaria) were made to known weights. EUROPE 500 BC-AD 300 30˚20˚10˚0˚ 40˚ 50˚ Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Sn Sn Sn Sn Sn Sn Sn Sn Sn Sn Sn Sn Sn Gundestrup Oberaden Hohemichele Helden Witaszkowo Sark Portland Bill Colchester Wroxeter Kuffarn Bologna Orlovo Olbia Gaimonova Mogila Tyras Istrus Tomi Svestariˇ Durentsi Peretu Herastrauˇ ˇ Agighiol Cotofenesti¸¸ Salistea/Cioara¸ Surcea Poiana Baiceniˇ Iron Gates Rogozen Galiche Vratsa Stara Zagora Abdera DouvanlijKoukouva Mogila Starobel’sk Balakliya Aleksandropol’ Chertomlyk Oguz Solokha TaganrogTolstaya Mogila Great Ryzhanovka Uspenskaya Stanitsa Melitopol’ Severskaya Stanitsa Panticapaeum Chersonesus Taxila/Rawalpindi Sinope Byzantium Trebizond Nymphaeum Certosa Hochdorf Hallstatt Spina Vaceˇ Tápiószentmárton Zo´´ldhalompuszta Magdalenska Gora Emporion Massalia Elbe Rhine Vistula Don Danube Dnieper A T L A N T I C O C E A N N O R T H S E A BALTIC SEA B L A C K S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A PY RENEES A L P S CARPATHIANS CORSICA SARDINIA SICILY BALE ARIC ISLANDS B R I T I S H I S L E S S C A N D I N AV I A I B E R I A A N A T O L I A G R E E C E BALKANS E U R O P E Persian Achaemenid Influence Thracian cavalry auxiliaries major source major source Cimbri booty N 0 0 300 miles 450 kms commodities: silk amber silver gold tin copper red coral trade flows Sn Cu 1 Eastern Influences Dressel 2-4 lamp distribution, 70 BC-AD 15 cultural areas: Scythian (500-150 BC) and Sarmatian (150 BC-AD 300) zone Southeast Hallstatt zone, until 400 BC Geto-Dacian sphere, 400 BC-AD 107 South Thracian sphere, 500-85 BC Bosporan Kingdom, 302-63 BC Kingdom of Pontus, 480-63 BC sites and burials: Scythian ‘Royal’ burials Thraco-Getic burials and hoards Thracian dynastic tombs Greek colonies artefacts: Geto-Dacian coins and grave stelae Sark-class Dacian phalerae Oriental silks bronze situlae Scythian animal-style objects Achaemenid Persian objects 1 EASTERN INFLUENCES include the import of Achaemenid artefacts, iconographies and silk to Europe following the Persian occupation of Thrace (513–480 BC), the impact of Scythian nomads on the Hungarian basin and beyond, and the transport of Thracian and Sarmatian motifs, some with north Indian connections, westwards by cavalry auxilliaries under Rome. The Gundestrup cauldron, made with Thracian techniques and depicting La Tène Celts, may have been carried to Jutland in the booty of the Germanic Cimbri around 118 BC. THE TOLSTAYA MOGILA PECTORAL is Graeco-Scythian in style. The central flower and tendril frieze betrays the master goldsmith’s training in southern Italy, but the upper and lower friezes carry pastoral and mythological scenes of pure steppe inspiration: above, foals and calves suckle, a boy milks a ewe, two men stretch a sheep skin and another threads an awl for sewing leather; below, horses, stags and boars are attacked by lions and griffins. Dipylon Gate Pnyx road to Peiraeus Sacred W ay Panathenaic W ay roadtoAcharnai Street ofTripods A G O R A A R E I O PA G O S A C R O P O L I S Tholos Strategeion Hephaisteion Statues of Heroes South Stoa Twelve Gods Painted Stoa Royal Stoa Kerameikos Tombs Pompeion Amyneion Eleusineion Stoa of Zeus Temple of Nike Sanctuary of Asklepios Propylaia Parthenon Theatre of Dionysos Odeion of Pericles Choragic Monument of Lysicrates Erechtheion N 0 200 m 0 0 2 miles 3 kms N 2 Athens and Peiraeus, 500-300 BC 0 5 kms N Athens Peiraeus Phaleron Academy THE AEGEAN 500–300 BC 61 build long walls linking the port to the city. With her position as both a military and trading power greatly strengthened, Athens then entered on an exceptional period of public building, private consumption and personal self-development, during which architects such as Ictinus, sculptors such as Pheidias and teachers such as Socrates, acquired an authority in their fields matching that of the city’s leader, the charismatic general, Pericles. Expensive materials, both local and exotic were widely employed. Marbles of different colours were used for the building and sculptural decoration of the Parthenon (447–32 BC), with its 15-metre-high (49 ft) gold and ivory image of Athena, and for the Erechtheion, with its bronze chimney. One of several new stoas, the Painted, was filled with large pictures of Attic victories. Large but less extravagant projects were the carving of new seating for the Assembly from the hill of the Pnyx, the enlargement of the Theatre of Dionysus, and the building of a new covered Odeion to house musical performances. Since Athens’ wealth depended critically on the importation of raw materials, the establishment of the Athenian colony of Amphipolis in 437 BC was vital, in that it safeguarded supplies of gold from nearby Mt Pangaeum and of timber for ship-building from the surrounding forests. The loss of the colony in 424 BC paved the way for the city’s defeat at the hands of Sparta in 404. Nevertheless, public impoverishment had little impact on growing personal expenditure. At the great drinking parties, or symposia, in private houses, at which young men would compete in conversation with their teachers, Attic wine was served from painted Attic pottery, which continued to dominate the international market into the fourth century. From the late fifth century large marble tomb reliefs in the Kerameikos, or Potter’s Quarter, show 2 ATHENS CONSISTED of an Acropolis (Upper City) on a great fortified rock and a lower city that centred on the Agora, or Market. The Acropolis was restored and rebuilt after the Persian sack in 480. It was dominated by four magnificent marble buildings, the Parthenon, the Propylaea or Entrance, the Erechtheion and the Temple of Nike. In the lower city less important temples of Apollo and Ares were constructed in the Agora area, as were three stoas, while the theatre of Dionysos was extended and a covered Odeion built nearby. The city’s trade was assured by its connection, through a system of walls, with the port of Peiraeus. Its flowering during the fourth century was brought to an end after its conquest by Alexander and by the passing of laws limiting expenditure. THE PARTHENON, with its combination of Doric forms, typical of the mainland, and Ionic forms and marble material, typical of the islands and Ionian coast, illustrates Athens’ desire to lead all Greece. Its sculptures celebrate the city's human and material resources. The west pediment shows the competition for Attica by the rival deities, Poseidon, who produces a fountain of salt water, and Athena, who produces an olive tree. Lower down, on an inner frieze, young women of the city offer the goddess a newly woven embroidered robe. THE ATTIC ‘FOUNDRY CUP’ provides evidence for some of the phases in the production of a work of art in the early fifth century BC. It illustrates the production process, from the sculptor's furnace and tools, to the painted models that aided standardization, to the final assembling of whole bronze statues. women rivalling each other in their finery, as they sit in elegant dresses on elaborate chairs taking jewels from rich caskets. Both at symposia and on tombs the celebration of the individual reached new heights, and during the fourth century both body and mind received new attention. At Athens teachers established themselves at the gymnasia where young men went for physical training – just as Plato did at the grove of the hero Academus. Such concerns with the self relate closely to the consolidation of the roles of individual patrons and individual artists, especially after the emergence of super-rich rulers such as King Mausolus, the rebuilder of Halikarnassos, or the greatest city-founder of all time, Alexander of Macedon. Mausolus’ wife Artemisia employed four famous sculptors on her husband’s gigantic tomb. Alexander insisted on patronizing the architect Dinocrates when planning his most famous city, Alexandria in Egypt. He also patronized the sculptor Lysippos when ordering portraits and grand figure groups and the painter Apelles when commissioning important paintings. It is against this background that the first writings on art by architects, sculptors and painters appeared in the sixth and fifth centuries, and by around 300 BC the first critical histories of painting and sculpture by Xenocrates and the first biographies of artists by Douris had made their appearance. ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 60 principal town of Attica, a large peninsula projecting into the Aegean. Athens maximized the benefit from its own Great Games by sending around Greece and the Mediterranean as prizes special Attic oil lamps made by the best Attic potters and decorated by the best Attic painters. It was competition between its craftsmen that ensured the exceptional quality of the city’s products. In 509 BC the promotion of political competition by the strengthening of democratic institutions fostered a new selfawareness on the part of the citizens of Athens. This would mark many of their actions, whether collective or individual, over the next two hundred years. During this period, political power was often concentrated in the hands of generals, and economic considerations, military policy and civic patronage were closely linked. The discovery of important new veins in the silver mines at Laurium in southern Attica in 483 BC, for example, allowed Athens to immediately expand ship production in time to defeat the Persian fleet at Salamis in 480 BC and made it easier subsequently both to construct new harbours at Peiraeus and to THE AEGEAN 500-300 BC DURING THIS PERIOD the Aegean experienced an unprecedented expansion in the production of permanent artworks, many made for private individuals. From 600 BC the Greeks began representing themselves in life-size statues, first of marble and then of bronze, and from 500 BC, especially after the defeat of the mighty Persian Empire, the production of hard and durable artefacts, which could be as large as temples or as small as seals, rapidly increased. THE RISE OF THE COMMUNITY The original driving force behind this development was competition between the more or less independent communities that grew up on the many Aegean islands and in the fertile valleys of the European and Asiatic mainlands. The settlements close to the coasts grew rapidly, safeguarding their security by constructing stone walls and forming well- 1 AS SHIPBUILDING AND NAVIGATION SKILLS improved, the Aegean became the focus of an efficient multidirectional trade in raw materials and finished goods. Improved metal technology meant that raw marbles and finished statues, in marble or bronze, could be shipped long distances. Better communications, as well as the interest in display that came with greater wealth, brought more and richer visitors to the many cult centres to fund bigger and better buildings. Communication stimulated rivalry and the wave of construction of stone temples that had begun in the sixth century only accelerated in the fifth and fourth. Alexander of Macedon, who conquered first Greece and then the East as far as India before his death in 323 BC, opened the area to new exotic luxuries such as glass and unfamiliar gems. trained and -equipped citizen armies and navies. Increasingly, skilled craftsmen, soldiers and artists exploited, and improved upon, the available technologies of metallurgy, and stone- and woodworking, as well as developing their skills in navigation, agriculture, ceramic and textile manufacture, warfare and education. They also maximized the resources of their small territories by exchanging their surpluses of raw materials and finished products, including trained and untrained people, over great distances. Often the degree of a community’s, or individual’s, success could be measured in displays of artistic patronage at the great cult centres, such as Olympia and Delphi, where people from all over the Greek world, from southern France to North Africa, gathered at the Great Games. Competing cities built treasuries to show off their trophies, and rival athletes were commemorated in increasingly lifelike statues. THE ATHENIAN EXPANSION No city was more productive or more successful in this competition than Athens, 21˚20˚ 22˚ 23˚ 24˚ 25˚ 26˚ 27˚ 28˚ 36˚ 37˚ 38˚ 39˚ 4 (Tyrannicides c.470 BC) (Lysander and battle of Aigospotamoi c.400 BC; Daochos group c.335 BC; Alexander and Krateros hunt c.330 BC) Megara Salamis Dion (Alexander and Hephaisteion c.320 BC) (Athena c.440 BC) (Zeus c.430 BC; Philip of Macedon and family c.336 BC) (Hera c.415 BC) (Asklepios c.380 BC) Eretria Oropos Rhamnous Peiraeus Kephalos Kassope Lemnos Messene Thorikos Plataea Agrinion Molycrion Corinth Mantineia Megalopolis Cu Cu Thebes Pharsalos Vergina Olynthus (Athena Nike, Erechtheion, ‘Ilissos’) (Apollo) (Athena) (Zeus, Stratios) Priene (Athena Polias) (Artemis) Sardis (Artemis- Cybele) Sounion (Athena) Labranda Aegina (Aphaia) (Asklepios) Epidauros (Athena Alea) Stratos (Zeus) (Apollo, Ptoios) Nemea (Zeus) Argos (Apollo) Delos (Athena Pronaia, Apollo) (Ares, Hephaistos, Parthenon) (Nemesis) (Amphiaraos) (Poseidon) (Metroum, Zeus) (Apollo) (Hera) TP TP TP TP TP Dodona Sparta Elis Brauron Miletos Knidos Ephesos Olympia Magnesia Didyma Samothrace Samos Corinth Eleusis Phigaleia Bassai Lindos Rhodes Thasos Tegea Pentelikon Belevi NaxosParos Marmara Delphi Mt Ptoion Amphipolis Halikarnassos Athens M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A E G E A N S E A IONIANSEA BOEOTIA LACONIA RHODES LESBOS CHIOS THASOS ZAKYNTHOS KEPHALLENIA AETOLIA CHALCIDICE ARCADIA PHRYGIA C A R I A MESSENIA EUBOEA A N A T O L I A KYTHERA NAXOS PAROS MELOS LEMNOS SAMOS KOS M A C E D O N I A T H R A C E T H E S S A L Y E P I R U S AT TICA gold,silver,timber tin, silver vases, figures ivory, gems marble from Marmara PELOPONNESE N 0 0 50 miles 75 kms 1 The Aegean, 500-300 BC sources of metals: copper gold iron movement of marble movement of Attic pottery Greek artists to Persia trade routes major shrine major town planning major Doric temple (with dedication) major Ionic temple (with dedication) tholos monumental tomb tomb relief council chamber choragic monument propylaeum major sculptural group Cu TP lead silver marble quarry minor shrine stadium stoa hotel theatre gold and ivory cult statues pediments monumental paintings painted pottery THE EASTERN MEDITERRANEAN 500–100 BC 63 university (the ‘Museum’), and a great library in Alexandria, but he, like others of his house, also patronized Egyptian sanctuaries. Traditional art forms continued alongside Greek ones, and inscriptions were set up in hieroglyphic and demotic Egyptian as well as in Greek. Similarly, although Antioch and Pergamum were very thoroughly Hellenized, native cultures and languages, notably Aramaic, continued to flourish away from these centres. From the beginning, there was a tendency for this vast empire to fragment, most particularly Seleucid Asia. In the later third century in the west of Asia Minor, the native people of Pergamum who had come to think of themselves as Greeks, under the patronage of Pallas Athene, resisted both Antiochus I and invading Gauls. They established a confident and vital state, a major artistic centre epitomized by a lively sculptural tradition but also by mastery of other arts. Concurrently in the Far East, in the old Achaemenid satrapy of Bactria, a line of Greek kings managed to maintain their independence for two centuries, greatly influencing the native arts of northern India. THE NATURE OF HELLENISTIC ART The major centres of Hellenistic patronage were the royal courts. They patronized architects and sculptors as well as those involved in the luxury arts, notably silver plate and gold jewellery. This was often set with gems, such as garnets, from the Himalayas. Such materials had not only been hitherto too distant from the Mediterranean world of the Greeks to be imported, but the use of gold, gems, ivory, silks, gold inlaid glass, and even silver plate, would have been regarded with great suspicion by the more egalitarian states of old Greece. Artistic expression, as shown by the blatant exploitation of emotion in art – as well as in literature as epitomized by the ‘new comedy’ of the dramatist Menander – laid great stress on individual character. Some artists worked on an enormous scale. Even before the Hellenistic age had begun, King Mausolus (r.377–353 BC) of the Persian satrapy of Caria had ordered Pythias of Priene to build a colossal hero-shrine for him and his wife, 2 PERGAMUM. The city was founded on terrain too irregular to allow a grid pattern. Instead buildings were arranged on a series of dramatically rising terraces. Many of the buildings of Attalus I and Eumenes II, including the Great Altar of Zeus, celebrate the regime’s remarkable victories over the invading Gauls. Upper Agora Lower Agora Arsenal Barracks Palace Library Theatre Sanctuary of Athena Stoa Sanctuary Great AltarTemple of Dionysus Sanctuary of Demeter Gymnasia (i) young men (ii) Ephebes (iii) boys N 0 0 200 metres 150 yds 2 Pergamum RELIEF FROM GREAT ALTAR OF ZEUS, Pergamum. Eumenes II (r.197–158 BC) had his defeat of the Gauls symbolized as the triumph of the gods over the giants. In this masterpiece of the Pergamene school of sculpture, the contest is given an epic grandeur. The calm efficiency of the Olympian gods (in this detail led by Athena) contrasts with the emotional decadence of their barbarian foes. anticipating in effect the 33 metre (109 ft) Helios statue which Chares of Lindos created for the independent island state of Rhodes in 304 BC to celebrate the lifting of a siege by the Macedonian Demetrius I Poliorcetes (‘The Besieger of Cities’). By contrast other craftsmen such as Alexander the Great’s gem-cutter Pyrgoteles specialized in creating the same powerful effects on a miniature scale. Hellenism was now manifested by the externals of language, manners and taste rather than by race. Even though the old Greek world remained, Sparta, for example, was merely a historical curiosity. Even Athens was valued mainly for its culture, being patronized not by her own citizens but by others such as King Attalus I of Pergamum (r.241–197 BC). ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 62 DURING THE SECOND HALF of the first millennium BC, goods and techniques were brought in an increasing stream from east to west by way of the ‘silk route’ through Central Asia to the Levant as well as up the Persian Gulf from the Indian Ocean. The conquests of Alexander III of Macedon (‘the Great’, r.334–323 BC), in their turn brought cultural influences back from the West to the East – so that to some degree we can see a real circulation of culture during the Hellenistic period. This brought with it a transmutation of art and intellectual ideas everywhere, and so paved the way for the Roman empire. In the fifth and early fourth centuries, the Greek world was made up of autonomous city states, generally small in size and for the most part short of natural resources, ruled directly by their citizens. From the time of the Macedonian conquest of Asia, the most powerful Greek states were infinitely larger, far richer and under the control of kings. These rulers were widely regarded as divine, and called themselves by such epithets as ‘Saviour’, ‘Benefactor’ or ‘God made manifest’. Even long-standing taboos such as that against incest were overturned in the adoption by the Ptolemies of the age-old Pharaonic custom of brother and sister marriages. POLITICS AND PATRONAGE The empire of Alexander briefly encompassed the same territory as the old Achaemenid empire of Persia, which he had overthrown, but after his death it was broken into three by his generals, who established themselves as his heirs. Antigonus Monophthalmos (‘The Oneeyed’) took Macedonia itself and the old European possessions; Seleucus Nicator (‘The Victorious’) seized the satrapy of Babylonia and most of the rest of Asia, while Ptolemy Soter (‘The Saviour’) established himself as Pharaoh of Egypt. Greek literature was encouraged by these rulers. For example, the ‘sister-loving’ Ptolemy II and his consort Arsinoe, established a THE EASTERN MEDITERRANEAN 500-100 BC SILVER TETRADRACHM of King Antimachus I (c.181 BC) of Bactria. This masterful portrait shows the king wearing the traditional Macedonian kausia headdress. Although from the most easterly part of the Greek world, this coin shows the typical Hellenistic interest in physiognomy. 60˚45˚30˚ 45˚ 30˚ Tropic of Cancer Pergamum Priene Delos Miletus Cnidus Lebena Halicarnassus Ephesus Antioch Antioch Aspendos Kourion Nea Paphos Trapezus Artaxata Ecbatana Hecatompylos Alexandria Areion Alexandria Prophthasia Alexandria Alexandria Olbia Chersonnesus Panticapaeum Alexandria Eschate Patala Gabae Maracanda Ai Khanum Taxila Bactra Pura Carmana Zadracarta Apollonia Samothrace CyzicusOlynthus Eretria Cos Didyma Odessus Thessalonica Pella Aegae Demetrias Lysimachea Istrus Ancyra Sinope Petra Jerusalem Jericho Apamea Dura-Europos Babylon Ptolemais Persepolis Susa Athens Delphi EpidaurusOlympia Sicyon Corinth Vergina Lefkadia Kazanluk Dilberzin Sparta Cyrene Euhesperides Alexandria Memphis Berenice Seleucia Heraclea Byzantium Tyre Sidon Nile Euphr ates O xus Jaxartes Tigris Indus M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A B L A C K S E A R E D S E A ARABIANSEA PERSIAN GULFC A S P IA N SEA ARAL SEA AEGEAN SEA H I N D U K U S H I R A N I A N P L A T E A U C A U C A S U S Z A G R O S M T S CYPRUSRHODES LYCIA BOSPORAN KINGDOM CARIA S E L E U C I D K I N G D O MA R A B I A I N D I A GREECE MACEDON BITHYNIA GALATIA MEDIA ATROPATENE P A R T H I A MARGIANA E G Y P T CAPPADO CI A M ESO P O TA M IA BABYLO N IA PERS IS C A R M A N I A S Y RIA G E D R O S I A D R A N G IANA A R A C H O S I A S O G D I A N A B A C T R I A A R E I A A R M ENIA HYR CANIA PAPHLAGONIA spices silk and spices gem s and spices ivoryandslaves N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 1 The Hellenistic World, c.240 BC independent Greek states Antigonid Kingdom and dependencies Ptolemaic Kingdom and dependencies Kingdom of Pergamum Hellenized non-Greek kingdoms Seleucid Kingdom and vassal states major sculpture centres wall paintings (predominantly tombs) important sanctuaries mosaic workshops Hellenistic royal palaces gold finds finds of silver plate gem source mint currents in the Mediterranean 1 THE HELLENISTIC EMPIRES were essentially landbased. They were connected by caravan routes and, to some extent, by rivers such as the Tigris, Euphrates and Nile. Luxury goods were transported by sea through the Mediterranean. The centres of patronage in this world were often royal palaces. Fabulously rich kings were able to collect artworks from distant places or commission painters, gem-cutters and architects to set up court studios. 40˚ 10˚ Bononia (Felsina) Marzabotto Arretium Vulci Rome Nemi Caere Tarquinii Veii Praeneste Poseidonia (Paestum) Elea Taras (Tarentum) Clusium Urbs Vetus (Orvieto) Morgantina Locri Croton SyracuseAcragas (Agrigentum) Selinus Segesta Po Tiber A D R I A T I C S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A L P S A P E N N I N E S VENETI CENOMANI SENONES LINGONES BO II ETRUSC ANS FALISCI LATINI VOLSCI CAMPANI LUCANI S I C I L I A N S APU LI BRUTTII MESSAPII SAM NITES CORSICA SARDINIA I T A L Y N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 2 Italy, c.400 BC peoples paintings bronzes terracottas jewellery mosaics Greek temples non-Greek temples sculpture VOLSCI THE WESTERN MEDITERRANEAN 500–100 BC 65 recording its manufacture in Rome) and some extremely advanced gems, and coins of thoroughly Greek style but inscribed in Latin. Initially, Roman expansion was directed against other similar Italian peoples as well as the Greeks in the south. Ultimately, hegemony in the Mediterranean had to be settled with Carthage. Remarkably, Rome managed to defeat this centralized monarchy without rejecting her own republican constitution. The First Punic War (264–241 BC) ended in the Carthaginians being driven from Sicily. The Second Punic War (218–201) began disastrously for Rome, with the Carthaginians under Hannibal invading Italy. However, it ended with the defeat of what was by then the only power which could halt Rome’s seemingly inexorable progress. In the following century, wars against Macedon and other Greeks led to an enormous influx of wealth. Some Romans acquired great personal fortunes, although there was always pressure to give much of the loot from the sack of cities such as Syracuse (211 BC) or Corinth (in 146 BC) to the gods. THE CULTURE OF THE WEST Although power in the western Mediterranean was in Roman hands by 200, the cultural influence of the Greeks was overwhelming. In many respects it took the militarily stronger Romans captive. Some Greek cities remained independent and flourished, notably Massalia. Hellenization came mainly from Roman conquerors wishing to emulate what they had seen in Sicily and the east. FUNERARY STELE from Bologna with a wolf suckling a boy child (mid-fourth century), showing that other Italians shared this device, associated with the Roman myth of Romulus and Remus. 1 THE WESTERN MEDITERRANEAN was culturally very diverse, with only small areas colonized by nonnative peoples, Greeks and Phoenicians. Syracuse and Carthage were organized like Hellenistic monarchies, but one native state, the Roman Republic, defeated them and assumed a potential for patronage surpassing all of them. Concurrently, trade routes shown through Gaul and the eastern Alps were taken over by Roman merchants. 2 ITALY HAD A great diversity of peoples. Power lay in city states, mainly on the coast. Apart from the Greek cities of the south,the most important were those of Etruria, rich from trade with Gauls to the north as well as with Greeks and Etruscans. Culturally related, but speaking a different language, the Latins of Rome ultimately took over the entire peninsula. to Greek and Phoenician influence, it is very distinctive in its character. The same can be said of the art of the city states of Etruria, which grew rich through trade, for example, in the eastern Alps through Spina. Etruscan painted tombs, ornate jewellery and engraved gems, and bronze and terracotta sculpture (though obviously Greek influenced) could not be mistaken for the productions of any other people. Other Italian peoples such as Lucanians and Samnites were likewise influenced by Greek artistic styles, though – with a superb position halfway up the western coast of Italy – the Latins of Rome were even better able to benefit from trading and cultural currents within the peninsula. Not only were they in touch with Etruria and Magna Graecia but even with Athens. By the later fourth and early third century BC, Rome was in the cultural forefront, as it was a political leader in the Mediterranean. Among surviving artworks are the bronzes of Praeneste (one of which bears an inscription Nevertheless Italian art remained distinctive and far from uniform. Separate styles of gem-carving for signet rings were used in Campania and Etruria, and these were in their turn different from those of the eastern (Hellenistic) world. Etruscan terracotta sculpture, especially the tradition of funerary chests with images of the deceased are similarly idiosyncratic; while the historian Polybius (c.200–118 BC) records a distinctive Roman custom associated with wax funerary effigies. Religious considerations also dictated the continued use of a specific type of temple on a high podium, uninfluenced by the Greek temple type. And of course, the Latin language more than held its own in the West against the progress of Greek. ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 64 Greek expansion was always limited by the dominant power of the Phoenicians of Carthage, who controlled not only the western part of North Africa (especially Tunisia) but also had important trading posts in western Sicily, Sardinia and southern Spain. INDIGENOUS PEOPLES Influential as these essentially easternMediterranean peoples were in moulding the art and culture of the area, indigenous peoples were of at least equal importance, one group increasingly so. Apart from the barbarian art of the Celts and related tribes such as the Ligurians, a high culture developed in eastern Spain characterized by elegant pottery, a superb tradition of bronze casting and, above all, sculpture. Although this owed something THE WESTERN MEDITERRANEAN in this period is, in many respects, a great contrast with the East. Although there were powerful city states in southern Italy (Magna Graecia) and especially eastern Sicily – where the kingdom of Syracuse had much in common with some of the smaller Hellenistic principalities – Greece was not the dominant power here. Certainly, through being wellpositioned for trade, some Greek communities achieved considerable wealth and influence. Important in this sense were Tarentum on the heel of Italy, well-placed for trade up the Adriatic, and Massalia and her colonies in southern Gaul and in northeastern Spain (notably Emporiae). They grew rich on commerce up the Rhône and in the northern part of Iberia. THE WESTERN MEDITERRANEAN 500-100 BC DAMA DE BAZA. This limestone sculpture of a goddess seated on an elaborate winged and lionfooted throne shows the mixed traditions of Iberian sculpture in the fourth century. The deity is related to the Punic Tanit and the Greek Persephone, but the jewellery she wears is distinctively Iberian. The statue seems to have served as a funerary urn. 10˚ 10˚ 20˚ 40˚ 0˚ Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Temple of Melkart Río Tinto mines Nemi Luceria (Felsina) Verona Comum Entremont Roquepertuse Glanum Ensérune Tolosa (Toulouse) Mediolanum (Milan) Bononia (Bologna) Clusium Ariminum Spina Perusia Spoletium Alba FucensOstia Motya Èze Nicaea Tivissa Tarraco Numantia Rhode Emporiae Ullastret (Gerona) Agathe Santesteban Despenaperros Baza CigarralejoPorcuna Castulo Tejada la Vieja Massalia ˘ Carthago Nova Ebusus Paterno Volsinii (Bolsena) Taras (Tarentum) Cumae Santa Eufemia Avola Gela Sabratha Oea Leptis Magna Vulci Populonia Rome Caere Pyrgi Tarquinii Cosa Casilinum (Capua) Praeneste Tarracina Puteoli Stabiae Salernum Pompeii Nola Veii Neapolis Herculaneum Poseidonia Heraclea Sybaris (Thurii) Metapontum Apollonia Canusium Beneventum Aesernia Kerkouane Hadrumetum Kef el-Blida Utica Zama Cirta Iol Selinus Nora Tharros Himera Morgantina Heraclea Minoa Zancle (Messana) Carthage Syracuse Segesta Acragas (Agrigentum) Croton Locri Rhegion (Rhegium) Montefortino Arretium Marzabotto Pisae Gades Malaca Carteia Tingis Abdera Rusaddir Carmona Hemeroscopeum Saguntum Tagus Eb ro Rhône Po Tiber ATLANTIC OCEAN M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A ADRIATIC SEA T Y R R H E N I A N S E A A L P S P Y R E N E E S C E L T I B E R I A N S B E R B E R S I L L Y R I A N S N U M I D I A N S C E L T S L I G U R I A N S SICILY SARDINIA CORSICA BA L E A R I C I S A F R I C A Tinfrom Bri tain Tin from Britain amber N 0 0 150 miles 200 kms cities of Celtic origin peoples currents in the Mediterranean silver sources silver finds gold sources gold finds tin sources BERBERS tin trade routes amber amber trade route centres of bronze manufacturing mints paintings mosaics palaces Cu Greek temples important early non-Greek temples Punic sculpture Iberian sculpture Greek sculpture Etruscan sculpture Celto-Ligurian sculpture copper sources 1 Greeks, Carthaginians and Etruscans: The Western Mediterranean World, c.450 BC Punic settlement Iberian settlement Greek hegemony Punic cities Iberian cities Greek cities Italic cities Etruscan cities THE MEDITERRANEAN 100 BC–AD 100 67 Hill. In many respects the city was the direct successor of the great Hellenistic royal cities, such as Antioch, Pergamum and Alexandria – though by providing more marble façades, more public sculptures, more exotic beasts and larger spectacles than had ever been seen before, Rome demonstrated her superiority. THE BRINGER OF CIVILIZATION Roman culture sometimes appeared upstart when viewed from the east, but it was the bringer of Mediterranean civilization to much of western Europe, including northern Gaul, Germany and Britain. Such provinces fell into Roman hands partly through conquest and partly through diplomacy, an art in which the Romans excelled. Julius Caesar and especially Augustus founded settlements of Romans, generally retired soldiers, throughout the empire but most densely in the west, as bastions of Roman culture. Greco-Roman culture was not only spread by colonists but even more resolutely by ruling elites among the peoples under Roman sway. Proud to be given Roman citizenship, they vied with each other as public benefactors. Notable for their wealth and influence over their subjects were native princes such as Herod the Great in Judaea (r. c.40 BC–4 BC), Juba II of Mauretania (r.25 BC–AD 23) or King Togidubnus in Britain (second half of first century AD), who lived opulent life-styles in rooms veneered with marble and floored with mosaic. Herod built several palaces including Herodium and Masada; Togidubnus is believed to have lived in a large villa at Fishbourne, famous for its elegant formal garden. Such men re-founded cities: Caesarea Maritima by Herod, Caesarea (modern Cherchel) by Juba and most probably Noviomagus (Chichester) by Togidubnus, endowing them with splendid buildings, notably temples. They also used their wealth to endow temples elsewhere, from Herod’s temple to the Jewish God in Jerusalem to the temple of Sulis Minerva at Bath, probably built by Togidubnus. Some arts appear to have been more homogeneous than others. Silver plate, produced in relatively few centres for very rich patrons, was light and supremely portable. It was spread through the empire and even beyond the frontiers as diplomatic gifts. Businessmen dined off the same plate as army officers took on campaign. On the other hand, sculpture, wall painting and even mosaic was often made locally in provincial workshops. Only the most important artists normally travelled; the rest stayed and worked in their home towns. It was not easy for those who were not rich to go far, especially overland, and this prevented total homogeneity of culture. Regional schools in sculpture, painting, mosaics and jewellery added interest to Roman art. They also provided pools of non-Classical ideas such as the frontality and linearity displayed in some of the art of Syria and Egypt, which may have influenced later art. Augustus wanted to stress Roman and Italian customs and religious rites. In his reign the Latin language, handled by writers of distinction, achieved parity with Greek. Yet mainstream Roman art and architecture, both public and private, could not avoid being a development of the late Hellenistic culture, making use of its existing rich repertoire of mythology, iconography, symbolic personification and vegetal decoration. ODYSSEY FRESCO from a house on the Esquiline hill in Rome. This scene shows the Laestrygones of Sicily preparing to attack Ulysses’ ships, in a landscape showing the rocky terrain of the Mediterranean basin. In the mid-first century BC, classical Greek culture was widely admired and imitated. Shortly after the Odyssey frescoes were painted, Virgil wrote The Aeneid, likewise with an Italian setting. 2 THE EMPIRE WAS HELD TOGETHER by ancient maritime trade routes which in part reflect natural features such as currents. Although portable works of art such as silver plate were spread around the Roman world, difficulties in communication – for example, over mountains and through marshy areas – still allowed a diversity of local artistic schools: for example, of interior decoration and sculpture. THE GEMMA AUGUSTEA, a sardonyx cameo cut in the tradition of late Ptolemaic cameos but showing a Roman subject – a victorious general visiting the Emperor Augustus after a campaign. The stone may have been imported from India and cut by a Greek artist in Rome. 40°30°20°10°0° 30° 40° 50° Gades Tingis Tarraco Narbo Mogontiacum Messana Leptis Magna Rhegium Panormus Caesarea Rome/Ostia Puteoli Salonae Dyrrhachium Thessalonica Tomi Olbia Panticapaeum Apollonia Aquileia Massilia Ancona Magdalensberg Brundisium Athens Delos Byzantium Trebizond Alexandria Gaza Rhodes Myra Ephesus Sidon Corinth Cephalonia Cyrene Carthage Pentelic Quarries Carrara Barcino Vasio Fishbourne Utica Emporiae Praeneste Tivoli Rabat Hildesheim Arcisate Vicarello Thorey Bursa Hockwold Verulamium Hoby Antioch Capua Jericho Herodium Masada Herculaneum Pergamum Aphrodisias Pompeii Glanum Brixia Danube Vistula Loire Nile Tigris Euphrate s A T L A N T I C O C E A N N O R T H S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A BALTIC SE A B L A C K S E A RED SEA CAUCASUS CARPATHIAN M T S CORSICA SARDINIA SICILY CRETE CYPRUS BALEARIC IS N 0 0 500 miles 750 kms 2 Art and Trade Roman Empire maritime trade routes sculpture centre painting school silver workshop finds of silver plate gem workshop 1st century BC-1st century AD mosaic school 1st century BC mosaic school 1st century AD marble quarry 66 THE PEOPLE OF LATIUM (the plain around Rome) forged a new civilization after throwing off their Etruscan rulers in about 500 BC. It reflected both the Etruscans (whose art was very influenced by the Greeks) and the Greek cities of southern Italy. Greek influence intensified in the third and second centuries BC through eastern Mediterranean contacts – at first commercial and cultural, then political and military, resulting in a vast Roman empire. The process of eastern Mediterranean conquest was only complete with the defeat of the Ptolemaic empire in 31 BC by Octavian, soon to become Augustus, the first emperor. By the middle of the first century BC, however, plundering Greek cities for treasures of precious metals, gems and statues had already come to seem uncouth. The writings of Romans of the late republic and early empire confirm the Hellenized character of their world. Cicero expected to buy copies of Greek master-pieces for his home and prosecuted the governor of Sicily, Gaius Verres, for looting his province. ROMAN PATRONAGE The importance of Rome as a centre of patronage is shown by finds such as that – in the wreck of a ship at Nahdia off Tunisia – of sculptures made in Athenian workshops for export, as well as finds of numerous neo-Attic sculptures from Rome, Pompeii, Herculaneum and elsewhere. Many of the most important artists of the first century BC, such as the sculptor and silversmith Pasiteles and the gemcutters Aulos and Dioskourides, were Greeks working for Roman patrons. The same is true in the early empire when Zenodoros set up statues both for the Gallic tribe, the Arverni, and for the Emperor Nero. Early in the second century, Trajan employed Apollodorus of Damascus to build his forum, as Greek in conception and decoration as it was Roman. The city of Rome grew prodigiously in the first centuries BC and AD, eventually to a million or more inhabitants. They were provided with ever more temples and public places (the imperial fora), with horti (public gardens), baths and major centres of entertainment, including theatres, race tracks and the enormous Flavian amphitheatre now known as the Colosseum. These public buildings provided unrivalled displays of art ranging from Greek pedimental groups to gem collections shown to the cognoscenti visiting select temples. There were also the private marvels of the imperial palaces on the Palatine THE MEDITERRANEAN 100 BC-AD 100 3 THE CITY OF ROME was the focus of the empire up to the third century AD, but many of its grandest buildings date from the reign of Augustus and his successors, who wished to impress foreign visitors by the grandeur of its buildings and provide ‘bread and circuses’ for the urban masses. 1 COLONIES CLUSTER IN THE WEST in this view of the Roman Empire shortly after AD 100, when it reached its greatest extent. They were leading centres of Italian culture, but the many important centres of Greek culture would in their turn Hellenize members of the colonial elites, like the young Hadrian – future emperor of Rome – from Italica in southern Spain. 40°30°20°10°0° 30° 40° 50° Epidaurus Dodona Claros Antioch Alexandria Rhodes Cyrene Ephesus Delos Athens Eleusis Syracuse Massilia Pergamum Augusta Taurinorum Parma Minturnae Augusta Praetoria Brixia Cremona Ateste Sora Bononia Pisaurum Ariminum Senia Narona Patrae Falerio Firmum Ancona Beneventum Antiochia Lystra Olbasa Comama Berytus Cremna Parlais Venusia Noviodunum Lugdunum Tarraco Tucci Astigi Emerita Augusta Pax Iulia Cartenna Gunugu Zuccabar Aquae Calidae Rusazu Saldae GilgiliCirta Thubinica Utica Thermae Tyndaris Catana Simitthu Sicca Veneria Neapolis Uthina Tupusuctu Rusguniae Ucubi Carthago Nova Osca Calagurris Turiasso Bilbilis Dertosa Arausio Forum Iulii NuceriaVenafrum Corduba Pollentia Palma Clupea Messana Curubis Tragurium Celsa Arelate Baeterrae Carthage Capua Butua Acruvium Lipara Allifae Calatia Nola Corinth Buthrotum Sinope Narbo Italica Scodra Lissus Cassandrea Lampsacus Heraclea Pontica Dium Risinium Pompeii Praeneste Casilinum Florentia Arretium Interamnia Clusium Faesulae Aleria Mariana Jerusalem - centre of unique counter-culture Danube Vistula Loire Nile Tigris Euphrate s Ebr o Tagus A T L A N T I C O C E A N N O R T H S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A BALTIC S EA B L A C K S E A RED SEA AEG EA N SE A C A U C A S U S CARPATHIAN M T S CORSICA SARDINIA CRETE CYPRUS BALEARIC IS GERMANIA INFERIOR BRITANNIA 43-71 LYCIA 43 JUDAEA EPIRUS DACIA 106 ACHAEA GERMANIA SUPERIOR 83 ALPES POENINAE ALPES COTTIAE 64 ALPES MARITIMAE A F R I C A A F R I C A ARABIA 106 MACEDONIA MOESIA INFERIOR SUPE RIOR NORICUMRAETIA BELGICA LUGDUNENSIS AQUITANIA NARBONENSISTARRACONENSIS LUSITANIA BAETICA MAURETANIA 44 NUMIDIA CYRENAICA A E G Y P T U S SYRIA MESOPOTAMIA 115-117 ASSYRIA 114-117 CAPPADOCIA 18 ARMENIA 114-117 A S I A GALATIA CILICIA T H R A C I A 4 6 BITHYNIA & PONTUS 107 PANNONIA SUPERIOR PANNONIA INFERIOR ILLYRICUM N 0 0 500 miles 750 kms 1 Colony and Empire Roman Empire, AD 14 provinces added after AD 14, with date colonies founded up to death of Julius Caesar, 44 BC colonies founded up to death of Augustus, AD 14 centres of Greek artistic patronage places of pilgrimage Castra Urbana Stadium of Domitian Baths of Nero Odeon Baths of Trajan Golden House of Nero Baths of Titus Castra Pantheon Castra Praetoria Baths of Caracalla Temple of Apollo Colosseum Mausoleum of Hadrian Circus of Hadrian Saepta Julia Baths of Agrippa Theatre of Marcellus Theatre of Balbi Circus Maximus Forum of Augustus Emporium Mausoleum of Augustus Theatre of Pompey Forum Julium Basilica Julia Circus Flaminius Forum RiverTiber Quirinal Hill Viminal Hill Esquiline Hill Palatine Hill Caelian Hill Aventine Hill Capitoline Hill CAMPUS MARTIUS Via Praenestina Via Latina Campus Vaticanus Pagus Janiculensis Aurelian Wall Via Nomentana Via Flaminia Via Portuensis Via Ostiensis Via Ardeatina Via Appia Servian Wall Via Aurelia Via Tiburtina Vetus Via Tiburtina N 3 Rome road wall gate bridge aqueduct Republican buildings Augustan buildings later Imperial buildings 0 500 m 0 500 yds ART, WAR AND EMPIRE THE MEDITERRANEAN AD 100–300 exotic products of India and Sri Lanka (such as gems, perfumes and spices), and of equatorial Africa (ivory and black slaves). Although by modern standards the Romans did not really change the nature of the planet, the historian Tacitus places in the mouth of a British chieftain Calgacus sentiments that sound modern in their environmental alarm: ‘Brigands of the world, they have ruined the land by their indiscriminate robbery, and now they ransack the sea ... Theft, murder and rape, the liars call empire; they create a desolation and call it peace’ (Tacitus, Agricola 30). While some of the items imported or extracted had few redeeming features (the slave trade and the trade in wild animals), others allowed the creation of new categories of art, decoration and dress. The coloured marbles from Mons Porphyrites in Egypt became elegant columns in Imperial buildings; amber from the Baltic and a great variety of precious stones from Afghanistan and India, including lapis lazuli, garnets and even sapphires were worked into jewellery in Rome, Aquileia and elsewhere; fragments of silk from China have been found as far to the west as York, while the spice trade had a direct effect on art as seen in distinctive pepper pots. LOCAL SCHOOLS AND MATERIALS Despite the large numbers of statues carved from marbles quarried in Greece, Asia Minor or Italy (Carrara), in many regions of the Empire, including the northwestern provinces (Gaul and Britain), the Balkans and Syria sculptors worked in local limestones and sandstones. These works are often far more individual, perhaps because they were not normally exported. 2 OUTSIDE THE MEDITERRANEAN most provinces were self-sufficient in their basic needs, and mainly traded luxury items. Within the Mediterranean trade was important for a wider variety of goods (to make up for occasional crop failures or the lack of certain raw materials). Particularly important for art were the numerous stone quarries. Though most were of only local significance, some provided stone across the Empire, which was transported in unhewn blocks or as partially worked pieces, such as columns or sarcophagi which would be finished on site. There were huge stone depots at Ostia and Rome. Coloured marbles were much sought after for decorating walls and pavements and also for statuary, but the most important trade was in white marble. The best-known quarries for these were in Greece and Asia Minor, such as those providing marble for sculpture from Pentelikon in Greece. DETAIL FROM A MOSAIC (‘The Great Hunt’) from the Villa Filosofiana near Piazza Armerina, Sicily, showing the embarcation of an antelope (perhaps at Carthage) destined for the amphitheatre at Rome (c.AD 300, preserved in situ). 30° 40° 50° 0° 10° 20° 30° Cu Cu Londinium Augusta Trevirorum Colonia Agrippinensis Mogontiacum Augusta Vindelicorum Mediolanum Bononia Salonae Carnuntum Syracuse Tarentum Nicomedia Sinope Athens Rome Ostia Lugdunum Byzantium Narbo Tarraco Carthago NovaCorduba Emerita Augusta Tingis Caesarea Gades A T L A N T I C O C E A N N O R T H S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A B L A C K S E A RED SEA BRITANNIA GERMANIA INFERIOR GERMANIA SUPERIOR BELGICA LUGDUNENSIS AQUITANIA NARBONENSIS TARRACONENSIS LUSITANIA BAETICA MAURETANIA TINGITANA MAURETANIA CAESARIENSIS NUMIDIA CYRENAICA AEGYPTUS ARABIA JUDAEA CYPRUS CILICIA CRETA SICILIA ITALIA SARDINIA CORSICA ALPES COTTIAE ALPES MARITIMAE ALPES POENINAE EPIRUS ACHAEA MACEDONIA LYCIA-PAMPHYLIA DALMATIA PANNONIA NORICUM RAETIA DACIA THRACIA MOESIA INFERIORMOESIA SUPERIOR CAPPADOCIA A S I A GALATIA BITHYNIA AND PONTUS S Y R I A A F R I C A Hadrian’s Wall from Afghanistan/ India from India/ Sri Lanka/ S Arabia from China from China N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms Almost every city had its workshops of wallpainters and stuccoists, including Rome (note the catacombs) and Ostia – and ranging from Verulamium and Colonia Agrippina in the west to Leptis Magna in Tripolitania to Dura Europos (with its strikingly beautiful painted synagogue) on the eastern border of the empire. Funerary portraits on wooden panels from the Faiyum in Egypt are good evidence for portable painting, which was probably widespread. Mosaicists used mainly local stones, together with glass and pottery, and the work of regional workshops can often be recognized, for instance those of Antioch, Cyprus, Carthage and Augusta Trevirorum (Trier). No less than six distinctive schools have been recognized in Britain alone, though even here they drew on a common stock of ideas, originally brought in by artists from other provinces or else recorded in portable media, such as illustrated scrolls and, later, books. In this respect the most important material in the empire was probably papyrus from the Nile Delta, the main medium for permanent record-keeping (though in northwestern Europe slivers of wood were often used as substitutes). In the late Roman period parchment was used for luxury books, and there was a vast manufacture from animal skins ranging through dyed and gilded leathers to utilitarian objects such as boots and horsetrappings. Ultimately, the art of the Empire rested on insatiable consumerism. AKEY FACTOR IN the development of art in the Roman Empire was the wealth derived from agriculture – wine, olive oil, grain, and to a more limited degree, the produce of the sea – which created aristocracies able to purchase art on a large scale. The other determining influence was the geographical scope and variety of the empire. The terrain in many regions was difficult, for example, the mountains of the Balkans, the hinterland of Asia Minor, the Atlas Mountains and even northern Britain, and areas of desert in parts of the Levant, Egypt and North Africa. Thus, communication by sea was often more reliable than that by land, though the Mediterranean has yielded many shipwrecks (the density around France and Italy merely reflects the focus of recent marine archaeology). Few men travelled through the entire Empire – Hadrian (AD 117–138) was exceptional in this respect. Provinces and even parts of provinces always differed markedly from one another, and almost every town of any size had its own traditions in arts such as sculpture and mosaic as it did in mundane crafts such as pottery. Nevertheless, culture, based on the universal use of Greek and Latin, the idea of the city as the basis for civilized life, and efforts to standardize dress and the appearance (if not the substance) of religious cult lent the Empire unity. ART, WAR AND EMPIRE THE MEDITERRANEAN AD 100-300 68 1 SILVER HOARDS have been found all across the Empire, particularly in the north and west, though silverware was equally valued in the east. The quality of the craftsmanship, together with the value of the material, made it a much-traded commodity, though little is known of the individual silversmiths. Mosaic schools arose in almost every major town of the empire, and especially in Asia Minor and North Africa. Mosaic pavements became a very popular art form, and genuine regional schools developed with their own distinctive styles. By contrast, the models for the local sculpture schools frequently came from far away. Often local sculptors adapted classical models in ways that suggested little understanding of the canons of classical art. TRANSPORTING ART AND MATERIALS Despite great difficulties, works of art and raw materials were extensively transported, as shown by the well-studied finds of silver hoards, and Attic and Proconnesian sarcophagi in map 2 (the last two are types of sarcophagi named after their regions of main production). The trade in marble and metals provides another graphic instance: both were often extracted from almost inaccessible mountainous regions, though the building of roads, bridges and large ships with substantial port facilities made this prodigious exploitation of natural resources possible. From the edges of the Roman world and beyond came the 30° 40° 50° 0° 10° 20° 30° 40° Colonia Agrippina Glanum Pompeii Thamugadi Caesarea Lixus Volubilis Italica Conimbriga Sabratha Delos Paphos Augusta Emerita Luguvallium Corinium Verulamium Camulodunum Aquae Sulis Augusta Trevirorum Celeia Sarmisegetuza Adamklissi Lugdunum Vienna Augustodunum Agedincum Aventicum Salonae Carthage Leptis Magna Pergamum Proconnesus Aphrodisias Palmyra Dura Europos Hatra Syracuse Agrigentum Tarentum Dyrrhachium Neapolis Athens Corinth Sparta Alexandria Ascalon Philadelphia Fayum Tyre Ephesus Rhodes Cyrene Berenice Antioch Sidon Attaleia Tarsus Rome Ostia Pisae Aquileia Byzantium Thessalonica NaissusNarbo Arelate Burdigala Tarraco Nemausus Nile Ebro Loire Seine Rhône Danube Tagus Gar onne Po Tiber A T L A N T I C O C E A N N O R T H S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A B L A C K S E A RED SEA AEGEAN SEA PYRENEES CYPRUS CRETE SICILY SARDINIA A F R I C A BALEARIC IS CORSICA gem and amber working N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 Art in the Roman Empire Roman Empire local sculpture schools major mosaic workshops finds of Proconnesian sarcophagi finds of Attic sarcophagi Roman imperial silver hoards painting 2 Trade in the Roman Empire Roman Empire province boundaries Roman roads site of 4 or more shipwrecks major sources of traded items: gold silver copper tin iron lead finished bronze items glass jet amber Cu papyrus Samian pottery grain olive oil wine spices silks perfumes gems ivory slaves wild beasts major quarries of decorative stones (marble, coloured stones, porphyries, granites) M BACCHUS SUPPORTED BY A SATYR – an amber figurine of the third century, found in a tomb at Esch in the Netherlands. Amber was a prized luxury, believed to possess magical powers. It was obtained from the Baltic, worked in Aquileia, northern Italy – where amber figurines and ornaments have been found in quantity – and disseminated throughout the Roman world. 69 EUROPE AD 300–600 71 and at Cologne. The latter industry, perhaps in part in the hands of Syrian craftsmen, survived the end of Roman control in the fifth century and was involved in making claw-beakers and other barbarian types. ‘Cage’ cups in g1ass (cups with an openwork outer layer) seem to have been widespread, made in both western and eastern workshops. It is probable that the models were far more precious vessels in hard stone. Finally, gold glasses – that is, layered glasses ornamented with thin sheets of gold leaf showing portraits, Christian scenes and (very occasionally) Jewish or pagan subjects – are associated with Rome and were sometimes employed decoratively in the catacombs. The most characteristic of the precious materials used at this time was elephant ivory – normally for small boxes (generally with biblical scenes) or decorative plaques, often hinged together to comprise an invitation to a wedding. Sometimes much larger objects were made, such as Bishop Maximian’s throne at Ravenna. Not only was ivory very beautiful and capable of taking excellent carving, but it was also very expensive. Quite clearly ivory was a suitable homage to pay an emperor. One of the finest surviving diptych-leaves shows Justinian on horseback and various offerings being brought to him, including an elephant tusk. Other diptych-leaves show lion and stag hunts, demonstrating the same cavalier attitude to animal resources displayed by ‘The Great Hunt’ mosaic from Piazza Armerina (see p.69). The superb cypress doors of St Sabina, Rome (early fifth century), carved with biblical scenes, stand for the widespread use of timber, decorative as well as functional. Surviving timber lintels and beams in Cairo and at St Catherine’s Monastery, Mount Sinai, suggest that wood-carving achieved real distinction at this time. Large timbers were in fact required to roof all the large basilicas and argue a long tradition of organized forest management. Underlying the surprising achievements of the Late Empire was an enormous volume of trade. For example, fifth- and sixth-century wine and oil amphorae are found in bulk throughout the Mediterranean and beyond at sites like Tintagel in Cornwall. This exchange of commodities helped to support patronage. SPLENDID SILKS AND JEWELLED METALWORK in this wall mosaic in St Vitale, Ravenna (AD 546–547) of the Emperor Justinian and his retinue emphasize luxury and eastern contacts. 30° 30° 40° 20°10° 0° 30° Paris Dorchester Sparta Toulouse Rouen Trier Córdoba Complutum (Alcalá de Henares) Pedrosa de la Vega Cologne Pisa Valence- sur-BaiseServiac Tarragona Desenzano Centcelles Cádiz Bordeaux Nantes Balline Balinrees Toledo Thuburbo Maius Thamugadi (Timgad) Marseille Milan Kaiseraugst Cagliari Lyon Piazza Armerina Sabrata Ostia Memphis Sinop Durrës London York Cirencester Water Newton Mildenhall Hoxne Canterbury Brough-on-Humber Traprain Law Corbridge Arles Aquileia Porec Ravenna Rome Naples Ephesus Sardis Antioch Zeugma St Catherine’s Monastery Carthage Nicopolis Argos Alexandria Thessalonica Trebizond Nebo Apamea Palmyra Nea Paphos Madaba Tiberias Ma`on Nirim Jerusalem Tyre Hama Constantinople Solin A F R I C A SCANDINAVIA BRITAIN BALKANS LEVANT I B E R I A ITALY GREECE E G Y P T GAUL ASIA MINOR CORSICA SARDINIA SICILY CRETE CYPRUS BALEARIC IS ALPS A T L A S M T S PYRENEES CAUCASUS S A H A R A ARABIAN DESERT Mt Sinai D niester Rhone L oire Tagus Ebr o R hine Elbe Oder N ile D anube NORTH SEA BALTIC SEA M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A T L A N T I C O C E A N B L A C K S E A RED SEA N 0 0 300 miles 450 kms 2 Late Roman Art African Red Slip Ware, 6th century AD Phocaean Ware, mid-5th-6th century AD finds of silver plate, 4th century AD glass-making centres major churches with surviving vault mosaics late Roman floor mosaics late Roman sarcophagi maritime trade routes L ycus S E A O F M A R M A R A ( P r o p o n t i s ) G O LDE N H O RN (Chry sokeras) BOSPORUS KASHMIR PSAMATHIA EXOKI O NION P HANARION EXOPHILOPAT ION PHILADELPHION XEROLOPHOS DEUTERON XEROLOPHOS PEMPTON BLACHERNAE STRATEGION SYCAE ACROPOLIS TRITON BLANGA Harbour of Theodosius Cistern of St Mocius Golden Gate Cistern of Aetius Gate of Charisius Church of the Mother of God Gate of Plataea Cistern of Aspar Aqueduct of Valens Harbour of Kontoskalion Hippodrome Augusteum Hagia Sophia St Irene Baths of Zeuxippus Imperial Palace Forum of Constantine Sts Sergius and Bacchus Forum of Theodosius Forum of Arcadius Church of the Holy Apostles mese mese WallofTheodosius(AD 413) WallofConstantine(AD 330) N 0 0 1 miles 1.5 kms 3 Constantinople wall cistern major building built-up area by c. AD 413 church 2 MARITIME TRADE continued to flourish, servicing the Justinianic revival of the sixth century, with African and Levantine pottery reaching as far as western Britain. The Late Roman dominus and domina passed their lives in mosaic-floored rooms, being served from silver vessels. Equal opulence was evident in Christian church vaults and floors, sparkling with mosaic. 33 CONSTANTINOPLE was founded by Constantine I in 324 on the European side of the Bosporus, and maintained by his successors as a capital to rival Rome itself, with its great Theodosian walls, several fora, the hippodrome, the imperial palace and many churches, especially Hagia Sophia. It remained the eastern capital until 1453. ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 70 THE LATE ROMAN EMPIRE includes periods of political dislocation, invasion, civil unrest and famine. However, throughout the Roman and former Roman provinces, from Britain to Syria, the art continued to be rich. There is impressive evidence for long-distance trade reaching, as earlier, into sub-equatorial Africa for ivory, to India for gems and spices and even to China for silks, though in Justinian’s time the secret of the silk worm and silk manufacture came to Constantinople. Most patronage was now private, wealth being lavished in particular on the palatial houses of the aristocracy. Mosaic floors survive in considerable numbers and can often be assigned to particular workshops – for instance, those of the Cirencester region in Britain, Carthage in North Africa, Nea Paphos in Cyprus, Sparta in Greece and Antioch and Apamea in Syria. Veined marbles were still widely used and are commented on by writers. There was some use and re-use of marble sculpture. However, the only substantial sculpture trade was in marble sarcophagi, which now often had Christian scenes. The sarcophagi were often placed in or around churches. Churches and baptisteries were patronized by emperors like Constantine (St Peter’s in Rome and the Holy Sepulchre in Jerusalem), or Justinian (Hagia Sophia in Constantinople), or else by churchmen, such as Bishop Patiens at Lyon, Bishop Ambrose at Mediolanum (Milan) or Bishop Neon at Ravenna. The church of St Vitale at Ravenna, though dedicated by Bishop Maximian, was financed by a banker called Julianus. Not only were such buildings – with their marble and mosaic décor – public displays of wealth and power for this life, they ensured the pious donor repose in the next, especially when interred near the remains of holy men. In Palestine, and sometimes elsewhere, especially in Asia Minor (for example, at Sardis), similar patronage was lavished by rich Jews on wellappointed synagogues. The minor arts are of especial interest. Some of the silver treasures are very large – for instance, those from Mildenhall, England, and from Kaiseraugst, Switzerland, or the so-called Sevso Treasure, possibly from Hungary. Many of the vessels used at table are chased with scenes from mythology, hunting and feasting. Contacts with the east are shown not only by pepper pots to include this much prized spice but by the evident influence of western silver on that of Sasanian Persia, which in its turn was a model for the plate of western China. Intricate workmanship was much prized, whether in the cutting of sheet gold into openwork patterns, inlaying gold or silver with niello (silver sulphide) or the skilful setting of gems in jewellery. The so-called barbarian peoples in Visigothic Spain, Frankish Gaul and Anglo-Saxon Britain produced their own distinctive cloisonné jewellery. Here, too, a taste for texture and the radiance of gems (often brought in from the east, together with cowrie shells and bronze vessels) is a feature. Glass manufacture was carried on wherever suitable sands existed, especially in the Levant EUROPE AD 300-600 A SILVER-GILT PEPPER POT (piperatorium), one of four from a rich treasure buried at Hoxne, Suffolk, in the fifth century and now held in the British Museum in London. This one takes the form of a Late Roman empress. Its style suggests that it was made in northwest Europe, perhaps even in Britain, but the precious pepper it contained was imported from India. 30° 30° 40° 20°10° 0° 30° Paris Troyes Trier Córdoba Cologne Genova Pisae Narbonne Bordeaux Saragossa Tarragona Cádiz Toledo Marseille Mediolanum Caralis Lyon Lisbon Besançon Leptis Magna Memphis Cyrene Sinope London York St Albans Arles Geneva Aquileia Ravenna Rome Naples Ephesus Antioch St Catherine’s Monastery Carthage Sabratha Nicopolis Athens Alexandria Philippi Thessalonica Trapezus Damascus Caesarea Bethlehem Jerusalem Mosul Constantinople Nicomedia S L A V S P I C T S C E L T S BASQUES B E R B E R S F I N N O U G R I A N S S L A V S IRISH BRITONS IRISH A F R I C A SCANDINAVIA BRITAIN I B E R I A ITALY GREECE E G Y P T GAUL ASIA MINOR CORSICA SARDINIA SICILY CRETE CYPRUS BA LEARIC IS A L P S A T L A S M T S PYRENEES CAUCASUS S A H A R A ARABIAN DESERT Mt Sinai Dnieper D niester RhôneLoire Tagus Elbe Oder N ile Danube N O R T H S E A BALTIC SEA M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A ENGLISH CHA N N EL A T L A N T I C O C E A N B L A C K S E A RED S EA 370 376 455 410 439 418 406 452 N 0 0 300 miles 450 kms 1 The Disintegration of the Roman Empire important churches Huns Vandals,Alans, Sueves Visigoths Burgundians Ostrogoths Angles, Saxons, Jutes Lombards Franks Empire of Justinian, AD 565 successor kingdoms: East Roman Empire Kingdom of the Vandals Kingdom of the Visigoths Burgundian Kingdom Kingdom of the Ostrogoths Sasanian Empire Kingdom of the Sueves Frankish Kingdom 1 THREATENED BY BARBARIANS through the fourth century and especially in the fifth century, the western empire collapsed, though many elements of its culture survived. The eastern empire was eventually able to deflect its enemies. Mainly of Germanic origin, the barbarians were forced westwards by pressure from the nomads of central Asia. AFRICA 500 BC–AD 600 73 the name of a queen, Shanakdakhete. It is, outside Egypt, the earliest writing in Africa. AXUM The city of Axum, located high on the Ethiopian plateau, was the centre of a kingdom which by the fourth century AD was a power in northeast Africa and was responsible for the collapse of Meroë in about AD 350. By this time the people of Axum had developed a writing system for their own language, Ge’ez. This system was originally derived from the writing of ancient south Arabia. The Ge’ez language is now used only in the rituals of the Ethiopian church, but it is the basis for the modern Amharic script. Some inscriptions have also been found in Greek, since a trade route had been opened to the Mediterranean via the Red Sea, and Greek merchants had come to Axum bringing their language with them. The main port was at Adulis on the Red Sea coast, and 50˚40˚30˚20˚10˚ 30˚ 20˚ 20˚ 30˚ 10˚ 10˚ 0˚ Taruga Nok Samun Dukiya Jenne Taghaza Mogador Taoudenni Bilma Meroë Axum Musawwarat es-Sufra Nuri Napata Kawa Lydenburg Alexandria Memphis Thebes Syene Philae Niger Benue Congo Zamb ezi Nile BlueNile WhiteNile Lake Victoria Lake Chad Lake Rudolf Lake Tanganyika Lake Nyasa A T L A N T I C O C E A N I N D I A N O C E A N M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A R E D S E A K A L A H A R I D E S E R T W E S T E R N D E S E R T S A H A R A TASSILI PLATEAU TIBESTI JEBEL OWEINATHOGGAR ETHIOPIAN HIGHLANDS ATLAS MOUNTAINS NAMIBDESERT salt,ivory,gold, animalskins,slaves Cowrie shells from the Indian Ocean to Meroë. Used in the decorative arts from AD 100. Domestic cattle everywhere in Africa except heavily forested areas by AD 600 Pottery in southern Africa by AD 100 Sheep and goats in eastern southern Africa by AD 300 Yam cultivation from AD 100 c. AD 400-500 c.500 BC-AD 200 salt,glass,pottery,m etalwork N 0 0 500 miles 700 kms 1 Iron Age Africa, 500 BC-AD 600 frontier of the Roman Empire in AD 300 probable limits of domestic cattle, c.500 BC spread of domestic animals and cereals salt deposits main trans-Saharan trade routes earliest known iron-working spread of iron working main rock art areas rock art showing wheeled chariots terracotta sculpture 1 SEVERAL IMPORTANT DEVELOPMENTS took place at this time, of which the most important for subsequent development in Africa was the appearance of iron-smelting. The map shows the two best-known iron-smelting sites, Meroë and Taruga, both of which flourished in the 5th century BC. Another important change was the spread of domestic animals southwards. The main areas of rock art are indicated and the ones in the Sahara are of special interest because they show many illustrations of chariots, which appear to indicate routes across what by this time had become desert. AXUMITE STELA. This monolithic stone stela marks a royal burial at Axum. It is 21 metres (68 ft) in height, and with 3 further metres (10 ft) underground, it represents a royal building with nine storeys. One even taller stela, shattered by a fall, lies nearby. It is likely that royal residences were built with façades like this. Simpler, undecorated pillars may mark important, nonroyal burials. traces of foreign merchants’ activities have been found there. The inscriptions provide information about the rulers and their military activities, such as the attack by King Aezanes on Meroë, and military expeditions to south Arabia by King Kaleb in the sixth century AD. Axum is best-known for the massive stone stelae erected to mark royal burials, as well as simpler, monolithic pillars that probably mark important, non-royal burials. Recent archaeological excavations in the area of the group of stelae on the edge of the present-day town of Axum have revealed some of the underlying royal tombs, and though many of these had been plundered, a number of luxury objects brought to Axum by Mediterranean trade have been found. The Axumite kingdom was, apart from Ptolemaic Egypt, the first in Africa to produce a coinage, and many coins are known. Some have a cross on the reverse showing that Christianity had reached the area by the early centuries AD and gradually superseded the pagan relgions of earlier times. Because the earliest Christian missionaries came from Egypt, the Ethiopian church became associated with the Coptic church of Egypt, and until recently the head of the church was always appointed by the Coptic patriarch in Egypt. ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 72 DURING THIS PERIOD there was an increase in human control over Africa’s natural resources. The smelting of iron became common throughout much of the continent and, wherever climatic conditions made it possible, there was a development of crop-growing and animal husbandry. The earliest iron-producing sites were associated with the famous Nok terracotta figures at Taruga in Nigeria, and at Meroë in the Sudan. At both places iron was being smelted and tools and weapons were being made from the sixth century BC. Throughout the Sahara there are many rock paintings and engravings showing light, horse-drawn vehicles, and their distribution may indicate routes from the Mediterranean towards the River Niger. By the beginning of the second century BC, a large town existed at Jenne, where the earliest cultivation of African rice took place. There, and in many other places along the valley of the Niger, elaborate terracotta figures, many depicting warriors on horseback, were made. TERRACOTTAS During the early centuries of this period in SubSaharan Africa the main art forms were terracotta heads, and sometimes complete figures, which have been found at several places. The best-known are those of the Nok culture discovered throughout the Jos plateau of northern Nigeria. Many of these pieces were found in the course of mining for tin. At two small ancient villages located at Taruga and Samun Dukiya, examples of terracotta art as well as evidence for iron smelting were found. These domestic traces are dated to between 300 and 100 BC, but some Nok pieces are earlier. Much further south, pottery heads of humans and one of an unidentified animal and belonging to a different tradition, dating to the fifth century AD or later, have been found at Lydenburg in South Africa. Their use is not known but the two largest could have been used as masks. CENTRAL AFRICA This region has been much less studied than the rest of the African continent, and dense forest in some areas has been an obstacle to research. Iron-smelting was widespread from about 500 BC, and characteristic pottery types are known from village sites. Iron-smelting took place throughout the area, and may indicate that Bantu-speaking people settled there. Others moved south in what has become known as the ‘Bantu migration’; as a result, related Bantu languages are now spoken widely over the whole of central and southern Africa. The spread of these languages has been much discussed and there are several theories as to how they came to dominate the area. The Bantu language may have originated in Cameroon, and it has been suggested that agriculture, animal herding, ironworking and pottery-making were all associated with speakers of Bantu languages, who ultimately spread throughout southern Africa. MEROË There is more information available about the cultures of the Nile Valley, and the presence of a literate civilization in Egypt enables archaeologists to precisely date events. The Egyptians penetrated south of the first cataract of the Nile at Philae and subsequently ruled northern Nubia from c.1550 BC. When Egyptian rule was withdrawn from the area in c.1100 BC an indigenous state arose which, by 500 BC, had developed a culture based on two towns, Napata and Meroë. By that date it is likely that Meroë was where the rulers lived, though their burials continued to be near Napata until early in the third century BC. From that date, the rulers were buried at Meroë and continued to be interred there until the collapse of the Meroitic kingdom in the fourth century AD. The town of Meroë consists of a large area of domestic houses built of sun-dried mud bricks, and a royal palace, parts of which are built of sandstone. There were several temples, also built of sandstone. In one part of the town were the furnaces for iron-smelting, for which ancient Meroë has become famous in modern times. The people of Meroë developed a writing system based on an Egyptian model but used their signs as an alphabet of 23 letters. The earliest use of this writing system that can be dated is of the early second century BC, although it was probably in use before that date. It gives AFRICA 500 BC-AD 600 40˚30˚ 20˚ 30˚ Cu L C B S S S Syene Philae Kalabsha Faras Amara Kawa Old Dongola Jebel Barkal Kurru Nuri Napata to c.300 BC Meroë Wad ben Naqa Musawwarat es-Sufra from c. 300 BC Naqa 50 BC-c. AD 50 Soba Sennar Jebel Moya Adulis Axum Matara Nile Atbara BlueNile First Cataract Second Cataract Third Cataract Fourth Cataract Fifth Cataract Sixth Cataract Lake Tana WhiteNile N U B I A N D E S E R T W E S T E R N D E S E R T S A H A R A ISLAND OF MEROË Meroitic cemetery, 300 BC-AD 250 Axumite royal-stela burial c.AD 250-700 664 BCc.AD 310 295 BC-c.AD 320 20 BC-c.AD 20 R E D S E A GULF OF ADEN N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms Resources: gold copper limestone calcite (Egyptian alabaster) basalt sandstone fertile area pastoralism desert tracks Cu L C B S 2 THIS MAP OF THE NILE to the south of Egypt shows activities, towns and royal palaces in the kingdom of Meroë and the surrounding area until just after the arrival of Christian missionaries in the middle of the sixth century AD. It also shows the area of the Axumite kingdom and the main trade routes of the period which made use of the Red Sea and went via the Gulf of Aden as far as India. Aezanes, king of Axum in c.AD 350, invaded Meroë as described in an inscription in Greek in Axum. Two Axumite inscriptions, again in Greek, as well as a coin have also been found at Meroë. TERRACOTTA HEAD from the Nok culture of northern Nigeria, dated to approximately the fifth century BC. The Nok culture is believed to have lasted for a few hundred years. Many figurines are now known from this artistic tradition and from excavations at Taruga. Nok culture is known to be contemporary with the earliest known iron-smelting from Sub-Saharan Africa. It is likely that many of the heads were part of complete figures but none have yet been found. The Upper Nile, 500 BC-AD 600 extent of Meroë, 500 BC-AD 350 extent of Axum, AD 300-700 Meroitic attack on Egypt, c. 23 BC Roman attack, 23 BC Axumite invasion, AD 350 Egyptian town with temple royal pyramid burials Meroitic town, with date of temple-building trade routes probable trade routes 2 THE NILE VALLEY 500 BC–AD 300 75 In urban and domestic art, new products and techniques were developed or improved upon, such as glassblowing, bronze casting and mould-made pottery figurines. A popular Egyptian product was faience, a quartz mixture that was moulded, glazed and fired to a green or blue colour for small sculptures, bowls, vases and other objects. Glass and ceramic vessel forms and decoration styles parallel developments elsewhere in the eastern Mediterranean. They attest to the extent of communication and trade in this region. Egypt’s caravan, road and seafaring routes gave it a pivotal military and economic position, and the arts and crafts within Egypt were affected by the movement of people and ideas. SOCIAL AND ARTISTIC CHANGE Whereas Persian rule had minimal effect on Egyptian cultural life, the Greeks had a great impact. Greek culture was transmitted first through trade contacts, especially in the Delta, and, under the Ptolemies, through immigrants. As Egypt was transformed into a Hellenistic kingdom and then a Roman province, changes in its administration altered the country’s social structure and, consequently, the make-up of the elite. In the Roman period, status depended not only on wealth but also on social standing, through belonging to the gymnasium, holding a local office, and having Roman, Alexandrian, or metropolitan citizenship, all of which were highly desirable and stringently regulated. Egypt came to value Greek products and art forms, sometimes adapting them in local materials. For instance, popular figural themes like grotesques (exaggerated depictions of the poor and infirm) were reproduced in terracotta figurines. The postures and costumes standard to Greek and Roman sculpture, where they would be executed in marble, were carved in plentiful Egyptian limestone, as were classical architectural elements such as columns, friezes and capitals. Cities enjoyed Greek and Roman features like baths, theatres and colonnaded streets with public statuary. Larger buildings and houses might have mosaic floors, and smaller houses might have a painted wall scene or small niche for statuettes, for religious observances at home. Conventional Egyptian art and architecture became increasingly specialized for use in temples and the funerary sphere. Egyptian deities were widely worshipped and some, especially Isis, had flourishing cults throughout the Mediterranean. Few people funded tombs or statues for themselves, but the decoration of mummies was often elaborate and used versatile materials such as cartonnage, plaster and painted linen or wood. Some funerary art included portraits of the deceased, executed in the naturalistic style of Greek and Roman art and depicting contemporary fashions in hair, clothing and jewellery. Hawara er-Rubayat Arsinoe Narmouthis Theadelphia Tebtunis Herakleopolis Magna Karanis Bacchias Philadelphia Soknopaiou Nesos Dionysias Lake Moeris Bahr Yu suf N 0 0 10 miles 10 kms 2 TEMPLES TO THE EGYPTIAN GODS continued to be built throughout the Ptolemaic and Roman periods, further developing traditional forms and themes. Sculpted relief was of the highest quality and depicted myths and rites alongside elaborate hieroglyphic texts. The temple of Horus at Edfu, seen here in a nineteenthcentury lithograph, is the most intact of the surviving temples. On its outer pylon, Ptolemy XII is depicted as a pharaoh smiting his enemies. 2 LAND RECLAMATION AND GREEK IMMIGRANTS made the Faiyum the most populous and agriculturally abundant region in Egypt. Thousands of papyri from this period have been found there – written primarily in Greek and providing a detailed glimpse of day to day life. Towns and temples in the Faiyum used a variety of art and architecture, and in several local cemeteries, mummified bodies were buried with masks and painted portraits that combined Egyptian, Greek and Roman forms. 2 The Greco-Roman Faiyum, AD 100 fertile area extent of lake in Roman period extent of lake in Ptolemaic period temple bath complex papyrus findspot glass findspot mummy portrait findspot mummy mask findspot ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 74 art. Instead, construction of Egyptian temples continued even in physically remote areas like the Kharga Oasis, where a temple was decorated under the reign of Darius I (c.500 BC). All the oases in the western desert, as well as desert routes south to Nubia, became more accessible following the Persian introduction of the camel. Persian rule was resented, and Egyptian rebels tried to re-establish native rule. Alexander the Great and his armies were welcomed as liberators from the Persians. Egypt became a kingdom ruled from Alexandria by Ptolemy, a Macedonian Greek general whose heirs governed Egypt, Cyprus and parts of Cyrenaica (modern Libya) until 30 BC, when Rome annexed Egypt as a province. At the beginning of the Ptolemaic period, Greek settlers from the eastern Aegean brought their own cultural institutions and art forms but intermarried to some extent with Egyptians. After AD 284, the Emperor Diocletian divided the Roman Empire in two, and Egypt, an early centre of Christianity, became part of the eastern empire, which was governed from Constantinople (modern Istanbul). TRADE, MATERIALS AND TECHNIQUES Egypt’s natural resources were valuable exports, especially grain, papyrus, precious metals and luxurious stones. Egypt sent wheat to Rome, and later to Constantinople, and also supplied the Mediterranean world with papyrus sheets for writing material. Stone quarries in the eastern desert provided porphyry, a hard purple-hued stone, for the columns of the Pantheon in Rome and for imperial sculptures. Romans transported works of art from Egypt to Italy, both to symbolize conquest and to satisfy their fascination with an exotic, alien culture. Within Egypt, extensive construction in these years required ample supplies of building materials. Existing urban areas were added to in order to create new structures with both Greek and Egyptian architectural forms and decorations. Recently established cities such as Alexandria (founded 332 BC) and Antinoopolis (founded AD 130) were built from almost nothing. Traditional Egyptian art was fostered in the many temples built or rebuilt with funding from the state, especially under the Ptolemies. Temples at Dendera, Esna, Edfu, Kom Ombo, Philae and Kalabsha, date from the Ptolemaic and Roman periods. EGYPT AND EGYPTIAN ART after 500 BC are enmeshed with the Mediterranean and Asia. The country was under Persian control from 525 to 404 BC. Kings based in the Delta were able to reassert native rule only until a second Persian invasion in 343 BC. From then on, Egypt was ruled by foreigners: Alexander the Great in 332 BC, the Ptolemaic dynasty from 304 BC and the Romans from 30 BC. The dominance of Greek culture brought sweeping social, economic and artistic changes. The Persians governed from Persepolis (in modern Iran) and appointed Egyptian officials, called satraps, to act for them locally. There was little interaction between Persian and Egyptian THE NILE VALLEY 500 BC-AD 300 30˚ 35˚ 30˚ Thmuis Arsinoe Panopolis Coptos Syene (Aswan) Berenike Oxyrhynchus Memphis Paraetonium Pelusium Gaza Edfu Esna Hermopolis Magna Kom Ombo Philae Kalabsha Dendera Diospolis Magna (Thebes) Hibis Alexandria Naukratis Antinoopolis Ptolemais Hermiou Via Hadriana E G Y P T EASTERN DESERT W E S T E R N D E S E R T SINAI FAIYUM Nile BahrYusuf Delta Trajan’s Canal M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A R E D S E A First cataract Bahariya Oasis Siwa Oasis Farafra Oasis Dakhla Oasis Kharga Oasis N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 Sites and Monuments fertile area Roman road desert route polis native temple known church STATUES CARVED FROM HARD, DARK STONE and given a fine polish were a hallmark of Egyptian art during this period. Sculptors evoked the past by adapting earlier artistic forms, and the short kilt and tightly curled wig on this fourth-century BC statue recall Old Kingdom styles. A hieroglyphic inscription on the back invokes three Egyptian gods. 1 GREEK SETTLEMENT IN EGYPT began with Naukratis, a trading colony founded in the seventh century BC. Alexander the Great added a second Greek city (polis) when he established a new capital at Alexandria. A third, Ptolemais Hermiou, was founded soon after by Ptolemy I. The cities were vital to the spread of Greek, and later Roman, culture, especially art and architecture. They provided social centres, such as the gymnasium and baths, as well as theatres and hippodromes. Although such amenities were originally put in place for Greek settlers, they were adopted along with other aspects of Hellenism by a growing portion of the population in urban areas. Antinoopolis was the last Greek polis founded in Egypt; it was established by the emperor Hadrian in AD 130 during his tour of the country. NORTH AFRICA AD 300–600 77 30˚ 30˚ Mt Sinai Monastery of the Burning Bush, now St Catherine’s 1st cataract Alexandria Menapolis / Abu Mena Kellia Memphis / Saqqara Oxyrhynchus Panopolis (Akhmim) Antinoopolis (Antinoe) Hawara St Antonios St Paulos Herakleopolis Magna Bawit (Apa Apollo) Hermonthis (Armant) Bagawat Latopolis (Esna) Nile M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A R E D S E A S I NA I RED SEA H ILLS WESTERN DESERT DAKHLA OASIS BAHARIYA OASIS EASTERN DESERT L O W E R E G Y P T ARABIA White Monastery of Apa Shenoute site of the Burning Bush and handing down of the Ten Commandments fr om W M editerranean from the Holy Land (Tomb of St Menas) (Apa Jeremia) N 0 0 120 miles 180 kms 2 CHRISTIANITY WAS widespread in Egypt by the beginning of the fourth century, and had a major effect on the country’s landscape. The rise of ascetic monasticism in the villages of Egypt in the fourth century led to the creation of monasteries at the juncture between settled land and desert. Two major pilgrimage sites were also located in Egypt: the shrine of St Menas, near Alexandria, and the monastery at Mt Sinai. These acted as a focus for artistic patronage and production, much of which has a distinctive regional Egyptian character. DOMINUS JULIUS MOSAIC. A grand country villa, complete with its private bath house, is surrounded by scenes of rural activity corresponding to the four seasons on this late fourth-century mosaic from Carthage. In the top register the mistress of the house is offered products of the land, amid depictions of olive harvesting (winter) and a shepherd with his flock (summer). The middle register shows the master arriving at the villa on horseback, together with preparations for a hunt, while in the bottom register the mistress of the house is presented with flowers and a necklace. In the lower right-hand corner a grape-harvester (representing autumn), is shown behind the master who is being handed a scroll addressed to ‘Lord [Dominus] Julius’. Such scenes of agricultural prosperity hint at the source of the wealth of the North African urban elite. declined in the fifth and sixth centuries, but sufficient examples exist, especially in the vicinity of the regional capital of Carthage, to show that some Vandals continued to patronize the mosaic workshops, and favoured the traditional subjects of hunting and the spectacles of the amphitheatre and circus. THE IMPACT OF CHRISTIANITY Many of the mosaic workshops in this later period may have turned from domestic to ecclesiastical commissions, as artistic patronage became increasingly directed towards church building and decoration. Church floors and even baptismal pools were regularly covered with mosaics (sometimes spectacularly, as at Rusguniae, or in the Justinianic basilica at Sabratha); mosaic pavements were also used in funerary contexts. No wall or vault mosaics survive in North Africa; those in the Monastery of the Burning Bush (now St Catherine’s) at Sinai, built by the emperor Justinian, were almost certainly executed by craftsmen brought from Constantinople. Located in the monastery church’s apse, they depict biblical events connected with Mount Sinai – Moses before the burning bush and receiving the Ten Commandments – as well as Christ’s Transfiguration, when he appeared to the apostles in the company of Moses and the prophet Elijah. Churches in Egypt were as numerous as those in North Africa, but fewer have been excavated in modern times. The churches and funerary chapels associated with the monastery at Bawit are decorated with frescoes showing saints, the Virgin Mary and angels. Other common forms of decoration include carvings in local limestone and wood carving, used to ornament beams and doors. Limestone carving was also a major medium for private funerary monuments, both pagan and Christian. These carvings are a mixture of decorative patterns and figural imagery, much of the latter reflecting Graeco-Roman mythological traditions. The dry climate of Egypt has preserved many of the woollen and linen textiles buried in the graves of the better-off. These often brightly coloured garments and wall-hangings are decorated with both traditional GrecoRoman subjects (including images of gods and heroes) as well as Christian subjects from the Old and New Testaments. The Hellenized Egyptian tradition of funerary portraits painted on wooden panels also contributed to a new form of Christian art: the devotional icon. A number of striking examples dating to the sixth century have been found at Bawit and Sinai, some painted in the local Egyptian (‘Coptic’) style and others in a Hellenized, more cosmopolitan, style. One of the ‘local’ type from Bawit shows an abbot of the monastery, Menas, in the company of Christ, who places a protective arm around the abbot’s shoulder. The icon of St Peter from Sinai, with its naturalistic shadows and highlights on the apostle’s face, and its illusionistic receeding background of classical architecture, is a fine example of the Hellenistic style. Art and Monasticism in Egypt monastery pilgrimage route pilgrimage site Christian cemetery 2 ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 76 ART AND URBAN LIFE North Africa had been a centre for domestic floor mosaics since the early second century, and their production continued unabated in the fourth century. Many surviving examples come from Carthage as well as the smaller towns of the region, attesting to the continued vitality of urban life. Subjects represented include race horses, charioteers and the events of the amphitheatre – a longstanding North African fascination – but an increased preoccupation with the lifestyles of the elite, and the agricultural basis of their wealth is also evident. Idealized scenes of life on country estates have been found in Carthage and Thabraca, and a scene of a wealthy woman at her toilet was discovered at a villa at Sidi Ghirib, 20 kilometres (12 miles) from Carthage. The mixed hoard of fourth- and fifthcentury silver plate and gold jewellery found in Carthage is an example of the portable wealth of those who commissioned such mosaics for their dwellings. As ever in North Africa, mythological scenes were less popular, but a fine mosaic of a scene from the Iliad survives at Neapolis, while at Caesarea there are scenes from the life of Achilles, and a Judgement of Paris. Production (and in some cases quality) EGYPT AND THE NORTH AFRICAN provinces in the year 300 were stable and prosperous in comparison to the Roman Empire’s western and eastern frontiers, and would continue to be so for much of the next three hundred years. However, political and cultural upheaval affected Latin-speaking North Africa in the fifth century, when the Vandals, a tribe originally from central Europe, north of the Danube, invaded the region via Spain in 429. It was reconquered after a century by the Roman emperor in the east, Justinian, who placed the region under a Greek-speaking administration for the first time in its history. At the same time North Africa was also forced to defend itself from raids by the nomadic Berbers, who had gradually encroached on its southwestern frontier during the Vandal conquest. Unfortunately, little is known of Berber material culture in this period. TRADE AND THE ECONOMY Despite these disruptive events, North Africa’s agricultural economy remained intact and prospered. It was this economy, based on the export of grain and olive oil, which supported the region’s rich and varied artistic production in late antiquity. In Egypt, too, it was the export of grain (especially to Rome, and subsequently the eastern capital of Constantinople), which underpinned artistic production. The manufacture of red slip pottery (exported as a secondary cargo on grain or oil ships) was a major industry, based initially in Carthage and its vicinity, but also successfully copied in Aswan in Egypt. Some of these tablewares displayed a wide variety of stamped decoration, both figural and ornamental. A more valuable export was ivory, which came principally from East Africa via Egypt’s Red Sea ports, but also from the North African elephants of Mauritania. Although ivory was often exported in its raw state, there is evidence that Alexandria was a major centre of ivory carving, especially of decorative plaques to cover furniture. NORTH AFRICA AD 300-600 30˚20˚10˚ 30˚ Ag Carthage Sabratha Leptis Magna Alexandria Ptolemais Hippo Regius (Annaba) Thugga (Dougga) Uthina (Oudna) Thabraca (Tabarka) Rusguniae (Matifou) Iomnium (Tigzirt) Cirta (Constantine) Thamugadi (Timgad) Theveste (Tébessa) Clupea (Kélibia) Neapolis (Nabeul) Memphis/Saqqara Syrene (Aswan) Arsinoe Oxyrhynchus Faiyum Antinooplois (Antinoe) Panopolis Aphrodito Karanis Hawara Herakleopolis Magna Hermopolis Magna Bawit Hermonthis Latopolis (Esna) Taparura (Sfax) Thysdrus / El Djem Cuicul (Djemila) Thurburbo Maius Caesarea (Cherchell) Tipasa N ile 1st Cataract A T L A N T I C O C E A N R E D S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A T L A S M T S S I NA I S A H A R A D E S E R T SICILY CRETE CYPRUS A F R I C A N 0 0 250 miles 350 kms 1 Continuity and Change frontier of Roman Empire, c. AD 300 Vandal Kingdom, AD 429-533 (reconquered by Justinian, AD 533) Berbers source of raw ivory domestic/secular mosaics ecclesiastical mosaics church/baptistry buildings (known from archaeological sources) church (attested in literary sources) wall/panel painting Coptic textile finds wood carving stone carving ivory carving finds of silverware pottery production centre Ag 1 CARTHAGE AND ALEXANDRIA were the two largest urban centres in Late Roman Africa, serving major administrative as well as commercial roles, and their hinterlands accordingly carried the largest density of settlements, following the fertile banks of the Nile in Egypt, and clustering in the Roman provinces of Africa Proconsularis and Numidia to the west. Local artistic products, such as mosaic pavements, wall and panel painting, weaving, and stone carving, which had long been deployed in domestic and secular contexts, were now also used in the service of the Christian church. THIS TERRACOTTA PILGRIM FLASK depicts the Egyptian saint, Menas, wearing the costume of a Roman soldier, and flanked by the camels which legend said brought his body to its resting place of Abu Mena, near Alexandria. This was a major place of pilgrimage, and flasks such as this were sold for pilgrims to fill, either with the water of a miraculous spring near the saint’s tomb, or oil from the lamps which hung above the tomb. A similar image of the saint appears on a contemporary ivory box, probably carved in Alexandria. WEST ASIA 500–300 BC 79 Seal-stones were widely used throughout the empire to ratify official and personal documents and to claim ownership of commodities. They demonstrate the choice by an individual of a single artistic emblem to indicate him or herself. The most frequently depicted image in Achaemenid art (both monumental and small-scale) is the figure of a hero, often to be identified as a king, mastering beasts. In individual as well as official imperial art the image of the king exerting control over nefarious forces to maintain a balanced, symmetrical whole, was widely favoured. Art had therefore become a N 0 10 m 2a Palace P at Pasargadae 2 CYRUS II BUILT AN EXAMPLE of the Achaemenid many-columned audience hall at Pasargadae, amid tremendous formal gardens. Darius and his successors elaborated on the idea. At Persepolis, the entire fortified terrace was built up with columned halls which fulfilled different functions (audience halls, living quarters, treasury). Even at the ancient city of Susa, Darius and his successors built a new many-columned palace to complement the city’s ancient Mesopotamian palace. RELIEF FROM THE APADANA, or audience hall, at Persepolis. It shows the king enthroned, with his heir and other retainers standing behind him. In front of him are two incense burners of a type found as far away as Güre, in Anatolia. A man bows towards the king, kissing his hand: he is the foremost of many figures shown on the Apadana reliefs, including Persians as well as the 26 subject peoples of the land, bearing gifts of animals, textiles, and metal crafted into Achaemenid-style vessels. Xerxes Gate Apadana Tripylon (small central palace) Treasury rock-cut royal tomb Hall of 100 columns Tachara (Palace of Darius I) remains of mud-brick fortification wall remains of mud-brick fortification wall pavilions terrace wall Hadish (Palace of Xerxes) Palace of Artaxerxes I N 0 100 m 2b Persepolis Propylaion Gate of Darius Mesopotamian -type palace Persian Apadana 0 100 m 2c Susa N widely popular and effective way to proclaim the stability of the empire, a stability that was founded on the figurehead of the king himself. There was remarkable coherence of style in particular artefacts throughout the empire. Metal vessels found in Anatolia, like the one illustrated opposite, resemble very closely those found in the southern and eastern reaches of the empire as well as those depicted on the Apadana reliefs at Persepolis. Indeed, there is little stylistic variation in particular categories of artefact across hundreds of years and thousands of miles. A particular artistic style was itself identified with the king, and ownership of objects created in this style proclaimed nearness to the king, and hence membership in the Achaemenid elite. ALEXANDER OF MACEDON When Alexander of Macedon conquered Darius III in a series of battles in the late 330s, he was able to take over an empire that already possessed an elaborate administrative hierarchy and ready-made channels for propaganda through the manipulation of artistic imagery. For the rest of his life (he died in Babylon in 323) much of his attention was focused on warfare. He also founded many new cities to house troops loyal to him who would oversee administration of the region in his name. But much of what had existed before his arrival remained the same during his short reign. It is clear, for instance, that official Achaemenid art was perceived as being specifically Persian; and it was used even after Alexander's death to reinforce the ethnic identity of Persians. CONCLUSION Developing a new artistic style and iconographic vocabulary that drew on antique Mesopotamian and other regional traditions was part of the overarching Achaemenid strategy to incorporate widely disparate peoples and places into the new empire. Through ideologically charged art, the Achaemenid Persians emphasized the new world order that relied upon the good offices of the Persian king. Imperial Persian art was designed for widespread dissemination. Its overarching message was one of a world under control, a world in which the population joined in harmonious, even joyous, service to the king who maintained the empire. This art was so widely recognized that it might be used to identify people as Persian, or members of the Achaemenid elite, throughout the empire and even after its demise. ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 78 Achaemenid imperial art. Achaemenid art was founded on ancient local artistic traditions: throughout the empire, the Achaemenids took local art and reformulated it to place the figure of the king in positions previously occupied by deities. Thus it became the king who, artistically, held the universe in harmony. An example of this is the Apadana relief (illustrated opposite): depictions of people bearing gifts to enthroned gods, and assuming particular pious gestures in the presence of deities (such as the traditional Mesopotamian hand-over-wrist gesture, not shown here), had a long-standing history. But here it is the king who is the focus of the action. To reinforce that sense of focus, the Achaemenid kings devised a new ideologically charged kind of palace including a columned audience hall at its core. This idea of showing the king in the central role traditionally attributed to deities was repeated time and time again, in many different contexts throughout the empire. Drawing from different local traditions, the king is depicted as godhead on architectural and free-standing sculptures, on seal-stones and coins and on embossed metal vessels. Imperial texts make it clear that the kings saw themselves as in direct communication with the deity Ahuramazda, holding their positions because of divine favour. It is a recurrent theme both on imperial architectural sculpture and on Achaemenid seal-stones. THE ACHAEMENID PERSIAN EMPIRE was vast and its people diverse. Its 26 different subject peoples spoke different languages, worshipped different deities, lived in different environments and had widely differing social customs. The Achaemenid kings had to devise a system of empire strong enough to keep themselves in control and flexible enough to provide for the needs of all their subjects. The art and architecture of the period both reflect the diversity of the empire and proclaim the notion of a stabilized, harmonious world under the control of the Persian king. The last ruler of this vast empire, Alexander of Macedon (the ‘Great’), used the pre-existing Achaemenid ideological channels and methods to maintain control. Achaemenid art is preserved in many media, including official architecture built of stone and mud brick, architectural sculpture in stone and brick, glazed bricks, wall paintings on wood and stone and plaster, rock reliefs and free-standing sculpture in stone and metal. On a smaller scale, there are seals (preserved both as stone artefacts and also as impressions left on the documents they ratified), coins, jewellery, weapons, horse trappings, vessels of stone and glass and metal, personal effects such as mirrors, ornamental wood and ivory carvings and textiles. These artistic remains complement the Greek and Near Eastern texts to provide a complex image of the empire. THE ART OF KINGSHIP The concept of a harmonious world order is the central theme of the entire programme of WEST ASIA 500-300 BC 1 THE ACHAEMENID PERSIAN EMPIRE (c.550–330), founded by Cyrus II, centred on southwest Iran and lower Mesopotamia. Under Darius I (521–486) it reached its greatest extent, stretching from the Aegean Sea to the Indus River, from Egypt to the modern Central Asian republics. When Alexander of Macedon conquered the empire in 331, he retained much of the Persian administrative system and made use of many pre-existing artistic channels to propagate his new ideology of empire. 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ 70˚ 80˚ 40˚ 30˚ Ss Ss Ss Ss Ss Ss Ss Ss Ss SsSs Gordium Halicarnassus Kelaenae Güre Meydancikkâle Deve Hüyük Taxila Tyre Jerusalem Tarsus Damascus Samaria Sidon Jericho Ascalon Lachish Sais Bubastis Pazarlı Erzincan Aleppo Thapsacus Mari Nimrud Nineveh Kharga Oasis Ur Uruk Ashur Hasanlu Al Mina Ctesiphon Bisitun Godin Tepe Baba Jan Anshan Carchemish Altıntepe Byblos Kerkenes Dagıˇ Bactra (Balkh) Merv Peshawar Multan Cyropolis Kabul Ai-Khanoum Samarkand Rhagae Gaza Miletus Thebes Sogdian Rock Susa Babylon Seleucia Sardis Ecbatana Persepolis Elephantine Ain Manawir Pasargadae Dascylium Larisa am Hermos Elmalı LimyraXanthus Hacımusalar Afyon Labraunda Pasa Tepe¸ Erzurum Köskerbaba Höyük¸ Sinop Panticapaeum (Kerch) Memphis Priene Bayindir Magnesia ad Maeandrum Ephesus Abusir Alexandria ad Issum Alexandria Charax Alexandria (in Carmania) Alexandria Margiana Alexandria Areion Alexandria Prophthasia Alexandria Arachoton (Kandahar) Alexandria Oreiton Alexandria (south of Kabul) Alexandria ad Caucasum Alexandria Eschate Alexandria Oxiana Nicaea Bucephala 326BC Alexandria ad Indum Alexandria (in Egypt) Tigris N ile In dus Za radros(Sutlej) Acesines Hydaspes (Jhelum) (C henab) O xus (Syr Dar ya) A raxes Cy rus (Kura) Euphr ate s Red Sea Canal J axartes (A m uDarya) B L A C K S E A C A S P IA N SEA M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A RED SEA PER S IA N G U LF ARAL SEA A R A B I A N S E A AEGEAN SEA C A U C A S U S HIN DU KU SH ZAGROS MTS T H A R D E S E R T I R A N I A N P L A T E A U PERSIS SATTAG YDIA HYRCANI A ASSYRIA CAPPADOCIA PHRYGIA PAPHLAGONIA PISIDIA LYCIA CARIA LYDIA CYPRUS BITHYNIA DRANGIANA CILICIA SOGDIANA PHOENICIA NUBIA MAKA SCYTHIA A N A T O L I A A R A B I A I N D I A L I B YA E G Y P T S I N D GEDROSIA ARACHOSIA GANDARA BACTRIA MARGIANA PARTHIA MEDIA ELAM BEYOND THE RIVER ARMENIA COLCHIS CARMANIA CHORASMIA S A K A SEISTAN ARIA ancient coastline Sagalassus 333BC Issus 333BC Gaugamela 331BC Granicus 334BC N 0 0 300 miles 400 kms 1 The Achaemenid Empire extent of the Achaemenid Empire, c.500 BC administrative centre extent of Alexander’s Empire, 323 BC Alexander’s route Alexander’s commanders’ routes major battle siege cities founded by Alexander fortifications architecture inscriptions sculpture ceramics metalwork tablets sealstones stone vessels Ss glass painting coins papyrus ELABORATE METAL VESSELS like this bowl were probably imbued with great symbolic significance during the Achaemenid period. They were made throughout the empire in a particular, recognizable, style, brought to the king at his capitals in Iran, and redistributed from there. Ownership of such a vessel signified membership in the Achaemenid elite, a polyethnic group of people responsible for imperial administration. WEST ASIA 300 BC–AD 600 81 building of churches with Christian stone sculptures – particularly after the partition (AD 387) of the kingdom between Persia and Rome. The Sasanians are credited with introducing the medieval period to the Middle East. The language of the Sasanian empire was Middle Persian, and appears as a more universal language than Parthian. Unlike the preceding empire, this period is noted for greater control over regional dynasties. Sasanian art is of an entirely different nature from that of the preceding dynasty. The Sasanians supported court artists and produced luxury goods for trade. While it is likely that a trade in silk from east to west was a major factor in earlier periods, at no other time is there such a wealth of evidence for trade between China and Rome. Elaborate royal portraits, with crowns that differed from ruler to ruler, can be found on everything from coins to vessels and statues. Sasanian silver bowls have been found in the Russian steppes, textiles have been recovered from the dry western Chinese deserts, and Sasanian glass has even been found in Japan. Sasanian rulers also carved rock sculptures. Some of the best (Naqsh-e Rostam and Naqsh-e Rajab) are near the ancient Persian capital of Persepolis. Royal courts were also active in creating grand architectural monuments. Khosrow II built a vast palace – with an intact mud-brick barrel vault – at Ctesiphon (Taq-i Kisra). Many Sasanian limestone and mortar buildings still survive in Fars. The most important is the palace of Ardashir I at Gur (Firuzabad). After Khosrow II (r.590; 591–628) the empire went into a sharp decline. Devastated by fighting, plague, and a succession of weak rulers, the Sasanian capital Ctesiphon fell in 637 to advancing Islamic Arab armies. In a short space of time, Zoroastrian religious SASANIAN TEXTILES, such as this one decorated with the mythological winged horse Pegasus, drew on a long history of weaving, and employed ancient Iranian as well as Greek motifs. Pegasus, of Greek inspiration, would have been known from Classical art. The pearl roundel that frames the image is typical of the Sasanians, and appears in Far Eastern art at about this time. Finely woven and brightly coloured with bold designs, such textiles were in demand from Europe to China. 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ 70˚ 40˚ 30˚ 20˚ Veh Ardashir Nehavend Abarshahr (Nishapur) Ram Hurmizd Kvas Peshawar Hurmizd Ardashir Bost Stakhr Kangavar Salmas Bamiyan Susa Naqsh-i BahramShiraz Warka (Uruk) Hatra Gundeshapur Kuh-i Khwaja Tashkent Fortat Bishapur Edessa Ganzak Ghiz Kabul Kholm Darabgird Dinavar Balkh (Bactra) Zuzan Yazd Nisibis Ahmantan Herat Rokhuadh Rayy (Rhagae) Jus Samarkand Kerman Amida Antioch Damascus Merv AmolCarrhae Nahr-Tire Jerusalem Rev Ardashir Ctesiphon Gur Babylon Dura-Europos Palmyra Tigris Euphrates Araxes Indus S ir Da rya Amu D arya Ochus Eryma ndrus Atrek Nile L. Urmia L.Sevan L.Van M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A B L A C K S E A PER SIAN GULF A R A B I A N S E A CASPIANSEA RED SEA KO P E T DA G S A LT D E S E R T IRANIAN PLATEAU KHYBER PASS TAURUS MTS ELBURZ MTS Z A G R O S M T S CASPIAN GATE M A C H E L O N I A PUNJAB D R A N G I A N A M A R G I A N A ( M E R V ) S O G D I A N A K H WA R I Z M ( C H O R A S M I A ) PA R T H I AHYRCANI A P O N T U S G A LAT I A C A P PA D O C I A LYDIA ARABISTAN JUDAEA IBERIA(GEORGIA) C I L I C I A PHRYGIA P E R S I S ( F A R S ) PATISHKHWAGAR S U S I A N A A B A R S H A H R G A N D H A R A PA R ATA N ( PA R A D E N E ) M A K R A N T O R A N C A R M A N I A ( K E R M A N ) ALBANIA ARMENIA S Y R I A MEDIA ATROPATENE A R I A ASURISTAN MAISHAN ELYMAIS E G Y P T A R A B I A To Europe To China Han dynasty 206 BC-AD 221 to Kashgar (W China) controlled by Shapur I defeats Roman emperor Valerian 260 defeats Shapur I 260; remains associated with Rome Holy Sepulchre destroyed, 'True Cross' carried to Ctesiphon 614 captured briefly by Sasanians 613 Roman mosaics 1st-6th centuries AD taken by Sasanians 256 centre of Nestorian Christianity palace of Khosrow II 590; 591-628; fell to Arabs 637 palace of Ardashir I Buddhist complex world's tallest standing Buddha; destroyed 21st century 2 The Sasanian Empire, AD 250-650 Sasanian heartland extent of the Sasanian Empire under Shapur I, AD 241-272 Sasanian mints Sasanian palaces Sasanian rock sculptures area of textile production area of glazed ware/glass area of silver production area of bronze production Silk Road Sasanian architecture N 0 0 350 miles 500 kms 2 DRAWING UPON THEIR ANCESTORS’ cultural achievements in Fars province, the Sasanians are known for their luxurious court. They controlled the trade route between China and Rome, and manufactured cloth and silver vessels that were extensively traded. Sasanian mints, widely spaced but under central control, produced a mass of coins that were known from Europe to China. horsemen – armed for war and in baggy trousers with pointed hats – are popular. Animals are rendered in a ‘steppe art’ style. Figures in a flying gallop, with legs outstretched, are common, as are a variety of other poses that depict animals in motion executed with bold lines. Parthian pictorial art is noted for looking at a figure in full face, which is a marked departure from the earlier use of profile. THE ART OF THE SASANIANS In AD 224 a Sasanian king Ardashir I (r.224–241) from Fars defeated and killed the Parthian monarch. This signalled the end of Parthian art. With their homeland in the centre of the ancient Persian empire, the Sasanians were reminded, through ruins, of a golden age of culture with an elaborate court art. Resenting the Parthians as usurpers of this heritage, they sought to erase them from the historical record. The Sasanian dynasty adhered to the Zoroastrian faith as a state religion. Silver coins were now made from a broad, flat blank rather than a short, thick flan, and were typically struck with an elaborately crowned king on one side, and two attendants and a Zorastrian fire altar on the other. This dichotomy between church and state draws attention to a powerful priestly class that was unknown in the Parthian empire. Gone was the loose confederation of states with religious tolerance. Persecutions of religious minorities, including the Christian Armenians, occurred in cycles. This kindled Armenian nationalism – reflected in the imagery disappeared from the artistic repertoire, though the tradition of luxurious court art – such as textiles and metalwork – was left intact. ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 80 TWO EMPIRES IN SUCCESSION, the Parthians and the Sasanians, contained Roman and then Byzantine expansion into western Asia. Under them, the region became progressively less Greek. Eastern culture was re-asserted after being challenged by the conquests of Alexander the Great. Both visual art and language underwent a gradual change over time. The Greek quest for beauty and Roman realism were disregarded for symbolic art. While scholars from previous ages suggested that this was regression into barbarism, the art of this region emerges as one that contributed greatly – particularly through architecture and textiles – to Roman and early medieval European styles. THE ART OF THE PARTHIANS The Parthians, originally an Indo-Iranianspeaking people from the steppes, defeated the Greek successors to Alexander and established a confederation of states under a monarch who collected taxes and raised armies. Mithradates I (r.171–138 BC) proclaimed his independence by issuing coins bearing his portrait with a royal diadem. The reverse bore an image of Arsaces – ancestor of the dynasty – seated holding a bow. Coins in the same Greek language and art was predominant in the first phase of the Parthian period. In the last centuries of the empire there was an increasing use of the Parthian language (an Iranian dialect written in Aramaic), as well as distinctive art forms. The art of the Parthians is rather hard to define, as they were more collectors than originators. In general it reflects the many nationalities incorporated into their empire, but there are some nearly universal features. Reflecting nomadic origins, WEST ASIA 300 BC-AD 600 PARTHIAN GOLD DRACHM of Vonones I (r. AD 8–12) struck at Rhagae to commemorate his victory over his rival Artabanus II (r. AD 10–38). Parthian portraits of rulers on coins, in contrast to rock art, were hardly ever shown full face. The coin is a mixture of east and west: the use of Greek for the inscription contrasts with the representation of the king as a horseman dressed in trousers. Parthian gold coins are very rare. 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ 70˚ 40˚ 30˚ 20˚ Alexandria Areion (Herat) Alexandria (Merv) Abarshahr (Nishapur) Hecatompylos (Shahr-i Qumis) Nisa (Mihrakert) Apamea Saramana Syrinx Laodicea Kangavar Epardus Tambrax (Sari) Rhagae (Tehran) Spasinou Charax Persepolis Susa Bisitun Ecbatana (Hamadan) Nineveh Artemita Seleucia Edessa Taxila Metsketa Kabul Alexandropolis Kandahar Bactra (Zariaspa) Alexandria Oxiana Macacanda (Samarkand) Alexandria Meshed Gabae Praaspa Artaxata Gaugamela Arbela Borsippa Tyre Circesium Singarra Nisibis Tigranocerta (Siirt) Carrhae (Harran) Zeugma Jerusalem Ashur Hatra Ctesiphon Vologesias Babylon Uruk (Warka) Dura-Europos Palmyra (Tudmur) Ti gris Euphrates Indus Jaxartes Oxus(Am u Darya) O chus Erym a ndrus (Hel m and) Atrek Nile L. Urmia L.Sevan L.Van M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A B L A C K S E A PER S IA N G U L F CASPIANSEA RED SEA A R A B I A N S E A S A L T D E S E R T I R A N I A N P L A T E A U KHYBER PASS TAURUS MTS ZAGROS MTS KO P E T DA G CASPIAN GATES ELBURZ MTS D A H A E A R M E N I A PUNJAB G E D R O S I A DRA N G IA N A A RA CHOSIA A R I A B A C T R I A M A R G I A N A S O G D I A N A C H O R A S M I A A S TA U E N E P O N T U S G A LAT I A C A P PA D O C I A LY D I A S Y R I A JUDAEA I B E R I A C I L I C I A P H RY G I A HYRCANIA P E R S I S ELY M A IS COMMAGENE SOPHENE ARZANENE GORDYENE OSRHOENELYCIA PARTHIA (PARTHYENE) MEDIA ATROPATENE M E D I A CHARACENE (MESENE) E G Y P T A R A B I A captured by Parthians AD 52 Parthian capital 148-147 BC Parthian royal palace falls to Rome AD 115; 164/165; to Rome AD 198 Antony fails to take city for Rome, 36 BC captured by Rome 69 BC Parthian from 113 BC; Roman AD 163 controlled by Romans AD 30 53 BC Parthians defeat Rome Parthians storm city 40 BC N 0 0 350 miles 500 kms 1 The Parthian Empire, 150 BC-AD 250 Parthian heartland (Mithradates I, 171-138 BC) Parthian migration extent of the Parthian Empire under Mithradates II, 124-87 BC Parthian architecture Elymais, vassal kingdom 81 BC-AD 224 Osrhoene, independent 131 BC-AD 216 Characene, vassal kingdom 125-121 BC Parthian mint 1 THE PARTHIAN MIGRATIONS from Central Asia were dictated by geography. Separated from Iran and subsequent nomadic attack by the Zagros Mountains, Mesopotamia offered rich cultural traditions, and was the centre of the empire. Most surviving Parthian architecture is from the west. The powerful trading cities on the Euphrates, the traditional border with Rome, fused Eastern and Western motifs into a new style. style were issued till the end of the empire, though they range from the early style which employed Greek artisans, to later issues that reflected the nomadic heritage of these people. The Parthians rapidly moved through Iran and into the fertile Mesopotamian lowlands, where they encountered ancient civilizations with their own distinctive cultures and art forms. Ceramics from this period show strong regional trends. Mithradates II (r.124–87 BC), perhaps the greatest monarch, reconquered Mesopotamia. By 113 BC, the Greek city of Dura-Europus was taken, and the Euphrates River was established as a border with Rome. This city became a trading metropolis, and struck Parthian tetradrachms (coins four times the weight of the standard drachm), a preferred silver coin in the west. CENTRAL ASIA 500 BC–AD 600 83 PAINTED SCRIPTURES similar to this surviving fragment from an illuminated codex of Kocho, Xinjiang, attracted adherents along the Silk Road to Manichaeism, a gnostic dualism originating in Iraq in the third century. The fragment is from a later period (11th–12th century) but its subject-matter is probably a scene that would have been familiar in earlier centuries: the Manichaean ‘Sermon Scene’. Gold leaf, ink and pigments have been used to portray Manichaean leaders with the figures wearing Uyghur royal headdress. 90˚80˚70˚60˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ Merv Tus Gurgan Zaranj Begram Tochi Valley Bactra (Balkh) Dilberjin Bishkek Nishapur Samarkand Tok-kala Afrasiab Varakhsha Bukhara Khalchayan Mt Mug Kara-tepe Ayrtam Khalchangan Ajina-tepe Yakke-Parsan Urgench Koy-Krylgan-Kala Kokand Talas Panjikent Tash-Kurghan Bamiyan Bimaran Kashgar Toprak-kala Yarkand Gilgit Shatial Shigar Hunza- Haldeikish Taxila Manikyal Huskapura Rabatak Mathura Kocho Jagatu Barygaza Kaushambi Tamralipti Khotan Dandan Oilik Niya Cherchen Aksu Bulayiq Hami Bezeklik Anxi Dunhuang Turfan Urumchi Loulan Karashahr Kyzyl Kucha Kushka Purushapura (Peshawar) Uruzgan Shiraz Kapisa Ganges L. Balkhash Syr Darya AmuD arya Ch e nab Sutlej Helmand Indus I N D I A N O C E A N CASPIANSEA ARAL SEA K U N L U N S H A N T A K L A M A K A NT A R I M B A S I N T I E N S H A N NAN SHAN KARA KUM KYZUL KUM PAMIRS K A RAKORUM HINDU KUSH IRANIAN PLATEAU ELBURZ MTS ZAG RO SM TS SOGDIANA G A N D H A R A B A C T R I A A R A C H O S I A D R A N G I A N A C A R M A N I A G E D R O S I A I N D I A P E R S I A A R A B I A N 0 0 500 miles 700 kms 2 Trade and Art Production Silk Road other trade routes sites with Buddhist/Kushan art sites with Buddhist art/Chinese silk/lacquerware ivory glass manuscripts murals statues/friezes petroglyphs/graffiti/inscriptions mummy remains 2 TRADE ROUTES AND RELIGIOUS ART. Known as the ‘Crossroads of Asia’ Central Asia has been pivotal in the movement of goods, people and ideas from east to west and north to south. This map shows the spread of Kushan or Gandharan art as well as the importance of the Silk Road and other trading routes across Central Asia. The region has always developed its own unique artistic tradition, drawing on the many styles converging there. THE BUDDHIST IMPACT The birth of the Lord Buddha at Lumbini in Nepal in c.560 BC had a major impact on ideology in Central Asia, envisaging a means for many of escaping the reincarnation cycle of Hinduism. Buddhism also had an impact on art through Ashoka and the later Kushans. Ashoka’s aim was to spread his version of the dharma or teachings, and he did this through a series of edicts carved into boulders and pillars across the whole of northern Nepal, India and Pakistan. The Kushans, a branch of a nomadic Chinese tribe spread through Central Asia, Bactria and down into northern India, and had united this whole region by the early second century AD. Kanishka is one of the best known Kushan rulers, and like Ashoka he converted to Buddhism and was ardent in the spread of Buddhist teachings, building new monasteries and repairing old. During Kanishka’s rule the style of art known as ‘Gandharan Art’ which comprises representations of the Buddha and scenes from his life spread and developed. Gandharan Art is so called because it is broadly spread throughout the area of old Gandhara, a former Achaemenid province. Gandharan stone sculptures and reliefs draw heavily on GrecoRoman styles of human depiction. THE SILK ROAD During Kushan rule another major development was crucial in the spread of goods and ideas: the Silk Road. This international trading link increased in importance from the early centuries AD as the Chinese realized the potential market for their valuable silk in the west, particularly the Roman world. Trade along the road meant that the Kushans were able to take advantage of demand for products such as precious stones and metals, and spices from India, while receiving silks and jade and other rare goods from China. Indeed, excavations at the Kushan summer capital of Kapisa (north of Kabul), reveal the richness of the Empire. A treasure store, with carved ivories from India, Chinese lacquers, Roman bonzes, Alexandrian glass was uncovered. Yet the trade was not only in rare goods – Buddhism also spread east along the Silk Road at this time, becoming a major religion in eastern Asia, and there are many Kushan Buddhist sites with stupas decorated with sculpted scenes from the life of the Buddha in distinct Gandharan style to attest to this movement. Central Asia between the mid-first millennia BC and AD is an area where the very rich artistic traditions are the result of human contact and movement – conquerors from the east absorb indigenous styles and influences from the north and east to produce distinctive regional artistic cultures.80˚70˚60˚ 30˚ 40˚ Alexandria Areion (Herat) Alexandria Paropamisadae (Begram) Ortospana Shotorak Tepe Maranjan Tepe Sardar Nagarahara Hadda Charsadda Alexandria Nicaea Alexandria Bucephala Alexandria Margiana MervAntioch-in-Margiana (Merv) Maracanda (Samarkand) Fayaz-tepe Ayrtam Tillya-tepe Takht-i- Sangin Dalverzin-tepe Khalchayan Kara-tepe Dilberjin Taxila Manikyal Takht-i-Bahi Puskalavati Bajaur Jalalabad Alexandria Bactra (Bactra) Surkh Kotal Bamiyan Paitava Alexandria Oxiana Ay Khanum Drapsaca (Kunduz) Kobadian (Oxus treasure) Alexandria Eschate (Khojent) Alexandria Prophthasia Alexandria Arachoton (Kandahar) Alexandria in India Alexandria Oreiton Balkh Sy r Dar ya A m u D arya Indus Sutlej Chen ab Helmand L. Balkhash A R A B I A N S E A A R A L S E A CASPIANSEA K A RAKORAM PA M I R S K A R A K U M KYZUL KUM IRANIAN PLATEAU ELBURZ MTS ZAGROS MTS HINDU KUSH INDO-PARTHIANS C A R M A N I A G E D R O S I A A R A C H O S I A DRANGIANA S O G D I A N A BACTRIA G A N D H A R A PARTHIA A R I A I N D I A P E R S I A A R A B I A N 0 0 250 miles 350 kms ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 82 FROM THE MID-FIRST millennium BC onwards Central Asia was a place of great change and development. Trade and ideological expansion stimulated artistic growth in a variety of ways, leading to a rich cultural heritage that we can trace through artefacts and styles. The Achaemenids (Persians) controlled much of this area between c.539–311 BC, and their awareness of the rich natural resources of Central Asia is reflected in the natural goods such as camels, horses, and bulls, and the worked items, such as jewellery and skins that were exports from both Bactria and Gandhara. Achaemenid influence in art can be seen in the items recovered from the frozen tombs of the Altai in Siberia. Achaemenid elements, such as columns with animal sculpture, persist into the Buddhist art of the later Mauryan Emperor of India, Ashoka. THE HELLENISTIC IMPACT The legacy of the Macedonian conqueror Alexander the Great in Central Asia is thought to include planned cities such as Ay Khanum, Shaikhan Dheri (Charsadda) and Sirkap (Taxila) as well as Greek mythological scenes in sculpture and pottery. When Alexander conquered the Achaemenids in c.331 BC, the Greeks then ruled in much of Central Asia, including Bactria and Sogdiana. Their attempts to move further east into Northern India were foiled by a number of smaller Indian states, which eventually emerged into the great Mauryan Empire. Ashoka (r.268–232 BC) is perhaps the best known of the Mauryans, and this is largely due to his ardent promotion of Buddhism. Indeed, it was Ashoka who sent his son Mahinda as a friend and missionary to convert the ruling family of Sri Lanka to Buddhism. CENTRAL ASIA 500 BC-AD 600 FROM THE ‘GOLDEN MOUND’, a pair of open-worked gold clasps representing warriors between columns or trees. They are classically dressed but with Graeco-Bactrian plumes on Macedonian-type helmets. Menacing dragons at their feet betray Eurasian ‘animal style’ influence. Unearthed from a female grave, this is one of 20,000 artefacts discovered in 1978 at Tillya-tepe or the ‘Golden Mound’, a 2100-year-old necropolis in Bactria. The priceless 'Treasure of Bactria' was last seen and inspected by international archaeologists in 1993. 1 Empires and Tribute campaigns of Alexander the Great cities founded by Alexander Hellenized cities Kushan Empire sites with Kushan art Graeco-Bactrian Kingdom Parthian Empire sites of hoards Achaemenid tribute: bulls camels horses silver rings/jewellery lances and shields weapons battle-axes swords vessels animal hides leather goods lion-skin cloaks 1 GREAT EMPIRES OF CENTRAL ASIA from the Persians to the Kushans show just how desirable this region is. Rich natural resources such as camels and bulls, as well as access to a variety of raw materials as well as the indigenous skills to produce fabulous jewellery and weapons, have meant that Central Asia has been conquered by western, eastern and indigenous groups over many centuries. SOUTH ASIA 500 BC–AD 600 85 locally produced clay and pressed from moulds, would have served the needs of the burgeoning urban population. In addition to Sanskrit, these growing cults often expressed themselves in the local vernacular, the prototypes of various modern Indian languages. The earliest body of Dravidian literature written in Tamil is the Sangam poetry of the early centuries AD. WIDER CONTACTS Large areas of the northern parts of the subcontinent were closely linked to developments in Central Asia during the first to the fourth centuries AD. The Kushan Empire’s control over the Silk Road was aided by the links between their twin capitals near modern Peshawar in Gandhara, and Mathura in northern India. Each region engendered a prolific centre of artistic activity. Although largely Greek or Roman and, to a lesser extent, Central Asian in inspiration and expression, the distinctive sculptural art of Gandhara was mostly Indian in its content. Large Buddhist stupas sculpted at first in local grey schist and later in stucco were covered with narratives from the Buddha’s biography and Jatakas (mythological stories) that monks carried with them from Indian stupas and monasteries. At the same time, extensive maritime trade between Rome and southern India is evident from archaeological finds, texts and art. Mainland India’s own artistic ideals reached another apogee under her final empire in the ancient period during the reign of the Guptas and their tributaries, when previous iconographic, structural and literary experiments were given a fixed, classically Indian form. Their bronze, stone and terracotta sculpture forms a standard to which all subsequent Indian art refers. The influence of the visual arts of this period spread far beyond India, to Sri Lanka, Southeast Asia and the Far East. 65° 70° 75° 80° 85° 90°60° 80˚ 85˚ 90˚ 95˚ 30˚ 25˚ 20˚ 15˚ 10˚ 5˚ 1 2 3 4 Bamiyan Peshawar Rangmahal Hadda Akhnur Srinagar Harvan Taxila Mirpur Khas MathuraAhar Bhitargaon Pawaya Deogarh Varanasi Nachnakuthara Tigawa Ramtek Nalanda Sultanganj Kurkihar Pandu Rajar Dhibi Vaishali Elephanta Kondapur Ter Anuradhapura Sigiriya Kanchipuram Nagapattinam Amaravati Udayagiri Bhattiprolu Ghantasala Goli Nagarjunakonda Jaggayyapeta Sanchi Akota Ellora Aihole Kolhapur Brahmagiri Bagh Ajanta Dwarka Barygaza Phophnar Noh Gop Sarnath Kannauj Bodh Gaya Kaushambi Ma hanadi Godava ri Ka veri Krishna Ganges Yamuna Sutlej Indus Indus Jhelu m Chen ab Ravi Brahmaputra A R A B I A N S E A I N D I A N O C E A N H I M A L A Y A S EASTERNGHATS WESTERNGHATS D E C C A N H I N D U K U S H T H A R D E S E R T KSHATRAPA W ESTERN A N D H R A S SATAVA H A N A S G U P T A S H U N A S IKSHVAKUS PALLAVAS CHOLAS PANDYAS CHERAS VAKATAKAS S A S S A N I A N S H E P H T H A L I T E S K U S H A N A S Southwestern ports: clothing/linen, copper, tin, lead, semi-precious stones, coins, glass, wheat, wine Eastern ports: muslin, pearls, ivory, cinnamon Indus ports: semi-precious stones, furs/skins, indigo/other dyes, cotton, silk Southeastern ports: muslin, semi-precious stones, pearls, tortoise shell N 0 0 2 India, AD 100-600 area of Gupta overlordship major dynasty, 1st-3rd centuries AD major dynasty, 3rd-6th centuries AD route of Faxian, AD 399-414 probable route of Xuanzang, AD 629-645 painting pillar monastery remains stupa cave: sculpted or painted temple structure bronze sculpture stone sculpture terracotta/stucco imagery ivory carving jewellery coins imports exports ANDHRAS GUPTAS - Indus ports (imports): silver/gold plate, semi-precious stones, glassware, clothing/linen, wine - Barygaza ports (exports): semi-precious stones, cotton/silk cloth, yarn, pepper, ivory - Southwestern ports (exports): precious/semi-precious stones, tortoise shell, silk cloth, cinnamon, pepper, ivory - Barygaza ports (imports): silverware, gold/silver coins, copper, tin,lead, glass, clothing, wine 1 2 3 4 300 miles 450 kms 2 THE TRAVEL ACCOUNTS from the pilgrimages of the two Chinese Buddhists Faxian and Xuanzang to ancient Indian sites in the fourth and seventh centuries have greatly assisted archaeologists. Their descriptions of sites, the routes of their travels and a wealth of other detail often ties in well with interpretations of ancient Indian literary sources and what has been excavated to reveal one of the greatest phases of Indian art. Maritime, riverine and overland trade both within South Asia and with the rest of the world saw the exchange of not just the listed commodities but also ideas and artistic ideals. DETAIL OF A WALL PAINTING from Ajanta caves, c. fifth century AD, in the domain of the Vakataka dynasty. These Buddhist paintings are celebrated for their sophisticated compositions that burst with life. Set in palaces and gardens, they show kings, ascetics, animals and the most seductive women in selfconsciously languid poses. The depictions of textiles, furniture and ornament allow us a vivid window into early India. also preserve two of the earliest readable Indian scripts: Brahmi and Kharoshti. POST-MAURYAN ART Early Buddhist and Jain worship was centred on the cult of the veneration of relics housed in stupas. In the politically fragmented PostMauryan period (roughly c.250 BC–AD 100) preexisting brick and clay stupas, such as those at Sanchi, Amaravati and Mathura, began to attract a vibrant tradition of stone sculptures and buildings sponsored by the growing middle classes. Some of the earliest Hindu sculptures of Shiva, Vishnu, Lakshmi and other forms of the goddess also made their first appearance in stone. At the same time vast amounts of sculpture in terracotta, made from ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 84 of the northeastern state of the Shakyas and founder of Buddhism, emerged from this tradition of heterodox sects. So too did Vardhamana Mahavira, the founder of Jainism. Although there are few artistic remains of this early period, the early heterodox sects and other pre-existing theistic cults perpetuated the sanctity of sites associated with their seers and myths. These sites consequently became major centres of Hindu, Buddhist and Jain pilgrimage, trade and artistic activity. THE FIRST EMPIRE The mountain passes of the northwest frontier have always been India’s vital corridors for links to the west, whether for overland trade, or, as in the case of Alexander in the third century BC, for conquest. Following Alexander’s retreat from the Jhelum River in 326–5 BC, his possessions in northwest India and Afghanistan were divided between his generals. By the period of the establishment of the subcontinent-wide Mauryan Empire in the third century BC, therefore, indigenous and foreign models of statecraft, administration and, moreover, control over a standing army were well-known. The extensive diplomatic and trade exchanges of the Mauryan emperors Chandragupta (r.321–297 BC) and Ashoka (r.268–232 BC) with Iran, Greece, Egypt, Sri Lanka and Southeast Asia are reflected in not just the influences on their art, but the conscious choice to leave lasting legacies in stone. Imperial Mauryan freestanding monolithic pillars were all quarried near Varanasi and then transported over river networks to far-flung regions of the empire. Ashokan stone inscriptions concern a variety of social, religious and economic matters. They AN ENORMOUS BODY of artistic and material remains and literary sources survive from the period 500 BC–AD 600 from South Asia. They reveal the establishment of some of the most defining characteristics of Indian civilization. From the sixth century BC onward states formed as monarchies and tribal confederacies. This was accompanied by the development of urban centres, artisanal classes, agriculture and trade. Major artistic and architectural projects were supplied with an increasingly wide range of raw materials as India’s natural resources were exploited. Trade in precious and semi-precious stones, such as sapphire, coral, diamond and agate, and in perfumes and ivory generated a surplus that furnished crafts guilds with raw materials. As an increasing number of peoples were incorporated into wider organized trade and agricultural networks, their various shamanistic cults, wandering ascetics and local theistic pantheons contrasted with the existing Vedic liturgy. In the fifth century BC, Siddhartha (later Gautama Buddha), a prince SOUTH ASIA 500 BC-AD 600 65° 70° 75° 80° 85° 90°60° 65˚ 70˚ 75˚ 40˚ 35˚ 30˚ 25˚ 20˚ 15˚ 90˚85˚80˚ Begram Tashkent Sogdian Rock Rupar Amin Sanchi Ujaini Junagadh Pattala Multan Nicaea Herat Gwadar Taxila Sangela Kanheri Ajanta Sannathi Kolhapur Amaravati Udayagiri Gudimallam Arikamedu Anuradhapura Bhaja/Bedsa Vidisha Nagari Bharhut Hastinapura Ahichhatra Sravasti Ayodhya Sarnath Chandraketugarh Tamralipti Varanasi Vaishali Pataliputra Rajgriha Bodh Gaya Kaushambi Mathura Pushkalavati Bala Hissar Bactra Ai Khanum Samarkand Indraprastha Peshawar Mahanadi Godavari Narmada Krish na Kav eri G anges Yamuna Sutlej Indus Indus Jhelum Chen ab Ravi Bra hmaputra A R A B I A N S E A I N D I A N O C E A N H I M A L A Y A S EASTERNGHATS WESTERNGHATS D E C C A N H I N D U K U S H T H A R D E S E R T S C Y T H I A N S IN D O - G R E E K S GRAECO-BACTRIANS S E L E U C I D S S U N G A S M A U R Y A S K A L I N G A economic commodities/ raw materials: horses elephants cotton silk spices iron/coal gold diamonds gems pearls N 0 0 300 miles 450 kms 1 Early Historic India, 500-100 BC dynasty major trade route Alexander's route material remains: painting pillar monastery remains stupa cave: sculpted or painted structural remains bronze sculpture stone sculpture terracotta/stucco imagery ivory carving jewellery coins SUNGAS 1 WHILE HUNDREDS OF megalithic burial sites were dotted across India in this period and traces of civilization and rural dwellings can be found across the subcontinent, this map shows only major sites or regions that either manufactured or supplied materials for the production of ‘art’. Several cities and monastic dwellings have revealed structures, coins, paintings and artefacts for what is called the ‘early-historic’ period in India. The structures are mostly Buddhist, Jain or Hindu, although there are traces of others which can no longer be clearly identified. The map uses only the most commonly known names of dynasties. LION CAPITAL, SARNATH, 3RD CENTRY BC. This monolithic pillar capital was one of many erected by King Ashoka. The capital is made from spectacularly polished cream sandstone. Sarnath is the site where the Buddha delivered his first sermon, thereby establishing the religious order of Buddhism. Interestingly, the pillar bears an inscription left by Ashoka threatening dissenting monks with expulsion from the order. CHINA 500 BC–AD 600 87 living space. Their wealthy occupants have been discovered wearing elaborate suits of jade, or with the bodies preserved in silks. The construction of the ‘Hall of Brightness’, which symbolized the cosmos, demonstrated a strong trend in architectural innovation (using earth platforms and timbers for multistorey buildings), which would continue into later periods. RELIGIOUS AND LANDSCAPE ART After the fall of the Han dynasty, China split into several small dynasties and was fragmented until the sixth century. The importance of art for the afterlife persisted: Bronze vessels remained one of the highest art forms, and innovations in metalwork, such as new inlay techniques and the lost-wax method, allowed for a much more sophisticated scheme of decoration. At the same time, particularly in the more southern Chu state, there was significant development in textiles and lacquerware. The status of such objects was raised higher than ever before, and this in turn stimulated new approaches to the forms and decorations of mainstream bronze art. There was also influence from further afield, particularly from the nomadic art of the northern steppes. Bronzes found at the tombs of the kings of the Zhongshan state included winged animals, a motif typical of western and Central Asia. The influence was not one-way: Chinese artworks, especially bronzes and silk, now became sought-after commodities and were exported to the west. A UNIFIED STATE In 221 BC the ruler of the northwestern Qin state brought the Warring States to an end, unifying them to create the Qin dynasty. He became the First Emperor of China, Qin Shihuangdi. His reforms included a series of standardizations: of weights, measurements, currency and written script. He amassed great wealth and summoned skilled craftsmen to his capital at Xianyang to build his palaces and his tomb complex. The architectural remains of his massive palaces show decorated ornaments and walls. Most famous of all was the discovery in the 1970s of the thousands of terracotta warriors near his enormous tomb mound, which revealed unprecedented achievements in sculpture and human representation in early Chinese art. The warriors are life-size and hold real weapons, as though heading out for war in the other world. They were created by modelling on a mass-production line. The Qin dynasty was overthrown by a peasant uprising in 206 BC. The new ruler, Liu Bang, established the Han Dynasty (202 BC–AD 220) and as peace prevailed, the Han dynasty flourished. The two periods of the Han dynasty reflect the location of the capital city: the Western Han (206 BC–AD 24) with the capital at Chang’an, and the Eastern Han (AD 25–220) with its capital at Luoyang. The Western Han capital at Chang’an was the largest urban centre in Asia, with a population of almost half a million, and a thriving centre for art. The main themes in Han art were paradise and immortality. Contemporary belief and funerary practice ensured that valuable objects were buried with the dead for use in the afterlife. Indeed, many funerary objects were made especially for the burial. Archaeologists have excavated decorated tombs, sometimes with several chambers, which were intended to imitate real ‘THE ADMONITIONS OF THE INSTRUCTRESS TO COURT LADIES’, attributed to Gu Kaizhi (c.AD 344–406), though this is still a matter of scholastic dispute. This silk painting is based on an essay by the Jin scholar Zhang Hua. It has eleven different scenes, with Chinese text written between each scene. The importance of the painting lies in its fine draftsmanship. It represents the highest achievement ever of Chinese figurative painting. 70˚ 80˚ 90˚ 100˚ 110˚ 120˚ 130˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ 70˚ Linzi (Wang Xizhi 303-61, Wang Xianzhi 344-86, calligraphers) Jiaojun (Dai Kui d.396, Dai Yu 378-441, sculptors) Wuxi (Gu Kaizhi 346-407, painter) Dunhuang Turfan Kashgar Khotan Kucha Yungang Caves Mogao Caves Kezil Caves Longmen Caves Juyan tombs (murals depicting everyday life) Danyang tombs (pictorial bricks depicting famous scholars) Astana Cemetery (textiles, clay figurines, tomb murals) Chang’an (silver) Dingzhou (silk) Jingzhou (paper) Jinyang (iron) Xuzhou (copper) Kuaiji (paper, ceramics) Qingzhou (Buddhist sculpture) Jianye (royal tombs, architecture, animal sculpture, ceramics) (paper, iron, lacquers) (copper mines, architecture, tombs) Beijing Shanghai Guangzhou Xi’an Chengdu Luoyang Nanjing S O U T H C H I NA S E A SEA OF JAPAN L. Balkhash MANCHURIAN PLAIN ALTA I M T S . T I E N S H A N TA K L A M A K A N D E S E R T TA R I M BA S I N P L A T E A U O F T I B E T G O B I H I M A L A Y A S N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 2 China Divided, AD 300-600 ancient city important for raw materials/art production maritime trade route Silk Road important archaeological site site with Buddhist art city associated with artists modern city 2 THE CHINESE EMPIRE fragmented into many small states from 220 to 581. There was a short period of unity under the Western Jin dynasty (AD 265–316), but during this 200-year period the political landscape was dominated by nomadic invaders, who adopted the culture and way of life of the Chinese. In 581 the Sui dynasty reunified China. huge stone sculptures of exotic animals were placed at royal cemeteries, and small luxury items are often found in tombs. Religious art flourished under the patronage of the Northern and Southern dynasties (420–581). The introduction of Buddhism inspired an enormous output of Buddhist icons, paintings and scriptures. This in turn stimulated artistic creativity in the indigenous religion, Taoism. As urbanization intensified in the third and fourth centuries, landscape architecture, painting and poetry, which represented a desire to be closer to nature, became the major new passion of the elite. It coincided with the transformation of calligraphy into a fine art. ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 86 THE EASTERN, OR LATE, ZHOU dynasty (770–221 BC) witnessed the waning and eventual collapse of the central power of the Zhou royal house, as dukes and lords began to develop their own states more or less independently. ZHOU DIVERSITY The names of the two periods of the Eastern Zhou reflect these political changes: the Spring and Autumn period (770–475 BC) and the Warring States period (475–221 BC). These changes are manifested in the great diversity of the cultural development and art of the Eastern Zhou. Many Eastern Zhou finds have been traditionally interpreted as ritual art, but in such diverse cultural contexts, and without a clear understanding of the beliefs of the people, this interpretation is no longer appropriate. CHINA 500 BC-AD 600 TERRACOTTA CAVALRYMAN and saddled horse, Qin Dynasty, 221–202 BC. In the 1960s thousands of terracotta warriors and horses were discovered near the tumulus of the first emperor, Qin Shihuangdi, in Xi’an. They are all lifesize and made in a realistic manner. Great attention was paid to details such as hairstyle and armour, and originally both the human and animal figures were painted. Both the scale of the burial and the exquisite artistic representation of these tomb figurines are unique in Chinese history. 140˚130˚120˚110˚100˚90˚80˚70˚ 40˚ 30˚ 20˚ Leigudun Tomb of Zeng Hou Yi (bronze bells, bamboo documents, bronze and jade artefacts) Mancheng Tomb of Liu Sheng and Douwan; (both bodies wearing jade suits) Tomb of the first Emperor of Qin (and terracotta army) Tomb of the King of Nanyue (bronze and jade artefacts) Qixian Tomb of the King of Zhongshan state (earliest known example of funerary architecture; inlaid bronzes with animal motifs) Yangling Tomb of Emperor Jing of Han (terracotta figurines) Mawangdui Western Han tombs (painted coffins, silk manuscripts, funerary banners with earliest portraiture, textiles, lacquer ware) Shizhaishan (cemetery, bronzes) Alagou cemetery Bronze culture Niya major town on Silk Road Loulan major town on Silk Road Aluchaideng (cemetery; Ordos bronzes) Houma Jin royal cemetery; centre for bronze production Maoqingguo (cemetery; Ordos bronzes) Ba Dian Shu Chang’an Chu Changsha Chengzhou Sanmenxia (Guo cemetery) Dunhuang major town on Silk Road Zhao Wei Han Wenxian (covenant tablets) Shanbiaozheng (Wei cemetery) Jijiahu (Chu cemetery) Lelang Qi Nanyue Lu Wu Yue Xu Luoyang Chu Yan Qin Xianyang Beijing (Peking) ShanghaiXi’an Guangzhou (Canton) Chengdu Ürümqi Kunming Pyongyang Jiangling Ussuri Yangtze Huai R iver Bo Hai Lop Nor L. Balkhash YellowRiver S E A O F J A PA N E A S T C H I NA S E A S O U T H C H I NA S E A YELLOW SEA H I M A L A Y A S G O B I ALTA I M T S . QILIAN SHAN P L A T E A U O F T I B E T M A N C H U R I A N P L A I N TA K L A M A K A N D E S E R T T I E N S H A N TA R I M BA S I N ORDOS DESERT Q I A N G (nomadic culture) SAKA (nomadic culture) X I O N G N U (nomadic culture) HAINAN TAIWAN KOREA N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 Building the Empire, 500 BC-AD 300 ancient capital/political centre major archaeological site important royal/aristocratic tomb nomadic culture maritime trade route Silk Road fortifications (Great Wall) modern city SAKA 1 THE QIN EMERGED FROM THE NORTHWEST, defeated all their enemies and unified the country in 221 BC. The Qin king became the first emperor of China. The Qin dynasty was short-lived, but its successor, the Han dynasty, inherited its legacy and turned China into an empire. A state bureaucracy, territorial expansion, the opening of the Silk Road, Confucian philosophy and popular religious belief in the afterlife, all laid foundations for Chinese society for centuries to come. 147˚141˚129˚123˚ 44˚ 40˚ 36˚ 32˚ Hansan (-AD 474) Ungjin (AD 475-538) Nam Puyo (AD 538-663) Pyongyang (AD 427-668) Kuknaesong (37 BC-AD 427) Kumsong Acha-sansong Isong-sansong Mongchon Hwangsae Pusok-sa Pulguk-sa Kyongju10 Miruk-sa Hae’in-sa Denenchofu Tamazukkuri-Uenodai Nakazato Koshinden Tsuchihashi Takahashi Jizozo Okaku Shimoyama Tohari ichibanwari Sakitama Suwayama Gekkodaira Nakayama Minami Takanohara Tsukazaki Matsuoka Imakumano Sanzen Karausubayashi Yotodoki Horikoshi HaranojoArago Maruyama Mitsudera Nagamine Nishikoko Furuichi Tadadayama Oyamato-Yanagimoto Saki Mozu Narutaki Ozono Waki Takaita 3 Kitadeni Asuka-Itabuki Nakayama chiku Ikaruga Kayama Katamatasuzuka Umami Umanoyama Yoshizuka Yoshida Yajiri Matsuno Omiya Miyamaegawa Saitobaru Kitsunezuka Arita Kumanohara Magome Sakuranojo Ozuka Ama Hie Takehara Tojin Yodong Ponghwang Cholbon Ansi Puso-sansong Kumsong maximumextentof Koguryo border Imjin-gang H an-gang L. Biwa Osumi-shoto Oki-gunto Izu-shoto Sado Cheju-do Tsushima PA C I F I C O C E A N S E A O F J A P A N YELLOW SEA S E A O F O K H O T S K KOREA BAY TIARTS AEROK TAEBAEK -SANMAEK NA N G N I M - S A N M A E K KIBI NOBI KINAI JOMO IZUMO YAMATO SILLA KAYA PAEKCHE K O G U R Y O 9 15 17 26 25 6,18 22 4 7 13 21 2,14,20 3 1,11,19 12,16,23 5,8,24 KYUSHU SHIKOKU HONSHU HOKKAIDO N 0 0 150 miles 200 kms 2 The Emergence of Elite Art, AD 300-600 Korean states: Koguryo (37 BC-AD 668) Paekche (18 BC-AD 664) Silla (57 BC-AD 668) Kaya (AD 42-562) successive capitals fortresses early Buddhist temples important tombs and cemeteries Kofun Japan: Yamato state peripheral areas of state formation expansion of state major Kofun settlements early palace sites elite compounds mound cemeteries major decorated tombs 1- Bangi-dong 2- Bangyeje 3- Chinpa-ri 4- Chisang-dong 5- Choyang-dong 6- Hoechong-dong 7- Imdang-dong 8- Inwang-dong 9- Ipchom-ni 10- Kachoa-dong 11- Karak-dong 12- Kuam-dong 13- Kyo-dong 14- Okchon 15- Paekchon-ni 16- Pisan-dong 17- Pobchon-ni 18- Pokchon-dong 19- Sokchon-dong 20- Songsan-ni 21- Sunhong-dong 22- Taesong-dong 23- Tangkam-dong 24- Wolsongno 25- Yangpyong-dong 26- Yonggoong-ni important tombs and cemeteries JAPAN AND KOREA 500 BC–AD 600 89 were the animals most commonly depicted on bronzes and incised on pottery, with birds also being important, in particular water birds such as cranes and herons. Wooden models of birds have been found in many Yayoi settlements, perhaps representing spiritual guardians. Dogs, lizards, frogs and other animals also appear. Scenes of fighting, pounding rice, storing rice and hunting have also been found. Many deer scapulae are known from Yayoi sites; they bear deliberate burns and scratches, probably used in divination, a practice which was also important on the Korean peninsula. Ritual authority based on the ability to communicate with the spirit world seems to have been a major factor in Yayoi society and Chinese accounts, such as the Wei Zhi, provide vivid descriptions of the way in which ritual power came to be vested in the rulers of chiefdoms, such as the legendary Queen of Yamataikoku, Himiko. 2 WITH THE APPEARANCE of highly structured states on the Korean peninsula and the Japanese archipelago elite groups used art to differentiate themselves from the rest of society. Elaborate monumental burials were the visual expression of social and ritual power as well as the receptacles for large quantities of prestige items. As these early states expanded, their elite rulers built palaces, fortresses and, eventually, Buddhist temples. THE FIRST STATES Contemporary Chinese chronicles and later Korean and Japanese sources refer to the many regional polities which flourished in the first few centuries of the first millennium AD. The influence of China is well-demonstrated by the existence of colonies or commanderies established by the Han Empire on the Korean peninsula. The best-known is Lelang, near present-day Pyongyang, where there was a Chinese city and over 1500 tombs. The agricultural communities on the Korean peninsula and the Japanese archipelago gave rise to a series of political entities which, by the end of the sixth century AD, had developed into states, ruled by elites which interacted with each other and with the Chinese empire. These included the three kingdoms of Koguryo, Paekche and Silla on the Korean peninsula and the Yamato polity in the Kinai region of central Honshu. These elites, which monopolized both secular and ritual power, expressed themselves through new forms of art, which often involved technological advance, as seen in the production of stoneware pottery, and the control of key resources, such as iron and gold. The emergence of this new social hierarchy, complete with strict class divisions, is best reflected in the tradition of burying members of the elite in monumental mounded tombs, often along with splendid treasures. The labour invested in these great funerary monuments is testimony to the unparalleled development of social power. These elites used material culture to great effect, manipulating it to legitimize their own position. Military prowess and the symbolism associated with it, including weaponry and armour, were valued, as the contents of tombs from fifth-century Japan attest. Elites were not only buried apart from the commoners, but also began to live in separate enclosures. This trend, which led from demarcated enclosures within settlements, as at Yoshinogari, to the appearance of entirely separate elite compounds at sites such as Mitsudera, ultimately resulted in the construction of early palace sites in the Kansai region of Japan. On the Korean peninsula, towns and fortifications on the Chinese model had appeared at Kyongju from the third century AD onwards. It was in this context that Buddhism appeared, introduced to Korea in the fourth century and into Japan early in the sixth century. The beliefs and practices associated with Buddhism were taken up by the elites and, along with the increased use of writing, accompanied the gradual Sinification of elite lifestyles, which helped to create further distinctions between the elite classes and commoners. CAST BRONZE BELL (DOTAKU) from Sakuragaoka, west-central Honshu. During the Yayoi period, bronze was used to make ceremonial objects. Dotaku were buried at locations away from settlements. More than 430 of these bells have been discovered, mainly around the Kinai region. Just over 50 of these carry representations in relief, depicting animals, in particular deer, birds, water-insects and amphibians, hunting and fishing, and agricultural scenes of ricepounding and storehouses. ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 88 is only in the later part of the first millennium BC that bronze became an important medium, when bronze assemblages included mirrors, weapons, bells, belt hooks, horse trappings and chariot ornaments. In Japan bronze was used in rituals, and certain forms became very stylized and ceremonial, in particular bronze bells, or dotaku, and spears. Sometimes – at sites such as Kojindani – bronzes were deliberately deposited. At the end of the Yayoi period, some of the newly emerging elite groups engaged in deliberate iconoclasm, breaking and smashing bronze objects and burying them in pits. Pictorial representation became much more common during the Yayoi period. Deer, which may have represented important local deities or had symbolic associations with rice agriculture, THE RICE REVOLUTION The material culture of the Yayoi period in the archipelago (c.400 BC–c. AD300) had much in common with that of the Korean Iron Age (c.500 BC–c.AD 300). In addition to the technology associated with growing rice in specially constructed paddy fields, such as semilunar-shaped stone reaping knives, new items included polished stone arrowheads, megalithic burials (quickly replaced by jar burials in Japan), and settlements enclosed by ditches. These cultural traits gestated in Kyushu during the Initial Yayoi (400–300 BC), rapidly spreading throughout Honshu, and displacing the preceding Jomon cultures. Yayoi pottery differed from the elaborately decorated Jomon traditions in terms of decoration, form and fabrication. The shallow bowls which had become common during the later Jomon had all but disappeared by the end of the first century AD, and the jar-shaped tsubo became a distinctive Yayoi form. Although many bronze artefacts are found in Korea before 500 BC, in particular mirrors and weapons such as daggers and halberds, it JAPAN AND KOREA 500 BC-AD 600 140˚ 130˚ 40˚ 30˚ Cho-Do Hachon-ni Kungong-ni Majang-ni Naksu-ri Nuk-Do Pomuigusok Oksong-ni Pungnam-ni Songsan Tang Tosong Yonggangni Sinmaei-ri Nangming-dong 3 1 2 4 Choyang-dong, Kujong-dong Hapsong-ni Karak-dong Myongji-ri Nopo-dong,Yean-ni Singchang-ni Sora-riSuksang-ni Taho-ri Tohwa-ri Wau-ri Wutuoling Yangpyong-ni Sokchong-dong Susong-ni Taegong-ni PYONHAN Tunnae-ri Ama Senya Ozakidai Toro Kamezuka Kanyo Iwakura Karako-Kagi Hidaka Yayoi-cho Arita Numa Asahi Yoshinogari Ikegami-Sone Jizoden B Oki II Otsuka-Saikachido Nishitani Doigahama Sugitani Mine Suku Okamoto Tatetsuki KamiItazuke Kazahari Magarida Nabatake Tareyanagi Kojindani Sakuragaoka Jinnai Kashihara Kinsei Korekawa Kyunenbashi Satohama Banshoji Kamegaoka Nakayama Miyanomae Mimanda Shinano L. Biwa S E A O F J A P A N YELLOW SEA SEA OF OKHOTSK KOREA BAY Osumi-shoto Oki-gunto Izu-shoto P A C I F I C O C E A N KOREA STRAIT NANGNIM-SANMAEK MAHAN CHINHAN WIMAN CHOSON YE-MAEK OK-CHO PUYO KYUSHU SHIKOKU Cheju-Do Tsushima Sado HONSHU HOKKAIDO KOREA C H I N A Northern limit of rice cultivation in Japan, c. AD 300 N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms The Spread of Agricultural Communities, 500 BC-AD 500 Japan: Final Jomon (500-400 BC) Yayoi (400 BC-AD 300) Korea: Iron Age (500 BC-AD 300) site important settlement major burial and ceremonial site hillforts and towns shell middens site with evidence of rice agriculture site with major bronze hoard ethnic groups in Korea 1 PUYO 1- Suga-ri, Ungchon,Yangsan 2- Toirae-ri 3- Chongbaeng-ni, Namsu-ri, Sogam-ni,Taesong-ni 4- Yangdong-ni Dengzhou Lelang Taifang Toma Yamatai Shikashima Na Ito Koyohan Masuura Possible route of Wei and Himiko embassies, AD 239-247 KOREA historical location along embassy route RICE CULTIVATION and bronze working were well-established on the Korean peninsula by 1000 BC, and within 600 years had spread to the Japanese archipelago. From the later part of the first millennium BC, contacts between Korea and Japan, as well as with China, under the control of the expansionist Han empire, became a major factor influencing the development of visual, material culture and technology. In Japan the last centuries of the forager Jomon period saw the appearance of plainer pottery vessels in the southwest, and an increase in ritual activity involving clay figurines, possibly indicating a resistance to the advent of rice-paddy agriculture. DETAIL OF ROCK ENGRAVINGS at Pan’gudae, southeastern Korea, c.400–300 BC. There are at least nine sites along the Naktong River valley in south Korea where rock art has been discovered. The panels at Pan’gudae include abstract motifs such as spirals and lozenges, as well as representations of fishing, hunting, boats, humans, fish and animals. Animals and humans are depicted in two ways, the ‘silhouette’ style and the ‘x-ray’ style, in which bones are visible. These different styles may represent different periods of engraving; it appears that some of the incisions required the use of metal tools. 1 THE ADOPTION OF AGRICULTURAL LIFESTYLES on the Korean peninsula and subsequently in the Japanese archipelago was associated with major technological, social and cultural transformations, along with some degree of human migration and higher population densities. These changes also heralded changes in the landscape, with forests gradually being cleared to make way for both dry and irrigated fields. Competition for good agricultural land and trends towards increasing social differentiation were associated with rising tensions leading to the appearance of defended sites and warfare. SOUTHEAST ASIA 500 BC–AD 600 91 sites include both bronze and iron objects as well as carved stone ornaments, particularly earrings, that are common in these excavations. The Sa Huynh seem to be ancestral to the Cham, who became prominent by the sixth century AD. THE RISE OF STATES In about the first century BC, a series of entrepôts and economic centres at the mouth of the Mekong appear to have formed one of the earliest indigenous states in Southeast Asia. We know of this empire from Chinese texts where it is called ‘Funan’. Funan’s rise in significance is linked to two developments in the region. Firstly, an advanced agrarian system that included intensive rice agriculture and swamp drainage had emerged, later evolving into an elaborate irrigation system. Secondly, these entrepôts had a strategic location opposite the Isthmus of Kra on the Malay Peninsula, which had come to dominate trade between China to the east and India, Persia, and the Roman world to the west. Early sources suggest that a high-caste Indian visitor had married a local woman to become the first ‘king’ of Funan. Contemporary texts have led some scholars to speculate that Indian immigrants were responsible for transforming the style and structure of Funan society, economics and politics. Migration of Brahman clerks to the kingdom effectively Indianized the state. More recent scholars tend to view the introduction of Indian cultural and religious forms as inspired by a local initiative to adopt sophisticated foreign practices and ideas rather than as the imposition of Indian culture by immigrants. These scholars also argue that while Chinese sources may write of Funan as a kingdom, it was probably not a unitary state in the modern sense, but a series of tribal communities linked through kin ties and marriage to form a coalition for military and economic purposes. Some scholars suggest that this coalition never reached the level of integration where the chief was transformed into a divine king, a crucial process in later Southeast Asian states. From its centre on the Mekong, Funan used its superior naval power to expand its control to the west, capturing the polity of Dunsun at the base of the Malay Peninsula. Dunsun was already an Indianized commercial centre, monopolizing trade across the Isthmus 15˚ 15˚ 0˚ Tropic of Cancer 150˚135˚120˚105˚ Oc Eo Salween Mekong Red R. Irrawaddy I N D I A N O C E A N P A C I F I C O C E A N SOUTH CHINA SEA JAVA SEA CELEBES SEA SULU SEA FLORES SEA ANDAMAN SEA GULFO F THAILAN D BANDA SEA ARAFURA SEA STRAIT O F M ALACCA MACASSARSTRAIT VIETNAM CHAMPA SRIVIJAYA KHMER DUNSUN ISTHMUS OF KRA FUNAN YEPOTI HELUODAN GANTUOLI GEYING SHEBO MOLU C C A S JAVA TIMOR SULAWESI BORNEO S U M A TRA M A L A Y A E A S T I N D I E S A U S T R A L I A N E W G U I N E A B U R M A P H ILIPPINES S I A M INDO -CHINA CAMBODIA ANNAM Key archaeological site 1st-5th century To China To India Creating a Cosmopolitan World: Trade, AD 100-600 commercial centres, 1st-5th centuries commercial centres, c. 6th century trade routes: 1st century 2nd-3rd centuries 5th century resources: tin deposits copper deposits 2 N 0 0 300 miles 450 kms 2 SOUTHEAST ASIAN TRADE ROUTES by AD 100 were oriented especially towards India, although northern Vietnam was a province of China. The Indianized Funan culture of southern Vietnam was the dominant trading centre of the region. Archaeological finds at the Funan city of Oc Eo include amulets of Hindu gods, Roman glass, coins and medals, as well as mirrors and Buddhist statuettes from China. From the fourth century, China, by then deprived of trade through central Asia, turned its attention south. Chinese maritime traders developed a commercial route through the Strait of Malacca and developed contacts with western Java and Sumatra. Funan trade was now eclipsed by that of the Khmer and Cham centres. of Kra. This expansion enhanced Funan’s wealth, stimulating the local production of art. Archaeological finds at Oc Eo include an abundance of objects associated with Funan's role in trade: imported jewels, gold rings, merchant seals, ceramics, tin amulets of Visnu and Shiva, Roman glass, a gold coin minted during the reign of Marcus Aurelius (AD 161–180), a gold medal of Antoninus Pius (dated AD 152), a Chinese bronze mirror (late Han dynasty, first to third century) and several Buddhist statuettes from the Wei period (AD 386–534). But besides these trade goods, archaeologists have also found numerous glass beads of local manufacture, interpreted as a Funan adaptation of Roman technology, as well as many moulded and engraved tin plaques. Sculpture and stone architecture in Funan show evidence of locally adapted Indian religious art. These include wall reliefs as well as wooden and stone sculptures of both Visnu and Buddha. TRADE AND CONTACT While artefacts reveal little evidence for direct Chinese contact in island Southeast Asia until after the end of this period, the ties with India were profound and influenced all forms of art, religion and rituals, as well as the structure of the Southeast Asian states that would form in the following centuries. Only in Vietnam, which became a Chinese province in about 111 BC, was Hinduization not the predominant cultural influence on art. By the fourth century the Chin dynasty in China lost access to caravan routes through central Asia and the Chinese turned their attention to maritime trade routes through Southeast Asia. Chinese contacts with the lessdeveloped centres of Heluodan in western Java and Geying in Sumatra allowed Chinese traders to circumvent Funan’s monopoly over the portage across the Kra Isthmus by sailing through the Strait of Malacca. This shift in trade led to the demise of Funan as a coastal entrepôt, Funan yielding to growing Khmer and Cham centres in Cambodia and southern Vietnam respectively. Chinese economic influences in Sumatra encouraged the rise of Srivijaya and other Hindu and Buddhist states in neighbouring Java, but these states retained their Indian cultural influences, suggesting just how weak the cultural influences from China still were. KRISHNA GOVARDHANA, first half of the sixth century AD. This Indianized grey limestone sculpture belongs to the early Phnom Da style of preAngkorean Cambodia. In spite of expanding Chinese trade by the fourth century AD, the Hindu and Buddhist states of Southeast Asia retained a profoundly Indian cultural orientation. ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 90 IT IS GENERALLY ACCEPTED that the Bronze Age in mainland Southeast Asia had begun in earnest by the middle of the second millennium BC. Some archaeologists claim to have discovered bronze-working sites in northeast Thailand dating to 3500 BC, much earlier than bronze-working in China. Newer dating of related sites suggests this industry is much later than previously thought, placing serious doubt on the emergence of a preChinese bronze technology in Southeast Asia. It is now believed that the earliest bronze working in northeast Thailand dates to about 1500 BC. Although bronze objects of Chinese origin had already been available in some mainland Southeast Asian settlements for nearly a thousand years, they made little impact on local art traditions until c.500 BC. BRONZE-AGE CULTURES The fifth century BC saw the emergence of what has come to be known as the Dong Son culture situated on the coast and Red River delta of northern Vietnam. Dong Son is probably the best-known Bronze Age tradition in Southeast Asia. The most notable and famous Dong Son objects are the large bronze kettle drums made with the lost-wax technique. These drums often weighed more than 80 kg (176 lb) and were made by specialized and highly skilled, stratification. Dong Son craftsmen also produced many other bronze objects such as bowls, beads, spears, daggers and ornaments, and by this period iron tools are increasingly important. Ceramic dishes, bowls and jars elaborated on earlier ceramic traditions. From the archaeological distribution Dong Son kettle drums, it is clear that they played a key role in the trade networks that were gradually extending across island Southeast Asia. About the same period as the emergence of Dong Son culture, the Sa Huynh culture developed in southern Vietnam. Most of what we know of Sa Huynh culture comes from excavations of large pottery burial jars. These SOUTHEAST ASIA 500 BC-AD 600 15˚ 15˚ 0˚ 150˚135˚120˚105˚90˚ Con Con Ngua (800 BC) Manunggul Cave (200 BC) Niah (400 BC) Sungai Lang (600 BC) Pejaten (650 BC) (750 BC) Tham Ongbah (275 BC) Ban Puan Phu (925 BC) Kalanay Tabon Caves Sa Huynh Phu Hoa (500-1 BC) Hang Gon Go Mun Lang Ca Viet Khe Dong Son (500 BC) Lang Vac P A C I F I C O C E A N I N D I A N O C E A N S O U T H C H I NA S E A TIMOR SEA ARAFURA SEA CELEBES SEA SULU SEA GULF OF THAILAND ANDAMAN SEA BANDA SEA J A V A S E A BORNEO JAVA S U M A T R A LUZON TIMOR FLORES BALI LOMBOK SUMBA SUMBAWA CELEBES MINDAN MOLU C C A S PALA W AN C H I N A BURMA VIETNAM THAILAND M A L A Y S I A I N D O N E S I A A U S T R A L I A P H ILIPPINES N E W G U I N E A Mekong N 0 0 300 miles 450 kms 1 Bronze Age Southeast Asia, 500 BC-AD 100 distribution of bronze technology from China, pre-500 BC trade with China area of Dong Son culture important Dong Son sites area of Sa Huynh culture important Sa Huynh sites other Bronze Age sites earliest sites with iron artefacts distribution of Dong Son bronze kettle drums: 50 drums 5 drums 3 drums 1-2 drums DONG SON LOST-WAX BRONZE TOMB FIGURE of a lamp bearer. Dong Son culture flourished in northern Vietnam from the fifth to the second century BC. Besides figures, burial bronzes included ornate kettle drums, ankle bells, axes, daggers and belt buckles. Burials also included pottery and woodcarved boat-shaped coffins, oars, spear handles, axe handles and lacquered boxes. 1 THE DISTRIBUTION OF DONG SON KETTLE DRUMS reveals a key role for the Dong Son culture in trade networks that were gradually expanding to encompass all of Southeast Asia. The bronze drums, each requiring 1 to 7 tons of copper ore were made by lost-wax casting and were richly decorated with scenes of daily life and ritual. craftsmen. Both the sides of these drums and the tympanum are decorated with scenes that provide some of the most important evidence of Dong Son ritual and cultural life. Scenes of dancers wearing bird-of-paradise plumes, for example, document the increasing importance of trade with New Guinea and other exotic places as well as the emergence of social 180˚165˚150˚135˚ 30˚ 15˚ 0˚ 15˚ Madang Humboldt Bay Tumleo Mailu Motu Wewak Tinian Bairulchau 200 AD Nan Madol 1 AD Kosrae 500 AD Sepik River S O U T H PA C I F I C O C E A N GULF OF PAPUA BISMARCK ARCHIPELAGO LOUISIADE ARCHIPELAGO FIJI NEW CALEDONIA NEW HEBRIDES (VANUATU) SOLOMON ISLANDS TONGA P O L Y N E S I A M E L A N E S I A M I C R O N E S I A NEW GUINEA N 0 0 300 miles 400 kms 2 Artistic traditions in Melanesia, to AD 600 extent of pottery in Melanesia by AD 600 carved megaliths dolomites early carved stone figures paddle-and-anvil pottery traditions shell ring-producing areas THE PACIFIC 500 BC–AD 600 93 2 WESTERN PACIFIC ART. Inferior late-Lapita pottery dominated ceramic styles in most of Melanesia, but northern New Guinea witnessed a vigorous development of paddle-and-anvil techniques, in which pots as much as a metre in diameter were built up by a potter holding a support (the anvil) on the inside of the vessel while shaping the outside with a wooden paddle. Spiral-coiling and slab-building techniques were also in use. This period saw the wide diffusion of two Melanesian art traditions that have survived: the stringing of shells into rings and strings for body ornamentation, and carving in stone. THE POLYNESIAN EXPANSION In any event, by 300 BC Polynesian culture had established itself firmly in the Tonga and Samoan archipelagos and it was from here that Polynesians settled the Society Islands and the Marquesas, in about 200 BC. After establishing stable communities in both archipelagos, Polynesian settlement expanded to the east as far as Easter Island (by about AD 300) and to the Hawaiian Islands in the north (about 400). Unfortunately, little is known about the art of any of these central, eastern and northern Polynesian communities from this period. Ceramics were absent, as were the carving traditions in wood – prominent in the later art styles of Hawaii and Tahiti – and megalithic carving, which was to play so important a role in later Marquesan and Easter Island art. Further west in Melanesia and New Guinea archaeologists are only just beginning to piece together ceramic sequences for this period. Pottery, which appeared only in a few places in New Guinea up to this period, spread to most areas along the north coast of the island and along the south coast into the Papuan Gulf and to the southeastern coast. Ceramic technologies included spiral-coiling, slabbuilding and paddle-and-anvil techniques. Only the paddle-and-anvil techniques seem to have developed into major commodityproducing industries, with large-sized pots as much as a metre in diameter. These ceramic centres were situated at Tumleo, Wewak, Madang, Mailu and the Motu area. Pottery technologies seem to have expanded inland upriver into the Sepik basin or perhaps across the mountain ranges in the east of the island. In much of island Melanesia ceramic technologies declined. Late Lapita styles are crude as compared with early designs. In many of the islands in southern Melanesia where Lapita shards have been found, pottery either INCISED AND APPLIED-RELIEF WARE of the central New Hebrides. These fragments were found at Mangaasi on the Island of Efate, where such wares appear between 700 and 1600. The Mangaasi culture also flourished up until 1200 on neighbouring islands. disappears completely or becomes a plainware tradition. We know that the arts were developing in many diverse directions, but few examples of wood carving, featherwork, plaiting and the like have come down to us. SURVIVING TRADITIONS Two aspects of the art traditions of Melanesia have survived. The first involves the use of shell for ornaments. It is likely that during this period rings of tridacna, trocus, and conus shell emerge as fully developed traditions found on the north coast of New Guinea. Large shell arm-rings were produced in the islands of the Louisiade archipelago – a local industry that would later become part of the Kula exchange network, a cycle of gift exchange practised among a group of islands off eastern New Guinea. Everywhere the people of New Guinea and Melanesia began to develop a plethora of local styles of shell ornaments, shell beads, pendants and armbands. Stone-working traditions were also developing in the Melanesian region during this period, although archaeologists have only been able to date some of the utilitarian axe and adze industries. The more important art traditions in stone have proven much harder to date in Melanesia, but it is probably during this period that we see the efflorescence of carved stone clubs, mortars and pestles, and simple megaliths. PARTLY RESTORED PAEPAE (house platform in stone) at Hiva Oa on Taa’oa Island in the Marquesas. Wellpreserved examples like this date from 1300 or later, but some stone accumulations in the Marquesas provide evidence that paepae were being constructed by eastern Polynesians as early as AD 200. ART, WAR AND EMPIRE 92 Polynesians as Southeast Asians who moved through the north of Melanesia to Fiji, Tonga and Samoa. A second school sees the Bismarck Archipelago, northeast of New Guinea, as the Lapita homeland, despatching people, arts and culture to the Fiji-TongaSamoa region; here, Lapita art, culture, and society regrouped before expanding into more remote parts of Polynesia. A third school acknowledges that Lapita culture emerged in the Bismarcks, but sees the emergence of Polynesian culture as essentially a local development that drew heavily on earlier social and artistic forms in Melanesia. More evidence is needed to explain when, where and how early Polynesian culture developed. BY ABOUT 500 BC the diverse peoples who made and used Lapita pottery had expanded into newly settled areas of western Polynesia, most notably Tonga, Samoa, and Fiji. People in all three of these archipelagos were in regular and frequent contact through trade and probably intermarriage. Such interactions explain why the art and material culture as well as political formations developed in concert with one another. THE CULTURE OF WESTERN POLYNESIA Ceramics become less and less important after 500 BC, and the distinctive Lapita designs disappeared altogether in the Polynesian area. Archaeologists have suggested that these designs persisted for more than a millennium in other media, and are most visible today in designs on Polynesian bark cloth (tapa) and tattoos. It appears that this newly settled hub of western Polynesian culture emerged with fully developed horticulture, sedentary settlement, and the beginnings of stratified political systems. In these respects, western Polynesia differs only slightly in form from chiefly societies that were developing in New Caledonia and the New Hebrides. While most archaeologists have associated all of these traits with the so-called Lapita Expansion, there remain several uncertainties about how Polynesian cultural forms actually emerged. One school of thought sees THE PACIFIC 500 BC-AD 600 135˚150˚165˚ 180˚165˚150˚135˚ 30˚ 15˚ 0˚ 15˚ 30˚ 45˚ A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A Vanimo Kuk Leitre Teop Aitape Sio Lake Sentani Jayapura (Humboldt Bay) Lesu Pu’u Ali’i Moloka’i Bellows Dune Kawainui Sasi Bird's Head Lasigi Oposisi Mailu Fissoa Arawe Navatu Aoa valley Mulfanua Sasoa’a Vailele Luatuanu’u Tatangamatau Sigatoka Lomolomo Potanéan Col de la Pirogue Éfaté 100 AD 500 BC 1 AD 1 AD 1 AD Bairulchau Nan Madol Ngerulmud Lolokoka Lotoaa Niutoua Pakea S O U T H P A C I F I C O C E A N C O R A L S E A ARAFURA SEA CAROLINE ISLANDS HAWAIIAN ISLANDS SOLOMON ISLANDS SAMOA MARSHALL ISLANDS GILBERT ISLANDS SOCIETY ISLANDS MARQUESAS ISLANDS NEW CALEDONIA TONGA FIJINEW HEBRIDES (VANUATU) NISSAN TINIAN BUKA ULAWA YAP NGULU FAIS KWAJALEIN MAJURO MALOELAP KOSRAE CHUUK YULE ISLAND ANUTA TONGATAPU MAANU’A TABUAERAN (FANNING I.) MÓOREA TAHITI MANGAREVA PUKAPUKA NUKU HIVA UA POU HIVA OA UA HUKA TIKOPIA LOU ISLAND MARE ROTUMA ERROMANGO VANIKORO FUTUANA MARIANAS ISLANDS M I C R O N E S I A M E L A N E S I A 500 BC 500 BC COOK ISLANDS GUADALCANAL NEW GEORGIA SAN CRISTOBAL MUSSAU RAPA NUI (EASTER I.) P O L Y N ESI A NEW GUINEA A U S T R A L I A AD 200 AD 1 AD 500 AD 1 500 BC 500 BC AD 100 AD 100 AD 200 900 BC 500 BC 200 BC AD 200 AD 500 AD 300 400 BC AD 200 200 BC 200 BC AD 1 AD 300 AD 300 AD 1 AD 1 AD 500 200 BC AD 100 AD 400 AD 400 AD 500 AD 620 AD 1 1000 BC AD 500 AD 500 AD 500 1000 BC AD 200 1000 BC 150 BC AD 100 AD 100 AD 1 1000 BC 600 BC AD 600 AD 400 300 BC AD 640 AD 1 100 BC AD 500 AD 500 N 0 0 1000 miles 1500 kms 1 The Expansion of Human Settlement, 500 BC-AD 600 extent of human settlement by 200 BC expansion of human settlement: 300-200 BC AD 300 AD 400 Archaeological sites, with earliest dates where available: archaeological site habitation or settlement A cave site or rockshelter midden megaliths fortification cultivation sites with glass or metal beads originating in Southeast Asia sites with brass artefacts originating in Southeast Asia 1 THE SETTLING OF POLYNESIA. The western base of Polynesian culture in the Tongan and Samoan archipelagos was firmly established by about 300 BC. An eastward migration of Polynesians, starting about 200 BC, brought human populations first to the Society Islands and the Marquesas, then by about AD 300 as far as Easter Island. Polynesians migrated north to the Hawaiian Islands in about AD 400. Evidence of ceramics and wood carving is not found in these newly settled islands until later centuries. By the end of the period individual Muslims were building monuments of unprecedented refinement and luxury, such as the Alhambra palace at Granada or the tomb of Timur (Tamerlane) at Samarkand. In Europe, Christianity, already established in the Mediterranean area, spread northwards, reaching most of Scandinavia by the eleventh century. In 800 Charlemagne was crowned western emperor by the pope in Rome, while another Christian emperor based in Constantinople continued to rule the East. Churches were built from Ireland to Armenia, becoming progressively larger and more elaborate, especially in western Europe, where first feudal rulers and then wealthy citizens competed in the patronage of sculpture, paintings, stained glass, metalwork and manuscripts. Activity eventually became most intense in Italy, where the cult of the leading individual resulted in artists like Leonardo and Michelangelo also being called monarchs and creators. In the East Buddhism was sponsored enthusiastically by the Sui Dynasty and then, along with Daoism, by the Tang (619–907), whose capital of Chang’an (modern Xi’an) became the greatest city in the world. It was also taken up by the Japanese empire, founded in imitation of the Chinese in 645, and by the Silla Dynasty who unified Korea in 688. In Southeast Asia Buddhism was also adopted by the Sailendra Dynasty in Indonesia in the mid-eighth century, and by later dynasties in Burma and Cambodia. Such cooperations resulted in two of the biggest and most complex masonry structures ever built: Borobudur on Java and Angkor Wat in Cambodia. ELSEWHERE, THE INCREASE IN ARTISTIC ACTIVITY was more simply the product of economic growth and the increasing concentration of wealth in the hands of particular groups. In West Africa the wealthy kingdom of Benin became established about 1100, and far to the south and east another royal capital, Great Zimbabwe, was built surrounded by vast stone ramparts. In Central America the Maya had their pyramidal temples and their pictorial script, and the Aztecs their violent sculptures, their palaces and gardens. In modern Peru the Chimu on the coast were great builders in clay, the Inca in the Andes in stone. The Nazca, also in Peru, and the mound-builders of Ohio, far to the north, even shaped the earth into extraordinary, gigantic images of birds and other animals. All these cultures had flourishing ceramic industries, but on the islands of the Pacific, from Hawaii to the Marquesas, the hierarchical seafarers of Polynesia abandoned pottery to concentrate on wood and stone, building great platforms and erecting scuptures of ancestors, of which those of Easter Island are the most remarkable. ONE OF THE MAIN REASONS FOR THE INCREASE IN WEALTH during this period was the growth of trade, and it was the impact of this growth on Europe that was to have the greatest effect on the next five centuries. West African entrepreneurs in the thirteenth century sent Europe the gold needed for new hard currencies, such as the Florentine florin, while from China came vital technologies. Printing, paper production and multiple-copy book publishing, which had been firmly established in China in the Sung period, greatly accelerated the circulation of knowledge when introduced to Europe after 1450, and the adoption of the equally Chinese compass, rudder and gunpowder allowed the more sinister worldwide circulation of a new breed of merchant warriors. THE BUDDHIST STUPA at Borobudur in Java. F IFTEEN HUNDRED YEARS AGO art began to take on a new importance. The use of permanent materials, which had previously been concentrated in western Asia, North Africa and southern Europe, became increasingly frequent in other areas. It spread to Central, South, and East Asia, to northern Europe and Sub-Saharan Africa, and developed independently in the Americas and the Polynesian islands in the eastern Pacific. IN THIS PROCESS ECONOMIC DEVELOPMENTS and the diffusion of technologies were, as always, powerful factors, but the trend towards grander and often more durable buildings, sculptures and paintings was greatly accelerated by the increasing numbers of connections between religious and political institutions, especially where individual rulers encouraged religions that also focused on a single deity, teacher or concept. These included not only the descendants of Jewish monotheism, with its single creator, Christianity and Islam, but Indian religions, such as Buddhism and the cults of Vishnu and Shiva, and the Chinese belief in the ‘Way’ (Dao), Daoism. Monarchs across Europe, North Africa and Asia indirectly enhanced their positions by pouring resources into such religions, and these resources were often turned into buildings and other works of art. For populations looking for order in a world destabilized by the collapse of the great empires of Rome, Sasanian Persia, Mauryan India and Han China, there was great reassurance in religions and states that mirrored each other in their concentration on one supreme authority. Since the religions involved were all based on texts, and the texts themselves could be made the subject of art, that reassurance was always liable to be given material expression. This was particularly so when the missionary nature of Buddhism, Islam and Christianity brought them into competition. FROM EUROPE TO JAPAN DYNASTIES SOUGHT to secure their positions by sponsoring exclusively, or primarily, one religion. At the beginning of the period dynasties in most of Europe adopted Christianity, those in Spain, North Africa and much of Asia chose Islam, and those in Southeast Asia adhered to Buddhism, often combined with related forms of Hinduism. Buildings were essential for devotion, and in each area churches, mosques or temples were constructed. Islam was perhaps the religion that best represents the new trend. After the death of its founder, Mohammed, in 632, it expanded rapidly from the Arabian peninsula into West Asia before establishing itself from West Africa to Indonesia. Mosques, decorated not with images but texts, were built with great halls for prayer and preaching, often associated with educational and other charitable institutions; new cities, such as Haroun al-Rashid’s circular Baghdad, were laid out. ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 600-1500 ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 96 shells, and copper and mica, as well as the high development of pottery and weaving. Even mosses and lichens were used in Florida to weave delicate lace-like aprons, while California tribes made exquisite miniature gift baskets decorated with shells and hummingbird feathers. ART AND SOCIETY Since many of the tribes were small nomadic family bands, this led to the development of sophisticated portable THE EARLY HUNTING-GATHERING cultures of North America had adapted to a diverse range of environmental factors by 600 and had developed highly specialized economies, social structures and arts. The North American habitats range from Arctic in the far north to sub-tropical in the south, with rainforest, desert, woodlands and grasslands in between. Prior to the arrival of Europeans the tribes of North America had devised ingenious ways of using virtually all the resources available to them, and were doing so with an unrivalled sense for form and aesthetics. Although materials varied according to local conditions, they included extensive use of skins and furs, plant fibres, feathers, bird and porcupine quills, wood, stone, NORTH AMERICA 600-1500 MIMBRES MORTUARY BOWL. Pottery was among the highest achievements of early Native American populations, particularly among the Mogollon of the Mimbres Valley in Southeast New Mexico. This example, from just after 1000, is characteristic of the Mimbres style of shallow mortuary bowl, in which the use of positive and negative space and of stylized form was very sophisticated. All Mimbres bowls have a hole through the centre by which the vessel was ritually ‘killed’. 80˚90˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 120˚ 130˚ 140˚ 150˚ 160˚ 170˚ Cape Nome Hooper Bay Beluga Point Campus Canyon Creek Juneau Birnik Kurlgitavik Cape Krusenstern Ahteut Onion PortageIyatayet Merrill Jackson Vaughn Kuujjua River Resolute Turnstone Beach Inglefield Land Thule (Qaanaaq) Illumersiut Inussuk Sermermiut Kangia Illutalik De Blicquy Buchanan Pembroke Clare Malerualik Crystal Silumiut Igluligardjuk Naujan Pingitkalik Mittimatalik Qilalukan Craig Harbour Maxwell Bay Nunguvik Strathcona Sound Lady Franklin Point Memorana Kodiak Island Platinum Togiak Prince Rupert Dodge Island Cape Flattery Ozette Isle Royale Harris Alkali Ridge San Luis Obispo Smith River Canyon de Chelly Wupatki Lovelock Cave Gunther Island Hogup Cave Danger Cave Borax Lake Oak Grove Pinto Basin Gypsum Cave Humboldt Cave Naco Snaketown Casa Grande Lehner Montezuma Castle Bandelier Mimbres Folsom Pueblo Bonito Mesa Verde Quivira Olsen-Chubbock Lipscomb Marksville Spiro Meserve Jaketown Poverty Point Emerald Mound Lubbock Aligates Quarry Midland Levi Bonfire Modoc Dalton Graham Cave NewarkFort Ancient Angel Mound City Serpent Mound Effigy Mounds Aztalan Cahokia Logan Creek Starved Rock Huff Village Dot Island Shethane Lake Neck Metabetchouan Rosenkrans Ferry Williamson Key Marco Weeden Island Turtle Mound Bilbo Hollywood Town Creek Point Peninsula Etowah Mandeville Moundville Yukon RioGrande Mississippi S t Law rence Colorado Ohio Missouri Mackenzie Great Lakes P A C I F I C O C E A N A R C T I C O C E A N G U L F O F M E X I C O GULFOFCALIFORNIA B E A U F O R T S E A G U L F O F A L A S K A B E R I N G S E A H U D S O N BAY BA F F I N BAY ROCKYMOUNTAINS A P PA L A C H IA N M TS GREENLA N D TEMPERATE RAIN FOREST maritime/timber resources (mainly cedar) extensive wood carving; house posts, split plank houses, masks, canoes, abalone and shell inlay basketwork CALIFORNIA maritime economy on coast; acorn farming in interior, hunting, basketry, featherwork, some wood carving GRASSLANDS big game hunting; skin clothing, featherwork, buffalo robes, horn utensils, porcupine quillwork EASTERN FOREST (semi-tropical in south) maize farming; hunting; maritime resources in south and eastern seaboard; skin clothing, birch and elm bark houses, containers, canoes; wood carving, bird and porcupine quill embroidery, featherwork in Mississippian area, use of copper, obsidian, shark teeth, and some pottery; cane basketwork, woven fabrics, tattooing in south NORTHERN FOREST hunter-gatherer economy; skin clothing, birch bark houses, canoes and containers ARCTIC tundra in south; maritime economy, including whale hunting, sealskin, birdskin, fishskin clothing; ivory and driftwood carving, snow block houses (igloos), skin-covered driftwood shelters DESERT WEST hunter-gathering; maize farming in southwest, pottery, woven fabrics, basketwork, pit houses and adobe pueblos, featherwork, some wood carving N 0 0 500 miles 700 kms 1 Major Archaeological Sites Inuit archaeological site, post-600 late archaeological site extent of Mogollon tradition, c.300-1300 extent of Fremont tradition, c.400-1150 extent of Patayan tradition, c.500-1100 extent of Anasazi tradition, c.500-1300 extent of Hohokam tradition, c.600-1450 1 NORTH AMERICA is usually divided into culture areas that reflect the distribution of resources. Archaeological evidence suggests there was a blending of traits at the boundaries between culture areas rather than clear-cut distinctions. The density of archaeological sites in any particular region does not necessarily indicate higher occupancy. Many archaeological sites in originally populous areas, such as the eastern seaboard, have been destroyed or are beneath more recent developments and therefore inaccessible. 2 Mississippian Temple Mound Sites, c.900 Middle Mississippian South Appalachian Mississippian Plaquemine Mississippian Caddoan Mississippian Fort Ancient Oneota temple mound site raw materials: obsidian grizzly bear teeth chalcedony flint silver copper pipestone mica marine shells shark/alligator teeth Cu M Ag HOPEWELL/MISSISSIPPIAN MICA CUT-OUT. Decorative arts were highly developed among the Hopewell and Mississippian peoples of the Woodlands, where artisans traded widely to obtain precious materials that were unavailable locally. This exquisite carving of an eagle’s claw is from thin sheet mica and demonstrates their refined use of abstraction. Such objects served no practical purpose, other than to attest to the skill of the carver and the status of the person for whom it was made. It dates to just before 1000. 2 MISSISSIPPIAN CULTURE centred on the Ohio River Valley, but there were many regional variations. Each of these has minor, but distinguishing, features. The spread of distinctive Mississippian cultural traits from Ohio to outlying regions was largely through trade networks. artforms using locally available materials. In the Subarctic, for instance, extensive use was made of sheets of rolled birchbark in the production of canoes and as house coverings, whereas on the Great Plains there was use of buffalo hide tipis. Many of these tipis were painted with emblematic designs detailing tribal affiliation and the status of the family that lived there. The two major population centres were the Mississippians in the Eastern Woodlands, based on the Ohio Valley, and the pueblo cultures of the Anasazi, Hohokam and Mogollon in the Southwest, although by 1500 the cultures of the Mississippians and of the Anasazi, Hohokam and Mogollon had declined, to be replaced by the tribes recorded in historical accounts. There were also sizable village settlements on the British Columbia coast of western Canada, where there was a flourishing maritime economy. In each of these areas settled communities enabled the production of more permanent art as well as the growth of significant architectural forms. MISSISSIPPIAN CULTURE Mississippian culture displaced the earlier Adena-Hopewell people of the Woodlands region, and there followed an increased construction of earth mounds that served as bases for wooden temples used by a governing priesthood. Many of these mounds have complex geometric and interlocking patterns and designs, including animal and bird effigy figures that served as clan markers. It is also apparent that Mississippian culture, like that of the Adena-Hopewell, was based on ritual sites that attracted large urban populations. Cahokia, the largest of the Mississippian settlements, was founded about 700 and contains over 100 mounds in an area of 13 square kilometres (5 square miles). Mississippian art was intended to demonstrate the wealth and status of a ruling hierarchy, and to this end exotic materials such as obsidian, shells, shark teeth, mica, copper and silver were traded into the region from as far afield as the Rocky Mountains and Mexico. Much of the work made from these materials has a fragile delicacy, such as translucent 70˚ 50˚ 40˚ 30˚ 80˚90˚100˚ Ag Ag Cu Cu Cu Cu M M M Dickson Grave Creek Mound Newark AdenaHopewell Fort Ancient Seip Great Serpent Mound Aztalan Cahokia Angel Kings Mound Towosahgy Knapp Mounds Spiro Chucalissa Owl Creek Moundville Winterville Natchez Emerald Mound Shiloh Florence Scotts LakeRock Eagle Ocmulgee Lamar Kolomoki Lake Jackson Town Creek Hiwassee Island Etowah Old Fort Utz M ississippi Mis souri Ohio RedRi ver Arkansas Lake Michigan Lake Erie G U L F O F M E X I C O A T L A N T I C O C E A N APPALA C H IA N M TS N 0 0 300 miles 450 kms paper-thin mica cut-outs of bird claws and hands, that indicates they were made as show pieces rather than for utilitarian purposes. SOUTHWESTERN CULTURE Southwestern architecture, by contrast, was based on adobe (mud brick), multi-storied communal dwellings and a democratic sharing of resources. There were high achievements here in pottery – this is the most important pottery region of North America – as well as in basketwork and in cotton weaving. Pottery was in fact so important here that much of the chronology of the region is dated from pot sherds. Probably the most striking pottery was made by the Mimbres, a subgroup of the Mogollon, whose shallow bowls contain masterful depictions of birds, animals and human figures that seem to dance on the bowl surfaces and interlock with complex geometric borders and patterns. THE NORTHWEST COAST The other major population area, the Northwest Coast of British Columbia and southern Alaska, had an economy based on salmon, eulachon (candle-fish) and sea mammal hunting. The resources here were so rich that only half the year was spent in economic pursuits, and the remainder was devoted to a sacred ceremonial season. The dominant influence on Northwest Coast art was the massive cedars of the rain forest. Carved and painted house posts were the largest wood carvings on the continent and depicted complex figures detailing a family’s lineage. In fact, family and clan lineage was so dominant here that everything was carved and painted with these ownership marks. Cedar plank houses, as much as 30 metres (100 feet) long, had painted fronts, and wooden storage boxes, sea going dug-out canoes, utensils, bowls, house screens, fish hooks, masks, even clan hats and cedar bark capes all carried these intricate designs. A unique characteristic of this art is the use of split-representation, in which the clan animal being shown is depicted as if split down the middle and laid out flat so that the entire animal can be seen. This is a highly sophisticated form of abstract representation, combining symbolism and geometry with stylized animal features. 97 NORTH AMERICA 600–1500 CENTRAL AMERICA 600–1500 99 architecture – such as colonnaded halls fronting structures supported by feathered serpent columns and monumental Atlantean figures – borrowed from the past but was also innovative. The appearance of this style at the distant Mayan site of Chichén Itzá is often considered a Toltec invasion of the Yucatán, but supporting evidence remains unconvincing. Recumbent life-size stone figures called chacmools, used for holding blood offerings, appear at this time at Tula and Chichén Itzá. The Aztecs incorporated vast amounts of Mesoamerica into a tribute-generating empire in the final century before the Spanish invasion. Emulating the earlier Toltecs, Aztec sculptors created powerful works that both embodied sacred concepts and glorified the Aztec state. They arranged the twin pyramids of the Templo Mayor (Great temple) in COATLICUE, TENOCHTITLÁN, MEXICO. This massive Aztec sculpture shows the earth and mother goddess Coatlicue at the moment in which she gives birth to the Aztec tribal deity Huitzilopochtli. Her jealous children have decapitated her; blood gushes from her neck, forming serpents. Snakes writhe on her skirt while she wears a necklace of human hearts and hands. Tenochtitlán as sacred mountains – a replica of the cosmos, with the Aztecs at the centre In Oaxaca, after the decline of the Zapotec state at Monte Albán, smaller city-states competed for control over portions of the Valley of Oaxaca and Mixteca Alta. A series of indigenous painted books, called codices, show the political intrigues of rulers such as the Mixtec king known as 8 Deer, who around 1100 extended his control over other cities from his base at Tilantongo through marriages, alliances and conquest. The Mixtecs were master craftsmen of raw materials such as rock crystal, alabaster and turquoise. Although metalworking probably did not enter West Mexico until after AD 600, the Mixtecs mastered gold-working, using the lost-wax technique. Many great Mayan cities flourished until the end of the Classic period. Mayan artists focused on activities of the ruling elite, who are often shown incorporating supernatural imagery to legitimize their rule and whose blood was holy and offered at select dates. While portraiture flourished at Palenque, in most Mayan cities the ruler’s regalia is carefully depicted with little attention to physiognomy. Increasing warfare, shown in the Bonampak murals, coincides with the Classic Maya collapse. Mayan civilization continued to thrive until after 900 in the Yucatán Peninsula, with a series of nearby competing styles (such as the Puuk and Chenes styles) exuberantly expressed in architecture. The final series of small states in the Yucatán were still in place when the Spanish arrived. LOWER CENTRAL AMERICA Gold replaced jade in importance after 900. As more organized chiefdoms developed, upheavals occurred in trade routes and politics. In central Costa Rica, clear site hierarchies appeared, with elaborate status differentiation expressed in burials. Some sites, such as Quelepa in El Salvador, became essentially Mesoamerican by AD 650. Despite 2 The Caribbean, 600-1500 Caribbean cultures, c.600: Ciboney hunter-gatherers Saladoid agriculturalists Dabajuroid agriculturalists settlement by Barrancoid agriculturalists, c.700 changing pottery traditions: post-Saladoid with little decorated ware, c.600-1500 Ostionian Ostionoid, c.600-1200 Elenan Ostionoid, c.600-1200 origin of Chican Ostionoid, c.1200 Caribbean cultures, 1500: Caquetian mixed Arawakan and Cariban speakers egalitarian village culture Taino heartland western Taino eastern Taino Ciboney hunter-gatherers islands with rock carving-lined ball courts islands with rock carvings at sacred sites islands with wooden cohuba idols gold import of guanín (copper-gold alloy) conch pearls ˜ 2 AT THE END OF THE SIXTEENTH CENTURY Spaniards arriving in Central America encountered populations they knew as ‘Arawaks’ and ‘Caribs’. Arawaks (the Taino) had a hierarchical social structure with complex visual elements. The Caribs had an egalitarian village-based culture combining agriculture with marine exploitation. Both groups spoke Arawakan languages. these influences, areas such as the Nicoya maintained a very unified material culture with little foreign impact. In Panama the Chiriquí region was famed for its exquisite goldwork. THE CARIBBEAN By the seventh century maize and manioc cultivators in the Saladoid and Dabajuroid ceramic traditions displaced Ciboney huntergatherers as far as eastern Puerto Rico. Saladoid pendants of amethyst, quartz crystal, fossilized wood, carnelian, lapis lazuli, turquoise and garnet were traded throughout the Caribbean and northern South America. By 600 the Saladoid tradition began to lose its homogeneity as long-distance trade in the Antilles declined. The richly decorated Ostionoid ceramic tradition arose in Puerto Rico and the western Virgin Islands, together with Mesoamerican-influenced petroglyphs lining the perimeters of batey (central plazas used for sacred ball games and ceremonies). Arawakan-speaking immigrants to Trinidad and Tobago in the Barrancoid ceramic tradition strongly influenced the Ostionoid after 700. Beginning about 1200 Chican Ostionoid ceramic styles from southeastern Hispaniola spread widely. These were the ceramics of the Taino culture that the invading Spaniards met in the Bahamas and Greater Antilles. The Taino had batey and hereditary chiefs; they ruled partly by ownership of cohuba idols and sacred objects, which controlled zemi (powerful spirits). Expanding southeast into the Leeward Islands, the Taino conflicted with practitioners of more egalitarian village cultures that predominated in the Lesser Antilles. They called them ‘Caribs’. Their decorative arts included woven cotton textiles, feather headdresses and amulets in stone, conch-shell, bone, clay and guañín. 80˚ 70˚ 60˚ 20˚ 10˚ Orinoco C A R I B B E A N S E A G U L F O F M E X I C O A T L A N T I C O C E A N Leeward IslandsW indwardIs L e s s e r Antilles G r e a t e r A n t i l l e s TURKS & CAICOS IS SABA ST BARTHÉLÉMY ST EUSTATIUS BARBUDA ANTIGUA GUADELOUPE DOMINICA MARTINIQUE ST LUCIA ST VINCENT GRENADA ST MARTIN VIRGIN IS TRINIDAD TOBAGO ARUBA BONAIRE CURACÃO CAYMAN IS BARBADOS FLORIDA S O U T H A M E R I C A C U B A JAMAICA HISPANIOLA PUERTO RICO B A H A M A S N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 98 DURING THIS PERIOD, boundaries became increasingly fluid between three cultural regions: Northern Mexico/Greater Southwest, Mesoamerica and Lower Central America. NORTHERN MEXICO AND THE SOUTHWEST More farmers occupied this land and established larger settlements linked with the increasing trade between the American Southwest and Mesoamerica. The Toltecs imported turquoise from the Southwest and exported birds and feathers. La Quemada, on a hilltop and occupied from 500 to 900, features defensive walls, a Mesoamerican-style I-shaped ball court, and a skull rack earlier than the one at Tula, the Toltec capital. After 1300, Paquimé, a huge site with three ballcourts and ceremonial effigy mounds, would have been central to any interaction. The Aztecs viewed the people of northern Mexico as both nomadic barbarians and skilled craftsmen. MESOAMERICA After the fall of Teotihuacán, cities throughout Mesoamerica declined. In Central Mexico the period from 700 to 900 was a time of migrations and competition. At the hilltop city of Cacaxtla Mayan-style murals show a battle – real or metaphorical – between Mayan-like bird warriors and Central Mexican-like jaguar warriors. From 950 to 1150, the Toltecs dominated much of the Valley of Mexico, although their influence beyond Central Mexico (usually marked by finds of Tohil Plumbate ware, an unusual glazed ceramic) is still a matter of debate. The Toltecs’ blocky, militaristic art and CENTRAL AMERICA 600-1500 10˚ 20˚ 25˚ 30˚ 35˚ 80˚90˚ 95˚100˚105˚110˚120˚ 115˚ 85˚ 15˚ Las Vegas Río Claro Cerro Brujo Murciélago Barriles Bugavita Corredor Miraflores Guayabo San Francisco Las Marías Quelepa Ceren Amapa Teuchitlán Tizapán el Alto La Villita Ilhuatzio Tzintzuntzan Pachuca Sitio Conte Vidor Barrial Tomatlán Alta Vista Casas Grandes (Paquimé) Cueva Pintada MolinoCuliacán Durango La Quemada El Tajín Xochicalco Teotihuacán Chapultepec Cholula Tula Río Viejo Chiapa de Corzo Cerro de las Minas Tututepec San Francisco de Arriba El BaúlGuiengola Zaachila Monte Albán Ejutla Lambityeco Jalieza Mitla Santa Rita Naj Tunich Seibal Bonampak Yaxchilán Piedras Negras Dos Pilas Palenque Toniná Tikal Yagul Cerro de la Campana Coixtlahuaca Nochixtlán Chichén Itzá Balankanche CobáTulum Iximché Mixco Viejo Utatlán Hochob Lamanai Quiriguá Altun Ha Naco Comalcalco Copán Río Bec Cacaxtla Sayula Pungarabato Tonalá Cempoala Uxmal Jaina Mérida Isla Mujeres San Miguel Xicallanco Sayil Maní Kabáh Mayapán Tilantongo Pánuco Soto la Marina Balsas L. Nicaragua L. Managua L. Chapala P A C I F I C O C E A N C A R I B B E A N S E A BAY OF CAMPECHE GULF OF HONDURAS G U L F O F M E X I C O GULFOFCALIFORNIA Popocatépetl SIERRAMADREOCCIDENTAL SIERRAMADREORIEN T AL CORDILLERA ISABELÍA SANTA ELENA PENINSULA NICOYA PENINSULA YUCATÁN PENINSULA CHIHUAHUA DESERT CHICHIMECA export of turquoise Puuk style Cotzumalhuapa style Río Bec style Chenes style Tolteca- Chichimeca export of turquoise possible K‘icha-Kaqchikal elite migration route Greater Nicoya region Greater Chiriquí region Aztec Empire, 1519 Tarascan Empire, 1519 Mogollon tradition in Mexico petroglyphs/pictographs N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 Central America, 600-1500 Greater Southwest Mesoamerica in the Postclassic period Lower Central America obsidian jade/jadeite gold centre of goldworking limit of metalworking zone site with evidence of metalworking pre-1100 feathers cacao immigration of Toltecs, c.900 trade and movement of Toltec imagery, c.980-1200 Río Bec Late Classic Maya styles Putún Maya territory Putún Maya trade routes Itzá territory probable Itzá migration route salt ball courts skull racks Late Classic and/or Postclassic centre/site Late Classic and/or Postclassic regional centre Late Postclassic trade routes Central American imagery Maya imagery, 700-900 extent of Xochicalco influence Toltec heartland other important sites 1a The Valley of Mexico, 1519 major regional Postclassic centre/member of Triple Alliance important Postclassic city/site ball court skull rack causeways aqueduct TA 1 MANY FORMERLY IMPORTANT STATES in Mesoamerica, such as Teotihuacán and Monte Albán, declined after 600. While southern Maya cities succumbed by 900, Maya centres flourished in the Yucatán peninsula. In Central Mexico the Aztecs controlled more territory than did their predecessors, the Toltecs. The inset map indicates the arrangement of Aztec city-states around Lake Texcoco. While the boundaries of the Aztec Empire in 1519 are based on ethno-historic sources, only ballcourts documented archaeologically are shown. YAXCHILÁN LINTEL 24, MEXICO. This Maya lintel graphically depicts a royal bloodletting ritual, which the text dates to October 28, 709. While the ruler holds a torch, his wife – Lady Xoc – draws a rope with thorns through her tongue. The details of Lady Xoc’s garment suggest the great artistry of Maya textiles. TA TA TA Acolman Xaltocan Huexotla Texcoco Coatlinchán Chalco Tenochtitlán Xico Amecameca Xochimilco Tlalpan Coyoacán Tlacopan Tenayuca Tepotzotlán Chapultepec Atzcapotzalco Culhuacan L. Zumpango L. Xaltocan L. Texcoco L. Xochimilco L. Chalco Mt Tláloc Popocatépetl Ixtaccihuatl Netzahualcóyotl’s Dyke N 0 0 15 miles 25 kms 80˚ 0˚ 10˚ ? ? Cerro Baúl Huaca del Loro Jincamocco Chimú Capac Conchopata Azangaro Wari Willka Cajamarca Honco Pampa Paramonga Farfan Niño KorinPacheco Pampa Grande Pachacamac Cuzco (Cusco) Tiahuanaco Pikillaqta Paucartambo Huari Manchan Marca Huamachuco Chan Chan Huaca el Dragón CHANCA CHANCAY HUARI ICA CHIM Ú Huascarán Chimborazo Ausangate Coropuna Misti Chacani L. Junín L. Titicaca M arañón Chicama Moche Chao Casma Supe Fortaleza Chil lón Hua llaga Amazon Piura Urubamba Pampa s M ala Apurimac P A C I F I C O C E A N A N D E S A TACA M A D ESERT SECHURA DESERT N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 2 Middle Horizon to Late Intermediate Period Huari cultural influence tradition/culture desert border highland/jungle Inca empire mountain peak/volcano principal site secondary site religious site/shrine fortification gold silver copper cinnebar salt obsidian emeralds spondylus deer camelids, wool, textiles birds and feathers dung and guano potatoes hallucinogens coca totora cotton and textiles probable sea trade routes SOUTH AMERICA 600–1500 101 complexes of individual rulers, as well as their tombs. Approximately 25,000 single irregular, agglutinated rooms were used as living quarters and for craft production. The Incas, who may have came from Lake Titicaca or Paucartambo, settled in Cuzco. Their empire began to expand after their defeat of their rivals, the Chancas, during the reign of Pachacuti Inca Yupanqui (c.1438–1463). The Inca state reached from the southern borders of Colombia to southwest Argentina and southern Chile. The Inca administration demanded tribute, which was paid in labour. achieved dominance. The agricultural success of the Huari was based on the development of hillside terracing and irrigation. Huari iconography has its roots in earlier Chavín and Pucará concepts. The state was characterized by corporate art styles (such as Ocros, Chakipampa, Black Decorated, Viñaque, Atarco), rectangular compound architecture and Dshaped ‘temple’ structures. There is evidence, at Niño Korin, of the use of the quipu, a kind of knotted string used for record-keeping. Worship of ancestors and cultural heroes was a major element of the ideological framework. Tihuanaco, on the margins of Lake Titicaca (c.500–1000), had a marked influence on Huari iconography. The large ceremonial core of Tiwanaku included monolithic gateways and stelae, sunken courts and a pyramid with great drains, as well as an area of elite residences. This centre was surrounded by up to 10 square km (3.8 square miles) of lower status housing. LATE INTERMEDIATE PERIOD During the Late Intermediate Period (c.1000–1476) there was a return to dispersed political control with large numbers of regional states. The Collao and Lupaka were located in southern Peru. The Chanca confederation comprised a loosely knit series of polities within the Ayacucho and Apurimac areas, which were characterized by terraced agriculture, camelid herding, fortified sites on hilltop locations and badly fired, roughly modelled ceramics. The Chincha merchants of the Ica area on the south coast dominated the trade in spondylus shell from Ecuador. The Chancay culture of the central coast produced black-on-white coloured ceramics, including face-neck jars and figurines, as well as very high-quality gauze textiles. The Chimú (c.1000–1470) were in control of irrigated lands and population along the north coast. Their corporate buildings were tapia-walled (made of adobe and sun-dried mud) and their craft production was centrally organized and managed. Chan Chan was the centre of Chimú power. It measured c.20 square kilometres (7.7 square miles) and comprised ten large rectangular compounds. These were the palaces and administrative INCA SHIRT in a fine tapestry weave, depicting miniature examples of other Inca shirt designs. This may reflect the high status of the individual who was allowed to wear the example below, who would have been superior in the hierarchy to those who wore the shirts depicted in miniature. THE HUACA EL DRAGÓN in what is now Trujillo, Peru. This was a Chimú storage site with a highly specialized and effective ventilation system that supported the long-term storage of organic produce. The façades are decorated in modelled mudplasterwork, depicting a ‘Sky serpent’ design. Exchange and trade were based largely on kinship obligations rather than a market system. Administration in an empire without reading or writing was maintained by highly structured work practices, as well as the use of formalized aides mémoire, such as the quipu. These knotted, multi-coloured strings were used as accounting tools, as well as a record of histories, legends and song. Inca shrines, or huacas, included boulders frequently carved in abstract geometric forms. These forms often remained unseen as the rocks were covered in elaborately woven textiles. 2 IN THE ANDES the Huari empire achieved dominance over much of the Andean region between 550 and 1000. Much of its success lay in its system of hill terracing and irrigation, developed during a period of severe drought in the sixth and seventh centuries. The Huari empire lay the foundations of many of the administrative systems and infrastructure that were later used to even greater effect by the Inca empire. ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 100 DURING THIS PERIOD cultural and technological complexity increased over much of South America. Pottery use was widespread, and copper and gold-working were common in the west and northeast. CULTURAL TRADITIONS A polychrome ceramic tradition, exemplified by the Guarita phase (c.1000–1500), developed within the central Amazon region. Anthropomorphic burial urns, such as the one found at Miracanguera, were popular, and the culture spread into the upper Amazon region. Ridged field cultivation became a feature of intensively cultivated tropical floodplain areas such as the Llanos de Mojos. The Tairona of northeast Colombia (500–700) had a hierarchical society, possibly connected to Mesoamerican cultures. Large sites, with up to 3000 structures, included religious and elite buidings and circular houses. Ceramics included face-necked urns, and they also produced stone celts and cast goldwork. The Quimbaya culture of the Cordillera Central (c.400–1000) produced exceptional goldwork, using a lost-wax technique. The palisaded towns of the Chibcha state (c.650–1500), with their priestly class, were ruled by a dual leadership. They cultivated maize and potatoes on terrace based fields. The Manteño culture of Ecuador (c.800–1500), with its principal site at Manta, is linked with the local development of towns and small kingdoms. Gold, copper and silver metallurgy became common. Within their stone-built structures a typical feature was a carved Ushaped stone seat on the back of a crouching man or animal. The Middle Horizon period in Peru (550–1000) comprises an era when the Huari (or Wari) polity of the Ayacucho area SOUTH AMERICA 600-1500 60˚ 50˚70˚80˚ 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 40˚ 30˚ Paramonga Islands of Sun and Moon Samaipata RaqchiSayhuite Itacoatiara Oriximiná Santarém Tucacas Valencia TAIRONA Corobal Paredão Aranquin El Cerrillo Tambería del Inka Iquique Ranchillos Punta Piedras Puerto Montt Malabrigo Las Mercedes Chagua Mizque Quelap Cajamarca Huánuco Pampa Pumpu Vilcas Huamán Gran Pajatén Machu Picchu Oma Porco Turi El Shincal Miracanguera Pedro Oca Quito Manta Cuzco (Cusco) Chan Chan Pachacamac Ciudad Perdida VALENCIOID TRADITION ARAWAK ARATU SITES ARATU SITES SAMBAQUI TRADITION GÓMEZ SAQUERERA MACEDO TAQUERA TRADITION SAN BLAS GUARANÍ ARATU SITES SAN AGUSTÍN MANTEÑO QUIMBAYA CHIBCHA ARAW AK PERIPERISITES Huila Sierra Nevada de Santa Marta Antisana Chimborazo Huascarán Illimani IllampuCoropuna Tacora Llullaillaco Coipapo Chachani Misti Cotopaxi Amazon J uruá JapuráPutumay o Marañó nUcayali Par aná S ãoFrancisco Tocantins Paraná C olorado Negro Loa Maipó Maule Salado Desaguadero Deseado Chi co Paraguay Orinoco Essequibo Corantijn Maroni O iapoque Branco Cauc a M agdalena L. Titicaca L. Poopó Llanos de Mojos A T L A N T I C O C E A N PA C I F I C O C E A N CARIBBEAN SEA A N D ES ATACAMADESERT BR A Z IL IA N H I G H L A N D S GUIANA HIGHLANDS N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 Principal Cultural Traditions, c. AD 1000-1500 dry pampa tropical rain forest pampa desert mountain peak/volcano Inca Empire Inca road system tradition/culture principal site secondary site religious site/shrine raised field gold silver copper salt obsidian emeralds spondylus strombus coral fortification birds and feathers dung and guano maize and beans manioc totora camelids, wool, textiles cotton and textiles terraced agriculture sunken fields/gardens deer 1 IN SOUTH AMERICA major empires located along the eastern watershed of the Andes expanded between 600 and 1500. In the north and east, chiefdoms developed in Ecuador, Colombia, Venezuela and Brazil. These flourishing chiefdoms were dependent on highly productive agricultural systems – usually linked with drainage or irrigation techniques and the creation of terraced or sunken fields. EUROPE 600–800 103 combining elements of the Mediterranean tradition, such as vine ornament, with recent varieties of northern animal ornament and aristocratic patronage and functions. ROMAN CONTINUITY Royal and ecclesiastical patrons achieved prestige and conveyed authority through monumental stone architecture, especially churches, using Roman structural and decorative features such as columns and large arches. Some quarries were exploited for building stone, fine carving in marble for sarcophagi and architectural ornament such as columns and capitals. However, when employed, such features were frequently actual remnants (spolia) taken from Roman buildings, appropriated to new uses. Ancient gems were SACRAMENTARY MANUSCRIPT from Chelles (Vat. Reg. lat. 316, fols. 131v-132r). Produced probably by and for the use of nuns in a convent founded by St Balthilde, a queen of the Merovingian Franks, in the 660s. The codex form, still used today, makes possible the kind of large pictorial spread on facing pages fundamental also for this atlas. 10˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ Toulouse Périgueux Aniane Narbonne Lérins Gerona Poitiers Saintes St Maixent Vienne Chalon Arles Gellone Urgel Liebana Bordeaux Aix-en-Provence London Paris Fleury Milan Bobbio Monza Ratisbon Freising Mondsee Salzburg St Gall Chur Müstair Constance Verona Venice Aquileia Ravenna Lucca Nonantola Rome Monte Cassino Farfa Naples Lyon Barcelona 25 Utrecht York Cividale Lorsch Strasbourg Jarrow Whitby Bangor NendrumMonasterboice Glendalough Clonard St Mullin’s Lindisfarne Monkwearmouth Jouarre Echternach Reims Dol Corbie Aachen Cologne Stavelot 1 2 3 9 10 8 22 14 11 12 4 Murbach 5 6 7 16 Flavigny 18 21 19 17 15 13 24 Metz Trier Lobbes Laon 20 Essen Nivelles Péronne St Vaast d’Arras 23 Basle Reichenau Dijon Luxeuil Disentis Augsburg St Wandrille Léhon Redon Le Mans Nantes Noirmoutier St Philibert-de-Grand-Lieu Landévennec Jumieges St Bertin Liège Osnabrück Münster Bremen Hamburg Verden Minden Gandersheim Hersfeld FuldaMainz Würzburg Amorbach Melrose Ruthwell Ripon Iona Clonmacnoise Armagh Malmesbury St Denis Orléans Tours Benevento San Vincenzo Salerno Vivarium Pavia Canterbury Langres Bourges Rhône Tagus Ebro Danube Elbe Vistula A T L A N T I C O C E A N N O R T H S E A MEDITERRANEAN SEA A D R I A T I C S E A BA L T IC SEA A L P S PYRE N E E S B ALEARIC IS CORSICA SARDINIA SICILY 2 Monasteries, Writing Centres and Artistic Work Carolingian schools/scriptoria/literary centres important monasteries founded 4th-7th century monasteries founded 6th-9th century probable centres of manuscript illumination distribution of objects decorated in the Tassilo chalice style N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 1. Prüm 2. Weissenburg 3. Faremoutiers 4. Troyes 5. Chiemsee 6. Tegernsee 7. Benediktbeuern 8. St Amand 9. Meaux 10.Amiens 11.Whithorn 12. Hexham 13. Sens 14. Chelles 15.Auxerre 16.Autun 17. St Germigny-des-Prés 18. Ferrières 19. Nevers 20. Maastricht 21. St Germain-des-Prés 22. Rouen 23. St Riquier 24. Hauvillers 25.Werden 2 MONASTERIES WERE FOUNDED by local saints, often with the support of local aristocracies, sometimes also by missionaries, often coming from the British Isles. A few were large and wealthy, but even the many small and poor ones required liturgical implements of valued materials and workmanship, along with reliquaries and books. A few were engaged in production, but all provided a market for artistic works. similarly incorporated in liturgical crosses and luxury bookbindings. The Roman tradition survived chiefly in and through Christianity, Rome becoming to contemporaries not the city of Caesar and Augustus but of saints Peter and Paul. The great churches built in late Antiquity by Constantine and his followers continued in use, but during this period only one pagan building was converted for Christian use, when Hadrian’s domed Pantheon was rededicated as S. Maria ad Martyres in 609. In a fundamentally new phenomenon, large painted wooden panels representing Christ or his mother were created and displayed in many churches, and sometimes carried in processions through the city, for example the so-called Christ image kept in the Lateran chapel of the Sancta Sanctorum (‘the Holy of Holies’) in Rome from at least the end of the eighth century. Greco-Roman civilization was a literary culture in which books played a large role, but their role was both altered and intensified through the emergence and triumph of Christianity and Islam (established in Spain in the 8th century). Each of them had a sacred book at its core and both developed a new form of decorated book commonly referred to as ‘illuminated’. Even in late Antiquity and with the triumph of Christianity, from the fifth century or even earlier, the new form of bound codex that replaced the ancient book roll had been provided on some occasions with elaborate coloured pictures. These most commonly were portraits of the authors or of the patrons who either received or commissioned books of unusual and outstanding luxury. Only in the seventh century did the text itself come to be a focus for decoration, with coloured ornament around and within and sometimes altogether comprising the letters. Pages were provided also with ornamental embellishment, beautifying as well as communicating the written word. Not all new manuscripts were made in monasteries or by monks, but many were, and the monasteries were a major patron of this art form, and of precious metalwork, and thye became the eventual repositories of nearly all examples that survive. RECALLING ROMAN NUMISMATIC PRACTICE, a silver denarius, with profile portrait, issued by Charlemagne after about 806. Around the portrait is the inscription KAROLUS IMP AUG (Charles Emperor Augustus). On the reverse, however, the central role of the Christian religion is explicitly stated. The temple-like structure is based on Roman imperial coinage, but is now crowned with a cross and inscribed XPICTIANA RELIGIO (Christian Religion). metalwork and textiles, sometimes exchanged not for purely economic reasons but as gift-exchanges that forged ties between the various rulers. The range of places of origin for the material collected in the Sutton Hoo shipburial (c.630), indicates the direct and indirect connections stretching from southeastern England to Scandinavia, the Frankish kingdom, even to Constantinople and Egypt. Towards the end of the eighth century occurred the converse phenomenon: the wide distribution of objects produced in a single or closely related centres, including both objects for Christian use, like the Tassilo Chalice (opposite), and others in a similar style primarily for secular use (swords, jewellery and riding equipment). The common denominators are a new style, ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 102 FROM THE LATER SIXTH CENTURY the Roman Empire ceased to dominate the western Mediterranean and European world. Associated with this political change – the emergence of new ‘barbarian’ rulers – was the decline of the urban centres that had been the focus of Greco-Roman civilization and its artistic production. NEW PATTERNS OF TRADE Constantinople and, especially, Rome shrank considerably. Alexandria was conquered by Islam. Carthage and Ephesus virtually ceased to exist. Smaller cities in the west such as Trier, Winchester, Metz or Tours became primarily military and episcopal administrative centres. Trade also declined, especially longdistance trade in bulk cargoes like grain, wine and pottery. For example, the eastern and African pottery found at many fifth- and early sixth-century sites in western Europe is absent at later sites. From the seventh century trade tended to be more localized for such items, with the emerging new economic and cultural centres in suburban and rural estates founded essentially upon agriculture. Some north–south trade continued, using the Rhine and Rhône valleys, and northern trade around the North Sea and Baltic Sea became significant, by the end of the period reaching across modern Russia to the Islamic world. Sites like Hedeby (Haithabu) on the Baltic, Dorestad in the Netherlands on the North Sea, and Southampton (Hamwih) on the Channel grew rapidly in the eighth century, and are associated with the production of small silver coins (sceattas). Trade shifted toward luxury items, such as precious EUROPE 600-800 0˚ 10˚ 40˚ 50˚ 10˚ 20˚ 711 714 670 697 711 Kairouan Carthage Tulaytulah (Toledo) Mérida Oviedo (c.790) Tangier Saragossa Ceuta Toulouse Poitiers Turones London Sutton Hoo Hamwih Paris Geneva Milan Ratisbon Turin Verona Bononia Florence Genoa Venice Ravenna Rome Naples Taranto Athens Thessalonica Adrianople Varna Constantinople Smyrna Bari Spalatum Palermo Messina Lyon Marseille Barshilunah (Barcelona) Tarrakunah (Tarragona) Cartagena Algiers Qurtubah (Córdoba) Cologne NijmegenDorestad Paderborn (776) Hedeby York Scone Winchester Glastonbury Cividale Quintanilla de las Viñas Lorsch (after 764) St Maurice d’Agaune Jarrow (684) Monkwearmouth (674) Reculver (669) Grenoble Germigny -des-Prés (c.800) Jouarre (670s) Ingelheim Centula (790s) Aachen (795) Escomb (670s) Hexham Ripon (670s) Yeavering St Denis Benevento (c.770) Tempio di Clitunno San Vincenzo al Volturno Pavia Lomello San Pedro della Nave São Gião de Navaré São Frutuoso de Montelios San Juan de Baños Santa Comba de Bande Santianes de Pravia Santa María de Melque Canterbury (after 597) Seine Rhine Tagus Ebro Danube Elbe Oder Vistula A T L A N T I C O C E A N N O R T H S E A BA LT I C S E A BLACK SEA M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A D R I A T I C S E A A L P S P Y R E N E E S BALTIC PEO P LES S L A V S S L A V S NO RTHM E N (SCA NDINAV I A N S ) SAXO N SF R I S I A N S BRETONS BASQUES B ALEARIC IS CORSICA SARDINIA SICILY MALTA CRETE BAVARIA AQUITAINE ASTURIAS KINGDOM OF THE PICTS SCOTTISH KINGDOMS IRISH KINGDOMS STRATH- CLYDE EAST ANGLIA KENT WELSH STATES WEST WALES NORTHUMBRIA MERCIA AVAR EMPIRE BULGARIA B Y Z A N T I N E E M P I R E U M A Y Y A D C A L I P H A T E KIN G DO M OF THE LOMBARDS FRANKISH KINGDOM WESSEX N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms Centres and Distribution of Luxury Goods c.730 Muslim Umayyad Caliphate date of Muslim conquest Byzantine Empire Frankish Kingdom Kingdom of the Lombards mints represented in the Sutton Hoo burial (c.630) provenance of objects found in the Sutton Hoo burial (c.630) distribution of marble sarcophagi and capitals quarried/carved in Toulouse region, 6th-7th C ecclesiastical structures of which significant remains survive secular (mostly royal) sites with substantial surviving fragments or known from literary sources trade route 670 1 1 CHURCHMEN’S TRAVELS played a large role in artistic exchanges, as they brought gifts and returned with new acquisitions. Benedict Biscop travelled five times from Northumbria to Rome as a pilgrim, returning to the monastery he founded laden with books and pictures, and in 669 brought with him Theodore of Tarsus (in Asia Minor), the new Archbishop of Canterbury. THE TASSILO CHALICE, a liturgical chalice in copper, with silver and gold inlay and niello, Salzburg region c.770 (Kremsmünster, Abbey Treasury). A Latin inscription names Duke Tassilo, last ruler of independent Bavaria, and his wife Liutpirc, a Lombard princess. Images in medallions represent four patron saints of the family, and Christ and the four evangelists. EUROPE 800–1000 105 campaign of literary and artistic production, which continued into the tenth century. From the later tenth century the Roman empire ruled by a Saxon dynasty in Germany, commonly called the Ottonian dynasty, also drew scholars and artists from afar, including the Byzantine empire. For a small group, the world suddenly became much smaller, and men such as Gerbert of Aurillac took advantage of the new range of possibilities. Born and educated in southern France, he became a famous teacher at Reims in northern France, then became tutor to the future Emperor Otto III, and was appointed by him Pope Sylvester II in 997. Artists similarly travelled. We know of a Carolingian painter in the employ of abbots travelling from central France to central Germany and returning, of Anglo-Saxon artists active at Fleury and probably in the Meuse region, and one famous master who worked for the Archbishop of Trier in the late tenth century probably visited Rome. Gerbert’s career exemplifies the relative insignificance of borders. Latin was the shared language of written culture and administration nearly everywhere in the West, and there was an emerging sense of a special Western Christendom, represented by the enlargement of Christendom westwards to encompass all of Scandinavia, including Iceland and Greenland, and eastwards to include Poland and Hungary. Borders were very much in flux in any event, prompted only in part by the raids and subsequent invasions of the Vikings. By the tradition, and for it was made the earliest preserved luxury illuminated manuscript for a ruler, known after its scribe and painter as the Godescalc Evangelistary (781–83). Although we do not know where that book was made, it and a group of other extraordinarily luxurious books were made for Charlemagne. After a hiatus of more than three centuries, carvings on ivory were produced under court patronage. As there was no current supply of new ivory, many were made by turning over Late Roman secular (never Christian) ivories and carving the back. Also for the court were made large-scale works in bronze, including the doors and railings for the palace chapel. How the difficult art of bronze casting was recovered remains something of a mystery, as is also the case with the wall mosaics at Aachen and at Theodulf’s chapel at Germigny, another technique revived after several centuries abeyance other than in the city of Rome. The Frankish royal courts became the first court centre of cultural and artistic patronage in the post-Roman period, and drew many creative figures from beyond the Frankish realm, including Alcuin from northern England, Theodulf from northern Spain, Paulinus of Aquileia and others from Italy, and later John the Scot Eriugena from Ireland. OTTONIAN EUROPE From the later ninth century the Frankish kingdoms were in decline, but Alfred the Great’s Wessex began a major royal-sponsored THE EGMOND GOSPELS, facing miniatures added c.950 to a ninth-century manuscript by Count Theoderic II of West Frisia and his wife Hildegard. The couple present the book at the monastery’s altar, and then are presented to Christ by the monastery’s patron saint, St Adalbert. Rohrbach Leutmerken Tägerschen Pfäffikon Helfenschwil Willmandingen Bettighofen Dieterskirchen Oberndorf Buchheim Mengen Wolfenweiler Spaichingen Tuningen Klengen Wurmlingen Tuttlingen Löffingen Fischingen Binzen Lausheim Weizen Singen Diessenhofen Bülach Glatt Höngg Zurich Ringwil Kempraten Grabs Fischbach Constance Bermatingen Siggingen Urlau Luttolsberg Mindersdorf Bussnang Amriswil Sitterdorf Heldswil Zuzwil Lommis Aadorf Elgg Büren Zell Turbental Jonschwil Bütschwil Ulm Schörzingen Pfohren Ewattingen Goldach Steinach Durnten Wetzikon Langenargen Egringen Winterthur Wängi Rickinbach Henau Uzwil HerisauUster Kirchen Stammheim Mönchaltorf Egg Eschenbach Schlins Leiblach Buchorn Bodman Romanshorn ST GALL ST GALL Gossau Leutkirch Wasserburg Uznach Rankweil Rhine Thur Rhine Rhine Lake Constance Lake Zurich Lake Wallen Allgäner AlpenBregenzer Wald S w a b i a n J u r a Black F orest BREISGAU BERCHTOLDSBAAR SCHERRAGA U ARGENGAU AARGAU KLETTGAU ALBGAU LINZGAU NIBELGAU ZÜRICHGAU THURGAU HEGAU RAETIA CURIENSIS N 0 0 20 miles 30 kms 2 FROM THE MID-EIGHTH CENTURY until the end of the tenth St Gall, supported largely by its land holdings, was a centre for illuminated manuscripts. Although the most elaborate books, ivory carvings and metalwork were for the abbey itself, some were sent to the many dependent monasteries, priories and churches in the wide region dominated by St Gall as an administrative as well as artistic centre. The map shows how widely dispersed the administrative work of the abbey was – each site ‘with charters’ is a place where these property documents were drawn up. end of the period the core of the later English and French nations had been defined. Monasteries, already important in preceding centuries, played if anything an enhanced role in the ninth and tenth. Many received royal support, or the support of major local aristocratic patrons, and in turn were expected to contribute to royal projects, providing not only books and teachers but also money and even soldiers. Some of the royal monasteries became major centres of artistic production, the monastery at Tours, for example, producing something like two complete bibles and a gospel book annually during the second quarter of the ninth century. The ties between state and church were especially intimate in Ottonian Germany, culminating in the eleventh century in intense conflicts. Some monasteries sought to insulate themselves from secular ties; the great monastery of Cluny (founded 919) was chartered as dependent only upon the pope, and also strengthened its independence by creating an order, an alliance of many monasteries scattered across Christendom with the Burgundian mother house at its head. The well-documented case of the abbey of St Gall, just south of Lake Constance in modern Switzerland, shows the extent of monastic involvement in land-holding patterns and also of literary and administrative culture. Monasteries were also important as the home of holy men, specialists in prayer, and of the holy men and women of the past, present through their relics, whose cult became increasingly important through the period. Relics were required in association with every altar, usually small portions of holy bodies in small but elaborately decorated reliquaries. Charlemagne’s biographer, Einhard, tells how holy relics were acquired from Rome. Other famous relics were rescued or stolen by new owners, including St Foi at Conques and St Mark at Venice. 2 The Abbey of St Gall sites with abbey properties places with 10 charters or more places with 5-10 charters places with 3 or 4 charters places with 2 charters ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 104 THE FRANKISH KINGDOMS of Charlemagne (r.768–814) and his successors were the dominant political and military force in ninthcentury western Europe, and also the main cultural centre. In the early tenth century, artists were supported by Anglo-Saxon Wessex, and later by the Ottonian empire in Germany. CAROLINGIAN EUROPE Central power in the Carolingian empire depended upon the personal qualities and presence of the ruler. Charlemagne travelled incessantly for decades, and his ‘court’, including the queen, travelled with him four times to Italy, around the scattered royal estates, and on annual military campaigns which took them as far afield as northern Spain or modern Hungary. The construction on one of the royal estates of a new fixed capital, at Aachen (after 794) was a new phenomenon. It contained the first large palace chapel in the Western EUROPE 800-1000 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 50˚ 40˚ London GhentSt Omer Valenciennes Ingelheim St Quentin Worms Orville Lorsch QuierzyVerberie Frankfurt Soissons Koeth Compiègne Corbeny Salz Fulda Ven Kissingen St Denis Würzburg Chelles Svalafeld Remiremont Karlsgraben Geneva RatisbonMetz Lechfeld Diedenhofen Bodman Longlien (Longlier) Speyer Seilles Brumath Herstal Schlettstadt Duren Sinfeld Eresburg Herstelle Lügde Thuringen Paderborn Brunsberg Üffeln Rehme Minden Hocheleve Oker Ohrum Schöningen Wolmirst Steinfurth Verden Hollenstedt Armagh York Canterbury St Riquier Winchester Rouen Reims St Amand 1 2 6 7 3 4 5 Cologne Echternach Aachen Bremen Hamburg Gniezno Salzburg Esztergom Magdeburg Tours Germigny Bordeaux Auch Bourges St Gall Reichenau Paris Toulouse Narbonne Aix-en-Provence Avignon Lyon Vienne Cluny Tarentaise Embrun Pisa Trivento Naples Sorrento Amalfi Salerno Messina Aquileia Gerona BurgosBraga Santiago Barcelona Turin Genoa Milan Ravenna Florence Monte Sant’ Angelo Trani Bari Brindisi Otranto ReggioPalermo Conza Siena Rome Venice Ragusa Oporto Rhine Seine L oire Rhône Elbe Danube Vistula Po N O R T H S E A A T L A N T I C O C E A N BA LT I C S E A A D R IA T I C S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A P Y R E N E E S A L P S BAL E A R I C I S CORSICA SARDINIA SICILY B R I T TA N Y SAXONY KINGDOM OF ORKNEY SCOTLAND E N G L A N D WESSEX D E N M A R K W E S T F R A N K I S H K I N G D O M EAST FRANKISH KINGDOM P O L A N D H U N G A RY BURGUNDY L E Ó N C A L I P H AT E O F C Ó R D O B A CROATIA WELSH STATES IRISH KINGDOMS CASTILE N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 1 Western Christendom before AD 1000 places visited by Charlemagne, 768-814 palace complexes constructed/rebuilt major churches constructed by those closely associated with royal/imperial court centres of decorated book production archbishopric main Viking routes, 792-870 Ottonian lands, c.1000 borders c.1000 extent of Catholicism, c.1000 1 - Trier 2 - Kreuznath 3 - Hohensburg 4 - Lippspringe 5 - Detmold 6 - Mainz 7 - Seligenstadt 1 RAIDS BY VIKINGS and others destroyed many of the works of art produced during the peak of Carolingian culture, roughly 780–880. Nevertheless, by the end of the tenth century Christendom had expanded. Kings, increasingly powerful aristocratic lords, and clergymen (especially bishops and abbots) were patrons of books, fine metalwork and architecture. Urban centres were also renascent, especially in Italy. THE WUOLVINIUS ALTAR, centre-rear view (Milan, S. Ambrogio), mid-ninth century. On its front this elaborately enamelled silver and gold altar displayed Christ enthroned in majesty, with scenes from his life at both sides. Access to the relic (the entire preserved body of the patron saint) is through these doors on the back displaying archangels and the current Archbishop Angilbertus and the craftsman Wuolvinius bowing before and being blessed by the saint. EASTERN EUROPE AND SOUTHWEST ASIA 600–1500 107 The Crusades increased knowledge of Byzantine art in western Europe. In the late Byzantine period, Byzantine art also showed an increasing awareness of western art, reflecting the close contact between Byzantium and the West from the twelfth century onwards. ARTISTIC CENTRES Constantinople and Thessaloniki were major artistic centres. A local artistic tradition is exemplified by the ninth- to eleventh-century frescoes in the cave churches of Cappadocia, in eastern Turkey. Church decoration in Cyprus and Serbia provides important insights into artistic developments in the late Byzantine period BYZANTINE SILK PRODUCTION was strictly regulated, being an imperial monopoly. Silks were highly prized in the West where, as in the example below, they were often used to decorate the inside of saints’ reliquaries. The woven patterns, such as the birds and griffins visible in this twelfth-century fabric known as the Shroud of St Potentien (Cathedral Treasury, Sens), find parallels in Islamic silks. 60˚ 50˚ 40˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ Cu Cu Cu Pb Pb M Venice Ragusa Thessalonica Constantinople Smyrna Iconium (Konya) Candia Caesarea Constantia Antioch Damascus Acre Tyre Jerusalem Baghdad Sebastea Trebizond Chersonesus Kiev Moscow Smolensk Riga Reväl Novgorod Van Dvin Ani Tiflis Sinope Athens Monemvasia Corinth Thebes Dnieper Dniester Vistula Volga Euphrates Tigri s Danube Oder Donets Don Bug L.Van M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A BALT IC SEA ADRIATIC SEA B L A C K S E A CASPIANSEA AEGEAN SEA TA U RUS M TS C A U C A S U S BALKAN MTS RHODOPE MTS DINARIC ALPS PIND U S M T S CARPATHIAN M T S CRETE SICILY CYPRUS PROCONNESUS from Egypt from Axum from Muslim lands Byzantine glass to Rus Byzantine glass to Ani N 0 0 300 miles 450 kms 2 EASTERN EUROPE AND THE MEDITERRANEAN were linked by an extensive trading network. Luxury goods from Byzantium were exported to Rus, the River Dnieper forming an important trade route, and overland and across the Black Sea to the Caucasus. Raw materials from Byzantium, such as alum, were exported to western Europe. Even though Byzantium had its own silk production, silks and dyes were also imported from the Islamic world. The Caucasus, Cyprus and the mountains near Thessalonica were mined for silver and copper. Some gold was imported from Africa. 3 CONSTANTINOPLE formed the hub of a vast, longdistance trade network, which carried commodities as far afield as Russia and the Caucasus. The city’s wealth is reflected in the religious topography of the capital. Monasteries were lavishly decorated with mosaics. Cult images, kept at individual monasteries, formed an integral part of religious life in Constantinople, attracting worshippers from within and without the Byzantine Empire. L ycus S E A O F M A R M A R A GO LD EN H O RN BOSPORUS Mother of God Kyriotissa St John stoudios Golden Gate Cistern Cistern Cistern Christ in Chora Blachernae Palace Christ Pantepoptes Christ Evergetes Mother of God Pammakaristos Christ Pantokrator Mangana Monastery St Sophia St Eirene Hodegon Monastery Imperial Palace complex Forum of Constantine Forum of Arkadios Forum of Theodosios St Polyeuktos Mother of God Peribleptos Church of the Holy Apostles N 0 0 1 miles 1.5 kms Constantinople, 900-1300 pre-900 monuments post-900 monuments church monastery mosaic fresco cult image Italian merchant community aqueduct 3 (12th–15th centuries). Alongside Constantinople major centres of manuscript production existed in Armenia, Cilicia (13th–14th centuries) and Bulgaria (14th–15th centuries). MATERIALS AND TECHNIQUES Marble from the island of Proconnesus in the Sea of Marmara was the main construction medium in the early Byzantine period, while in later centuries brick became dominant. Mosaic was the prime medium of Byzantine monumental decoration. Glass workshops are thought to have produced mosaic tesserae as well as glass vessels – Byzantine glass has been found in Russia and Armenia. Glass was also used in enamel production, with cloisonné being the most widely practised technique. From the early Byzantine period Constantinople was the centre of a silk industry; from the tenth century silk workshops also existed in Greece. Silk was also imported from the Islamic world. Various pigments were used to dye silk, the most expensive being purple produced from murex shells. Mordants, such as alum, found primarily in Asia Minor, were used to fix the dyes. Some metals were mined within the Byzantine Empire. Others, such as gold, were imported. Mints producing coins in precious and base metal existed in both Constantinople and Thessalonica. MOVEMENTS OF ART AND ARTISTS Knowledge of Byzantine art was disseminated through trade, diplomatic contacts, pilgrimage and, starting in the late eleventh century, the Crusades. Byzantine art looted in Constantinople in 1204 is still housed in church treasuries in Venice and France. In Russia, the activities of traders, who imported honey, wax and furs from Rus to Byzantium, and sold Byzantine silks and glass in Rus, were complemented by the activities of Byzantine missionaries. Following the elevation of Christianity to the status of official religion in Rus in 988, Byzantine icons and liturgical silver were also imported. The skills of Byzantine craftsmen were highly sought after outside Byzantium. Byzantine mosaicists were active in Kiev in the eleventh century and in Norman Sicily in the twelfth century. 2 Natural Resources, Trade and Industry, 600-1500 trading centre trade route imports exports dyes silk Pb CuM ceramics glass marble alum mint gold silver lead copper iron tin PROFOUND SOCIAL, political and economic changes in the seventh century transformed the civilization of late antiquity into the medieval Greek world, known as Byzantium. For centuries the Byzantine Empire, with Constantinople at its centre, provided a powerful cultural and artistic model to neighbouring cultures, while also absorbing cultural influences from neighbours such as the Islamic world. The Vikings and Slavs of Rus were incorporated into the political and ecclesiastical orbit of Byzantium in the ninth and tenth centuries; the introduction of both Christianity and the Cyrillic alphabet to Rus were manifestations of this process. Contacts with western Europe existed throughout the period, but became particularly intense in the aftermath of the Crusades in the twelfth and thirteenth centuries. The influence of Byzantium declined after the Sack of Constantinople by the participants of the Fourth Crusade in 1204. After the fall of Constantinople in 1453 Byzantine art and Orthodox religion lived on only in eastern Europe and the Balkans. Until the late Byzantine period the emperor was a major patron of the arts. His example was imitated by rulers of Norman Sicily, Serbia and Bulgaria. ART AND SOCIETY Although silks and ceramics are testimony to the widespread production of secular arts, the surviving arts of the period are mainly Christian. Religious diversity is a key factor in ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 106 an understanding of the art of this region. Parts of eastern Europe, including Poland, Hungary and regions of the Balkans, followed the Latin rite, whereas the dominant religion in Byzantium and Rus was Orthodox Christianity. Georgia was Orthodox, neighbouring Armenia Monophysite. Such diversity is reflected in the visual arts, with each region presenting distinctive artistic idioms. Throughout the Byzantine world, religious cult sites provided a stimulus for the production of art and architecture. Many smaller pilgrimage sites existed alongside the major international pilgrimage centres of Jerusalem and Constantinople. The influence of the Islamic world was also profound. The Iconoclast controversy of the eighth and ninth centuries, which concerned the role and extent of religious imagery in Christian worship, cannot be understood without reference to the Islamic prohibition of iconic imagery for religious purposes. In the secular sphere, tenth-century courtly ceremonies of the imperial court in Constantinople were very similar to those practised in Baghdad. EASTERN EUROPE AND SOUTHWEST ASIA 600-1500 THE CLOSE CULTURAL links between medieval Russia and Byzantium are reflected in the art and architecture of medieval Rus. Byzantine craftsmen and architects introduced artistic ideas to Rus, but its art and architecture are not slavish copies of Byzantine models. The Church of SS Peter and Paul, Kozhevniki in Novgorod, northern Russia, is dated 1406. It is centrally planned, radiating from a central point, like a Byzantine church. Its onion dome, however, is a local adaptation. 50˚40˚30˚20˚ 60˚ 50˚ 40˚ 10˚ Constantinople Nicomedia Pliska Preslav Cracow Esztergom (Gran) Gniezno Kiev Novgorod Pskov Moscow Vladimir Yaroslavl Trebizond ˘ ¸Eski Gümüs Göreme Soganli Echmiadzin Aghtamar Hromkla Edessa AntiochTarsus Tripoli Ani Gelati Asinou Acre Sis Iconium Mtskheta Thessalonica Daphni Meteora Bari Chios Boyana Kurbinovo Studenica Kastoria Ochrida Skopje (Scupi) Nerezi Gracanica˘ Sopocani Dyrrhachium ´ Mistra Hosios Loukas Palermo Cefalù Venice Jerusalem Lagoudera L. Van Dnieper Dnieste r Don Volga Ural Danube Euphrates Tigr is Jordan Vistula SEA OF AZOV MEDITERRANEAN SEA B L A C K S E A B A LT IC SEA A EGEAN SEA A D RIATIC SEA Mt Athos C A R PA TH IAN MTS DIN A RIC ALPS C A U C A S U S TAU RU S M TS FINNS FINNS SELJUK TURKS ESTONIANS LIVS LITHUANIANS CYPRUSRHODES K. OF ARMENIA CRETE SICILY H O L Y R O M A N E M P I R E R U S S I A N P R I N C I P A L I T I E S A Y Y U B I D S U L T A N A T E BYZANTINE EMPIREKINGDOM OF SICILY SWEDEN POLAND HUNGARY GEORGIA looted works of art after sack of Constantinople, 1204 Byzantine artists, bronze doors exported to Italy, 11th century Byzantineartists,Byzantineicons N 0 0 300 miles 400 kms 1 BYZANTINE CRAFTSMEN, mostly from Constantinople, were much in demand abroad. Byzantine craftsmen made mosaics in southern Italy, Sicily and Rus. Byzantine artefacts, in particular icons or liturgical objects, also reached Rus through trade and diplomatic missions. Many Byzantine artefacts in western church treasuries were looted during the sack of Constantinople in 1204. Art in Eastern Europe and Byzantine Asia, 600-1500 borders c.1200 Muslim lands Orthodox Christian lands Christian (Armenian/ Monophysite) territory Catholic Christian lands Jewish settlements pagans Bogomils (Manichaeans) route of the First Crusade, 1096-99 extent of Crusader control church pre-1000 church post-1000 monastery pre-1000 monastery post-1000 patriarchal seat archbishopric bishopric pilgrimage centre rock monasteries of Cappadocia wall mosaic fresco decoration scriptorium metalwork enamel relief sculpture ceramics bronze-casting icons movement of artists and artefacts from Constantinople 1 2 Art and Trade border of Holy Roman Empire, c.1095 sources of: silver copper iron lead tin trade centre for Viking sculpture (wood/stone/bone) and metalwork centres of metalwork centres of alabaster centres of ivory-working export of alabaster trade route Cu Pb 109 THE TOWER OF LONDON was built by William the Conqueror soon after his invasion of England in 1066. For the design William’s architects looked to castle architecture in western France. The square plan was to become typical for English castle building. Inside were apartments, a hall and a well. Situated on the banks of the River Thames the dominant building was meant to impress anyone coming from the sea up to London. THE LUND CRUCIFIX. This crucifix comes from the cathedral of Lund, since 1103 the seat of the archbishopric for Scandinavia. It is made from gilded metal. Originally, the figure of Christ was surrounded by the symbols of the four Evangelists on the arms of the cross. Crucifixes like this were treasured items. 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ 60˚ 50˚ 40˚ 10˚20˚30˚ Pb Pb Cu Cu Cu Limerick Cork Dublin Wexford York Durham Cammin (Kamien) Gdansk´ ´ Lund Vejrum Lade Urnes Borbjerg Trondheim Lincoln Norwich King’s Lynn Hull London Paderborn Utrecht Hamburg Bruges Paris Tours Vienna Florence Venice Barcelona Perpignan Gerona Valencia Palma Toledo Seville Lisbon Cartagena Zurich Naples Rome Basle Milan Pavia Genoa Siena Pisa Avignon Limoges Bordeaux Fuenterrabia Aviles Morella Nantes Ecaquelon Kermaria Chatelaudren Roscoff Cologne Toulouse MontpellierSantiago de Compostela Burgos Zamora Silos Palermo Messina Catania Otok Prague Buda Kiev Novgorod Waterford Winchester Tutbury Dartmouth Bristol St Albans Poole Evreux Southampton Wolin Zuchau Gross-Grönau Ribe Kaupang Oseberg Flatalunga Dorestad Sigtuna Po Danube Dnieper Dvina Volga Rhône Loire Sein e E lbe Od er Rhine A T L A N T I C O C E A N N O R T H S E A BAY O F B I S C AY BALT IC SEA B L A C K S E A MEDITERRANEAN SEA PYRENEES A L P S HARZ MTS SICILY CORSICA SARDINIA NORWAY ICELAND SWEDEN POLAND ENGLAND FRANCE NORMANDY SCOTLAND IRISH KINGDOMS WELSH PRINCIPALITIES HUNGARY KINGDOM OF ITALY BYZANTINE EMPIRE KINGDOM OF ITALY KINGDOM OF GERMANY DENMARK S E L J U K E M P I R E S FIN N O -U G RIA N S T U R K IC P E O P L E S carved wood carved wood N 0 0 250 miles 350 kms 2 THE SUPPLY OF MATERIALS was essential for art production. In Germany and in England, local stone was in good supply and was a perfect source for buildings and sculpture, while in Scandinavia patrons and artists exploited the rich timber resources. Rare materials like alabaster and metal were exploited at source and then exported to other regions. Trade, a crucial factor in the growing European economy, fuelled the arts. In turn, trade routes contributed to the dispersal of craftsmen and their methods. had to be found for constructions, gold, silver and gems were needed for the liturgical furnishings. Such materials were sometimes found in the local vicinity but they were often imported. Iron, copper and tin, for example, were brought from the east to centres of metalwork, such as Cologne and Tours. The perfection of the material and of the craftsmanship was a vital factor in the production of Christian art created for the honour of God. ARTISTS AND PATRONS The European secular elite also underlined their newly found positions of power by patronizing the arts. They constructed castles and palaces that reflected their authority and position in society, for example at Trier, Leyden and Hildesheim. At the same time, they also demanded religious objects for their personal devotional practices. The personalities and working methods of artists are little documented at this time, and only few artists signed a finished work. Most art production was collaborative and often several generations of a family worked in the same workshop. If a wealthy patron wished it, foreign artists travelled great distances to bring their specialized knowledge with them. Some areas developed a reputation for the manufacture and sale of luxury goods, like alabaster from England. In this way craftsmen became entrepreneurs. Other artists worked over long periods at the same court, for example at Westminster and Aachen. In this case a close consultation between artist and patron could develop, so that works were created that were specifically designed to fulfill the wishes of the patron. CENTRES OF ART AND LEARNING The religious institutions of the time were also the seats of education and learning. Schools developed around many of the newly built cathedrals. The monasteries that dotted the landscape were also important centres of teaching and art production. Many had scriptoria famous for manuscript illumination, such as the monastery of Echternach which in turn inspired the mural painters. The combination of religion, learning and artistic production is symptomatic of this time when much of the intellectual creativity was concentrated on devotional subjects. NORTHERN EUROPE 1000–1200ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 108 THE FIRST TWO HUNDRED YEARS of the second millennium were a period of expansion and economic growth for northern Europe. This prosperity stimulated an increased production of art and architecture. Though the time of the great invasions from the east had passed, political boundaries continued to shift. Notionally the German Emperors dominated western Europe. Nevertheless, it was often smaller barons and counts who held real power, and many were able to extend their power base. The Normans of northern France, for example, conquered England in 1066. They brought with them their system of government, as well as their artistic tastes and their architects to rebuild the cathedrals, such as Durham and Ely, and to construct new castles, like Norwich and Rochester. Next to the secular courts, cathedrals and monasteries were the main centres of authority and culture in this period. Bishops and abbots recruited themselves from the same families as secular rulers, and as major landowners they held comparable power. They were also influential patrons of the arts, commissioning works of art for their own personal use but also for their religious institutions. The cathedralmonastery of Canterbury in England, the cathedral of Lund in Sweden and the monastery of Hirsau were all important sites. Between 1100 and 1200 society became much more stable. New trade links opened up to the north and south. A thriving agricultural base brought wealth to many regions. New towns and universities developed, and roads allowed safer travel for artists and merchants. In this flourishing society, visual art and architecture were increasingly put into the service of individuals and institutions. Often, they were intended to convey multiple NORTHERN EUROPE 1000-1200 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 50˚ 60˚ Lincoln Oakham Norwich Bury St Edmunds Castle Rising Ely Colchester Orford Castle Hedingham Canterbury London (Westminster) Rochester Durham Richmond Norham Minden Paderborn Hamburg Lund Hildesheim Brunswick Halberstadt Magdeburg Gniezno PlockTrzemeszno Quedlinburg GoslarHersfeld Wartburg Helmarshausen Regensburg Weingarten St Gall Einsiedeln Engelberg Augsburg Salzburg Klosterneuburg Stavanger Bergen Ringsaker Gamla Uppsala Falun Hamar Trondheim Viborg Husaby Visby Soest Essen Corvey Leyden EberbachMaria Laach (Abtei Laach) Maulbronn Trier Echternach Aachen Liège Stavelot Hirsau Reichenau Schaffhausen Habsburg Cologne Deutz Werden Bonn Andernach Mainz Limburg Winchester Tournai Peterborough Newcastle Conisbrough York Gloucester Malmesbury HerefordSt David’s Exeter Romsey Sherborne Shaftesbury St Albans Reading Loire Seine Rhine Elbe Po Oder Rhône Danube A T L A N T I C O C E A N BAY O F B I S C AY N O R T H S E A B A LT IC SEA A L P S P Y R E N E E S S L AV S FINNICPEOPLES B A L T I C P E O PLES T U R K I C P E O P L E S SCOTLAND ENGLAND F R A N C E DENMARK NORWAY SWEDEN POLAND HUNGARY CROATIA NORMANDY LEÓN-CASTILE BURGUNDY POMERANIA H O LY R O M A N E M P I R E B Y Z A N T I N E E M P I R E KINGDOM OF ITALY IRISH KINGDOMS WELSH PRINCIPALITIES N O V G O RO D P O L O T S K K I E V G A L I C H V O L H Y N I A N 0 0 250 miles 350 kms 1 Art in the Regions borders, c.1095 border of Holy Roman Empire cathedral/abbey cathedral/abbey with sculpture cycle castle palace manuscript illumination mural painting stained glass centre of metalwork 1 WITH LESS THREAT from eastern invasions, new cathedrals, abbeys, castles and palaces began to cover northern Europe, including the recently Christianized areas of Scandinavia and eastern Europe. Rulers like Duke Henry the Lion of Saxony (c.1129–1195) continued to suppress pagan religions. By conquering lands to the east Christianity extended ever further, bringing with it Christian art and architecture and establishing important centres of metalwork. messages, and to express the beliefs and the attitudes of the time. CHRISTIANITY In the early decades of the second millennium Christianity finally established itself as the dominant religion in northern Europe. The Scandinavian rulers were the last of the European rulers to be baptized. The evangelizing church demonstrated its increased influence by associating itself with opulent art and imposing architecture. All over Europe cathedrals, abbeys and parish churches were built or rebuilt. The churches were filled with paintings, altarpieces, sculpture and stained glass. These objects performed a part in the visual display of the Christian faith and the rituals of the daily liturgy. The funding was supplied mainly by donations from the faithful. Laity and clergy alike invested in the religious spectacle in order to illustrate their personal devotion and to attain salvation. Only the most famous artists and the most precious metals were suitable for these pious aspirations: good building stone and timber 10˚0˚ 40˚ Paris Tours Orléans Conques Rome Naples Anagni Catania Palma de Mallorca Pisa Ferrara Trieste Roscoff Cluny Cologne Nantes Syracuse Cahors Zamora Lisbon Seville Cartagena Nantes Barcelona Palermo Winchester Bury St Edmunds Canterbury Amalfi Maiori Monte Cassino Carcassonne Monte Sant’ Angelo Genoa Chartres Poitiers St Jean d’Angély Saintes Silos Moissac St Gilles-du-Gard Arles St Guilhem le Desert Toulouse Avilés Salerno Atrani Venice Santiago de Compostela Vézelay Kermaria Chatelaudren Limoges Périgueux Le Puy León Bordeaux Roncesvalles Puente-la-Reina A T L A N T I C O C E A N A D R I A T I C SEA P Y R EN E E S A L P S M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E AA F R I C A N 0 0 250 miles 350 kms 2 Trade and Artistic Influence major pilgrimage route city on pilgrimage route with major site movements of artistic style stylistic influence from the Holy Land movement of Arab gold and gems centre for trade of gems and bone centre for import of alabaster from England bronze doors from Constantinople SOUTHERN EUROPE 1000–1200 111 2 IN THE ELEVENTH CENTURY southern Europe was criss-crossed by a network of roads. From the late eleventh century, four of these roads developed into specific pilgrimage roads, leading towards Santiago de Compostela. Despite conflict with the Arabs in the south and a strained relationship with the Byzantine Empire, trade with the east was flourishing and southern Europe depended on artistic influences from the Holy Land and the east. in Germany. A major confrontation developed between European Christians and Muslims in southern Spain and in the Holy Land, and in the mid-twelfth century the Plantagenet king of England owned more land in France than the king of France himself. Artistic production reflects these complex relationships. There is evidence for cross-cultural exchanges between Islamic and Christian art, and between French and English art. On an ideological level, the popes used the revival of the art and architecture of imperial Rome to underline their authority and to emphasize the continuing power of the Christian church. PILGRIMAGE The cult of relics became a major focus of medieval life and art. Imposing churches were built to house the precious remains of saints and Christian martyrs. Numerous chapels and tall towers advertised their power to the world, and attracted pilgrims from far and wide. Inside the churches, the story of the saints was told in paintings and sculpture, their bones were displayed in richly decorated gold or silver reliquaries, and manuscripts depicted their lives and their miracles. Here pilgrims could pray for the atonement of sins and hope for cures of illnesses. Their pious donations sustained monastic communities and helped fund churches and art works. The main sites to be visited by Christian pilgrims were traditionally Rome and the Holy Land. During the eleventh century a pilgrimage developed to Compostela in northern Spain where the remains of James, the apostle of Christ, were kept. Pilgrims from eastern Europe travelled to Spain along pilgrimage routes starting from Paris, Vézelay, Le Puy and Arles, which took in many celebrated shrines on the way, such as Conques, St Gilles, Limoges and Toulouse. Relics became a major object of trade between northern Europe and the south where early Christian martyrs were in greater supply. The acquisition of relics and free access to their sites was a fundamental requirement of Christian society, which saw saints as its defenders, an essential part of its faith, and a crucial factor for its economy. CRUSADES AND ISLAM In the seventh century, the south of the Mediterranean world became detached from the north by the advance of Islam. In 711 Islamic troops moved into Spain and then into France. In the eleventh century, the Near East was conquered by the Seljuks, separating Christians from sites in the Holy Land, especially from Jerusalem. In the face of this perceived danger, Christian Europe united behind the idea of reconquest. Initiated by the pope, Christian knights from all over Europe set out in 1096 on the first crusade to win back the Holy Land. This was the beginning of continuing Christian invasions of the east in THE CENTRAL PORTAL of the narthex at Vézelay, France. The pilgrimage church was one of the four starting points on the route to Santiago de Compostela. This portal was carved in c.1120 to welcome medieval pilgrims who had come to visit the shrine of Saint Mary Magdalene. The tympanum shows, at the centre, the figure of Christ at Pentecost investing his apostles with the power to commence their mission and preach the Christian message to nonChristians. On the lintel and in the square fields surrounding the central scene the people of the world are shown. The outer voussoirs are decorated with the signs of the Zodiac and a decorative scroll. On the trumeau, or central support of the doorway, the figure of John the Baptist can be seen presenting a now damaged lamb of God. The abbey’s fame reached a peak when at Easter 1146, the second crusade was launched at Vézelay. order to keep the main pilgrimage places out of Muslim control. Possessions in the Near East and good contacts with the Byzantine Empire opened up new trade routes and encouraged artistic exchange. In Spain, the warrior image of Saint James fused the idea of pilgrimage with that of the Reconquista, the recapture of Islamic Spain. Between 1000 and 1200, the Caliphate of Córdoba was almost completely defeated. Despite this confrontation, the north of Spain enjoyed cultural interaction with Islamic art. TRADE AND ARTISTS Mediterranean trade continued to flourish. From the Islamic coast of Africa gold and gems were imported into Spain and France. Italian towns like Genoa and Venice became major trading centres linking the European west with the south and the Near East. At Venice, buyers could find alabaster from England, and gems, bone and ivory from Byzantium. Artists and craftsman from the Byzantine Empire, where Roman artistic traditions survived, brought their experience to the west. At Monte Cassino in Italy, Abbot Desiderius (1058–87) rebuilt Saint Benedict’s church in a splendour not seen since early Christian times. A set of majestic bronze doors was imported from Constantinople, and artists were invited to help to create mosaics and wall paintings. The pope in Rome and other patrons soon followed Desiderius’ example. ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 110 IN SOUTHERN EUROPE the long-forgotten artistic traditions of ancient Rome became an important source of artistic models. The city’s early Christian monuments, such as St Peter’s, were a constant reminder that the religion had originated there. Roman buildings and sculpture survived elsewhere in what had been the Roman Empire, as for example at Autun, Arles and Tarragona. Now they became an inspiration for artists and craftsman. The art of the eleventh and twelfth centuries is therefore called Romanesque, or ‘Roman-like’. During this period France emerged as one of the leading centres of art production. The Capetian rulers had established a stable dynasty, and the country was blessed with ample resources. In the 1140s, Abbot Suger (c.1080–1151) of St Denis near Paris and his un-named architect created a new lightweight architecture for the apse of the abbey church which came to be called Gothic. It was further developed in the northeast of France, for example at Laon and Chartres. Although it initially co-existed with the Romanesque, this new Gothic style eventually dominated both northern and southern Europe. While the economy and the arts flourished, European rulers continued to wrestle for power. In the eleventh century Sicily and southern Italy were captured by the Normans, in 1194 they were taken over by the Hohenstaufen Emperor Henry VI (d.1197) and became the Kingdom of Sicily. The pope in Rome quarrelled constantly with the Emperor SOUTHERN EUROPE 1000-1200 20˚10˚0˚ 40˚ Jumièges Fécamp Coutances Bayeux Château Gontier Provins St Denis Huym St Hubert Rouen Gisors Reims Laon Dinant Stavelot Troyes Avesnes Valenciennes Saint-Amand Périgueux Souillac Cahors Bordeaux Moissac Limoges Conques Toulouse Angoulême Lisbon Alcobaca Tomar Coimbra Oporto Ávila Sigena Santiago de Compostela Evora Seville Granada Córdoba Guadalajara Arévalo La Roda Oviedo León Jaca TahullLeyre Pamplona Salamanca Zamora Ciudad Rodrigo Sahagún Las Huelgas Silos Burgos Loarre Huesca Tarragona Roda da Ribagorça Lérida Gerona Fenovillar L'Écluse Sorède Ripoll Poblet Cuxa San Pedro de Roda Avignon Carcassonne St Gilles-du-Gard Aix Marseille Arles Cluny Macon St Chef Lyon Ebreuil Lavaudieu Perrecy-les-Forges Autun Strasbourg Châlons-sur-Marne Sens Auxerre Saulieu Nevers Orbais Fontevrault Souvigny Le Puy Cressac Brioude Clermont- Ferrand Angers St André des Eaux Langeais Cîteaux Besançon Payerne Ravello Amalfi Atrani Monte Cassino Castellamare di Stabia Calvi Trani Canosa Bari MolfettaTroia Anagni Sta Elia di Nepi Palermo Caltanisetta Taormina Messina Adrano Monreale Ravenusa Cefalù Mazara Siena Sant’ Antimo Assisi Ancona Spoleto Ferentillo Marcellina Ronzano Fossascesia Rome Tivoli Tuscania Termeno Todi Lucca Borgo di S. Donnino Piacenza Turin Ferrara Pompasa BolognaModena Genoa Spigno Verona Venice Torcello Trieste Aquileia Castel Appiano Vicenza Cremona Como Civate Milan Chiaravalle Vercelli Novara Pisa Volterra Cortona Montepulciano Gimignano Florence Pistoia Poitiers Chauvigny Niort St Savin Les Andelys Bec St Evrault Falaise Caen Mayenne Mont-Saint-Michel Syracuse Vézelay Clairvaux Cambrai Noyon Thérouanne St Bertin Arras Loire Po Eb ro Guadalquivir T agus Rhône Rhine A T L A N T I C O C E A N M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A D R I A T I C S EA P Y R E N E E S A L P S KINGDOM OF GERMANY KINGDOM OF BOHEMIA KINGDOM OF ITALY KINGDOM OF BURGUNDY KINGDOM OF SICILY E M P I R E O F T H E A L M O H A D S PO RTUGAL MUSLIM KINGDOM OF MALLORCA LEÓN CASTILE PAPAL STATES CORSICA SARDINIA ARAGON FRANCE NAVARRE 1 2 34 23 33 34 35 26 32 36 37 31 28 29 30 27 5 6 7 89 10 11 12 13 14 24 25 16 17 18 19 20 21 22 15 N 0 0 150 miles 200 kms 1 Southern Europe, 1000-1200 borders c. 1180 border of the Holy Roman Empire cathedral/abbey with sculpture cathedral/abbey with no sculpture castle palace centre of manuscript illumination mural paintings bronze doors stained glass mosaics centres of metalwork early Gothic architecture - Poncé - Tours - Orléans - Vendôme - Dourdan - Château-Landon - Bourges - Brinay - Loches - Tavant - Montmorrillon - Nohant-Vicq - Paray-le-Monial - Berzé-la-Ville - Rocamadour - Ravello - Parma - Pianella - Bominaco 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 18 19 - Foro Claudio - Sant’ Angelo in Formis - Benevento - Le Mans - Lausanne - St Maurice d’Augaune - Paris - Pontigny - Étampes - St Loup de Naud - Preuilly - Ivry la Bataille - Mantes - Châteaudun - Chartres - Braine - Senlis - St Germer-de-Fly 20 21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 30 31 32 33 34 35 36 37 1 DESPITE FREQUENT POWER SHIFTS IN the territories of southern Europe, art production increased drastically after 1000. Cathedrals, abbeys, castles and palaces began to cover the landscape. In some cities specialized centres of art production developed. Limoges and Pisa became famous for their metalwork, while Strasbourg and St Denis had important workshops of stained glass. In the mid to late twelfth century, the northeast of France became a hub of building activity when churches were rebuilt in the Gothic style. THE GREAT MOSQUE AT CÓRDOBA was built soon after the Islamic conquest of Spain and inaugurated in 786. It was continually enlarged until the late tenth century. When the Christians recaptured Córdoba in 1236 the mosque became a cathedral, but long before this time the architecture impressed Christian artists, in particular the horseshoe arches consisting of voussoirs in alternating colours. The marble columns and the use of Roman capitals can be compared to contemporary Christian architecture. Hôtel de Nesle (1270-1380) André-des-Arcs (1210-20) La Sainte-Chapelle (1246-48) ÎLE-DE-LA-CITÉ Saints Cosme et Damien (1213) Collège de la Sorbonne (1256) La Trinité (hospital, c.1200) St-Sauveur (1214) Abbey of St-Victor Hôtel of the King of Navarre (1260) Collège d’Harcourt (1280) St-Jacques (1221-) Hôtel de Nesle (1180-1223) Louvre (1190-) St-Honoré (1205) Collège des Bons-Enfants d’Arras (1208) Collège St-Nicolas- du-Louvre (1212) St-Nicolas-des-Champs (c.1200) St-Nicolas-duChardonnet (1230, 1243) Commanderie of the Knights Templars (1265) St-Gervais-StProtais (1213) Béguines (1264) Monastery of Ste-Croix (1258) St-Merri Ste-Opportune (hospital, c.1200) St-Josse (1235) St-Leu-St-Gilles (1235) Monastery of Les Blancs-Manteaux (1258) St-Germain-l’Auxerrois (1250) Hôtel d’Alphonse de Poitiers Notre Dame Hôtel-Dieu (1200, 1250) St-Étienne-du-Mont (1225) St-Séverin Les Halles LaGrantRue rueStMartin L a Rue St-Victor La Draperie La Grève rue aux Écrivainsrue Erembourc-en-Brie Seine Seine NORTHERN EUROPE 1200–1300 113 the agricultural surplus that resulted from the development of better technology such as ploughs and crop rotation. The population of the medieval cities adjusted economically and socially to improved living conditions, moving toward ever greater specialization in the production of goods. Controlled by organizations known as guilds, specialized workers served as engines of economic development whose most lucrative products were luxury goods. Because these goods were relatively light and thus readily transported, they could be profitably carried overland to the fairs of Champagne in northeast France, or alternatively traded by the merchants of the Hanseatic League (a commercial confederation originating in German-speaking areas surrounding the Baltic Sea). CULTURAL CONTACTS These continental trades routes extended further eastwards and southwards as Europeans continued to make contact with the civilizations of Asia, Africa and the Middle East. Four major Crusades offered opportunities for cultural contact through conquest; they resulted in the capture of Constantinople in 1204, the brief control over Jerusalem (negotiated by the German Emperor Fredrick II in 1229), and two spectacularly unsuccessful campaigns by the French King Louis IX in 1248 and 1270. The strategic failures of the Crusaders may have been countered by the 2 BASED ON A PLAN drawn by a nineteenth-century historian, the map above reconstructs Paris in the late thirteenth century. Details derived from the records of special taxes levied in the 1290s demonstrate the distinct differences in the wealth among the city’s parishes, as well providing a glimpse of where various artisans, for example, glaziers lived and worked throughout the city. Illuminators, parchment dealers and book traders tended to congregate on the left bank of the Seine, near the University, founded in the twelfth century. cultural effects of their interaction with the relatively more advanced Arabic Middle Eastern civilization, though some modern historians argue that the Crusades did not inspire intellectual and economic development as much as they promoted religious, ethnic and even national intolerance, not only between Christians and Arabs, but also between Christians and Jews, Latins and Greeks. The growth of cities also provided a new geographic focus for learning, marking a shift from the predominantly rural monasteries to major universities such as Paris and Bologna. Even more than monasteries and cathedral schools before them, universities provided access to learning for children of non-noble classes, especially as secular rulers looked to university graduates to fill the administrative ranks of government. As universities developed their own curricula to fill this need, they created a demand for very different books: illustrated anatomical treatises, law books (especially Gratian’s Decretals), the newly fashionable texts of Aristotle and their accompanying commentaries, and traditional bibles, now made in smaller ‘pocket versions’ suitable for university students. This demand in turn stimulated a greater specialization in the book trade, a market that was increasingly dominated by lay artisans in major urban areas. University books developed a unique ‘visual geography’ in their own layouts – the text being studied was written in large letters in the centre of the manuscript page, around which was gathered marginal glosses of relevant citations from key authorities in smaller letters, with space left in the margins for the owner’s annotations. PARIS: A CULTURAL CENTRE A regional centre for artistic production in the early Middle Ages, Paris emerged in the course of the thirteenth century as the premier capital city in western Europe, recognized widely for its leading role as a producer of high-quality manuscripts, painting and ivory carving. Paris’ reputation as an intellectual centre grew with the establishment of its university on the left bank of the Seine in the late twelfth century; the presence of scholars such as Peter Abelard ensured that the university was widely recognized as the pre-eminent school of theology and liberal arts by the early 1200s. King Phillipe Auguste (r.1180–1223) established Paris as the political and administrative centre of an aggressively expanding kingdom. In an age when most rulers criss-crossed their domains, dragging along the people and equipment necessary for government, Phillipe permanently installed the royal archives, treasury and staff in one place, on the Île-de-laCité in the middle of the Seine. Under his successors, Louis IX and Phillipe the Fair, Paris emerged as the locus of French national government and as an international capital of art, learning and fashion. REIMS CATHEDRAL. Pierced by deep porches, covered with elaborate sculptural programmes and supported by pointed arches and flying buttresses, Gothic cathedrals such as this one at Rheims dominated the European cities of the thirteenth century. These enormous buildings required a huge expenditure of capital for their construction, money made available by a growing agricultural economy. Records of chapter meetings at Reims demonstrate that demands for funds were not always welcomed by either the lay or ecclesiastical communities. 2 Paris in the 13th Century workshops of glaziers 1296/1297 home to a concentration of Paris illuminators home to parchment-makers and scribes major building relative wealth of areas of Paris (taxes paid in 1297): less than 10 sous per household 10-20 sous 20-30 sous more than 30 sous ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 112 IN THE YEARS 1200–1300, northern Europe initiated a remarkable geographic shift in its production of culture from isolated, rural monasteries to urban centres. As enduring landmarks of this shift, the century has left us numerous light-filled churches which still dominate the urban landscapes of Europe today, a potent visual reminder of the medieval sense of the presence of God and the power of the Church that connected the earthly to the divine. Often covered with elaborate programmes of figural sculpture, these edifices were enormous billboards in stone that towered physically and psychologically over the cultural landscape, so much so that craftsmen and -women in other media quickly adopted the slender proportions and graceful lines of this first ‘modern’ style. MEDIEVAL CITIES Known in the Middle Ages as opus francigenum (literally ‘French work’), the Gothic style spread rapidly from city to city in and near the royal domains in the Île-de-France and then on to Germany, Flanders, Spain and England. Its home was in rapidly growing cities; with a few exceptions, such as Rome and Cologne, important medieval cities developed as mercantile centres in the suburbs of former Roman towns. In northern Europe, the largest of these cities formed at the nexus of Alpine passes and sea- and river-routes in Flanders, northern Germany, northern France and southern England. These cities were fed from NORTHERN EUROPE 1200-1300 20˚10˚0˚ 50˚ A A A A A A A A (Westminster) (Ste-Chapelle, Notre Dame, St-Denis) (Westminster) 1170 1229 1229 c. 1230 1209 c. 1180 c. 1150 Limoges Bordeaux León Toulouse Nantes Orléans Tours Chillon Angers Honnecourt Exeter York Flint Roscrea Winchester Canterbury St Albans Norwich Peterborough Oxford Nenagh Roscommon Wells Utrecht Cambridge Ghent Tournai Cambrai Vaucelles Bruges Nottingham Laon Meaux Schlettstadt (Sélestat) Paderborn Hamburg Prague Vienna Klosterneuburg Avignon Aigues-Mortes Montpellier Carcassonne Neubrandenburg Linköping Meissen Frankfurt Marburg Mainz Naumburg Erfurt Aachen Arras Metz Basle Schloss-Bruck Hardegg Lausanne La Bâtiaz Kalmar Magdeburg Nuremberg Goslar Heiligenkreuz Bologna Pils Worms Colmar Montségur Grandson Lincoln Hull Southwell Rhuddlan Conway Beaumaris Caernarvon Harlech Caerlaverock Chellaston Salisbury Corfe Pevensey Dover 1 London 3 Cologne 4 Strassburg (Strasbourg) Reims 5 Troyes 6 Amiens 7 Chartres 8 Bamberg 9 Bourges 3 4 8 5 9 6 2 Paris 2 7 1 Rhi ne L oire Rhône Danube Seine N O R T H S E A A T L A N T I C O C E A N BA LT I C S E A PYRENEES A L P S H O L Y R O M A N E M P I R E WALES ENGLAND F R A N C E ARAGON NAVARRE CASTILE ITALY VENETIAN REP. SCOTLAND NORWAY SWEDEN DENMARKIRELAND to Toledo to Barcelona N 0 0 250 miles 350 kms 1 Northern Europe, 1200-1300 borders, c. 1270 major church church with important sculpture church with important stained glass church related to opus francigenum hall church castle/fortification alabaster export of alabaster centre of manuscript painting diffusion of manuscript styles ivory carving metalworking centre spread of metalwork university, with date of foundation city visited by the French draughtsman Villard de Honnecourt (fl. c.1220-40) diffusion of artistic styles A 1 NORTHERN EUROPE in the years from 1200 to 1300 was characterized by increased long-distance trade, especially in luxury goods. Paris and northern France rapidly grew in importance as the leading international centre for art and architecture. Artisans in and around Paris developed highly specialized workshops, especially for the carving of ivory and miniature painting in a fashionable and appealing style known then as opus francigenum (‘French work’). Recognizably idiosyncratic styles emerged in England, Germany and France, which had a regional appeal, though both Limoges (enamels) and East Anglia (manuscripts) produced work that found much wider markets. PICTURE OF AN ELEPHANT given to King Henry III of England by Louis IX of France in 1255. As Matthew Paris, a monk at St Albans, tells us, this elephant is drawn from life. A suitable prefatory illustration to Matthew’s World Chronicle, the elephant demonstrates European political relationships and the increasing regularity of trade with areas outside Europe. While monks such as Matthew would continue to illuminate manuscripts, lay artists were increasingly becoming more important in the commercial booktrade for universities and aristocrats. SOUTHERN EUROPE 1200–1300 115 30˚20˚10˚0˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Pb Pb Sn Sn Venice Verona Assisi Rome Vienna Buda Innsbruck Prague Geneva Paris Rouen Arras Reims Espalato Durazzo Zara Trieste Belgrade Alexandria Damietta Famagusta Antioch Constantinople Smyrna Candia Kaffa Trebizond Moncastro Kiliya Syracuse Tripoli Messina Palermo TunisAlgiers Granada Palma Cádiz Córdoba Seville Melilla Lisbon Southampton London Hull Mainz Worms Hamburg Bremen Cracow Breslau Danzig Kiev NovgorodChristiania Bergen Stockholm Nuremburg Lübeck Edinburgh Bruges Genoa SienaMarseille Cagliari Lyon Dijon Poitiers Aigues- Mortes Valencia Barcelona León Milan Tripoli Beirut Acre Jaffa Loire Ebro Tagus Danube Dneiper Rhine Elbe Seine A T L A N T I C O C E A N N O R T H S E A BA L TIC SEA B L A C K S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A PYRENEES CARPATHIAN MTS A L P S CYPRUS CORSICA CRETE SARDINIA SICILY BALEARIC IS A F R I C A E G Y P T N 0 0 300 miles 400 kms raw materials: gold silver iron copper lead tin ivory timber wax gems silk spices hides wool linen furs Cu Pb Sn 2 Trade and Transmission Venetian trade routes Genoese trade routes Hanseatic League trade routes major inland trade routes route of Fourth Crusade, 1202-04 Fifth Crusade, 1217-21 Seventh Crusade, 1248-54 Eighth Crusade, 1270 artistic influence from Paris artistic influence from Constantinople imported goods witnessed by the foundation of well-respected universities in a number of Iberian cities: Palencia, Salamanca, Seville, Valladolid, Lérida and Lisbon. ROMANESQUE FOUNDATIONS As in Spain, the struggle for political supremacy helped determine the spread of artistic styles in Italy. Long a temptation for northerners with designs on imperial dignity, Italy experienced a decades-long struggle between supporters of the Holy Roman Emperor Frederick II and his enemies, which to a large measure merely masked local rivalries between burgeoning cities. The collapse of the German Hohenstaufen dynasty with the death of Frederick II permitted greater French influence both in the political realm, through the rise of the house of Charles of Anjou, brother of Louis IX, in Naples, and in the artistic realm, through the patronage of French styles. In northern Italy, Siena and Florence led the way in the import of Gothic elements, especially in the Florentine church of Sta Maria Novella. The most important stylistic influences in Italy, however, were those ‘imported’ from its own Roman and Early Christian past. Classicizing styles are evident in the work of the sculptor Nicola Pisano (d. c.1284) and in the products of the artisans in southern Italy associated with the court of EASTERN (PERSIAN) INSPIRED DESIGNS, expertly woven on silk with gold and silk threads, celebrated the pleasures of aristocratic pastimes of hunting and feasting. A refined object of secular luxury, this textile formed part of the grave wrappings of a Spanish bishop, demonstrating the interrelationships of secular and sacred and the mutual appreciation of the visual culture of the Christian, Islamic and Jewish inhabitants of Spain. 2 THE DISPARATE GEOGRAPHIC REGIONS of Europe in the thirteenth century were interlinked by trade routes controlled by the members of the German Hanseatic League and by the Italian city states of Genoa and Venice. The same cities provided entryways for gold, silk, ivory and spices from Asia and Africa, and furs and timber from Russia and the Baltic. Artistic influences radiated out from cultural centres such as Paris and Constantinople. the Holy Roman Emperor. Mosaics in Rome were derived from styles considered to be from the earliest, formative days of the Christian church, while the mosaics at St Mark’s in Venice are influenced by illustrations from a revered sixth-century Bible. Italian painting in the thirteenth century developed on the foundation of Classically derived Romanesque, spiced with influences from Byzantium. In Rome Pietro Cavallini and Jacopo Torriti developed mural painting influenced by the influx of Byzantine artists following the capture of Constantinople. Tuscan painting in the last half of the century was dominated by Cimabue (d.1302) who is credited with influencing the young Florentine, Giotto (d.1337). The connection and competition among these artists mirror the larger networks of trade, religion and cultures, and set the stage for the creative explosions of the century that followed. ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 114 CENTRED BETWEEN the burgeoning markets of northern Europe and the resource-rich provinces of Africa and the Middle East, the cities of southern Europe became key points of contact for the cultures bordering the Mediterranean Sea. MEDIEVAL ITALY With its long coastline and well-established tradition of civil government, Italy enjoyed an interlinked network of cities connected by sailors and merchants. The most extensive of these trading networks in the thirteenth century belong to Genoa and Venice, both of which established fleets that traded between the eastern Mediterranean, Africa and far northern ports. Venice, in particular, was able to use its trading connections to forge a wide sphere of influence, re-directing the armies of the Fourth Crusade towards the conquest of the city of Constantinople in 1204. Italy also led the way in the development of other trans-European networks. Perhaps the most visible belonged to the new religious organizations of the Dominicans and Fransciscans. Both orders were founded in the 1220s and rejected wealth, espousing dedication to study and simple devotion. They were the first of the medieval monastic orders to target cities as their special areas of interest and influence. By the mid-thirteenth century each order allowed its members to settle in permanent foundations dedicated to the memory of their sainted founders, Francis and Dominic. Priories and churches dedicated to preaching to large audiences sprang up in nearly all urban communities of note across Europe, forming vast and often competing networks. SOUTHERN EUROPE 1200-1300 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 40˚ Arezzo (1286) Castello dell’Imperatore (1215) (1224)(1283) (1292-97) (Cathedral San Lorenzo, 1245-) (1266) (1247) (1286)(1260) (1275-78) (1266-68) (13th c) (San Marco, 1280s) (1180) (1231) (1246) (1248) (1228) Tolentino Urbino San Gimignano 7 Assisi (1228-53) Todi (1296) Bologna (S Domenico, 1233; S Francesco, 1236-63) Brescia Verona(S Zeno, 1225)(1250, 1277) Trento (1200-) Castello del Buonconsiglio Bassano Venice (post-1293)Lodi Lucca Lerici Milan(1221) 8 Vercelli Parma Pisa 9 Volterra 6 Naples (S Lorenzo Maggiore, 1266-) Viterbo (1266) Anagni Castello Caetani Massa Marittima (pre-1250) Cremona (1250) Castel Nuovo Castello di Lombardia Castello Maniace Augusta Benevento Salerno Monte Cassino Castel del Monte Lucera Caserta Vecchia Barcelona (1298) (1267) Tortosa Gerona Aigues-Mortes Piacenza Valencia Granada Ávila (13th c) Évora (1186-1250) Toledo (1226) (1238) Burgos (1221) Pamplona Tudela Huesca Sigena (1204) (1250) Valladolid Montpellier (1180) (1229) Toulouse (1300) Lérida Vic (1290)Lisbon (1254) (c.1220) (c.1285) Seville (1250)Salamanca La Mota Coimbra (from 1281) Calatrava la Nueva (1212) Palencia Tarragona (from 1277) León (1255) (1203-78) Santiago de Compostela Santarém Alcobaça (from 1178) Orvieto (Cathedral, 1228-; S Domenico, 1233-64) Subiaco Perugia Siena 4 Syracuse Alhambra Genoa Córdoba Ebro Po Tagus ATLANTIC OCEAN A D R I A T I C S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A P Y R E N E E S A L P S B A L E A R I C I S PORTUGAL A R A G O N C A S T I L E L E Ó N CORSICA SICILY SARDINIA (to Genoa) GASCONY (to England) K I N G D O M O F S I C I LY NAVARRE F R A N C E EM P IR E O F T H E A L M O H A D S 1 2 3 5 11 N 0 0 150 miles 200 kms 1 Rome (Sta Maria Sopra Minerva, 1280) (Sta Cecilia in Trastavere) (Curia Romana, 1244) (Sta Maria in Trastevere, 1290s; Sta Maria Maggiore, 1294; San Paolo Fuori le Mura, 1220; St John Lateran, 1291) 11 Padua (Baptistry, 13th c; Sant’Antonio, 1232-1307) 2 Florence (Santa Maria del Fiore, 1296-; Santissima Annunziata, 1250-; Sta Croce, 1252; Sta Maria Novella, 1278-) (1293) (Bapistry, 1225) 3 (S Francesco, 1255-65) 4 (Cathedral, 13th c; S Galgano, 1218-) 5 (Baptistry, 1196-1260) 6 (Cathedral, restored 13th c) 7 (San Agostino,1280) 8 (Sant’Andrea, 1219) 9 (Campo Santo, 1278) 10 (S Francesco, 1230; Cathedral San Lorenzo, 1245-) (1210)(1222) Italy pioneered the establishment of another trans-European network, based on the international market for money. The Florentine banking families of the Bardi and the Peruzzi, for example, financed the papacy and royalty across Europe, even providing a type of ‘venture capital’ to certain monasteries as they cleared more land for agricultural production. THE CHRISTIAN ‘RECONQUEST’ OF SPAIN In Spain, the renewed conquest of the peninsula from its Islamic inhabitants was driven in large measure by Ferdinand III, King of Castile (1217–52) and León (1230–52) and King James of Aragon. With re-conquest, Christian rulers were able to extend cultural patronage in ways that rivalled the legendary Muslim caliphs of Córdoba and Granada. For men such as Ferdinand, new French styles represented an identifiably modern and Christian visual symbol of the recent triumphs over his Moorish opponents. Cathedrals in Burgos (1226), Toledo (1227) and León (1255) were built following patterns directly influenced by French models, complete with stained glass and elaborate portal sculpture. By the century’s end, however, the Catalan region produced its own identifiable variant of the Gothic style, one in which spaciousness derived from the breadth of the church rather than height. The peninsula also boasted not only some of the leading thinkers of the age, but also institutions to nurture them, as INTERIOR VIEW OF UPPER CHURCH AT ASSISI. Though sometimes influenced by northern styles, Italian architects sought to provide room for painted narrative cycles such as this one at Assisi, dedicated to the Life of St. Francis. Commissions for such frescoes inspired competition, bringing painters from various cities across the peninsula, including the young Giotto. This led to the development of innovative techniques for picturing stories with careful observation and drama. 1 SOUTHERN EUROPE SERVED as an important gateway for goods and ideas in the years 1200–1300. Italy inherited a dense pattern of urban communities from Late Antiquity. These cities increasingly competed with one another economically and socially. In Spain the Christian kingdoms of the north continued to extend their political control over the Muslim south through conquest, often appropriating key aspects of the rich tradition of Islamic art and literature as they did so. 1 Southern Europe, 1200-1300 border of Holy Roman Empire, c. 1223 ecclesiastical building castle notable municipal building/palace/tower university (with date of foundation) centre of manuscript production painting sculpture mosaics metalworking centre 50˚ Lille Arras Cambrai Valenciennes Tournai Ypres Brussels Louvain Mechlin Dinant Mons Maubeuge Soignies Ghent Bruges Utrecht Zwolle Amsterdam Maastricht Liège Antwerp Breda s‘Hertogenbosch Gouda Delft The Hague Middleburg NijmegenDordrecht Arnhem Deventer Haarlem Leiden Rhine M euse Sch eldt Lys N O R T H S E A ZUID ER ZEE H O LLAND F L A N D E R S ZEELAND ARTOIS GELDERLAND LIMBURG LUXEMBOURG N A M U R HAINAULT B R A B A N T panel paintings, tapestries to Scotland, England, Scandinavia, Germany panel paintings, tapestries to Portugal, Spain, Italy panel paintings to Germany panel paintings, tapestries to France, Italy, Burgundy N 0 0 50 miles 75 kms 2 The Low Countries imports of wool for tapestries/cloth exports painting and illumination tapestry weaving monumental brass engraving/bronze work sculpture NORTHERN EUROPE 1300–1500 117 Dijon in Burgundy. Leading artists from the Low Countries, such as the sculptor Claus Sluter, were charged with creating an impressive mausoleum for the dynasty he founded. The most notable aspect of this work is how strikingly naturalistic, forceful and expressive it appears by comparison with Parisbased productions. Arguably these qualities were encouraged to distinguish a specific Burgundian outlook. They were quickly and widely imitated; Philip’s tomb, for example, acted as a model for numerous prominent monuments over several decades. 2 THE REGION STRADDLING the Rhine and Meuse was already associated with intense artistic activity through the wealth and number of its ecclesiastical foundations. Rapid development of trade with other major centres across Europe, combined with Burgundian patronage, ensured that this region continued to expand its prestige. Bruges and Antwerp imported materials for the new art of painting in oil: high-quality oak from the Baltic regions for the panels; pigments and oils from southern Europe and further afield. Burgundian alliances with England (against France) ensured that wool from the Cotswolds and other English regions, the best in Europe, continued to feed the cloth and tapestry industries of Flanders and neighbouring counties. Merchants involved in this trade were often Italians, who ensured that the manufactured goods were exported to the Mediterranean world. No other region of Europe during this period could claim such a cosmopolitan economic structure, providing a productive environment for artistic creativity. The third Valois duke of Burgundy, Philip the Good (d.1467), extended his grandfather’s political and cultural aspirations. Since he chose to reside principally within his southern Netherlandish territories, the patronage of his court meant that Netherlandish artists no longer needed to look abroad to develop their careers. This was especially important for the development of panel painting, which flourished in several centres submitting to Philip’s authority, becoming a more widely affordable commodity by the later fifteenth century. Detailed naturalism remained a distinguishing characteristic of many artists working in these centres; it may be seen at its most refined in the work of the painter Philip appointed to his own employment, Jan van Eyck (d.1441). The meticulous style of van Eyck, his contemporaries and followers, with its bewildering range of light effects, notably reflective surfaces and gleaming jewels, was quickly taken up abroad. Among the earliest reflections of these pictorial preoccupations is the altarpiece by Lucas Moser at Tiefenbronn in Germany (1432). Such were the reputations of later Netherlandish artists that patrons from distant regions frequently sought their works or used them as models. Philip the Good also developed further policies to stimulate economic activity in the Netherlands, encouraging fresh activities in tapestry, illumination and wood-carving (in oak). Elsewhere in Europe, artists responded to BEAR AND BOAR HUNT, part of the Devonshire Hunting Tapestries, c.1425–30. Tapestries were manufactured in several centres in the Low Countries throughout this period. The most luxurious tapestries were woven from wool imported from England and included precious metals formed into threads. Sets of these tapestries, perhaps the most expensive products of the period, were exported to all regions of Europe, for use in larger churches and secular residences, including castles. JAN VAN EYCK, Portrait of a Man (Leal Souvenir), oil on oak panel, dated 1432. The detailed naturalism developed by Jan van Eyck and his contemporaries led to the development of new genres of painting not practised since Antiquity, such as portraiture based on observation from life. Painters succeeded in rendering precise detail and subtle changes in lighting by refining the use of oils as the binding medium for their pigments. The identity of the man in this portrait is unclear from the inscriptions on the panel. Perhaps the man’s name was recorded on the original frame, now lost. This is the case with other portraits by Jan van Eyck. Here, the words ‘LEAL SOVVENIR’ (‘Loyal remembrance’), painted to appear as though carved into the parapet immediately above the date and the artist’s signature, suggest that the sitter may have been acquainted with the artist. the demand for more naturalistic images by adapting local traditions or developing new materials. For example, in southern Germany, indigenous limewood, with its dense though elastic properties, was found to be ideally suited to carving complicated details and forms unworkable in other woods. In such regions, the development of organized religion meant that altarpieces, often large and imposing, were in great demand. Large examples, like Michael Pacher’s Saint Wolfgang Altarpiece (carved in limewood and pine), might take as long as a decade to complete (1471–81). ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 116 IN THE FOURTEENTH CENTURY centres of artistic practice were often primarily determined by the needs of the Church. By the fifteenth century, as new forms of patronage developed, artists were increasingly required to provide decoration for secular residences where collections might be displayed, admired and used to impress. PARIS AS A CULTURAL CENTRE Throughout the fourteenth century the most active and widely admired centre for the production of the visual arts in northern Europe was Paris, a position the city owed to the primacy it had assumed in the French realm. It was in Paris that guilds formed to support artists – including goldsmiths, painters, ivory carvers – and first became well organized and numerous, effectively streamlining artistic output and providing models for developments further afield. The city’s prosperity attracted merchants who provided desirable materials for creating the finest luxury objects of the period, such as ivory (from Africa) and pigments for the most dazzling kinds of painting (from Asia). Interest in lavish decorative arts on the part of the royal family furnished artists with a key incentive for refining the intricacies of their work and striving for novel effects. By c.1410 Parisian illumination, for example, was the most ostentatious, meticulous and detailed in Europe, and significant commissions involved teams of artists, each dedicated to distinct processes. The exquisite nature of such artistry partly inspired, perhaps for the first time since Antiquity, a desire on the part of royal patrons to form significant collections of objects; craftsmanship was valued above utility. The dominance of Paris attracted artists from many areas (especially the Netherlands), including prosperous regions such as Italy. Patrons from countries like Navarre, Scotland and Bohemia also looked to Paris to form their tastes. In many other regions of Europe, local materials were adapted to produce devotional and commemorative works of art for those concerned with display, but whose financial resources were limited. Among the most successful of these was English alabaster, quarried near Nottingham and used for carved altarpieces and tombs. Alabasters were exported across all regions of Western Europe throughout this period. Though technically standards are rarely distinguished, the results were clearly considered widely desirable. BURGUNDIAN INFLUENCE By the 1420s the artistic predominance of Paris sharply declined, one consequence of civil conflict and English occupation. Perhaps the principal political development of the period c.1380–c.1450 was the ascendancy of the Valois dukes of Burgundy. The power they commanded had major cultural implications, many aspects of their taste and patronage being admired and imitated at courts throughout Europe. Taking advantage of the weakness of the French monarch, the first duke, Philip the Bold (d.1404) was able to manipulate himself into a position of considerable prestige following a marriage that brought him authority over Flanders. His descendants extended Burgundian control throughout the Low Countries, a region that had traditionally furnished the courts of France with skilled artists. Philip’s political ambitions are to some extent reflected in the decorative schemes he commissioned for his grandest foundation, the Chartreuse de Champmol, near NORTHERN EUROPE 1300-1500 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 50˚ Portsmouth WellsPoole Southampton Dorchester Bayeux Quimper Rouen Fécamp Caudebec Fougères Liège Lier Zichem Leuven Bourges Le Mans Chartres Laon Autun Moulins Cluny Hull Carlisle Lynn Boston Eton Derby Beaumaris Caernarvon Ely Lincoln York Pontefract Edinburgh Alnwick Stirling Tutbury Tewkesbury Great Malvern Gloucester Norwich Canterbury Oxford Warwick Kenilworth Winchester Chellaston Nottingham Bristol Edington Vienna Herzogenburg Buda Esztergom Zágráb Graz Gurk Viktring Landshut Augsburg Munich Zwettl Passau Hohenfurth Klosterneuberg Friedersbach Raudnitz Kefermarkt Salzburg Heiligenkreuz Cologne Dortmund Kalkar Mainz Worms Frankfurt Erfurt Münster München-Gladbach Halle Speyer Heilbronn HeidelbergTrier Aachen Maastricht St Wolfgang Mondsee Innsbruck Bolzano Wiener Neustadt Saint-Omer Tournai Brussels Bruges Antwerp Ghent Utrecht Gouda Amiens Dôle Tours Blois Chinon Saumur St Romain-le-Puy Cléry- Saint-André Orléans Nantes Auxerre Mussy- sur-Seine Ecouis StrasbourgAngers ÉvronRennes Louviers Laval Solesmes Reims Châlons-sur-Marne ParisMantes Évreux Metz Nancy Sens Ulm Ravensburg Blaubeuren Constance Fribourg ZurichBasle Memmingen Bern Esslingen Tübingen Nuremberg Regensburg Würzburg Oppenheim Coburg Lübeck Hamburg Roskilde Kongsted Ringsted Ågerup Malmö Lund Visby Helsingor/ Meissen Dresden Rothenburg Prague Tabor Karlstejn Houbice Kuttenberg Serowitz Neuhaus ˇ Saar Krumau Pisek Sazau Trebosice Altpilsenetz Blatna Strakonitz Mysenecˇ ˇ Brünn Rimabánya CsetnekCserény Zseliz Cracow Breslau Torun´ Danzig Marienburg Marienwerder Pilsen Nördlingen Magdeburg Freiburg Langres Besançon Poligny Colmar Dijon Toul Troyes Arras Ypres Lille Cambrai Valenciennes London St Albans Long Melford Chester Ludlow Elbe M oselle Seine M arne Loire Ems Rhine Danube Oder FRISIAN IS N O R T H S E A BA LT I C S E A BAY O F B I S C AY KATTEGAT ENGLISH CHANNEL A L P S H A R Z M T S FLANDERS HOLLAND BURGUNDY BRABANT NORMANDY FRANCHE-COMTÉ AUSTRIA BOHEMIA S I L E S I A ÎLE-DE-FRANCE POI TOU LORRAINE LU XEMBOURG CHAMPAGNE ARTOIS PICARDY S A X O N Y SWABIA F R A N C O N I A C R O A T I A CARINTHIA MORAVIA BAVARIA STYRIA HAINAUT P O M E R A N I A BRITTANY ANJOU B E R RY ENGLAND IRELAND F R A N C E P O L A N D H U N G A R Y S W E D E N DENMARK S C O T L A N D from Castile Extent of English possessions in 1429 to S France, Spain, Portugal, Italy to Iceland to Norway to Denmark, Baltic Regions N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 Northern Europe, 1300-1500 English possessions, c.1430 border of Holy Roman Empire export of oak for painted panels area of limewood carving area of ivory carving wool imports to Flanders for tapestry/cloth area of alabaster sculpture export of English alabasters ecclesiastical centre with major building projects and associated sculpture major schemes of wall painting major programmes of stained glass castle/château with associated decoration centre for wood sculpture centre of printing/print-making centre for panel painting/ manuscript illumination goldsmiths monumental brass engraving/ bronze work 1 IN THE FOURTEENTH CENTURY arts suitable for decorating ecclesiastical structures continued to flourish. Stained glass, for example, remained much in demand. Increasing literacy led to demand for illustrated books, especially prayer-books which were decorated by illuminators. The development of printed images (woodcuts and engravings) during the later fifteenth century also served to increase opportunities for artists and their audiences. SOUTHERN EUROPE 1300–1500 119 the painter Enguerrand Quarton (d. after 1466), who came from northern France, resided in Avignon for most of his working career. Other Provençal cities during the later fifteenth century also attracted leading northern (generally Netherlandish) painters at this time, such as Nicolas Froment (d.1484) who was active in Aix-en-Provence. This city was also the frequent residence of one of the most active patrons of the visual arts in the French royal family, René of Anjou (d.1480), who himself gained a reputation for practising as a painter. As a claimant to the throne of Naples, René occupied that city from 1438 to 1442, accompanied by several French court artists. Some Italians were subsequently encouraged to follow him home. These circumstances may account for stylistic connections – figure types, similar details and colour range – between the work of the leading Neapolitan painter of the time, Niccolò Colantonio (d. after 1460), and the painter of an important altarpiece made for Aix Cathedral, attributable to René’s favourite painter, Barthélemy d’Eyck (d.1469). ARTISTIC INTERACTIONS The rival who succeeded in ousting René from Naples was Alfonso V of Aragon (d.1458), among the leading advocates from the Iberian Peninsula for artistic tastes stemming from the Burgundian court. Alfonso acquired from merchants a number of works by leading Netherlandish painters, including Jan van Eyck, and encouraged painters active in cities under his authority to follow their example, clearly fascinated (as indeed René was) by the profusion of naturalistic detail included in paintings created in Flanders. Later Spanish monarchs and court officials furthered these trends, partly for dynastic reasons, encouraging such Netherlandish-trained painters as Juan de Flandes and Michel Sittow to develop their careers in Spain. Alfonso’s combined rule in southern Italy and in Aragon, one of the wealthiest regions of Spain, facilitated other kinds of artistic interaction. In 1447, for instance, the Spanish architect and sculptor Guillem Sagrera was summoned to Naples to participate in reconstructing the royal residence, having previously worked extensively in Catalonia, southern France and Majorca. Most Spanish 10˚0˚10˚ 40˚ 50˚ Avignon SienaPerpignan 1410 Elne Gerona 1416 Palma Naples Toledo 1393 Cuença Ciudad Real Brussels Bruges Burgos Palencia Salamanca Urbino Paredes de Nava Venice Florence Valencia BarcelonaDaroca Córdoba Cologne Dijon Autun Saragossa Paris La Chaise-Dieu Laon AixArles Ghent Madrid Lisbon Toulouse Avigliana Chambéry Copenhagen Reval (Tallinn) London Seine Rhine Rhône Loire Garonne Ebro Tagus Gu adalquivir Elbe Vistula Danube N O R T H S E A BALTIC SEA A T L A N T I C O C E A N M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A PYRENEES A L P S B ALEARIC IS SARDINIA CORSICA SICILY ENGLAND IRELAND FRANCE PORTUGAL C A S T I L E ARAGON GRANADA HOLY ROMAN EMPIRE POLAND DENMARK HUNGARY PAPAL STATES NAPLES WALES SCOTLAND 1496 1492 1449 1428 14 62 1443 1313 1446 1349 1448 1454 1470-75 15 09 1505 -08 1433 1395 1468 1486 1474 1438 1447 1334-35 1387 1401 1486 1514 1447 1433 1427 424 1 1506 1397, 1422-45 1475-78 1444 1446 1466 1462 1431 1505? 1428 N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms artists, however, were obliged to devote their careers exclusively to devotional images. Iberia was subjected to numerous conflicts that meant concerted programmes of secular patronage were harder to establish than in northern Europe. In Spain, decoration of the altar, and areas associated with it, became increasingly imposing and eye-catching during this period. Even after Netherlandish stylistic traits became widely practised in Spain (by c.1450), Spanish taste favoured increasingly imposing retables, with many panels. This conspicuous emphasis is perhaps one outcome of large parts of Iberia remaining Islamic during the later Middle Ages. The Christian reconquest of Granada was only completed in 1492. In northern Spain, reconquered much earlier, the new order was consolidated through visual means. Catalonia in particular developed an intense pictorial culture with a significantly high proportion of ecclesiastical foundations acquiring striking painted decorations for their altars. The development of pilgrimage sites across northern Spain provided a further incentive for using images and artefacts to guide, reassure and inspire the faithful. The most popular pilgrimage was from France to Santiago de Compostela, a major channel for artistic exchange. ST MICHAEL WITH A DONOR, central panel from a painted retable (oil and gilt on panel), Bartolomé Bermejo, 1468. Bermejo is a good example of a very skilful Spanish artist who travelled widely. This magnificent figure of St Michael, with its vivid reflections in shining armour, may be paralleled in works by leading Netherlandish painters such as Rogier van der Weyden and Memling. Contracts for later Spanish altarpieces often stipulate that colours were to be worked in oil. 2 ARTISTS AND ARCHITECTS often travelled considerable distances to secure patronage during the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries. 2 Artists’ Travels, 1300-1500 (routes are approximate only) Simone Martini, painter Guillem Sagrera, sculptor, architect Hanequin de Bruselas, architect Juan de Flandes, painter Pedro Berruguete, painter Dello di Niccolò Delli, painter Gherardo Starnina, painter Bartolomé Bermejo, painter Juan de Colonia, architect Juan de la Huerta, sculptor Pierre Boye, sculptor Enguerrand Quarton, painter Lluís Dalmau, painter Jan van Eyck, painter Antoine de Lonhy, painter Michel Sittow, painter ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 118 THE WESTERN MEDITERRANEAN world had a well-established system of maritime trade routes facilitating artistic contacts between regions (including many Italian cities) by c.1300. Several factors intensified these links over the next two centuries, particularly in Provence and Catalonia. PROVENCE AND THE PAPACY In 1307 the papacy, politically insecure in Rome, moved to southern France, soon settling in Avignon, where the imposing Papal Palace (among the grandest structures of the fourteenth century in Europe) still testifies to the role the city played in acting temporarily as the focus of Western Christianity. Although France had earlier received leading artists from Italy, the papal presence stimulated northern European interest in issues that had first been addressed by artists in Italy, such as concern with pictorial perspective and expression. Notable among the goldsmiths, sculptors, weavers, masons and painters who were attracted to Avignon was Simone Martini (d.1344) who worked in fresco and panel painting. The activities of prominent Italian merchants, such as Francesco Datini (d.1410) emphasize how the city played a crucial part in introducing luxury Italian objects to the north. But the wealth of ecclesiastic patronage provided by southern France during this period as a result of hosting the papal court also drew artists from other countries, including the English sculptors responsible for the tomb of John XXII (d.1334). Long after the papacy left, Avignon remained a focus for artists from the north seeking new sources of patronage. For example, SOUTHERN EUROPE 1300-1500 0˚10˚ 40˚ Melide León Frómista Palencia Avilés Seville Huelva Niebla Córdoba Alcalá de Guadaira Granada (Generalife) Murcia Cartagena Madrid Illescas Guadalajara Segovia Salamanca EL Barco de Avila Medina del Campo Ciudad Rodrigo Sigüenza Cuenca Belmonte Castrojeriz Vallodolid Coca Peñafiel San Juan de Ortega Burgos Miraflores Nájera Logroño Saragossa Embid Sangüesa Olite Pamplona Oloron Escalona Pau Toulouse Palma (Bellver) Conques Saintes Bordeaux Périgeux Angoulême Luçon Souvigny St Léonard Le Puy Lausanne Aigle Montpellier Marseille Arles Saluzzo Geneva Estella Roncesvalles Limoges Béziers Clermont -Ferrand Sahagún OviedoLugo Laredo Orduña Valencia Morella Poblet Barcelona Tarrasa Manresa Gerona Puigcerdà Lérida Cardona Vich Tudela Foix Rodez Cahors Dax Saint-Flour St Floret Tarragona Tortosa Montalbán Daroca Carrión de los Condes Cebreiro Toledo Manzanares el Real Montealegre del Castillo Alhambra Carmona Almodóvar del Río Tarifa Gibralfaro Guadalupe Barcience Lisbon Óbidos Beja Ponferrada Valencia de Don Juan Zamora Astorga Villafranca del Bierzo Santiago de Compostela Santo Domingo de la Calzada Lyon Bourg-en-Bresse Annecy MâconMoulins Riom Mazerier Ravel Billom Jenzat Nîmes Uzès Chambéry Aosta Vienne Valence Turin Perpignan Carcassonne Narbonne Elne Albi Bayonne Aix Nice Auch Alcobaça Batalha Tomar Estremoz Coimbra Leiria Tentúgal Agen Poitiers Avignon OrangeMende Garonne Guadalquivir EbroDuero Rhône Tagus A T L A N T I C O C E A N M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A L P S P Y R E N E E S SIERRA NEVADA SIERRA MORENA B A L E A R I C I S DAUPHINÉ PROVENCE POITOU L E Ó N C A S T I L E NAVARRE GRANADA (to Castile 1492) ARAGON (to Castile 1479) GALICIA FRANCE S P A I N PORTUGAL to England to Low Countries to Paris To Vézelay N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 THE ARTISTS OF SOUTHERN Europe looked to the North for inspiration. But in Spain, Islamic forms of decoration long remained popular. Some northern European art forms, such as extensive schemes of stained glass, did not lend themselves easily to the hotter climate of the south, where churches tended to have smaller windows. SCENES FROM THE LIFE of St George, painted retable (c.1410–20, tempera and gilt on pine), attributed to Maraal de Sas. This large altar retable, painted for a military confraternity in Valencia, is typical of Spanish altarpieces of this period in consisting of several tiers and many scenes, set within an architectural frame. This arrangement is a more elaborate version of a type of altarpiece design originating in Tuscany. The style of this example, however, shows many features suggesting the artist was trained in northern Europe. Maraal de Sas is documented working in Valencia from 1396, when he is described as German. His style illustrates the success talented foreign artists often met with in establishing careers in Spain. Southern Europe, 1300-1500 border of the Holy Roman Empire, c.1430 pilgrimage routes to Santiago de Compostela major trade routes export of wool export of enamel products area of walnut-carving distribution of English alabasters ecclesiastical centre with major building projects and associated sculpture major programmes of wall painting major schemes of stained glass castle/château centre for wood sculpture centre of printing/ print-making centre for panel painting/ manuscript illumination goldsmiths 1 ITALY 1300–1400 121 10˚ 40˚ R R R R R R R R S S TP TP Bologna Ferrara Venice Treviso Padua Verona Milan Crema Pavia Monza Como Mantua Bergamo Turin Genoa Pisa Lucca Florence Pistoia Arezzo Massa Marittima Siena San Gimignano Orvieto Perugia Gubbio Città di Castello Assisi Rome Naples Palermo Po Arno T iber T Y R R H E N I A N S E A A D R I A T I C S E A A L P S A P E N N I N E S P A P A L S T A T E S N A P L E S S I E N A S A R D I N I A CORSICA FERRARA F L O R E N C E MODENA M I L A N P R O V E N C E F R A N C E S W I S S C O N F E D . S A V O Y T Y R O L B U R G U N D Y V E N E T I A N R E P U B L I C LUCCA MANTUA S I C I L Y O T T O M A N E M P I R E H U N G A R Y N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 2 Patrons and Projects cathedrals churches town halls castles palace sculptural programmes tombs equestrian monuments sculpted altarpieces painted altarpieces painted cycles (religious) painted cycles (secular) mosaic cycles town planning manuscripts patronage by princes (including popes) patronage by individual merchants patronage by government, guilds and other civic institutions patronage by religious orders more than one project four or more projects project lost or destroyed TP R S 2 TAXES ON TRADE provided the city-states with the resources to finance a spectacular building boom. New cathedrals and town halls gave visual expression to the freedom and prosperity of the communes. Mercantile profits also financed the decoration of churches for the recently founded Dominican and Franciscan Orders, which were embellished with lavish altarpieces, fresco cycles and tombs, commissioned by merchants to display their religious fervour. GIOTTO, Birth of the Virgin (1304–13) Padua, Arena Chapel. Built by the banker, Enrico Scrovegni, to expiate the sin of usury, the decoration of the Arena Chapel illustrates the new artistic developments in Italy, inspired by the Franciscans and pioneered by Giotto. In this scene Giotto created a convincing architectural space, filled with solid figures and domestic objects, which would have been easily recognizable to viewers, making it possible for them to identify with the event. della Signoria in Florence (begun 1299) contrasted deliberately with the costly imported marble facade of the Duomo. Town planners exploited the value of architecture as propaganda: both the Palazzo Pubblico (1298) in Siena and the Doge’s palace (1340) in Venice opened onto enormous public spaces, deliberate contrasts to the narrow streets behind. These town halls provided a forum for the display of local history: Siena commissioned a portrait (c.1330) of Guidoriccio da Fogliano, who led her armies to victory in southern Tuscany. COURTLY DISPLAY Italy’s courts had a different agenda. The Angevin rulers of Naples and the Visconti of Milan cemented their power with strategic marriages into the royal houses of northern Europe and gave visual expression to their dynastic ambitions by adopting International Gothic, the elaborate style of the powerful French monarchy. The Visconti library included several Books of Hours, a type of devotional text rare in Italy, decorated with miniatures influenced by French courtly art, while the ornate Gothic structure of Milan Cathedral contrasted with the cathedrals in the city-states. ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 120 ITALY’S CITY-STATES prospered from international trade: by 1300 Milan and Venice had populations of 120,000. Money had challenged the traditional structure of feudal power as rich merchants expelled aristocratic rulers and set up their own elected governments. The rise of this elite had a momentous impact on society. The old canonical hours, which varied according to the season were rejected – time was now measured logically, dividing the day into 24 equal hours, which were made audible by new mechanical clocks on public buildings. Education, once the preserve of the clergy, became widely accessible: merchants had a real need to read and write. Intellectual debate was encouraged, stimulating the foundation of universities and the revival of the literature of antiquity. Humanists found sources for their republican governments in classical political theory, while theologians sought to reconcile Aristotle and Plato with Christian tradition. Inevitably, the economic boom did not last. Poor harvests contributed to a general decline and the Black Death (1347–48) reduced Italy’s population by a third. Widely perceived as a display of divine wrath against corruption and greed, this disaster benefitted the arts. Donations to religious institutions rose dramatically, notably to two influential new orders, the Dominicans and the Franciscans, established in the early thirteenth century in response to calls for Church reform. FRANCISCAN ART The Franciscans had a profound impact on religious life, their ideas visible in artistic innovations which changed the course of Western art. Franciscan preachers exhorted their audience to visualize the life of Christ in order to understand the nature of Christian faith. Painters, working on church walls, did the same. Starting with the frescoes in S. Francesco in Assisi and popularized by Giotto’s work in Florence and Padua, artists rejected the ethereal frontality of Byzantine art in favour of more prosaic scenes with solid figures set in convincingly threedimensional spaces. The image of the Virgin enthroned as Queen of Heaven was increasingly replaced by the Madonna seated on the ground, or simply a mother suckling her child at her breast. Perhaps Giotto’s major achievement was the introduction of realistic gestures and facial expressions to convey the range of human emotions, giving human meaning to the mysteries of religious belief. Mercantile wealth produced a new type of patron. Few merchants went as far as St Francis and renounced their material goods to live in holy poverty but most allocated part of their profits to the Church. Extravagant chapels, tombs and altars proclaimed their patrons’ wealth, their faith, but also their guilt. The banker Enrico Scrovegni built the Arena Chapel to expiate the sin of usury, which was banned by the Church, commissioning Giotto to decorate the interior. On the entrance wall, a massive scene of the Last Judgement showed Scrovegni offering his chapel to the Virgin in the hope that she would intercede for him. IMAGES OF CIVIC POWER The new republican governments gave visual expression to civic prosperity and religious devotion in ostentatious cathedrals. Preferring traditional Romanesque groin-vault construction, they showed little interest in the structural innovations that accompanied the emergence of Gothic in northern Europe. Extravagant decoration was justifiable in a religious context. Costly multi-coloured marble facades ornamented cathedrals in Florence, Pisa, Siena and Orvieto. Competition encouraged increasing elaboration, though the ambitious plans to enlarge Siena Cathedral were abruptly halted by the plague. Duccio’s Maestà (1308), commissioned by the Sienese government for the high altar, was lavish in its use of gold, detail and number of ITALY 1300-1400 AMBROGIO LORENZETTI, WellGoverned Town (1338–9) Siena, Palazzo Pubblico. As civic power grew, moral government was promoted. Wealthy revellers, industrious tradesmen and children at school show the ideal aspired to by the Sienese state. 10˚ 40˚ Bologna Ferrara Venice Treviso Brenner Pass St Bernard Pass Padua Verona Milan Crema Pavia Monza Como Mantua Bergamo Turin Genoa Pisa Lucca Florence Pistoia Arezzo Massa Marittima San Gimignano Siena Orvieto Perugia Gubbio Urbino Città di Castello Assisi Rome Naples Palermo 1329 1335 1361 1303 XIII cent 1359 XII cent XIII cent XIII cent 1324 1335 1354 1364 1356 1362 1344 13541353 1318 P o Arn o Tiber T Y R R H E N I A N S E A A D R I A T I C S E A A L P S A P E N N I N E S PA PA L S TAT E S N A P L E S F R A N C E A U S T R I A H U N G A R Y O T T O M A N E M P I R E P R O V E N C E SIENA FERRARA FLORENCE SAN MARINO M I L A N VENETIAN REPUBLIC LUCCA MANTUA MODENA S I C I L Y Papacy in Avignon 1309-77 roniMaisAot ro ni MaisAot nia pS,ecnarFaivcitnaltAot 1 Trade and Culture population over 75,000 population 50-75,000 population 25-50,000 population under 25,000 population cut by half by Black Death, 1348-49 elected government subject town of town with elected government court subject town of court centre of international trade centre of international banking university, with date of foundation clocks striking 24 equal hours centres of humanism and/or vernacular literature trade route border of Holy Roman Empire N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 THE PROSPERITY OF the citystates was based on trade. Venetian merchants sailed to markets in the eastern Mediterranean, filling their galleys with luxury goods. Florence and Siena both had thriving textile industries, while Florentine bankers dominated the European credit market. figures, all features that visibly displayed the cost of a painting. And the Tuscan fashion for richly carved marble pulpits offered Nicolò and Giovanni Pisano the opportunity to adapt classical pagan imagery to a Christian context, such as the Venus used by Giovanni for his figure of Prudence on the pulpit in Pisa (1302–10). Political authority was manifest in new town halls. Conspicuously cheaper than the cathedrals, they were designed to convey an image of moral government. Built of local sandstone and austerely plain, the Palazzo ITALY 1400–1500 123 10˚ 40˚ TP TP TP TP TP TP R R R R R R R R R M M M M H H H H H H C C C C Cs Cs Cs Cs Cs Cs Cs Bologna Ferrara Venice Padua Verona Milan Pavia Mantua Bergamo Turin Genoa Florence Arezzo Siena Orvieto Gubbio Rome Naples Palermo Vigevano Savona Cremona Brescia Pienza Cortona Loreto Ostia Cagli San Leo Urbino Mondavio Poggio a Caiano Pesaro Rimini Brenner Pass St Bernard Pass Po Arno Tiber T Y R R H E N I A N S E A A D R I A T I C S E A A L P S A P E N N I N E S N A P L E S PA PA L S TAT E S SIENAPIOMBINO F R A N C E S W I S S C O N F E D . HUNGARY D. OF URBINO LUCCA MODENA SAVOY PARMA MILAN MANTUA SAN MARINO FERRARA ECNEROL F REP. OF GENOA VENETIAN REP. S I C I L Y SARDINIA CORSICA 2 Patrons and Projects painted altarpieces sculptural altarpieces antique copies collections of antiquities castles and fortifications chapels and cloisters cathedrals and churches classical style painted cycles (court life/chivalry) painted cycles (history) painted cycles (mythological/classical) painted cycles (religious) equestrian monuments revival of antique gardens survival of Gothic styles guildhalls hospitals libraries mosaic cycles palaces portrait busts portrait medals painted portraits sculptural programmes studioli town halls tombs town planning villas 2 Patrons and Projects patronage by princes (including popes) patronage by courtiers and cardinals patronage by individual merchants patronage by governments, guilds and other civic institutions patronage by religious orders more than one project five or more projects eight or more projects project lost/destroyed N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms TP R M H C Cs 2 THE STUDY OF THE CULTURE of the ancient world inspired the emergence of new types of imagery, such as portrait busts and medals, and a renewed interest in established forms, such as equestrian monuments. Antique statues unearthed in Rome were prized by collectors. Painters produced works illustrating scenes from mythology and classical history, while the use of the classical orders radically altered architectural styles. MANTEGNA, Ludovico Gonzaga and his Court (1465–74), Mantua, Palazzo Ducale, Camera degli Sposi. To assert the power and prestige of his court, Ludovico Gonzaga, Marquis of Mantua, decorated a room in his palace with portraits of himself, his family, courtiers, and even his dwarf and dog. Mantegna’s fictive architectural framework, composed of all’antica motifs, associated the Gonzaga court with imperial Rome. tiny hilltop fortress into one of the most impressive courts of the period. Bramante’s archaeological interest in antiquity was evident in his drawings of S. Lorenzo, once the imperial palace chapel in Milan, and provided inspiration for the churches he designed for Ludovico Sforza, who also commissioned Leonardo’s experimental oil fresco, the Last Supper (1496–7). In Rome the adoption of antique forms posed particular problems for the Papacy. Pius II, the first humanist pope, rebuilt the facade of St Peter’s, underlining his links with pagan imperial Rome with his use of columns from ancient ruins. By contrast, the Franciscan Sixtus IV displayed no interest in classical antiquity. Inside his austere and defensive Sistine Chapel the decoration had strong early Christian resonances while the frescoes by Botticelli, Perugino and others emphasized papal primacy and the superiority of the Christian faith. ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 122 EVIDENCE OF ROME’S mighty empire survived in literary sources and ruins, and stimulated innovation in fifteenth-century Italy. Inspired by Vitruvius, Alberti wrote a treatise (1452) outlining the rules of classical architecture, while Francesco di Giorgio’s treatise included drawings of ancient Roman ruins. Julius Caesar had a seaside villa near Naples, and Pliny’s description of his own country retreat encouraged the fashion for patrician villas. Painters began to investigate the structure of the human body: Leonardo filled his notebooks with anatomical drawings and novel ideas. The culture of antiquity was exploited by artists to develop new styles and themes. The pattern was not uniform but reflected the differing economic, social and political traditions of each centre. FLORENCE AND VENICE Wealthy merchants in Florence and Venice gave visual expression to their prosperity in chapels, altarpieces and palaces, and, as members of elected governments, embellished the images of state authority. In Florence humanists studied Cicero to praise republican ideals and the virtue of moral civic duty. Pride in the city’s achievement was visibly evident when the cathedral was finally crowned with its massive dome. It was also evident in a boom in palace building. The grandest of the Florentine palaces, crowned by an all’antica cornice, belonged to the Medici family, rich bankers who used their money to create a powerful faction in government and establish de facto control of Florence. Patriotism was evident in new artistic styles. The round arches of local Tuscan Romanesque replaced Gothic while painters used all’antica details such as capitals and fluted pilasters to provide new settings for traditional religious themes. Donatello and Masaccio developed new figurative styles, solid human figures that belonged to the real world, while Brunelleschi and Masaccio pioneered the use of perspective, a device based on the same mathematical and spatial skills used daily by merchants in commercial calculations. Venice celebrated her unique achievements in a different way. Showing little interest in antiquity, her patricians built residences that deliberately imitated the Doge’s Palace. The Christian origins of the city were asserted in church plans and decorative details derived from the basilica of St Mark, built to imitate Constantine’s church of the Apostles in Constantinople. Venetian patriotism was also evident in painting as artists like Giovanni Bellini ITALY 1400-1500 MASACCIO, Trinity (c.1427), Florence, S. Maria Novella. Masaccio’s solid figures and his use of perspective were intended to create the illusion of reality. Inspired by the architecture of ancient Rome, the classical Ionic and Corinthian capitals, fluted pilasters and a coffered barrel vault provided an innovative setting for this traditional theme and made a decisive break with contemporary preferences for ornate and decorative Gothic details. 10˚ 40˚ Bologna Ferrara Venice Brenner Pass St Bernard Pass Padua Verona Milan Vigevano Savona Cremona Pavia Mantua Bergamo Brescia Turin Genoa Pisa Florence Arezzo Siena Orvieto Pienza Gubbio Cortona Loreto Ostia Cagli San Leo Urbino Mondavio Poggio a Caiano Pesaro Rimini Rome Naples Palermo 1428 1426 1447 1411 1435 1459 1445 1450 1450 1405 1405 1406 P o Arn o Tiber T Y R R H E N I A N S E A A D R I A T I C S E A A L P S A P E N N I N E S N A P L E S PA PA L S TAT E S SIENA PIOMBINO D. OF URBINO LUCCA MODENA PARMA SAVOY MILAN MANTUA SAN MARINO F R A N C E S W I S S C O N F E D . H U N G A RY O T T O M A N E M P I R E FERRARA V E N E T I A N R E P . REP.OFGENO A ECNERO LF S I C I L Y roniMaisAot ro ni MaisAot niapS,ecnarFaivcitnaltA 1 Trade and Culture population over 75,000 population 50-75,000 population 25-50,000 population under 25,000 elected government subject town of town with elected government court subject town of court change of dynasty, with date major rebellion, with date centre of international trade centre of international banking centre of humanism centre of chivalry treatises, sketchbooks, drawings ruins of antiquity trade route border of Holy Roman Empire N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 RENAISSANCE CITIES varied enormously in history, size and politics. Milan and Naples, both dynastic courts and important centres in Roman times, were two of Europe’s largest cities, as was Venice, a mercantile republic boasting Christian origins. Florence, also a republic, was much smaller, as were the courts of Rimini, Mantua, Ferrara and Urbino. Rome, once the capital of a mighty Empire, was similar in size. developed their own unique style, filling their canvases with anecdotal detail to give a convincing sense of reality to their scenes. ANTIQUITY AT THE ITALIAN COURTS The absolute rulers of dynastic courts promoted themselves as heirs to the culture of imperial Rome. Inspired by the coins of ancient Roman emperors, Leonello d’Este, the Marquis of Ferrara, pioneered the fashion for all’antica portrait medals, which was widely adopted by other dynastic rulers, such as Alfonso I of Naples, to display their imperial associations. The humanist intellectuals who surrounded Alfonso justified his conquest of Naples by drawing parallels with the Spanish-born Emperor Trajan. Alfonso asserted his new authority in a massive sculptured gate inspired by the triumphal arches of Ancient Rome. Alberti designed innovative churches for Sigismondo Malatesta in Rimini, inspired by the city’s Arch of Augustus, and in Mantua for Ludovico Gonzaga (who also employed Mantegna, whose all’antica painting style was based on his study of antique reliefs). Both rulers abandoned traditional Gothic in favour of the language of imperial Rome to promote the prestige of their relatively unimportant states. Federigo da Montefeltro, Duke of Urbino, employed Piero della Francesca and Francesco di Giorgio to exploit the new style and transform his NORTH AFRICA 600–1500 125 applied to the region of North Africa and Spain), the area initially shared a remarkable cultural homogeneity with West Asia, as artistic ideas from the Abbasid capitals in Mesopotamia were enthusiastically adopted in the Maghreb. For example, hypostyle and ninebay mosques, architectural types developed in the central Islamic lands, were carried to North Africa and Spain, where they were realized with the use of local materials and techniques of construction, particularly stone masonry. Lustre tiles and teakwood panels produced in Iraq were installed in the mosque of Kairouan (Tunisia), and the Mesopotamian technique of carved plaster revetments became a hallmark of Umayyad architecture in Spain. Scribes used the same angular (‘Kufic’) scripts for copying manuscripts of the Koran in brown ink on parchment codices, produced from the skins of for mosques and other buildings in the central Islamic lands and even in Egypt, was rarely if ever used in North Africa. The muqarnas, a series of serried tiers of niches used for architectural decoration and often likened to stalactites, were introduced to the region from the east by the twelfth century, but the system underwent a distinctive development in the Maghreb. While scribes in West Asia were developing new rounded scripts in black ink on paper, their contemporaries in North Africa adhered for centuries to the old materials and styles and developed a distinctive Maghrebi script characterized by bowl-shaped descenders and strokes of uniform thickness. In the Maghreb, parchment remained the preferred medium for copying manuscripts of the Koran until the fourteenth century, although paper had been introduced to the region in the tenth century and papermaking became an important industry of such cities as Fez and Jativa in the eleventh. Artistic conservatism in the production of Koran manuscripts reflects the religious conservatism of the region, which largely followed the Maliki school of religious law. The increased isolation of the Maghreb from developments in West Asia led artists in the region to look for inspiration in their own artistic traditions, resulting in the creation of a distinctly Maghrebi architectural style under the Almoravids and Almohads. Often dubbed ‘Hispano-Moresque’, this style is characterized by cusped arches, muqarnas cornices and vaults, and colourful revetments of glazed tiles arranged in geometric patterns. Typical walls had a tiled dado, a carved plaster upper surface, and an elaborate wooden cornice, reflecting the perennial availability of timber from the mountain forests of Spain and North Africa. These techniques were used not only for mosques but also for palaces (of which the Alhambra in Granada is the only one to survive in the region) and madrasas (theological colleges, which spread across North Africa to Spain in the thirteenth century). The city of Fez, particularly under the Marinids, became a centre of intellectual and artistic life, remarkable for the many madrasas commissioned by the sultans. PAGE FROM THE ‘Blue Koran’, copied in tenthcentury Tunisia. As Arabic replaced local languages in religious, intellectual, administrative and commercial matters, copies of the Koran became the most important type of manuscript produced in North Africa. This unique Koran was written in gold and silver ink on parchment dyed blue to imitate Byzantine imperial purple-dyed manuscripts. 20˚10˚0˚10˚40˚ 30˚ Cu Rabat 1150 Tinmal 1153 Marrakesh 1070 Meknès 11th c Taza 11th c Almería Málaga Granada Algiers Saragossa Tunis Córdoba (destroyed) Fez Tlemcen Nedroma Qala of the Bani Hammad Bône Palermo Kairouan Alicante Seville Játiva Valencia Salé Jaén Toledo Ceuta E bro Tagus Guadalquivir A T L A N T I C O C E A N T Y R R H E N I A N S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A DRIATIC SEA S A H A R A A T L A S M T S H A F S I D S NASRIDS M A R IN ID S SARDINIA SICILY CORSICA SICIRAEL A B A F R I C A S P A I N I T A L Y to Marseille, Pisa, Genoa, Venice conquered by Normans 1060 timber, grain, linen 1007 -08 1097 11361135 late 12th c 1172-76 post-1191 1158 1033 1249 1271 1349 1341 1310 N 0 0 250 miles 350 kms 2 Western Islam, 1000-1500 Almoravid Empire, c.1140 Almohad Empire, c.1220 dynasties new city, with date founded new mosque, with date founded wooden minbar madrasa (theological school) paper-making centre manuscript production ceramic production textile centre silk production copper/iron metalwork and scientific instruments shipyards muqarnas (Islamic vault) trade route 1097 Cu HAFSIDS 1070 2 IN THE PERIOD AFTER 1000, distinct architectural and artistic styles evolved in the western Maghreb. Almohad mosques at Marrakesh, Rabat and Seville were distinguished by monumental minarets. Following the precedent of the Great Mosque at Córdoba, inlaid wooden minbars (pulpits) were installed in the major cities. A shared artistic tradition continued in the second half of this period, despite increasing political fragmentation. the many sheep herded in the region. Textile factories in North Africa supplied the courts of the caliphates in West Asia with inscribed ‘tiraz’ fabrics and woollen carpets. International trade and diplomacy between Byzantium, Fatimid rulers in North Africa and Umayyad rulers in Spain led to the exchange of materials, artistic ideas and traditions. In Tunisia Muslim scribes emulated the murexdyed purple manuscripts made for the Byzantine court. The Córdoban rulers hosted Byzantine mosaicists to decorate their congregational mosque with a re-creation of the mosaics commissioned two centuries earlier by their Umayyad forebears in Syria. Trans-Saharan trade supplied the ivory tusks carved in Tunisia, Córdoba and Byzantium, as well as the gold minted into coins and made into fine filigreed and granulated jewellery popular throughout the region. NORTH AFRICA APART The rise of the heterodox Fatimid dynasty in the tenth century created a wedge that began to split North Africa from West Asia and – from the eleventh century – delayed or interrupted the east-west exchange of ideas. For example, the four-iwan plan, which became ubiquitous ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 124 THE MAJOR FACTOR that affected the production of art in this period was the advent of Islam, which became the dominant religion of North Africa, largely supplanting Judaism, Christianity and indigenous cults. Arabic, the language of Islam, replaced local languages in religious, intellectual, administrative and commercial matters. The region’s distance from the centres of ArabIslamic civilization in West Asia made it an attractive destination for dissidents, who often established their own principalities. The new Muslim rulers occupied many of the cities and towns established in antiquity, but they also founded many new centres, showing the extraordinary prosperity of this agricultural region. These new foundations were often located inland, rather than on the coast as in Roman times. With the decline of Mediterranean shipping in the early Middle Ages, traders relied increasingly on caravans for long-distance trade, particularly across the Sahara to tropical West Africa. By the ninth century Muslim fleets were raiding the Mediterranean islands and northern coasts from strongholds on the Tunisian coast. For several centuries Sicily was dependent on Tunisia, and the Arab-Islamic cultural legacy lasted even after the Normans conquered the island in the late eleventh century. The revival of maritime trade in the tenth century had led to the transformation of North African ports into Mediterranean entrepôts. The central role of North Africa in trade between Africa, Europe and Asia funded a cultural florescence. In the eleventh century invasions by Arab nomads despatched from Egypt devastated the countryside and destroyed the agricultural basis on which much urban life depended. The ensuing chaos led to the emergence of Berber dynasties, first in the western Sahara and then in the Atlas Mountains. These dynasties included the Almoravids (1062–1147) and the Almohads (1130–1269), who ruled in both northwest Africa and Spain, and the Marinids (1217–1465), who ruled in Morocco. The ongoing Christian re-conquest of Muslim principalities in Spain, which was completed in 1492, and the opening up of oceanic trade routes from European Atlantic ports to the New World and around Africa, cut North Africa out of the global economy. The region became a backwater, exacerbating inherent conservatism in the arts. NORTH AFRICA TOGETHER Despite political differences between the Islamic rulers of West Asia and of the Maghreb (the Arabic word for ‘west’ and the term NORTH AFRICA 600-1500 THE COURTYARD OF THE ATTARIN MADRASA in Fez (1323–5) shows the distinctive style of architecture that developed in the Maghreb, with tiled walls surmounted by carved stucco and a wooden cornice. Rooms and cells behind these decorated walls provided places for prayer, classrooms for study, and accommodation for students. 20˚10˚0˚10˚ 40˚ 30˚ Salé Rabat Bizerta 661 Tozeur Bône Oran Messila TulmaithaGabès Tébessa Gafsa Nafta Almería Arzeu late 7th c Mostaganem Dai Azzammur Marrakesh Oujda 850 838-41 829 866 999 9th c 732 (864) c.1000 796 821 (860-63) 857 (857, 859) 790 9th c955 9th c 1150 (1195) Ceuta c. 700 Tétouan 628 Nakur 761 Fez 789 Aghmat 11th c Sijilmasa 758 Tahert 761 Valencia 714 Toledo 714 Seville 713 Melilla Granada 713 Gibraltar 711 Tunis 699 Monastir 796 Sedrata 908 Kairouan 670 Ashir 935-6 Tobna early 8th c Qala of the Bani Hammad late 10th c Ténes Mahdia 912 Surt 640s Ajdabiya 643 Tripoli 643 Hippo Regius (Bijaya/Annaba) 705 Sufetula (Sbeitla) 640s Hadrumetum (Sousse)647 Carthage 698 Syracuse 878 Taormina 902 Palermo 831 Enna (Castrogiovanni) 859 Barca 642 Taparura (Sfax) 640s Tangier c. 700 Pomaria (Tlemcen) 1082 Córdoba 711 Rhône E bro Tagus Guadalquivir ATLANTIC OCEAN TYRRHENIAN SEA A D R I A T I C S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A P Y R E N E E S A T L A S M T S S A H A R A UMAYYADS (756-1031) R U S TA M I D S ( 7 7 8 - 9 0 9 ) I D R I S I D S ( 7 8 9 - 9 8 5 ) L O M B A R D S AGHLABID EMIRATE (800-909) CORSICA SARDINIA SICILY B ALEA R I C I S A F R I C A N 0 0 250 miles 350 kms 1 Western Islam before 1000 Byzantine Empire disputed by Byzantines/Muslims trade route ivory route salt trade gold route export of carpets export of slaves spread of merino sheep pre-Islamic city, with date of conquest Islamic city, with date founded manuscript centre ivory-working centre 643 congregational mosque, with date founded, (date remodelled) nine-bay mosque, with date founded ribat, with date founded, (date remodelled) textile production 866 732 643 1 THE SOUTHERN SHORES of the Mediterranean basin prospered under Islam as trade routes linked it to tropical Africa, Europe and West Asia. Inland cities became centres of commerce, scholarship and art and were embellished with hypostyle mosques, often built with debris taken from Roman and Byzantine ruins. Kairouan was the centre of religious learning, and its mosque has yielded an important cache of early leather-bound parchment codices of the Koran. SUB-SAHARAN AFRICA 600–1500 127 copper alloy and terracotta artefacts just mentioned probably served elite people and especially rulers, sometimes as part of their identifying regalia, sometimes in ceremonial and ritual contexts. Other more democratic forms, such as pottery and woodcarving, were undoubtedly made and used by the people at large. THREE ARTISTIC STREAMS Traditional religions, cultural and political structures, and domestic life account for the great majority of art and architecture from this period. Two other influential streams, Christian and Muslim, are also important in certain areas: across the Sudan from east to west (Islam), and on the eastern coast, especially, where they account for distinctive forms of both visual art and architecture. Both Christian churches and Muslim mosques, for example, proliferated in this era, in stone and in less durable materials. Many Christian paintings are known from the later centuries in Ethiopia, such as the fifteenthcentury painting of Mary and Christ, which was part of a socio-political cult promulgated by the emperor Zara Yaqob (r.1434-68). Metal vessels with Arabic inscriptions from fourteenth-century Mamluk Egypt were traded all the way to what is now central Ghana, where some are still in service as shrines among Akan peoples. These also served as prototypes for 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 20˚ 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 20˚ Ingombe Ilede Chedzurgwe Lekkerwater Chipadze’s Great Zimbabwe elaborate stone enclosures, numerous buildings, soapstone carvings, c.1200-1450 Mwene Mutapa’s Court toIndia Mogadishu Brava Pate LAMU Gedi Malindi Mombasa Ile Ife heads in terracotta and copper alloy in naturalistic styles from c.1100-1400 Esie soapstone carvings of human figures c.12th-15th c Lalibela 13th-century rock-cut Christian churches Axum Jenne terra cottas and lost wax castings from c.1000-1500 Takedda Zanzibar Kilwa Kisiwani Mozambique Angoche Sofala Nosy Manja PEMBA MAFIA SANJI YA KATI Marka Manda N ile BlueNile W hiteNile Za m bezi Orange Save Limpopo Niger Sene gal Gambia Congo Benue L. Chad L. Victoria L. Tenganyika L. Nyasa A T L A N T I C O C E A N I N D I A N O C E A N MOZAMBIQUECHANNEL R E D S E A KALAHARI DESERT S A H A R A MALI c.1350 SONGHAY c.1500 KANEM-BORNU c.11th-15th c ETHIOPIA c.1320 BUNYORO c.1400 MARAVI c.15th c LUNDA c.15th cNDONGO c.15th c NGOYO KAKONGO LOANGO c.1400 BENIN c.1500 AKAN STATES c.1400-1500 KONGO c.14th c KUBA c.16th c LUNDU c.16th c LUBA c.16th c MUTAPA c.15th-16th c ZIMBABWE c.11th-15th c A R A B I A MADAGASCAR N 0 0 500 miles 700 kms 2 Africa, c.1400-1500 African states Arab coastal settlements Rhodesian stone ruins copper deposits gold deposits exports of gold, copper, iron, ivory and slaves imports of arms, beads and ceramics 2 AND 3 IN RESPONSE TO VISITS first of Portuguese, then of other European merchants and travellers, a shift occurs in West Africa – from its orientation to Islam and the Saharan trade – towards the coast. Islam continues its spread, especially on the Swahili Coast, and Ethiopian Christianity became stronger. Despite these incursions, native religions and values hold sway over most of the continent. DIPTYCH OF THE MADONNA AND CHILD, APOSTLES, ST GEORGE AND THEODORE by Fere Seyou(?). Tempera on gessoed wood, 44 x 31.5 cm (172 ⁄5 x 122 ⁄5 ins). Institute of Ethiopian Studies, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia. This is one of countless works commissioned as part of the emperor Zara Yaqob’s mandatory cult of Mary. later Akan metalwork of local manufacture. Merged Arab and Indian influences are also detectable in the art and architecture of the Swahili coast of eastern Africa. 3 Outside Influences route of Ibn Battuta, 1353 route of Fernão Gomes, 1469-79 route of Diogo Cão, 1482-84 route of Bartolomeu Dias, 1487 route of Pêro da Covilhã, 1487-1525 route of Vasco da Gama, 1497-99 NaplesValenciaLisbon Sala Gao Takedda Ile Ife Benin Jenne Oyo Walata Niani Kangaba Timbuktu Adrar In Salah Taghaza Sijilmassa Cairo Suakin Zeila Mecca Elmina Benguela Walvis Bay Ormuz Aden Malindi Kilwa Sofala ATLANTIC OCEAN INDIAN OCEAN MEDITERRANEAN SEA RED SEA Cape of Good Hope Mossel Bay Gold Coast S A H A R A CANARY IS A F R I C A N 0 0 1200 miles 1600 kms ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 126 men. That of Ile-Ife shows an exceptionally sensitive naturalism, including mimetic portraiture on idealized, life-size human heads, along with terracottas of several styles and types. That of the Inland Delta involved rather stylized human figures in many poses, and animals, especially snakes, which appear to have been sacred to the local people. Most of the latter have come from illegal excavations. Ile-Ife also contains some eleventh- and twelfth-century granite sculpture and decorative pavements, presumably for royal precincts, made of inlaid potsherds. ART AND SOCIETY Socio-political organization for this era ranged from small headless bands – the San in southern Africa continued to paint on rock-wall surfaces – to centralized kingdoms, empires, and city-states, the arts of some of the latter having been mentioned by medieval Muslim travellers and chroniclers such as Al Bakri, Ibn Battuta and Ibn Khaldun. Gold regalia and horse trappings, for example, are reported at the court of ancient Ghana, which also had a divided capital city (Kumbi Saleh) part Muslim, partly traditional believers. Many of the early THE VARIED GEOGRAPHY of Africa south of the Sahara includes the drainage systems of three great rivers: the Niger, the Congo and the Nile, which with their tributaries embrace forest, savannah, and mountain zones constituting a large percentage of the continent. Most forest-region peoples and some living in the savannah were agriculturalists (apart from small huntergatherer populations in central and southern areas) while savannah and sahel dwellers were often pastoral or semi-pastoral. Major population movements during the early centuries of this period included the Bantu migrations from eastern West Africa (present-day Nigeria, Cameroon and Chad) into the vast Congo drainage and further south, often displacing hunter-gatherers. European maps of the continent were often very inaccurate regarding interior regions. TransSaharan trade was very active during this entire period, and remains difficult to map accurately, although oases were obvious stopping points and trade centres. MATERIALS AND TECHNIQUES Pottery (including some ceramic sculpture), woodcarving, iron-smithing, leather-working and basketry were surely practised by many, perhaps most, agricultural peoples during this entire period. Lost-wax casting and loomed weavings, however, were introduced in the ninth or tenth centuries, presumably across the Sahara. They were probably transmitted by Muslims, in the same era that Islam penetrated areas just south of the Sahara and coastal zones of east Africa. Christianity entered Egypt and Ethiopia still earlier, by around the fourth century. Stone architectural complexes are known from the western Sudan and in southern Africa. Excavations in Kumbi Saleh in southern Mauritania – probably the capital city of the ancient Ghana empire (c.800–1100) – revealed foundations of a stone mosque dating to the tenth century and a fragment of a female terracotta figure made several centuries earlier. Great Zimbabwe and other sites in what is now Zimbabwe dating from about 1000 to 1500 feature elaborate stone buildings and enclosing walls. Churches hewn out of bedrock in Lalibela, Ethiopia, date from the twelfth and thirteenth centuries. Rock art, probably no longer made in Sahara regions, was being made in southern Africa during the whole period, apparently mostly by San peoples. Lost-wax castings in several styles were made from about the ninth or tenth century in what is now southern Nigeria (Igbo Ukwu), from about 1000 in the inland Delta region of the Niger River, and in Ile Ife from around 1100. These are all distinctive, well-resolved art styles. That of Igbo Ukwu is very refined, with almost fussy decorative surfaces on objects of many types associated with early priest-leaders who conferred titles on worthy SUB-SAHARAN AFRICA 600-1500 1 WEAVING AND LOST-WAX CASTING appear to have entered West African savannah and forest regions during this period. Presumably, they were brought south across the Sahara by Muslims, who at the same time were establishing their own trading and learning centres in the western Sudan. Islam also became a political presence in states located in the savannah, but the majority of peoples south of this zone (apart from Christianized Ethiopia) worshipped local nature spirits and ancestors, and were unaffected by Islam or Christianity. 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 30˚ 20˚ 20˚ 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ Fez Tlemcen Marrakesh Tunis Tripoli Cairo Ghat Gao Tadmekka Sijilmassa Nok Timbuktu WalataAwdaghost Kumbi Saleh Jenne Kairouan Ghadamis Bilma Niani Salaga Oyo Ouagadougou Niamey Kufra Barca Awjilah Siwa Mecca Medina Meroë El Fasher Dongola Mogadishu Aden Zeila Agadez Igbo Ukwu earliest lost-wax castings south of Sahara Mali Lydenburg heads of terracotta found in fragments, 500-700 Ile Ife granite monolith, granite figural sculpture mosaic pavements 800-1000 Bura terracotta heads and figures found widely in W Africa 200-1000 Nile Blue N ile Whit e Nile Seneg al Niger Benue Congo Gambia Zam bezi Orange A T L A N T I C O C E A N INDIAN OCEAN MEDITERRANEAN SEA R ED SEA TIBESTI TASSILI KALAHARI DESERT A T L A S M T S S A H A R A ARABIA GHANA c.1000 SONGHAY KANEM ETHIOPIA HOGGAR FEZZAN AIR YORUBA IGBO BAMBUK MALI c.1350 rock paintings and engravings in S Africa by San and related peoples produced in great numbers 1 Africa, c.900-1100 southern limit of Sahara northern limit of thick forest Saharan trade routes possible routes of introduction of narrow strip weaving into W Sudan possible routes of introduction of lost wax casting, 9th-10th centuries gold deposits slaves rock art sites Empires African languages Ghana Niger-Kordofanian Mali Nilo-Saharan Songhay Afro-Asiatic Kanem Khoisan N 0 0 500 miles 700 kms saltivory FIGURE OF A SACRED KING, the Oni of Ile-Ife, excavated at Ita Yemoo, Nigeria, in 1957 (47 cm – 181 ⁄2 ins – high, cast copper alloy, eleventh or twelfth century, Museum of Ife Antiquities). The king is shown in bead-rich regalia. The fleshy naturalism is typical of the finest of Ife works, and the ideologically skewed proportions emphasize his sacred head. WEST ASIA AND EGYPT 600–1000 129 Under the Abbasids, the congregational mosque evolved from an early community centre into a more strictly religious institution under the control of the ulema, or religious scholars. To signal this change, towers were added to congregational mosques to advertise their presence from afar. Small mosques were erected to serve the needs of smaller communities; one popular type was a square structure with nine domed bays. This type, which has been found from Spain to Central Asia, was probably developed in the Abbasid heartlands and disseminated by pilgrims returning from Mecca. Abbasid patrons were fabulously rich and enjoyed imported luxuries, including stonewares and porcelains from China. These were imported either by sea, across the Indian Ocean and up the Persian Gulf, or overland along the Silk Road through Central Asia. The taste for imported ceramics led Mesopotamian potters to develop fine earthenwares covered by a white opaque glaze imitating Chinese porcelain. Other potters applied to ceramics the Syrian technique of painting glass with metallic oxides and firing it in a reducing atmosphere. Thereby they created the technique for lustreware. Abbasid four-colour lustrewares represent the acme of the art. The art of the book was also transformed in this period. Parchment manuscripts were supplanted by paper codices, and the traditional angular script, often called kufic after the city of Kufa in southern Iraq, gave way to rounder, cursive styles of writing more suitable for the smoother surface. Brown tannin inks which stained the parchment surface were replaced by carbon-based black 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ 70˚ 40˚ 30˚ 20˚ 10˚ Manbij Samarra Mosul Erzurum Amida Raqqa Tiflis ArdabilTabriz Constantinople Rayy Damghan Nishapur Merv Herat Termez Balkh Kabul Ghazni Kandahar Zaranj SamarkandBukhara Susa Shushtar Basra Urgench Alexandria Seville Ashmunayn Asyut Aswan Qus Damietta Siraf Shibam Sana Zabid Aden Shiraz Bam Hormuz Banbhore Istakhr Isfahan Yazd Nayin Baghdad Jerusalem Medina Muscat Mecca Damascus Fustat Sus Tunis Kairouan Tripoli Toledo Córdoba Granada Faiyum Tinnis Nil e Euphrates Tig ris Indus Danube Syr Dary a A m u Darya M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A R E D S E A PERS IAN GULF A R A B I A N S E A ARAL SEA CASPIAN SEA B L A C K S E A ARABIAN PENINSULA HINDU KUSH CAUCASUS ZAGR O SMTS UMAYYADS (756-1031) IDRISIDS (789-926) RUSTAMIDS (776-906) E G Y P T SYRIA PERSIA ARMENIA AZERBAIJAN B Y Z A N T I N E E M P I R E TRANSOXANIA FERGHANA KHWARIZM KHURASAN FARS SISTAN MAKRAN KIRMAN O MAN HEJAZ MESOPO TAM IA YEMEN gold, slaves, ivory gold, slaves, ivory, exotic woods silver coins to Vikings furs, slaves from Russia slaves from Turkestan spices, teak from India porcelain from China N 0 0 300 miles 400 kms 2 The Abbasid Caliphate, c.950 Abbasid Caliphate at greatest extent, 786-809 other Muslim dynasties Abbasid mosque tiraz (textile inscription band) factories ceramic centres paper mills nine-bay mosque imports/exports pilgrimage routes main roads 2 THE ABBASID CAPITALS in Mesopotamia attracted intellectual and artistic talent from all over their enormous empire, particularly from the eastern provinces that had helped the Abbasids seize power. Following the conquest of Central Asia, paper was introduced to fuel the enormous Abbasid bureaucracy, and as its use and manufacture spread, it led to fundamental changes in styles of writing and the production and distribution of manuscripts. Major cities had hypostyle mosques with minarets and bevelled style carving, showing the dissemination of metropolitan Abbasid styles and taste. Fine textiles of linen, cotton, silk and wool to be distributed to courtiers were produced in state manufactories established throughout the empire, but especially in Egypt and lower Iraq. Luxury goods, such as teak, carpets and porcelain, were imported from India, Armenia and China. STUCCO REVETMENT from the Balkuwara palace at Samarra, c.850. The huge scale of the palaces at the sprawling new Abbasid capital demanded cheap and efficient techniques. The slanted or bevelled technique of moulding was imitated in other media, such as carved wood and rock-crystal, and became a hallmark of the period. ink, which did not degrade the paper. Calligraphers specializing in the transcription of the Koran were slow to adopt the new medium of paper, perhaps because of the sacredness of the text, but by the year 1000, they, too, had realized its artistic potential. ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 128 THE RISE OF ISLAM in seventh-century Arabia and its rapid spread throughout western Asia, Mesopotamia and Egypt (as well as North Africa, Spain and Central Asia) dramatically affected the nature and production of art in this enormous region. The new rulers initially adopted and adapted indigenous artistic and architectural traditions, only gradually creating a distinctly Islamic style by the ninth century. Following the death of the prophet Muhammad in 632, Muslim armies crossed the Arabian peninsula and neighbouring regions, founding new cantonments for the troops at Basra, Kufa (both 638), Fustat (641), Wasit (702) and Ramla (715). Older buildings, whether Persian audience halls or Christian churches in established cities, were transformed into mosques. They had to be large enough to house the male population for Friday noon worship and had to point in the direction of Mecca, the centre of the faith. Elsewhere Muslims built new mosques, usually hypostyle (many-column) structures arranged around an open courtyard. In order to preserve the integrity of the Koran, God’s revelation to Muhammad in Arabic, Muslims soon began transcribing onto parchment codices the message that the Prophet had relayed orally. In doing this, they transformed Arabic script into one of extraordinary elegance and beauty. THE CONTINUATION OF ANTIQUITY The first dynasty of Muslim rulers was the Umayyad line (r.661–750), who made Syria their capital province. They continued to Uncompromisingly monotheistic, Islam strongly discouraged the use of figural imagery in religious settings. Subsidiary themes of lateAntique art, such as vine scrolls or geometric patterns, thus became the major subjects of decoration. The one new decorative element was Arabic script, the language of Koranic revelation. Its use soon became a hallmark of Islamic art, as inscriptions became important elements in the design of buildings, elegant textiles and even humble ceramics. In private settings, however, particularly on the country estates erected by the Umayyad rulers in the Syrian steppe, exuberant figural art remained popular at such sites as Khirbat al Mafjar and Qusayr Amra. THE NEW ABBASID STYLE With the destruction of the Umayyads by the Abbasids (749–1258), the centre of art and patronage shifted from Syria to Mesopotamia, as the new rulers established a series of capitals there, including Baghdad (762), Raqqa (772) and Samarra (836). The Abbasids had come to power with the help of disaffected Iranians, many from the wealthy province of Khurasan, and the eastern lands became increasingly important in the evolution of Abbasid art and society. Brick rendered with plaster, the ubiquitous building material of Mesopotamia and Iran, replaced the stone and mosaics of the Mediterranean coast. To render the walls of their sprawling palaces – the Dar al Khilafa at Samarra, for example, covers 125 hectares (over 300 acres) – Abbasid artisans developed a carved and moulded style of abstract vegetal decoration with bevelled edges. This technique allowed the plaster to be released easily from the mould and was suitable for covering extensive wall surfaces. The bevelled style was also used in other architectural media, such as carved teakwood doors and shutters and stone capitals. It soon was applied to other arts, such as carved rock-crystal, and was exported throughout the empire, as far as Kairouan in North Africa and Balkh in Central Asia. WEST ASIA AND EGYPT 600-1000 1 THE HEARTLAND OF THE UMAYYAD EMPIRE was Syria, for the founder of the dynasty, Mu`awiya, had been governor of Damascus before he seized power in 661. His successors, after consolidating their power over the next three decades, turned the region into an enormous public works project, with the construction of cities, mosques, urban palaces and enormous rural agricultural estates. The major Islamic shrines at Mecca (centre of the faith), Medina (burial place of the Prophet) and Jerusalem were transformed into major architectural ensembles. These projects were funded by the enormous booty gained from the continuing conquests of outlying areas – from North Africa to Central Asia. THE INTERIOR OF THE DOME OF THE ROCK in Jerusalem shows how early Muslim patrons wholeheartedly adopted the forms and decoration of late-Antique and early Byzantine architecture. The only distinctively Islamic feature is the Arabic inscription beneath the ceiling. 30˚ 35˚ 40˚ 45˚ 50˚ 35˚ 30˚ 25˚ Medina Mecca Jabal Says Qusayr Amra Mshatta Khirbat al Minya Khirbat al Mafjar Qasr al Hayr East Qasr al Hayr West Jerusalem Amman Bosra Antioch Latakia Homs Palmyra Damascus Hama Rusafa Raqqa Hiraqla Harran (Carrhe) Ruha (Edessa) Balis Manbij (Hierapolis) Aleppo ‘Anjar (c.710) Kufa (638) Basra (638) Wasit (702) Ramla (715) Fustat (641) Alexandria Tyre Gaza Mosul Iconium Hamadan Rayy Susa Hafar Ctesiphon Qadisiya Riyadh Suez Küs Edfu Aydhab Suakin Kom Ombo Isfahan Ardabil Nile Euphrate sTigris L.Van MEDITERRANEAN SEA R E D S E A PER SIA N G U L F E G Y P T SYRIA A R A B I A H E JA Z P E R S I A M E S O P O T A M I A BAH R A IN N 0 0 300 miles 400 kms develop the artistic traditions of late Antiquity in such buildings as the Dome of the Rock in Jerusalem (begun 692) and the Great Mosque of Damascus (705–15): classical structures of stone with marble columns and veneers, decorated with glittering glass mosaics. 1 Umayyad Syria and the Levant extent of Islam to 632 extent of Islam to 750 pilgrimage routes to Mecca old cities new cities, with date of foundation rural palaces/ agricultural estates centres of manuscript production site with mosaic site with stucco Umayyad mosque WEST ASIA 1000–1500 131 Turks arrived in Iran during the eleventh century. Following the defeat of the Byzantines at the battle of Manzikert (Malazgird) in 1071, Anatolia was opened to Turkish settlement and Islamization, creating a demand for new buildings to serve the faith. The Byzantine defeat led European Crusaders to invade the region, capture Jerusalem and carve out four principalities. The Muslims were unable to mount effective resistance until the rise of Saladin (r.1169–93), who defeated the Crusaders under the banner of a resurgent Islam. In these uncertain times artists – whether builders, potters, or metalworkers – were often forced to move, thus further disseminating Iranian artistic forms and techniques. THE INTEGRATION OF OLD AND NEW The Mongol invasions of the thirteenth century reconfigured the artistic map of western Asia, as Iran became the entrepôt of an international trading system linking Europe and China. The Mongols adapted and refined the four-iwan mosque, the brick dome, glazed tile and lustre ceramics. Traditional mosques, minarets, madrasas (theological colleges) and khanaqahs (hospices for mystics) were combined into multi-functional complexes, often arranged around the tomb of the founder in order to perpetuate his memory. The major artistic innovation of the fourteenth century was the new role played by the illustrated book, which became a major vehicle for the dissemination of Persian literature and political ideologies. This was made possible in part by papermakers’ new capability to produce large sheets of fine white paper, perhaps due to knowledge of Chinese technology. The most able painters in western Asia now turned from the ceramic surface to paper, drawing upon the traditions of Chinese landscape scrolls and Italian panel painting alike. Iranian artistic ideas were adopted by the the Mamluks in Egypt – the four-iwan plan, stucco decoration, Chinoiserie ornament – testifying to the international prestige of Ilkhanid art. Traditional rivalries obscured the meteoric rise of the Ottoman Turks, who would, by the end of the period, become the most powerful force in western Asia and southeastern Europe. Drawing on the architectural and artistic heritage of Seljuk Anatolia as well as Byzantium and the Classical past, Ottoman artists developed a new idiom of Islamic art in the Mediterranean region. In the years before and after the conquest of Constantinople in 1453, Ottoman builders refined a third type of congregational mosque characterized by a huge single dome surrounded by pencil-thin minarets: a style that became the symbol of Ottoman domination in the region. 15˚ 20˚ 25˚ 30˚ 35˚ 40˚ 45˚ 50˚ 55˚ 60˚ 65˚ 70˚ 75˚ 80˚ 20˚ 25˚ 30˚ 35˚ 40˚ 45˚ Baghdad Najaf Samarra Kufa Gaza Bursa Inegol Isfahan Linjan KashanNatanzQuhrud Aran Zavara Qumm Sultanabad Bastam Sarvistan Darab Yazd Abarquh Hajiabad Kuhpaya Nayin Shiraz Mashiz Kirman Nigar Khonj Siraf Tabriz Salmas Shahi Marand Astara BakuBerda'a Nasmus Nakhichevan Ardabil Gurgan Ziaret Damghan Nishapur Mashhad Tus Radkan Merv SimnanRayy Veramin Herat Qayin Ghazna Kandahar Samarkand Khiva Balkh Tashkent Kashgar Mosul Sava Qazvin Sultaniya SojasTakht-i-Sulayman Sarcham Bukhara Hamadan Quchan Diyarbakir Damascus Tripoli Palmyra Jerusalem Aqaba Petra Qus Medina Mecca Basra Shustar Hormuz Konya Alanya Tarsus Manisa Selcuk Bilecek Iznik Mudurnu Afyon Gebze Sivas Rome Venice Genoa Naples Palermo Amasya Trebizond Tokat Kaiseri Kirsehir Aleppo Constantinople Adrianople Thessalonica Cairo Alexandria N ile Euph rates Tigris Indus Amu Darya M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A ARAL SEA CASPIAN SEA R ED SEA AEGEANSEA B L A C K S E A C A U C A S U S I R A N I A N P L A T E A U ARABIAN PENINSULA H I N D U K U S H MAMLUK SULTANATE I L K H A N AT E C H A G ATA I K H A N AT E D E L H I S U LTA N AT E G O L D E N H O R D E (1326-1402) (1402-53) (1453 onwards) A F R I C A CYPRUS N 0 0 250 miles 350 kms 3 West Asia, c.1325 Byzantine Empire, c.1300 Mamluk Sultanate Ilkhanate and vassals Chagatai Khanate Ottomans/Turkish principalities Armenian territory in the Levant towns/sites where lustre ware found Ilkhanid monuments centres of manuscript production textile centres metalwork centres shrine complexes Mamluk monument Ottoman mosques Ottoman capitals trade routes 3 IN THE FOURTEENTH CENTURY much of Eurasia was ruled by various descendants of Genghis Khan, of whom the Ilkhan rulers of Iran and Iraq controlled the central region. The ensuing pax Mongolica fostered overland trade and communication between Italy and China. The arts created in Iran under the patronage of the Ilkhanids, who had converted to Islam by the late thirteenth century, reflect this extraordinarily broad range of sources. The Ilkhans wholeheartedly adopted Persian and Islamic cultural traditions; their great rivals in the west were the Mamluks, whose capital at Cairo became the centre of Arab-Islamic civilization after the Mongols conquered Baghdad in 1258. COURTYARD OF THE CONGREGATIONAL MOSQUE in Isfahan, Iran. The large open court with iwans, or vaulted halls, in the middle of each side, epitomizes the new mosque plan introduced and popularized by the Seljuks from the early twelfth century. Much of the present tile decoration was added later, as the form remained standard until modern times. ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 130 DURING THE ELEVENTH CENTURY the unified Abbasid caliphate came apart at the seams. Egypt, Syria and Arabia (as well as most of North Africa) were controlled by Fatimid caliphs from their capital at Cairo, but the major threat came from the east, as groups of Turkish nomads moved southwest from the Central Asian steppe, converted to Islam, and came to dominate political, intellectual and artistic life. THE DOMINATION OF IRANIAN IDEAS Iranian techniques, themes and motifs began to play a dominant role in all the arts of the region, from architecture to ceramics and metalwares. The old type of hypostyle (many-column) congregational mosque was supplanted by the four-iwan plan, in which vaulted open rooms are arranged around the four sides of a rectangular court and connected by vaulted halls. The iwan, which had been used in Iranian architecture since Parthian times, was often combined with a great brick dome, as the arched and vaulted techniques of the Iranian plateau replaced the stone post-andbeam system that Muslims had inherited from the Mediterranean lands. The iwan was inherently flexibile, being suitable for all types of buildings, whether mosques, palaces, schools or caravanserais (caravan motels). Iranian ideas also dominated the decorative arts. Paper became the ubiquitous support for manuscripts produced in the region. These included not only the illuminated manuscripts of the Koran produced in earlier times but also illustrated works of many types, from scientific and technical manuals to epic and lyric poetry. Potters exploited the artistic potential of the fritted (or stone-paste) ceramic body that emulated the fine white Chinese Song porcelains imported in great quantity. New shapes and techniques (including overglaze lustre and enamel and underglaze painting) resulted in a period of great ceramic innovation. Weavers also exploited increasingly sophisticated structures and designs. Colour suffused all the arts, as monochrome metalwares were inlaid with copper, silver and gold, and buildings were enveloped in glittering webs of glazed tile and painted plaster. DISSEMINATION OF THE FAITH The major work of conversion had been accomplished by this time, but the ethnic composition of western Asia changed dramatically as Turko-Mongolian peoples resettled and converted to Islam, adapting the norms of Persian-Islamic culture. The Seljuk WEST ASIA 1000-1500 1 AROUND THE YEAR 1100 much of western Asia came under the control of the Seljuks, a Turkish tribe from Central Asia, while Egypt remained under the control of the Fatimid dynasty. Militant Muslims, the Seljuks promulgated their version of Islam by building monuments for the faith, such as mosques, minarets and madrasas. A collateral branch, the Seljuks of Rum, settled along with other Turkish tribes in Anatolia. They too built mosques and madrasas to promulgate the faith, as well as caravanserais to foster trade, but the typical brick and plaster forms of Iranian Seljuk architecture were translated into stone. Seljuk patrons commissioned splendid lustre ceramics and inlaid metalwares to decorate their mosques and palaces. 2 CRUSADERS FROM EUROPE intent on rescuing Jerusalem from the Muslims established principalities in the eastern Mediterranean. These invaders – and Muslim defenders – built some of the finest medieval military architecture to survive. Crusaders returned to Europe from western Asian bazaars with fabulous souvenirs, including textiles and metalwares. 20˚ 25˚ 30˚ 35˚ 40˚ 45˚ 50˚ 55˚ 60˚ 65˚ 70˚ 35˚ 30˚ 25˚ 20˚ Konya Kubadabad Beysehir Sarajevo Dubrovnik Tirana Skopje Sofia Tutrakan Plovdiv Varna Izmit Iznik Manisa Alasehir Afyon Eskisehir Sögüt Kutahya Tire Aydin Constantinople Adrianople Uzunköprü Balikesir Canakkale Bergama Izmir Bursa Ruse Thessalonica Nigde Kaiseri Kirsehir Ankara Sivas Amasya Kastamonu Niksar Sinope Bolu Zonguldak Divrigiˇ Malatya Urfa Aleppo Damascus Raqqa Mardin Baghdad Mosul Cairo Bitlis Ardabil Damavand Damghan Nayin Zarand Tabas Sabzevar Nishapur Merv Balkh Sangbast Kirat Herat Khusrawgird Khargird Nigar Nayriz Firuzabad Hormuz Muscat Ardistan Zavara Gulpaygan Isfahan Kermanshah Bastam Gurgan Baku Harput Silvan Siirt Diyarbakir Erzurum Manzikert Trebizond Tiflis ¸ Z A G R O S M T S C A U C A S U S A n a t o l i a I R A N I A N P L A T E A U A R A B I A N P E N I N S U L A Tekirdag Simnan Kashan Kirman Nile Tigris Am u Darya Euphrat es Danube L. Van L. Urmia M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A B L A C K S E A C A S P IA N SEA P E R S I A N G U L F A R A B I A N S E A AEGEANSEA R E D S E A HINDU KU S H CYPRUS CRETE GEORGIAN STATES SHIRWAN ARMENIAN RULERS 1080-1137 PALESTINE E G Y P T SYRIA P E R S I A M ESO POTAMIA BYZANTINE EMPIRE F AT I M I D C A L I P H AT E G R E A T S E L J U K E M P I R E textiles, metalware, military architecture to Europe 1071 N 0 0 250 miles 350 kms 1 West Asia in the Twelfth Century Byzantine frontier in Asia, c.1025 Byzantine Empire, 1095 Seljuk Empire, c.1095 Seljuk tributary states Byzantine territory overrun by Seljuks by 1095 eastern frontier of area recovered by Byzantine Empire by 1180 nomads other Muslim dynasty mosque minaret madrasa caravanserai ceramic centre metalworking centre 40˚35˚ 35˚ 30˚ Saone Bourzey Crac des Chevaliers Beaufort Belvoir Ajlun Bosra Subeibe Kerak Chastel Rouge Tripoli Giblet Sidon Tyre Acre Caesarea Montreal Arima Antioch Beirut Jaffa Gaza Jerusalem Edessa Aleppo Baalbek Homs Damascus Eilat Tigris Euphrates Jordan DEAD SEA MEDITERRANEANSEA S E L J U K S O F R U M CILICIAN ARMENIA CYPRUS PRINCIPALITY OF ANTIOCH COUNTY OF TRIPOLI KINGDOM OF JERUSALEM COUNTY OF EDESSA 1098-1144 EGYPT S Y R I A N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 2 Latin States of the Levant Latin Christian territory Armenian Christian territory Greek Christian territory Muslim territory Crusader castle Muslim castle CENTRAL ASIA 600–1500 133 that the Yuan rulers of China moved weavers from Samarkand to Beshbalik and Daidu (Beijing) in north China where they introduced the silk tapestry technique. Little if any stone was available for building, but earth – whether as rammed earth, sun-dried brick, baked brick, or glazed tile – and a surprising quantity of timber (from the forested mountains) were readily exploited for construction. Columns and beams were used for hypostyle mosques, as at Khiva, and for the ubiquitous columned verandas found on houses and other buildings. Baked bricks and tiles were exploited for their decorative potential: the early tenth-century Samanid mausoleum at Bukhara is the earliest surviving example of the decorative brick style that later 40˚ 30˚ 20˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ 70˚ 80˚ 90˚ Merv Ziyaragah Shiraz Tiflis Damascus 1400 Sarai 1395 Tabriz 1385 Isfahan Lahore Samarkand Bukhara Anau Khargird Nishapur Ribat-i Qelli Ribat-i Qarabil Ribat-i Eshq Ribat-i Safid Turbat-i Jam Kaffa Tana Yelets Kandahar Ghazni Otrar Khotan Kabul Herat Balkh Termez Mazar-i Sharif Shahrisabz Gizhduvan Turkestan Gazurgah Khiva Astrakhan Maragheh Baghdad 1396 Urgench Meshed 1380 Sangbast Delhi 1398 Tashkent 1387 L. Balkhash Euph rates Tigris A m u Dary a Syr Darya V olga Dnieper Don Indus Ural Ganges M E D. S E A ARAL SEA CASPIANSEA PERSIA N GULF R ED SEA B L A C K S E A K H A N AT E O F T H E G O L D E N H O R D E D E L H I S U LTA N AT E C H A G ATA I K H A N AT E O T T O M A N E M P I R E A R A B I A MAMLUKEMPIRE I R A N I A N P L A T E A U A R A B I A N D E S E R T T H A R D E S E R T T I E N S H A N HINDU KUSH Z A G R O S M TS N 0 0 500 miles 700 kms THOUSANDS OF SLIP-DECORATED earthenwares have been unearthed at the sites of medieval Nishapur and Afrasiyab (Old Samarkand). Many are decorated with phrases or aphorisms in Arabic, such as ‘Blessings to its owner’, while others are decorated with vegetal, geometric and figural motifs. These aphorisms are written in a stylized script, which is often difficult to decipher. Nevertheless, the inscriptions are carefully planned and deserve to be called calligraphy, literally ‘beautiful writing’ and one of the hallmarks of Islamic art. The texts reflect the literate society of the time, in which Arabic, the language of the faith, co-existed with the vernacular Persian. The latter soon came to the fore as a literary language, and the first surviving manuscript in Persian, which dates from the mid-eleventh century, uses a similar stylized script for headings. 2 TIMUR AND HIS SUCCESSORS used the arts to enhance prestige. The scale of his constructions – at his capital Samarkand, his birthplace Shahrisabz, or the grave site of the Sufi sheikh Ahmad Yasavi in Turkestan – matched his ambitions. These mammoth works were created by artisans who came – often involuntarily – from afar to the court to make intricate plaster vaults and glittering tile revetments. Timur’s successors had fewer resources, but they still commissioned fine manuscripts, metalwares, and carved jades. integrated its people into a vast zone that stretched from North Africa to the Tien-Shan mountains. The importance of trade is reflected in the superb caravanserais set up by officials along major trade routes. Another constant was the unusually harsh climate, ranging from torrid summers to frigid winters. Despite little rainfall, water is available from subterranean aqueducts or the few great rivers flowing from distant mountains into landlocked seas and lakes. The settled population was concentrated in oasis towns, while the deserts and steppes were inhabited by the nomads. Despite the constant tension between nomads and settled peoples over the sparse resources, the two groups were interdependent: the nomads’ sheep supplied wool, meat and fertilizer for the settled peoples, who in turn supplied the nomads with grain, metals, fibres and ceramics. MATERIALS AND TECHNIQUES The vast number of sheep raised on the steppes made woollen textiles pre-eminent, although cotton and silk were cultivated by settled populations. The knotted carpet came to the fore as the ancient nomadic craft was transformed, especially in West Asia, into a village and urban industry. The earliest examples, small carpets showing stylized animals were exported as luxury goods and have been found as far apart as Sweden, Italy and Tibet; they are also depicted in Persian manuscripts and Italian panel paintings of the early fourteenth century. Village and urban weavers were also known for their fine silk textiles. Zandaniji textiles made in the village of Zandane near Bukhara for several centuries after the Islamic conquest were exported as far as Europe and China. By the thirteenth century, Central Asian textiles, particularly the silks woven with gold-wrapped threads known in Europe as panni tartarici, were so appreciated became pre-eminent throughout the region. In addition to mosques, found everywhere in the Islamic lands, tombs became popular in this region. These were typically domed cubic structures, many of which honoured the local saints and mystics who had been responsible for converting the steppe nomads to Islam. The earth also provided the raw materials for other arts, including metalwares and ceramics. Tenth-century potters in Samarkand and Nishapur covered earthenwares with colourful slip decoration, whether abstract, figural or epigraphic, and glazed wares soon followed. The epigraphic wares, calligraphed with moralizing aphorisms in Arabic, show how quickly the region had been integrated into the Arabophone world of Islam. 2 Central Asia under the Timurids, 1370-1506 Timurid Empire conquests of Timur, with date movement of metalworkers, builders, ceramicists movement of weavers mosque tomb/shrine madrasa caravanserai jade sources ceramics manuscript production ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 132 and he was preparing to conquer China on his deathbed. Although the Timurid empire shrank as fast as it had grown, its artistic impact was long-lived: the architects and craftsmen who had been forcibly brought to Central Asia created an international Timurid style which became the common language for virtually all Islamic art produced between Istanbul and Delhi after 1500. Timurid artists refined the Persian art of the book, which combined paper, calligraphy, illumination, illustration and binding in a brilliant and colourful whole. THE IMPACT OF THE LANDSCAPE Geography continued to play a pivotal role in the evolution of artistic life. The region’s accessibility and location put it at the intersection of transcontinental routes and CENTRAL ASIA CHANGED dramatically as it was transformed from an independent centre under the Turkic Khanates to a peripheral border region which lay between the great empires of the Abbasids in southwest Asia and the Tang in China. From the late seventh century, Arab armies brought Islam and the Arabic language to this region where many religions, including Zoroastrianism, Manichaeism, Buddhism, Judaism, and Nestorian Christianity, had been practised for centuries and where Iranian and Turkic languages were spoken. The Arabs knew the region as ‘The Land Beyond the River’, or Transoxiana. The Islamic conquest increased the region’s prosperity, as it was integrated into the nexus of trans-Asian trade along the ancient Silk Road. Far from the capitals of Arab-Islamic civilization in Syria and Mesopotamia, moreor-less independent dynasties of Persian and Turkish governors and rulers emerged, including the Saffarids, Samanids, Karakhanids, Ghaznavids, Ghurids and Khwarazmshahs. They enlarged old cities or created new capitals such as Merv, Bukhara, Nishapur, Balkh, Shash (Tashkent), Kabul and Delhi. In the period after 1000 many Central Asian Turks migrated westward to Anatolia and southeast into the Indian subcontinent, integrating Central Asia further into the Eurasian network. A second great migration of TurkoMongolian peoples in the late twelfth and early thirteenth centuries devastated the region, destroying the hydraulic infrastructure, particularly the subterranean aqueducts (qanat) which supplied cities, towns, villages and farms with water from distant mountain ranges. The region flowered again under the patronage of the Timurids, who made Samarkand and Herat sparkling centres of intellectual and artistic life. The conquests of Timur (r.1370–1405), known in the West as Tamerlane, were rapid and ephemeral; at its height his empire stretched to Syria and Anatolia on the west and India on the east, CENTRAL ASIA 600-1500 THE GRAVE SITE OF the Sufi sheikh Ahmad Yasavi (d.1166) had long been venerated by the Turks of Central Asia and the Volga. In 1397–9 Timur used the vast booty amassed from his victory over the Golden Horde to transform his modest brick tomb at Yasi (now Turkestan City) into one of the most spectacular buildings in the region. Built of brick and glazed tile, the rectangular complex looms above the steppe and projects the presence of Islam from afar. A giant iwan leads to a domed central hall with an enormous basin holding water for pilgrims, and a smaller ribbed dome in the back corner marks the site of the sheikh’s grave. 40˚ 30˚ 20˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ 70˚ 80˚ 90˚ Merv Mecca Sana Sohar Shiraz Tiflis Konya Isfahan Tyre Damascus Siraf Jam Multan Lahore Leh Medina Samarkand Ribat-i Malik Dayakhatyn Vabkent Bukhara Nishapur Ribat Sharaf Sarakhs Talkhaytan Baba Amol Ghazni Basra Hamadan Baghdad Mosul Talas Uzgend Tim Otrar Kashgar Yarkand Khotan Turfan Burana Kumul (Hami) DunhuangLoulan Miran Kusha Beshbalik Kabul Herat Balkh Termez Khiva Urgench Delhi Srinagar Panjikent Tashkent L. Balkhash Eup hrates Tigris A m u Darya HariRud Murgab Syr Darya V olga Indus B L A C K S E A ARABIAN SEA ARAL SEA CASPIANSEA PERSIA N GULF R ED SEA H I M A L A Y A S TA K L A M A K A N P L A T E A U O F T I B E T I R A N I A N P L A T E A U A R A B I A N D E S E R T T H A R D E S E R T T I E N S H A N HINDU KUSH Z A G R O S M TS N 0 0 500 miles 700 kms 1 Before the Mongols: Central Asia, c.1090 Seljuk Empire Karakhanids Ghaznavids Fatimids Qarmatians Byzantine Empire, 1090 territory contested by Seljuks/Byzantines Silk Road spread of silk weaving, paper-making spread of Islam,Arabic caravanserai manuscript and paper production ceramic production metal production textiles congregational mosque nine-bay mosque tomb minaret 1 THE CONSTRUCTION of new types of buildings associated with Islam, particularly mosques, minarets and tombs, reflects the spread of the faith. Congregational mosques were an essential feature of urban life, but minarets and tombs over the graves of local saints were erected in rural areas as well, particularly along the trade routes that spanned the region, probably because they came to symbolize the presence of Islam. Vitthala Temple Narasimha Temple Virupaksha Temple Krsna Temple Monolithic Narasimha and Linga Shrine Siva Temple Tiruvengalanatha Temple Vishnu Temple Elephant Stables Jain Temple Madhava Temple Hundred-Columned Audience Hall Siva Temple Square Water Pavilion Ruined Palaces Nine-Domed Pavilion Multi-Domed Watchtower Domed Gate Ganagitti Jain Temple Lotus Mahal Hazara Ramachandra Temple Hanmatha Tank Tungabhadra River SACRED CENTRE ROYAL CENTRE N 0 0 0.5 miles 0.75 kms 2 Vijayanagara: Temples and Courtly Monuments, c.1500 N 0 0 0.5 miles 0.75 kms 2 Vijayanagara: Temples and Courtly Monuments, c.1500 SOUTH ASIA 600–1500 135 consumption and exchange for various luxury goods, and in a sense represented not only the spiritual but material aspirations of the age. From the thirteenth century a Turkish Muslim empire, known as the Delhi Sultanate, was founded in northern India, an event which was to have a dramatic impact on Indian life as well as exerting more subtle, long-term cultural and economic influences. In one sense at least, the Delhi Sultanate succumbed to the centrifugal rhythms of Indian history. By 1400 regional sultanates had emerged in the west, east and south, each of which exhibited a distinctive regional identity. Islamic rulers introduced new forms of monumental architecture such as the mosque and tomb, as well as providing a conduit for Central Asian craft techniques and fashions to enter into the subcontinent. Despite destroying a number of politically important temples in northern India and interrupting traditional Hindu structures of patronage, Muslim rulers did not attempt to convert the large mass of their subjects to Islam. Instead, the two cultures interacted with one another. Beyond the southern borders of the Delhi Sultanate flourished both the Sultanates of the Deccan and the kingdom of Vijayanagara, the last great Hindu empire, which loosely united much of southern India during the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries. Vijayanagara and Delhi were among the most cosmopolitan and dynamic cities of their day, importing materials and men of culture from as far away as Portugal and China. Luxury goods at court typically had both economic as well as ceremonial or ritual value and were transacted as emblems of political and moral rank and authority. These objects (robes, tunics, turbans, crowns, necklaces, armbands and rings), along with a host of less permanent substances such as betelnut and sandalwood paste, were the object of great concern in medieval sumptuary manuals designed for the king and his nobility. MATERIALS, TECHNIQUES AND EVIDENCE In India climate has had a significant influence on the development of material culture and, unfortunately, on its survival. High levels of heat and moisture have made the survival of ephemeral materials, such as palm leaf, paper, wood, textiles and plasters, sporadic from periods before the sixteenth century. For this reason many art forms, which we know to have existed from other sources, cannot be reconstructed with a satisfactory degree of precision. Since the surviving record is only partial, stone, terracotta monuments and sculpture and durable decorative arts must therefore remain our chief artefacts. The most palpable legacy of the past has been stone architecture, which flourished during this period in both Hindu and Muslim kingdoms. Temple architecture was based on the combination of vertical and horizontal stonework held together by weight. Large monoliths were transported from quarries using elephants or water and, having been worked, were either hoisted or rolled into place via earthen ramps. The arrival of Islamic architecture in the subcontinent brought with it new architectural styles such as the true arch, the dome and the vault, built with the extensive use of lime-mortar as a cementing material. The emphasis in Islamic architecture was primarily on the manipulation of line, space and movement, though decorative techniques were also developed in calligraphy and mosaic. THE TIRUVENGALANATHA TEMPLE at Vijayanagara, dedicated to Vishnu in 1534, is set in the rugged terrain of the land immediately south of the Tungabhadra River. This temple was sponsored by a prominent courtier (a brother-in-law and minister) of the Vijayanagar king Achyutaraya (r.1529–42). While few specimens have survived, other sources suggest that the production of silk and cotton textiles formed an important industry during this period. Sources provide scores of names of fabric styles which remain only dimly understood by historians today. The quality of cotton production was improved by the introduction of the spinningwheel and carder’s bow in the eleventh century, probably from Central Asia, which must have significantly cheapened the cost of spun yarn. Weaving techniques during this period are not very well understood, but the expansion of the profession, as reflected in the 2 WHILE LARGE NUMBERS of temples survive throughout India from the sixth century, the empire of Vijayanagara is unique among Hindu dyanstic realms in preserving a copious amount of both secular and religious architecture. The city of Vijayanagara may be divided into distinct zones. Immediately south of the Tungabhadra River, within the urban area but outside the city walls, are a large number of temples, which scholars have designated the sacred centre of the city. Further south, surrounded by massive outer fortifications, is the urban core, where most of the population lived. In the southeast corner of the fortified city is the royal centre, a complex of many buildings, surrounded by another tier of fortifications. It is here where the king, his family, and a large retinue of courtiers, ritualists and palace servants lived together. increased prominence of weaver castes in the historical record, suggests the retention of traditional methods. Printing and dyeing techniques are also unclear, although some methods, like the famous tie-dye technique, are mentioned as early as the seventh century. Carpet-making also seems to have been introduced into the subcontinent between the eleventh and thirteenth centuries, again from Central Asia. In addition to textiles, there were rich traditions of regionally differentiated, decorative arts, but centres of production and regional styles still remain elusive. ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 134 THE DEVELOPMENT OF art and material culture in India from 600 to1500 is impressive. As an increasingly integrated economy, society and culture emerged in the Indian subcontinent, regional styles and identities emerged which often formed the precursors to later cultural developments. KINGDOMS AND EMPIRES At the beginning of this period numerous Hindu temple-kingdoms spread throughout key regions in the subcontinent and struggled for local and pan-regional supremacy. A highly refined and complex court culture flourished upon a largely agrarian economy and feudal social order. With the rise and triumph of the theistic cults of Saivism (Siva) and Vaisnavis (Vishnu), Hindu temples, which were often endowed with massive landholdings by secular lords, dominated the landscape from about the sixth century AD. Heavily decorated with sumptuous and ornate sculpture, their spires rose dramatically from the surrounding countryside. Temples functioned as points of SOUTH ASIA 600-1500 70˚ 80˚ 60˚ 20˚ 10˚ 30˚ 40˚ Mathura Bayana Ghazni Kanauj Badayun Amrol Delhi Sthanvisvara Varanasi Jaunpur Ayodhya Madurai Vanci Ramesvaram Kalahasti Kanchipuram Vengi Mallikarjuna Tiruvannamalai Mamallapuram Tanjavur Nagapattinam Anuradhapura Pulatthinagara Tiruvarur Kumbakonam Gangaikondacolapuram Chidambaram Nuggihalli Srirangam Tirumalai Jambukesvara Ajmer Chanderi Udayapura Gyaraspur Batesar Gopagiri (Gwalior) Harsagiri (Harsha) Puri Kathmandu Svayambhunatha Bhojapura Citrakuta Ujjain Khajuravahaka Kosambi Kiratakupa (Kiradu) Vidisha Kalanjar Dhar Satgaon Arbuda (Abu) Prabhasa Mangrol Girinagara (Girnar) Mudhera (Modhera) Sarkhej Patan Mahmudabad (Champaner) Dholka Anlar Thatta Khambayat Mulasthana (Multan) Pakpattan Avantipura Martanda Parihasapura Hisar Herat Qala Bist Kandahar Lahore Warangal HaidarabadGolkonda Palampet Kalinganagara Ekamra (Bhubaneshwar) Konarka Draksharama Gaya Pataliputra Monghyr (Mongir) Nalanda Vikramasila Gaur Pandua Pundravardhana Tamralipti Seunapura (Sinnar) Ambaranatha Elapura Bharuch Satrunjaya Thalner Mahkar Burhanpur Mandu Batwa Lonar Daulatabad Ahmadnagar Ahmadabad Roda Bijapur Bidar Gulbarga Hampi Ittagi Belur Sringeri Dvarasamudra (Halebid) Sravana Belgola Somnathapura Anumakonda Vijayanagara Lokkigundi (Lakhundi) Dambal Arsikere Penukonda Hemavati Srisailam Kanyakumari Srinagar Campavati Brahmapura Chhatrarhi Ratnagiri Indus Narmada Ganges Penner Godav ari Krishna Kaveri Yamuna A R A B I A N S E A B A Y O F B E N G A L I N D I A N O C E A N WESTERNGHATS H I M A L A Y A S CEYLON (SRI LANKA) D E C C A N S I N D KALINGA N E PA L KASH M IR R A S T R A K U T A S ( 7 5 4 - 9 7 2 ) PALAS (750-1120) HOYSALAS (1126-1347) COLAS (906-1279) SOLANKIS (974-1241) D E L H I S U L T A N A T E (1206-1526) VIJAYANAGARA (1336-1565) G U R J A R A P R A T I H A R A S ( 7 2 5 - 9 3 1 ) PARAMARAS (945-1235) CANDELLAS (925-1308) PALLAVAS (550-870) N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 1 Monumental Art, 600-1500 dynastic empire (with dates) major Hindu temple/monastery major Jain temple/monastery Buddhist stupa Buddhist university Buddhist monastery major Muslim mosque/tomb probable trade route copper mine diamond mine gold mine precious stones pearls conch shells silk weaving teak sandalwood pepper cinnamon COLAS 1a Trade Goods trade route exports: cloth glass incense metal wine coin spices imports: cloth dye incense ivory precious stones rice/wheat silk slaves timber tortoise shell spices 1 THE PERIOD BETWEEN 600 AND 1500 saw the proliferation of a bewildering number of small kingdoms and larger pan-regional empires throughout the subcontinent. While many major towns known from ancient India declined, a subsequent phase of urban development saw new networks of towns, more closely integrated with the expanding agrarian economy, spread throughout the landscape. Larger urban centres were integrated into the world economy through the export of luxury goods to the Middle East and China. Through this trade India developed its reputation for finely wrought metal objects (like swords), jewellery textiles and precious stones. KORANIC VERSES are carved in relief on the massive Qutb Minar in Delhi, begun by Qutb-ud-din Aibak on a Ghaznavid model in 1199 and completed in 1369 by Firuz Shah Tughluq. The magnificent minaret, which rises some 73 metres (240 ft), functioned as both a victory tower and lookout tower. I N D I A N O C E A N Lahore Pataliputra Tamralipti Machilipatnam Barygaza Cane Barbaricum Pattala Harmozia Omana Charax Sopatma Muziris Pegu Taxila 1a CHINA 600–1300 137 THE NEW MOBILITY Modern institutions require the ability to move consumers, materials or commodities rapidly. Mobility of ideas and human resources is even more important. Song China was able to move commodities rapidly because of better nautical technology (the compass and movable rudder), better roads, and a more rational administration. Ideas circulated rapidly because of paper, printing and private publishers. Talent was valued above birth in the assignment of social roles, ensuring greater social mobility. All these developments laid the foundation for more modern forms of social practice, first in China and later in the West as Europeans learned of China’s pioneering innovations. One product of enhanced mobility was a lively art market offering a range of styles and genres for buyers from different walks of life, including women. This made it possible for ordinary people to fashion an individual persona by displaying personal art – decorated silk or paper fans, calligraphy, paintings, ceramics or antiques – reflecting the values they embraced. Art histories of the period reveal how men of plebeian background gained social access by acquiring fine-art collections. Private scholars, such as the poetess Li Qingzhao and her husband, built collections of national renown. The imperial collection became but one among many, with private collections influencing the taste of the court. Eventually, in deference to scholarly values, the royal academy, formerly under the Privy Treasury, was placed under the state, with its own faculty, curriculum and academic degrees. Critics of the period distinguished mainstream work by court and professional artists from the art of nonconformist painters. The former worked in naturalistic styles permitting artists to portray bamboo, insect bodies or the technology of ships in 135˚ 30˚ 120˚105˚ Laizhou Qingzhou Weizhou Haizhou Hangzhou Zhendingfu Dingzhou Kaifeng Ruzhou DamingfuTaiyuan YingtianfuChenliu Jiangningfu Chuzhou Jingzhaofu Qinzhou Kuizhou Xiangzhou Shouzhou Zizhou Jianglingfu Ezhou Guangzhou Mingzhou Shaoxingfu Yangzhou Xingyuanfu Chengdu Tanzhou Hongzhou Fuzhou Dunhuang Yulin Maijishan Yan’an Tong’an Quanzhou Dengzhou Mizhou Yizhou Zibo Jinan Bazhou Shanzhou Yunzhou Dizhou Cizhou Junzhou Wuji Shucheng Hanzhou Meizhou Shuzhou Fuzhou Liulichang Ningzhou Fengzhou Shanzhou Hezhongfu Caizhou Shangjing Gangwayao Xicun Tengxian Yongfu Qiongzhou Chaozhou Dehua Anxi Nan’an Putian Wuzhou Jingdezhen Longquan Yuezhou Shaoxin Wenzhou Lishui Lianjiang Meizhou Yaozhou Luoyang Jiexiu Dazu Mekong Salween Xi Jiang Yangtze Yellow River S O U T H C H I NA S E A E A S T C H I N A S E A Y E L L O W S E A BO HAI GULF OF TONGKING HIMALAYAS K U N L U N M T S QILIAN SHAN ALTUN SHAN X I A D A L I T I B E TA N S HAINAN TAIWAN C H I N A K O R Y O J A PA N silk quality printing, silk, ceramics, currency, books, lacquerware quality printing, silk, ceramics, currency, books, lacquerware fans, pearls, gold, mercury, chemicals, medicine silk, ceramics, currency, books, lacquerware aromatics, luxury goods, medicine silk, ceramics, paper education silk and paper silk and paper silkandpaper education students precious metals N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 2 Art, Publishing and Trade in Song China, 960-1268 border of Song China boundary between Southern Song and Jin, post-1127 Grand Canal major roads capital city provincial city centre for religious art silk production major kilns paper production commercial print centre high-quality printing centre large-scale government publishing important private art collection exports imports peoplesXIA 2 THE RISE OF PRINT CULTURE in the eleventh century made paper a major commodity, but it was also the preferred medium for works by literati masters. An active market for porcelain encouraged a great variety of wares for display and ordinary uses. Art collecting spread to the broader populace, and regional styles evolved that were independent of courtly taste. In general, naturalistic styles were favoured, to the extent that even Buddhist images appear more human and worldly than their Tang predecessors. astonishing detail. The latter set themselves in opposition to established styles, either adopting a wild, bohemian approach or an intellectualized rebellion against courtly taste. Among the latter, the most influential were known as wenren or ‘literati’. Some literati championed greater recognition for women artists, and so women first appear in formal art MONK MENDING CLOTHING. Near life-sized clay sculpture, c. twelfth century, Lingyansi Temple, Shandong. One of 40 clay statues of famous monks, this work exemplifies Song naturalism. The monk is shown as fully human, mending his clothing with a look of puzzlement and wonder. His parted lips and expression of deep thought suggest he may be undergoing enlightenment while pursuing ordinary tasks, as is described in Chan (Zen) anecdotes of the period. historical writings at this time. The literatus Su Shi (1036–1101) exemplifies the new styles of social practice. Son of a clerk, Su won first place in the national examinations, after which his answers were printed and sold as models. His published poems criticized unjust policies, and he was framed and exiled by political enemies. Although formally a criminal, public opinion treated him as a hero, and Su’s publications continued to influence political sentiment and artistic taste. While in exile he remained a social activist, organizing trust funds for the needy. As an artist and critic he laid the foundations for literati criticism with its stress on personal expression, originality and integrity over naturalism and finish. ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 136 THE TRANSITION FROM Tang society (618–907) to Song society (960–1268) was a watershed in world history. Tang China shared much in common with late Medieval and early Renaissance Europe. Political authority was dominated by a hereditary, military aristocracy and serfdom was common. The Buddhist authorities bolstered the power of the nobility and assumed charge of education, hospitals and charity. There was no clear distinction between the royal budget and the state budget, and formal checks on central authority were weak. Many artists worked in the service of the religious authorities or nobility on large architectural projects such as palace and temple sculpture or murals, with the nobility competing for the services of the greatest masters. An artistic canon was evolving and the notion of ‘genius’ was well-developed, but it was the courts and their intellectuals which determined standards of taste. THE NEW EGALITARIANISM By the eleventh century, however, educated men of almost any background could acquire positions of authority through egalitarian examinations and performance in office. The nobility had lost most of its fiscal and political privileges, while private and public schools overtook monastic schools as centres of education. The state assumed responsibility for welfare, and most farmers were either freeholders or tenants. The state was separate sold their work through restaurants or painting galleries, while others sold out of their studios. Private publishers provided outlets for nonestablishment views, while the state supported major publishing projects such as the ambitious, 1000-chapter Taiping Yulan encyclopedia (published in 982). Printing also encouraged a lively literature on art, with critics aiming to influence public opinion (gonglun). In other words, Song social practice incorporated many phenomena associated with more modern times. CHINA 600-1300 135˚120˚105˚ 30˚ Chang’an JizhouYouzhou Cangzhou Dengzhou QingzhouXiangzhou Taiyuan Puzhou Liangzhou Luoyang Songzhou Yangzhou Runzhou Suzhou Xuanzhou Hangzhou Wuzhou Hongzhou Changsha Yizhou Qianzhou Guangzhou Fuzhou Bianzhou Wutaishan Binxian Tianlongshan Longmen Guangyuan Dunhuang Shazhou Huaizhou Caozhou Bozhou Sizhou Yuezhou Mianzhou Shouzhou Dingzhou Weizhou Hunyuan Xingzhou Tongchuan Gongxian Shanzhou Shuzhou Qiongzhou Xiangzhou Tanzhou Yellow River Yangtze Xi Jiang Mekong Salween S O U T H C H I N A S E A E A S T C H I N A S E A Y E L L O W S E A BO HAI GULF OF TONGKING QILIAN SHAN ALTUN SHAN HIMALAYAS K U N L U N M T S TA R I M BA S I N TAKLA MAKAN DESERT T U R K S (to 744) T I B E TA N S U I G H U R S (replace Turks from 745) HAINAN TAIWAN PA R H A E S I L L A P Y U A N X I P R O T E C T O R AT E N A N Z H A O C H I N A J A PA Neducation, ceramics, sculpture, silk aromatics, turtle shells, skins, bamboo, wood, rattan, precious metals ceramics, silk, administrative expertise precious metals silk ceramics aromatics, medicines, wood N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms Major Art Production Sites in Tang China, 618-907 borders of the Tang Empire, 618-907 Grand Canal major roads capital city provincial city centre for religious art silk production major kilns exports imports peoples 1 Turks 1 DURING THE TANG DYNASTY it was common for the nobility to donate monumental sculpture and murals for newly constructed Buddhist temples. Many such testaments to devotion exist even today at cave temple sites throughout China. Ceramics and porcelain enriched the daily lives of nobility and officials, and adorned their tombs as well. The upper classes collected paintings and calligraphy, but most paintings from the period have not survived. ATTRIBUTED TO QIAO ZHONGCHANG (after Su Shi), Latter Prose-poem on the Red Cliff, handscroll, ink on paper, detail showing a pond and rocks. Critics said of Su Shi’s painting that ‘the texture strokes on rocks were... original and bizarre, just like the pent-up twistings in his heart’. Qiao’s painting, a homage to Su’s poetry, echoes these values, rejecting the deep space and subtle shading of courtly painting in favour of a style that flattens and distorts for expressive effect, with every stroke of the brush visible. from the court in budget and administration, and major resources were invested in providing checks on abuses of power. Paper production had become big business. By 1000 Hunan paper-makers were producing 1.78 million sheets for official use annually, while Huizhou produced 500,000 sheets for paper money, all this in addition to commercial products, ranging from toilet paper and fans to paper for books, painting and calligraphy. Artists produced for an open market – some accepted commissions, some CHINA AND TIBET 1300–1500 139 The decorative arts produced in China under Mongol rule reflect the variety of influences available to artisans through a nearly global range of cultural contacts. Ceramics and lacquerware began to include a number of Islamic ornaments, including the mihrab shape; ceramic production began to rely heavily on the use of cobalt, mined in Persia, for underglaze and overglaze decoration. The export of ceramics and silk was also a major source of revenue for individuals and for the government; finds of ceramics and textiles from sunken cargo ships extend through much of Southeast Asia. Sculpture was influenced by Mongol patronage of Tibetan Buddhism, which led to the production of Tibetan Buddhist images in many parts of China. COURTLY ART The Yuan court patronized a great diversity of pictorial objects, from portrait tapestry of Mongol origin to Chinese-style painting. Unlike the Chinese, who restricted the role and visibility of women, Mongol princesses were given income-earning fiefs. One of the greatest painting collectors of the era was the Mongol princess Sengge Ragi (c.1283–1331), who collected canonical masterpieces of Chinese painting. Her approximate contemporary Guan Daosheng (1262–1319), a renowned painter of bamboo and the wife of the prime minister, the painter and painting theorist Zhao Mengfu (1254–1322), was less sequestered than most women of the gentry at this time, consorting with her husband’s coterie of artist friends. Although a wide variety of pictorial practices existed under Mongol rule, the best-known, documented practitioners of painting were men from southeastern China like Zhao Mengfu, many of whom painted works that they 2 ARTISTIC PRODUCTION IN CHINA during the Yuan and early Ming dynasties was permeated by global contacts, including those made during the expeditions of Zheng He. Influences ranged from people and objects as diverse as Franciscan missionaries and their paintings on cloth, Inner Asian Buddhist monks and their devotional objects, and animal and material specimens brought from as far away as the East African coast. 150˚135˚120˚105˚90˚75˚60˚45˚30˚15˚ 0˚ 15˚ 30˚ 60˚ 15˚ PA C I F I C O C E A N I N D I A N O C E A N Java Borneo Sicily Japan Sumatra A F R I C A A S I A EUROPE I N D I A A U S T R A L I A C H I N A Mogadishu Rome Alexandria Venice Jedda Hormuz Rostov Baghdad Bukhara Samarkand Mathura Bombay Istanbul Muscat Calicut Chittagong Dunhuang Xi’an Luoyang Pusan Osaka Beijing Shenyang Guangzhou Quanzhou N 0 0 1200 miles 1800 kms 2 China’s Global Contacts, 1300-1500 land routes maritime routes Zheng He’s main fleets, 1405-33 Zheng He’s subsidiary fleet, 1405-33 and their associates inscribed with antiMongol texts. Painting theory of the period stressed the importance of historical models. THE INDIGENOUS REVIVAL During the Yuan and Ming dynasties the visual arts were practised throughout China’s provinces and localities, especially in and near provincial and county seats. Archaeological evidence suggests that everyday ceramics were manufactured in local kilns throughout China; these wares differed qualitatively from those of empire-wide reputation and distribution. During the early Ming period the practice of painting based on the indigenous Chinese models of the Southern Song court underwent a widespread revival in southeastern China as part of a broader rediscovery of native cultural practices. However, the production of painting and printing were undertaken throughout China, with only the highest-quality products drum tower Twin Pagodas of Kaiyuan Si, founded mid- 8th century, rebuilt c.1225-50 administrative offices/school JinJiang to stone Siva Lingam site East Gate to Huabiao Si, Manichaean temple to Lingshan Muslim tombs Shengyou Si 960-1279 Muhanmode Si 1279-1368 Qingjing Si built 1131, rebuilt 1350 Yemenjia Si Yemenite mosque 1322 Yemenjiao Si Yemenite mosque 960-1279 to Wenling, Song imperial ancestral temple Shengyou Si mosque built c.960-1279 N 0 0 0.5 miles 1 km having an empire-wide audience. Under early Ming rule, the decoration of porcelain emphasized native Chinese cultural emblems, rather than imported Islamic ones; sculpture focused on both indigenous and imported Tibetan deities. The period 1300–1500 has been termed a Tibetan renaissance, during which the Tibetan Buddhist canon was compiled, edited and revised; it was subsequently printed in Beijing. The Muslim conquest of northern India sent scholars and artists into Nepal as refugees, reinvigorating Nepalese painting and sculpture. The transmission of Indo-Nepalese work to Tibet expanded the stylistic repertoire of Tibetan art at this time. Tibetan religious leaders were invited to the Ming court generating both an exchange of Buddhist images and texts, as well as of monks, especially under the auspices of the Yongle emperor (r.1403–1424). 3 THE MULTI-ETHNIC AND MULTICULTURAL city of Quanzhou was among the largest port cities of the world in the fourteenth century. Although originally rectangularly shaped, with residence limited to ethnic Chinese, the city walls grew beyond this plan to include the non-ethnic Chinese formerly required to live outside the walls, resulting in its unusual shape. THE TIBETAN DEITY MAHAKALA was revered by the Mongols, who believed him to give assistance in battle. This image, attributed to the school of the Nepalese artist Arniko (Anige, c.1244–c.1306), is thought to be like those of Mahakala carried onto the battlefield during the Mongol conquest of 1279. 3 Quanzhou, 1300-1500 city boundaries: c.711 c.906 c.964 c.893 c.1352 pre-1937 commercial district Buddhist temple mosque Catholic church Confucian/Daoist temple Manichaean temple Hindu site ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 138 BETWEEN 1300 AND 1500 the significant political and geographic transformation of the Chinese empire, including the extension of its relationship to Tibet, created a tumultuous but vibrant environment for artistic production. MONGOL CHINA The Mongol conquest of China resulted in the founding of the Yuan Dynasty (1279–1368), which had close links to Mongol polities across northern and inner Asia. The Yuan Dynasty acknowledged its northern origins by building a new imperial capital, Dadu, in northern China, at modern Beijing. Although the capital at Dadu was based on canonical principles of Chinese urban planning, two other Mongol capitals at Karakorum (c.1229–1241) and at Shangdu (begun 1256) reflect both nomadic and Chinese traditions. The former capital of Hangzhou continued to flourish and grow beyond its walls, as did Quanzhou, China’s pre-eminent port for maritime trade. Resistance to the Mongols resulted in their overthrow in 1368 by forces led by Zhu Yuanzhang (1328–98), a peasant who became the founding emperor of the Ming (‘Bright’) Dynasty. The Ming established its first capital in southern China, at Nanjing, to reaffirm its ties to native Chinese culture; in 1420 Beijing was proclaimed the sole capital. CHINA AND TIBET 1300-1500 90˚ 100˚ 110˚ 120˚ 130˚ 140˚ 150˚ 40˚ 30˚ 20˚ 10˚ Dadu (Beijing) Badaling Shangdu (Xanadu) Shanhaiguan Liaoyang Ürümqi Helin (Karakorum) Lijiang Chengdu Qionglai Xian Jianyang Shexian Lhasa Shigatse Shalu Samye Grathang Densatil Dali Hanoi Sukhothai Nanning Yunnanfu (Kunming) Yuxi xian Wuxing Linru Mixian Bianliang (Kaifeng) Yu xian Yaozhou Fengyuan (Xi’an) Ding Cixian Jiayuguan Ganzhou Dunhuang Hangzhou JingdezhenWuchang Chaozhou Longxing (Nanchang) Longquan Suzhou Yangzhou Nanjing - first Ming capital Ningbo Jinhua Jizhou Jian Dehua Fuzhou Tong’an Canton (Guangzhou) Quanzhou Gyantse Kathmandu Narthang Sakya Lhatse (Lhazê) Mustang Ngor Tashi Lhunpo (Zhaxilhüno) Yalu YellowRiver Xi Jiang Lop Nor YELLOW SEA S O U T H C H I NA S E A S E A O F J A PA N EAST CHINA SEA G O B I TAKLA MAKAN DESERT P L A T E A U O F T I B E T H I M A L A Y A S A L T A I M T S QILIAN SHAN TIEN SHAN TAIWAN ZHONGSHU H E N A N SHAANXI Y U N N A N JIANGZHES I C H U A N C H A H E TA I JIANGXI H U G U A N G XUANZHENGYUAN G A N S U HAMILI, BEITING, AND HALAHUOZHOU L I N G B E I L I A O Y A N G HAINAN K O R E A M O N G O L I A C H I N A T I B E T K A S H M I R I N D I A N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 Visual Production, 1300-1500 border of China under Mongol rule, 1279-1368 provincial boundary, c.1300 border of China under the Ming, 1368-1500 successive capitals provincial capitals in Yuan China, c.1330 capitals of lu with more than 100,000 inhabitants Mongol imperial capitals Great Wall, 15th century Grand Canal important kiln site major centre of textile production major painting centre major printing centre important Tibetan art centre AFTER THE FALL OF MONGOL RULE in 1368, the Ming imperium articulated new aesthetic preferences in ceramic production, the effect of which was felt beyond the court. While the Ming imperial family patronized wares with red glazes and with red underglaze painting, their patronage of underglaze blue and white ceramics, such as the Xuande era (1426–35) flask from Jingdezhen shown here, promoted native Chinese traditions of pictorial representation as ceramic decoration. 1 UNDER MONGOL RULE, China became more politically and culturally integrated with North and Central Asia. Although this period has traditionally been viewed as one in which the Chinese literary elite retreated from the advance of Mongol culture, this was, in fact, a vibrant and multicultural era. For the Chinese literati, whose records dominate our knowledge of the period, the southeast remained the cultural centre of the empire, as evidenced by the concentration of famous kilns and painting centres in that part of China. JAPAN AND KOREA 600–1500 141 TALE OF GENJI SCROLL, ink and colours on paper, by court artists in Kyoto, Japan, twelfth century. The monumental narrative of the ‘Tale of Genji’, written by the court lady Murasaki Shikibu (c.1000) is often described as the world’s first novel. The 54 chapters describing three generations of Kyoto aritoscrats have been illustrated by painters, printmakers, fabric designers and other artists for over 1000 years, including twentieth-century manga and anime (comic strip) illustrators. This example is taken from the earliest extant handscroll depiciting Genji scenes. 129˚ 132˚ 135˚ 34˚ Yamaguchi Okayama Nara Kyoto Horyu-ji Negoroji Ise Hakata (Fukuoka) L.BiwaE A S T S E A E A S T C H I N A S E A P A C I F I C O C E A N K Y U S H U S H I K O K U H O N S H U J A P A N K O R E A Mt Koya Mt Hiei 10th-16th c 7th-10th c N 0 0 80 miles 120 kms 2 The Japanese Heartland, 600-1500 Chinese culture and Buddhist arts, 7th-9th c/trade with China 8th-15th c artists fleeing civil war in Kyoto, 15th c religious pilgrimages movement of Korean culture lacquerware kiln sites paintings, Buddhist and secular sculpture, Buddhist and secular calligraphy papermaking textiles furniture metalwork armour and in the fifteenth century white porcelain ware became widespread in the peninsula. Lacquered objects included ritual vessels and statuary as well as daily utensils, since neither Korea nor Japan produced glass during this period. Most metalwork was small in scale and was used for religious objects, swords or horse trappings. ART AND SOCIETY The political consolidations of the seventh century led to the development of urban centres. Kyongju became the capital of the Korean state of Unified Silla in the seventh century; in Japan. Nara (called Heijokyo) was founded in the eighth century, and Kyoto (called Heiankyo) in the ninth century. These cities followed the pattern of Tang China’s imperial capital, Chang’an. They were laid out in a grid pattern of streets and densely populated residential areas. Large Buddhist temples, government buildings and imperial palaces and gardens were closely modelled on Chinese examples and furnished with imported goods or locally produced artwork that copied Chinese-style paintings, sculpture, metalwork, textiles and ceramics. The Shosoin imperial repository in Nara has survived as a time-capsule containing luxury goods from the time of Emperor Shomu (r.724–49), with items from Persia, Central Asia and China clearly demonstrating the extent of international trade along the Silk Road. By the tenth century, however, Korea and Japan had begun to change these imported traditions, establishing distinctive styles and artistic production lineages. In 918 the Koryo Dynasty replaced declining Silla leadership in Korea and relocated the capital to Kaesong, which became the new cultural centre for the peninsula until 1394. Buddhism continued to flourish in Korea, with the construction of extensive temple compounds and the production of printed and illustrated sutras. A new sect of distinctly Korean Buddhism was established by the monk Chinul (1158–1210), and in 1234 movable metal type was first used to print Buddhist texts. During the tenth century, the Japanese aristocracy developed an elaborate court culture (now considered a ‘classic’ age) with new aesthetic concepts that would influence 2 MOST OF JAPAN’S TRADE with China and Korea flowed through the Inland Sea to the urban centres of Kyoto and Nara. These imperial capitals imported continental arts and also produced objects for use by aristocrats, as well as the Buddhist temples which were located in, and near, these cultural centres. Japanese arts for the next 1000 years. While Kyoto remained the imperial capital from 794 to 1868, Kamakura and Hiraizumi emerged in the late twelfth century as political and cultural centres in the eastern provinces of Japan. INDEPENDENT TRADITIONS Due to political unrest in China, Korea and Japan both reduced their contacts with the mainland from the eleventh century, resulting in artistic developments that were independent of Chinese traditions. Distinctive ceramic techniques and forms, for example twelfthcentury inlaid celadons, evolved in Korea. New calligraphy and painting styles were created in Japan. While temple and palace architecture in both countries continued to follow Chinese prototypes, different types of secular residential buildings were constructed that better suited their climates and lifestyles. Sculptural production in both countries was still closely associated with Buddhism, but now hereditary workshops independent of the temples developed in Japan with particular artistic styles maintained over many generations. In 1392 the Yi (Choson) Dynasty was established in Korea, and the capital was moved to Seoul two years later. A gradual shift of artistic patronage from Buddhist temples to imperial court and Neo-Confucian institutions followed. Also in 1392, recent political turmoil in Japan was resolved with Kyoto resuming its place as the political and cultural centre under the Ashikaga military dictatorship. During the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries China again influenced artistic production in Korea and Japan, especially in architecture and painting. Trade missions carried goods among various ports in East Asia, with both raw materials and finished artworks being imported and exported. Japan sent gold and gold-leafed paintings to China and Korea, while Korea traded gold, silver, paper, ink sticks and fan paintings to China for textiles, porcelains, books and musical instruments. Japanese Zen temples were sending monks to study in China and to bring back Chinese paintings, ceramics and lacquerware, much of which became associated with the social rituals of the tea ceremony. ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 140 with either thin fine lines or thicker modulated brushwork. Calligraphy was considered a major art form, and a close relationship between image and text is found in both religious and secular paintings. Buddhist sculptures, executed in a variety of media, followed Chinese models. Extant examples of non-Buddhist sculpture are rare, although in Japan some Shinto deities were depicted as court figures and some portrait statues were made for memorial services. Some stylized images of deer, dogs, or ‘Chinese lions’ in wood or stone have also survived. Furniture was primarily low tables and cabinets, for both Koreans and Japanese sat on the floor in private and public buildings. Textiles included both cotton and silk, used for clothing and interior decorations in residential and government buildings. Glazed and unglazed ceramics were locally produced; imported Chinese ceramics were highly prized and copied. In the eleventh century distinctive pale green celadon wares were first produced in Korea for court and Buddhist temple use, plastered walls and raised flooring (often surfaced with tile, dressed stone or polished wood), were used for government-sponsored structures, such as palaces and Buddhist temples. Less important buildings were also post and beam structures, built to withstand earthquakes, although roofed with lighterweight materials like reeds or thatch. Paintings followed Chinese prototypes, using ink and/or mineral pigments on silk or paper, which was then mounted in album, hand scroll or hanging-scroll formats. Within compositions, images were commonly outlined JAPAN AND KOREA 600-1500 140˚ 30˚ 130˚ 40˚ AINU HUNTERGATHERER CULTURE AINU HUNTER- GATHERER CULTURE AINU HUNTER- GATHERER CULTURESeoul (14th-16th c) Kaesong (10th-14th c) Kyongju Hakata Nara Kamakura Hiraizumi Ise Kyoto Echizen Seto Waifu Yamaguchi Okayama Gifu Wakamatsu SanageBizen Kanazawa Inuyama Odawara Tokoname Shigaraki Iga Matsumoto Tamba Sakai Negoroji Nam-gang Han-g ang Posong-gang Yello w Rive r Tu men Ya lu Amur C h’ongch’on-gang L.Biwa E A S T S E A S E A O F O K H O T S K E A S T C H I N A S E A Y E L L O W S E A KOREA BAY BO HAI P A C I F I C O C E A N KOREA STRAIT Mt Fuji Mt Koya Y E Z O KYUSHU SHIKOKU H O N S H U RY U K YU IS O S U M I IS C H I N A JAPAN K O R E A M A N C H U R I A Silla 668-918 Koryo 918-1392 Choson 1392-1910 N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 1 Japan and Korea, 600-1500 frontier of Japan, c.600 frontier of Japan, c.800 frontier of Japan, c.1000 Chinese culture and Buddhist arts, 7th-9th c Chinese culture and Buddhist arts, 8th-15th c Indian Buddhist arts, 8th c pottery kilns Koryo kiln sites lacquerware papermaking furniture, fine textiles metalwork paintings, Buddhist and secular Buddhist sculpture calligraphy book-printing centres major surviving castles, pre-Edo period BY THE EIGHTH CENTURY both Korea and Japan had direct, though limited, contacts with China and India. All art forms were influenced by continental models, but from the ninth to twelfth centuries Japan developed distinctly different art forms (kana calligraphy, yamato-e scroll painting, and Shinto arts), while Korea created a culture that refined and altered Chinese prototypes. MATERIALS AND TECHNIQUES In architecture, Chinese-style post-and-beam wooden structures, with clay tile roofs, 1 FROM THE SEVENTH CENTURY onwards, both Japan and Korea absorbed artistic influences from China, Central Asia and India, especially in Buddhist arts. Court culture in both countries was modelled on Chinese examples, although distinctive regional tastes and styles evolved. During periods of political unrest, such as the eleventh century, there was a tendency for more independent traditions to evolve in both Japan and Korea. Artistic production and patronage in Japan centered on the Kansai area (Nara and Kyoto) of the main island, while Korean cities developed along the coasts (Kyongju and Seoul). SEATED BUDDHA, with Bodhisattvas and guardian figures, Sokkuram Cave, near Kyongju, Korea, c.751–74. Buddhist sculpture in Korea and Japan was modelled after Chinese and Indian examples, which were either imported statues or iconographic drawings, reflecting international artistic styles. Images were created in a variety of media – carved stone (as in this example) or wood, polychromed clay or lacquer on wood structures, or cast bronze and iron. The idealized forms of these deities followed a strict iconography, but the facial features and clothing often reflected regional styles. SOUTHEAST ASIA 600–1500 143 130˚ 0˚ 10˚ 120˚110˚100˚ Pasai Aceh Trengganu Pattani Perlak (Marco Polo, 1292) Samudra (Ibn Battuta, 1341) Tomb of Sultan Malik Al-Saleh (1297) (Chen Ho, 1490, Don Afonse de Albuquerque, 1510) Pedir (Ludovico di Varthema, c. 1506) Malacca Cirebon Kutai Demak Great Mosque of Demak (1477) Tomb of Sunan Kalijaga (c. 1460) (1549) Sunan Muria Sunan Ampel Tomb of Sunan Bayat (1530s) Sunan Gunungiati Aceh Sultan (1421) Tomb of Sunan Giri Syekh Maghribi (1419) Sunan Kudus Sunan Bonang (1525) (c. 1525) Sunan Giri Sunan Drajat First Mosque on Ambon (1405?) Macassar Buton Brunei Sulu Tidore Banjarmasin Gresik Banten (1479) (1550) B O R N E O S U M A T R A P H I L I P P I N E S I N D O N E S I A MALAY PENINSULA JAVA BALI LOMBOK SUMBAWA SULAWESI SUMBA FLORES TIM O R BURU SERAM SULU ARCHIPELAGO HALMAHERA TIDORE BACAN TERNATE BANJARMASIN ARU ACEH KUTAI JAILOLO BA N DA S E A T IM O R S E A M OLUCCASSEA ANDAMAN SEA STRAITOFMALACC A JAVA SEA C E L E B E S S E A From India earliest evidence of Islam on Java, 11021410 1480 1530 1530 1580 1605 1525 1525 1460 1460 1460 1500 1303? 1410 1290 1520 1400 (14th century) (16th century) N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 2 ISLAM BEGAN TO MAKE INROADS in coastal Southeast Asia in the thirteenth century. Court art preserved many Hindu influences, but in the coastal trading cities figurative art forms were displaced by geometric and calligraphic decorative principles. By 1500 Malacca had become the most important of these trading polities in the entire Malay Archipelago, controlling the trade with China, Vietnam, the Islamic sultanates in the Spice Islands, Siam, India and the Arab world. It dominated Asian commerce and rivalled, and perhaps surpassed, the supremacy of Venice and other European ports. WAYANG KULIT SHADOW PUPPET from Java, in leather, wood and paint, thought to be the hero Aruna. The wayang kulit style of puppetry was at its peak in the northern coastal region of Java in the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries. Performances based on the Hindu epic Mahabharata lasted through the night. state. Srivijaya therefore left few architectural monuments to its past greatness in Sumatra, although numerous inscriptions and smaller monuments have been identified that demonstrate both the Indian character of the state and its economic might. In the eighth century the Sailendra dynasty established itself as a ruling class and expanded the kingdom’s influence into central Java. Here a succession of rulers established their courts and built temples that served simultaneously as Hindu temples and as cult shrines to the king’s ancestors. With their rich agrarian base in central Java, the Sailendras initiated an ambitious building programme that involved construction of dozens of Hindu temples, or candi. For example, from about 680 to 780 they built a complex of some 40 towering stone candi on the Dieng plateau. Most temples had statues of Shiva or other Hindu gods. In about 775 some of the Sailendra rulers accepted Buddhism, which became the state religion. They transformed several earlier stone or brick Hindu temples into Buddhist shrines. The best-known of these is Borobudur, which consists of a series of ascending galleries and stupas, capped by a hollow temple symbolizing nirvana. This cosmological model of Buddhist religion was adopted for other Southeast Asian stupas – for example at Pagan in Burma. During the Hindu renaissance after 832, Javanese rulers moved their capital to another site in central Java and continued to pursue an active temple-building programme. The largest and most important of these was the Prambanan temple complex. In the tenth century the Javanese monarchs moved their seat of power to eastern Java. This kingdom became known as Majapahit and established its royal palace, or kraton, on the Brantas River delta. This location offered Majapahit an opportunity to control both its agrarian base as well as inter-island trade, which it expanded from the tenth century. The late eighth century saw the florescence of the Khmer Empire in Cambodia, with its political, economic and religious centre at Angkor. Khmer religion became a blend of an indigenous cult of ancestor worship and Hindu religious forms that bestowed magical and divine power on the monarch. The most important of the Khmer temple complexes was at Angkor Wat, started in the ninth century by Yasovarman, but periodically expanded by subsequent kings. Some rulers accepted Buddhism and built a Buddhist shrine, but many of these were reconfigured as Hindu shrines when a Hindu leader came to power. The arts flourished under successful leadership, 2 The Rise of Islam in the Malay Archipelago, 1100-1550 extent of Majapahit’s control in 1400 Malacca at its greatest territorial extent, 1488 sphere of Ternate’s influence, 16th century areas converted to Islam by 1450 areas converted to Islam by 1550 main routes for the spread of Islam Dates of conversion to Islam important mosques important Muslim tombs important foreign visitors who witnessed process of Islamization 1297 a fact that is nowhere as visible as with the kingdom’s grandiose architecture. But after 1400 the Angkor empire disintegrated and the temple complex at Angkor Wat was abandoned. THE RISE OF ISLAM By the thirteenth century Islam had made inroads in many coastal commercial centres in the Malay Archipelago, including Malacca on the Malay Peninsula, and a series of port communities on the north coast of Java. In the next two centuries, Islam expanded as far east as the two competing sultanates of Ternate and Tidore in the Moluccas. These eastern sultanates could mount fleets of more than 200 ships, which they used to control their own part of the lucrative inter-island trade. The Hindu empire of Majapahit ultimately collapsed under the economic competition with the Islamic communities on the north coast of Java, and with this power-shift both art and architecture in Java changed. Art at the kraton would once again become a syncretic blend that represented a mix of the new religion and the old, while in the coastal cities art took on much more Islamic forms. In 1509 the Portuguese fleet reached Malacca, immediately recognizing the city’s wealth and economic potential. Portuguese influence expanded into India and Southeast Asia; Malacca was seized in 1511. This shift of power in Malacca would have a gradual but profound impact on economics, religion and art throughout the Malay Archipelago. ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 142 IN THE MILLENNIUM after 600 Southeast Asia was transformed by the rise of Hindu and Buddhist kingdoms, as well as by the rise of Islam, which found its first converts at the north end of Sumatra during the eleventh and twelfth centuries. From this humble beginning Islam gradually moved through the archipelago and the Malay peninsula, transforming the highly figurative art tradition whose inspiration was from India into much more geometric forms that blended indigenous themes syncretically with Muslim ones. THE HINDU STATES In the early seventh century the maritime empire of Srivijaya emerged as a major economic and political force in insular Southeast Asia. In many respects it was an Indic state that used Sanskrit, Hindu forms of ritual, and an Indian style of government. Originally, the centre of Srivijaya’s political and economic power was in Sumatra, but this kingdom had no single capital city. It operated more as a federation of trading ports on the fringes of large forests rather than a centralized SOUTHEAST ASIA 600-1500 10° 120° 120˚110˚100˚90˚80˚30˚ 20˚ 10˚ 0˚ Pagan (849) (post-1287) Pegu (825) Chiengmai Sukhothai (13th century) Palembang (Srivijaya) Jambi (Malayu) Singhasari Kutai Nakhon Pathom Angkor Gua Gajah (11th century) Gunung Kawi (late 11th century) Mauro Takus (11th-12th century) Angkor Wat (12th century) Preah Koh (9th century) Mison Yasodharapura (9th century) Kulen (8th century) Phimai (11th century) Phra Prang Sam Yot Indrapura I N D I A C H I N A SUMATRA B O R N E O E A S T I N D I E S PH ILIPPIN ES CEYLON M ALAY PENINSULA PAGAN CHAMPA N A M V I E T FORMOSA LUZON M O LU CCA S SULAWESI (CELEBES) FLORES SUMBAWA SUMBA KHMER EMPIRE BALI LOMBOK HAINAN PALAWAN TIMOR NORTH SUMATRA WEST SUMATRA WEST JAVA EAST JAVA CENTRAL JAVA Irrawaddy Salween Red River Mek ong ChaoPhraya I N D I A N O C E A N GULF OF THAILAND J AVA S E A F L O R E S S E A C E L E B E S S E A S U L U S E A S O U T H C H I NA S E A GULFOF TONGKING BA N DA S E A T I M O R S E A ARAFURA SEA BAY O F B E N G A L STRAIT O F M ALACCA ANDAMAN SEA To India To China To China To eastern Indonesia To India To Europe To Thailand Muslim traders from India and Arabia (11th century onwards) N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 The Rise of Indianized States, 700-1400 eastern limits of HinduBuddhist state formation eastern limits of HinduBuddhist cultural influence centres for the dissemination of Hindu-Buddhist art, religion and culture Hindu temple sites Buddhist temple sites main centres of power extent of Srivijaya‘s influence in the 8th century Khmer Empire Pagan areas under Majapahit‘s dominance, c.1350 areas under Majapahit naval control, c.1350 international trade networks, 7th century trade routes active during the Majapahit period (10th-14th centuries) INSET Kalasan Sukuh (1430) Ceta Ngawen (900) Piaosan (9th century) Gedong Songo Prambanan (9th century) (1470) (778) Borobudur Yogyakarta (790) (850) Medut (850) Pawon Dieng Complex (8th century)(8th century) Pantaran (1369) Selamangleng (11th century) Singhasari (12th century) Kedaton (14th century) Jago (13th century) Kidal (13th century) J A V A 1 FROM THE SEVENTH CENTURY the highly figurative arts of the state of Srivijaya, based in Sumatra, reflected a blend of Hinduism and local ancestor cults. Rulers in the Sailendra dynasty shifted the focus of Srivijaya to Java after 700, where in the latter part of the century they made Buddhism the state religion and transformed earlier Hindu temples into Buddhist shrines, including Borobudur. A Hindu renaissance after 832 was centred on Prambanan in central Java, then in the tenth century on the eastern Javan kingdom that became known as Majapahit. The Khmer Empire of Cambodia saw a parallel blend of ancestor cult and Hinduism in competition with Buddhism. BOROBUDUR IN JAVA IS STILL THE LARGEST Buddhist stupa ever built. This colossal mountain of stone contains 1500 bas-reliefs and niches for more than 400 statues of the Buddha arranged in six ascending tiers. These panels depict the progression of the Buddha from depravity to enlightenment. Each gallery is faced with exterior and interior reliefs. The base is more than 120 metres (390 ft) along each side and the structure stands about 35 metres (115 ft) above the base. THE PACIFIC 600–1500 145 hierarchies, with hereditary chiefs and a system of ranked clans. Micronesian elites sponsored elaborate architectural projects, fortification and religious centres. Many of these contained carved stone statues and other megaliths. In Palau, construction of elaborate terraces began in many sites starting around 500 and continued until 1400. Great carved faces and other megaliths are poorly dated in Palau, but probably belong to this period. On Yap in the western Carolines, local elites extended their political control around 1400 to form an empire that extracted tribute from islanders on the smaller atolls under their control. Local elites competed over the ownership of the most remarkable stone money in the world – huge stone disks with holes at their centre. On Guam and several of the other Mariana Islands clans erected houses on stone columns (latte). POLYNESIAN HIERARCHIES But while Melanesia was diversifying into many hundreds of distinctive cultural traditions, Polynesians were developing stratified societies headed by hereditary chiefs, nobles and priests. Before 1500, none of the larger islands had a single chief, king or other centralized political authority. As a result, on most of the larger island groups, artistic traditions typically celebrated local deities and ancestors. During this period art became more dramatic, with larger stone and wood sculpture. These sculptures and the temple complexes in which they were erected generally provide a cosmological map that metaphorically paralleled the sociopolitical structure of individual societies. Social stratification brought competition among chiefly families, which often broke out into warfare between districts. Stratification also brought with it major building projects for temples (heiau) in the Hawaiian Islands, with large wooden sculptures representing local deities. Each of the main islands seems to have developed its own local style of carving, most examples of which were destroyed by A A A A A A A A A Ahu 'Akivi 1300 Rano Raraku 1200 Ahu Naunau 1200 'Orongo Ahu Vinapu Ahu Akahanga Ahu Tongariki Ahu Te Pito Kura Ana o Keke Poike Ditch Puna Pau Ahu Tepeu Ahu Tahai Ma'unga Orito 'Orongo 1400 S O U T H PA C I F I C O C E A N RANO KAO POIKE RANO AROI Ma'unga Terevaka Ma'unga Pui MOTU NUI MOTU ITI HANGA ROA HANGA OETO OVAHE MOTU MAROTIRI Ceremonial village Topknot quarry Statue quarry N 0 0 2 miles 3 kms The Megalithic Sculptures of Easter Island, 1100-1500 quarry archaeological site temple platforms (ahu) 2 A 2 THE STATUE CULT that emerged on Easter Island about 1100 began with small statues quarried from the soft tufa of the volcano Rano Raraku. These were transported to ahu platforms. Over time, these platforms became larger and more elaborate, often incorporating dressed basalt and red scoria in their facings. More than 324 moai were completed before competition between chiefdoms depleted the resources of the island, leading to a social and economic collapse. missionaries and Hawaiian converts to Christianity in the early nineteenth century. As in the Hawaiian archipelago, the seven mid-sized islands that make up the Marquesas were never politically unified. By about 1100 Marquesans began a period of expansion. New architectural features emerged, including house platforms of stone, temple foundations, and rectangular courts that served as dance or feast centers. It was during this period that inter-group rivalries intensified. From about 1400 megalithic-style house platforms frequently incorporated large anthropomorphic statues. These stone figures had developed independently from similar carvings in Hawaii, Easter Island, or New Zealand. On Rapa Nui (Easter Island) chiefs carved and erected huge stone figures (moai) set on temple platforms (ahu). More than 245 ahu platforms were constructed and 324 moai were completed before chiefly competition overtaxed and degraded the environmental resources of the island leading to the gradual socio-economic collapse of the society during the decadent period from about 1500 to 1722 . Nearly all of the 200 or so unfinished statues still in the quarries or on the slopes nearby date to the period around 1500. In New Zealand, warfare was more common and chiefly hierarchies were never as powerful as on most of the other Polynesian islands. Competition among clans led to the efflorescence of wood carving. Most Maori carvings were figurative representations of clan ancestors that were important in the local religious traditions, which elsewere in Polynesia reflected and supported the intertwined political, social and religious hierarchies. The beginning of small carved greenstone figures and pendants (called hei tiki) dates to this period, largely using greenstone quarried on the South Island. MONOLITHIC STATUES (moai), three of 70 erected at Rano Raraku Quarry, Easter Island between about 1000 and 1600. Excavation reveals that some of these figures, of which the heads only are visible here, stand on paved platforms, suggesting that they were to remain beside the quarry. Others were intended for removal to one of about 100 ahu temple platforms. On each ahu stood 1–15 moai, facing inland to a ceremonial courtyard used in ancestor worship. The average height of the moai, including head and torso, was 4–5 metres (13–16 ft). The moai statues became larger and changed style over the centuries. Some had simple, sleek lines; others were complex representations of the ancestors. One style of moai was capped by a large, red topknot, made of a cylinder of red volcanic tufa. ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 144 IN THE MILLENNIUM following 600, while Aboriginal art continued in isolation in Australia, societies throughout the Pacific continued to diversify, developing their own distinctive local cultural and artistic traditions. Archaeologists, anthropologists and linguists continue to debate whether the remarkable Polynesian expansion into peripheral Polynesia during this period was by accident or design. Recent interpretations suggest that, rather than intentionally setting off to discover new worlds, settlement was by a complex pattern of drift voyaging. Sophisticated navigational skills allowed the early Polynesians to be flexible voyagers, even enabling them to make occasional contacts between such distant places as Hawaii and Tahiti that would have facilitated artistic and cultural interaction. DIVERSE CULTURES In Melanesia, more than a thousand different ethnic groups developed, each speaking a distinct, mutually unintelligible language. Little is known of the diverse art traditions that emerged in Melanesia at this time, but they reflected the egalitarian nature of these communities and their political independence. Everywhere Melanesian art was closely intertwined with diverse local rituals, dances and ceremonies, nearly all of which were aimed at placating ancestral ghosts, local spirits and minor deities. In Micronesia cultural and artistic diversification was less pronounced, in large part because these tiny coral atolls and small raised islands established extensive interisland exchange relations. Throughout Micronesia communities developed social THE PACIFIC 600-1500 135˚150˚165˚180˚165˚150˚135˚120˚ 45˚ 30˚ 15˚ 0˚ 15˚ 30˚ 45˚ Aitape Mussua 1000 Palau 500 Palau Lamotrek 1000 Yap Nukuoro 800 Kosrae 500 Kapingamarangi 1300 Nan Madol 900 Tuvalu 1100 Tinian Stone columns Guam Stone columns Uki 1100 Nendo 1500 Mateone 1400 Vuda Point 900 Wakaya 1350 Mt.Camel 1200 Papatowai 1150 Shag River 1000 Washpool 1200 Wairau Bar 1150 Burial ground Mauke 1000 Mangaia 1000 Moorea AD 600 Tahuata 750 Easter Island (Rapa Nui) 1000 Easter Island (Rapa Nui) 1100 Henderson I. 900 CHATHAM I. Mangareva Ua Huka 100 Hiva Oa 100 Waiahukini 800 Lapakahi 1000 Puako Petroglyphs Fanning Island (Tabuaeran) 660 Anahula 1200 Moloka‘i 600 Pi’ilanihale Heiau 1300 Temple Kahikinui 1400 Nuku Hiva 700 Nuku Hiva 1500 Huahine 800Maupiti 900 Burial Rarotonga 1500 Aitutaki 950 Anatom (Aneityum) 1050 Lakeba 1100 Collingwood Bay Roviana Motupore 1200 1000 S O U T H P A C I F I C O C E A N C O R A L S E A ARAFURA SEA SOLOMON ISLANDS TONGA SAMOA COOK ISLANDS SOCIETY ISLANDS H AW AIIAN ISLANDS CAROLINE ISLANDS MARSHALL ISLANDS GILBERT ISLANDS KERMADEC ISLANDS MARIANAS ISLANDS M E L A N E S I A M I C R O N E S I A NEW HEBREDES (VANUATU) EASTER ISLAND (RAPA NUI) MARQUESAS ISLANDS A U S T R A L I A NEW GUINEA NEW BRITAIN NEW ZEALAND NEW CALEDONIA FIJI c.1000 c.1000 c.1000 c.1000 c.1000 c.1200 N 0 0 1000 miles 1500 kms 1 The Polynesian Expansion Polynesian triangle Yapese Empire expansion of human settlement, c.1000-1200 Archaeological sites, with earliest dates where available: village or settlement cave site or rockshelter fortified site midden megaliths cultivation other important sites important sources of New Zealand greenstone 1 AT THE BEGINNING OF THIS PERIOD Polynesian communities were well-established only in the central archipelagos of Tonga and Samoa, with relatively young communities in the Marquesas, the Society Islands, Hawaii and Easter Island. In southern areas new settlements began to appear around 1000, as Polynesians from the Society and northern Cook Islands established themselves on the uninhabited islands of Mangareva and Mangaia and in New Zealand and the Kermadec group. Later, settlers from New Zealand would establish themselves on the Chatham Islands. KUKAILIMOKU, the Hawaiian god of war. Carved in wood, probably towards the end of the eighteenth century, this monumental figure comes from the Kona coast of Hawaii Island. It stood 2.36 metres (91 ins) tall, facing the altar in a temple composed of walled stone platforms. It was a focus of ritual activities. Its expressive face projects a sense of contained energy, as do its flexed knees and elbows, slightly turned rather than presenting a full frontal torso. the Pacific. Beads, buttons and silken threads had the same appeal for them as coral and mother-of-pearl did for Chinese and Europeans. The eyes of all involved in the worldwide trade, whether buyers or sellers, consumers or producers, were sharpened by growing rivalry in the pursuit of quality products, and in this climate of heightened sensual alertness all the visual arts took on a new prominence globally. SIGHT ITSELF WAS A RESOURCE THAT WAS EXPLOITED to a new degree. The Italians showed how a knowledge of optics could help architects, sculptors and especially painters with their tasks, from simply describing reality to amazing the viewer with trompe l’oeil deceptions. The same knowledge was used to develop new aids to vision. Glass lenses made by the Dutch and fitted to telescopes and microscopes brought a new understanding, both of the minutiae of nature on earth and the grand order of the universe, while in England Newton could use the prism to break light down into a spectrum of colours. These discoveries were immediately recognized far to the East, where the Chinese emperor welcomed both European knowledge and European artists. EYES WERE OPENING EVERYWHERE, and the growth of larger and larger towns meant greater numbers of potential viewers and a greater concentration of visual attention. By the eighteenth century cities such as Naples, Paris and London set new standards for size and splendour, as did the capitals of the Ottoman and Safavid dominions, Istanbul and Isfahan, and the Chinese cities of Beijing and Nanjing. But the largest of all was Edo, modern Tokyo. In the Japanese capital large numbers of refined craftsmen and artists fed the privileged elite’s passion for display, while printmakers, as in China and western Europe, met the needs of the less well-off. These and other cities also provided the labour for the increasing massproduction of often highly ornamented ceramics and textiles. In Asia these products were often sent for sale in Europe. China exported pottery, India cotton, and the Ottoman Empire carpets, setting examples soon to be followed, and surpassed, by Britain. There, by 1800, the combined impact of the inflow of wealth generated by the use of slave labour in Caribbean colonies, the rapid growth of population supported by improved agriculture at home, and industrial mechanization made possible by the exploitation of local coal and iron, brought the beginning of the large-scale production of what had previously been luxury goods for a greatly enlarged market. OUTSIDE EUROPE AND ASIA the patterns of mutual influence were more complex. In the vast Spanish and Portuguese colonies of Central and South America in the western hemisphere, and smaller colonies such as Goa and the Philipines in the East, wealth was invested in the building of churches, which were decorated by indigenous craftsmen with a combination of European and local forms and techniques. In West Africa and elsewhere the influence of taste was reversed as local rulers, enriched by the trade in slaves and other commodities, expanded their use of cast bronze and carved wood, often based on European models. The new phenomenon with the deepest long-term impact, however, was the arrival, even in the remotest communities, of cheaper and more effective new tools from the factories of Britain. INLAID DECORATION on the Taj Mahal, Agra, India, 1631-48. T HE MAKING OF ART HAD ALWAYS BEGUN with the exploitation of resources, and its use involved display, but after 1500 both took on a new importance. This was largely as a result of the expansion of global exchange networks. If trade overland and via coastal shipping had been dominant before 1500, especially in and around the land mass of Asia and Europe, new developments in shipbuilding and navigation for the first time allowed commerce across the oceans. Magellan’s expedition around the world in 1519–22, linking Europe to the Americas, the islands of the Pacific, Asia and Africa, showed what could be done. The volume of goods carried increased, speeds of transport accelerated, and movement could be in any direction permitted by wind and current. Possession of superior firearms meant that trading privileges and rights of settlement that previously would have had to be negotiated could now be forcibly imposed. Those countries and individuals that were in a position to exploit the new situation – first the Portuguese and Spanish and later the Dutch, French and English – could gain access to an unprecedented range of natural resources, from slaves and animals to plants and minerals. They, and those they traded with, could also learn from each other how to use the art and artefacts they made from these materials in a competitive display. Such competitive displays had developed earlier in evolution as a desirable substitute for physical conflict, and now that wars between humans had become so destructive, as the Thirty Years’ War in Germany most tragically demonstrated, they became a particularly wise investment. Competitive displays took place among the Ming and Qing emperors of China, the Mughal rulers of India, the Ottoman sultans, the tsars of Russia and the monarchs and ecclesiastics, princes and merchants of the rest of Europe. They all vied with each other in the collection and display both of precious materials, such as gold and silver from South America, gems from India, hard timbers from Southeast Asia, ivory from Africa and furs from North America and Siberia, and of art in which these and other materials were used, from ‘cabinets of curiosities’ and buildings to sculptures and clothes. Also involved were the princes, chiefs and other members of the smaller communities with which they dealt, first in areas such as Indonesia and Sub-Saharan Africa, and then, in the eighteenth century, in more remote places, such as the islands of ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 1500-1800 NORTH AMERICA 1500–1800 149 and loosely organized hunting tribes of the Inuit (Eskimo) and the Subarctic; organized confederacies such as the Iroquois in the Woodlands; ranked hierarchies on the Northwest Coast; family bands and very localized groups in California; nomadic and highly democratic hunting bands and tribes on the Plains; and kiva (ceremonial) organizations of the Southwestern Pueblos. EUROPEAN EXPANSION Aggressive expansionist and trade policies of Europeans began, however, to undermine the material culture and beliefs of many of these groups. Also, in some areas tribes had become dependent on the supply of trade goods such as weapons and ammunition, the withdrawal of which left these groups without the means for hunting or defence. The effect that European policy had on the tribes was largely dependent on which European power happened to be dominant in the area. English policy was one of both colonization and trade. The growth of the English colonies and shifting politics and aggression between Britain and France led to the decimation of the Algonquian tribes of the Woodlands by the mid-1600s. Other tribes of the region, especially the Creeks who were already adept agriculturalists, adapted to the changing conditions by adopting English farming techniques and livestock, items of English dress, and even used English names. In fact, so successful were they at these adaptations that the English married into their leading families and during the eighteenth BROWN BEAR CLAN COAT, CHILKAT. Split-representation, in which a figure is depicted as if split and laid out so all its features can be seen simultaneously, was a characteristic element in Northwest Coast art. The animal featured on this Chilkat shirt is the Brown Bear, an important clan crest of the Tlingit tribes, which also appeared in carved form on crest helmets and on totem poles and house posts. Such an elaborate costume would have been reserved for socially significant occasions and worn by a member of a prestigious household. 2 THE FIRST EXPEDITIONS TO NORTH AMERICA were ones of discovery and a search for knowledge. The uncharted regions of the continent offered unparalleled scope for the advancement of scientific knowledge as well as promising opportunities for trade. Following first contacts, numerous European nations vied with each other for control of North America’s resources. Although the fur trade dominated the central and northern regions and the north Pacific coast, interest on the eastern seaboard was in land for settlement while the Spanish in the Southwest sought silver. 60˚70˚80˚90˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ Annapolis Jamestown Roanoke Cotachiqui Plymouth L’Anse aux Meadows Brattahlid Mississippi StLa wrence Missouri Colorado Mackenzie RioGrande Arkansas A T L A N T I C O C E A N PA C I F I C O C E A N HUDSON BAY BAFFIN BAY L A B R A D O R S E A B E R I N G S E A G U L F O F M E X I C O ROCKYMOUNTAINS A PPALACHIAN M TS CUBA SAN SALVADOR N 0 0 400 miles 500 kms European explorers: Norse expeditions, 1000-1013 Columbus, 1492 Cabot, 1497 Verrazzano, 1524 Narváez, Cabeza de Vaca, 1529-36 de Soto, 1539-43 Coronado, 1540-42 2 European Exploration and Contacts European penetration: English Spanish French Dutch Swedish Russian British seeking Northwest Passage British fur trade Spanish trading posts, 1598-1821 French trading posts, 1604-1760 Hudson’s Bay Company, 1670-1869 Montreal fur trade, 1763-84 Northwest Company, 1784-1821 Russian trading posts, 1784-1867 century Alexander McGillivray, the son of a Scots trader and a half-French Creek mother, became the undisputed leader of the Creek Confederacy. Spanish incursions into the Southwest and California were driven by religious zeal and a search for wealth, leading to the establishment of missions and military governments in the area during the 1770s and the virtual loss of a Californian cultural identity. Although the Pueblo groups of the Southwest had nominally converted to Catholicism, they retained more of their beliefs and arts than groups in the other regions. They continued to conduct secret ceremonies in their underground kivas that featured elaborately masked and costumed kachina dancers. In other regions influence was expressed primarily through trade. The Hudson’s Bay Company agents, although dominating the fur trade in the north, were too widely scattered to alter the nomadic hunting life of the Subarctic groups, even though these tribes had become dependent on European weapons and other trade goods. Some changes, such as the replacement of birchbark containers by trade kettles, did occur but these were insufficient to cause massive upheaval. In fact, among the Athapascan tribes in the western reaches of the Subarctic material culture and beliefs underwent no significant change at all, while the tribes of the far north of the area, including the Inuit, were virtually unknown during this period and obtained trade items only through native intermediaries. Curiously, the area that most typifies the general perception of Native American culture and art was almost entirely a consequence of the late introduction of European trade items. This was the Great Plains, where mounted, nomadic buffalo hunting and warrior elites developed in the early 1700s after the introduction of guns from the east and Spanish horses from the south. Few of these tribes were original to the area. They came from all directions and formed a complex mix of culture traits. Flowing eagle feather war bonnets, for instance, came originally from the eastern Sioux, some decorative techniques such as quillwork were from the Woodlands, other ideas came from the south. They met on the Great Plains in a brilliant and spectacular, but short-lived, explosion of colour and motion. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 148 MOST OF THE EARLY North American cultures had evolved into the historic tribes by the time of European arrival and, for convenience, are generally grouped according to culture area. These culture areas are environmental niches that shaped the material arts and social organizations of the regions. For the most part these were developments of earlier cultural trends, and traditional materials and techniques were being practised well into the early historic period. There had, however, been some major population shifts immediately prior to 1500. In particular, the Mississippian groups of the Eastern Woodlands had waned and been replaced by the Algonquian tribes and the Iroquois Confederacy. Although these new occupants maintained Mississippian trade routes and farming traditions, they were more democratic and usually had elected leaders rather than hierarchical systems. In the Southwest, earlier groups had abandoned large settlements, possibly as a consequence of prolonged droughts, and coalesced into the more compact, modern Pueblo tribes of the Rio Grande Valley: the Hopi and Zuni. MATERIALS AND TECHNIQUES Traditional materials such as skins and furs, feathers and quillwork, basketry, pottery and weaving continued to be utilized throughout this period, although these began to be supplemented by new trade materials and techniques introduced by Europeans. In most cases these changes were positive ones. Northwest Coast woodcarving reached new heights after the introduction of metal bladed tools replaced the earlier use of stone and shell blades. The new ease of carving led to a rapid increase in the production of ceremonial and clan items, and former carved house posts evolved into much larger free standing totem poles. Trade beads, copper cones, and small bells were important trade items, often used to supplement rather than replace earlier quill embroidery. Ribbon appliqué was a new technique introduced to the Woodland areas, while the ready availability of commercial dyes introduced vibrant colour. The Navajo of the Southwest obtained sheep and silver that started the jewellery and blanket traditions for which they are renowned, and at the same time began a change from nomadic hunting to pastoral herding. All of these introductions and changes saw a floresence of Native American arts. CULTURE AND SOCIETY While the European presence remained small and dependent on favourable trade, the native cultures and beliefs remained stable and largely intact. There was a wide variety of native cultures: coastal NORTH AMERICA 1500-1800 BUFFALO HORN SOCIETY HEADDRESS. Blackfoot Feathers were used by Plains tribes as symbolic links with the forces of nature and were frequently given sacred meaning. This buffalo horn and feather headdress was worn by a shaman in the Buffalo Horn Society. 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ 60˚70˚80˚90˚100˚110˚ Beothuk Micmac Abnaki OnondagaErie Sauk Mohawk Delaware Nanticoke Calusa Cherokee Apalachee Timucua Chitimacha Washa Ute Zuni Navajo HopiYuma 13 4 5 2 12 13 15 16 17 18 20 21 Seri Biloxi Tunica Missouri Osage Quapaw Chickasaw Wichita Susquehanna Oneida Algonquian Seneca Cayuga Abitibi Tutelo Natchez Menominee Potawatomi Winnebago Illinois Miami Shawnee Fox Kickapoo Atakapa Karankawa Yaqui Papago W Apache 6 8 9 14 19 Mimbreño Tonto Havasupai Tarahumara Chiricahua Pericu Tonkawa Tawakoni Comanche Lipan Apache Waco Montagnais Tete de Boule Cree Naskapi Inuit Mistassini Cree East Greenland Eskimo Polar Eskimo Baffinland Eskimo Labrador Eskimo Southampton Eskimo Iglulik Eskimo Hare Mountain SaschutkenneHan Yellowknife Chipewyan Saulteaux Ojibwa Sekani Beaver Klickitat 7 10 Pend d’Oreille Flathead Coeur d’Alene Blackfoot Sarsi Bannock Spokan Wind River Shoshone Crow Piegan Hidatsa Assiniboin Mandan Yankton Dakota Santee Dakota Arikara Omaha Cheyenne Arapaho Pawnee Oto Kansa Kiowa Ponca Netsilik Eskimo Caribou Eskimo Dogrib Kaska Tahltan Tsimshian Tlingit Haida Tagish Carrier Gabrieleño Luiseño Mojave Diegueño Paipai Mono S Paiute N Paiute Gosiute Walapai Modoc Washo Maidu Slave Cree Swampy Cree Western Wood Cree Plains Cree Copper Eskimo Mackenzie Eskimo Pacific Eskimo Nunivak Eskimo Koyukon Ahtena Ingalik Tanana Kutchin Tanaina Tutchone St Lawrence Island Eskimo Kotzebue Sound Eskimo Aleut Aleut West Greenland Eskimo Passamaquoddy Malecite Penobscot Pennacook Mohican Nipmuc Massachuset Powhatan Catawba Chilcotin Bella Coola Bella Bella Kwakiutl Coast Salish Nisqually Nootka Makah Quinault Chehalis Chinook Tillamook Klamath Shasta Karok Yurok Hupa Wiyot Wintun Pamlico Tuscarora Cape Fear Miwok Pomo Chumash Chemehuevi Guaycura Cochimi Cusabo Great Lakes ATLANTIC OCEAN ARCTIC OCEAN HUDSON BAY BAFFIN BAY LABRADOR SEA GULF OF MEXICO GREENLAND 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 18 19 20 21 - Pima - Yavapai - Maricopa - Western Shoshone - Nez Percé - Mescalero Apache - Umatilla,Wailatpu - Acoma - Jicarilla Apache - Atsina - Rio Grande Pueblos - Caddo - Kichai - Oglala Sioux - Upper Creek - Choctaw - Mobile - Pensacola - Teton Dekota - Lower Creek - Huron N 0 0 400 miles 500 kms 1a Weaving suspended warp weaving true loom weaving 1b Carving wood and ivory carving stone carving clay modelling 1c Basketry coiled baskets twined baskets plaited baskets 1 THIS MAP SHOWS LOCATIONS OF TRIBES when they were first contacted, although this occurred much earlier in the east and Southwest than in central and northern regions. Following contact with Europeans, a number of the tribes were displaced and moved to new areas or became extinct. 1 Tribal North America clothing materials: mainly hide and fur mainly cotton hide, fur and various plant materials tribeHopi CENTRAL AMERICA 1500–1800 151 CHURCH OF SAN SEBASTIÁN AND SANTA PRISCA, TAXCO, built between 1748 and 1758 with money donated by José de la Borda, the owner of Taxco’s silver mine. It is one of the finest examples of Mexican Baroque with a façade that combines finely worked pink stone with plaster decoration that has detail picked out in gold. 10˚ 20˚ Acámbaro Tlalpujahua de Rayón Tepeapulco Tlaxcala San Martin Texmelucan Guanajuato Zacatecas León Irapuato (date?) Ajijic Guadalajara Querétaro San Miguel de Allende San Miguel Huautla Cartagena Coro Santo Domingo Isabella Erongaricuaro Uruapan Atlixco Huejotzingo Acapulco de Juárez (1523) 13 Jolalpan Tzicatlán Cholula San Martín Tepotzotlán Santa Casa de Loreto (Jesuit, 1584) Church of San Francisco Javier (1762) Tzintzuntzan Pátzcuaro San Luis Acatlán Quecholac Tecamachalco Oaxaca de Juárez Chapultenango Tecpatán Copainalá Chamula-Huistán Zinacantan Teopisca Amatenango Comayagua Tegucigalpa Portobelo Taboga Gracias León Antigua Guatemala City San Vicente Santo Domingo Yanhuitlan Axochiapan Cuernavaca Taxco Oaxtepec Chalcatzingo Chilapa Tepalcingo de Hidalgo (1532) Church of Jesús Nazareno Tlapa de Comonfort Jacona Cuitzeo Yuriria Morelia Ixmiquilpan Acolman de Nezahualcóyotl Actopan Ocotlan Atotonilco Santa Cruz San Pedro Tlaquepaque (date?) Tlayacapan Tepotzlán Santa Maria Tultepec Azcapotzalco Mexico City Zinacantepec Acapulco Zacatula Bogotá Tlalmanalco Texcoco de Mora Santo Tomás Xochimilco Puebla Izamal Mérida Motul de Carrillo Puerto Ticul Mani Hopelchén Havana Valladolid Santa Cruz Acatepec Veracruz Granada Panama City Atlixtac Zempoala Mississippi G U L F O F M E X I C O PA C I F I C O C E A N ATLANTIC OCEAN BAY OF CAMPECHE C A R I B B E A N S E AGULF OF HONDURAS GULF OF PANAMA SIERRA M ADRE CO RDILL ERA DE TALA M A N CA CORDILLERA ISABELIA HI S PA N I O L A B A H A M A S JAMAICA C U B A (1531) (1542) (1540) (1533) (1617) Cathedral (1496) (1496) 29 28 (16th c)1 3 32 Church of Santo Domingo Chapel of the Holy Sacrament Convent of San Gabriel 6 7 12 4 Convent of San Francisco Convent of San Miguel Arcángel (1550) Monastery of San Agustín 25 26 Monastery of San Francisco 8 14 16 22 21 Convent of San Pablo Apóstol 11 10 (1529) (16th c) (1533) (1534) (1555) (16th c) (1570) (16th c) (1555) (1539) (1547) (1580) 23 (1528) (16th c)9 (16th c) (1510)15 (16th c) (17th c) (1538) (16th c) (16th c) (1521) 2 (1558) (1577) (1546) 24 (16th c) (1532)27 (1542) (1531) (16th c) (1540)20 (1550)18 (16th c) 5 (1533) (16th c) (16th c) (16th c) (16th c) 17 Church of San Lucas (16th c) (16th c) (16th c)(1522) (16th c) (16th c) (16th c) (1590) (1614) (16th c)Church of San Miguel (16th c)Church of San Juan(16th c) (16th c)Church of San Agustín(16th c) (1537) (1539) (1544) (1632) Cathedral (1669) (1549) (18th c) (1524) Church and Convent of San Francisco El Pilar Cathedral (1703) Cathedral (1756) (1502) (1516) Customs House (1630) (1519)31 (1541) (16th c) (1524) (1596) (16th c) (1527) (1558) Cathedral Convent of San Miguel Arcángel (17th c)Mission of San Antonio (1542)Palace of the Governors Cathedral of San Ildefonso (1556) (1519)30 (1537) Virgin of Izamal Monastery Convent of San Bernardino (1519) 19(1570) SOUTH AMERICA N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 2 Spanish Colonial Architecture, 1500-1800 principal missions and monasteries: Franciscan Dominican Augustinian Spanish trade and colonial administrative centres gold mines silver mines 1- Palace of Cortés (1530) Cathedral of San Francisco (1529) Convent of La Asunción de María (1529) Chapel of San José 2 - Church of San Diego (1663) La Compañía (Jesuit, 1747) Church of San Cayetano (1765) La Valencia Silver Mine (1765) 3 - Cathedral of the Immaculate Conception (1562) Church of San Francisco (1550) 4 - Church of San Francisco Santa Rosa y Santa Clara Aqueduct (1726) 5 - Convent of San Francisco Chapel of La Magdalena (16th c) 6 - Cathedral of Our Lady of Asunción (16th c) Fortress of San Juan de Ulúa 7 - Basilica of La Magdalena Church of La Merced 8 - Chapel Real de Indias Convent of San Francisco 9 - Church of San Antonio Church of San Martín Convent of St John the Baptist (Augustinian) 10 - Cathedral (1560) Governor’s Palace (1643) Church of San Juan de Dios 11 - Church of Santa María Natívitas 12 - Cathedral (1535) El Carmen de Abajo (Carmelite, 1554) Priory of Santo Domingo (1570) Church of San Francisco (1575) Convent of Carmen (1596) Hermitage of Nuestra Señora de Guadalupe (1644) Basilica of the Virgin (1682) Hermitage of Santa Veracruz (Carmelite, 1696) 13 - Cathedral Fort San Diego (1617) 14 - Church and Monastery of San Francisco 15 - Church of San Sebastián and Santa Prisca (1758) 16 - Convent of Our Lady of Asunción 17 - Church of Santa María Convent of Las Rosas 18 - Metropolitan Cathedral (1563) Palacio Nacional Sagrario Chapel (1749) 19 - Convent of All Saints Aqueduct 20 - College of San Nicolás (1540) La Compañía (1546) Basilica Nuestra Señora de la Salud (1550) 21 - Convent of Santa María Magdalena 22 - Convent of Santo Domingo 23 - Church of Jesús Nazareno (1740) 24 - Mission of Nuestra Señora de Guadalupe (1707) Cathedral (1761) 25 - Church and Convent of La Concepción Church of San Francisco (1779) 26 - College of San Nicolás (1580) Convent of San Agustín (1580) Cathedral of the Divine Saviour (1640) Church of La Merced (18th c) 27 - Church of Los Zapateros (1765) Church of San Pedro and San Pablo (18th c) 28 - Cathedral of San Pedro Palace of the Inquisition 29 - Monastery of Las Mercedes (1510) Santa María La Menor Cathedral (1519) Palace of the Real Audiencia (1520) Palace of the Governors (1520) University (1538) Hospital of San Nicolás de Bari (1522) 30 - La Fuerza Real Castle (1577) El Morro Castle (1630) San Cristóbal Cathedral (1787) Church of San Francisco de Asís (1738) 31 - Cathedral of Our Lady of La Asunción (1519) Convent of Santo Domingo (1570) Metropolitan Cathedral (1690) Casco Viejo 32 - Church of San Francisco (1650) Inset 1 Inset 1 2 PART OF SPANISH PHILOSOPHY was that the people they conquered should become subjects of Spain. This, however, was not possible unless they embraced the Catholic faith. Missionaries of various Catholic denominations travelled with the conquistadores, and Spanish military garrisons were often part of the fabric of the church. Much of Spanish colonial architecture therefore consists of monasteries, churches, and cathedrals, although there were also imposing buildings erected for the governors of the provinces. primarily to European diseases against which they had little or no natural resistance. Second was the arrival of increasing numbers of Europeans, many of them with better architectural skill and artistic ability than the early conquistadores and missionaries. At the same time there was a considerable increase in the numbers of people who were of Spanish descent but who had been born in the New World, as well as offspring of mixed marriages. While welcoming the ideas and inspiration of the new arrivals, these people did not claim the same cultural and family ties to Spain. Thus new art forms began to emerge that were based on a European tradition but which incorporated elements of a Central American national identity. This gave rise to distinctive arts in furniture, metalwork, ceramics, mural painting and votive offerings, as well as in building, that were no longer confined to the religious sphere but were also seen in the domestic environment. For example, carved figures placed at street corners and even house fronts with elaborate murals were used as a means of identifying districts in the absence of names and numbers. CENTRAL AMERICAN BAROQUE Central American Baroque reached its climax in Mexico during the eighteenth century, although there are also good examples in Guatemala and Cuba, where the ornate Churrigueresque style imported from Spain is combined with the exaggerated ornamentation of the Mayans and Aztecs. The resemblance between the façade decorations of Mayan buildings and Mexican Baroque churches is so striking that there has to be a direct relationship. In Baroque architecture there was a deliberate play of light and shade through the application of raised plasterwork, further enriched with polychrome decoration and, often, glazed tiles. Scrolls and arabesques, lines and geometric interlocking forms, and other decorative motifs were twined and twisted around figures in niches of Mexicanized saints. No part of the surface was left untouched by carving, plaster or paint. The interior of the Cathedral of Mexico City contains a retable that was completed in 1737, and which is so massive and ornate that it has been referred to as ‘Ultra-Baroque’. Other extreme examples of Mexican Baroque can be seen in the vault of the Rosary Chapel in the Church of Santo Domingo, Oaxaca (1729) and at the Cathedral of Zacatecas (1761). ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 150 missionaries. The inevitable fusion resulted in a mix of European and indigenous styles during the sixteenth century. There is, for instance, a post-Conquest Aztec frieze in the church at Cholula, and a carving of the Virgin at the Augustinian monastery of Acolman that is derived from Coatlicue, the Aztec goddess of life and death. Similarly, angels carved at the Franciscan monastery at Tlalmanalco are depicted with monkey faces in reference to Ozomatli, the Aztec god of writing and sacred knowledge. The style of colonial buildings also had to change in response to local circumstances and environments; for instance, open chapels (capilla abierta) were included to accommodate the large native populations. Some elaborate European filigree work is noticeable from the early sixteenth century, and this is generally referred to as Plateresque: from the phrase Plasteros de yeso (silversmiths in plaster), referring to the fine detailing of plaster over stonework. The Santo Domingo Cathedral (1519, the oldest cathedral in the Americas) and the Hospital of San Nicolás de Bari (1522) are outstanding examples of Plateresque work by Spanish artists. THE RISE OF NATIONALISM The late sixteenth and seventeenth centuries saw two changes in population demographics that affected the arts. First was a dramatic decline in the indigenous populations, due THE BEGINNING OF THIS PERIOD saw a collision between two vastly different cultures: the Aztec and the Spanish. Neither of these cultures had any real understanding of the beliefs and artistic expression of the other, leading to the confrontation in which the Aztec Empire was effectively dismantled by Hernán Cortés between 1519 and 1521. A CLASH OF CULTURES That this clash occurred so suddenly and irrevocably changed the artistic production of the region can be understood by considering the ideologies that were involved. The Spanish came from a European background of powerful and wealthy state and religious institutions based on a belief in one true god. Spanish ideals were to convert and Christianize the people they came into contact with, and to use wealth to establish the state and religious buildings that supported this. The Aztec ideal also had an architectural base that combined state and religion, but leadership was vested in the Tlatoani (Great Speaker) and Cihuacoatl (Female Serpent), who were considered deities. The Aztecs did not impose their beliefs on subjugated groups but instead exacted punitive taxes to maintain the Aztec centres. Thus Cortés encountered many disaffected groups to support him, and with the killing of the Tlatoani and Cihuacoatl, effectively destroyed the entire Aztec state and religious foundation, leading to an immediate collapse. EARLY COLONIAL ARTS The first acts of the Spanish were to destroy the religious symbols of the old culture and replace them with their own. Temples built on the tops of imposing pyramids were dismantled, their elaborate frescoed surfaces studded with gold, silver and mosaic defaced, and the images of their gods destroyed. Materials from these were re-used to erect the buildings of the new religion, using indigenous labour under the guidance of Spanish CENTRAL AMERICA 1500-1800 1 THE SPANISH DOMINATED both exploration and trade in Mexico, Central America and the Caribbean. After the conquest of the Aztecs in 1521, most of the region was declared a province of Spain and placed under the control of Spanish governors. Silver from this region financed Spain’s colonial ambitions and, indirectly through the looting of Spanish treasure ships, the ambitions of other European nations as well. Silver was a trade mainstay, but other goods such as gold, sugar, tobacco and cochineal were also important. SANTO DOMINGO CATHEDRAL, DOMINICAN REPUBLIC. The Cathedral of Santa María la Menor in Santo Domingo is the oldest cathedral in the Americas. Founded in 1519, when the Spanish used Santo Domingo as a staging post for their incursions into Mexico and Central America, it was from here that Cortés launched his attacks against the Aztecs. A marble sarcophagus in the cathedral is said, controversially, to contain the bones of Christopher Columbus. There is also a Madonna by Murillo (1617–82). 60˚ 30˚ 20˚ 10˚ 0˚ 70˚80˚90˚100˚110˚ C C olorado Orinoco Magdalena RioGrande Mississippi A T L A N T I C O C E A N PA C I F I C O C E A N G U L F O F M E X I C O C A R I B B E A N S E A GULFOFCALIFORNIA ISTHMUS OF PANAMA YUCA TÁN SIERRAMADREOCCIDENTALSIERRAMADREORIENTAL SI ERRA MADRE DEL SUR CORDILLERA DE MÉRIDA C U B A PUERTO RICO HISPANIOLA B AHAMAS S O U T H A M E R I C A N O R T H A M E R I C A Acapulco to Manila Seville to Veracruz Seville to Nombre de Dios Havana to Seville Manila to Acapulco (silk) Urdaneta 1565 Saavedra 1527 Pineda 1519 Grijalva 1517 Columbus 1492-93 Columbus 1493-94 Columbus 1498 Columbus 1502-04 Pinzón & Solís 1508 Hernández de Córdoba 1516 Ojeda & Vespucci 1499-1500 Bastidas 1501-02 Ponce de León 1512-13 N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 Exploration and Trade, 1500-1800 European voyages of discovery Spanish trade routes Spanish routes of colonization exports: gold silver sugar and tobacco cochinealC SOUTH AMERICA 1500–1800 153 eventually exported art. The search for precious metals also affected economic, and consequently cultural, developments. The discovery of silver near Potosí in the mid-sixteenth century created a boom town whose population in the seventeenth century exceeded that of most European cities. New wealth paid for the explosion of buildings and furnishing in Potosí – it was to do the same in the cities that became Sucre and La Paz in Bolivia. Some gold was also found in what is now Colombia, where the Spanish had settled at an early date, creating cities (Tunja) with a European aspect and even with Renaissance wall paintings. Towns on the coast such as Cartagena, with extensive fortifications and churches in stone, originated as points of embarkation for the treasure fleets. THE DISSEMINATION OF ART The Jesuits played a special role in the dissemination of art, especially by Europeans who were not of Iberian origin. In the sixteenth century the Jesuit Bernardo Bitti, from Camerino in Italy, made paintings and sculpture while en route from Ecuador to Bolivia. In the eighteenth century, German Jesuits established workshops in what is now Chile to supply works to that Captaincy General. The Jesuits also established several new sorts of institutions, notably estancias (ranches) in what is now Argentina, which were often designed by Italian or Germanic architects. Even more remarkable are the European-style art and architecture produced on Jesuit missions by rainforest people like the Guaraní in Paraguay. The Jesuits left some of the first surviving monuments in Portuguese America as well, but because of the unsettled and long-contested political situation, most early surviving monuments in Brazil are of a later, seventeenth-century date. In fact, some of the most noteworthy works made in Brazil during the seventeenth century were produced by Dutch artists during the period of the Netherlandish incursion, especially in the region around Pernambuco (Recife). Frans Post painted some of the first landscapes of the continent, and Albert Eckhout recorded its inhabitants and fauna. While Benedictines, Jesuits and other religious orders played an important role along the coast, their activities were forbidden in the interior province of Minas Gerais, where diamonds and gold were found in the eighteenth century. In the mining regions several boom towns 90˚ 80˚ 70˚ 60˚ 50˚ 40˚ 30˚ 20˚ 0˚ 10˚ 1523 1523 1529 1519 1534 1526 1532 1548 1537 1540 1535 1533 1545 1538 1630 1550 1573 1532 1637 1525 1674 1616 1535 1616 Córdoba Copacabana Valdivia Potosí Sucre La Paz Arequipa Callao Trujillo Maracaibo CaracasCartagena Santa Marta Chinquiquita Manáos Lima Cajamarca Tumbes Quito Belém do Pará Pernambuco (Recife) Bahía (Salvador) Pôrto Alegre GUAIRÁ c.1630-32 GUARANÍ 1630-1767 CHACO 1732-67 CHIQUITOS 1691 MAYNAS 1638-1767 CASANARE AND LOS LLANOS 1659 MOJOS 1659-1767 Ciudad Real Concepción Valparaíso La Calera Arica Tiahuanaco Panama Cuzco Machu Picchu São Paulo Ouro Prêto Pôrto Seguro Santa Fe de Bogotá Rio de Janeiro Buenos Aires 1536 ITATÍN 1609-70 A m azon Río Negro SãoFr ancisco M a deir a Orinoco Uruguay Colorado L. Titicaca A T L A N T I C O C E A N PA C I F I C O C E A N C A R I B B E A N S E A Amazon Basin Gran Chaco Pampas FALKLAND IS WINDWARD IS ISTHMUS OF PANAMA GUIANA HIGHLANDS A N DE S CHILOÉ I VICEROYALTY OF NEW GRANADA V I C E R O YA LT Y O F B R A Z I L VICEROYALTY OF LA PLATA GUIANA PERU VICEROYA LTY OF 1565, capital from 1763 Dutch artists to Brazil: Post (1608-69) Eckhout (1610-65) N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 2 Centres of Artistic Activity Spanish territory by c.1650 Portuguese territory by c.1650 date of colonial foundation administrative centre Jesuit missions Jesuit workshops pilgrimage centres centre of indigenous art carved wood other art and production centres school of painting school of sculpture visited by Bernardo Bitti, 1571-1610 surviving indigenous cultures 1565 THE SILVER MOUNTAIN (the cerro rico) outside Potosí was a source of enormous wealth. It is depicted by an unknown artist (c.1740) as the mantle of the Virgin, who is crowned by the Trinity – the Father and Son represented as priests. The possible conflation with pre-conquest indigenous beliefs, in which mountains, rocks, and a mother goddess were venerated, is striking. 2 ARTISTIC CENTRES CRYSTALLIZED in several colonial sites. Aside from the schools established by the Franciscans (Quito), and Jesuit ateliers (Chile and Argentina), cities such as Cuzco, Quito and Lima housed many artists, who produced vast quantities of painting and sculpture. Brazil was home to numerous regional centres: most conspicuous were the architects, sculptors and painters in Minas Gerais (Ouro Prêto). grew up in mountain valleys: the most remarkable of them is Ouro Prêto, whose name means ‘black gold’. The monuments of this region were built by peoples of African as well as European origin, and draw on many different European artistic sources – they even reveal elements of chinoiserie. Such details provide more evidence for the multicultural aspects of art and architecture in colonial South America. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 152 (massive walls were a common feature): Europeans adapted wattle-and-daub thatching for roofing construction. Two of the most important artistic sites during the period were located in what had been the Inca capitals, the present cities of Cuzco and Quito. Paintings were exported throughout the region of the vice-royalty of Peru from Cuzco. The first art school on the continent was already established in Quito in the sixteenth century, and the first South American art treatise was written there in the eighteenth; Quito was also home to an important school of sculptors. The Spanish, however, established their vice-regal capital at the new city of Lima, a more accessible site near the sea. Lima had buildings designed by Europeans, and a grid plan, which was a standard model for new foundations throughout Spanish America. Lima itself SOUTH AMERICA 1500-1800 THE CHURCH OF SÃO FRANCISCO in Ouro Prêto was built for lay brethren of the Franciscan order, as Franciscan regulars were not allowed into the mining province of Minas Gerais. The artist Aleijandinho, the child of European and African parents, carved the sculpture on the façade, but the building’s design echoes Italian and central European prototypes. 1 SOUTH AMERICAN architecture is notable for its use local materials, including different kinds of metamorphic stones in the Andes, and, where stone was not at hand, other building materials, such as adobe. However, materials used were also often brought from great distances (limestone from Portugal), and new solutions (quincha roofs) were devised to deal with specia, for example, seismic circumstances. THE CONQUEST OF SOUTH AMERICA by Europeans largely eradicated the cultures of the indigenous peoples with whom they came in contact. Although Europeans did not actually take over the whole continent until the nineteenth century – the southernmost regions, and Amazonian interior were not occupied until then, and some sites such as Machu Pichu in Peru actually may postdate the subjugation of the Inca Empire – the Spanish levelled previously existing sites and built on top of them; the indigenous populations of the Brazilian coast were largely eradicated. European forms thus often literally supplanted or stood on top of indigenous architecture. Native American and African artists and artisans worked mainly in the service of the hegemonic culture, and traces of their artistic input can be seen at best only in elements of iconography, construction and forms of manufacture. ARTISTIC CENTRES Because of the vast distances, formidable terrain, including high mountain ranges and jungles, and the forbidding (and ever changing) climates, architectural forms in particular depended on local materials, and many independent artistic centres also came into existence. Since stone was largely lacking on the Brazilian littoral, building techniques utilizing mud, earth, or clay were often employed there, although limestone (sometimes imported) and soapstone were used for ornament on façades, and for sculpture. In contrast, many local stones, with varying degrees of hardness, hence difficulty for carving, were used in the Andean regions: Andesite in what is central Peru, varieties of granite around La Paz, volcanic tufa in Arequipa. Earthquakes, which are frequent in this region, also affected construction techniques 90˚ 80˚ 70˚ 60˚ 50˚ 40˚ 30˚ 20˚ 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ Cu Córdoba Valdivia La Plata Potosí La Paz Rio de Janeiro Saô Bento monastery (in pedra de limoz, 1640s) Callao Trujillo MaracaiboCartagena Santa Marta Manáos Lima Cajamarca Tumbes Quito Belém do Pará Pernambuco (Recife) Olinda Bahía (Salvador) São Paulo Ouro Prêto Pôrto Seguro Ciudad Real Sabara Pôrto Alegre Montevideo Concepción Arica Panama Amaz on Río Negro SãoFranci sco Paraguay Pa ra ná M a deir a Orinoco Uruguay Colorado ATLANTIC OCEAN PA C I F I C O C E A N C A R I B B E A N S E A Amazon Basin Mato Grosso Gran Chaco Pampas FALKLAND IS WINDWARD IS ISTHMUS OF PANAMA GUIANA HIGHLANDS A N D ES Patagonia VICEROYALTY OF NEW GRANADA V I C E R O YA LT Y O F B R A Z I L VICEROYALTY OF LA PLATA GUIANA PERU VICEROYA LTY OF taipa de mão (hand-worked mud and clay), taipo de pelao (mud and straw) pau-a-pique pau-a- pique (mud and clay) Church of San Francisco (in granite, c.1700) Cuzco Cathedral and Jesuit church (in andesite, c. 1660) Arequipa Jesuit church (in tufa, c. 1700) N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms resources: gold silver copper diamonds dyes hidesCu 1 Materials and Means building materials: andesite tufa granite quincha (mud and straw) roofs spread of quincha techniques adobe mud and clay limestone (pedra de cal) import of Portuguese limestone (pedra de limoz) major mining regions EUROPE 1500–1600 155 ST BASIL’S CATHEDRAL, 1555–60, Moscow, Russia, was built following Ivan IV’s conquest of Kazan. This dynamic structure consists of eight churches grouped around a ninth. Despite trends in Moscow towards the employment of Italian architects and adoption of Renaissance architectural idioms, St Basil’s is the product of native architects. Here, traditional Russian forms dominate and make the cathedral an enduring national symbol. 1 THE PROTESTANT REFORMATION in the sixteenth century had a profound impact on religious art. Catholics maintained their worship traditions and patronage patterns, but Calvinists, Anglicans and others rejected the role of images in worship and cleansed their sanctuaries of art. Lutherans believed Christian art was inherently neither good nor bad; religious art was destroyed, modified, and even commissioned in Lutheran churches. architects and patrons to select, mix and adapt from a palette of concepts and styles. The Italians set new standards by creating paradigmatic High Renaissance, Mannerist and then early Baroque works. If stylistic diversity ultimately dominated at the international and regional levels, the pervasive effect of Italy and the Italianate linked all of Europe. This often first involved an update of native or current architectural traditions, a transition that might then follow in other arts. Outside Italy, a purer expression of Renaissance architectural ideals was also made in places like Granada, Munich, Landshut, Cracow, Esztergom and Alba Iulia. Punctuated by the 1541 capture of Budapest, once a Renaissance cultural centre, the Ottoman surge into southeastern Europe essentially halted that area’s classicizing tendencies. THE WORLDLY COURT Artists and architects benefited immensely from Church patronage in Catholic territories and that of prosperous merchants in commercial centres, but princely courts of all ranks, confessions and locations remained their most consistent employers. Two special, somewhat reciprocal phenomena contributed to this arrangement: the formation of ‘art chambers’ (Kunstkammern) and the staging of festivals, triumphal entries and other spectacles. In his private Kunstkammer, a prince distilled the spectrum of divine and human creation down to displayable highlights. Mineral samples, flora and fauna specimens and nature’s abnormalities found a place in the Kunstkammer next to fine tools, intricate mechanisms and classical, scientific or architectural texts. A Kunstkammer’s inventory also included works of art such as paintings, prints, statuettes, medals or meticulously crafted works of goldsmithery. The proprietor of such an assemblage symbolically possessed and ruled over the known world, albeit in miniature. The Kunstkammer also projected its keeper’s magnificence, intellect, worldliness, and tastes to whomever viewed it. The Kunstkammern of the Central European courts were the most impressive; the Prague Kunstkammer of Emperor Rudolf II surpassed all others. A more public form of court expression matured during the sixteenth century. On special occasions, European courts frequently sponsored ostentatious productions for audiences. These varied spectacles could last for days, and incorporated everything from costumes, scenery, floats and music to fireworks, automata, parades and competitions. Triumphal entries were especially important. Organized around the arrival of a regent or distinguished guest into a town or city, some ceremonial entries were isolated events, others preludes to extended festivities. Entries often dotted the path of a territorial or international progress. Multiple grand entries were included, for example, in the journeys of Charles V through Italy following his conquest of Tunis. Leading artists and artisans provided the many temporary props and backdrops that lent such events their pomp. Imagery invariably referred to the virtues, achievements, authority, and territorial possessions of the arriving dignitary using classical, mythological and biblical iconography. Just as the Kunstkammer brought the outside world to a prince’s court, these spectacles brought a prince’s court to the outside world. The gradual advance of European seafaring powers into the Americas, Africa, India, South Pacific, China and Japan had important consequences. The fortunes created through intercontinental commercial ventures and military conquests translated into copious artistic commissions. The extensive artistic and architectural patronage of the royal courts and Catholic institutions in both Portugal and Spain speaks to their successes overseas. Artefacts from faraway cultures also arrived in Europe and were often absorbed into Kunstkammern. royalty. Many cities participated in the network, but as a hub for the production and distribution of art objects none equalled Antwerp in variety, scale and geographic reach. Working with personal agents or art dealers, major collectors supported the art and artistic trades through their eclectic acquisitions. Philip II of Spain, for example, favoured works by Bosch and Titian, but had little interest in El Greco. Knowledge gained through such interaction allowed artists, BENVENUTO CELLINI, Salt Cellar, 1540–43. During his second trip to France, the great Florentine goldsmith created this masterpiece for King Francis I. The salt cellar exemplifies contemporary European courts’ interest in both artistic virtuosity and microcosmic collections of art, antiquities, naturalia, scientific instruments and artefacts from around the world. In 1570 King Charles IX gave the salt cellar to Archduke Ferdinand II of Austria, who added it to his Innsbruck Kunstkammer. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 154 SIXTEENTH-CENTURY EUROPE experienced an unprecedented intermingling of its various artistic and architectural traditions. Of these, the Italian tradition had the broadest impact, extending from Portugal to Scandinavia, France to Russia, and Scotland to the Balkans. Even as the influence of Italy spread, other exchanges between different regions took place, creating an era of artistic cross-fertilization. ARTISTIC CROSS-CURRENTS Untold numbers of artists and craftsmen traversed the continent in search of patronage or training. Foreigners flocked to Italy to study its monuments and learn from Italian masters. Relocated or new court centres, including those at Fontainebleau, Dresden, Madrid and Prague, attracted fresh mixtures of international artists. Through their personal travels, patrons, too, became important conduits for ideas about art. Finally, events like the sack of Rome (1527), the French Wars of Religion (1562–98), and the Spanish conquest of Antwerp (1585) prompted many artists to flee these areas and seek their livelihoods elsewhere. Prints and printed books played a key role in the artistic interchange. Mass-produced, easily transportable prints from Italy, Germany, France EUROPE 1500-1600 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚10˚20˚ 50˚ 40˚ Edinburgh Bergen Borgholm Kaliningrad Szczecin Gdansk Plock Lublin Zamosc Pinczów Kezmarok Poznan Wroclaw Lwow Bardejov Levoca Riga Moscow Zagorsk Vologda Solvychegodsk Smolensk Novgorod Vilnius Mariefred Vadstena Stockholm Uppsala Turku Kalmar Copenhagen Hillerod Roskilde Helsingor Svartsjö London Epsom Lille Angers Lyon Valence Florence Genoa Milan Como Verona Mantua Parma Lucca Cremona Felletin Avignon Narbonne Bordeaux Bayonne Toulouse Viseu Valladolid Toledo Madrid Guadalajara SegoviaSalamanca Ávila El Escorial Medina del Campo Seville Córdoba Cádiz Málaga Granada Lorca Murcia Valencia Tortosa Saragossa Tudela Barcelona Ubeda Chincilla Palencia Burgos Oviedo Èvora Portalegre Porto León Coimbra Tomar Leiria Lisbon Valverde Guimarães Aubusson Moulins Angoulême La Rochelle Rouen Chantilly Tonnerre Dijon Bern Lucerne Zurich Basle Geneva Strasbourg Stuttgart Augsburg Kranjska Gora Prague Pilsen Kratochvile Landshut Munich Salzburg Jindrichuv Hradec Litomysl Pernstejn Linz Cesky Krumlov Vienna Cluj-Napoca Prostejov Pardubice Bratislava Budapest Esztergom Bucharest Tirgoviste Alba Iulia Bistrita Suceava Graz Naples Palermo Trapani Messina Tunis Rome Siena Urbino Ferrara Venice Vicenza Trent Bologna Klagenfurt Slovenske Gorice Innsbruck Heidelberg Nuremberg Orléans Chenonceaux Chambord Calais Bruges Ghent Amsterdam Utrecht Münster Langres Wolfenbüttel Wittenberg Dresden Berlin Cracow HamburgDelft Haarlem Lüneburg Kassel Halle Leiden Binche Brussels Mariemont Antwerp Liège Paris Troyes Bar-le-Duc BloisNantes Fontainebleau Stirling Exeter Falkland ´ ´ ´ ´ ˘ ´ Loire Rhône Elbe W eser Danube Tagus Ga ronne E bro Seine Tham es Meuse Po Tiber Vistula Ne m an Oder Rhi ne A T L A N T I C O C E A N N O R T H S E A BALTICSEA M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A P Y R E N E E S A L P S Östergötland SARDINIA SICILY CORSICA IRELAND SCOTLAND ENGLAND HOLY ROMAN EMPIRE DENMARK-NORWAY S W E D E N FINLAND PRUSSIA HUNGARY SWISS CONFED BOHEMIA S P A I N A F R I C A F R A N C E PORTUGAL (to Spain 1580) POLAND-LITHUANIA (United 1569) R U S S I A TRANSYLVANIA I TA LY OTTOMAN EMPIRE N E T H E R L A N D S to/from S America, Africa, India, West Indies, Asia Italians to Portugal, Spain, France, Low Countries, England, Scandinavia, Germany, Poland-Lithuania, Russia, Bohemia, Austria, Balkan States to/from Brazil, Africa, Asia to/from N America, C America, S America Portuguese and Spanish to Low Countries, England, Italy, C & S America, India, W Indies, Asia Belgians and Dutch to England, Scotland, Scandinavia, Germany, Poland-Lithuania, Bohemia, Austria, Italy, Portugal, Spain, France Germans to Poland-Lithuania, Bohemia, Austria, Italy, France, England, Scandinavia French to England, Scotland, Low Countries, Germany, Portugal, Spain N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 1 Artistic Cross-currents in 16th-century Europe borders c. 1560 attitude towards Christian art: Roman Catholic (positive) Lutheran (indifferent) Calvinist,Anabaptist/ Anglican/Hussite (negative) Eastern Orthodox (positive) Muslim (negative) emigration/travel of architects /artists/craftsmen centre of patronage and/or art production architecture painting sculpture printmaking gold/silversmithery tapestry manufacture Kunstkammer and/or major art collection significant acts of iconoclasm, with date triumphal state/ceremonial entry, with date spectacle/festival/tournament, with date paths of exemplary imperial/royal progress: Emperor Charles V,Aug 1535-May 1536 Prince Philip of Spain, Oct 1548-Sept 1549 King Charles IX of France and his mother, Queen Catherine de’ Medici, April 1564-Jan 1566 major international trade routes (export of European artistic and architectural styles; import of gold, silver, spices, cultural artefacts etc). (1547/48) (1561) (1522, 33, 59) (annually, 1559-1602) (1520) (1549) (1558) (1547, 48, 51, 53, 54, 57, 58, 62, 70, 76/77, 78/79, 85, 97) (1563) (1500) (1539) (1572, 81) (1580) (1521-22) (1525) (1590) (1534-35) (1524, 34-37) (1566-67) (1524) (1557) (1592/93) (1566-67) (1566) (1566-68, 78) (1562-63) (1562) (1524-30) (1529) (1528) (1534-35) (1520-24, 87) (1566-67, 81) (1515, 48, 95) (1518, 48, 51) (1515, 30, 40, 49, 71, 73) (1550, 96) (1582) (1563, 77) (1586) (1586) (1586) (1577) (1563) (1558, 62) (1515) (1585) (1570) (1517) (1528, 86) (1570) (1560) (1543) (1506, 15, 29) (1506) (1507, 38) (1515, 39, 89) (1513, 18, 36, 39, 45, 86, 89) (1502, 07, 29) (1507, 09, 12, 15, 34, 41) (1528, 43) (1530, 32, 49) (1549, 74) (1518, 25) (1560, 63, 71) (1572) (1533) (1559) (1585) (1526) (1500, 01, 13, 49, 50) (1530) (1502, 65) (1502, 30) and the Low Countries circulated throughout Europe. Leading print publishers joined printmakers to reproduce the treasures of antiquity and works of Raphael, Michelangelo, Heemskerck and Bruegel, among others. The writings of Vitruvius and Sebastiano Serlio had immense bearing on architectural developments. Others in western Europe authored vernacular, sometimes nationalistic, theoretical texts which typically responded to Italian ideas. The burgeoning art market and formation of multi-faceted art collections propagated styles and trends. Artists sold their wares to local merchants, at regional fairs, and to foreign SCANDINAVIA AND THE BALTIC 1500–1800 157 these regions were not necessarily derivative or inferior to those of the capital. Arent Passer (c.1560–1637), perhaps the finest sculptor in the region, worked exclusively for the Swedish governor in Estonia. Sweden remained the great Baltic power into the eighteenth century, by which time the artistic orientation of the state had shifted from the Netherlands and Germany to France. The architect Nicodemus Tessin the Younger (1654–1728) was an ambassador at the court of Versailles, and arranged for a permanent agent there to inform him of all developments in French arts and culture. The loss of territories and stature following the Great Northern War (1700–21), led to a sharp drop in resources for artistic production. Thus Tessin represents the culmination of the arts in Sweden; after his death, most of the finest Swedish artists lived and worked in other European capitals, Alexander Roslin (1718–93) in Paris, Martin van Meytens the Younger (1695–1770) in Vienna, Michael Dahl (1659–1743) in London, and Georg Desmarées (1697–1776) in Munich. FREDERIKSBORG CASTLE AT HILLERØD, DENMARK, represents the international importance of Christian IV’s work particularly well. The sculptural Neptune fountain was designed and cast by the imperial sculptor Adriaen de Vries in Prague. Hendrick de Keyser, an Amsterdam sculptor and builder who pioneered Dutch classical architecture, provided a number of decorative sculptures and reliefs. The palace was built between 1602 and 1623 as an enlargement of a much smaller sixteenth-century hunting lodge. The architect is unknown, but it may have been the Netherlandish Hans van Steenwinckel. 60˚ 50˚ 30˚20˚10˚ Gothenburg Kalmar Roskilde Hillerod Helsingor Jönköping Norrköping Lübeck Bremen Amsterdam Hamburg Uppsala Stockholm Trondheim Christiania (Oslo) Bergen Copenhagen Berlin Stralsund Stettin Königsberg Gdansk (Danzig) Riga Wilno (Vilnius) Elbing Reväl (Tallinn) Åbo (Turku) Novgorod Pskov Kexholm Narva Dorpat (Tartu) Helsingfors Viborg ’ Lake Peipus L. Ladoga L. Vänern L. Vättern Klarälven Umeälven Torneälven Dvina VistulaElbe N O R T H S E A WHITE SEA GULF OF RIGA GULF OF FINLAND N O R W E G I A N S E A BA LTIC SEA GULFOFBOTHNIA R U S S I A FYN ZEALAND BORNHOLM GOTLAND ÖSEL ÅLAND POMERANIA BREMEN-VERDEN P R U S S I A P O L A N D LIVONIA DENMARK-NORWAY K I N G D O M O F S W E D E N F I N L A N D L A P L A N D L I T H U A N I A Established 1735 Royal Palace (1697) Drottningholm Palace (1662) (1660) Established 1754 Rosenborg Palace Frederiksborg Castle (from 1560) Kronborg Castle (c. 1574-1585) Established 1696 Primarily after 1650 0 0 150 miles 200 kms N 2 THE ARTS IN THE BALTIC region in the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries were an eclectic mix of imported talent, primarily from Germany and the Netherlands. Some of these artists travelled from court to court throughout the region, fostering the transfer of artistic ideas. Few local artists were of any significance until the eighteenth century. By then, however, economic circumstances reduced major patronage. Fewer foreign artists came to Scandinavia, and many of the best talents left to seek work elsewhere. NEOCLASSICISM French Rococo surrendered to Neoclassicism throughout the Baltic in the later eighteenth century. In Sweden this is associated with King Gustav III and the sculptor Johan Tobias Sergel (1740–1814). Denmark experienced similar developments under the leadership of the painter Nicolai Abildgaard (1743–1809), the architect Christian Frederik Hansen (1756–1845), and especially the sculptor Bertel Thorvaldsen (1770–1844), who worked primarily in Rome, but was the greatest Scandinavian Neoclassical artist. While Sweden and Denmark both sent their leading students to Rome to train, Danish artists also established ties with the pioneering theorist Johann Joachim Winckelmann and with the Prussian architect Karl Friedrich Schinkel (1781–1841), and thus drew on the whole spectrum of European Neoclassicism. 2 Artistic Movement in 16th- and 17th-century Scandinavia Swedish empire, c.1660 artistic academy, with date of establishment Artistic influences: from the Netherlands from Germany, primarily 17th century from France, after 1650 from Sweden from Rome castle cathedral palace 1 Scandinavia and the Baltic, c. 1500 international borders, c.1500 semi-independent territories Swedish-speaking areas of Finland Saami region of Finland trade routes Raw materials: grain timber copper iron flax hemp hides tallow leather potash Natural resources: copper mines iron mines silver mines gold mines limestone quarries sandstone Cu L S Cu ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 156 SCANDINAVIA IN 1500 was dominated by Denmark politically and artistically, but the entire Baltic region was connected with northern European culture through the trade routes of the Hansa (a series of trading alliances linking the cities of northern Europe). Sweden-Finland gained independence from Denmark in 1523. The Protestant Reformation was fundamental to the establishment of the Swedish state, for King Gustav Vasa (r.1523–60) seized church lands and wealth, which he used to pay state debts. Denmark converted to Lutheranism soon after. Thus by the 1530s Denmark ruled Norway, and Sweden ruled the duchy of Finland; all were Protestant lands. THE DOMINANCE OF DENMARK Although there was a certain artistic unity throughout the Baltic region, Denmark provided the artistic leadership for Scandinavia until the seventeenth century. The high point of the Danish Renaissance was the reign of Christian IV (r.1588–1648). Most of the artists he patronized were of Netherlandish origin. Pieter Isaacz (1569–1625) and Karel van Mander III (1610–70) were resident at the court, but Christian commissioned significant works from Gerrit van Honthorst (1592–1656), Abraham Bloemaert (1566–1651), Jacob Jordaens (1593–1678) and Adriaen de Vries (1545–1626), among others, which adorned Kronborg, Rosenborg and Frederiksborg palaces. These were built in the Netherlandish tradition of brick with stone decoration. THE RISE OF SWEDEN Denmark and Sweden both took part in the Thirty Years War (1618–48), which crippled the former and greatly enriched the latter. Under Gustav II Adolf (r.1611–32) Sweden expanded its territories to include the eastern Baltic lands and parts of northern Germany. Accordingly, many German artists moved to Stockholm, a new centre of patronage. Among them were the painter David Klöcker Ehrenstrahl (1629–98) and the architect Nicodemus Tessin the Elder (1615–81). Tessin used locally available materials (particularly wood), but he and his patrons willfully disregarded traditional, provincial building practices as they sought international recognition. In the mid-seventeenth century, Queen Christina became a cultural patron, bringing René Descartes and other intellectuals to the court. She also encouraged the seizure of the remains of Emperor Rudolf II’s collection at Prague, which brought many first-rate Italian paintings to Stockholm. She took most of these with her to Rome when she abdicated in 1654, but the larger works remained in Sweden. In Rome she remained an important patron for Swedish artists, commissioning works from them and using her contacts to introduce them to leading Italian artists. The influence of the Stockholm court was felt as far away as the eastern Baltic lands. Classicizing buildings, similar to those built by Tessin, may be found in Tallinn. The artists in SCANDINAVIA AND THE BALTIC 1500-1800 JOHAN TOBIAS SERGEL, CUPID AND PSYCHE. Sergel studied in Paris and received a medal from the Académie Royale. He worked in Rome for a number of years before returning in 1779 to Stockholm, where he became head of the Royal Academy of Fine Arts. He was highly regarded and sought by internationally important patrons. This sculpture was commissioned around 1772 by Louis XV for his mistress, Madame du Barry. When the French king died two years later, King Gustav III of Sweden took over the commission. 50˚40˚30˚20˚10˚0˚ 70˚ 60˚ Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu L L L L S S S Stockholm Älvsborg Jönköping Norrköping Lübeck Bremen Hamburg Uppsala Nidaros (Trondheim) Oslo Bergen Copenhagen Stralsund Stettin Königsberg Gdansk (Danzig) Riga Wilno (Vilnius) Elbing Reväl (Tallinn) Åbo (Turku) Novgorod Narva Dorpat (Tartu) Helsingfors Viborg Archangel ’ L. Ladoga Lake Peipus Elbe Vistula Dvina Um eälven Torneälven Klarälven L. Vättern L. Vänern N O RW E G I A N S E A N O R T H S E A GULFOFBOTHNIA GULF OF FINLAND G U LF OF RIG A WHITE SEA BALTIC SEA T E U T O N I C O R D E R BORNHOLM FYN ÅLAND ÖSEL ZEALAND ÖLAND GOTLAND R U S S I A F I N L A N D ESTONIA P O L A N D - L I T H U A N I A INGRIA L A P L A N D DENMARK-NORWAY S W E D E N KAR ELIA COURLAND BREMEN- VERDEN POMERANIA BRANDENBURG borders uncertain to Amsterdam and London N 0 0 150 miles 200 kms 1 THE BALTIC REGION’S rich natural resources brought income and international contacts. Sweden’s copper and iron, for example, were exported all over Europe. Wealthy foreign merchants moved to Scandinavia, bringing artistic contacts and building influential residences. 30˚20˚ 50˚ TP TP TP Polock Wilno Grodno Tykocin Snów Miedzyrzecz Korecki Kamieniec Podolski Buczacz Lancut Brzezany Krystynopol Zamosc Labunie Lublin Czemierniki Radzyn Podlaski Koden Drohiczyn Gdansk´ Plock Warsaw Brochów Walewice Gostyn Biala Radziwillowska Bialystok Siedlce Nieborów Lubartów Kock Wegrów Swieta Lipka Stanislawów Zbaraz Lezajsk Klimontów Sandomierz Baranów Pulawy Podhorce Brody Tarnopol Korsun Zofiówka Tulczyn Winnica Tywrów Sluck Lwów Zólkiew Krasiczyn Rzeszów Rytwiany Ksiaz Wielki Tarnów Nowy Wisnicz Niepolomice UjazdKielce Bialaczów Lad Smielów Poznan Sierniki Lubostron Sieraków Leszno Debnik Checiny Pinczow Grodzisk Wielkopolski Rogalin Cracow Koscielec Kalisz Pawlowice Rydzyna Nieswiez Chelmno ´ ˙ Lowicz ´ ˙ ˙ ´ ´ ´ ˙ ´ ´ ´ ´ ´ ´ ˛ ˛ ˛ ˛ ˛ ´ ˛ ˛ ´ ˙ ˙ ´ ´ BA LT I C S E A Gulf of Danzig EAST PRUSS IA Gulf of Riga Vis tula Warta Oder Pripet Berezina Dvina Neman Volga Dniester Prut Bug D nieper CARPATHIAN M TS P O L A N D L I T H U A N I A R U S S I A N E M P I R E O T T O M A N E M P I R E H A B S B U R G E M P I R E P R U S S I A 2 Sarmatism, Occidentalism and Orientalism major church palazzo a fortezza quadrilateral castle/square palazzo villa suburbana Renaissance town hall Palladian baroque building Neo-Palladian classical building 18th- century replica of Villa Rotonda entre cour et jardin palaces English gardens art collection Gothic Revival building manufacture of Polish sashes marble quarry sandstone quarry modern town planning N 0 0 150 miles 200 kms TP POLAND AND LITHUANIA 1500 –1800 159 Polish lesser gentry and for churches of all denominations, including Lutheran, Roman Catholic, Uniate and Orthodox, as well as mosques, and elaborate wooden synagogues. The majority of these places of worship have been destroyed. Sculpted plaster decor was another architectural feature. Italian-inspired and initiated by the Lublin guild of master masons, it embellished townhouses in Kazimierz and Zamo´s´c, and church vaults all over Poland. Its fantastical plaster ornaments of somewhat blunted, pudding-like texture displayed an untamed richness of detail. Orientalization went hand in hand with Latinization. The ‘Polish attica’, a decorative parapet at the top of buildings in Venetian style, surmounted sturdy synagogues. Paintings by Western artists were covered with ‘Orthodox’ silver robes, icons dovetailing with northern-European prints and Bohemian rococo dressed the façades of Uniate churches. Perhaps the most Polish art-form of this period was the Sarmatian portrait. A Western-style full-length likeness was used as a frame to WOODEN SYNAGOGUE in Wolpa near Grodno, early eighteenth century. Timber was used in Polish manor houses and village churches of all denominations and occasionally also in large and complex religious structures, with domes and high pitched, multi-tiered roofs. 2–3 SOUTHEAST EXPANSION introduced oriental styles, including dress and manners used by the PolishLithuanian nobility to underline their claim of descent from the legendary Sarmatians. However, dynastic alliances of the royalty and the fabulous buying power of the elite promoted a rapid absorption of ‘high’ forms of Western art. 20˚ 50˚ Póznan´ Zamosc´ ´ Tarnów Gdansk´ Cracow Krasiczyn Lwów Olesko Bejsce Miechów Staszów Turobin Uchanie Lublin Kazimierz Dolny Wilno Radlin Gniezno Koszuty Wloclawek Pinczów´ Lezajsk˙ Brzezany´ Sroda Wielkopolska ´ Lowicz Wroclaw Grodzisk Tarlów Rzeszów Ujazd Warsaw Krosno Koscielec´ Rabka Klementowice Debno˛ Lopuszna Paplin Sucha Romanów Mereczowszczyzna Ozarów˙ ´Koden ´Koden Stara Wies´ Sokule Tykocin BA LT I C S E A N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms enunciate the ‘defining features’ of PolishLithuanian nobility, which were visualized by the details of Orientalized attire, complete with zhupan, kontusz, delia and the Armenian silk sash belt, Turkish haircut and Morocco leather boots. These served as an adopted skin, the exteriorization of the Sarmatian identity. The form was also significant: the decorativeness of these portraits’ two-dimensionality and the flat patches of local colour pronounced a disregard for Western chiaroscuro and linear perspective. Domed Sepulchral Chapels and Vernacular Architecture border of Poland, late 17th century domed sepulchral chapel tomb/sculpture stucco decor wooden church Polish manor house built of wood 3 ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 158 MULTI-ETHNIC AND MULTICONFESSIONAL, the Polish Commonwealth of Two Nations united the Catholic Kingdom of Poland and the Grand Duchy of Lithuania. The long process of unification, begun in 1385, was finalized in 1569 by annexation of the western Ukraine, mainly Orthodox and bordering the Ottoman empire and Persia. The commonwealth lasted almost two and a half centuries more, until swallowed by the expanding empires of Russia, Prussia and Austria in 1795. The union dislodged Poland’s alignments with the Latin west, redirecting them to the east and south-east. This outpost of Latin Christendom saw a confrontation between an emerging Eurocentrist modernity, with its paradigms of the modern territorial state and of the rational western self, and, on the other hand, the nomadic values of Crimean Tartars and Ottoman Turks, and oriental fluidity and excess. A primary identification with the Occidental merged with an experience of and desire for the Oriental. The myth of Poland as the bulwark of Christendom intertwined itself with a contradictory ethos of Sarmatism – of the nobility’s descendance from the Sarmatians, a legendary tribe of horsemen from the Black Sea steppe. WESTERN IMPORTS In the sixteenth and early seventeenth centuries fabulous wealth from landholding enabled the nobility to acquire foreign consumer goods and artefacts, as well as commission builders, artists and craftsmen from all over Europe. Mainly from Italy, artists were also summoned from Nuremberg and the Netherlands, France, Saxony and Habsburgian countries. At this stage the union was a society of consumers, rather than producers, of POLAND AND LITHUANIA 1500-1800 ZBIGNIEW OSSOLINSKI WITH HIS SONS, c.1654, oil on canvas, 210 x 110 cm (82 x 43 ins), Castle Museum, Liw. A forceful Sarmatian portrait showing details of the ‘Polish dress’, which reserves its most lavish display for male progenitors. 20˚ 30˚ 50˚ Gniezno Reszel Drohiczyn Grodno Nowogródek Piotrków Raków Braniewo Königsberg Kiejdany Kowno Prowosze Lwów Mysz Nowa Bobrujsk Chernigov Mohylów Warsaw KrasnystawSandomierz Tarnów RawaKalisz Tykocin Cracow Przedbórz Kazimierz Dolny Wolpa Gwozdziec´ Chodorów Narowla Pohrebyszcze Lublin Kamieniec Podolski Bar Winnica Owrucz Ostróg Kiev Wilno Troki Wornie Smolensk Mohylów Orsza Witebsk Malbork (Marienburg) Leszno Rozdót Plock Wroclaw Wloclawek Gdansk´ Torun´ Minsk Przemysl´ Chelmno Nieswiez´ ˙ Kroze˙ Pinsk´ Brzesc Litewski´ ´ Birze˙ Swieta Lipka´ ˛ Grudziadz˛ Elblag˛ Poznan´ Pinczów´ Zamosc´ ´ Zytomierz˙ Zydaczów˙ Polock Illukszta Zabludów Chelm Wlodzimierz ˙Lomza Pultusk Jaroslaw Lancut´ Luck VistulaWarta Oder Pripet Berezina Dvina Neman Volga Dniester Prut Bug Dnieper Gulf of Danzig Gulf of Riga B A L T I C S E A CARPATHIAN M TS GREAT POLAND LITTLE POLAND OTTOMAN EMPIRE OTTOMAN EMPIRE HOLY ROMAN EMPIRE MOLDAVIA HUNGARY U K R A I N E R U S S I A RUTHENIA C O URLAND LIVONIA VOLHYNIA POMERANIA EAST PRUSSIA G R A N D D U C H Y O F L I T H U A N I A 1579 1544 1594 1661 1364 N 0 0 250 miles 350 kms 1 Multi-ethnicity and Multiconfessionality border Poland/Lithuania, pre-1569 border Poland/Lithuania post 1569 Poland, 1582 to Poland, 1616-67 lost in war 1621-26 SE border of Poland, 1667-1793 Roman Catholic archbishopric Roman Catholic bishopric Uniate archbishopric Uniate bishopric Orthodox metropolitan sees Orthodox eparchy Armenian archbishopric Armenian church Jewish synagogue/centre of learning wooden synagogue centre of Karaite faith centre of Islamic faith centre of Reformation university, with date of foundation academy of higher education Jesuit convent/college Lutheran church major centre for the grain trade Vistula river port artefacts. In the aftermath of disasters in the mid-seventeenth century and the Great Northern War (1700–21) – which ruined towns and halted the grain trade – kings and nobility established various manufactories. Renaissance ‘high art’ was imported directly from Italy by Poland’s kings of the Jagiellonian dynasty redeveloping the Wawel Castle in Cracow. The Sigismundus chapel in the Wawel Cathedral, by Florentine Bartolomeo Berrecci (1519–31), provided a model of a central funerary chapel and tomb with recumbent figures, widely reproduced by the nobility and even the bourgeoisie. Another new type of building was the suburban villa, erected for the nobility by Italian builders on the outskirts of Cracow. Royal patronage, extensive building by the Catholic Church, and, above all, the spending power of the high nobility changed the cultural landscape. They built new towns on an ‘ideal city’ plan, such as Zamo´s´c, designed for the Lord Chancellor Jan Zamoyski by Bernardo Morando of Venice; they gave funds for Baroque churches following the models of Il Gesù (Cracow, Nieswiez) and Santa Maria della Salute (Gosty´n); they multiplied their country residences and palaces in Warsaw, designed by fashionable architects such as Andrea del’Aqua (Podhorce), the Polonized Dutchman, Tylman van Gameren (Pulawy, Stary Otwock, Warsaw, Wegrów), Johann Sigmund Deybel of Dresden (Warsaw, Bialystok), and Juste-Aurèle Meissonier (interiors in Warsaw and Pulawy). LOCAL AND ORIENTAL INFLUENCES Elitist architecture was of brick, decorated with sandstone masonry and furnished in local marble. A dominant building material was timber, used for the abundant manor houses of 11 AT ITS PEAK the Commonwealth was Europe’s granary and second largest state. Its minorities included Ruthenians, Byelorussians, Jews, Karaites, Armenians, Tartars, Germans, Italians, Greeks and Scots. Prosperity and tolerance made it an asylum for Jews, Lutherans, Calvinists, Bohemian Brethren, and Aryans, all of whom established centres of learning and printing presses. The Uniate Church (following Orthodox rites under Papist supremacy) dominated in the east. Roman Catholic mendicant and teaching orders, in particular Jesuits, waged Counter-Reformation by inculcating militant forms of Roman baroque art and ritual. RUSSIA 1500–1800 161 development of resources; establishment of Russian porcelain, lapidary, metalwork and tapestry factories; creation of a university and academy of arts; art collecting on a grand scale and major building projects. St Petersburg became a microcosm of architectural evolution from Peter’s northern European Baroque (for example, the Cathedral of Saints Peter and Paul by Domenico Tressini) to Elizabeth’s French-Italian Rococo (Bartollomeo Rastrelli’s Catherine Palace, Winter Palace and Smolny Cathedral), and Catherine’s international classicism (Charles Cameron’s Pavolvsk Palace and Giacomo Quarenghi’s Hermitage Theatre). The Academy of Fine Arts, housed in an imposing classical edifice in 1772, fulfilled Peter’s goal of creating a cohort of Russianborn artists trained in European traditions. Among the early graduates were Anton Losenko (honoured as the first Russian historical painter), portraitists Dmitry Levitsky and Vladimir Borovikovsky, and sculptors Mikhail Kozlovsky and Ivan Martos. Meanwhile, outside the cities, in the northern regions of Arkhangel’sk and Vologda provinces settled by merchants from Novgorod, distinctive folk arts flourished. Along the Volga and the other rivers that served as trade arteries, local decorative traditions crossfertilized with forms and motifs adapted from western models. In the central agricultural lands, vast and productive estates were worked largely by serfs: peasants tied to the land. Folk customs and traditions in music and the arts enriched all levels of culture. This period witnessed Russia’s transformation from a regional principality to a multiethnic empire bridging east and west, and saw a corresponding change in the role of the arts. Initially serving the church, the arts expanded their secular functions as Russia’s rulers and the nobility began collecting art. The transfer from Moscow to St Petersburg replaced older Russian values with a new, European-oriented, rational and bureaucratic culture, initiating the dilemma of eastern or western identification that would trouble Russian thinkers of the following centuries. By the end of Catherine’s reign, Russian elite culture, especially in St Petersburg, embodied the themes of expansion and display. eastern point of the Gulf of Finland in 1703. Moving his capital to the new city in 1712, he inaugurated an unprecedented era of grand architecture and city planning that lasted well into the next century. CULTURAL EXPANSION Peter I’s efforts to modernize Russia brought the country into the cultural orbit of Europe. He invited European architects and artists to St Petersburg and provided training and study abroad for Russian-born artists. It fell to his successors, Elizabeth I and Catherine II (‘The Grea’t, r.1762–96) to consolidate Peter’s European model for the Russian empire. Their reigns were marked by exploration and CHURCH OF THE TRANSFIGURATION (1714), Kizhi, Lake Onega. Traditional carpenters used no plans, only simple hand tools, and no metal nails, but they inventively combined pine, ash, and other woods for pleasing effects. The ash ‘fish-scale’ shingles on the twenty-two domes glisten with gold or silver tones, depending on the light. 70˚ 55˚ 40˚ 30˚ 45˚ 60˚ 75˚ 90˚ 105˚ 120˚ 135˚ 150˚ 165˚ 180˚ M M Moscow Astrakhan Kazan’ St Petersburg (1703) Novgorod Velikiy Ustyug Yaroslavl’ Solikamsk Pskov Smolensk Nizhniy Novgorod Vyatka Vologda Kiev Ufa (1586) Tobol’sk (1587) Tyumen’ (1586) Tara (1594) Sibir’ (1581) Omsk (1716) Archangel (Arkhangel’sk) (1589) Samara (1586) Tsaritsyn (1589) Saratov (1590) Voronezh (1586) Yakutsk (1632) Nizhne-Kolymsk (1644) Petropavlosk (1752)Irkutsk (1652) Krasnoyarsk (1628) Yeniseysk (1619) Tomsk (1604) Kuznetsk (1618) Semipalatinsk (1718) L. Balkhash L. Baikal Ko lyma Lena Lena A m ur Yenisey Ob Irtysh N.D vina Ural Oka Kam aViatka D on Volga Dnieper Syr- Darya Am u-D arya BA R E N T S S E A WHITE SEA KARA SEA EAST SIBERIAN SEA CHUKCHI SEA BALTICSEA BLACK SEA CASPIAN SEA ARAL SEA BERI N G STRAIT URALMTS ALTAI MTS TIEN SHANKALMYKS BASHKIR S TAT A R S K A Z A K H S BU RYAT S YA K U T S COSSACKS UKRAINIANS NOVAY A ZEMLYA N O V O S I B I R SK S I B E R I A MANCHUR IA OUTER MONGOLIA KAMCHATKA R U S S I A N E M P I R E N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 2 The Expansion of Russia, 1500-1800 Russia c. 1550 expansion to 1598 annexed to c. 1700 acquired 1700-c. 1800 route of Yermak, 1580s cities (with date of foundation/conquest) minerals furs ivory/bone (1652) M 2 RUSSIA EXPANDED through military conquests. Ivan IV victory conquered Kazan in 1555. The Cossack Yermak pushed into Siberia in quest of furs in the 1580s. Peter I and Catherine II campaigned in the west and the south in the eighteenth century. Cities were both fortresses and trade outposts for gold, and precious stones that enriched the decorative arts. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 160 RUSSIA ACHIEVED a distinctive cultural identity in this period, separate from but at times rivalling those of the Renaissance, Baroque and Enlightenment in western Europe. Traditionally, the arts had served religion, with architecture and icon painting controlled by rigorous orthodoxy, but the sixteenth century introduced some secularization. THE RISE OF MOSCOW At the end of the fourteenth century, Muscovite princes began driving back the Mongols who had occupied Russian territories for 250 years. The city of Novgorod, in the northwest, maintained trading contacts with the Hanseatic League, but most of Russia was virtually isolated. Reforging ties with both Orthodox east and the Latin west, Ivan III was the first Russian ruler to take the title Tsar or Czar (derived from Caesar). Ivan and his successors brought architects from Italy to build the great stone cathedrals of the Moscow Kremlin, Dormition, the Annunciation and St Michael the Archangel, the Faceted Palace and the crenellated walls around the citadel, combining Russian and European architectural forms. Ivan IV (‘The Terrible’) initiated major building and reconstruction projects after a fire destroyed much of Moscow. He annexed Novgorod and Tver’, brought both loot and artists to the Kremlin, and established workshops of icon painters and metalsmiths in the Armoury Palace. Ivan’s conquest of Kazan (1555) brought the plains east of the Volga River and their pagan and Islamic inhabitants under his control. Later campaigns pushed Russia’s boundaries south to Astrakhan and east into Siberia. To commemorate his victory, Ivan commissioned St Basil’s Cathedral on Red Square, just outside the Kremlin walls (see p.155). It was based on the central ‘tent-roof’ design of wooden churches and contained eight separate churches, each set off by multiple domes embellished with polychrome tiles and paint. This cathedral, with its inventive use of both Russian and Asian features, marked a new stage in Russia’s political and cultural identity. Ivan IV’s reign ended in violence and confusion in 1584. In the following ‘Time of Troubles’, Moscow’s authority diminished as Poland conquered much of western Russia. While central control declined, new centres of icon painting, metalwork and enamel developed in the northeastern regions, around Veliky Ustyug, Sol’vychegodsk and Perm’. These towns were settled by merchant clans from Novgorod, notably the Stroganov family, who established a renowned school of icon painting. The election of Mikhail Romanov as tsar in 1613 began a period of political retrenchment and ecclesiastical reform lasting two generations. Tsar Alexey Mikhailovich encouraged foreign traders to settle in an eastern suburb of Moscow known as the ‘German Suburb’ and opened new routes north of Moscow to the White Sea. The port of Arkhangel’sk on the Northern Dvina River became the major hub of commerce during the summer months when it was free of ice. Alexey’s son Peter I, known as Peter the Great (r.1696–1725), recognized that only a permanent commercial and naval port would allow Russia to interact fully with western nations, and after winning the region from Sweden, he founded St Petersburg at the RUSSIA 1500-1800 DMITRY LEVITSKY, Princess Khovanskaia and Mlle Khrushcheva (1773), State Russian Museum, St Petersburg. Acclaimed for imposing portraits of Catherine II, Levitsky introduced an informal style in seven paintings of Catherine’s favourite pupils in the school she founded for well-born girls, the Smolny Institute. Shown in a performance at the school for the Empress, the girls display an engaging concentration, in contrast to the stilted poses of earlier portraiture. 70˚ 60˚ 50˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ Moscow Kostroma Kazan’ Samara Orenburg Gorodets Archangel (Arkhangel’sk) Sol’vychegodsk Perm’ Chelyabinsk Ufa Vyatka Solikamsk Nizhniy Tagil Yekaterinburg Tobol’sk Vorkuta Velikiy Ustyug Vladimir SaratovTula Ryazan’ Orël Yaroslavl’ Kholmogory Nizhniy Novgorod Tsaritsyn Astrakhan Vologda Kargopol’ Sergiyev-Posad Smolensk Vitebsk Kiev Chernigov Poltava Odessa Zaporozh’ye Rostov Kharkov Kursk Novgorod Pskov Revel’ Riga Vilna Warsaw Tver’ Helsinki St Petersburg Tikhvin L. Onega L. Ladoga Vistula Dnieste r Danube Dnieper Don Donets Volga U r al Kama Pechora Mezen’ Onega Sukhona Vycheg da Oka N orthern Dvina Western Dvina B A LTIC SEA GULF OF FINLAND WHITE SEA B L A C K S E A SEA OF AZOV KARA SEA CASPI A N SEA C A U C A S U S U R A L M T S KALMYKS BASHKIRS SAM O Y E D S LAP P S KAZAKHS TA TA RS F I N L A N D P R U S S I A H A B S B U R G P O S S E S S I O N S R U S S I A N E M P I R E SWEDEN O T T O M A N E M P I R E N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 1 European Western Russia in the 18th century concentration of serfdom area of ‘Old Believers’ settlements site of major architectural landmarks, 16th-18th centuries centre of court-sponsored art metalwork stonework and gems ceramic and porcelain bone carving wood carving and painting textiles printing regional market/fair shipbuilding 1 THE FOUNDING OF ST PETERSBURG in 1703 signalled a shift to the West, but efforts to modernize the country confronted the beliefs and practices of many nationalities and religious groups, including the Old Believers, who rejected reforms and settled in northern forests. Serfdom was the economic base of the central ‘black soil’ farming regions. Bound to the land, serfs endured harsh conditions, but some received training in the arts. St. Petersburg and Moscow were the centers of culture, but other cities were famed for special resources and crafts. 5˚ 50˚ St Columb‘s Cathedral Tintern Abbey Byland Abbey Dryburgh Abbey Cleeve Abbey Canterbury Cathedral Rochester Cathedral Ely Cathedral Durham Cathedral York Minster Carlisle Cathedral St Patrick’s Cathedral Salisbury Cathedral Winchester Cathedral Fountains Abbey Bolton Abbey & Priory Woburn Abbey Fore Abbey Timoleague Abbey Melrose Abbey Bury St Edmunds Waverley Abbey Rievaulx Abbey St Andrews Dunblane Cathedral Arundel Castle York House Whitehall - (Charles I) St James’s - (Charles I) Stirling Castle Falkland Palace Nonsuch Palace Knole HouseHampton Court Palace (Charles I) Oatlands Palace Queen’s House Worksop ManorPlas Teg Hall Castle Menzies Rufford Old Hall Beaulieu Dundalk Carrickfergus Londonderry Powis Castle Little Moreton Hall Blickling Hall Burghley House Wollaton Hall Hardwick Hall Aston Hall Audley End Hatfield House Charlton House Parham Park Longleat Montacute House London Deptford Cambridge Yarmouth York Newcastle Blackburn Rochdale Bury Liverpool Chester ConwayBeaumaris Caernarvon Birmingham Nottingham Hull Kidderminster Coventry Gloucester Tewkesbury Worcester Chepstow Teignmouth Milford Haven Tenby Carmarthen Bristol Bridgewater Southampton Portsmouth Shoreham Pevensey Winchelsea Romney Sandwich Haverfordwest Exeter Otterton Exmouth Lyme Regis Weymouth Kingswear St Helens Melcombe Regis Poole Wareham Plymouth Fowey Dartmouth Sidmouth St Ives Edinburgh Dumfries Glasgow Dumbarton Inverary Dundee Perth Leith Aberdeen Inverness Dublin WexfordWaterford Cork Baltimore Drogheda Oxford Tyne Trent Severn Thames N O R T H S E A I R I S H S E A E N G L I S H C H A N N E L BRISTOL CHANNEL E N G L A N D I R E L A N D S C O T L A N D W A L E S 1570s timber from West Indies timber from Baltic Caen stone from France tapestries from Belgium furniture, leather goods from Low Countries skilled labourers from Low Countries, France, Italy alabaster searoutetransportingcoal 1 19 18 2 5 3 4 16 9 8 7 10 11 12 20 23 21 25 26 24 22 13 14 6 17 15 N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 The English Renaissance, 1500-1666 country house country house no longer standing palace outstanding interior art collection (with collector) cathedral cathedral stripped abbey dissolved monastery destroyed monastery converted to private house sacred art destroyed toolmakers nails metal goods glass stone cloth wool cotton important port main route/road imports 1 - 2 - 3 - 4 - 5 - 6 - 7 - 8 - 9 - 10 - 11 - 12 - 13 - 14 - 15 - 16 - 17 - 18 - 19 - 20 - 21 - 22 - 23 - 24 - 25 - 26 - 1577, seat of Clan Menzies 16th c, timber-framed 1591, for Elizabeth Shrewsbury 1580-88, by Robert Smythson, extensive windows early 16th c, timber-framed, moated medieval, 1587-96 modernized by Sir Edward Herbert, only long gallery remains 1618-35, for Sir Thomas Holte, by John Thorp 1565-87, for William Cecil early 17th c 1603-16, for 1st Earl of Suffolk, 1699 made royal palace by Charles II 1611, expansion of royal palace at Hatfield 1607-12, for Sir James Newton, attributed to James Thorpe 1572-80, by Sir John Thynne finished 1599, for Edward Philips, early use of H-shaped plan 1660‘s, rare surviving example of pre-18th c Irish country house 1761 destroyed by fire early 17th c mid-16th c, for James V of Scotland early 16th c, country house of Stuart monarchs from 1538, for Henry VIII, 1556 completed by Earl of Arundel, 1682 demolished 1538 ceded to Henry VIII, rebuilt, home to Elizabeth I, James I, Charles I, 1650 destroyed remodelled for Cardinal Wolsey, 1514-28, home to Tudor monarchs in 16th c 1540s acquired and enlarged by Henry VIII, 1566 granted to Thomas Sackville from 1616, for Anne of Denmark, by Inigo Jones, completed by Charles I, pure classical style Thomas Howard, 2nd Earl of Arundel 1586-1646 demolished 1670s, George Villiers, 1st Duke of Buckingham 1592-1628 BRITAIN 1500–1666 163 1 THE ARTISTIC AND INTELLECTUAL SPIRIT of the Renaissance blossomed at the court of Henry VIII (r.1509–47). Renaissance humanism can be discerned in the writings of Thomas More (1478–1535). In 1512–18 the Italian sculptor Pietro Torrigiano (1472–1522) created monuments for Henry’s parents at Westminster Abbey in the latest Italian idiom. The newly cosmopolitan court attracted the German portraitist Hans Holbein (1497–1543) in 1526. Hampton Court Palace was begun in 1515 under the patronage of Cardinal Wolsey (1475– 1530). Terracotta roundels by Giovanni da Maiano added an Italianate element to the inner courtyard. The interiors, with superbly decorated ceilings, imported and domestic tapestries, were by English and Continental craftsmen. England’s growing mercantile prowess during the sixteenth century, gradually securing dominance over key trade routes, underpinned artistic production. NICHOLAS HILLIARD’S Young man leaning against a tree among roses (c.1587). Miniature painting (limning) was probably introduced from the Low Countries. By the Elizabethan period, Hilliard (1547–1619) was leading an indigenous tradition. His young man wears Elizabeth I’s heraldic colours – black and white – and holds an eglantine rose, also Elizabeth’s chosen symbol. Hand on heart, and wandering in the forest like the lovers of Shakespeare’s As You Like It, the young man declares his devotion for his queen. painted at the court of Charles I while serving as a diplomat. In this work can be seen the full glory and extravagance of the European baroque. The extravagance of Charles’s patronage, and his absolutist claims, precipitated a disastrous Civil War (1642–6), Charles’s execution in 1649, and the iconoclastic and Puritan government of Oliver Cromwell (r.1649–58). The word, as exemplified in the works of John Milton (1608–74), was preferred to the image, though the portrait of Cromwell himself by Peter Lely (1618–80) – straightforward, dour, and unflattering – presents an ideal of Protestant art. The restoration of the monarchy in 1660 saw a blaze of Baroque ceremonial, such as the lavishly orchestrated state entry of Charles II to London in 1661. Disgraced Puritans saw in the Great Fire of 1666, which decimated London, divine retribution for the return to courtly decadence. St Paul’s Cathedral St Bride’s St Sepulchre St EdmundSt Michael Paternoster St Stephen Walbrook St Lawrence Jewry St Mary-le-Bow Horse Ferry London Bridge Tottenham Court Queen’s House, Greenwich Tower of London Hampton Court Palace Mile End Road Ratcliff Highway Thames NewRiver W albrook Fleet Ditch LAMBETH MARSH Spital Fields St Giles’s Fields Lincoln’s Inn Fields Smithfield Cornhill Leicester Fields MARY-LE-BONE VAUXHALL LAMBETH WESTMINSTER SOUTHWARK WHITECHAPEL ROTHERHITHE BERMONDSEY WAPPING BETHNAL GREEN STEPNEY SHADWELL MILE ENDCLERKENWELL ISLINGTON HOXTON built by Romans, renovated 1586, 1608, 1610 site of bridge since Roman times 1509 converted from palace to prison 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 N 0 0 1 mile 1.5 kms 2 London c.1600 built-up area London Wall extent of fire damage Sept. 1666 (destroys 13,000 houses, 87 churches) road palace theatre Wren church rebuilt 1670s after fire of 1666 CONTINENTAL ARTISTS IN LONDON Hans Holbein Hans Eworth Antonis Mor Marcus Gheeraerts Sir Peter Paul Rubens Sir Anthony Van Dyck Wenceslaus Hollar (1497/8-1543) From Augsburg. Portrait painter at court of Henry VIII. (fl.1540-1573) From Antwerp. In England by 1545. Portraits of nobility and gentry. (c.1516-76) From Utrecht. In England 1554-55 as painter to Philip II of Spain. (c.1520-90) From Antwerp. In England by 1570. Worked at court of Elizabeth I. (1577-1640) Flemish painter sent to England as a diplomat of Philip II of Spain. Commissioned by Charles I to paint ceilings of Banqueting House, Whitehall (1599-1641) From Antwerp. Worked in England during reign of Charles I. (1607-77) From Prague. Brought to England by Earl of Arundel. Worked primarily as an engraver. built 1598-99, destroyed by fire 1613, closed 1642 by Puritans built 1613-14, closed 1656 built 1587, closed 1606 residence of Archbishop of Canterbury since 1200, Great Hall rebuilt 1600 designed by Inigo Jones for James I 1603-25, decorated by Rubens 1629-34 built 1532-40 by Henry VIII piazza and market square developed 1556 after designs by Inigo Jones 1 Globe Theatre - 2 Hope Theatre - 3 Rose Theatre - 4 Lambeth Palace - 5 Whitehall Palace - 6 St James’s Palace - 7 Covent Garden ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 162 THE STUART ASCENDANCY Scotland and England were united when James VI of Scotland succeeded Elizabeth I in 1603. During the previous century Scottish architecture had absorbed Renaissance influences, seen in the portrait medallions and buttresses at Falkland Palace, Fife. Little survives of the sacred arts of medieval Scotland as a result of the extreme iconoclasm of the sixteenth century. A unified Britain, renowned for its maritime expertise, began to trade with the East and West Indies. Exotic imports – silk and spices from the East, timber from the Caribbean – became available. This period saw the founding of the earliest British colonies, and international trade greatly increased the country’s wealth. THE ENGLISH BAROQUE After the Act of Union, the Stuart dynasty, under James I (r.1603–25) and his son Charles I (r.1625–49), gradually assumed the cultural trappings of an absolute monarchy. Vernacular architectural traditions were abandoned. The work of Inigo Jones (1573–1652), such as the Banqueting House, Whitehall (1619–22), brought Classical and Palladian influences to England. The Flemish artist Peter Paul Rubens (1577–1640) IN 1500 MANY ASPECTS of life and culture in the British Isles continued much as they had throughout the medieval era. The period covered here, concluding with the Great Fire of London in 1666, was one of remarkable achievement and innovation in architecture and the visual arts, coupled with social, economic, political and religious convulsions. REFORMATION ICONOCLASM For the first three decades of the sixteenth century, the Church, and especially the great monastic foundations across Britain, remained centres of wealth and artistic excellence. The richness of late-medieval sacred visual culture was abruptly terminated by the Reformation. Henry VIII’s Act of Supremacy of 1534 was aimed primarily at securing him a divorce. It was followed swiftly by the dissolution of the monasteries, ending a major source of patronage for the arts, and a wave of iconoclasm which swept away many of the glories of Gothic stained glass, ceramics, metalwork, textiles and wall-paintings. In many cases (such as Rievaulx in Yorkshire, and Bury St Edmunds in Suffolk), the monastic buildings themselves were left as ruins. Monastic wealth was distributed to Henry’s supporters among the aristocracy, resulting in an expansion in the building of country houses. THE COURT OF THE VIRGIN QUEEN The age of Elizabeth I (r.1558–1603) revealed the full possibilities for the arts under a Protestant regime. The rich literary and musical culture of the period found counterparts in the secular decorative arts, and miniature painting attained the highest levels of excellence. The growing wealth and confidence of the aristocracy and gentry found cultural expression in the design and decoration of country houses, which became the defining architectural form of the period. Fortifications were no longer necessary, and the availability of glass, as well as the influence of classicizing styles, produced new architectural forms. Noblemen who occupied the highest ranks of government received large financial rewards, and were able to create grandiose country houses. Elizabeth’s chief minister, William Cecil (1520–98), built Burghley House. Edward Seymour (c.1506–1552), ruler (‘Protector’) during the reign of the boy king Edward VI (r.1547–53) created Longleat House, Wiltshire. BRITAIN 1500-1666 HARDWICK HALL, built of local Derbyshire sandstone, impresses upon the viewer a sense of the dynastic ambitions of Elizabeth, Countess of Shrewsbury (‘Bess of Hardwick’), by whom it was built between 1591 and 1597. The architect, Robert Smythson, incorporated medieval elements, such as the tall, encircling towers, as well as the Renaissance loggia and balustrade. The interiors feature rich tapestries, portraits in oils and elaborate decorative plasterwork. 2 TUDOR AND STUART LONDON. London was by far the largest city in Britain in 1500 and has remained so ever since. The centre of court and government and a major mercantile and financial centre, London was home to the finest practitioners of the arts, from silversmiths and silk-weavers to plasterers and painters. Continental artists from Holbein to Van Dyck, Rubens and Lely found patronage at the English court. The theatre, though considered suspect by Puritans, thrived during this period, the age of Marlowe, Shakespeare and Jonson. BRITAIN 1666–1800 165 10˚ 5˚ 0˚ 55˚ Sl Sl Sl S S S S S S S S S M M M L L L L L L L L L L L L L L L L L G G G G G London Colchester Brighton 14 Dover 27 Cambridge 24 York 84 Newcastle 132 84 Liverpool Bolton Preston Bradford Chester 36 Birmingham Stourbridge 63 Hereford Nottingham 36 NorwichDerby Hull Whitby Leeds 84 Manchester 80 Sheffield 60 Stafford 24 Ipswich Swansea Kilkenny Newry Cookstown 75 Shrewsbury Stoke-on-Trent Coventry Gloucester 39 40 Bristol Bath 30 Southampton 40 Exeter Plymouth Edinburgh 230Glasgow Dublin Belfast Oxford 13 Wedgwood factory founded 1759 Ty ne Dee T hames N O R T H S E A IRISH SEA E N G L I S H C H A N N E L BRISTOL CHANNEL A T L A N T I C O C E A N ENGLANDIRELAND SCOTLAND WALES N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 2 Industrial Britain, c.1800 source of granite source of limestone source of marble source of sandstone source of slate iron works shipbuilding major dock development booming city glass pottery cutlery woollens/cloth/cotton silk coalfields turnpike road network, 1750 journey time from London, in hours L G M S Sl Bath 30 3 EIGHTEENTH-CENTURY LONDON was a recognizably modern city, as seen in Hogarth’s lively ‘modern moral subjects’. Coffee houses provided meeting places for artists and literary figures, patronized by wealthy merchants as well as the aristocracy whose Palladian townhouses dignified the city. Elegant West End developments, such as Hanover Square, provided an ideal backdrop for polite society. amateur draughtsmen of the leisured classes would be accompanied by a drawing teacher. The artists Paul Sandby and Thomas Hearne were among their number. After the beginning of the French Revolution in 1789, travel in Europe became more difficult, sometimes impossible, focusing even greater attention on the beauties of the local landscape. Landscape painting, however, was a precarious profession. Thomas Gainsborough (1727–88), a native of Suffolk, sustained his fashionable lifestyle by selling portraits of exceptional elegance; but his letters reveal a preference for the creation of idyllic rustic landscapes. Richard Wilson, a Welsh landscape painter deeply influenced by Claude (1604/5–1682), pioneered a classical landscape style in Britain, painting subjects such as the Cader Idris and Dinas Bran mountains in Wales, but received scant patronage. BIRTH OF A MODERN ART WORLD The organization of artistic life in London underwent profound changes during this period. The court painters Godfrey Kneller and James Thornhill had led small academies in the early eighteenth century, which were succeeded by William Hogarth’s St Martin’s Lane Academy (active 1735–67). None of the many attempts to organize the profession, however, had a fraction of the impact made by the Royal Academy of Arts. Founded in 1768, with Joshua Reynolds (1723–92) as its first President, the Academy assured its forty members of social and intellectual status, BEGUN IN 1699, Castle Howard is a magnificent country house set in the Yorkshire countryside. Various members of the Howard family financed its construction and decoration, which was completed only in 1811. Its dramatic outline and spectacular detailing belie the fact that it was the first building designed by the dramatist John Vanburgh. T h a m e s Lam beth M a r s h Tuthill Fields Cavendish Square Soho Square Bloomsbury Square Charing Cross Covent Garden Piccadilly St James’s Square Westminster Abbey Westminster Bridge St James’s Palace St James’s Park Hyde Park 19 20 21 22 23 40 41 42 43 4849 50 51 52 53 54 55 56 57 58 59 60 61 62 44 4546 47 24 33 37 39 38 35 1,4,5,6 36 34 27 28 29 30 31 32 25 26 12 12 9 11 3 1 8 10 14 13 7 2,3,6 3 5 18 15 16 17 N 0 0 500 yards 500 metres 3 London area of late 17th-century development development c.1710-50 development c.1750-1800 structure now destroyed Studios and homes of artists 1 - Hogarth 2 - Hayman 3 - Reynolds 4 - Lely 5 - Kneller 6 - Thornhill 7 - Hudson 8 - Wilson 9 - Zoffany 10 - Gravelot 11 - Roubiliac, Read 12 - Paul Sandby Meeting places 13 - Old Slaughter’s Coffee House 14 - Tom’s Coffee House Art schools and academies 15 - St Martin’s Lane Academy 16 - Society of Arts 17 - Royal Academy Schools 18 - Great Queen Street Academy Churches, with architect and date 19 - St Clement Danes, Wren 1680-82 20 - St James, Wren 1676-84 21 - St Anne, Wren 1686-1717 22 - St George, James 1721-24 23 - St Mary-le-Strand, Gibbs 1714-17 24 - St George, Hawksmoor 1720-30 25 - St Peter, Gibbs 1721-24 26 - St Martin-in-the-Fields, Gibbs 1722-26 Theatres, with architect and date 27 - Lincoln’s Inn Fields, Davenant 1658-1794 28 - Theatre Royal, Wren 1764; remodelled by Adam, 1775; remodelled by Holland, 1794 29 - Opera House, Vanbrugh 1704 30 - Theatre Royal, Shephard 1792; remodelled by Holland, 1792 31 - Little Theatre (Theatre Royal from 1767), Potter 1720 32 - The Pantheon, Wyatt 1722 Academies and exhibition rooms 33 - Sir Godfrey Kneller’s Academy, 1711-23 34 - Sir James Thornhill’s Academy, 1724-34 35 - St Martin’s Lane Academy, 1735-67 36 - Great Exhibition Room from 1757 37 - British Museum, Montagu House, from 1759 38 - Royal Academy, Old Somerset House, 1771 39 - Society of Arts, 1754 Palladian mansions, with architect and date 40 - Burlington House, 1665; additions by Gibbs, 1715, 1719 41 - Queensbury House, Leoni 1721-23 42 - General Wade’s House, Burlington 1723 43 - Pembroke House, Campbell 1723 44 - Devonshire House, Kent 1730s 45 - 44 Berkeley Square, Kent 1742-47 46 - Chesterfield House, Ware 1747-52 47 - Spencer House, Vardy 1766 Adam-style mansions, with architect and date 48 - Lichfield House, Stuart 1764-66 49 - Londonderry House, Stuart 1774-82 50 - Melbourne House, Chambers 1771-76 51 - Landsdown House, Robert Adam 1761-68 52 - 20 St James’s Square, Robert Adam 1775-89 53 - Derby House, 1773-75; remodelled by Robert Adam 54 - The Adelphi, Adam brothers 1768-74 Other important monuments, with architect and date 55 - Somerset House, Chambers 1776-86 56 - The Admiralty, Ripley 1723-26 57 - The Horse Guards, Kent 1750-58 58 - Dover House, Paine 1755-58 59 - Paymaster General’s Office, Lane 1753 60 - The Treasury Building, Kent 1734-37 61 - Home of Sir John Soane (now Sir John Soane’s Museum), 1792 62 - Hanover Square, post 1714 2 BETWEEN 1760–80 industrial production burgeoned, benefitting from the availability of fast-flowing water, coal and iron. The Staffordshire pottery of Josiah Wedgwood cutlery and silverware from Sheffield or woollen cloth from Leeds achieved growing renown. while offering an annual juried exhibition for the sale of work. It also provided a thorough artistic education to generations of aspiring artists and, in Reynolds’s Discourses (1769–90) it was underpinned by a fully articulated body of theory. The Academy was housed in William Chambers’s grandiose Somerset House, where densely hung exhibitions became fashionable events. It signalled a new status for the arts, which Reynolds considered to be commensurate with the status of Britain as a major imperial power and a centre of scientific innovation. The Royal Academy of Arts successfully established a professional elite, and its members included two women artists, Mary Moser and Angelica Kauffman. Art education was placed on a professional footing. The middle-class public who flocked to the Academy’s exhibitions were, however, more enthusiastic as patrons of landscape and portraiture than for the history paintings which Reynolds aimed to promote. The stage was set for the triumph of English landscape painting in the Romantic decades from the 1790s to the 1840s. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 164 Priory in Yorkshire. Great collections of classical antiquities, particularly sculpture, were acquired by the British aristocracy and gentry – the ‘milordi’ – on the European Grand Tour. This was also the age of the landscape garden. At Stowe, temples designed by John Vanburgh, William Kent and James Gibbs are situated in an informal garden designed in its evolving forms by Charles Bridgeman and Lancelot ‘Capability’ Brown. The Gothic ‘folly’ became a favourite adornment, for example at Harewood House in Yorkshire, and Horace Walpole, author of The Castle of Otranto (1765) transformed a Twickenham farmhouse, Strawberry Hill, into an early masterpiece of ‘Gothick’, whose style contrasts with the Palladian villas of Alexander Pope and David Garrick nearby. TRAVEL, TOURISM AND LANDSCAPE Towards the end of the eighteenth century, educated tourists and artists alike began to turn their attention to the natural scenery of the British Isles. Guided by Rev. William Gilpin’s picturesque tours of areas such as the Western Highlands, the Lake District and the Wye Valley, THE GREAT FIRE of London (1666) destroyed much of the medieval city, including the great Gothic structure of St Paul’s Cathedral. Despite various proposals, one by Christopher Wren, the capital was not transformed into a great Baroque city, but largely retained its medieval street plan. The lavish culture of the Restoration court was epitomized by Sir Peter Lely’s portraits of the King Charles II’s courtiers and mistresses. THE AESTHETICS OF THE GREAT ESTATE This was the great age of country-house building, as profits from landed estates burgeoned, owing to new farming techniques, and the aristocracy invested in profitable mercantile and industrial ventures. Country seats of the aristocracy included such palatial structures as Chatsworth House in Derbyshire, Blenheim Palace in Oxfordshire and Powerscourt House near Dublin in Ireland. Distinguished not only by their sophisticated adaptation of Palladian architecture, these ‘stately homes’ contain superlative examples of a wide range of decorative arts, from the work of the wood carver Grinling Gibbons at Petworth in Sussex to furnitute by Thomas Chippendale at Nostell BRITAIN 1666-1800 1 DESPITE THE increasing influence of the bourgeoisie, the eighteenth century was dominated culturally, politically and socially by the aristocracy and gentry. A large number of great country houses from this period have survived intact, revealing the extremely high quality of decorative art production in this period, as well as the lavish collections acquired at home and abroad. 5˚ 0˚ 50˚ Au Ag en Pb Ag London Cambridge Norwich Lowestoft Ipswich York Whitby Grasmere Kendal Penrith Liverpool Betws- y-coed Bangor Caernarfon Keswick Birmingham Stoke-on-Trent New Hall Swinton Derby Loughborough Pinxton Sheffield Leeds Lancaster Kidderminster Worcester ChepstowSwansea Killarney Bristol Caughley Bath Aberystwyth Exeter Wilton Woodstock Monmouth Nantgarw Axminster Plymouth Edinburgh Kenmore Dunkeld Kinross Bothwell Lanark DumbartonTarbert Inverary Perth Stirling Glasgow Dublin Limerick Cork Oxford Longton Hall Chatsworth Taymouth Castle Blarney Castle Tintern Abbey Goodrich Castle Dolbadarn Castle Dinas BranValle Crucis Abbey Drumlanrig Seaton Delaval Castle Howard Erddig Beaulieu Dyrham Park Blenheim Palace Chatsworth House Petworth House Moor Park Royal Naval Hospital Florence Court Floors Castle Yester House Thirlestaine Castle Mellerstain Dalkeith Park Inverary Castle Powerscourt House Attingham Park Hagley Hall Nostell Priory Holkham Hall Stowe House Woburn Abbey Mereworth Clandon Park Chiswick House Stourhead House Rousham Houghton Hall Russborough House Culzean Castle Mount Stewart Kenwood House Garrick’s Villa Syon House Osterley Park The Casino Castletown House Castle Coole Belvedere Westport House Castle Ward Kedleston Hall Heaton Park Harewood House Plas Newydd Charlemont House Gosford House Dumfries House Castle House Slane Castle Strawberry Hill Headfort House The Leasowes Pope’s Villa Kew Gardens Tyne Tees Trent Sev ern Mersey Shanno n Lee Thames Loch Lomond Falls of the Clyde Dargle Forest of Dean Coldwell Rocks Liffey Belle Isle Swallow Falls Avon Wye Dee NORTH SEA A T L A N T I C O C E A N I R I S H S E A E N G L I S H C H A N N E L BRISTOL CHANNEL Ben Lomond Snowdon Skiddaw Scafell Pike Cadair Idris Great Sugarloaf Saddleback/ Blencathra Helvellyn Latrigg WICKLOW MTS E N G L A N DI R E L A N D S C O T L A N D WALES Devil’s Bridge N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 The Age of Aristocracy, 1666-1800 major artistic and architectural centres areas of artistic activity regions important in the picturesque discovery of Britain and the rise of landscape painting artists touring the area castle/fort/abbey mountain other physical feature major country houses: Baroque Palladian Neoclassical Gothic important interior important garden/parkland important art collection carpet manufacturer centre of furniture and cabinet-making centres of ceramics: creamware earthenware porcelain stoneware tin-glazed earthenware centres of production of metalwork and jewellery: pewter jet wrought iron electroplate silver iron and steel jewellery pearl shell ormulu bronze enamels lead brass gold and silver Pb Ag Au Ag en Southwest Ireland: Carver Barrett Delane Mullins Roberts Ashford Fisher Wheatley Barry Dublin and the Wicklow Mts: Carver Barrett Delane Mullins Roberts Ashford Fisher Wheatley Barry North Wales: Buck Boydell Wilson P. Sandby Gilpin Ibbetson Warwick Smith Rowlandson Turner Western Highlands: Norie P. Sandby T. Sandby A. Runciman J. Runciman More Gilpin Hearne Naysmyth Allan Farington Ibbetson Lake District: Gilpin Beaumont Hearne Farington Gainsborough de Loutherbourg Wheatley Tourne Dayes Abbot P. Sandby Warwick Smith Wright of Derby Turner Wye Valley: Gilpin Hearne Turner Girtin WILLIAM HOGARTH’S Beer Street epitomizes the robust humour of this most profound satirist. Published in 1749 with a pendant Gin Lane, the plate extolls the wholesome virtues of beer: everyone except the pawnbroker thrives under its influence. Trade with the North Netherlands, c.1600 political boundary, c.1550 navigable waterway Imports From Germany: wine and stone From Russia: talcum, fish oil, hides and furs From Norway: stockfish and timber From Sweden: iron and weapons From Prussia and Poland: grain, rye, wax, flax, ash, tar and wood From Scotland: wool, lead, sheepskins and candles From England: beer, fine cloth, tin and baize From Americas: gold and silver, salt, timber, pearls, hides From Caribbean: tortoiseshell and ebony From East Indies: pepper, nutmeg, cloves and silk From Italy: marble, recent art, antiquities and luxury goods From France: sail cloth, salt and wines From Spain: oil, salt, raisins, wine, figs, sugar, cork, semi-precious stone and spices 2 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 THE NORTH NETHERLANDS 1500–1800 167 Baltic and later by extensive global exploits. At the beginning of the sixteenth century Amsterdam, with little more than 10,000 inhabitants, still lagged behind her local competitors; a century later she had overtaken all, not only in size, but also in wealth, which was increasingly related to the import of precious commodities and raw materials often from halfway around the globe. Iron from Sweden was forged into arms, which guaranteed the hegemony of the trading classes in their worldwide ventures. Amsterdam’s sudden riches, the envy of Europe, forced her ‘upstart’ rulers to present visual apologies in the shape of small oil paintings with internationally recognizable, moral stories. This genre of predominantly Biblical history painting was the most popular in Amsterdam until the second half of the century, and was made famous by the city’s most celebrated immigrant, Rembrandt. THE DUTCH ART MARKET Rembrandt first left Leiden for Amsterdam soon after the concentric canal expansion (1612–20) had created thousands of prosperous homes which were seeking visual aggrandizement and display. Besides history paintings, many landscapes and portraits were produced and an active art market developed. The print industry also expanded, developing a particular specialization in map-making. With a second town expansion in the 1660s up to 300 more painters arrived, their work exported by an increasing number of art dealers. The clientele, boasting by then three or more generations of established wealth, was increasingly seeking refined opulence. This was introduced in all genres, but best expressed in exquisite still-lifes, full of allusions to exotic imports. In the first half of the century Amsterdam had asserted her power through militia paintings, culminating in Rembrandt’s Nightwatch (1642, Amsterdam, Rijksmuseum). During the second half of the century marine painting reflected the Anglo-Dutch conflicts, fought out in a series of spectacular sea battles. Other cities like Amsterdam profited from immigration and overseas exploits, but JAN VERMEER, THE ART OF PAINTING, 1662–5. Probably made in connection with a new building for the Delft painters' guild, this large work not only documents the city's refinement, but celebrates the art of painting in general. The painter, dressed according to a much earlier fashion, portrays an introverted young woman, elegantly attired as the muse of history. In an interior richly decorated with marble and aristocratic Delft tapestry, she poses against a wall map of the Northern and Southern Netherlands. The values represented in the painting include an interest in the long pedigree of local painting, in secretive female beauty, in learning, in spacious, high-class environments and patriotism. 1 2 5 6 7 8 9 10 43 111213 Haarlem Amsterdam Alkmaar Enkhuizen Utrecht Middelburg Dordrecht Leeuwarden Zwolle Arnhem Zutphen Nijmegen Breda Antwerp Maastricht ’s Hertogenbosch Kampen Deventer Groningen Rotterdam Delft Gouda The Hague Leiden Rhine Vecht Kr om m e Rijn Scheldt Waal M euse Amst el Vl iet ZUIDER ZEE N O R T H S E A UTRECHT DRENTHE GRONINGEN BRABANT GELDERS LIMBURG LIÈGE JÜLICH (GULLIK) EAST FRIESLAND CLEVES OVERIJSSEL FRIESLAND FLANDERS HOLLAND ZEELAND COLOGNE M Ü N STER N 0 0 80 miles 50 kms 2 THE FOUNDATION of the East Indies Company in 1602 followed by that of the West Indies Company in 1621, fortified single enterprises through unification. Some individual merchant families continued within established trades such as grain. variations in these and other factors may explain the striking differences in the type of painting produced in each of them. For example, Delft allowed only a limited import of skilled labour mainly for her new, capitalintensive, tapestry industry. It remained a small, clean, conservative community in which Jan Vermeer could create his genteel, light and spacious interiors, draped with tapestries and peopled with dreamy, dignified citizens. Leiden, in contrast, needed a large workforce to ensure that her labour-intensive wool industry flourished. Immigrants filled all available living space, providing the context for the small paintings of shallow and dark interiors by Leiden’s most famous painter Gerrit Dou. The elite of Utrecht, on the other hand, continued the traditions of the former bishopric and its landed aristocracy and patronized painters who travelled as a matter of course to Rome. They became the major importers of Italian style and subject matter. THE END OF AN ERA The eighteenth century was a reaction to the previous period of aggressive wealth and art accumulation. Capital was invested, and art collections were passed on from generation to generation, meaning that fewer painters found a market. If they succeeded, it was often with decorative work, such as painted ceilings and wall hangings with pastoral landscapes and classical allegories (De Lairesse) or with flower paintings (Ruysch). Genre painting concentrated on refined interiors (Ochtervelt, Schalcken, Van der Werff). Cornelis Troost (1696–1750) in Amsterdam was the only painter who satirized this establishment satisfied with living off its former glory. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 166 SINCE THEIR ORIGINS in around the twelfth century the cities in the fertile delta of the two great northern European rivers, the Rhine and Meuse, had enjoyed growing prosperity mainly due to agriculture and trade. At first, they concentrated on architecture – religious, feudal and civic. But, by 1500, at the end of the Burgundian period, towns such as Haarlem and Leiden had started to support other artistic activities as well. The Church and the governing classes patronized expensive art, for example painted or sculpted altarpieces, silver vessels, portraits and illuminated manuscripts. Simultaneously the young print industry satisfied a new bourgeoisie with images of a more varied subject-matter, distributed more widely at lower cost. THE DUTCH REPUBLIC Yet artistic production came to a virtual halt in 1568 when different, discontented groups brought about a revolt against the ‘foreign’ Roman Catholic Church and the centralized government of the equally ‘foreign’ Spanish Habsburgs, who in 1515 had inherited the feudal titles to the Netherlands. Although this conflict was to continue for 80 years, in 1579 the Seven Northern Provinces succeeded in establishing a new state, a federal republic. The young republic’s fate was strongly influenced by her embargo of Antwerp after this formidable trading and banking centre had come under control of the Spanish enemy (1585). The exodus of Protestant merchants and craftspeople, including artists, benefited the northern cities, above all Amsterdam. The character of Amsterdam’s citizens was shaped by the disadvantages of their original landless, waterlogged situation, which spurred them on to take advantage of their geographical position, first by trading on the THE NORTH NETHERLANDS 1500-1800 AMSTERDAM’S NEW TOWN HALL (1648), the largest secular structure in Europe before Louis XIV erected his palace in Versailles, was constructed from German Bentheim stone, with the grandiose citizen’s hall entirely clad in white Italian marble. With its floor inlaid with maps of the earth and the heavens, the building epitomized in its use of materials and decoration the city’s prime position in world trade. Haarlem 1245 Amsterdam 1304 Utrecht 1122 Middelburg 1217 Dordrecht 1150 Rotterdam 1340 Delft 1246 The Hague Leiden 1206 Rhine Gouwe Scheldt Schie V liet Am stel N O R T H S E A ZUIDER ZEE U T R E C H THOLLAND Z E E L A N D Dunes D u n e s N 0 0 40 miles 25 kms 2 2019 1 431 210 1 5 212 2 3 421 1 222 Year Population 1500 - 12,000 1560 - 14,000 1622 - 40,000 1700 - 50,000 1800 - 19,000 Town hall, Doelen Weighhouse, Meat Hall 16th C: M. van Heemskert, H. Goltzius 17th C: H.Vroom, P. Saenzedam, C.W. Heda F. Hals, J. Leyster, M. Molenaar,A. van Ostade S. Ruisdael, L. de Key, J. van Campen, P. Post 16th C: M. van Heemskert, H. Goltzius 17th C: J. van der Velde; H. Segers Year Population 1501 - 12,000 1561 - 27,000 1623 - 105,000 1701 - 140,000 1801 - 205,000 Town hall,Weighhouse, Doelen Houses of Corrections, Stock Exchange, Offices of E.I. & W.I. Co, Doelen,Arsenal, Orphanages Theatre,Town Hall, Hospitals,Almhouses,Admiralty Warehouse,Wharf, Inns 16th C: J. Cornelisz, D. Jacobsz, D. Bazendsz 17th C: P. Lastman, Rembrandt, H.Avercamp, G. van Coninxloo, H. Segers, E van der Velde, Ph. Koninck, B. van der Helst, F. Bol, G. Flinck, G. Metsu, A van Everdingen, J. van Ruisdael, M. Hobbema, A van der Neer, P. de Hooch, E de Witte, W. van de Velde I,II, H. de Keyser, J. van Campen Vingboons Bros 16th C: C.Anthonisz, D. Barendsz 17th C: Rembrandt van Rijn, H. Segers Year Population 1502 - 15,000 1560 - 26,000 1624 - 35,000 1702 - 41,000 Citadel,Town hall, Bishop's Palace Mint, University 16th C: J. Gossaert,A. Mor, J van Scorel 17th C: J.Wttewael,A. Bloemaert, P. Moreelse, C. van Poelemburg, H.Terbruggen, G. Honthorst, D. van Baburen, J. van Biljert, R. Savery Year Population 1504 - 14,000 1564 - 16,000 1626 - 44,000 1704 - 72,000 1800 - 63,000 Burch, Count's prison, Town hall Town Hall, Dike reeve, University, Botanical garden, Theatre,Weighhouse, Serge hall 16th C: C. Engelbrechtsz, L. van Leyden 17th C: J. van Goyen, G. Dou, Jan Steen, F. van Mieris 16th C: Lucas van Leyden Year Population 1500 - 15,000 1560 - 16,000 1622 - 18,000 1700 - 22,000 1800 - 18,000 Town hall, Doelen Mint 16th C: J.J. Doudijn 17th C: G. and A. Cuyp, S. van Hoogstraten, J. de Bischop, N. Maes, A. de Gelder Year Population 1501 - 3,000 1561 - 8,000 1623 - 45,000 1701 - 50,000 1800 - 58,000 Stock Exchange,Town hall, Doelen, E.I. Co Building, Dike reeve office, Admiralty building, statue of Erasmus 17th C: J. Porcellis, S. de Vlieger, W. Buytenwech, H. Sorgh, Saftleven Bros, L. de Jong, E. van der Neer,A. van der Werff Year Population 1502 - 10,000 1562 - 14,000 1624 - 23,000 1702 - 19,000 1800 - 13,000 Town hall New Town Hall, Meat Hall E.I. Co building,Arsenal, Artillery house 17th C: M.Van Mierevelt, C. Fabritius, J.Vermeer P. de Hoogh Year Population 1503 - 3,000 1563 - 7,000 1625 - 16,000 1703 - 30,000 1800 - 38,000 Castle, Government offices,Town hall, Doelen Doelen, Princely palaces 17th C: J. van Ravensteyn, J. van Goyen, A. Hanneman,A. van Beyeren 18th C: D. Marot, J. de Wit, C.Troost 17th C: E. van de Velde 2 78 Year Population 1500 - 8,000 1562 - 15,000 1622 - 28,000 1702 - 30,000 1800 - 15,000 Town hall E.I. Co warehouse 17th C: A. Bosschaert, B. van der Ast, A. van der Venne 1 THE DIFFERENT SOIL and water conditions that influenced the first siting of the Dutch cities resulted in their acquiring different civic characters, experiencing different historical developments and ultimately creating different types of art. After 1500 the medieval towns grew phenomenally, some supported by newly drained polderland. The most decisive change in civic life took place between 1590 and 1630, when Protestants fleeing persecution in Catholic countries took advantage of new possibilities for world trade. Commerce was fed by imports from all parts of the globe. Earlier established industries, such as dairy and textile production and brewing, were turned into more capitalist and specialized enterprises, profiting from fresh export opportunities. Painting and printmaking enjoyed a similar expansion, becoming part of a prestigious luxury trade. Sculpture, by contrast, became a rare art form used for civic display – for example within the Amsterdam townhall or for tombs of naval heroes. 1 Dutch Cities: Art and Commerce, 1500-1800 Major city, with date of first city privilege Number of monastic buildings Number of churches before Alteration Number of churches after Alteration Civic architecture before Alteration (c.1570-80) Purpose-built civic institutions after Alteration Administrative centre Well-known artists and architects Well-known printmakers Major economic resources: brewing earthenware fishing flower bulbs harbour linen 2 19 20 light manufacturing shipbuilding silk trade woollen cloth tapestry making THE SOUTH NETHERLANDS 1500–1800 169 industrial production of art by anonymous masters. Purchased speculatively by merchants, goods were marketed along the trade networks. Examples are sizable oak altarpieces with painted wings and sculpture-filled interiors; oak and walnut polychromed statuettes of Jesus and Mary, whose nurturant appeal explains Magellan’s gift of a Jesus ‘poupée’ to a Philippine princess; and devotional reliefs carved in Mechelen from English (Nottingham) alabaster. THE CROSSROADS OF THE NORTH Antwerp’s commercial supremacy was established after the Portuguese spice staple moved there in 1501. Merchants poured in, making Antwerp the pivot of global trade networks and Europe’s most cosmopolitan metropolis. Many of its notable sixteenth-century buildings were commercial: the Beurs, the world’s first stock exchange, with 100 stalls reserved for art; the German merchants’ warehouse; shops publishing quality copper engravings; the Plantin Press, which monopolized the sale of religious texts in Spain and its colonies; and a tapestry sales hall. Tapestry, the most sumptuous commodity, woven in Brabantine and Flemish cities, required Spanish wool and Italian silk thread. By the THE COLLECTION pictured in this painting, The Allegory of Sight (1617) by Jan Brueghel the Elder and Peter Paul Rubens, reflects the eminence of the South Netherlands as an art centre. When hostilities ceased in the early seventeenth century, money which had previously been used for warfare was now redirected to peacetime concerns, notably the arts and sciences. The Archdukes gave their enthusiastic support to these pursuits. In this painting, Flemish art predominates, but classical sculpture, scientific instruments and rarities are also well represented, evidence of the cultivated milieu of this Habsburg court. 20˚10˚0˚ 40˚ 50˚ I C E E St Ma St Ma Cu Cu Cu Cu L L L L L L Verona Hamburg Amsterdam Delft Venice Seville Pavia Genoa Cologne Rubens Rubens Van Dyck Van Dyck Brueghel Snyders Brueghel Rubens Snyders Rubens van Dyck Snyders Rubens Snyders Rubens Van Dyck Snyders and many others Rubens Rubens Rubens Snyders Seine Loir e Rhône E bro Tagus Od er Rhine Elbe N O R T H S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A BALTIC SEA A T L A N T I C O C E A N PYRENEES A L P S G R E AT B R I TA I N PAPAL STATES MILAN BAVARIA AUSTRIA PRUSSIA DENMARK O T T O M A N E M P I R E K.DOM OF NORWAY S W E D E N BOHEMIA SOUTHERN NETHERLANDS TUSCANY P O L A N D KINGD O M OFNAPLES A N D SICILY SARDINIA SICILY NETHERL ANDS SAXONY S P A I N PORTUGAL F R A N C E to the Americas from Caribbean and E. Indies from India from Africa, India New Spain to the West Indies from Guatemala from the Americas from Caribbean and E. Indies N 0 0 450 kms 300 miles Artists who returned to the Netherlands de Vriendt Coebergher Francart Rubens Huyssens Duquesnoy Quellinus I 2 The South Netherlands in an International Context, 1500-1800 border of Holy Roman Empire, 1721 exports from the Southern Netherlands: tapestry paintings prints and books sculpture carved Brabantine oak altarpieces, 1500-1550s art cabinets, 17th century lace silk diamonds export of tapestry expertise, 17th century countries playing host to 17th-century painters imports/local production centres: copper stone/marble ebony ivory tortoise shell gold and silver diamonds cochineal indigo Cu St Ma L E C I 2 STRATEGICALLY SITUATED, the South Netherlands in the sixteenth century was an art emporium where mass-produced goods were distributed to all compass points along extensive trade networks. In the seventeenth century trendsetting artists, such as Rubens and Van Dyck, personally transmitted their style abroad, as well as absorbing cultural influences from far-flung places. seventeenth century, Flemish expertise was in such demand that princely patrons lured weavers to foreign cities to found competitive shops. Another wall covering, cordwain (made of leather), was a Mechelen specialty. With the arrival of the Archdukes, the region became the northernmost Habsburg bulwark against Protestantism. To this end, ecclesiastical institutions assumed a formidable propagandistic role. Substantial sums were expended on pilgrimage centres, such as Scherpenheuvel, new churches were styled in the Roman Baroque manner, old churches were repaired, and up-todate decor – windows, choirscreens, altarpieces – was incorporated. Antwerp gives some indication of this intense activity: ten cloisters were founded between 1607 and 1621 and, at roughly the same time, Rubens’s shop turned out some 60 altarpieces. Court culture offered Flemish painters international opportunities to fashion political imagery, court portraits and paintings for picture galleries, a new symbol of princely or aristocratic status. Flemish painters had always travelled south; in the seventeenth century many, such as Rubens and Van Dyck, embarked on lengthy Italian sojourns. Their reputations spread south of the Alps, and the international Baroque idiom was widely diffused. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 168 THE SOUTH NETHERLANDS, a sovereignty only during the reign of Albert and Isabella (1598–1621), was a Habsburg territory governed from afar. Still, it profited from its integration within the Empire, as three examples illustrate. The art cabinet originated in Antwerp c.1620, when collecting rarities became fashionable. Its fabrication required ebony and tortoiseshell from the Indies and ivory from Ceylon and west Africa; these arrived in Antwerp via Lisbon and Cádiz. Another instance is diamonds, carried by Portuguese merchants from India for cutting in Antwerp. Antwerp’s dyeing industry depended on American cochineal and indigo. The Iberian peninsula was a primary market for products from the South Netherlands. Numerous art cabinets were exported there, as well as oil paintings on copper and inexpensive watercolours on linen. Thousands of pictures were sent on to New Spain and the West Indies. Markets outside the Empire were tapped too. One estimate claims that one-third of the sixteenth-century pictures collected in Florence, Genoa and Venice were of Netherlandish origin, with landscape the preferred subject. AN ABUNDANT LAND Natural resources abounded for architecture, sculpture and church furnishings: clay (for brick), sandstone, limestone, bluestone and marble. The latter included touchstone from Dinant and Namur, Tournai blue-black, and red and variegated colours from Rance. A brownish-ochre marble from Hainault was used at St Peter’s in Rome. Only white marble was unavailable locally and had to be imported from Italy. Coal and iron from the Ardennnes and Liège supported small arms and armour industries in Antwerp and Liège, but other manufactures – engraving plates, picture supports and scientific instruments – depended on copper imported via Hamburg. Extensive oak and walnut stands furnished wood for sculpture, picture supports and timber. Flax from Flanders was used to make thread for damask, linen, canvas and lace. Two periods are remarkable. The years between 1500 and the 1560s were characterized by entrepreneurial innovations. The period from 1600 to 1650 was distinguished by the CounterRefomation and court culture. The most notable sixteenth-century innovation is the quasiTHE SOUTH NETHERLANDS 1500-1800 THE ANTWERP JESUIT CHURCH (as depicted by William Schubart von Ehrenberg, oil on canvas, 1667) was completed in 1621. The church was built in anticipation of the canonization of the order’s founder Ignatius of Loyola, and in recognition of the Jesuits as Catholicism’s most militant defenders. The edifice symbolized the triumph of the CounterReformation in the Habsburg Netherlands. No expense was spared: Italian marble dressed the severe interior, while Rubens, the foremost Netherlandish master, furnished paintings and sculptural designs, and advised the Jesuit architect Huyssens. 8˚ 52˚ 51˚ 7˚6˚5˚4˚3˚2˚ R R R R B B B B LL L L L L L L L L M M M M M M M M M M M M M M M M M M S S S S S S S S T T Middelburg The Hague Rotterdam Utrecht Zutphen ’s-Hertongenbosch Maastricht Saint Truiden Asse Diegem Vilvoorde Scherpenheuvel Antwerp Ghent Basècles Namur Floreffe Fontaine- l‘Évêque Moulin Dinant Agimont Merlemont Senzeille Rance Rochefort La Roche-en-Ardenne Bouillon Stavelot Trier Luxembourg Liège Cambrai Oudenaarde (Audenarde) Bruges Ypres Lille Dilbeek Tournai (Doornik) Mons Bouvignes Soulme Cerfontaine Solre-Saint-Géry Dunkirk Artois Courtrai (Kortrijk) Louvain Brussels Enghien (Edingen) Avesnes Saint-Rémy Écausinnes-Lalaing Écausinnes-d’Enghien Mechelen (Malines) Munster Cologne Scheldt Rhine O u rthe Lesse Meuse/M aas Sambre Leie N O R T H S E A FLANDERS A R T O I S H A I N A U LT TOURNAI WALLOON FLANDERS C A M B R A I L U X E M B O U R G L I M B U R G UPPER GELDERLAND B R A B A N T F R A N C E HOLY ROMAN EMPIRE 16th-18th C Our Lady (Coebergher) 1609 Jesuit Church of St Michael (Hesius) 1650-71 16th C Jesuit Church (Huyssens) 1615-21 16th-17th C: Cathedral of Sts Michael & Gudule Carmelite Church (Coebergher) 1607-11 17th-18th C 17th C: DuQuesnoy 17th C: cordwain 16th-17th C: Coudenberg Palace (Coebergher) 1607-11, Grande Place, 1696-1700, Palace of Charles Lorraine 1756 cordwain 1500-1685 until 1530s 16th-18th C 16th C: alabaster sculptures and reliefs, brass lecterns, baptismal fonts, 17th C: Quellinus, art cabinets 16th-17th C; gold and silver tableware; and liturgical objects, keyboard instruments 16th-17th C: Cathedral of Our Lady; 17th C: Church of St James Print publisher J. Cock establishes shop; Plantin Press established 1555 16th-17th C to 1530s 16th C 17th C 16th-17th C watercolour paintings on linen 16th C; Hieronymous Bosch 16th-18th C: 746 registered painters 1600-50 17th C: dyeing, lace, linen, silk, embroidered trimmings; diamond cutting, pearls Stock Exchange 1531-33, Tapestry Hall, Town Hall 1561-65, Hansa Warehouse 1564-69, Militia Company Hall 1631-33 mid-16th-18th C to mid-16th C damask linen wooden devotional sculptures (beeldjes/poupées de Malines) 16th-18th C, cordwain 16th C N 0 0 30 miles 40 kms 1 South Netherlands, 1500-1800 frontier, 1609 Netherlands, 1609 Principality of Liège tapestry paintings on panel, copper, cloth painting on glass prints and books carved altarpieces, to 1530s sculpture furnishings fashion and fabrics secular/residential architecture/civic structures religious architecture scientific instruments armour mining centres/quarries: bluestone limestone marble sandstone touchstone S T M L B R 1 THE TERRAIN of the South Netherlands was conducive to the transport of raw materials and manufactures, thanks to its mainly flat or undulating topography and extensive network of rivers and roadways. During the course of the sixteenth century, deep-sea harbours were lost through warfare, and Antwerp’s river port blockaded, leaving only Dunkirk with direct ocean access. 2 Swiss Diversity Swiss languages: French German Italian Romansh typical architectural style GERMANY AND SWITZERLAND 1500–1650 171 sculptor Hubert Gerhard (1540/50–before 1621), who may also have trained in Florence, worked in Munich, Augsburg and Innsbruck. More broadly, Counter-Reformation patronage by the Jesuit order provided many opportunities for artists in the second half of the sixteenth century. Roman Catholics were not the only ecclesiastical patrons in Germany. Martin Luther himself dedicated the palace chapel at Torgau, which has significant classicizing decoration. It is considered the first chapel conceived specifically for Protestant worship. The German lands suffered terribly in the Thirty Years’ War, and it is often thought that artistic production stopped in these years. This view comes largely from the painter and writer Joachim von Sandrart (1606–88). But while mid-fifteenth century, almost simultaneously in Italy and Germany. Although many early prints were either cheap devotional images or propaganda, those made by the best masters in Augsburg and Nuremberg were art objects of the highest standard. Dürer’s engravings and woodcuts were prized throughout Europe. Dürer was fundamental to the artistic culture of this period, for he embodied the ideal ‘Renaissance man’ more completely than any of his contemporaries. He was interested in classical antiquity, and, unlike his peers, he studied in Italy (1494–5 and 1505–7). He was a close friend of humanists and intellectuals and wrote a treatise on human proportion. All of this influenced his work profoundly. More than any other German painter, he approached art as an intellectual. RENAISSANCE ART IN SWITZERLAND Dürer’s younger contemporary, Hans Holbein the Younger (1497/8–1543), was born and trained in Augsburg, but moved to Basle in 1515. Basle was a thriving intellectual and artistic centre in the early sixteenth century, drawing Dürer (as a student) and the humanist Erasmus of Rotterdam, as well as Swiss artists such as the goldsmith and draftsman Urs Graf (c.1485–1527/29). There was a long tradition of artistic contacts between Germany and Switzerland. In the fifteenth century, the German Konrad Witz (1400/10–1445/46) was the most important painter working in Basle and Geneva. Likewise, Italian-speaking parts of Switzerland profited from close contacts with northern Italy; the prominent Milanese painter Bernardino Luini (c.1480/85–1532) provided a number of works for the Catholic city of Lugano. Many other Swiss cities, including Basle, Geneva and Zurich, converted to Protestantism in the 1520s. Religious painting, the most attractive work for a painter, was banished in the ensuing iconoclasm. Frustrated with this artistic climate, Holbein left Basle in 1526 for the court of Henry VIII (r.1509–47) in England. Although the Catholic regions continued to support devotional art, and there was still a market for graphic works, portraits, and other non-religious art in other regions, few internationally important artists settled in Switzerland after the 1520s. REFORMATION GERMANY It is often assumed that the arts in Germany declined precipitously after the deaths of Cranach and Dürer. The Reformation initiated in Saxony by Martin Luther (1483–1546), and the devastating Thirty Years’ War (1618–48), are supposed to have crippled the artistic life of the region. Significant projects were undertaken throughout this period, however. The Ottheinrichsbau of Heidelberg Castle was begun around 1556, and the Friedrichsbau of the same complex in 1601, both with rich sculptural decoration. Munich prospered in the same period. The ornate Antiquarium (begun 1563), which housed the Duke of Bavaria’s collection of antique sculpture, was designed by the Italian architect and antiquarian Jacopo Strada (1515–88). Strada, who was trained by Giulio Romano (c.1499–1546), was crucial for the transmission of Italian and classical forms and ideas to northern Europe, but he was not alone. The imperial sculptor Adriaen de Vries (1556–1626) was trained in Florence by Giambologna (1529–1608). He worked primarily in Prague, but completed significant commissions for German patrons, including two monumental fountains for the city of Augsburg. The Dutch 2 THE EXTREME DIVERSITY of the mountainous Swiss landscape fosters an extraordinary variety of provincial building types. This map shows only a few of the many traditional forms. The variations can be attributed to many factors, including practical limitations on building sites, locally available building materials, and traditional building techniques in a given region. These considerations are directly related to Switzerland’s tremendous topographical and climatic range. 8˚6˚ 46˚ 48˚ 10˚ Konstanz Zurich Freiburg Basle Geneva Lausanne Bern Lugano L. Geneva Rhine L. Constance L. Neuchâtel L. Maggiore A L P S FRANCHE-COMTÉ DUCHY OF SAVOY DUCHY OF MILAN REPUBLIC OF VENICE H O L Y R O M A N E M P I R E T Y R O L N 0 0 50 miles 75 kms PETER FLÖTNER, APOLLO FOUNTAIN (1532). This fountain, which stood in the house of the Nuremberg archers’ company, reveals the sophisticated Renaissance interests of patricians in that city. Its classical subject, form and proportions were inspired by prints by Albrecht Dürer and the Venetian Jacopo de’ Barbari (1460/70–1516), the first Italian to work extensively in Germany. Magdeburg and Heidelberg were destroyed (including Heidelberg Castle, which survives as a ruin), many other centres survived largely unharmed, including Augsburg and Nuremberg. Although there is some truth to Sandrart’s comments, the German artistic tradition survived this period, and was thus poised for renewed growth at the end of the seventeenth century. Germanic Art in the 16th Century Holy Roman Empire borders of Swiss Confederation modern borders of Germany region of brick construction region of oak and walnut sculpture region of limewood sculpture important painting workshops important sculpture workshops centres of large-scale bronze casting terracotta decorative sculpture centres of fine metalwork centres of printmaking and distribution centres of book production Natural resources: marble quarries limestone quarries alabaster quarries copper and silver mines P A 1 ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 170 THE FIRST HALF of the sixteenth century marks a high point in the art of the German lands, which were a collection of principalities grouped under the rule of the elected Holy Roman Emperor. The painters Albrecht Dürer (1471–1528), Matthias Nithart, called Grünewald (1475/80–1528), and Lucas Cranach (1472–1553) are the most familiar artists of the period, but the artistic flowering extended far beyond their works. Limewood, abundant in the southern German lands, was ideal for delicately sculpted figures and altarpieces, and was exploited to its limits by Tilman Riemenschneider (c.1460–1531) and others of his generation. Masters in the north worked in oak and walnut, harder woods that tend to yield somewhat more blocky figures. Especially in Augsburg and Nuremberg, where Italian Renaissance principles were accepted almost unconditionally, cast bronze sculpture was produced at a very high level by Peter Vischer (c.1460–1529), Peter Flötner (1485/96–1546), and others. Printmaking was developed in the GERMANY AND SWITZERLAND 1500-1650 LUCAS CRANACH THE YOUNGER, Last Supper of the Protestants and the Pope’s Descent to Hell (c.1546). Cheap to produce and distribute, prints were used widely in the bitter religious struggles of the Reformation. Here Martin Luther stands in the pulpit, blessing the Protestants receiving the host on the left. On the right, flaming hell consumes monks, bishops, cardinals and a pope. 14˚6˚ 46˚ 50˚ 54˚ 10˚ P P P A A Geneva Bern Basle Zurich Salzburg Innsbruck Vienna Freiburg Strassburg (Strasbourg) Hamburg Schwerin Lüneburg Wismar Cologne Güstrow Wittenberg Lübeck Bremen Münster Lemgo Magdeburg Würzburg Aschaffenburg Heidelberg Marburg Leipzig Erfurt Mainz Prague Dresden Stettin Berlin Brunswick Torgau Munich Eichstätt Passau Augsburg Ulm Solnhofen Nuremberg Bamberg Regensburg Frankfurt am Main Rhine Meuse Elbe Oder Danube BA LT I C S E A A L P S N E TH ER L A N D S LORRAINE W E S T P H A L I A BRUNSWICK- LÜNEBURG H O L S T E I N MECKLENBURG PRUSSIA B R A N D E N B U R G P O M E R A N I A S A X O N Y T H U R I N G I A H O L Y R O M A N E M P I R E BAYREUTH HESSE BADEN LO W ER PALATINATE F R A N C O N I A K I N G D O M O F B O H E M I A K I N G D O M O F P O L A N D BAVARIA S I L E S I A WÜRTTEMBERG SALZBURG TYROL A R C H D U C H Y O F A U S T R I A S W I S S C O N F E D E R AT I O N 1 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 16 17 14 15 2 N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms Important artistic workshops 1 - Albrecht Dürer; Hans Süss von Kulmbach: George Pencz 2 - Lucas Cranach I; Lucas Cranach II 3 - Hans Holbein the Elder; Jörg Breu; Hans Burgkmair 4 - Hans Holbein the Younger 5 - Bartholomäus Spranger 6 - Albrecht Altdorfer 7 - Hans Baldung Grien 8 - Matthias Grünewald 9 - Bernt Notke 10 - Tilman Riemenschneider 11 - Veit Stross; Peter Vischer; Peter Flötner 12 - Daucher family; Gregor Erhart 13 - Loy Hering 14 - Adriaen de Vries 15 - Philipp Brandin 16 - Hubert Gerhard 17 - Alexander Colin 1 DIFFERENT REGIONS of Germany provided different materials used in artistic production, helping to define distinct local styles. While many German and Swiss cities specialized in the production of certain goods, other centres, including Augsburg and Nuremberg, produced a variety of arts at a high level for patrons throughout Europe. GERMANY AND SWITZERLAND 1650–1800 173 by Roman fresco painting, but other aspects of their work come from Vienna and elsewhere. A distinctive, highly decorative Rococo architecture is found throughout southern Germany, the legacy of the Asams, Johann Baptist and Dominikus Zimmermann (1680–1758 and 1685–1766), and others. But if Roman and French styles were prevalent in Germany, one need not look far to discover other international influences. The architecture of Johann Conrad Schlaun (1695–1773) in Westphalia, for example, shows the influence of nearby Holland, which is also visible in Brandenburg. Balthasar Neumann (1687–1753), perhaps the greatest German architect of the eighteenth century, drew freely on the work of Guarino Guarini (1624–1683) in Turin. His best-known building, the residence of the Prince-Bishop at Würzburg, demonstrates the international interests of patrons and artists. The fresco on the vault above the monumental staircase is a masterpiece by the Venetian painter Giambattista Tiepolo (1696–1770). SWISS ARTISTS ABROAD Switzerland has four official languages, twentysix cantons (confederate regions) and a variety of religious confessions, all of which conspire against artistic unity. Moreover, Switzerland has always been strongly influenced by its larger neighbours, and the reception of these influences is to a large degree determined by linguistic region. Thus when French-speaking Geneva became a major financial centre in the DRESDEN FROM THE RIGHT BANK OF THE ELBE (1748) by Bernardo Bellotto (1721–80), born in Venice and trained by his uncle, the famous Venetian painter Canaletto (1697–1768). He made a career as a view painter in Central Europe, working in Dresden, Vienna, Munich and Warsaw. A number of artists travelled from centre to centre in this manner, carrying artistic ideas with them from one region to another. 10˚ 50˚ 60˚ Paris Amsterdam Stockholm St Petersburg Copenhagen Berlin Dresden Breslau Prague Vienna Salzburg Munich Augsburg Würzburg Hamburg Münster Cologne Stralsund Warsaw Rome Turin Venice Geneva Versailles S eine Rhine Elbe Oder Vistula Danube A D R I A T I C S E A BA LT I C S E A N O R T H S E A MEDITERRANEAN SEA H O LY R O M A N E M P I R E SAVOY F R A N C E UNITED PROV INCES DENMARK-NORWAY S W E D E N R U S S I A P O L A N D OTTOMAN EMPIRE 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms major artist or architect associated with main cities (and date of death) 1 - Guarino Guarini (d.1683); Filippo Juvarra (d.1736) 2 - Giambattista Tiepolo (d.1770) 3 - Cosmas Damian Asam (d.1739); Egid Quirin Asam (d.1750); François Cuvilliés (d.1768) 4 - Johann Bernhard Fischer von Erlach (d.1723); Johann Lucas von Hildebrandt (d.1745) 5 - Matthäus Daniel Pöppelmann (d.1736); Balthasar Permöser (d.1732) 6 - Andreas Schlüter (d.1714); Georg Wenceslaus von Knobelsdorff (d.1753); Antoine Pesne (d.1757) 7 - Balthasar Neumann (d.1753) 8 - Johann Conrad Schlaun (d.1773) 9 - Nicodemus Tessin the Younger (d.1728) 10 - Jules Hardouin-Mansart (d.1708); Antoine Watteau (d.1721) 11 - Gianlorenzo Bernini (d.1680); Francesco Borromini (d.1667) 2 THE POSITION OF GERMANY AND SWITZERLAND at the heart of Europe guaranteed the reception of artistic ideas from all sides. Paris and Rome were most important, but Amsterdam, Turin, Stockholm, Venice, and other centres also exerted more limited influences. International and regional ideas mixed, creating a remarkable variety of artistic forms. Some German centres were artistically strong enough to exert their own influence on other regions, particularly to the east. eighteenth century, its residents built Parisianstyle apartments. Despite religious differences, this region maintained close cultural ties with France – Rousseau and Voltaire both lived in Geneva. The German-speaking parts identified more closely with Germany, and artistic developments and exchange generally reflect this. Likewise, the arts of the Roman Catholic, Italian-speaking canton of Ticino were more dependent on northern Italy. After the Swiss Reformation, still lifes, landscapes, portraits and civic paintings were always in demand, and there were significant religious commissions in Ticino. Nonetheless, most of the finest Swiss artists pursued careers elsewhere. Among many others, Angelica Kauffman (1741–1807) worked in London and Rome, Henry Fuseli (Johann Heinrich Füssli, 1741–1825) in London, and Anton Graff (1736–1813) in Dresden. Kauffman was an internationally important proponent of Neoclassicism. Neoclassicism dominated Europe and North America, but German theorists and artists were central to its formation. The writer and historian Johann Joachim Winckelmann (1717–68) and his acquaintance, the painter Anton Raphael Mengs (1728–79), were essential to the rise of historicism. Winckelmann and Mengs were Saxon, but both worked in Rome (Mengs also worked in Madrid). Their principles were practised at the highest level by the architects Karl Friedrich Schinkel (1781–1841) in Berlin and Leo von Klenze (1784–1864) in Munich. Germany at the Crossroads of Europe, 1680-1750 Holy Roman Empire borders, c.1721 Papal States Brandenburg-Prussia Poland and Electorate of Saxony (united under same ruler 1697-1763) Lands of the House of Habsburg Hanover (united with Great Britain since 1714) Venetian lands Bavaria spread of artistic influences 2 ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 172 GERMANY’ WAS A LARGE GROUP of semiindependent principalities until unified in 1871. Until 1806, these were grouped together in the Holy Roman Empire, ruled by the Austrian Habsburg dynasty. Some of these territories were Roman Catholic, others (particularly in the north) were fiercely Protestant. The German lands are at the heart of Europe, and have always been influenced by the arts and culture of neighbouring countries. In the Baroque period, the dominant influences came from France and Rome, but variants were found in each region. COURTLY SPLENDOUR Frederick II of Prussia (r.1740–86) commented that every German prince considered his court a reflection of Louis XIV’s Versailles, and indeed a number of magnificent courts emerged in the early eighteenth century, many with a distinct French character. Brandenburg, for example, had been a minor provincial region, but Berlin emerged as an important artistic centre at the end of the century when the court patronized the work of the sculptor and architect Andreas Schlüter (1659?–1714). In Dresden, the Saxon Electors commissioned new works and collected old-master paintings on a grand scale beginning in this period. The Palais im Grossen Garten (destroyed 1945) was built in a French manner, but other influences were at play as well. The architect Matthäus Daniel Pöppelmann (1662–1736) and sculptor Balthasar Permöser (1651–1732) developed a flamboyant and distinctive baroque that recalls the Roman tradition, which is best seen in the Zwinger pavilion. This dichotomy of French and Roman influences characterizes much of German artistic production in this period, and indeed much of central European art as well. They were synthesized particularly successfully in Vienna by the imperial architect Johann Bernhard Fischer von Erlach (1656–1723). A different resolution of these influences was achieved in southern Germany. François Cuvilliés (1695–1768), who was trained in France, brought a glittery French Rococo to Bavaria. In the same region the brothers Cosmas Damian and Egid Quirin Asam (1686–1739 and 1692–1750) developed an almost seamless blend of architecture and decoration that is often described as ‘total artwork’. The Asams were strongly influenced GERMANY AND SWITZERLAND 1650-1800 EINSIEDELN ABBEY. The German architect Caspar Moosbrugger (1656–1723) began work in 1702 on the Benedictine Abbey of Einsiedeln, which was completed in 1735. Moosbrugger, who became a monk there, was involved in the design of a number of other monasteries in Switzerland and southern Germany. The church was decorated by the Asam brothers, showing the close cultural contact between German-speaking Switzerland and Germany. The monastery is southeast of Zurich. 14˚6˚ 46˚ 50˚ 54˚ 10˚ Geneva Bern Basle Mühlhausen Zurich ViennaLinz Hamburg Lübeck Bremen Würzburg Heidelberg Karlsruhe Zweibrücken Stuttgart Mannheim Hagenau (Haguenau) Kolmar (Colmar) Leipzig Magdeburg Quedlinburg Halle NaumburgWeimar Berlin Neubrandenburg Pasewalk Frankfurt an der Oder Mainz Prague Bautzen Dresden Munich Augsburg Kaufbeuren Kempten Nuremberg Bamberg Frankfurt am Main Paderborn Kassel Düsseldorf Minden Meuse Rhine Elbe Oder Danube BALTIC SEA A L P S UNITED PRO VINCES NETHERLA NDS SPANISH WESTPHALIA BRUNSWICK- LÜNEBURG SCHLESWIG- HOLSTEIN MECKLENBURG B R A N D E N B U R G P O M E R A N IA SAXONY THURINGIA HESSE T R I E R LOW ER PALATINATE WÜRZBURG UPPER PALATINATE B O H E M I A B AVA R I AWÜRTTEMBERG SALZBURG A U S T R I A SWISS CONFEDERATION TICINO 1777 1764 1697 1774 c.1680 (re-established 1705 and 1764) 1752 1674 1766 post-1674 (re-established 1710) 1692 (re-established 1705) 1781 1773 1753 1786 1773 1751 1767 N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 AFTER THE THIRTY YEARS’ WAR, the Académie Royale in Paris, founded in 1648, and the academies in Rome, Florence and Bologna provided a model for artistic education that was eagerly absorbed in the German lands. Often supported by the courts, these academies provided training in artistic theory and practice. Many of the earliest German academies were little more than informal meetings to draw from nature. In the eighteenth century most northern European academies were reorganized with a more formal curriculum. Recovery and Transformation after the Thirty Years’ War Holy Roman Empire borders of Swiss Confederation regions that suffered greatly during the Thirty Years’ War major art collections pre-Thirty Years’ War major art collections post-Thirty Years’ War centres destroyed in the Thirty Years’ War art collections plundered in the Thirty Years’ War academies and dates of foundation major regional academies, post 1750 1 ‘ Porte St Denis Porte St Martin Pont Marie Le Palais Seine Seine rueStJacques rue de Vaugirard rue St Honoré rueStDenis rueStMartin elp meTudeur 1 2 11 28 19 18 23 29 20 21 22 10 13 12 27 30 26 3 7 8 4 9 25 15 14 16 17 6 5 24 0 1 mile FRANCE 1500–1650 175 THE RISE OF PARIS After the French defeat at Pavia in 1525, Francis was captured by Emperor Charles V and detained in Madrid. In 1528 Francis announced he was to make Paris his customary residence. As a result, the Loire rapidly faded as the ‘locus’ of royal and court patronage. This was a watershed for the centres of arts and manufactures of the Loire, above all Tours and, to a lesser extent, Orléans, long-established centres for painters, book illuminators, sculptors, luxury fabric manufacture, enamellers, and tapestry makers. From the 1520s Francis strove to make Fontainebleau and its gardens a European centre for the arts. He nurtured a school of etchers and engravers at Fontainebleau, which consisted of Italians, Frenchmen and Flemings. He used his Venetian ambassador and agents to acquire a fine collection of Greek and Latin manuscripts. After the Sack of Rome in 1527 he procured Rosso to paint frescoes and design stucco frames in his gallery, and Scibec da Carpi for woodwork inlay. Later, from Mantua he lured Giulio Romano’s chief assistant, Francesco Primaticcio. Benvenuto Cellini was Francis’s star recruit in sculpture. NICOLAS POUSSIN: The Kingdom of Flora, 1631. This picture for long has been held to be the first full refinement in the synthesis of literary symbolism and the painter’s poetry. It is based on the world of Ovid’s Metamorphoses, but consciously does not depict a scene or episode lifted from the text. Poussin’s patrons were the ‘cognoscenti’ of Rome and Paris, and every history of art casts him as the father of Neoclassicism of the next century. The second half of the sixteenth century was dominated by three ruinous civil wars of religion, spanning the reigns of the last of the kings of the House of Valois, Francis II, Charles IX and Henry III, who was assassinated in 1589. A subsidiary cause of dissent and bloodshed was the considerable number of Italians in and around the French court, presided over by the queen mother, Catherine de Medici. Because of the crisis, a succession of grand royal architectural projects, planned for the Tuileries and elsewhere, foundered. Sporadic destruction of church artefacts and Calvinist iconoclasm occurred across France. THE BOURBON DYNASTY In 1592 the last of the wars ended with the siege and taking of Paris by Henri de Navarre, the first of the House of Bourbon. As Henry IV, he pursued a series of ambitious building projects with indefatigable energy, all cut short or put on ice by his assassination in 1610. The lengthy and colossal ‘Grande Galerie’ linking the Louvre to the Tuileries was, however, begun and completed. The repopulation and rebuilding of the capital was Henry IV’s key political and economic priority, leading to two urban initiatives, the Place Royale (now Vosges) and the Place Dauphine, which were designed to settle and root the elite and their attendant trades and services in the capital. Henry even tried to establish mulberry bushes for silk works adjacent to the Place Royale, a failed attempt to expand the industry north from Lyon. Henry’s queen, who acted as regent for the Dauphin Louis (XIII), was Marie de’ Medici. The Luxembourg Palace was built for her on the southern perimeter of Paris in a style reminiscent of the Pitti Palace in Florence. Between 1622 and 1625 Rubens produced 24 allegorical panels for one of the galleries of the Luxembourg evoking events of 1620–21, for which he was paid the immense sum of 20,000 crowns. Otherwise, patronage of foreign artists was minimal. In the third quarter of the century, many leading figures of the French school, including Poussin and Claude, were centred at Rome. Louis XIII’s first ministers, the cardinals Richelieu (d.1642) and his successor Mazarin (d.1661), were both avid builders of enormous town houses and of châteaux, and were eager to fill them with artistic acquisitions. Richelieu’s country palace at the model town of Richelieu in Poitou was destined for the display of works by Mantegna, Perugino and Michelangelo, as well as those of French contemporaries such as Poussin, patronized by Richelieu himself. In 1652–3 Cardinal Mazarin acquired the art collection of King Charles I of England. A high proportion of the most famous works, including Caravaggio’s Death of the Virgin and Van Dyck’s full-length portrait of Charles I, can now be found in the Louvre. 2 THE RESIDENTIAL, COMMERCIAL AND INDUSTRIAL area of Paris did not grow to any significant extent beyond the fourteenth-century circuit of walls and fortifications built by Charles V. In 1500, over a third of the city within the walls consisted of market gardens belonging to religious houses. By 1650, half of all these had been subdivided and developed for upper and middle class houses. The reclaiming and development of the Île-Saint-Louis from 1612 onwards required immensely costly bridges and embankments. 2 Central Paris, c.1650 - Quartier St Honoré - Quartier St Denis - Quartier St Antoine (the Marais) - L’Université/Montagne St Geneviève - Quartier St Michel/Quartier Latin - Quartier St Germain-des-Prés - Hôtel de Sens; begun 1498, completed c.1521 - Hôtel de Cluny; begun c.1485, completed c. 1519 - Hôtel de Ligneris/Carnavalet; begun 1548 - Hôtel d'Angoulême/Lemoignon; begun c. 1580 - Church of St Eustache; built 1532-1640 - Hotel de Sully; built 1624-29 - Place Royale (later Place des Vosges); begun 1605 - The Louvre; square court begun 1551, enlarged 1578, 1624. Grande Galérie along the Seine begun 1603 - Tuileries Palace; first building begun 1566, extended from 1603 - Pont Neuf; begun 1578, completed 1607 - Place Dauphine; begun 1607 - Luxembourg Palace; begun 1615 - Sorbonne College and Church; begun 1635 - Church of Val-de-Grâce; begun 1645 - Hôtel Lambert; begun 1640 - Salpêtrière; gunpowder factory from 1634, hospital from 1656 - Fosses Jaunes; new ramparts built 1630s, 1640s - Palais Richelieu (later Royal); built 1625-39 - Palais Mazarin; begun 1634 - Île Saint-Louis; developments begun 1612 - Jesuit Church of St Paul and St Louis; begun 1627 - Hôtel de Ville; begun 1533 - Port Royal; built 1628-53 - Church of the Visitation; built 1632-34 bookselling publishing and printmaking 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 18 19 20 21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 30 ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 174 THE REIGN OF FRANCIS I, from 1515 to 1547, was a time of remarkable artistic florescence in France. Unprecedented building initiatives were undertaken by the crown in the Loire Valley and the Île-de-France, and works by Leonardo (who died in France), Raphael, Andrea del Sarto and other Italian High Renaissance masters were acquired for Fontainebleau. In the Loire Valley at Blois a new wing in an imperfectly Italianate manner was begun within two years of the accession of Francis I. The focus of the court on the Loire engendered a proliferation of houses built for senior royal servants, such as Bury and Beauregard, largely known from drawings and engravings. The king’s most ambitious undertaking was Chambord. FRANCE 1500-1650 0˚ 50˚ Paris Troyes Amboise Tours Fontainebleau Chambord Villandry Orléans Ancy-le Franc Blois Chantilly Blérancourt (Aisne) Bury Anet Maisons Balleroy Chenonceaux Rennes Lille Charleville Henrichemont Arras Brussels begun 1519 major works 1528-40, 1568, 1606-09 north wing begun 1515; west wing 1635-38 built 1511-24 1514-22, 1560s begun1612 Écouen 1538 1514-22, 1560s 1626 1548-54 1546 1642-46 Parlement 1618 Bourse 1651 Vitry-le-François 1545 1608 1608 Richelieu Bourges 1631 Limoges Lyon Dijon M eu se M osell e Seine Loire Garonne Rhône Dordogne E N G L I S H C H A N N E L B A Y O F B I S C A Y M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A P Y R E N E E S A R A G O N O R A N G E C H A R O L A I S A N D O R R A F R A N C E H O L Y R O M A N E M P I R E Jean Clouet, portrait painter, from Brussels 1516 Philippe de Champagne, religious and portrait painter, from Brussels 1621 Leonardo da Vinci from Milan 1517 Domenico el Barbiere, sculptor, from Florence 1530 Nicolas Poussin, mythological, religious landscape painter, to Rome 1624 Sebastiano Serlio, architect, from Venice 1541 Giambattista di Jacopo (Rosso), painter, from Italy 1530 Claude Gellée (Lorrain), landscape painter, to Rome 1612 Benvenuto Cellini, sculptor, from Rome 1537, 1540-45 Nicolò dell' Abate, painter, from Modena 1532 Francesco Primaticcio, painter and architect, from Mantua 1532 N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 France, 1500-1600 borders, c.1530 royal château by known architects/documented masons aristocratic château by known architects/documented masons public building urbanism (planned new town) tapestry inlayed enamel publishing and bookselling artists from abroad settling/working in France emigration of French artists 1 THE REUNIFICATION OF FRANCE was substantially completed between 1500 and the conclusion of the last religious civil war in 1594. In 1528 Francis I announced he was to make Paris his customary residence, and the royal wardrobe of the most valuable royal possessions became a central depository adjacent to the Louvre. THE CHÂTEAU AT CHAMBORD. Begun in 1519, Chambord is the most sensational and spectacular fusion of medieval and romantic castle with its round, bastion-like angle pavilions with FrancoItalian decorative detail. Its purpose was solely for the reception of a select few, for entertainment and for the recreations of country blood sports. It was a deliberate expression of the king’s cult of magnificence, which makes it all the more surprising to learn that Francis I spent no more than eight nights there after 1528, when the focus of court and government life shifted permanently to Paris. FRANCE 1650–1800 177 0˚ 50˚ Paris Beauvais Maupertuis Valenciennes Rouen Bénouville St Malo Bourges Tours Chartres Aubusson Limoges Versailles Vaux-le Vicomte Compiègne Strasbourg Metz Reims Châlons-sur-Marne Verdun Troyes Chantilly Fontainebleau Rennes Quimper Brest La Rochelle Blois Bordeaux Nantes Lyon Besançon Montmusard Dijon Nancy Toulouse Montpellier Aix-en-Provence Arles Sète Valence Sèvres Marseille Toulon 1768 1657-61 1764 Town Hall 1673 Place Royale 1758 Avignon M euse Mose lle Seine Loi re Garonne Seine Rhône Loire Dordogne BAY O F B I S C AY M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A E N G L I S H C H A N N E L P Y R E N E E S ANDORRA F R A N C E S P A I N H O LY R O M A N E M P I R E Gianlorenzo Bernini, Papal sculptor and architect, from Rome 1665 ‘Prix de Rome’ winners from the Academies of Painting, Sculpture and of Architecture to Rome 1671 onwards to North America after 1710 to Dresden/Berlinto Amsterdam/ London/Stockholm to St Petersburg Jean-Antoine Watteau, fête-gallante painter, 1702 1750-54 1664 onwards 1736-88 stables 1721 1762 Town Hall 1736-44 Grand Théâtre 1784 Bourse 1762 Place Royale 1735-55; Grand Théâtre 1772-88 Town Hall/‘Capitole’ 1750 Place Peyrou 1767 Palais de Justice, Prison, Palais de Parcement 1786 Hôtel Dieu 1741-48; Grand Théâtre 1754 Placedes États 1724 Grand Théâtre 1775, Intendance completed 1776 Archbishop’s Palace 1731 Bishop’s Palace Place des Armes 1763 Place Stanislas (Place Royale) Place de la Carrière 1752-65 Intendance 1759-70 Bishop’s Palace 1700 N 0 0 2 France, 1650-1800 borders, c.1530 royal château aristocratic château major public building/urbanism tapestry/carpets faience cloth glass iron madder dye paper pottery porcelain printing silk Canal du Midi commercial harbours/military dockyards artists settling/working in France French artists to Italy mass emigration of Huguenot masters and tradesmen in luxury trades (cabinet-makers, silk workers, goldsmiths, clock and watch-makers etc) after the Revocation (1685) of the Edict of Nantes 100 miles 150 kms 2 THE ARTISTIC ACADEMIES founded by Louis XIV, especially the French Academy in Rome, continued to be of primary importance for official artistic policy. But after the death of Louis XIV their significance remained only in the spheres of history painting, sculpture and architecture. Their influence waned as a proliferation of new genres and tastes began to flourish amongst major private patrons. JEAN-ANTOINE WATTEAU, L’Enseigne de Gersaint, 1720. Gersaint’s little gallery was in an arcade on the Pont Notre-Dame in Paris. Young men and women in their finery loll about, while only one periwigged man and a priest scrutinize a painting. On the left a portrait of Louis XIV is being loaded into a crate, suggesting the passing of an age of glory to one of fashionabe slothfulness. Everything is merchandise. particularly porcelain. The Gobelins workshops produced not only popular pastoral and hunting scenes after drawings by leading painters, but also door curtains and upholstery covers. Ready markets were found in almost all European capitals. In the provinces the most successful porcelain manufacturer was Moustiers, based at Marseille from the 1740s. The most prestigious porcelain producer was, however, Sèvres, founded in 1753 by the Marquis de Marigny to quench the thirst for modish imports. Deep blue was, and is, the trademark colour. Novel combinations drawn from a variety of decorative arts kept their everchanging wares in demand nationally and internationally. In 1768 the discovery of kaolin at Limoges created ideal conditions for manufacturing hard-paste porcelain. The newly crowned Louis XVI (r.1774–92) subscribed to a philosophy that saw art as an essential element in man’s moral formation. Thus, moral and historical subjects in painting and sculpture mattered most, and Neoclassicism of the school of painters led by Jacques-Louis David was the future. By the mid-eighteenth century French, the language of diplomacy, was spoken in courts in the Rhineland, Parma and St Petersburg. All over Europe, French art, culture, luxury goods and fashions were emulated. However, the proliferation of the newer order of French art around Europe was destined to be stalled by the revolution of 1789 and the Napoleonic era. The French Academy in Rome, established in 1666, was to play a vital role in the artistic developments of the later eighteenth century and beyond. Le Palais Place Dauphine Porte St Denis Fosses Jaunes St Sulpice Sorbonne Luxembourg Place Vendôme Palais Royal Porte St Martin Pont Neuf Châtelet Hôtel de Ville Notre Dame Les Halles Bastille Temple Pont Marie Hôtel de Sully Tuileries Gardens Port Royal Seine Seine rue St Honoré rueStDenis rue du Faubourg du Temple rueMontmartre ruedeRichelieu rueStMartin rueStJacques ruedelaHa rpe rue de Vaugirard boulevarddel’Hopital Champs Élysées Cours or Boulevard Cours or Boulevard CoursorBoulevard Cours la Reine elp meTudeur rue de Grenelle rue St Dominique étisrevinU’ledeurFaubourg St Germain Faubourg St Honoré 1 2 11 19 18 23 20 21 22 10 13 13 12 3 7 8 4 9 15 14 17 16 6 5 24 0 1 mile ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 176 LOUIS XIV ASSUMED his right to power in 1661, but it was not until May 1682 that a great symbolic event for the arts took place, when he took possession of the Palace of Versailles. The huge complex was designed to accommodate both government and the court. It was also intended to be an overwhelming showcase of French art and manufactures, the pre-eminent symbol of State mercantalism. The ideology of mercantilism focused on long-term planning for industry and agriculture, as well as those fine arts which might best be enlisted to broadcast the glory of the monarchy, and the manufactures and decorative arts that could satisfy demand at home and create demand abroad. The architect of it all was Louis XIV’s first minister, Colbert. This policy of state centralization had an impact on the artistic academies in Paris. The academy for painting and sculpture, founded in 1648, was reorganized in 1663 to focus on official subject-matters. The academy for architecture was set up in 1671 under royal auspices. The French Academy in Rome was founded in 1666, to serve as a training school for French-born artists. State initiatives and investments focused on famous French manufacturers. In 1663 the Gobelins tapestry workshop in the southern suburbs of Paris was reformed; a high- and lowweave tapestry workshop was set up to produce furnishings for royal palaces. The Savonnerie factory for premier-quality carpets, based in the southeastern suburbs of Paris, achieved both national and international recognition. Another initiative focused on the development of processes to make mirror glass in considerably larger sheets than could be furnished by Venice, the European centre of mirror manufacture. The glorification of this development is the Galerie des Glaces, the pivot and climax of Versailles. THE HUGUENOT EXPULSION After Colbert’s death in 1683, the king’s obsession with his absolute authority led, in 1689, to the Revocation of the Edict of Nantes. The Edict of Nantes of 1599 had established criteria for conditional toleration of Protestants (Huguenots) within the realm, resolving the crises perpetrated by the French civil wars of religion of the second half of the sixteenth century. Its revocation was a disaster for French manufacturers, especially those working in FRANCE 1650-1800 LOUIS XIV visiting the Gobelins. Tapestry after Charles Le Brun, c.1670. This image evokes the army of painters, sculptors, engravers, weavers, dyers, goldsmiths, embroiderers, cabinetmakers, woodcarvers, marble workers, mosaicists and many more, who worked under and to the designs of Charles Le Brun. The diversity of the luxury objects produced for the king’s inspection and approval is a symbol of his munificence, omnipotence and glory, but more subtly might be read as as allegory of the fruits and abundance of peace. specialized crafts and luxury goods, such as precious metalwork or fashion fabrics and tailoring. Poor Huguenots had no choice but to abjure their religion, but the affluent urban class moved in their tens of thousands. Within a year of the Revocation, communities of French Huguenots had been established in Amsterdam, Frankfurt and, above all, London. Significant numbers were able to escape sequestration of their moveable assets of light machinery, tools, materials and money, which allowed for quite rapid re-establishment of their businesses, many of which had preexisting agents or connections outside France. Refugees they may have been, but very few were destitute. A LUXURIOUS ERA The two most significant luxury commodities produced in the mid- and late eighteenth century, in terms of immediate export and volume produced, were tapestry and 1 DURING THE REIGNS of the last three Bourbon kings Versailles became an integral part of the history of the capital. With the death of Louis XIV in 1715, however, there was an inexorable drift of aristocrats wishing to live in the metropolis and commute to Versailles when required, resulting in the wholesale development of the Faubourg St Honoré on the Right bank and the Faubourg St Germain on the Left. 1 Paris, c.1700 - Louvre; east wing 1667-70 - Saint Roch; begun 1653 - Place Louis-le-Grand (Vendôme); begun 1685 - Place des Victoires; begun 1685 - Hôtel des Invalides; hospital built 1670-77, church built 1679-91 - Collège des Quatre Nations; begun 1662 - Pont Royal; built 1685-87 - Porte St Denis; built 1672 - Porte St Martin; built 1674 - Porte St Antoine; remodelled c.1670 - Porte St Bernard; built 1670 - Hôtel de Lauzun; built 1656-57 - Grands Boulevards; replace walls of Charles V, begun early 1670s, completed 1705 - Salpêtrière; hospital buildings begun 1658 - Hôtel de Beauvais; built 1652-55 - Gobelins; tapestry factory, reformed as the Manufacture Royal 1687 - Hôtel de Soubise; built 1705-09 - Hôtel de Rohan; built 1705-08 - Hôtel Aubert de Fontenay dit Sale; begun 1656 - Tuileries Palace; extensions to the north 1659-66 - Tuileries Gardens; redesigned 1664 onwards - Val de Grâce; conventual buildings 1655-63, church completed 1669 - St Joseph des Carmes; completion of conventual buildings 1674 - Church of the Assumption; built 1670-76 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 18 19 20 21 22 23 24 SPAIN AND PORTUGAL 1500–1800 179 0˚ 40˚ La Coruña Santander Burgos Madrid Valladolid Seville Granada Lisbon Córdoba Toledo El Escorial Valencia Duero Tagus Guadalquivir Eb ro A T L A N T I C O C E A N B A Y O F B I S C A Y M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A P Y R E N E E S B A L E A R I C I SS P A I N F R A N C E P O R T U G A L works by Titian, Tintoretto to Spanish court from 1533; Leoni, Tibaldi, Zuccaro commissioned for mural, sculptural decorations at El Escorial, 1563; El Greco settles in Toledo, 1582; works by Titian, Bassano, Palma to El Escorial, 1593; Velázquez acquires works in Rome for palaces in Madrid, 1630-31, 1649-51; Tiepolo in Madrid from 1761 Bourbon dynasty installs French fashions and artists (Honasse, Ranc, van Loo) from 1700 de Ribera to Naples, 1616; founds Neapolitan School Velázquez supervises painting cycle in Palacio del Buen Retiro celebrating imperial victories (1633-35); equestrian statue of Philip IV (1634-40) by Tacca Macip, Ribalta Mor, Zurbaran, Murillo, Mengs, Tiepolo, Goya Navarrete Kempeneer, Zurbarán, Velázquez, Murillo Kempeneer (Flemish) in Seville from 1540; Mor (Dutch) in Spain 1551, 1574, in Portugal, 1552; van der Wynegaerde (Flemish) commissioned for views of Spanish cities, 1563-70; paintings by Bosch and Flemish artists to El Escorial, 1593; Rubens (Flemish) in Madrid, 1628-29, Valladolid, 1603; works from Charles V’s collection to Philip IV from 1649; Mengs (German) in Madrid from 1761 N 0 0 150 miles 200 kms Painting and Sculpture, 1500-1800 foreign artistic influences schools of painting major art collections 2 2 A WORLDWIDE EMPIRE and the wealthiest European nation, Spain became a magnet for foreign artworks and artists. Madrid, the imperial capital since 1561, became the beachhead for the artistic invasion. The initial stylistic influences were Netherlandish, providing a pious, late-medieval realism suited to ecclesiastical commissions. However, imperial taste increasingly focused upon the prestige associated with Italian Renaissance art, expanding the artistic canon to include pagan subjects and idealizing form. 1541–1614) was not willing to do so, he was rejected as a court painter. Later Habsburg rulers, especially Philip IV, actively worked to create a native school of artists who would surpass the Italians; these uniquely Spanish luminaries include the likes of Francisco de Zurburán (1598–1664), Jusepe de Ribera (1591–1652), Bartolomé Esteban Murillo (1617–82), and the greatest of them all: Diego Velázquez (1599–1660). THE BOURBON IMPACT In 1700 Philip of Anjou was proclaimed King Philip V (reigning to 1746), and the Spanish throne passed from the Habsburgs to the French house of Bourbon. The next year saw the beginning of the War of the Spanish Succession, lasting until 1715, in which Spain lost most of her European possessions, including Gibraltar. Even while the rest of Europe was experiencing an ‘Age of Enlightenment’, south of the Pyrenees the eighteenth century began as a period of political humiliation, waning military power, and material and intellectual privation. It was also seen as a period of decline in the arts, as many of the familiar attributes of native culture gave way under foreign influences. Palomino made Velázquez, long dead, the hero of his pioneering history of Spanish art. This was an era of academicism: an Escuela Nacional for architects was founded in 1744 and the Real Academia de Bellas Artes de San Fernando opened in 1752. Artists were strictly controlled: a royal decree prohibited the construction of any public building, the plans of which had not been previously approved by the Academy. The many foreign artists invited to Spain by the Bourbon court – Mengs, Tiepolo, Juvarra, Houasse, Van Loo, Ranc and so on – forced native talent either to conform or go PEDRO MACHUCA, GRANADA, PALACE OF CHARLES V, begun 1533 (unfinished). When the Emperor visited Granada in 1526, he ordered the Islamic arcropolis of the Alhambra transformed into a visual symbol of triumphant Universal Christendom. The result was the most severely classical structure of the European Renaissance. The ground-plan is a purely geometrical abstraction: a circle inscribed within a square, as in Leonardo's famous drawing of 'The Vitruvian Man'. underground. An exception was Francisco de Goya y Lucientes (1746–1828), appointed a court artist in 1786, though his most characteristic work only appears in the next century. In the courtly culture created under Bourbon sponsorship the motivating idea was a reform of a perceived ‘decadence’ suffered under the last Habsburgs. The ‘national style’, with its traits of austere simplicity and iconic veracity, was often superseded by Rococo complexity and artifice, even frivolity. The architectural embodiment of the new regal taste is Philip’s reformed summer palace, La Granja (‘The Grange’, 1735–64), seemingly the very antithesis of the Escorial. Even though La Granja nostalgically evokes Versailles, particularly its strict axial alignment between a regal residence and a series of formal gardens, the plan of the palace itself adheres to the traditional layout of Spanish Alcázares reales (royal palaces). This comprises a rectangular grid plan with towers at the corners. The gardens include (as at Versailles) a mythological-allegorical sculptural theme, including Psyche, symbol of the soul, and Apollo, a poet-musician embodying the Sun and surrounded by adoring Muses, just as the enlightened patron-king surrounded himself with court artists. The two architects responsible, Felipe Juvarra and Juan Bautista Sachetti, later designed the Palacio Nuevo in Madrid (1738–64), also conforming to the rectangle-with-courtyards scheme. The ‘New Palace’, as befits a monument set within a capital city, is more conspicuously ‘Roman’ in style, its regal and theatrical sculptures draw on national history. Its political agenda is demonstrated in the fact that inscriptions appear in Castilian and not in Latin. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 178 IN THE MID-FOURTEENTH CENTURY, Portugal had initiated what was to become an ever-expanding European conquest of all the rest of the known world. The initial impetus for the momentous European shift from a Mediterranean to an Atlantic focus was spices, necessary to make palatable the meat-based diets of Europeans before the invention of refrigeration. With land-routes to the Spice Islands blocked by Islam, Portugal went to sea, sailing to India via Africa, in order to secure the coveted goods. With that sea-route co-opted by the Portuguese, Spain instead went west towards India, finding its way blocked by a wholly unknown ‘New World’, one rich in gold and advanced, pagan civilizations. All this the Spanish appropriated with dazzling alacrity – including, in 1581, the Kingdom of Portugal. WEALTH ATTRACTS ART The gold of the Indies paid for an eruption of ecclesiastical monuments and transfiguring artworks throughout Iberia. In Portugal, the ‘Manueline’ style of architecture was briefly established, a curious blend of flamboyant late Gothic and Hindu sensuality that died out after 1530. Both as a worldwide empire and the wealthiest European nation, Spain became a magnet for foreign artworks and artists. Initially the stylistic influences were from the Spanish dependency of the Netherlands, providing a pious, late-medieval realism suited to ecclesiastical commissions. In Madrid, the imperial capital since 1561, imperial taste increasingly focused upon the prestige associated with Italian Renaissance art. The artworks aquired by Habsburg imperial agents today provide the basis for the collection of the Museo del Prado. HABSBURG INFLUENCE AND PATRONAGE The classicistic mould was set by Charles V, who ruled from 1519 until 1555. Regarding himself as the personal champion of a Universal Christendom, this monarch was to become the most determined sponsor in Spain of an antiquarian Classical style which he encountered in Italy during his various state visits and triumphal entries. Contemporary Italian classicism represented to Charles V a timely recreation of the content of ancient ‘Imperial’ Roman art, the concrete expression of absolute temporal power. Pure Classicism, at odds with the traditional medieval expressionism still attached to religious commissions, was to become the preferred iconographic language of the imperial court. This idiom was best expressed in architecture, long since made an ideological vehicle by Spanish rulers. The Palace of Charles V in Granada and the Escorial built outside Madrid by Philip II served these purposes. Beside importing Italian painters (mostly mediocre) to decorate the Escorial, Philip II also patronized native painters, especially Juan Fernández de Navarrete (‘el Mudo’, c.1520–1579), for he was most able to work in the manner of his favourite Titian. Since El Greco (Domenikos Theotokopoulos, SPAIN AND PORTUGAL 1500-1800 0˚ 40˚ Seville Salamanca Segovia Valladolid (1600-06) Málaga Oran Spanish from 1509 Melilla Spanish from 1497 Algiers Spanish from 1510-41 Bougie Spanish from 1510-55 Granada Toledo (to 1561) El Escorial Aranjuez Talavera la Reina Alcalá de Henares Madrid (1561-1600, 1606-) Royal Tapestry Factory (1720) National School of Architects (1744) Academia de Bellas Artes (1752) Barcelona ROUSSILLON to France 1659 Tarragona Alicante Valencia Saragossa (Zaragoza) Pamplona San Sebastián Laredo Bilbao La Coruña Santander Burgos Medina del Campo Lisbon Braga Oporto Batalha Coimbra Tomar Santiago de Compostela Córdoba Faro Tangier Portuguese 1471-1580 Spanish 1580-1656 English 1662-1684 Mafra Tagus Duero E bro Guadalquivir ATLANTIC OCEAN B A Y O F B I S C A Y M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A P Y R E N E E S B A L E A R I C I S A RA G O N A N D A L U S I A EST REM ADURA N AVA R R E L E Ó N G A L I C I A C A S T I L E GRANADA to Spain 1492 S P A I N PO RTUGAL F R A N C E ANDORRA (toSpain1581-1640) royal tombs in the Capilla Real (1519-20) Cathedral (1528-61) Cathedral façade (1667) Palace of Charles V (begun 1533) Pavilion of Charles V (1543-46) Renaissance Cathedral wthin Great Mosque (1523) Cathedral (1680) Cathedral (c. 1585) Obradoiro of the Cathedral(1738-49) Cathedral portal (1702-20) wealth from wool pays for Burgos Cathedral Convent of Christ (1510-14) Church of São Lourenço (1614-22) Church of the Clérigos (1731-63) Church of Santa María de Belém (1502-20) Palacio Nacional Basilica (1717-30) Tower of Belém: built in Manueline style, with Flemish, German influences (1515-20) University Library: Plateresque style with humanist motifs (1525-53) Portal-façade of university (c. 1525) Plaza Mayor (1728) University: facade in Renaissance style (1537-53) Palacio Real Nuevo (1738-64) Palacio del Buen Retiro, with royal porcelain factory (1633-40) El Escorial church and Monastery (1563-84) reconstruction of 16th-c garden palaces (from 1748) El Alcázar (begun 1085) La Granja Palace (1719-64) El Prado: Neoclassical style, designed to house royal art collection (1788) Plaza Mayor (1617-19) Chapelhas Imperfeitas (1509-33) colonies of Genoese bankers; merchants from France and Netherlands (from 1503) Spanish wool monopoly displaces farmers and native industry (1502-20) Spanish wool and silk to England, Netherlands, France until 1550s; New World silver to Antwerp, Bruges from 1552; Dutch prints and court art by Flemish artists to Spain Spainish trade with New World from 1503; ’Treasure of Montezuma‘ from Cortés, 1519; Chinese silks and porcelain across Pacific through New World to Seville from 1565. Spain exports wine. olive oil, devotional sculptures, ceramic tiles, ironware, mercury Catalonia allowed access to New World trade from 1778 trade with England, Netherlands, France, exporting spices, sugar, coffee trade with Africa, East Indies, New World; Chinese and Japanese porcelain to Lisbon, 1550-1640 textile industry collapses, 1590 silver from New World to Genoa from 1552 N 0 0 150 miles 200 kms 1 THE NEWLY-DISCOVERED wealth of the New World paid for ecclesiastical monuments and artworks throughout Iberia. Spain exported wool, silk and wine to the Spanish Netherlands, and imported influential Dutch and Flemish artworks. The religious revolt in the Netherlands involved Spain in endless wars which eventually ruined the local economy. JOSÉ BENITO CHURRIGUERA, ‘RETABLO MAYOR’ in San Esteban, Salamanca, 1692. Besides providing the English word ‘churrigueresque’, this altarpiece defines the Baroque look of both Spain and Latin America. This is a gilded, highly elaborate piece of ‘micro-architecture’ which focuses on the centrally placed ‘custodia’ containing the eucharistic wafer. Glittering and theatrical, populist and emotionstirring, structures like this example provided the stylistic model for hundreds of altarpieces in Spanish America. Church, State and International Trade, 1500-1800 Spanish trade routes Portuguese trade routes New World emigration, 690,000 emigrants, 1503-1700 expulsion of Muslims (1492, Jews (1586), moriscos (1609-14) imperial capital major church Habsburg palace Bourbon palace other major architecture metalwork textiles ceramics painted tiles leatherwork 1 ITALY 1500–1600 181 10˚ 40˚ TP TP TP TP TP TP TP TP TP TP TP TP TP TP TP TP R R R R R R R R R R R R R M M M M M M M M M M M H H H H H H H H H A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A Bologna Ferrara Venice Padua Verona Milan Pavia Mantua Turin Genoa Pisa Florence Pistoia Arezzo Siena Perugia Città di Castello Rome Naples Loreto Urbino Poggio a Caiano Pesaro Ancona Bagnaia Bagnolo Barletta Bomarzo Bosco Marengo Bracciano Brindisi Caprarola Castelfranco Veneto Castello Castiglione del Lago Castro Civitavecchia Cuneo Fanzolo Gallipoli Ghedi Guastalla Livorno Maser Mira Monreale Montepulciano Otranto Parma Petraia Piacenza Pratolino Reggio Calabria Sabbioneta Sansepolcro Tivoli Frascati Trani Trent Todi Varallo Vicenza Vicoforte di Mondovi Volterra Po Arno Tiber T Y R R H E N I A N S E A A D R I A T I C S E A A L P S A P E N N I N E S N A P L E S TUSCANY PAPAL STATES PARMA V E N E T I A N R E P . REP. OF GENOA FERRARA MILAN S I C I L Y 2 Patrons and Projects town planning/urban renewal more than one project five or more projects eight or more projects project lost/destroyed altarpieces altarpieces associated with the Eucharist cathedrals and churches cathedrals and churches built/remodelled for reform use of multi-coloured marble decoration patronage by princes (including popes), governors patronage by cardinals, courtiers, non-ruling nobles patronage by merchants patronage by governments, guilds and other civic institutions patronage by religious orders patronage by new orders N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms TP 2 Patrons and Projects population over 75,000 population 50-75,000 population 25-50,000 population under 25,000 antique copies collections of Flemish art collections of modern art collections of antiquities chapels and cloisters college for training Catholic priests revival style of Early Christian art painted/sculpted cycles (ancestors) painted/sculpted cycles (history) painted/sculpted cycles (mythology) painted/sculpted cycles (religious) astrological vaults revival of antique gardens guildhalls hospitals library mosaic cycles palaces monumental sculpture studioli theatre town halls works by Titian tombs villas R M H A 2 WHILE SECULAR RULERS promoted themselves as heirs to imperial Rome, the Catholic Church countered Protestantism, and encouraged new orders like the Jesuits and Oratorians. Martyrdom and conversion became popular themes for altarpieces, as did the Eucharist, the sacrament that saw the miraculous conversion of bread and wine into the body and blood of Christ, a doctrine rejected by Protestants. TITIAN, Paul III & his Grandsons (1545), Naples, Museo Capodimonte. The Farnese family rose from minor Roman nobility to become major European rulers in the space of just 50 years, and owed their success largely to the political acumen of Alessandro Farnese, Pope Paul III (1534–49). Titian’s skilful portrayal of this wily ruler underlined the Pope’s dynastic ambitions for his family by including his grandsons: Alessandro, whom he made a cardinal aged 14, and Ottavio, whom he married to Emperor Charles V’s daughter. origins: Vasari’s frescoes praised them as enlightened patrons, a theme he underlined in his famous biographies of artists. THE COUNTER-REFORMATION The Protestant Reformation finally forced the Papacy to reform. The Council of Trent (1545–63) set new standards for religious life, art and music. The proliferation of new confraternities encouraged piety. Cardinal Borromeo, working with the Jesuits and other new orders in Milan, promoted Christian renewal in a series of churches, their open naves testifying to his belief that all should see the altar. New churches transformed the city of Rome. Above all, the papacy rejected links with pagan antiquity, reviving the styles of early Christian art to promote Rome as the capital of Christendom. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 180 THIS WAS A period of great political upheaval in Italy, during which there were extraordinary levels of artistic expenditure. Rulers exploited the culture of antiquity to promote their authority. Classical mythology provided new decorative imagery and new fashions emerged, such as the revival of classical theatre, villas, gardens and art collections. HIGH RENAISSANCE IN ROME Early sixteenth-century popes promoted Rome as the capital of a new empire. Inspired by descriptions of the palaces of Roman emperors, Julius II massively enlarged the Vatican: his impressive collection of antique sculpture was reached via a staircase designed by Bramante that incorporated all the Classical orders. His major projects, Michelangelo’s Sistine Chapel ceiling, Raphael’s Vatican frescoes and Bramante’s radical design for rebuilding St Peter’s, established the High Renaissance. His successors continued the pattern of extravagance and the style soon spread throughout Italy. Leo X built the Villa Madama, with its theatre and gardens, and embellished the Sistine Chapel with priceless tapestries, designed by Raphael. Paul III exploited the talents of Michelangelo, commissioning his Last Judgement, the decoration of the Sala Regia, the dome of St Peter’s and the remodelling of the Capitol. The papal court further embellished the city, building lavish palaces and villas, set in gardens inspired by descriptions in Roman literature, filled with grottoes, fountains and mythological sculptures. INDEPENDENT VENICE Venice remained neutral and celebrated her independence in a building boom that radically transformed the city. Abandoning tradition, the Venetian government voted to adopt the language of ancient Rome to remodel the focus of political power, adding a new library, mint and loggetta, all designed by the Roman-trained Sansovino, to the government buildings around St Mark’s. Inside the Doge’s Palace artists recorded Venetian triumphs and celebrated the doges in votive portraits, many painted by Titian, the official state artist. Mythological themes were exploited to provide allegories to replace the religious imagery that had traditionally promoted state authority. Rich patricians also adopted the new language, advertising their rank in palaces and chapels, and all’antica villas designed by Palladio on their mainland estates. THE ITALIAN COURTS The rulers of Italy’s courts were also conspicuous spenders. New streets and piazzas ornamented with allegorical fountains testified to their authority. They built fortifications to resist modern artillery, and provide protection against Turkish navies. Above all, they built palaces, villas and gardens, expensively decorated with tapestries, paintings and antique sculpture. Alfonso d’Este, Duke of Ferrara, commissioned Titian to paint mythological scenes for his studiolo, where he kept his antiques and curios. Federigo Gonzaga, Duke of Mantua, employed the Romantrained Giulio Romano as his court artist, commissioning him to build and decorate his palaces, villas and churches. His art collection contained Flemish landscapes as well as over 30 paintings by Titian, including his portrait. Titian’s portraits were fashionable among allies of Holy Roman Emperor Charles V: Federigo Gonzaga had himself portrayed with his lapdog, while his brother-in-law, the Duke of Urbino, sent his armour to Venice for Titian to copy. ITALY 1500-1600 RAPHAEL, School of Athens (1509–12), Vatican, Stanza della Segnatura. Individual portraits of famous men were traditional decoration for libraries, but their representation within the same pictorial space was new. Portrayed in groups with Plato and Aristototle in the centre, these philosophers involved in animated discussion gave visual expression to the intellectual freedom of preCounter-Reformation Rome. Italy’s nobility expanded as Charles V rewarded his generals with titles and as popes established their families as rulers of their own states. New dynasties, like the Medici and the Farnese, had a particularly pressing need to justify their claims to power. Determined to impose his authority, Duke Cosimo transformed Florence with new palaces and churches. He also converted the old town hall into the ducal palace, commissioning an ancestor cycle which conveniently ignored the Medicis’ commercial 10˚ 40˚ watchtow ersbuilt1567 313 fortif ied watchtower M M M M M M P P P V V V V F F F R R R R R R R R R R Bologna Ferrara Venice Brenner Pass St Bernard Pass PaduaVerona Milan Pavia Mantua Turin Genoa Pisa Florence Ancona Barletta Brindisi CaprarolaCastro Città di Castello Civitavecchia Cuneo Gallipoli Ghedi Guastalla Monreale Otranto Parma Perugia Petraia Pistoia Portoferraio Reggio Calabria Sabbioneta Trani Trento Vicenza Siena Loreto Urbino Pesaro Rome Naples 1547 1527 1537 1547 1557 1534-6 1545 1580 1527-30 1530 1512 1513 1537 Po Arn o Tiber T Y R R H E N I A N S E A A D R I A T I C S E A A L P S A P E N N I N E S N A P L E S TUSCANY LUCCA FERRARA FRANCE PARMA MILAN V E N E T IA N R E P .REP. OF GENOA S I C I L Y roniMaisAot ro ni MaisAot nia pS,ecnarFaivcitnaltAot 13 7 fortified watchtowers built 1535-43 N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 Trade and Culture court court ruled by papal family, with date subject town of court change of dynasty rulers loyal to Charles V major rebellion, with date Habsburg-Valois wars centres of Protestantism centre of international trade major centres of Counter-Reformation elected government subject town of town with elected government artists trained in Rome working for patrons elsewhere artists trained in Florence working for patrons elsewhere artists trained in Venice working for patrons elsewhere artistic treatises, theories and academies fortified watchtowers against Turks other fortifications innovative bastions Spanish Habsburg possessions border of Holy Roman Empire V F R 1 Trade and Culture population over 75,000 population 50-75,000 population 25-50,000 population under 25,000 conquered by Charles V Titian portrait of ruler centre of printing centre of music direction of Turkish threat trade route M P 1 THIS WAS A VIOLENT CENTURY. The Habsburg-Valois wars changed the balance of power in Italy: Charles V conquered Milan and Naples, installing imperial governors, and Florence was brutally besieged by his armies before accepting the Medici restoration. Süleyman, the Turkish sultan, seriously threatened Venetian trade. ITALY 1600–1800 183 S. Croce in GerusalemmeS. Giovanni in Laterano S. Bibiana S. Clemente S. Martino ai Monti S. Francesca Romana Ss. Cosmo e Damiano S. Gregorio al Celio S. Maria in Cosmedin S. Cecilia S. Maria in Campitelli Capitoline Museum S. Francesco a Ripa S. Maria in Trastevere S. Cesareo S. Maria Maggiore S. Pietro in Vincoli S. Susanna Ospizio di S. Michele (poor house) Porto di Ripetta (destroyed) Porto di Ripa Grande Ponte S.Angelo Accademia dell’Arcadia Villa Medici S. Maria di Montesanto (Piazza del Popolo) S. Maria dei Miracoli (Piazza del Popolo) S. Maria del Popolo Il Gesú Piazza di S. Pietro S. Pietro in Vaticano Piazza di S. Maria della Pace S. Maria del Priorato S. Pasquale Baylon S. Dorotea Palazzo Corsini S. Maria della Vittoria Ss. Domenico e Sisto Santi Andrea al Quirinale S. Nicola da Tolentino S. Maria della Concezione Palazzo Borghese S. Pancrazio S. Maria in Via Lata S. Caterina da Siena Oratorio di S. Filippo Neri S. Maria in Vallicella Palazzo Barberini Ss. Nome di Maria Collegio di Propaganda Fide S. Carlo ai Catinari Santi Andrea delle Fratte Santi Carlo e Ambrogio al Corso S. Carlo alle Quattro Fontane Villa Giustiniani Villa Altieri Villa Pamphili Acqua Paola Villa Ludovisi Villa Borghese Villa Albani (Torlonia) Villa Bolognetti Villa Aldobrandini Palazzi Vaticani Palazzo Lancellotti Palazzo Spada S. Pantaleo S. Filippo Neri Palazzo Rondanini Palazzo della Consulta Palazzo Rospigliosi-Pallavicini Palazzo Falconieri Piazza del Popolo Palazzo Colonna Orti Farnesiani (Farnese Gardens) Baths of Diocletian Colosseum Arch of Constantine Roman Forum Tiber Tiber CAPITOLINE HILL ISOLA TIBERINA PALATINE HILL AVENTINE HILL C A E L I A N H I L L E S Q U I L I N E H I L L QUIRINAL HILL VATICAN HILL JANICULUMHILL TRASTEVERE VIMINAL HILL PINCIAN HILL (1656-67) (1667-71) (1771) (1655-79) (1723-28) (1577) (1695) (1734)(1690) (1707) (1610-11) (Bosco Parrasio) (1735-62) (1656-57) Porta Angelica Porta del Popolo Porta Pia Porta S. Lorenzo Porta S. Paolo Via della Lungara Borgo Santo Spirito Via Alexandrina Borgo Sant’Angelo Via Angelica Via Trinitatis Via Cassia Via Triumphale Borgo Pio ViaAppiaAntica ViadiS.Gregorio Via di S. Giovanni in Laterano ViaMerulana ViaFelice Via S. Lorenzo Via Pia 19 30 1031 5 3229 17 27 14 7 11 23 2021 35 33 3 15 6 34 12 8 2 1 22 9 18 1613 4 24 26 25 28 N 0 0 0.5 miles 0.5 kms 2 Rome, 1748-98 city walls city gate street commissioned by Renaissance popes, 1471-1590 academy, with date of foundation artists‘ neighbourhood, 18th century art dealers/restorers/antiquarian shops, 18th century church/religious institution, built or rebuilt 17th century church/religious institution, built or rebuilt 18th century 17th-century palace 18th-century palace 17th-century villa 18th-century villa private collection of ancient art private collection of ‘modern’ art piazza/square, with date fountain/monument, with date bridge, with date port, with date excavation or spolia site, 17th century excavation or spolia site, 18th century museum, with founding date (1539-1600) (1734) (1754) (1666) (1543) Sant‘ Ignazio S. Ivo della Sapienza S. Maria Maddalena S. Stanislao dei Polacchi Stimmate di S. Francesco Ss.Vincenzo e Anastasio Palazzo Aldobrandini-Chigi Palazzo Altieri Académie de France (Palazzo Mancini/Salviati) Virtuosi al Pantheon Pantheon Palazzo Braschi 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 - - - - - - - - - - - - - (1642-3) (1666-7) (1627-9) (1727-8) Palazzo Chigi (Odescalchi) Palazzo de Carolis Palazzo Doria-Pamphili Palazzo Farnese Palazzo Giustiniani Palazzo Madama Palazzo Mattei di Giove Palazzo di Montecitorio Palazzo del Quirinale Piazza di Spagna (Spanish Steps) Fontana della Barcaccia 16 17 18 19 20 21 22 23 24 25 - - - - - - - - - Via del Babuino Piazza di Sant‘ Ignazio Fontana del Tritone L’Obelisco e l’Elefante Fontana di Trevi Customs House Collegio Romano S.Agostino Sant‘ Andrea della Valle S. Luigi dei Francesi 26 27 28 29 30 31 32 33 34 35 - - - - - - - - Accademia di S. Luca Ss. Luca e Martina Piazza del Campidoglio Accademia del Nudo Piazza Navona Palazzo Pamphili S.Agnese in Agone Fontana del Moro Fontana dei Quattro Fiume Ss.Apostoli 1 2 3 4 - - - - - - - - - - (1646-66) (1648-55) Renovation/restoration/preservation completion campaign, 17th/18th century on: ancient site early Christian or medieval church/religious site early Christian/medieval palace Renaissance church/ religious institution Renaissance palace/ villa/other site 2 IN THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY Rome had established itself as the artistic capital of Europe, and in the eighteenth century it continued to be the great international training ground for artists and the premier attraction of the Grand Tour. During the later period, the Via del Babuino (26) was occupied by the shops of antiquarians, art dealers and restorers, while artists lived at either end. The central urban fabric of the city, where most of Rome's incomparable treasures of ancient, medieval and ‘modern’ art and architecture are clustered, was surrounded by the natural beauty of its villa parks and gardens. CANALETTO (GIOVANNI ANTONIO CANAL), Piazza S. Marco with the Cathedral, 1735–40?, oil on canvas. Canaletto's artfully topographical vedute, or views, were among Grand Tourists' most coveted souvenirs of Venice. Commissions for the artist's paintings were exclusively arranged, for at least a time, by the British consular representative in Venice, Joseph Smith, a noted businessman, art dealer, collector and patron. At his palace on the Grand Canal, the consul's own collection of Canaletto's paintings offered potential patrons examples of what they could order. Engraved and drawn views were less costly alternatives to painted vedute. As appreciation for drawings rose in the eighteenth century, the market expanded, and drawn views were created as independent works of art. Naples – which in turn made their way into artistic depictions. Italian patrons, for their part, helped to satisfy the interests of tourists by opening their residences on a semi-public basis, so that visitors could view their art collections. In the eighteenth century some of the first public museums in Europe were established on the peninsula. Rome, the ‘Academy of Europe’, was the climactic destination of most travellers, mainly for its antiquities, and in the eighteenth century this interest coordinated with a rash of excavations throughout Italy, such as those of the ancient cities of Herculaneum and Pompeii, buried since AD 79 by an eruption of Vesuvius. Although the majority of art dealers and agents were stationed in Rome, in the eighteenth century the market for souvenirs, both large and small, fostered a veritable Italian industry in restored antiquities and newly made objects and works all’antica, as well as painted and engraved views of various monuments and sights by artists such as Canaletto, Francesco Guardi and Giovanni Paolo Panini. By the end of the century this demand gave rise to modes of production geared toward serving a mass market and to the development of new techniques, such as miniature mosaics and tinted prints, and the revival of ancient ones, such as encaustic painting. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 182 IN THE SEVENTEENTH and eighteenth centuries the Italian peninsula was not yet a unified nation. There were continual changes in its diverse political entities and considerable regional differences to its shared language and culture. Artists and architects continued to develop traditional techniques and to work in traditional materials, some associated with particular regions – fresco painting in central Italy, marble sculpture throughout, with abundant sources in the quarries of Massa and Carrara (from which area came many masons and stonecutters), travertine architecture in Rome, and so on. Painters, sculptors and architects worked in various combinations with different types of artisans and craftsmen, especially as required by projects for the multimedia decorative ensembles characteristic of the period. THE ACADEMIC SYSTEM Among the forces unifying artistic practice during this time was the growth and institutionalization of the academic system, founded on the artistic tradition that had emerged in the Renaissance. This was in turn based upon the art of classical antiquity, considered a ‘native’ tradition in Italy, with attendant political implications. The academic system was disseminated not only through art academies and related writings, but also through artistic practice and production. It did not so much replace traditional workshops as training grounds for artists and architects as function alongside them. Academicism did not promulgate any specific ‘style’ in the modern sense of the term, and Italian artists and architects worked during the period in an everevolving range of modes, now usually classified under the rubric ’Baroque’. In the mid-eighteenth century ‘Neoclassicism’ was introduced in Rome, less as a break with those modes than as another, not entirely new, alternative. From its development in sixteenth-century Italy, the academic system had spread all over Europe, and with it the establishment of Italian art as an international standard. Foreign collectors and patrons acquired examples of Italian art, both ancient and ‘modern’ (Renaissance and later), in the original and in various kinds of reproductions. Italian artists, such as Luca Giordano and Giambattista Tiepolo, worked throughout Europe. The many foreign artists, like Peter Paul Rubens, who came to study and work in Italy influenced Italian art and carried its influence back to their own countries. ITALY 1600-1800 GIANLORENZO BERNINI, The Ecstasy of S. Teresa, 1645–52, marble and gilded wood, Rome, S. Maria della Vittoria, Cornaro Chapel. This famous altarpiece is the quintessential example of postCounter-Reformation art: ‘divinely’ illuminated by a hidden window, the sensual figures of Teresa and the angel compellingly enact the dramatic visionary experiences of the revered saint. 10˚ 40˚ Milan Turin VareseVarallo Modena Avignon Lucca Velleia Genoa Piacenza Parma Bergamo VeniceVerona Bologna Ferrara Mantua Pisa Massa Carrara Volterra Tarquinia Florence Cortona Perugia Rome Vatican Pompeii Paestum Naples Caserta Benevento Herculaneum Pórtici Palermo Syracuse Po Arno Tiber Adige LIGURIAN SEA TYRRHENIAN SEA IONIAN SEA M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A D R I A T I C S E A A PEN NIN E S A L P S CORSICA ELBA LOMBARDY PIEDMONT REP. OF GENOA PR. OF MONACO MODENA KINGDOM OF NAPLES PAPAL STATES REP. OF SAN MARINO TUSCANY SARDINIA MALTA S I C I LY R E P. O F V E N I C E F R A N C E OTTOMAN EMPIRE HABSBURG EMPIRE SW ISS CONFED. Roman Arena Roman Sites Greek temples (to the Pope) (to the Popes) Roman monuments and works (to Genoa) (to Savoy by 1720) Etruscan Tombs ancient Roman city ancient Roman city ancient Greek city Royal Palace Uffizi (1620) (1751) (1769) (1748) (1757) (1760) (1604-80) (1586-1765) (1752) (1639) (1736) (1710) (1563) (1573) (1577) (1755) (1738) (1756)(1763) (1794) (1714) (1727) (1771) (1748) (1745) (1769) (1785) (1723) (1752-74) (1734) N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 Italy, 1648-1715: Political Divisions and Artistic Centres art academy, with date of foundation city with important monuments/works, 17th century city with important monuments/works, 18th century institutional museum, with date of foundation public museum, with date of foundation major private collections of ancient art major private collections of ’early modern art’ major early modern site major ancient site excavations, with date marble quarry textile production, 18th century Spanish Habsburg lands THE CATHOLIC CHURCH The presence of the papacy in the peninsula underscored the continuing influence of the ideals of the Counter-Reformation on artistic production, especially in the seventeenth century. Although no particular ‘style’ was promoted, urban planning, church architecture and decoration, the manufacture of liturgical objects and vestments and the choice of subjects and their treatment in painting and sculpture were all affected. In Piedmont and Lombardy, in the town of Varallo and near that of Varese, the Sacri Monti (Sacred Mountains) were built as popular devotional simulacra for those pilgrims to whom the Holy Land was inaccessible. These hillside complexes of chapels and churches, marking the venerated sites of Christ’s life and Passion, were ornamented with frescoes and lifesize, unidealized polychromed wood or terracotta figures composing tableaux, such as the scene of the Crucifixion. In Rome, the wealth of the papal court and its associates attracted artists from Italy and abroad seeking patronage, both ecclesiastical and secular. Caravaggio, Gianlorenzo Bernini, Francesco Borromini, Giovanni Battista Piranesi, and Antonio Canova were among those who came from other parts of Italy, while Claude Lorrain and Nicolas Poussin arrived from France. TRAVEL AND TOURISM During this period, Italy was a travel destination not only for artists and pilgrims, but also for aristocrats, dilettantes and scholars, who served as well to diffuse the taste for Italian art throughout Europe and the New World. Tourism rose sharply in the eighteenth century and came to be ritualized, in the case of the British, in the itinerary of the Grand Tour. While travellers went to Italy primarily to view its incomparable artworks and monuments, they were also attracted by its natural sights and wonders – such as the volcanic eruptions of Mount Vesuvius, near 1 THE SEVENTEENTH CENTURY initiated a period of intensive building and artistic activity throughout Italy, and important collections of ancient and ‘modern’ art were formed. By the end of the eighteenth century art academies had been established in all the major cities and many smaller ones, museums dotted the peninsula, and archaeological excavations were increasing. SOUTHEAST EUROPE 1500 –1800 185 It was in western Hungary where the clash between Turkey and Europe was at its most intense. From c.1470, under the rule of King Matthias Corvinus, the country enjoyed a period when early Italian Renaissance art was imported. In 1526 the Habsburgs gained the Hungarian crown. But from 1541 almost the whole country was occupied by Ottoman Turkey, and many of its monuments were destroyed. The occupation lasted until the late seventeenth century when German-Austrian power drove the Turks back. Artists from Vienna and the German lands, working under the banner of the Counter-Reformation movement, designed Hungarian urban churches, country houses, and, later on, bishops’ palaces. The Hungarian artistic landscape is strongly divided into the dense western and northern parts (some of which now belong to Slovakia) and the poor south and east, with a third area, staunchly sober and Calvinist, in the northeast. A CULTURAL CROSSROADS The central region of Transylvania (Erdely/Siebenburgen) experienced extreme population diversity, but avoided antagonisms; Greater Hungary was the chief power for most of the time. Incorporating Roman remains, the Late Romanesque-Early Gothic Cathedral of Alba Iulia mixes forms from many western European countries, as do the late Gothic parish churches, built mainly by German settlers. These are fitted out with German-style altarpieces, which, in turn, existed side by side with monuments in the style of the Early Italian Renaissance, mediated by Hungarian cultural influences. Two-thirds of the population was Orthodox, and the Romanians built churches in the Wallachian style, though from the later eighteenth century urban Orthodox churches adopted Western Classical styles, too. By then, a certain standardization, often dubbed ‘European’, had set in. THE MONASTERY of the Premostratensians (1745–65) at Jászó (Jasov, formerly in Hungary, now in Slovakia), by the Viennese architect Franz Anton Pilgram, shows what is probably the most accomplished of Hungary’s eighteenth-century church complexes, contrasting strongly with the Byzantine continuity of Sucevit,a. 30˚25˚20˚15˚ 45˚ 40˚ Nyírbátor Suceava Dragomirna Moldovita Sucevita Kishinev Causani Cozia Tismana Kremikowszi Monastery St Joachim Osogovski Preobrazhenski Monastery Troyan Monastery Bachkovo Monastery Philippopolis (Plovdiv) Pazardzhik Rila MonasteryÜsküb Prizren Shkodër Elbasan Tirana Berat Sofia Svishtov Kriva Palanka Hurez Bucharest Ruse Tryavna Karlovo Samokov Mt Athos Melnik Roshen Monastery Bitola St John Bigorski Gostivar Churchi Rudí Jassy Putna Humor Hîrlau Kassa SárospatakJászó Eger (Erlau) Veszprem Pozsony (Bratislava) Szeged Kalocsa Temesvár Kecskemét Györ (Raab) Fertorákos´´ Osijek Bosna Saray (Sarajevo) Foca Maglaj Cajnice Pljevlja Sümeg Szentendre Esztergom (Gran) Székesfehérvár Szombathely Buda Pest Ljubljana Ribnica Fiume (Rijeka) Zagreb Belec Hvar Ragusa (Dubrovnik) Trogir Sibenik˘ Balti˘ Capriana˘ Patrauti˘ ˘ ˘ ¸ ¸ Arbanasi˘ ¸ ¸ ˘ ˘Radauti¸ ¸ ¸ Neamt Monastery ¸ Tîrgoviste¸ Curtea de Arges¸ Nesebur˘ ˘ ˘ Pristina˘ ˘ Danube Dniester Drava Sava A E G E A N S E A B L A C K S E A A D R I A T I C S E A A L P S PIN D U S M TS D I N A R IC A L PS BA L K A N M T S O T T O M A N E M P I R E H A B S B U R G P O S S E S S I O N S H U N G A R YH O L Y R O M A N E M P I R E TRANSYLVANIA MOLDAVIA W A L L A C H I A N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 2 Religious Architecture border of Holy Roman Empire Roman Catholic church Roman Catholic bishop’s palace Protestant church Orthodox church Orthodox church in shape of a Roman Catholic church mosque late medieval-early 16th c 16th century 17th century 18th century 19th century INSET 2A 2 UNTIL WELL INTO the nineteenth century the significant works of architecture and decoration in the Balkans are religious, and it is the diverse denominations that account for the strong differences between them. In Transylvania, Roman Catholics, Germans Lutherans, Hungarian Calvinists, and Orthodox Romanians coexisted, creating a unique multicultural landscape. Danube TRANSYLVANIA W A L L A C H I A H A B S B U R G P O S S E S S I O N S Nagyvárad (Oradea) Szamosújvár (Gherla) Szászbuzd (Buzd) Brassó (Brasov) Kolozsvár (Cluj-Napoca) Segesvár (Sighisoara) Berethalom (Biertan) Prázsmár (Prejmer) Gyulafehérvár (Alba Iulia) Seben Balazsfalva (Blaj) Nagyszeben (Sibiu) Beszterce (Bistrita)¸ Demsus (Densus)¸ Marosvásárhely (Târgu Mures)¸ Fogaras (Fagaras)¸˘ ˘ Resinár (Rasinari)¸˘ Muzsna (Mosna)¸ 2A Transylvania ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 184 THE POLITICAL BORDERS of the Balkans have undergone constant and dramatic changes. Dominated by Turkey between 1453 and 1683, the full pattern of national states in the region was not established until 1912–13, when Turkey’s presence in Europe was all but eliminated. At this point, the Balkans lacked the consolidated, independent states of northern and western Europe. Statehood in almost all areas changed at least once, in some areas many times. Many towns bear three or even more names. Large parts of the region lacked a system of territorial units altogether; to some extent this was also due to low population density and a lack of towns. Culturally, there are vast discrepancies in the region. Bulgaria may be said to have changed little from the ninth to the nineteenth centuries and Mount Athos in Greece has remained unchanged until the present day. Hungary, on the other hand, was intensely receptive to trends from outside. There was an immense contrast between areas into which strangers never strayed and those where a multitude of peoples lived (and still live) side by side, such as Transylvania. In general, the patronage of art was haphazard. The most stable institutions were probably the politically relatively independent monasteries. RELIGIOUS COHESION The southern and eastern parts of the region belong to the Orthodox Church, the northern and Western parts to the Roman Catholic Church, one of the oldest dividing lines in Europe. It was, ironically, perpetuated by the fact that the Orthodox areas remained much longer under Turkish rule, which allowed some freedom for the church. In these areas monasteries, usually in very remote locations, served as a refuge from foreign domination. The areas of the Roman Catholic Church, on the other hand, were always open to the West, whether it was the Italian (Venetian) domination of Dalmatia, or the more generalized GermanAustrian/southern and western European influence in Hungary and Croatia. A third, major religion, dispersed all over the region, was Judaism, but it was deprived of the possibility of architectural expression. RELIGIOUS ARCHITECTURE The most stable urban features of the region, reflecting the extent of Turkish occupation, are the mosques, which can even be found in western Hungary. But the Byzantine architectural style was also strikingly persistent. The churches of Bulgaria and Macedonia, in particular, and especially their painted decorations and icons, had hardly changed when they reached their last major florescence in the monastery of Rila in the nineteenth century. In Moldavia and Wallachia Byzantine models continued into the eighteenth century, although these principalities developed a special style in the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries that corresponded with their degree of political independence. All churches, even cathedrals, were small. A nave with a major apse and two side apses sufficed in Moldovia and it was high and narrow, crowned by one or two cupolas carried up in a complex system of vaulting. Wallachian churches adhered more to the multi-domed Byzantine models. In the sixteenth century many exteriors of the Moldavian churches were covered with frescoes. Occasionally Western imports, such as Gothic windows and Western-type buttresses, are found on the exterior of Moldavian churches. SOUTHEAST EUROPE 1500-1800 SUCEVITA MONASTERY CHURCH, Moldavia (Romania) 1582–1606, one of a group of monuments that highlights both the continuation and the modification of the Byzantine tradition. 40˚35˚30˚25˚20˚15˚10˚50˚ 45˚ Athens Varna Bucharest Bakchisarai Azov Jassy Kassa Cracow Brassó Constantinople Adrianople Smyrna Philippopolis Sofia Belgrade Temesvár Mostar Spalato Zagreb PécsTrieste Zara Üsküb Bosna Saray (Sarajevo) Graz Vienna Venice Kolozsvár Debrecen Buda Thessalonica Danube Dniester B L A C K S E A A EG EAN SEA A D R IA T I C S E A C R E T E MOLDAVIA PRINC. OF THÖKÖLY AUSTRIA WALLACHIA BULGARIA CROATIA DALMATIA SERBIA MONTENEGRO MACEDONIA O T T O M A N E M P I R E TRANSYLVA NIA VENETIAN REPUBLIC HU N G A R Y N 0 0 250 miles 350 kms 1 Southeastern Empires greatest extent of Ottoman Empire to 1683 border of Holy Roman Empire, 1683 states with a degree of autonomy from Ottomans Venetian territories extent of lands regained or newly gained by Austrian Habsburgs, 1683-1775 1 THE BALKAN region was flanked by two great powers, the Ottoman empire, and the Holy Roman Empire, ruled by the Habsburg family from their seat in Vienna. Despite the fluid nature of states and borders within the region and the multitude of different ethnic groups there is one stable border that crosses the whole area, that of religion. AEGEAN SEA B L A C K S E A ADRIA TIC SEA CRETE RHODES O T T O M A N E M P I R E H U NGARY ITA LY GREECE 1A Ethnicity and Language in SE Europe Germans Slovaks Magyars (Hungarians) Romanians Slovenians Croats Serbs Bosnians Macedonians Bulgars Greeks Albanians Turks 0 0 250 miles 350 kms Bucharest Kishinev Nikopol Jassy Constantinople Adrianople Spalato Vienna Budapest Thessalonica B L A C K S E A ADRIA TIC SEA AEGEAN SEA CRETE RHODES O T T O M A N E M P I R E H U NGARY IT A LY GREECE Religion in SE Europe Roman Catholic Protestant centres with a large Jewish population Orthodox Muslim 1B 0 0 250 miles 350 kms EUROPE 1600–1800 187 2 ART AND ARTISTS circulated throughout the continent during this period. Italian masons and stuccoists in the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries, sculptors in the seventeenth, and painters in the eighteenth century plied their trades abroad. Netherlandish sculptors and architects also travelled around Europe in the seventeenth and eighteenth century, as did French artists during the entire period. Art was shipped from manufacturers to clients in distant countries. The plunder of art in Europe’s many conflicts also led to a further distribution of treasures across Europe. 30˚20˚10˚0˚ 40˚ 50˚ Paris Antwerp Berlin Prague Magdeburg Hamburg Würzburg Nuremberg Augsburg Münster Frankfurt Dresden Breslau Kiev Vienna Munich Amsterdam London Turin Naples Lisbon Rome Venice Madrid Dublin Edinburgh Stockholm Moscow St Petersburg Christiania (Oslo) Copenhagen Fredericksburg Warsaw Milan Florence Ebro Duero Guadalquivir Seine Elbe O der Vistula Rhi ne Dniester Dnieper Loire Rhône Ga ronne Danube Tagus A T L A N T I C O C E A N N O R T H S E A BALTIC SEA B L A C K S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A D RIA TIC SEA PYRENEES A L P S SICILY SARDINIA CORSICA ENGLAND NETHERLANDS SPANISH NETHERLANDS DENMARK RUSSIAN EMPIRE P O L A N D PRUSSIA HUNGARY SWISS CONFED. NORWAY S W E D E N F R A N C E S P A I N SCOTLAND WALES IRELAND PORTUGAL V E N E T I A N R E P U B LIC BRANDENB U RG to American colonies to New France to Mexico 1632 1648 from c.1720 from c.1660 salons from c.1730 from c.1660 c.16-1700 from c.1720 from c.1700 c.16-1700 1630 1659 N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms Travels of individual artists: From London: -Reynolds to Rome, Florence, Bologna, Venice, 1749-52; to Flanders & Holland, 1781 From Paris: -Poussin to Rome 1624-40, 1642-65 From Venice: -Canaletto to Rome 1719-20, 1742-3; to London twice between 1746 and 1753 -Tiepolo to Milan 1730-34, Würzburg 1750-53, Madrid 1761–1770 From Rome: -Caravaggio to Naples, Sicily, Malta 1605-10 -Bernini to Paris c.1665 From Madrid: -Velázquez to Venice, Rome and Naples 1629; Rome and Naples 1649-50 From Antwerp: -Rubens to Venice, Mantua, Rome, Genoa, Valladolid 1600-8; London and Madrid 1628-30 -van Dyck to Genoa, Rome, Florence, Palermo, Marseille from 1621-7; to London from 1632 2 Cultural Contacts general routes of the ‘Grand Tour’ major art centre travels of artists abroad sacks of art sales of art also worked throughout the continent. In Spain the French Bourbon dynasty assumed the throne in the early eighteenth century, and French painters followed them. In the eighteenth century French architects and decorators were also active in many places in Germany, in Bohemia, and in Austria, after the court changed its previous orientation from Italy to France. ART COLLECTIONS AND DISPLAY In large measure the rise of princely courts stimulated the circulation of artists and art. Eager for prestige, many rulers made their residences into centres of patronage and collecting. The example set by Rudolf II’s Prague (c.1600), which was singled out by the artist and art historian/biographer Karel van Mander as the best place to go and see art, provided a model, especially for German courts. In mid-seventeenth century Brussels and Vienna Archduke Leopold Wilhelm assembled a major collection of paintings, to which eighteenth-century Habsburgs added and reorganized. In Spain, another dominion ruled by the Habsburgs through the seventeenth century, Philip IV became one of the first European mega-collectors. In part because of rivalry, but also because of genuine interest, rulers in other lands followed, imitated or independently amassed their own collections. Notable examples include the English royal collections under Charles I, and the French royal collections of Louis XIV. In the mid-seventeenth century Queen Christina of Sweden also established an important collection of many kinds of works of art, taking much of it with her to the Continent, ultimately to Rome, when she converted to Catholicism and abdicated. The Papal and Neapolitan collections, especially of antiquities unearthed in ongoing excavations, were also significant. In the eighteenth century the last king of Poland, Stanisaw Poniatowski had a painting collection assembled for him (now in Dulwich College, England). THE DISSEMINATION OF ART Political rivalries resulted in frequent warfare, and art was plundered. Sometimes art vandalism was organized, for example the plunder of the German monasteries and the pillaging of the treasures of Prague and Frederiksborg in Denmark by Swedish troops. Plunder became an important means by which works of art moved around the continent. Important sales of art collections – for example, that of the Gonzagas, which went in large measure to England – were another means by which art was dispersed. Private collectors, such as Eberhard Jabach in Cologne, also sold their collections to the French crown. A burgeoning market provided the larger context for commerce in art. In the seventeenth century agents and auctions were centred in Antwerp and Amsterdam, with other locales in Nuremberg and Augsburg. In the eighteenth century auction houses were established in London and Hamburg. Although Italian art academies, both state (in Florence) and private (in Rome) had been established already in the sixteenth century, many similar institutions were founded throughout Europe, beginning with the French Academy in 1648. These institutions involved primarily instruction in the rudiments of art, but also theoretical discussion and debate, and display, in the form of public salons. Other forms of public attention were encouraged by the development of aesthetics, independent criticism and art history, and the first public museums. Thus the eighteenth century provided both sources and sites for the origins of the modern reception of art. THE INSTITUTION OF THE SALON in eighteenth-century Paris created a new public site for art. Paintings were placed on display in exhibitions accessible to a larger public. Salon exhibitions provided the impetus for a new form of often hotly contested discussion in which writers who were neither artists nor art theorists participated. The most famous eighteenth-century criticism of the Paris salons is that of the philosophe Denis Diderot. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 186 ARTISTS AND ARCHITECTS, as well as works of art, moved around Europe to an unprecedented degree during the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries. While earlier individual Italian artists had worked abroad, now whole teams of painters, masons, sculptors and stuccoers, often from the Lombard lakes, travelled north to build or decorate churches, convents and palaces. From Luca Giordano and Tiepolo in Spain, to Rastrelli in Russia, Italian artists worked from one end of the Continent to the other. An entire chapel was shipped from Rome to Lisbon, and groups of paintings were also transported from Italy to Mafra, in Portugal. AN ARTISTIC CROSSROADS Italians were not unique. In the early seventeenth-century Netherlandish painters, sculptors and architects also worked throughout the Continent. In the Baltic region they came to play an increasingly dominant role during the seventeenth century. Conversely, German artists and architects worked in the Netherlands and in Scandinavia. As French taste came to replace Italian during the reign of Louis XIV, French artists EUROPE 1600-1800 30˚20˚10˚0˚ 40˚ 50˚ Paris (Académie Française, 1648) (from 1650; Paris salons, c.1750) CologneBrussels (c.1650) Antwerp (1665) Kassel Copenhagen Berlin (1696) Prague (c.1576)Würzburg Dresden (1697) Warsaw Wilno Breslau Kiev Cracow Lwów Gdansk (Danzig) ´ Vienna (1705) Graz Mainz Munich Augsburg (1670) Salzburg Amsterdam Utrecht Haarlem Versailles Fontainebleau Nuremberg (1662) (Royal Academy,1768) (1630s) London Castle Howard Blenheim Bath Turin (1563) (open to public, c.1780) Florence Bologna Naples Palermo Milan Nancy Besançon Trier Lemberg Lisbon (French Academy, 1666) (from 1650s; Papal collections from 1700s) Rome Venice Madrid (Real Academia de Bellas Artes San Fernando, 1752) Salamanca Seville Granada Valladolid Dublin Edinburgh Christiania (Oslo) Stockholm (c.1650) Moscow St Petersburg (1757) Ebro Duero Guadalquivir Seine Elbe O der Vistula Rhine Dnieste r Dnieper Loire Rhône Garo nne Danube Tagus A T L A N T I C O C E A N N O R T H S E A BALTIC SEA B L A C K S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A D R IA TIC SEA P Y R E N E E S A L P S S I C I LY NAPLES PAPAL STATES PARMA LUCCA SAVOY MILAN MANTUA SAXONY BOHEMIA MORAVIA SWEDISH POMERANIASCHLESWIG- HOLSTEIN AUSTRIA BAVARIA MODENA TUSCANY TRANSYLVANIA L I T H U A N I A SARDINIA CORSICA SI LESIA GENOA ENGLAND NETHERLANDS SPANISH NETHERLANDS DENMARK R U S S I A N E M P I R E P O L A N D PRUSSIA HUNGARY SWISS CONFED. NORWAY S W E D E N F R A N C E S P A I N SCOTLAND WALES IRELAND PORTUGA L O T T O M A N E M P I R E V E N E T I A N R E P U B L IC BRANDENB U RG (Kunstkammer, c.1560; Belvedere, 1780) (c.1740) (c.1710) (c.1620) (c.1790) (c.1769) (1746) (1754) (1777) N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 1 Centres, Collections and Academies, 1600-1800 border of Holy Roman Empire, c.1700 major urban development project major palace complex major art collection (with date of foundation) art academy (with date of foundation) major art centre 1 DURING THE SEVENTEENTH AND EIGHTEENTH centuries courts throughout Europe formed art collections, and an art market developed to serve royal, aristocratic and eventually bourgeois clients. Instruction in the arts was provided by academies, which, starting in cinquecento Florence, were also established throughout Europe. In the eighteenth century the foundation of public museums and the institution of public art displays in salons fostered increased familiarity with the arts. IN THE EARLY EIGHTEENTH century the Dresden Kunstkammer was broken up into its constituent elements. The collection of objets d’art and precious jewels was placed in a suite of rooms decorated with mirrors and woodwork known as the Grünes Gewölbe, on the ground floor of the Schloss. Opened to a larger public, the establishment of this collection marks one of the beginnings of the move towards modern public museums. The present Kunstkammer is a reconstruction made necessary by bombing of Dresden in World War II. NORTH AFRICA 1500–1800 189 THE BAB AL MANSUR AL-‘ILJ at Meknès in Morocco. It was the principal ceremonial gateway in the city, connecting the Medina and the Hadim Square with the Dar al Kabirah, the palace complex that was built by Mawlay Isma‘il in 1679. The gateway was named after the government minister Mansur al-‘Ilj, who was a Christian renegade. It was begun during the reign of Mawlay Isma‘il and was completed in 1732, five years after his death, by his son Mawlay ‘Abdallah. 3 Bab ad Dar al Kabirah 4 Dar al Kabirah 8 Mosque of Lalla ’Awda 9 Tomb of Mawlay Isma’il 10 Qasr al Muhannashah 14 Hury al Mansur/ Qasr al Mansur stables granary Bridge of the Cavalry (built 1681-93) water towerwater tower 13 Dar al Madrasah 12 Madinat ar Riyad al 'Anbari 6 Sahat al Hadim 7 Bab al Khamis 11 Qubbat al Khayyatin 5 Bab al Mansur 1 2 Mellah Djenane al Af i a Krim at al Oudaiya Bo u Fekrane Agdal Basin MEDINA 1 Old city of Meknès, pre-dating Mawlay Isma’il 2 Jewish quarter 3 Gateway of the Dar al Kabirah, 1679 4 ‘Grand Palace’ complex 5 Gateway, 1732 6 Square of Destruction 7 Gateway, 1687 8 One of several mosques built in the royal city during Mawlay Isma’il's reign 9 Tomb of Mawlay Isma’il 10 ‘Palace of the Labyrinth’, with a series of courtyards, pavilions and gardens 11 ‘Dome of the Tailors’ used for the reception of ambassadors 12 ‘City of Amber Gardens’; residences for viziers 13 ‘Palace of the Madrasah’; complex of apartments, courtyards and gardens 14 Storehouse and palace N 0 0 0.5 miles 0.75 kms 2 Meknès: the City of Mawlay Isma’il ramparts of the royal city extent of the royal city principal palace complexes old city of Meknès cemetery Jewish quarter City of Amber Gardens canals In the sixteenth century, the Ottoman Turks subdued all of North Africa with the exception of Morocco. New mosques, palaces and other buildings had Ottoman features, especially in Cairo, but also in the other capitals – for example, the mosque of Sidi Mahriz (built 1675–92) in Tunis. Turkish styles of dress were adopted among the urban elite. In Morocco, however, artistic patronage lay largely in the hands of the sultans of the Sa‘dian (1511–1631) and ‘Alawi (1631–present) dynasties. Marrakesh, Meknès and Fez maintained a distinct style of architectural decoration using tile mosaics (zillij), carved stucco and wood, though its quality declined from the seventeenth century. European influence was evident in coastal enclaves eventually created by the Portuguese and Spanish. From 1765 the Moroccan coastal town of Essaouira, previously a Portuguese fort, was constructed following designs provided by European architects and masons. Some European influences, including Renaissance designs, penetrated the interior. Ahmad alMansur procured carved marble from Pisa in Italy for the construction of his Badi‘ Palace. When Mawlay Isma‘il (r.1672–1727) created his capital at Meknès, he plundered building materials from older sites in Morocco but also ordered marble from Italy. Mawlay Isma‘il admired and perhaps tried to emulate his contemporary, Louis XIV of France. Along trade routes across the Sahara, caravans from the north carried textiles, paper, swords and other merchandise, while from the sub-Saharan regions came gold, slaves, ivory, ostrich feathers and hides. In the east an important corridor for trade was the Nile, along which gold was brought to Egypt. INDIGENOUS RURAL TRADITIONS Local traditions in architecture, textiles, metalwork, pottery and other crafts flourished especially in remote areas, with many regional variations. The sedentary Arabic-speaking Jbala tribes in northern Morocco lived in single-room thatched huts. The sedentary Berber-speaking Rif tribes built two-storey wooden houses. On the coastal plains, semi-nomadic Arabicspeaking tribes lived in tents and conical huts made of reeds, cane and thatch. The traditions of the High Atlas and Anti Atlas included qasbas (individual houses, communal fortified granaries or whole towns made of mud-brick and pisé). In the Berber-speaking Kabylia and Aurès regions of Algeria, dwellings of stone and brick were made with tile roofs. The Mzab oases of the Sahara had adobe tapering horned minarets and domes. Tunisia had the domed houses and mosques of Djerba Island, the barrel-vaulted granaries of Matmata and cave dwellings in the south. Libya had the distinct buildings of the Jabal Nafusah. 2 A VAST ROYAL COMPLEX was added to the Moroccan city of Meknès when sultan Mawlay Isma‘il (r.1672– 1727) moved his capital there. Materials came from the Roman remains of Volubilis, the Marinid necropolis at Chella and the Sa‘dian Badi‘ Palace in Marrakesh. Marble also came from Pisa in Italy. The labour was provided by Christian renegades and slaves. Much of Mawlay Isma‘il‘s city is now in ruins. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 188 ISLAMIC ORTHODOXY in North Africa supported the production of manuscripts, especially the Koran and other religious texts, sometimes illuminated and with fine bindings. The annual pilgrimage to Mecca encouraged the movement of artistic ideas. Cultural life was also characterized by networks of Sufi orders, and by religious fraternities organized around zawiyas (schools). During this period, marabouts (religious hermits) became a marked feature of North African life. Saints’ tombs, often modest domed buildings, were constructed throughout the region. Jewish minorities lived throughout North Africa. Christians in Egypt and Ethiopia gave architecture and art Christian purposes, producing items for church ritual, figural paintings, manuscripts and other artefacts. The main centres for textiles, metalwork, pottery and other crafts were the larger urban communities. In Cairo each year the covering (kiswa) for the Ka‘bah in Mecca was made from black silk brocade lined with cotton, with a band of Koranic inscriptions embroidered in silver-gilt and silver thread. The arts of urban centres were considered more refined than the rural ones, which served local needs. FOREIGN INFLUENCES The Christian conquest of Spain, completed in 1492, brought Muslim and Jewish refugees. They made important contributions in Morocco, Algeria and Tunisia. In Tunis, for example, the zawiya of the Andalusian refugee Sidi Qasim al-Jalizi was built in the HispanoMoresque tradition, decorated with small glazed tiles of Andalusian type, which began to be manufactured in Tunis. When the Moroccan sultan Ahmad al-Mansur (r.1578–1603) built the Badi Palace (1578–93) in Marrakesh, its plan was based on that of the Court of the Lions in the Alhambra at Granada, though much larger in scale. This influence was also felt in the addition of pavilions at either end of the courtyard of the Qarawiyyin mosque in Fez. NORTH AFRICA 1500-1800 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 30˚ Qarawiyyin Mosque Zaytunah Mosque Al Azhar Mosque Jerusalem Mecca Sana Jedda Suakin Quseir Cairo Alexandria Tripoli 1551 Algiers 1525 Great Kabylia Meknès Essaouira KairouanTlemcen Tétouan GaoTimbuktu Jenne Walata Kano Katsina Agadez Sokoto Fez Marrakesh Medina DJERBA N ile BlueNile WhiteNile Niger Seneg al L. Chad A T L A N T I C O C E A N M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A B L A C K S E A R E D S E A A T L A S M T S SINAI A R A B I A N P E N I N S U L A KABYLIA MTS CHOKE MTS MASSIF DE L’AURÈS AL JABAL AL AKHDAR JABAL NAFUSAH TIBESTI S Y R I A N D E S E R T N U B I A N D E S E R T S A H A R A I TA LY A N A T O L I A PORTUGAL S P A I N SULTANATE OF MOROCCO S Y R I A E G Y P T Kiswa (cover) for Ka’bah in Mecca made here and sent annually Tunis 1574 export of tilework; Spanish garrison 1534-74 Wattasid capital 1472-1549; ’Alawi capital 1666-72, 1729-1912 Berber artistic traditions in architecture, textiles, pottery and metalwork in mountainous regions marble carved at Pisa for Al Mansur's palace in Marrakesh conquered 1516 conquered 1517 camel and goat hair tents distinct vernacular buildings ’Alawi capital 1672-1727; developed by Mawlay Isma’il Portuguese and Spanish Christian centres on coast from 15th century Mawlay Isma'il (r. 1672-1727) builds over 70 qasbas, employing slave army to construct them refugees from Muslim Spain continue Spanish artistic traditions Muhammad ibn 'Abd Allah (r.1757-90) builds new town on site of Portuguese fort, designed by European architects and masons Sa’dian capital 1525-1659 conquered by Morocco 1591; gold and slaves taken to Morocco goldbroughttoEgypt goldbroughttoEgypt N 0 0 500 miles 750 kms 1 North Africa, 1500-1800 extent of Ottoman Empire and Ottoman artistic influences Ottoman artistic influence other artistic influences routes of pilgrimage to Mecca trade routes approximate limit of desert cities captured by Ottomans important Islamic school centre of manuscript production textile centre and embroidery urban pottery centre rural pottery centre metalworking centre leatherworking centre saints’ tombs constructed throughout period COLOURED GLAZED TILES in the Qaramanli mosque in Tripoli, Libya (built 1711–44), probably from Tunis, then the major centre in the region for their manufacture. The floral designs are arranged in a geometric grid with pronounced borders. 1 EAST–WEST TRADE ROUTES linked the major cities of North Africa, and trade extended southwards across the Sahara. The arts were influenced by refugees from Muslim Spain, and by the artistic practices of the Ottomans, especially in the urban centres. Berber artistic traditions continued especially in the Rif and Atlas mountains of Morocco and the Kabylia and Aurès regions of Algeria. SUB-SAHARAN AFRICA 1500–1800 191 20˚ 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 20˚ 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ Axim Benguela Luanda Cacheu Delagoa Bay Inhambane Sofala El Mina Cape Town Mozambique Saint-Louis Gorée Fort James Cape Coast Castle Bunce Island Accra Whydah New Calabar Loango Malemba Kilwa Mombasa Senegal Niger Congo Nile Zam bezi Li m popo Orange L. Victoria L. Chad L. Nyasa L. Tanganyika A T L A N T I C O C E A N I N D I A N O C E A N R E D S E A S A H A R A K A L A H A R I D E S E R T ETHIOPIAN HIGHLANDS ARABIAN PENINSULA D R A K E N SBERG EGYPT KAARTA SEGU AIR OYO BORGU KABI GOBIR KANO JUKUN BENIN BORNU WADAI DARFUR SENNAR ETHIOPIA SHILLUK BUNYORO BUGANDA TIO KUBA YAKA LUNDA LOZI VIYE NJIMBO A KALUNGA KALONGA LUBA UNDI LUNDU ROZWI DUTCH SOUTH AFRICA WANDU MATAMBA KASANJE MBAILUNDU WAMBU ANGOLA (PORTUGUESE) LOANGO KONGO DAHOMEY KONG WALO FUTA JALLON ASANTE (ASHANTI) A F R I C A M ADAGASCAR FUT A TORO K ATSINA Z ARIA (Portuguese) Zulu Hebe/Lughuru Gwazhili Jimma Chewa Pende Yoruba Asante Malinke Bamum and grasslands kingdoms Chokwe Tabwa Nyamwezi Pepper Coast GrainCoast Ivory Coast Gold Coast toArabia to India to N America Caribbean to Brazil to Caribbean, Brazil to Brazil to Caribbean to N America, Caribbean, Brazilto N America, Caribbean to Brazil to the Americas Slave C oast Christian imagery (crucifixes and statues of saints) enter Kongo in late 15th c: later secularized and persist well beyond 18th c 18th and 19th c imports of brass vessels and copper wire used to embellish reliquary images among Kota and Ossyeba peoples N 0 0 500 miles 700 kms Imports cloth (linen, silk etc)* clothing* iron, pewter, brass* (manillas, basins) horses firearms (muskets, gunpowder, cannon) kettles (19th c) wines, spirits, bottles bells beads (often Venetian)* keys, locks, clocks glassware, crockery hardware tobacco* books* * items involved in trans-Saharan trade 2 African States and Trade, c.1750 approximate borders of kingdoms trans-Saharan trade routes Ottoman Empire Dutch South Africa slave trade Portuguese settlement Dutch settlement French settlement British settlement distribution of high-backed chairs, 17th-19th c, indicating European influence, even if indirect Exports slaves* gold* ivory* wax hides* pepper* sugar palm oil (19th c) gum Arabic* ostrich feathers* kola nuts* adopted Christian symbols, using some forms, such as crucifixes, in secular political and judicial contexts after abandoning Christianity. Islamic/Arabic styles prevailed on the Swahili coast and islands, in the emirates of northern Nigeria, and in the mosques and architecture of the western Sudan. Leatherwork and embroidery on cotton garments in the same areas also betray Muslim influence. Secular Europe is present along coastal West Africa in forts and castles, and also in motifs (weapons, clocks, bells, hats and many other items) that were assimilated into local iconography. European art, architecture and material culture entered southern Africa with the Boers and later the British who colonized large areas. These forms – metalwork, glassware, furniture and other household goods, plus architectural forms and styles – were adopted by the separatist European colonies 2 BY THE YEAR 1750 many European nations were involved in African slave traffic and other trading. In some areas the arts changed markedly because of these interactions, resulting in new object and architecture types, new materials, motifs, and sometimes, styles. Islam continued its expansion southwards and along the East African coast. Christianity was perhaps less influential in 1750 than in 1550, but its legacies remained in art and architecture. PORTRAIT OF KING MISHE MISHYAANG MAMBUL. Wood, c. eighteenth century, Kongo. This work was commissioned and carved during the king’s lifetime, and housed in his harem. Each Kuba monarch since the seventeenthcentury King Shayaam nMbul aNgoong has commissioned a similar commemorative image. established from the mid-seventeenth century. Such arts, still present today, evolved alongside the indigenous art forms and styles of black African peoples. Black peoples were frequently moved off their original lands, yet in new locations many were able to maintain, partly modified, their arts of personal decoration, carved domestic objects and their distinctive construction of houses and compounds, sometimes decorated with wall paintings. Woodcarving was apparently never highly developed among southern African Bantu and Khoisan peoples who were displaced by European colonists. Although some instances of figural sculpture remain, carvers mostly made everyday, useful objects, such as stools and neck rests, staffs, beer containers and meat plates. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 190 THIS IS THE FIRST PERIOD for which firm documentation survives for what Westerners term works of African art, and indeed often the works themselves are extant. Most art was made by, and for, local peoples using local materials, according to inherited styles and purposes. Yet this is also a period when Islamic culture was continuing to penetrate the east coast and interior. At the same time, there was increasing coastal contact and trade with Europe and the Americas, including the slave trade. Around 1500 the first ‘tourist’ arts were produced: the famed Afro-Portuguese ivories. European colonization of southern Africa began in 1652. Christianity, long established in Ethiopia, persisted there, and was also introduced into the interior Kongo kingdom early in this period. MATERIALS AND TECHNIQUES Most art forms and material culture collected in the nineteenth and twentieth centuries had antecedents in this period. Art was used in daily life, in spiritual and political rituals and for rites of passage. Figural sculptures and masks were broadly distributed. Iron-smithing and copper alloy casting were widespread, whereas silver, gold and stone sculptures were rare. Arabinfluenced chip-carved architectural elements were made in east coast Swahili towns, and distinctive architectural forms prevailed in countless areas. Bead-making and varied forms of personal decoration, such as scarification, hairstyling and body painting, were important. Probably festivals and other performances were the artforms that were most highly valued by local African peoples during this era. THE ARTISTIC CONSEQUENCES OF SLAVERY Slavery and related trading had widespread effects in Africa. European ships became royal emblems in the arts of Dahomey in the eighteenth century, after Dahomean troops gained access to coastal slaving and other trading ships and their luxury material goods. Bound captives (some doubtless slaves) appear in the Ife sculptures of the twelfth to thirteenth centuries, and the Inland Niger Delta sculpture of the fourteenth to fifteenth centuries, as well as in eighteenth-century Asante goldweights, as do slave manacles. Many other European artefacts SUB-SAHARAN AFRICA 1500-1800 and motifs entered Africa partly as a result of slave trading. Locks, keys and bells, for example, occur in brass goldweights and gold beads; such motifs can be considered at least a metaphor for the control African leaders and Europeans had over coastal slave trade. In the seventeenth century European chairs were adapted by many African peoples, serving as high-status symbols. Their direct relationship to slavery – like aspects of European dress adopted by coastal traders – remains to be established. However, there can be little doubt that chairs, dress items and other imports were among the treasured goods that were exchanged for slaves from the sixteenth to the nineteeth centuries. FOUR ARTISTIC COMPLEXES Four complexes of artistic ideas, objects and styles characterize this period: indigenous, Muslim, Christian and European secular. Most artefacts, made for domestic, ritual and political use by hundreds of peoples, were created without influence from outside forms and ideologies. This is true despite the inroads of Islam and the contacts made along the western coast with both secular and Christian Europe. Exceptionally, the Christian art of Ethiopia is, in fact, indigenous. The Kongo peoples also IVORY SAPI-PORTUGUESE SALT CELLAR, c.1490–1530, Berlin, Museum für Volkerkunde. Originally carved by an African for Europeans, probably for the curiosity cabinets of the wealthy or nobility. The snakes and humans are African in style and type, whereas the covered sphere-on-pedestal derives from European chalices. 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 30˚ 20˚ 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 20˚30˚ Sierra Leone 1460 Santa Maria 1462 Fernando Po 1472 Benguela 1484 Walvis Bay 1486 Cabral 1500 Lüderitz 1487 Principe I. 1472 Sofala 1488 Kilimani 1498 Mozambique 1489-90 Kilwa 1488-89 Mombasa 1489-90 Mogadishu 1499 Malindi 1489 Cape St Catherine 1474 Elmina 1482 Alexandria Tangier Jerusalem Mecca Medina Sana Gondar Barka Axum Lalibela Zeila Berbera Aden Suakin Tunis Tripoli Benin Ikom Zimbabwe Luzira Sao Igbo-Ukwu Nok Bura Timbuktu Walata Marrakesh Koma Kissi Owo Esie Ilorin Ile Ife Oyo Ibadan Akan N i le Senegal Congo Za m bezi L. Tanganyika L. Nyasa L. Chad L. Victoria A T L A N T I C O C E A N I N D I A N O C E A N RED SEA MEDITERRANEAN SEA KALAHARI DESERT S A H A R A ARABIAN PENINSULA A T L A S M T SWATTASIDS ZAYYANIDS HAFSIDS M A M L U KS K H O I S A N P E O P L E S BED U IN S B E D U I N S B A N T U S B A N TUS C U S H I T E S T U A R E G S MALAYS TAKRUR MOSSI KINGDOMS BORGU KINGDOMS YORUBA KINGDOMS KAKONGO MBANGALA LUNDU BEMBA LUBA NGOYO KONGO CHOKWE JAGA BENGUELA MARAVI MONOMOTAPA TORWA HAUSA STATES KANEMBORNU TUNJUR LOANGO BENIN KINGDOM TEKE KUBA DARFUR AIR AKW AM U MAKURIA FUNJ ETHIOPIA SMALL STATES INTERLACUSTRINE STATES AKAN STATES DENKYIRA NUPE IGALA KWARARAFA S O N G H AY M A L I WOLOF SIINE A F R I C A PORTUGAL MADAGASCAR c.15th c c.15th c 15th-16th c began 11th c 15th-17th c 12th-15th c c.16th c c. 17th-19th c 13th-15th c began 17th c Sapi-Portuguese ivories, late 15th/ early 16th c Bini-Portuguese ivories, late 15th/ early 16th c Allada Tray to Ulm, early 17th c 9th-10th c pre-1750 12th-13th c 3rd-11th c N 0 0 800 miles 1200 kms 1 Africa, c.1550: States and Early European Trade extent of Islam by 1500 approximate borders of kingdoms trans-Saharan trade areas under Portuguese control c.1550 Portuguese settlements, with date Portuguese trade and travel, late 15th c. onwards peoples distribution of figural terracottas distribution of stone sculpture extent of Nok culture, c.500 BC-AD 200 exports of art approximate limit of desert approximate northern limit of thick forest 1534 HAFSIDS 1 IN THE CENTURIES before 1500, most non-internal African trade was across the Sahara. After 1500, however, the centre of ‘trade gravity’ shifted to the coasts. First the Portuguese, then later most other European powers, had extensive coastal interchange with many diverse African peoples. Trade relations thrived, and European contacts had a strong impact on African art and culture. ASIA 1500–1800 193 style that had developed under the Timurid rulers of Central Asia in the fifteenth century was adopted by Muslim courts from Istanbul to Delhi. An international visual language was created that united disparate – and often antagonistic – political entities (although architectural styles remained regionally distinct). Throughout Asia imperial rulers created magnificent capital cities that proclaimed their grand – and often grandiose – aspirations. From Edo (now Tokyo) to Ayutthaya and Constantinople (Istanbul), the finest buildings in these cities – whether temples, pagodas or mosques – were designed to express imperial power and prestige. Rulers, their courtiers and even merchants amassed the wealth necessary to transform the landscape, and large and lavish gardens became a hallmark of this period. Persian hydraulic gardens, however pleasant and beautiful, were first and foremost designed for growing food in an arid land, whereas Chinese and especially Japanese gardens were aimed primarily at aesthetic delight, especially with the development of the tea ceremony in Japan. Conflicting territorial claims often led to the displacement of artists and the consequent commingling of artistic techniques and ideas. MASJID AGUNG, OR GREAT MOSQUE OF DEMAK, central Java, Indonesia, 1477–79. The oldest mosque in Indonesia is located in a trading settlement on the north coast of Java. The building is based on the traditional Javanese pendopo, a square, open pavilion whose four enormous timber pillars support a high, multi-tiered roof. A broad pillared verandah extending from the entrance is used for teaching and meetings, and instead of a tower minaret, a drum is used to call the faithful to prayer. This form became standard for mosques throughout Indonesia and Malaysia. 1 A NEW WORLD ECONOMIC SYSTEM replaced the ancient Silk Road, which had served for millennia to link China with the Mediterranean. The major commodities traded were the spices and textiles traditionally made throughout South and East Asia, but European merchants also sought out ceramics, lacquerwares, gems and exotic Asian woods. Even American silver was brought across the Pacific Ocean via the Spanish Philippines to Southeast Asia. While long-distance trade had a decisive impact on the arts of Asia, Asian arts in turn exercised an impact on the arts of Europe. The Persian artists and works of art captured by the Ottomans at the Battle of Chaldiran in 1517 brought a new wave of Persian artistic culture to the court at Constantinople. Following the Japanese invasions of Korea in the 1590s, Korean artists, especially potters, were captured and taken to northern Japan, where their rustic wares captivated Japanese connoisseurs. The enormous booty brought back to Iran following the brilliantly successful invasion of India by the Afghan Nadir Khan in 1738–89 included the jewel-encrusted Peacock Throne, which not only became the symbol of the Iranian monarchy but also inspired a new taste for bejewelled excess. Along with the expansion of empires came the spread of West Asian monotheism, especially Islam and Christianity, at the expense of the traditional Asian religions, ranging from Shamanism to neo-Confucianism. Muslim merchants and Sufis (mystics) brought Islam to western China and Southeast Asia, along with new forms of architecture (such as the mosque) and new attitudes towards the visual arts (such as the discouraging of figural sculpture). The Spanish and Portuguese brought Catholicism to their trading colonies along the coasts of South, Southeast and East Asia, where they built Mannerist and Baroque churches and promoted painting and sculpture depicting Christ, the Virgin and a host of saints. The various manifestations of Buddhism, long displaced in its Indian homeland by Hinduism and Islam, remained dominant in Tibet, Mongolia, Southeast Asia, Korea and Japan. COMMERCE AND ART Exquisite blue-and-white porcelains, which had been produced since the fourteenth century at the great kilns of Jingdezhen in southern China, were exported by European merchants east to Korea and Japan and west to Iran, Turkey and eventually Italy and the rest of Europe. Chinese blue-and-white porcelains inspired not only the production of local pottery imitations, but also the incorporation of Chinese motifs, such as the lotus, peony and dragon, in a wide range of other media. Europeans resident in Asia as well as back at home coveted Asian arts – Polish ambassadors to Iran and British merchants in India commissioned splendid carpets in which traditional arabesques were combined with European coats-of-arms. At the same time Asian artists took inspiration from the arts of the West, adopting such techniques as painting in oils on canvas and the overglaze painting of ceramics with colloidal gold. The techniques of papermaking and printing, which had been used in East Asia for centuries to disseminate Buddhism and had already spread across Asia to Europe by the fifteenth century, became major vehicles of both artistic dissemination and expression. Chinese painted papers were exported to decorate European walls, while European biblical and allegorical prints were brought by Jesuit missionaries to India, where they were copied by Mughal artists, who adopted the European imagery and techniques of perspective and shading, if not the meanings, of the originals. Jesuits also introduced printing with moveable type to the Philippines, where only Chinese-inspired block printing had been known. Indian block-printed cottons were exported to Southeast Asia and Europe, where they inspired a fashion revolution as bright patterned colour at last became affordable. In Japan, which alone had closed its ports to European traders, woodblock printing became a major industry, as artists perfected the technique of colour printing for a burgeoning merchant class. Nevertheless, Dutch merchants managed to export some Japanese paper to Holland, where Rembrandt used it for printing some of his etchings. 160˚150˚140˚130˚120˚110˚100˚90˚80˚70˚60˚50˚40˚30˚20˚ 30˚ 10˚ R R R R R R R R R R R R Constantinople (Istanbul) Aleppo Cairo Mecca Mocha Baghdad Azov Astrakhan Samarkand Tashkent Kashgar Kucha Khotan Herat Meshed Alexandria Isfahan Shiraz Delhi Agra Lahore Nagasaki Macao Fuzhou Hangzhou Pasai Colombo Cochin Calicut Goa Bombay Surat Cambay Tranquebar Madras Masulipatam ChittagongBalasore Calcutta Pondicherry Malacca Manila Batavia Demak Ternate Macassar Muscat Hormuz Island Guangzhou Xiamen Nanjing Shexian Xuancheng Xiuning Anping Beijing ChengduDerge Seoul Edo (Tokyo) Kyoto Osaka Ayutthaya Bukhara I N D I A A R A B I A P E R S I A S Y R I A EGYPT CEYLON C H I N A JAPAN KOREA T I B E T M O N G O L I A R U S S I A S O U T H E A S T A S I A C E N T R A L A S I A C E N T R A L A S I A P H I L I P P INES E A S T I N D I E S M ESOPOTAMIA ANATOLIA J AVA BORNEO CELEBES LUZON HAINAN FORMOSA MINDANAO NEW GUINEA UZBEK RULERS 1500-1785 KINGDOM OF AYUTHIA SUMATRA A R A B I A N S E A P A C I F I C O C E A N SEA OF JAPAN YELLOW SEA EAST CHINA SEA ARAL SEA CASPIANSEA BLA CK SEAPERSIAN G U LF REDSEA YELLOWSEA I N D I A N O C E A N Hebrew 1493, Turkish 1729 1556 1579 Bengali and Persian 1780 timber cotton textiles spicesgold Gold spices, sugar Gold copper gems porcelain, silk, tea wallpaper copper, gems, spices carpets opium Opium gems, textiles cotton, silk, textiles spices copper, gold 1712 1591 1604 1706 Arabic and Persian 1637, Armenian 1644 1540s 1557 1684 1643 17251762 1613 1624 1510 1639 1611 1687 1612 1672 1616 1498 1514 1507 1522 1619 1521 1571 1664 1669 1511 1641 1517 1656 1796 1690 1642 New W orld silver New World silver New World silver and opium from India furs, gems and silver from Russia Furs, gems and silver from Russia N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 Asia, 1500-1800: Trade and Culture Asian empires: Ottoman Empire 1683 Safavid Empire 1512 Mughal Empire 1707 Qing Empire 1800 Korea 1800 Japan 1800 Predominant religions: Animism Buddhism Buddhism with Confucianism Buddhism with Shintoism Christianity Hinduism Islam Jesuit travels in the 16th century culture: major centre of courtly art major centre of religious architecture centres of traditional Chinese printing major centres of Japanese colour woodblock printing c.1650 introduction of European printing technology trade: main European trading ports: Portuguese Spanish Dutch English French Danish goods imported to Asia by Europeans sources of traded goods (specified): carpets Islamic trade routes R INDIA CHINA SOUTHEAST ASIA PHI LIPPINES I N D O N E S I A European possessions, 1650 Dutch Spanish Portuguese ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 192 IN THIS PERIOD Asia entered a new global economic system, based on long-distance maritime trade and dominated by Europeans. The treaty of Tordesillas (1494) promised the Spanish control over much of the New World, while allotting Portugal all the trade from the Cape Verde Islands east to the Moluccas. After the Portuguese explorer Vasco da Gama rounded Africa in 1498, the Spanish and the Portuguese, followed closely by the English and the Dutch, began to establish trading colonies along the coasts of Southwest, South, Southeast and East Asia. EMPIRE, RELIGION AND ART The land-based empires of Asia, while conceding control of the seas to European fleets, expanded at each other’s expense. Ming and Qing rulers moved west from China into Tibet and Turkestan, while both the Japanese and the Chinese invaded Korea. Muscovy pushed south into the Caucasus and Central Asia. Timurid princes decamped from Central Asia into northern India where they established the Mughal Dynasty, which itself expanded southward at the expense of the Hindu rulers of the Deccan. The Shi’ite Safavids of Iran were wedged between two Sunni and Turkish rivals, the Uzbeks of Central Asia and the Ottomans of Anatolia, the Levant and the Balkans. Everywhere, these courts took inspiration from the fine arts of times past. This age of empires went hand-in-hand with the creation of imperial styles and capital cities. Throughout West and South Asia, for example, the Persian language and the artistic ASIA 1500-1800 CHINESE EXPORT WALLPAPER, gouache on paper, second half of the eighteenth century. Beginning in the late seventeenth century, European merchants imported hand-painted Chinese wallpapers to decorate private sitting and bedrooms. They were so valuable that they were not pasted directly on walls, but on canvas stretched over battens, which were then nailed to the walls. They were supplied in sets of 25 to 40 rolls, each about 1 metre wide. WEST ASIA 1500–1800 195 travellers also brought back many exotic goods, which in turn influenced European taste. Ogier Ghislain de Busbecq, Habsburg ambassador to the Ottoman sultan Süleyman, for example, imported tulip bulbs to Austria, thereby laying the foundation for the tulip mania of 1636–7. THE IMPERIAL STYLE To bolster their creation of nation-states, the Ottomans and Safavids not only played upon sectarian rivalries (for example, between the Sunni and Shi‘i sects) and ethnic divisions (Arab/Persian/Turk), but also created glorious capital cities. For reasons of politics and security, they sometimes had to move their capitals, but their final choices – Istanbul and Isfahan – become the showpieces of their empires. Each power also created an imperial style of architecture, which was used to define territory. Thus the distinctive Ottoman style of mosque – built of limestone masonry with a large domed hall surrounded by cascading semidomes and pencil-point minarets – was erected throughout the empire. The message of these mosques as signifiers of the dynasty was so clear that when conservative Wahhabi clerics came to power in eighteenth-century Arabia, they ordered Ottoman minarets and domes destroyed. Safavid mosques are equally distinct. They were built of brick and glazed tile with an open courtyard, which was surrounded by two storeys of rooms and four iwans on the sides, and a large portal with an iwan flanked by minarets. Although both the Ottomans and Safavids drew on the common heritage of Persian culture promulgated by the Timurids in fifteenthcentury Central Asia, each dynasty created a distinct artistic style by establishing state control over manufactures. As in architecture, royal design studios ensured stylistic coherence through the use of paper patterns and designs. The same motif, such as a jagged leaf (saz), appears on Ottoman tiles, ceramic vessels, textiles, carpets and metalwork. Distinct artistic personalities also emerged in this period, notably Sinan (d.1588), the premier Ottoman architect, and Reza (d.1635), who was the foremost painter of Safavid Iran. UNDERGLAZED PAINTED DISH with floral design. Royal design studios allowed the Ottomans and Safavids to develop dynastic styles of art with common motifs in many media. The jagged leaf painted on this large dish in the Ottoman workshops at Iznik, for example, is also found on contemporary textiles and metalwork. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 194 maker Thomas Dallam, the Huguenot jeweller Jean Chardin, the German physician Engelbert Kaempfer and the Capuchin father Raphael du Mans. Most were impressed by what they found and wrote long accounts of their journeys, often illustrated with engravings of these exotic lands. These emissaries brought European goods as gifts, thereby introducing new media and artistic techniques to the region. Venetian plateglass mirrors and oil painting on canvas, for example, were introduced to Isfahan in the seventeenth century, as were single-point perspective and shading. The Hungarian convert Ibrahim Müteferrika introduced printing with moveable type to Istanbul in the early eighteenth century. An Armenian press was established in Isfahan and a Maronite press in Lebanon, although printing was not fully exploited in the region until the nineteenth century. European DURING THIS PERIOD West Asia was contested between two rival Muslim dynasties of Turkish origin. The more powerful were the Ottomans (r. 1282–1924), who had grown from a minor principality in northwestern Anatolia to rule a vast empire that encompassed Anatolia, Syria, the Levant, Arabia and Mesopotamia, as well as the Balkans, much of southwestern Europe, all of Egypt and all of North Africa except Morocco. The Ottomans challenged the Christian powers of Europe for control of the Mediterranean and challenged the Habsburgs and Romanovs for control of eastern Europe and southern Russia. The Ottomans’ rivals to the east, the Safavids (r.1501–1732), ruled Persia and made the Shi‘i sect of Islam the state religion. Their borders were constantly harrassed on the west by the Ottomans, who vied with them for control of the Shi‘i shrines at Najaf and Kerbela, and on the east by the Uzbeks, who vied for control of the Shi‘i shrine at Meshed. Eventually the moribund Safavid dynasty was overthrown by the Turkmen chieftain Nadir, who re-established the territorial integrity of Persia through constant wars financed by invading India in 1738–9. This brilliant campaign brought him enormous booty, including the Mughals’ fabled Peacock Throne. INTERNATIONAL TRADE After European ships rounded the Cape of Good Hope, the traditional land routes across Eurasia were displaced. Inland caravan cities were supplanted by Persian Gulf ports which linked Persia directly into the European mercantile system. Persian silk cultivated on the Caspian littoral was shipped to Europe through Ottoman-controlled Aleppo in northern Syria, while the Ottomans themselves exported silk from Bursa. Both the Safavids and the Ottomans also exported fine finished textiles including silks, velvets and carpets. Most carpets exported to Europe came from the Ottoman Empire. Their increased presence is amply documented in European paintings, and they are consequently known as, for example, ‘Holbein’, ‘Bellini’ or ‘Crivelli’ carpets. Other carpets – and works of art – were made on commission for Europeans. The Armenian merchant Sefer Muratowicz, for example, ordered ‘Polonaise’ carpets woven in Isfahan with the arms of the Czartowski family. Ottoman potters at Iznik made polychrome ceramics bearing European coats of arms. European trade was encouraged by merchants, missionaries, adventurers and ambassadors, including the English organWEST ASIA 1500-1800 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ 70˚ 40˚ 30˚ 20˚ 10˚ Istanbul (Ottoman capital) Tabriz (Safavid capital to 1555) Isfahan (Safavid capital from 1590s) Qazvin (Safavid capital 1555-1590s) Vienna Szigetvár Samarkand Meshed Mecca Hormuz Bandar Abbas (Gombroon) Medina Ardabil Rhodes Antalya Kütahya Ushak Athens Bursa Ankara Tokat Trebizond Simferopol Erzurum Diyarbakir Van Mardin Mosul Baghdad Najaf Kerbela QumSaveh Shiraz Kashan Kerman Tabas Kandahar Yazd Urfa Nishapur Aleppo Damascus Jerusalem Amman Cairo Alexandria Benghazi Tripoli Rosetta Jericho Nicosia Amasya Konya Eupatoria Gaziantep Tripoli Beirut Acre Jaffa Belgrade Budapest Üsküb Thessalonica Adrianople Iznik Smyrna Tirana Sofia Pec´ (Ipek) Khiva Bukhara Nile E uphrates Tigris Danube B L A C K S E A A R A B I A N S E A ARAL SEA M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A R E D S E A C A SPIAN SEA PE R S I A N G U L F H U N G A R Y BALKANS A L G E R I A T U N I S I A E G Y P T S Y R I A A R A B I A E U R O P E P E R S I A ANATOLIA LEBANON R U S S I A C E N T R A L A S I A K H A N AT E O F K H I VA KHANATE OF BUKHARA T R I P O L I M ESO PO TAM IA Safavid trade with Europe Silk Silk, carpets and Iznik ceramics Raw silk Carpets Raw silk 1 West Asia, 1500-1800: Trade and Culture Ottoman Empire, 1520 Ottoman Empire, 1683 Safavid Empire, c.1520 Safavid Empire, early 17th century area fought over by Ottoman and Safavids after 1512 trade routes Ottoman exports Safavid exports capital cities new trade centres towns with Ottoman construction Safavid mosques pottery manufacture textile manufacture centre of manuscript production N 0 0 300 miles 400 kms MUHAMMAD ZAMAN, Fitna Astonishing Bahram Gur, added in 1675 to a copy of Nizami’s Khamsa (Quintet) made in 1539–43 for the Safavid shah Tahmasp. Seventeenth-century Persian miniature painters adopted such features of European art as single-point-perspective and shading, used here within a traditional Persian tripartite composition and subject to create a sense of space and to focus attention on the figure of the ruler. Old Meydan New Meydan (1590-1602) Shah Mosque (1611-30) Chahar Bagh Avenue Bridge of 33 Arches (1602) Madar-i Shah Madrasa (early 18 c) Mosque of Sheikh Lotfallah (1603-19) Ali Qapu (entrance to palace precinct 1597-1660) Bazar Old Congregational mosque R .Zayandeh To New Jolfa N 0 0 500 m 1000 ft Isfahan under the Safavids mosques mansions of the nobility 2 1 THE TWO MAJOR POWERS in the region, the Ottomans and the Safavids, were active traders in the global market, exporting many goods to Europe overland and by sea. The most important were fibres and textiles, which were cultivated and produced throughout their realms. Both dynasties also used architecture as a nationalist symbol, creating dynastic styles of architecture displayed in the many cities that flourished during this period. Although they were sometimes forced to move their capitals, their final choices – Istanbul and Isfahan – became the showpieces of their empires. 2 THE NEW CAPITAL OF Shah Abbas (r.1587–1628) at Isfahan reflected the role of the city as the hub of the Safavid order. A long covered market led from the old city to the New Meydan (square) with a congregational mosque at the south and the palace precinct to the west. Beyond, a broad avenue, flanked by the mansions of the nobility, led across the river to the suburb of the Armenian merchants and hunting preserves for the court. CENTRAL ASIA 1500 –1800 197 rooms and an iwan in the middle of each of its four sides. The largest (73 x 55 metres; 237 x 179 ft) is the Mir-i Arab madrasa (1530–36) in Bukhara. As in Timurid times, surfaces were decorated with brilliantly glazed tiles which were set in geometric or figural patterns. These buildings were often arranged in beautifully laid-out complexes, either facing other structures, as at the Registan complex in Samarkand, or set around reservoirs, as at Bukhara. City Wall City Wall City Wall Khanagah (1572) (exact location & size unknown) Sheikh Jahal Gate Qul Baba Kukultash mosque Labi-i Haws complex Qul Baba Kukaltash Madrasa (1569) Warehouse Caravanserai Mir-i Arab Madrasa (1530-36)Inner City Congregational Mosque Arg (Citadel)Registan Bath Madar-i Khan Madrasa (1567) Abd Allah Khan Madrasa (1590) To Chahr Bakr Royal Bath Rud i-Shah See Inset B See Inset A Goldsmith’s dome (1417) Ulugh Beg Madrasa (1417) Hatseller’s dome (c. 1582-7) Congregational mosque (1574-9) Gaukushan Madrasa 1562-6 Moneychanger’s dome Caravanserai of Khwaja Sa’d Warehouse of Abd Allah Khan (c.1577)Bath of Khwaja Sa’d Rud i-Shah N A: Central Commercial District B: Qul Baba Kukaltash Madrasa 0 500 m 500 yds 0 2 LOCAL PATRONS USED THE WEALTH garnered from trade to develop their cities. Bukhara, for example, was extensively enlarged under the local Shibanid khans, who added mosques, madrasas and shrines around a large commercial district with warehouses, caravanserais and domed markets. The city replaced Samarkand as the political and religious centre of Transoxania. The city walls were rebuilt, and the site presents one of the finest examples of a pre-modern Islamic city. THE REGISTAN, OR TOWN SQUARE, IN SAMARKAND. Most public buildings erected in Central Asia during this period were made of brick and glazed tile. Many were set in complexes, often around a pool. The Registan, the most spectacular ensemble, was laid out in the early fifteenth century by the Timurids. It was redeveloped in the seventeenth century when governor Yalangtush Bi Alchin built a new madrasa known as the Shirdar (‘lion-possessing’) from the decoration of rampant lions on the spandrels on the entrance. Erected between 1616 and 1636, it replaced a large madrasa built by the Timurid ruler Ulugh Beg. region is reflected in the substantial new investment in commercial facilities, such as caravanserais and covered markets, as well as expenditure lavished on religious architecture and literary and artistic works. New building in Bukhara and Samarkand was carried out on a scale not seen since the time of the Timurids. By the middle of the seventeenth century, however, the traditional land routes across Central Asia were insufficient to meet the growing world demand for goods created by European industrialization. Prosperity dramatically slackened as the economic significance of the region diminished. Deprived of their Mediterranean markets, Central Asian merchants turned northwards towards Russia and Siberia, developing reciprocal trade in textiles, furs, precious stones and rhubarb (used as a medicine). THE RELIGIOUS ART OF CENTRAL ASIA In reaction to the establishment of Shi‘i Islam as the state religion of Persia under the Safavids, Central Asia became a staunch centre of Sunni Islam. It was taught by religious scholars who presided over many large madrasas (theological colleges) constructed in the major cities, which attracted students from across Asia. The typical madrasa, like most buildings in the region, was a large brick structure with a central open court surrounded by two stories of Sufis, or mystics, had been responsible for much of the conversion of Central Asia to Islam, and Sufi orders remained important. Shrine complexes were developed around the graves of Sufi saints. The most famous is the Char Bakr complex (1559–69) outside Bukhara, which comprises a khanaqah (hospice), madrasa and mosque in the midst of the cemetery for the Jubayri family of Naqshbandi sheikhs. lllustrated manuscripts produced in the region became increasingly repetitive in subject, composition and style. Following successive incursions into Khurasan, the northeastern province of the Safavid realm, painters in Central Asia began to incorporate the classical elements of Persian manuscript painting as had been practised in fifteenthcentury court ateliers at the Timurid capital of Herat. The most important texts were the classics of Persian literature, illustrated for emirs and members of the learned class, as well as for local princes. Many of the other arts also followed earlier traditions. Fine metalwares, not only inlaid bronzes but especially tinned coppers, continued to be produced, but few are dated. Polychrome ceramics were replaced by blueand-white wares imitating Chinese porcelains. Typical pieces, mainly bowls, were covered with a slip and decorated under a transparent glaze with flowers, fruits, birds and geometric designs. The expensive cobalt pigment used in the fifteenth century was replaced with cheaper manganese and copper that produced darkgreen, turquoise and purple-brown hues. To judge from earlier and later examples, fine textiles and carpets in wool, silk and cotton were also made in this period, but so far it is difficult to date or localize many of them. 2 Bukhara in the 16th Century ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 196 Uch Turfan, Khotan, Kashgar and Yarkand. By the middle of the seventeenth century, power passed from the Chaghatayids to the Khojas (1658–1759), descendants of Naqshbandi Sufi sheikhs, who cemented their authority by marriage into the Chaghatayid family. ARTISTIC PATRONAGE The khans, emirs and sufis were all important patrons of architecture and art, especially the arts of the book. In form and style, the works of art produced under Uzbek patronage in Central Asia were dependent upon models the Timurids had established in the fifteenth century. The repetition of the same forms for the next three centuries means that these works of art, although copious, are often mediocre in quality, particularly when they are compared with contemporary works produced by Safavid and Ottoman patrons in West Asia or by the Mughals in South Asia, all of whom had far greater resources at their disposal. The European discovery of direct sea links with Asia and the Americas at the end of the fifteenth century had a crucial impact on the economy of this region, which was an entrepôt on the intercontinental trade route linking China to South and West Asia. By the midsixteenth century, precious metals from the New World had found their way into the pockets of Central Asian businessmen and politicians. The ensuing prosperity of the IN THE THREE CENTURIES following the collapse of the last remnants of the Timurid Empire in 1506, the Turko-Mongolian rulers of Central Asia were challenged by the advances of two powerful rivals, the Chinese and the Russians. The area to the east of the Tien-Shan mountains fell increasingly under Chinese control, and in 1757 it was made a Chinese province called Sinkiang (‘new frontiers’). The region to the west became tied to the growing economic power of Muscovy. After defeating the Tartars and annexing the Khanate of Kazan in 1552, Muscovy extended its political and economic reach south and eastward. Anthony Jenkins, representative of the English Muscovy Company, established the first diplomatic exchange with the Central Asian khanates in 1558, and Russia became the region’s main trading partner. SETTLEMENT PATTERNS During this period authority reverted to descendants of Genghis Khan who exercised their power from oasis cities irrigated by rivers and irrigation systems fed by waters collected in distant mountain ranges. In western Central Asia the political system was organized into fiefdoms led by khans descended from Genghis’s eldest son, Jochi. The main lines were the Shibanids (1500–1599) and the ToqayTimurids (1599–1747), who ruled from capitals at Bukhara, Samarkand, Tashkent and Balkh. Military and bureaucratic figures from the Turko-Mongolian tribes were sometimes even more important than the khans, while the learned class, which included traditional Muslim scholars and members of Sufi (mystical Islamic) brotherhoods, often served as mediators between the disenfranchised and the ruling classes. In eastern Central Asia descendants of Genghis Khan’s second son, Chaghatay, ruled in the Altishahr, the ‘six cities’ of Kucha, Aksu, CENTRAL ASIA 1500-1800 PAGE FROM SAADI’S MASTERPIECE in prose and poetry, the Bustan (‘Orchard’), made at Bukhara in 1616. Rich patrons continued to commission illustrated copies of Persian classics. This manuscript of the famous poem by the thirteenth-century Persian master from Shiraz, for example, was made for the library of a Juybari sheikh who represented the Naqshbandi order of Sufis in the Transoxanian city of Bukhara. It gives a good idea of court life there. 50˚ 60˚ 70˚ 90˚80˚ 100˚ 30˚ Turfan Kucha Andijan Kokand Tashkent Bukhara Karmina Samarkand Yasi (Turkestan) Khiva Baqirqan Merv HeratIsfahan Shiraz Mashhad Old Urgench Kandahar Kashgar Uch Turfan Aksu Yarkand Khotan Kabul Yamghan Lahore Balkh Lake Balkhash Il i Indus Tarim M urgab Helmand Zeravshan Am u Darya Syr Darya Hari Rud CASPIANSEA PERSIAN GULF ARAL SEA T I E N S H A N H I N D U K U S H P A M I R S K A Z A K H S T E P P E KOPET DAGH KYZYL KUM KARA KUM To Hami: horses, camels, skins To China To Orenburg: textiles, rhubarb, precious stones To Khiva: furs To Kazan R U S S I A C H I N A TURKMENISTAN AFGHANISTAN KHANATE OF KHIVA KHANATE OF KOKAND S I N K I A N G KHANATE OF BUKHARA TURKESTAN P E R S I A OTTOMANEMPIRE M U G H A L E M P I R E KARA-KIRGHIZ 1 The Civilizations of Central Asia, 1500-1800 border of Qing Empire, 1779 border of Safavid Empire, 1725 border of Russian Empire, 1725 ‘six cities‘ of the Altishahr trade routes madrasas shrine complexes caravanserais centres of manuscript production N 0 0 600 miles 800 kms 1 SANDWICHED BETWEEN GREAT POWERS in China, India, Persia and Russia, Central Asia was fragmented among principalties and city-states ruled by descendants of Genghis Khan, and artistic patronage became inwardly focused. To display their might and cement their authority, patrons in the western part of the region commissioned buildings and objects resembling those that had been commisioned by the Timurids, their richer and more powerful ancestors in the fifteenth century. ONE OF FOURTEEN CENOTAPHS (chhatries) constructed in the seventeenth century to commemorate the kings of the Rajput dyansty of the Bundelas in their capital city of Orccha. While their form resembles a common north-Indian-style Hindu temple, their function, to commemorate the dead, reflects the influence of Islam, as mausolea and tombs are unknown among Hindus, who bury their dead. Interestingly, the cenotaphs contain no human remains. SOUTH ASIA 1500–1800 199 (particularly when decorated), books were exchanged at ceremonial occasions and are often mentioned as war spoils by court historians. Painters were usually commissioned personally by patrons to illustrate manuals, court histories and biographies, a fact often reflected in the highly individualized nature of miniature painting. MUGHAL ARCHITCTURE The Mughal emperors constructed palaces, mosques, forts and cities. Mughal architecture blended Persian and Central Asian prototypes with indigenous Indian techniques and styles. Mughal monuments in the sixteenth century, like the city of Fatepuhr Sikri, were largely built in distinctive red sandstone with contrasting marble inlays, while those of the seventeenth century, such as the Taj Mahal (see pp.146–7), a mausoleum sponsored by Emperor Shah Jahan (r.1627–58), were constructed in white marble and inlaid with semi-precious stones. Decorative techniques were distinctive: perforated screens, tesselated designs of alternating stone types, inlaid floral motifs and glazed tiling. One of the more remarkable architectural developments of the Mughal period was the proliferation of garden architecture (and culture) among the courtly elite. The Mughal prototypes came from Persia, where the Islamic concept of paradise as a utopian garden of plants and flowers arranged in geometrical symmetry around pools of water had developed. Though inspired by Persian prototypes, Mughal gardens, like painting, were quickly adapted to Mughal taste. privileges alone but by the end of the eighteenth century had come to acquire limited diplomatic and administrative powers, a process which would eventually lead to fullscale colonial rule. Despite the rapidly changing political landscape, this was a period of increasing economic dynamism. A significant rise in the flow of commodities during the Mughal period led to a corresponding expansion in the demand for manufactured products, including luxury goods and crafts. This demand was reinforced by the development (and imitation) of an impressive courtly culture in the major imperial metropolises, as well as vigorous and distinctive provincial courtly styles. These were manifested in architecture, painting, textiles and portable decorative arts. COURTLY CULTURE Early Mughal courtly culture was heavily influenced by contemporary Persia, particularly in painting and architecture. While painting (both Hindu and Muslim) was by no means unknown in pre-Mughal India, it was developed extensively as a courtly art from early Mughal times, partly as a result of the emperor Humayun’s exile to the court of Tahmasp in Persia, where he witnessed the spendours of Persian miniature painting, and partly due to the subsequent arrival of Persian artists at the Mughal court seeking refuge from religious iconoclasts. Miniature paintings were essentially book illustrations and were closely associated with the culture of books in Mughal India. Considered rare and precious objects Gwalior Gate Tehra Gate Mosque and Tomb of Shaikh Baha-ud-Din Tansen’s Baradari Naubat Khana (Music House) Mint Diwan-i-Khass (Hall of Private Audience) Diwan-i-Amm (Hall of Public Audience) Jodha Bai’s Palace Anup Talao (‘Peerless Pool’) Daftar Khana (Records House) Buland Darwaza (Gate of Victory) Panch Mahal (Five-Storey Palace) Hiran Minar (‘Sunken Minaret’) Hawa Mahal (Palace of Breezes) Jami Masjid VILLAGE AREA Sarai (Caravanserai) Chor Gate Ajmer Gate Chodanpol Gate Birbal Gate Agra Gate Lal GateDelhi Gate N 0 0 500 yds 500 m 2 Fatehpur Sikri, Mughal Imperial City, 1571-1600 TEXTILES AND DECORATIVE ARTS Sources suggest that the Indian textile industry was truly mammoth, with every part of the country producing textiles for both local consumption and distant markets. The English factory records alone mention some 150 varieties of cotton fabric available for export. There were many regional specialities, such as painted cloth from the Deccan and mixed silk and cotton from Gujarat. Indian fabrics were printed, painted, dyed and often embroidered and appliquéd. Yet technologies remained comparatively simple and rudimentary. Inlaid jewellery was a Mughal speciality, particularly under the patronage of Shah Jahan, whose famous golden ‘peacock throne’ was encrusted with precious stones. Exports of fine cotton and silk textiles, precious and semi-precious stones, spices and other luxury items reached Persia, Turkey, Muscovy, Poland, Egypt and Arabia. It is no surprise that European merchants were drawn in the seventeenth century to trading entrepôts along the coast of India, where they established factories. The art of miniature painting involved a variety of artisans – painters, paper-makers, binders, gilders and calligraphers. The studio masters drew models on paper with graphite or ink, which were then coated with a white translucent layer of paint. Details were added and then paint, made of plant, animal and mineral-based pigments mixed with glue or gum arabic, was applied with squirrel-hair brushes. Finally, the surface of the paintings was burnished. 2 THE CITY OF FATEHPUR SIKRI was constructed under the patronage of Emperor Akbar over a fifteen-year span (1571–85), to celebrate a prophecy made by the Chisti saint Shaikh Salim, of the birth of a son. A brilliant combination of Persian principles with an Indian flavour, the city is built of red sandstone with contrasting marble inlays. Fatehpur Sikri was not destined to last, however, and was abandoned by 1600. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 198 Empire, with its complex system of flexible political alliances with Hindu kings called Rajputs, was one of the most remarkable states witnessed in the subcontinent. By the latter half of the seventeeth century, however, it had been weakened by internal divisions (which included the rise of the independent state of the Marathas in the Deccan) and fiscal overspending. At the same time, European merchant companies began to arrive in India seeking precious materials and finely worked goods. At first they excercised trading THE PERIOD BETWEEN 1500 and 1800 has traditionally been seen as an epoch of imperial grandeur followed by political and economic decay and stagnation, setting the stage for the arrival of European powers and colonial rule. Recent research suggests that this period instead saw steady but remarkable economic growth and socio-political dynamism. ART AND SOCIETY In 1526 Babur (r.1526–30), who had been forced from his homeland in Samarkand by the Uzbeks, defeated the acting Sultan of Delhi, and established what was to become the last great imperium before the arrival of European powers, the Mughal empire. Throughout the sixteenth century, the Mughal emperors established control throughout the subcontinent. The Deccan, where the kingdom of Vijayanagara had fallen to a confederation of sultanates in 1565, saw a power vacuum and was soon swallowed up by the expanding Mughal Empire under the dynamic leadership of Emperor Akbar (r.1556–1605). The Mughal SOUTH ASIA 1500-1800 70˚ 15˚ 20˚ 25˚ 65˚60˚ 80˚75˚ M A A 18 17 13 2 12 4 7 3 16 1 9 10 15 8 19 6 14 5 11 Ghazni JalalabadKabul Peshawar Sirhind Chamba Kangra Kulu Dadeldhura Dullu Dailekh Mandi Basohli Jammu Lahore Ahmadabad Hisar Bikaner Gwalior Chitor Kotah Udaipur Uch Pandua Kantanagar Ujjain Asirgarh Dhar Kathmandu Baranagar Ayodhya Jaunpur MauTanda Patna Bihar Bhadgaon Cuttack Lakhawar Benares Monghir Kalinjar Allahabad Calcutta Bishnupur Qasimbazar Dacca Kanauj Balasore Chicacole Vizagapatam Bidar Puri Jaisalmer Srinagar Panipat Delhi Multan Bhuj Thatta Nasarpur Baroda Patan Aurangabad Thalner Dharangaon Burhanpur Hariharpur Sonargaon Malda Chanderi Surat Cambay Diu Broach Daman Junagarh Thana Ikkeri Goa Bednur Rajahmundry Masulipatam Nagapattinam Tranquebar Nizampatam Chandragiri Madras Golkonda Gulbarga Hyderabad Gingee Pulicat Hampi Tanjore Seringapatam Madurai Tuticorin Jaffna Trincomalee Kandy Mannar Bombay Chaul Janjira AhmadnagarJunnar Cochin Quilon Colombo Calicut Mysore Mangalore Kandahar Brahmaputra Ganges Goda vari Mahanadi Narmada Krishna I ndus I N D I A N O C E A N ARABIAN SEA H I M A L A Y A S WESTER N G H ATS EASTER N GHATS T H A R D E S E RT KATHIAWAR CUTCH MEWAR D E C C A N AHMADNAGAR CEYLON (SRI LANKA) A J M E R M A R W A R P U N J A B D E L H I A W A D H B E N G A L A G R A B E R A R KANDAHAR S I N D K A B U L A S S A M GO N D W A N A GOLKONDA O RISSA M A L W A KHANDESH GUJARAT BIJAPURMYSORE KASHMIR S I K H S Zamorins Savulus Udaiyars Nayakas M arathas R a t h o r s Jats Sisodiyas Bundelas Nizam Shahis Q u t b S h a h i s A d i l S h a h i s M U G H A L S N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms trade routes leathers centres of miniature painting centres of terracotta arts palace garden Sikh gurudwara Hindu temple mosque tomb centres of textiles: sericulture silk stuffs major silk mart brocade chintz calico muslin cotton cloth long cloth carpets shawls felts baftas Materials, Techniques and Evidence Mughal Empire, 1605 minor dynasty region ruby jade diamonds sapphires agate gold marble pearls conch shells 1 M A MALWA Sikhs S 1. Amber 2. Ajmer 3. Agra 4. Jaipur 5. Mathura 6. Orccha 7. Jodhpur 8. Lucknow 9. Bundi 10. Nagaur 11. Fatehpur Sikri 12. Kishengarh 13. Amritsar 14. Datia 15. Murshidabad 16. Sikandra 17. Lati Koili 18. Sambhal 19. Sasaram ports with European mercantile interests: British Dutch French Portuguese Danish S 1 THE EXPANSION OF THE MUGHAL STATE from the end of the sixteenth century was facilitated by centralizing economic and political reforms put in place by Emperor Akbar to maximize state revenue and curb rebellions. Persian sources of the period, combined with early European trade records make it possible to reconstruct numerous zones of agricultural and mineral production as well as centres of exchange and industry. During Mughal times India was more integrated into the world economy than ever before, in part through the presence, from as early as the sixteenth century, of Portugese, Dutch, British and French trading interests at different ports throughout the subcontinent. A JALI, OR PERFORATED STONE SCREEN, at Humayan’s tomb in Delhi. Constructed under the direction of Emperor Akbar to commemorate his father, this monument marked a departure from Sultanate period architecture. Its massive dimensions, bulbous dome, supporting platform and surrounding quadrisected garden (charbagh), make it a one of the defining monuments of the classic Mughal style. CHINA AND TIBET 1500–1650 201 SCHOLARS IN A GARDEN and its accompanying text are the painter Ding Yunpeng’s (1547–c.1621) designs for the front and back of an ink-cake. They were published by the ink producer Cheng Dayue (1541–c.1616) in a 1606 catalogue of such designs, Master Cheng’s Ink Garden. The images in such catalogues evoke the literati ideals of the famous men who created and signed them, presumably to attract status-conscious buyers of ink. Tiger Hill Cold Mountain Temple West Garden Lingering Garden North Temple Pagoda Lion Grove East Garden Coupling Garden Garden of Harmony Twin Pagodas Ruigang Pagoda Prefectural school Wu County offices Local government inspection office (Ming) Garden of the Master of the Nets and Fishing Blue Wave Pavilion Changzhou county offices Prefectural offices Department of prefectural defence (Ming) Humble Administrator’s Garden Fengqiao Lu GuangjiLu Pingqi Lu Outermoat Outermoat Dongbei Jie Dong Baita Baita Donglu Xilu Zhongshi Jingde Lu Daoqian Shiquan Jie Shizi Jie Jie Guanqian Jie N 2 Modern Remains of the Gardens of Suzhou, 1500-1650 gardens pagoda/temple/pavilion non-Buddhist temple/government offices canal old city walls 0 0 0.5 miles 1 km 2 AFFLUENT CHINESE of the late Ming were avid consumers of luxury goods, curiosities and art objects. Among the most extravagant possessions of the period were large gardens, consisting of buildings, landscaping and rare plants and rocks. Suzhou was famous for the number and magnificence of its gardens, the most famous extant examples of which are marked here. Suzhou gardens artfully re-created nature in all of its asymmetrical and seemingly random beauty, and were favoured gathering places of literary salons and venues for private theatrical performances. manufacture of luxury goods such as chopsticks. Furniture-making reached an apex in the late Ming. Utilization of mortise-and-tenon joinery on hardwoods, many of which were imported from Southeast Asia, produced architectonically engineered pieces of extreme simplicity and great value. Such furniture was complemented by advances in textile manufacture; complex and intricate brocades and embroidery were made in great volume. Such textiles were used, for example, for chair covers and cushions, as well as for wall hangings and robes. Lacquer was another indigenous material prized during the late Ming. Small lacquer objects circulated easily among the urban elites, but large, expensive pieces of lacquer furniture were considered particularly ostentatious – sets of lacquer furniture were commissioned for imperial palaces, and were regarded as decadent outside that context. Major urban centres were homes to celebrated artists and artisans of national reputation; they were also important sites of artistic production for more local consumption and reputation. CONNOISSEURS AND THEORISTS The late Ming was also a period in which antiques collecting flourished. Collecting enabled men of means to engage with the past through its material culture, and to assert their cultivation. As social mobility was broadly possible through the accumulation of wealth, or through success in the civil service examinations, the need to assert cultural sophistication was pressing. In addition to its ancient associations as a metaphor for the ability to make political decisions, connoisseurship legitimized the semi-public assertion of one’s cultural sophistication. Together with poetry writing and painting, it became a component of literary gatherings. Connoisseurship manuals, for example, Wen Zhengheng’s (1585–1625) Superfluous Things, became an important genre at this time. Interest in connoisseurship paralleled the expansion of theoretical writing about painting. Extrapolating from Buddhist history and literary theory of the early Ming period, the painter Dong Qichang (1555–1636) described lineages of past painters in order to establish ‘orthodox’ models for current practitioners. Dong, whose work as an amateur painter complemented a successful political career, rejected the work of artisan painters in favour of those of his literati predecessors. Although Dong’s historical knowledge of painting made him famous as a connoisseur, extant paintings appraised by Dong indicate that political expedience, rather than authenticity, was a frequent factor in his attribution. Increases in women’s literacy are perhaps responsible for the larger number of recorded female artists, who included professional artisans, courtesans and gentry women. During the late Ming, traditional disciplinary boundaries between the visual arts eroded: while Dong, for example, stressed the interrelationship of painting and calligraphy, elite literary culture found expression in all media of the visual arts, and many forms of popular visual phenomena were manifest in literati texts and images. The Tibetan Renaissance of c.1300–1500 fostered considerable artistic heterogeneity. Under the rule of the Gelugpa sect and the auspices of the Dalai Lama, there was a political consolidation of an unprecedented territory from the western border of modern Ladakh to the eastern borders of modern Sichuan and Yunnan. This political unification thus encouraged consolidation of Tibetan artistic production, especially in painting and sculpture. Tibetan art history was born in the writings of Pemo Karpa (1527–92), a Karma Kagyu religious master and painter who distinguished Tibetan religious art in historical and regional terms, and continued in the writings of Taranatha (1575–1635). ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 200 THE PERIOD 1500–1650 in China was characterized by a rich visual field that included the rise of a society of spectacle, in which life was as much watched as lived. The emergence of a media culture allowed printing technology to translate spectacle into widely disseminated images. The stability of native rule permitted the demographic expansion of urban centres: by the late Ming, the population of Beijing may have been as high as 1.15 million people; the population of Suzhou was approximately 500,000 during the sixteenth century. Other urban centres were commensurately large. Well-developed urban economies were concomitant with such large populations; in fact, the economies of Beijing and Suzhou were integrated to some degree through their proximity to the Grand Canal. Stability and prosperity during this period began to decline through regionalist and eunuch political factionalism at the Ming court, which became especially pronounced at the turn of the seventeenth century. The imperial ambitions of the Manchus, whose incursions across the Chinese border became more frequent and sustained, resulted in the Manchu conquest of China, leading to the establishment of the Qing (‘Pure’) Dynasty in 1644. Remnants of the Ming Dynasty remained intact in southern China until 1662, when the eradication of all claimants to the Ming throne completed the Manchu conquest. ARTS IN THE LATE MING PERIOD The late Ming was a period in which the arts flourished. The boundaries between the decorative and fine arts were eroded as the pictorial quality of decorative arts came close to that of painting itself. Production of blueand-white porcelain at Jingdezhen reached new heights, both through indigenous development, and through contact with foreign traders who circulated Chinese porcelain CHINA AND TIBET 1500-1650 90˚ 100˚ 110˚ 120˚ 130˚ 140˚ 40˚ 30˚ 20˚ 10˚ Ag Beijing Chengdu Lijiang Litang Chamdo Kumbum Lhasa Tsurpu Sakya Shigatse Alchi Khotan Tabo Toling Tsaparang Samye Gyantse FuzhouJianyang Dehua Xuancheng Guangzhou (Canton) Manila Longquan Jizhou Qishicun Shantou Xiuning Changsha Guilin Guiyang Kunming Shexian Jingdezhen Ningbo Jiaxing Hangzhou Nanjing Zhongdu Wuxi Jinan Taiyuan Kaifeng Wuchang Nanchang Fengyuan (Xi‘an) Suzhou Songjiang Yixing Putian Yalu Yellow Rive r Yangtze Xi Jiang Lop Nor S E A O F J A PA N Y E L L O W S E A E A S T C H I NA S E A S O U T H C H I NA S E A G O B I TAKLA MAKAN DESERT T I B E TA N P L A T E A U H I M A L A Y A S A LTA I M T S Q I L I A N S H A N T I E N S H A N TAIWAN HAINAN FUJIAN HUGUANG GUANGDONG GUANGXIYUNNAN GUIZHOU SICHUANWUSI ZANG, TUOGAN REGIONAL COMMANDS SHAANXI HENAN SHANXI NANJING JINGSHI KHANATE OF CHAHAR KHANATE OF ORDOS TUMET JURCHEN TERRITORY KHANATE OF ORDOS TUMET HAMI AND OTHER KINGDOMS JIANGXI ZHEJIANG S H A N DONG I N D I A M O N G O L I A C H I N AT I B E T K O R E A JAPAN P H IL IP P I N E S (Martaban wares) to China from the New World via Manila from Mongolia, Manchuria, Siberia: Mongolian oak, Korean oak Willow Wall Great Wall from Korea: Korean oak from Taiwan: camphor from Hainan Island: Chinese rosewood, ‘chicken-wing’ wood; Mount Hongmao nanmu, camphor English and Portuguese Spanish Dutch from Vietnam: non-indigenous varieties of cypress (Swatow wares) 1 Visual Production, 1500-1650 China’s borders, 1500-1650 provincial boundary provincial capitals imperial capitals painting centre kiln site of empire-wide reputation important printing centre important silk-production site important gardens Tibetan art centre jade silver external sources of exotic hardwood foreign contact Ag N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 NATIVE RULE UNDER THE MING DYNASTY created the climate of political and economic stability that fostered an era of cultural florescence, despite China’s self-imposed isolation from maritime and overland communication. The large urban centres of southeastern China were vibrant sites of artistic production and commerce, producing new developments in painting, printing, ceramics and textiles and the creation of optical devices. This multidimensional visual culture was enriched by the engagements between the various media in play in the visual field. throughout maritime Asia, and to Europe, where it was highly valued. Chinese porcelain, especially that from Jingdezhen, revolutionized both the European taste for ceramics as well as their production processes. The Medici were among the first to try to replicate Chinese porcelain in Europe, and were subsequently joined by the Dutch and others. Silver, brought to China from New Spain via Manila, was used for currency, and increasingly for the THE AESTHETIC VISION of the later Ming was one informed by simplicity and restraint on the one hand, and by conspicuous consumption on the other. These ideals produced objects such as this huanghuali (Chinese rosewood) painting table. Its simple lines and mortise-and-tenon joinery bespeak restraint, while the material, huanghuali, was one of the most valuable woods of the time. Such tables were used by scholar-officials for painting works often exchanged with friends or traded for favours. CHINA AND TIBET 1650–1800 203 ‘BUDDHAS OF THE THREE GENERATIONS’ is a silk tapestry manufactured in 1744 on behalf of the Qianlong emperor. Created in the style of the famous Buddhist painter Lu Lengjia (active c.730–60), the work depicts, left to right: Kashyapa, a Buddha of the past; Shakyamuni, Buddha of the present; and, Maitreya, Buddha of the future, and thus suggests the unbroken continuity of Buddhism. A nearly identical work was presented to the Dalai Lama by Qianlong. Inner City Outer City Inset Temple of Earth Yellow Temple Temple of the Moon Temple of the Sun Temple of Heaven Temple of Agriculture Imperial Palace (Forbidden City) Wenming He N 0 0 2 miles 2 kms Beijing, the Forbidden City, 1650-1800 boundary of city, c.1267-71 inner city outer city quarters of the city 2 1 2 3 4 5 9 10 18 11 13 12 17 16 14 15 6 7 8 Inset Major buildings or monuments 1 - Da Ming (Qing) Gate 2 - Five Marble Bridges 3 - Chengtian (Tian’an) Gate 4 - Duan Gate 5 - Wu Gate 6 - Ancestral Temple 7 - Twin Altars of Soil and Grain 8 - Five Marble Bridges 9 - Taihe (Great Harmony) Gate 10 - Three Great Halls 11 - Three Back Halls 12 - Imperial Garden 13 - Six Eastern Palaces 14 - Six Western Palaces 15 - Yangxin Palace Complex 16 - Ningshou Palace Complex 17 - Shenwu Gate 18 - Jing Shan (Prospect Hill) N 0 300 m 2 THE CITY OF BEIJING and its enclosed Forbidden City, or Imperial Palace Complex, remained the centre of government administration under Qing Dynasty rule. The plan of Ming Dynasty Beijing was said to be based on the body of an eight-armed boy, Nezha, who had killed the son of the dragon king. Independently, during the Qing dynasty the Inner City was divided into designated quarters for the Eight Banners, the hereditary military class established under Manchu rule. The Outer City housed the ethnic Chinese strata of society. in painting on porcelain, and is presumed to be the result of Dutch transmission of a technique already known in Vienna by 1725. Simultaneously, the Qing also developed highly vitreous enamelled monochrome wares for palace use. Pictorial culture in China under Manchu rule developed in a number of directions. Firstly, the Orthodox tradition of Dong Qichang (1555–1636) was developed by practitioners in the southeast who retreated from the reality of Manchu rule into an art-historical past. These men, including Wang Shimin (1592–1680), Wang Jian (1598–1677), Wang Hui (1632–1717), and Wang Yuanqi (1642–1715) copied canonical works and creatively reworked the ideas of the canonical masters established by Dong. They perpetuated art-historical ideas in painted form as well as in their writings. Individualist painters, such as Shitao (1642–1707) and Bada Shanren (1626–1705), sought to address the question of Manchu rule through their exploration of self and subjectivity, creating works steeped in personal visual perception and psychological introspection. At the Manchu court, patronage of painting reflected a willingness to experiment with divergent representational sensibilities. The Jesuit Giuseppe Castiglione (1688–1766), also known by the Chinese name of Lang Shining, introduced Western single-point perspective to the court, as well as colouristic techniques and chiaroscuro. However, Castiglione worked in traditional Chinese materials, and frequently painted traditional Chinese subjects, producing a remarkable hybrid European-Chinese painting style perpetuated by other Qing court painters. THE DISSEMINATION OF MANCHU ART As in previous dynasties, fine and decorative arts of local and regional reputation were produced throughout the Qing empire in urban centres such as provinicial and prefectural seats. Unlike works of national reputation, few such works survive. The development of Chinese decorative arts during the Qing Dynasty was also affected by past traditions, Manchu culture and European influence. The export of Chinese decorative arts, together with Chinese philosophy, created the craze for chinoiserie in Europe and her colonies during the eighteenth century. Although the Qing court was a patron of ornate lacquered furniture, Qing hardwood furniture maintained the clean, classical lines of the best Ming pieces. The export of Ming-style furniture to Europe is thought to have resulted in the Queen Anne style, and in a heightened understanding of joinery, especially the use of mortise and tenons. Ceramics produced outside Jingdezhen, for example the teapots of Yixing, explored three-dimensional natural and geometric forms. These pots, as well as Jingdezhen wares, influenced the rise of porcelain manufacture in Europe, for example the 1710 establishment of the Meissen factory under the patronage of Augustus the Strong (1670–1733). Chinese ceramics also influenced the forms of English and American silver of the late seventeenth and early eighteenth centuries. Traditionally, Chinese pasted plain paper to their walls; European knowledge of this custom and access to inexpensive Chinese artisanal painting led to the development of hand-painted wallpaper for export to Europe. As a result of civil unrest, Manchu troops were garrisoned in eastern Tibet, which subsequently became a Manchu protectorate under local Tibetan rule in 1725. Manchu control of the area was further consolidated by the installation of two Manchu imperial representatives in Lhasa from 1728 through to the end of the dynasty. The Qianlong emperor (r.1735–96) was a significant patron of Tibetan Buddhist teachers and Buddhist art; his patronage produced a hybrid Sino-Tibetan Buddhist art. Under Manchu rule, Eastern Tibet flourished, especially the city of Derge, whose princes supported Buddhist art and literature. Not only did painting flourish, for example as practised by Tshultrim Rinchen (1698–1774), but the existence of a large printing industry facilitated the empire-wide distribution of Derge images and texts, including Tshultrim Rinchen’s work and a 1744 edition of the Buddhist canon. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 202 THE MANCHU CONQUEST of China was consolidated in 1644 with the proclamation of the Qing (literally ‘pure’) dynasty. Under Ming rule, the capital of the empire had shifted north to Beijing despite the cultural primacy of south-eastern China. As nomadic people from northern Asia, the Manchu occupation and renovation of Beijing as a capital allowed China’s new rulers to assimilate to pre-existing paradigms of imperial mandate and to place themselves in proximity to their ancestral lands to the north of China proper. The Qing imperium made its mark on the capital city by dividing it into an inner and outer city, inhabited by hereditary military families, Manchu and Chinese, and ethnic Chinese, respectively. The population may have reached 800,000 people. DECORATIVE ARTS UNDER THE MANCHU The Manchus were arbiters of popular custom, for example, requiring men under their power to wear the ‘queue’ – shaving the front of their head and wearing a long braid down the back. As patrons of the arts they promoted indigenous Chinese traditions, supported Western arts and artistic technology transmitted to China, and developed their own Manchu tastes. The imperial kiln at Jingdezhen continued to operate during the Qing Dynasty under the auspices of Chinese administrators, for example, Tang Ying (1728–56). In addition to production of blue-and-white wares, the Manchus increasingly used overglaze enamel to achieve new decorative effects. These included the development, circa 1723–35, of CHINA AND TIBET 1650-1800 150˚140˚130˚120˚110˚100˚ 50˚ 40˚ 30˚ 20˚ Ag Beijing Kumbum Derge Litang ChengduBatang Kunming Guilin Lhasa Gyantse (Gyangzê) Tashi Lhunpo (Zhaxilhünbo) Shigatse (Xigazê) Sakya (Sa’gya) Mt Kailas Toling Khotan Wuxi Suzhou Shenyang Lanzhou Jilin Tsitsihar Jinan Nanjing Kaifeng YangzhouXi’an Taiyuan Yixing Xuancheng Wuxing Wuchang Xiuning Anqing Jingdezhen Nanchang Changsha Longquan Shexian Changshu Fuzhou Taiwan Kunshan Jiading Shanghai Songjiang Jiashan Jiaxing Hangzhou Dehua Guangzhou Ganges Yalu Yellow River Yangtze Xi Jiang Lop Nor S E A O F J A PA N YELLOW SEA EAST CHINA SEA SOUTH CHINA SEA G O B I TA K L A M A K A N D E S E RT A LTA I M T S Q I L I A N S H A N T I E N S H A N Z H I K A N G SHENGJING JILIN HEILONGJIAN JIANGSU ANHUI SHANXI I N N E R M O N G O L I A SHANDONG HENANSHAANXI G A N S U ZHEJIANG JIANGXI HUBEI HUNAN S I C H U A N Q I N G H A I FUJIAN GUANGDONG Y U N N A N G U A N G X I TAIWAN HAINAN G U I Z H O U X I N J I A N G KO REA I N D I A C H I N A BURMA TIBET M O N G O L I A JAPAN from New World via Philippines Ming Great Wall from Mongolia, Manchuria, Siberia: Mongolian oak, Korean oak 1717 1696 1720 1720 from Korea: Korean oak from Taiwan: camphor from Hainan Island: Chinese rosewood, ‘chicken-wing’ wood; Mount Hongmao nanmu, camphor from Vietnam: non-indigenous varieties of cypress English and Portuguese Spanish Dutch N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 Visual Production, 1650-1800 China’s borders provincial boundaries provincial capitals imperial capital painting centre kiln site of empire-wide reputation gardens of empire-wide reputation textile centre printing centre Tibetan art centre jade silver external sources of exotic hardwood Dzungar campaigns, with dates foreign contact Ag 1 THE MANCHU CONQUEST of China re-established stable but non-indigenous rule after the political infighting of the late Ming. As nomadic people, with ties to North and Central Asia, the Manchus had different customs from the Chinese. However, their policies maintained the economic stability of the empire, and encouraged greater contact with North and Central Asia, especially Tibet. so-called famille rose decoration, which used colloidal gold to create the pinks for which it was named, and lead-arsenic to create whites and opaque enamels. This technical transformation permitted greater verisimilitude Visit to Master Zhang’s Grotto by Shitao. A scion of the first Ming emperor, Shitao was raised in a Buddhist monastery, unaware of his origins. He left monastic life to paint professionally and to explore Daoist philosophy. His treatise, Huayu lu, reinscribed individual creativity in a theoretical discourse of painting preoccupied with past models. This copy of Shen Zhou’s (1427–1509) work of the same name represents the use of subjective visual experience to reinvent a past model. JAPAN AND KOREA 1500–1800 205 2 IN THE EARLY SEVENTEENTH CENTURY, Edo became the headquarters of the Tokugawa shogunate. Concurrently, Kyoto was rebuilt with new palaces, gardens and temples, and regained its position as the primary centre for traditional arts. New castle towns (Himeji, Kanazawa, Nagoya and Osaka being the largest), linked by major roadways, also developed distinctive arts and crafts, usually funded by their military governors. Thus, regional styles in ceramics, lacquer ware, fabrics, paper and even paintings were encouraged. 135˚ 138˚ Nara Kyoto Ise Sakai Osaka Kanazawa Edo Kamakura Nikko Nagoya Hikone Wakayama L. Biwa Yodo-ga w a Uji-gawa P A C I F I C O C E A N S E A O F J A P A N INLAND SEA CHIBA PEN. IZU PEN.Todai-ji Mampuku-ji Himeji INSET Mt Hiei Mt Koya AW AJIIS S H I K O K U H O N S H U Tokaido Road HokkokuRoad to Kyoto centre for collection of Chinese arts and tea utensils goods from China, Korea, foreign lands, via Dutch trade ships major trade route from Osaka to Inland Sea production centre for traditional Buddhist arts Shinto Grand Shrine - Buddhist arts workshops - Chinese-style Zen temple, 17th c Kyoto to northern provinces Major seaport N 0 0 50 miles 75 kms exported finished goods: ceramic kiln ceramics lacquerware textiles paintings calligraphy metalwork tea utensils Zen temple (production of calligraphy, paintings; collections of Chinese arts, tea houses, gardens) artists’ community castle road 2 The Kyoto Area imported raw materials: gold silver bronze wood paper raw silk imported finished goods: altar furnishings paintings sculpture printed materials calligraphy Oi-gawa Katsura-gawa Kamo-gawa Uji-gawa Nanzen-ji Tofuku-ji Daitoku-ji Imperial Palace c.900-1500 Imperial Palace c.1600-2000 Gion pleasure quarters Shokoku-ji Takagamine 17th c large monastic complex Enryaku-ji Tokaido Rd Myoshin-ji INSET Katsura Rikyu Nijo Castle c.1600-2000 yuzen dyeing yuzen dyeing nishijin weaving shijo shopping and studio area Shugakuin Villa innovative staging devices for quick set changes and for dramatic entrances through trap doors or ramps in the audience area. VISUAL ARTS Painting in Japan and Korea continued to follow Chinese prototypes of ink and colours on silk or paper, though specific aspects of style and subject-matter varied such that each country developed distinctive characteristics. Professional guilds in Kyoto and Edo dominated official commissions; Kano artists generally maintained a modified Zhe School style of boldly brushed forms, while Tosa and Sumiyoshi painters revived delicately outlined and thickly coloured shapes. Most artists worked in a variety of formats, from large wall panels and folding screens to small albums, hand-scrolls and fans. Their clients were mainly military and imperial court officials. HIMEJI CASTLE, C.1600. In Japan during the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries fortified towns were built with multistoried towers, complex moats, and elaborate halls (shoin) for entertaining. Some of these military compounds included naturalistic gardens designed for strolling, boating and the tea ceremony. These compounds were probably inspired by reports from foreign traders and missionaries about European castles. In both Korea and Japan during the eighteenth century, some amateur and professional artists began to emulate the literati painting styles of the Chinese Wu School, who painted for themselves and friends, primarily as a means of self-expression and philosophical exchange. Chinese illustrated books on ‘how to paint’ (such as the Mustard Seed Garden Painting Manual) were imported and copied. Wood-block printing became a major industry in Japan during this period, with illustrated guidebooks, histories and fictional works being produced inexpensively in Kyoto, Edo and Osaka. Initially, black-ink printed images on paper were hand-coloured, but by the mid-eighteenth century full-colour printing was widespread. Kabuki theatres and brothels in these urban centres also used printed broadsheets for advertising, and by the end of the eighteenth century some of Japan’s best artists were creating designs for the print media. Publishers like Tsutaya Jusaburo in Edo produced works by Shunsho, Kitao Masanobu, Kiyonaga, Sharaku and Utamaro, some of the finest print designers of the late eighteenth century. Large-scale sculptures in wood, metal and lacquered materials tended to follow earlier conservative prototypes, but small works such as ivory toggles (netsuke) and desk ornaments in stone, wood or bamboo were often both inventive and humorous. Household furnishings, especially lacquerware and ceramics, became elegantly refined in shape and decoration. Creamy white porcelains in Korea were not only favoured at court but also exported to China and Japan. A variety of painted ceramics were developed in Japan – many new shapes and glazes were developed for tea ceremony utensils. Extensive SELF-PORTRAIT by Yun Du-so (1668–1715). This portrait exemplifies the new realism that characterized Korean painting in the eighteenth century. A detailed ‘true image’ of a person was important for Neo-Confucian ancestral ceremonies. kiln sites were established in northern Kyushu around Arita, in Honshu at Kyoto and in the Nagoya region. Metalworking focused on sword production and military paraphernalia. Government-sponsored kilns at Punwon-ri, near Seoul, produced an exquisite and distinctive white porcelain for use at court and for export to China. Its undecorated cream-colored surfaces and austere elegant shapes were thought to reflect a purity of mind and moral character appropriate for Neo-Confucian patrons. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 204 MATERIALS AND TECHNIQUES In architecture, government buildings and Buddhist temples were still built using Chinesestyle wooden post-and-beam construction. However, modifications were made to these continental prototypes, especially in residential structures, where the Koreans developed an underfloor heating system (ondol) and the Japanese used thick rice straw matting (tatami) to provide comfortable living spaces. During the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries castles (a new architectural form) were constructed throughout Japan, and small rustic pavilions set in elaborate gardens were specially built for the tea ceremony. The aesthetic of ‘refined rusticity’ combined expensive materials with farm cottage forms to create a fantasy environment for the elaborate rituals of making and drinking tea. Country retreats, like Katsura Rikyu outside Kyoto, featured elegantly understated palace buildings and extensive plantings that made allusions to classical literature. In some urban centres, large kabuki theatres were constructed of wood, with civil wars – was rebuilt and flourished again as a centre of traditional arts. New urban centres (Osaka, Edo [Tokyo], Nagoya and Nagasaki) emerged as places of artistic experimentation, especially with arts connected to the kabuki theatres and the pleasure quarters. The newly enriched merchant class strongly supported the production of wood-block prints (ukiyoe) and illustrated books, textiles, ceramics and lacquerware. While professional painting guilds still provided traditional works for the imperial court and for military patrons, artists from the merchant and scholar classes explored new styles, often influenced by imported Chinese and Western prints and paintings. Korea was invaded twice by Japan during the 1590s, and in the early seventeenth century Manchus also invaded, further destroying the economy and dispersing artists. From 1724 to 1800 two successive Korean rulers provided unity and stability for the kingdom, and the arts recovered, achieving new prominence and distinction. In painting attention was given to depicting ‘true views’ of the country and its people, rather than imaginary scenes, and a strong sense of national identity developed which emphasized how Korea could be different from China and Japan in the arts. Ancestral shrines were rebuilt, using architectural forms and layouts that differed from earlier Chinese-style buildings, and portrait paintings used in memorial ceremonies displayed a high degree of realism. JAPAN AND KOREA 1500-1800 140˚130˚ 30˚ 40˚ Seoul Kamakura Edo Akita Sendai Nikko mortuary shrines of Tokugawa shoguns IseSakai Osaka Nagoya Kanazawa Hiroshima Hakata Himeji Nagasaki Nara Kyoto Suwon Shiga Arita Kwangju (porcelain: 17th-18th c) Sadang-ri (celadon: 16th c) L.Biwa Yellow River Tumen Yal u C h’ongch’on-gang Naktong -gang Posong -gang Nam-gang H an-gang S E A O F J A P A N S E A O F O K H O T S K E A S T C H I N A S E A Y E L L O W S E A KOREA BAY BO HAI P A C I F I C O C E A N AINU HUNTER-GATHERER CULTURE AINU HUNTER-GATHERER CULTURE European imports from Russian traders, 18th c trade with Mexico and S America, 17th c coastal trade European trade 16th-17th c; Dutch trade 17th-18th c direct trade between China and Japan, 16th-18th c direct trade between China and Korea Manchus, 17th c Japanese, 1590s Mt Fuji Mt Koya RY U K Y U IS M A N C H U R I A KOREA (CHOSON 1392-1910) Y E Z O KYUSHU SHIKOKU H O N S H U C H I N A J A P A N Tokaido Road Punwon-ri (porcelain: 17th-18th c) N 0 0 200 miles 150 kms 1 Art and Trade, 1500-1800 trade routes invasions of Korea kiln sites ceramics lacquerware paper fabrics painting Buddhist arts sculpture printed materials ivory toggles (netsuke) castle WHILE THE CHOSON DYNASTY of Korea was fairly stable during much of the sixteenth century, Japan was torn apart by constant civil wars, which devastated Kyoto and dispersed many artists to provincial towns where they sought the patronage and protection of regional military rulers. The 1590s saw the reunification of Japan, and then the massive destruction of Korea by Japanese armies. Many Korean artists were forcibly taken to Japan and kept in isolated communities where they produced ceramics and other goods for their captors. This tragic situation changed the arts in both Japan and Korea; Korean potters significantly influenced Japanese ceramics in the following century, while Korea was struggling to recover its cultural heritage. RECOVERY AND RENEWAL When Japan was reunified in the 1590s, Kyoto – which had been destroyed repeatedly during the 1 ARTISTIC INFLUENCES reached Japan and Korea from China (and from Europe through China), inspiring individual artists to experiment with greater realism, chiaroscuro and one-point perspective while still using traditional materials and painting techniques. Some direct exposure to European arts was available in the sixteenth and early seventeeth centuries through foreign merchants and missionaries, and images of Europeans (‘southern barbarians’) were used in painting, ceramics, lacquer goods and textiles. But, from the seventeenth century, Japan and Korea tried to restrict contact with European culture. SOUTHEAST ASIA 1500–1800 207 dominant faith, and almost all sculpture was Buddhist, the most common work being of the Buddha seated in bhumisparsa mudra – calling the earth to witness his worthiness to attain Buddhahood. Although Buddhism was the principal religion of the mainland, Confucianism and Taoism were also practised in Vietnam, while in the islands and in Malaya, Islam was the dominant faith. In the major Islamic cities of the south – where sculpture had once been very fine – art was now mainly non-figurative, in accordance with Islamic norms. However, bronze weaponry and other metalware was produced in great quantities. During this period, Christianity became popular amongst some hill tribe groups in the highland regions. In the Philippines, Catholicism, introduced by the Spanish, rapidly replaced Islam and led to sculpture and painting in which the Virgin Mary and the saints were depicted. Christianity spread into eastern Indonesia and New Guinea. Bali alone retained the ancient Hindu beliefs, once widespread. Everywhere, however, animistic beliefs underlay these world religions. Southeast Asians had a strong belief in the spirit world, in spirits that inhabited the trees, water and mountains, and which influenced human life for good or ill according to the respect accorded to them. Some of these spirits – the earth goddess, for instance – became merged in some cases with Hindu deities and were also accepted into the Buddhist pantheon. Everywhere death rituals were characterized by 90˚ 75˚ 105˚ 120˚ 135˚ 15˚ 0˚ 15˚ 30˚ Cu Cu Cu Faifo Hanoi (Thang Long) Phan Rang Macassar Melaka (Malacca) Banten Atjeh Pegu Ayutthaya Phnom Penh Luang Prabang Macao Chiengmai Tenasserim Vientiane Masulipatnam Madura Hyderabad Benares Patna Cambay Surat Poona Calcutta Ava Delhi Hooghly Negapatam Pattani Manila Cebu Ternate Brunei Bandjarmasin Ambon Palembang Batavia Indus Ganges Irrawaddy C hao Phr aya Mekong Brahmaputra P A C I F I C O C E A N I N D I A N O C E A N SOUTH CHINA SEA ARABIAN SEA T I M O R S E A B A Y O F B E N G A L ARAFURA SEA CELEBES SEA SULU SEA GULF OF THAILAND ANDAMAN SEA BANDA SEA JAVA SEA STRAIT O F M ALACCA MAKASSAR STRAIT BORNEO JAVA S I A M BURMA S U M A T R A LUZON JAPAN TIMOR FLORES HAINAN FORMOSA BALI LOMBOK SUMBA SUMBAWA CELEBES MINDANAO MOLUCC A S NEGROS SAMAR CEBU CERAMBURU HALMAHERA BUTUNG CHAMPA DAIVIET LANCHANG MALAY PENINSULA P H ILIPPINES RYU K Y U ISLANDS CAMBODIA I N D I A CEYLON (SRI LANKA) C H I N A incense from benzoin, to Ayutthaya to Ayutthaya to Japan to China, Japan, India, the Americas (via Philippines) to China, Japan, India, the Americas (via Philippines) to Japan to China, India, Japan to China, India, Japan to Indonesia and Philippines to Japan Chinese imports are transported to India and beyond Vietnamese ceramics exported to Arab market to Americas, via the Philippines to Atjeh, Banten to Atjeh, Banten, Pegu to Melaka, Ayutthaya, Tenasserim, Atjeh, Macassar, Banten to Faifo, Phan Rang, Melaka, Banten, Bali to Japan, The Ryukyus, Manila, Cebu, Macassar, Ternate, Maluku, Ambon from the Americas (via Philippines), to Ayutthaya, Banten, Banjamarsan, Faifo, Macao to Thang Long, Phan Rang, Mekong Delta, Ayutthaya, Pattani, Manila to Atjeh, Malacca to Java, Sumatra, Luzon, S. China to Manila, Vietnam, E. Indonesia to Japan cloves, nutmeg to India, China, Americas (via Philippines) pepper cloves, nutmeg 2 Trading Patterns in Southeast Asia, early 17th Century export trade import trade trade winds (April-August) trade winds (December-March) trade routes Commodities: porcelain ceramics silk cloth cotton textiles gold silver copper iron metalwork weaponry spices sugar tea timber lacquerwork fans tortoiseshell pearls deerskins precious stones Cu N 0 0 300 miles 450 kms 2 TRADE WAS VITALLY IMPORTANT in the region: local merchants traded with China, India and the Arab world, as they had done for centuries. Yet in the seventeenth century there was a rapid expansion in global trade. European trading companies such as the Dutch and English East India companies became involved in the commerce, competing with each other for dominance in the highly lucrative trade to Europe. Southeast Asia’s central role depended on its location and on its spices: pepper and highly prized cloves and nutmeg, grown only in the Moluccas, were exchanged for Indian cloth and textiles and Chinese silks. CROWNED BUDDHA, Ayutthaya, Thailand, sixteenth century. This magnificent bronze head shows many characteristics of the classical period of Thai art in the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries. The strongly arched brows over heavily lidded, downcast eyes, the strongly defined nose and incised mouth are typical. The Buddha wears a crown ornamented in the court style of the period. celebration and by the burial of cloth, jewellery and ceramics with the deceased. Wooden ancestral sculpture and masks played an important role in ritual life. CULTURAL INFLUENCES Countries within the region influenced each other’s artistic production in complex ways, partly through trade, and partly due to the widespread custom of taking captives in great numbers after battle. Skilled craftsmen were often transported between countries and courts in this way. The resulting fresh artistic input was felt particularly in the fields of sculpture and architecture but was also evident in crafts such as ceramics and lacquerware. Portable items were also carried off as booty during warfare, further complicating later identification. The finest works of art were produced in the major cities. Rulers were the major benefactors and commissioners of religious architecture and fine sculpture, and royal cities with their magnificent courts were magnets for craftsmen of all types. Fine textiles were produced in every region. Textiles were usually woven on simple backstrap looms and bore designs and motifs particular to their community. The tie-dye method was widespread. There was also a demand for Indian textiles, which formed a large proportion of trade imports into Southeast Asia. Silks were produced in some parts, and batik was popular in Java and the neighbouring islands. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 206 BY THE BEGINNING of the sixteenth century the great empires of Angkor and Sukhothai had fallen into decline, to be overtaken by Ayutthaya in the central Thai plains. TRADING NATIONS During this period trade continued with China, India and the Arab world. Trading patterns in Southeast Asia were governed by the trade winds, which blow in a southerly direction into the Indian Ocean and South China Sea between December and March, and in a northerly direction between April and August. Chinese and Japanese ships sailed south in January or February and returned home in June or July, and the merchants spent the intervening months in Southeast Asia trading their wares as they waited for the winds to change. Gujaratis used the same winds in order to meet the Chinese ships while they were based in the region. The traders formed sizeable communities in the major trading centres. They would spend many months living in the region, conducting trade with each other and with local merchants. This ethnic diversity, concentrated in coastal ports and delta cities, affected the religious and artistic climate of the region, and intermarriage added to the mingling of ideas. Ayutthaya, for example, although not a seafaring nation, was powerful on an international level, with a cosmopolitan population and a strong trade network. Malay and Chinese ships carried the bulk of its produce. There was a profitable commerce in export ceramics, particularly to Japan and the Philippines. Trade also flourished along the river routes: deerskins, benzoin (for incense), musk, lacquerware and other items were brought along overland routes and downriver in exchange for Indian cottons, Chinese silks and metalware. European interests were now also aimed at the region. There was high demand in Europe for trade profits, and the lure of the spices (cloves, nutmeg and mace), grown only in the Moluccas, was the draw for Western trade companies such as the East India Company, which now competed with the traditional traders. Apart from these highly valued spices, trade items included pepper, ceramics, textiles, gems, exotic woods and lacquerware. As Portuguese, Spanish, Dutch, British and French communities appeared, the demand for items ‘in the European taste’ increased. Textiles, furniture and silverware were commissioned purely for the European market. THE IMPACT OF RELIGION Southeast Asia was characterized by its diverse religious beliefs. The Mahayana form of Buddhism was accepted in Vietnam, producing images such as the thousand-armed bodhisattva Kuan Yin, dating from the seventeenth century. In the other mainland countries, Theravaddha Buddhism was the SOUTHEAST ASIA 1500-1800 15˚ 15˚ 0˚ 120˚105˚90˚ Sawankhalok Lampang Ba Trang Bac Ninh My Xuyen KINGDOM OF DAI VIET KINGDOM OF AYUTTHAYA Stadthuys, built 1641-60 by Dutch Royal tombs and palace, mid-17th century Manar Mosque, 1685 Mesjid Agung, 1428, the oldest mosque in Java Katanga Mosque, 1605 St Paul’s Church, mid-16th century Fort Santiago, 1599 San Agustin church, 1599 Fort San Pedro, 1565 Basilica Minore del Santo Niño Cathedral of St Paul San Pedro Cathedral, 1511 Portuguese Church, 1696 Wat Xieng Thong, 1560 Cheng Hoon Teng Temple, 1646 Kaunghmudaw pagoda, 1636 Shit-thaung pagoda, 1536 Shwe Dagon pagoda, enlarged early 16th century Thein Mu pagoda, 1602 Pha That Luong, 1566 Pegu Ava Sagaing Dagon KyaukseMrauk-U (Myohaung) Ayutthaya Sukhothai Phitsanulok Chiengmai Korat Kamphengphet Lop Buri Ligor (Nakhon Si Thammarat) Preii Nokor SamborLovek Phnom Penh Luwu Macassar Gowa Atjeh Vientiane Luang Prabang Faifo (Hoi An) Vijaya (Bin Dinh) Melaka (Malacca) Manila Vigan Kedah Johore Hatien Padang Indrapura Batavia (Jakarta) Banten Jogjakarta Surakarta Tjirebon Bandjarmasin Demak Kudus Cebu Pagan Angkor Plain of Jars Borobudur Prambanan Dieng Plateau Bada Valley M ekong Do ng Nai Red R iver Irrawaddy Salween P A C I F I C O C E A N I N D I A N O C E A N S O U T H C H I N A S E A T I M O R S E A C E L E B E S S E A SULU SEA GULF OF THAILAND GULF OF TONGKING ANDAMAN SEA BANDA SEA JAVA SEA STRAIT O F M ALACCA DANGREK MTNS CORDILLERA ANNAMESE BUKIT BARISA N M TN S B O R N E O J AVA S U M A T R A LUZON TIMOR FLORES BALI LOMBOK SUMBASUMBAWA CELEBES (SULAWESI) MINDANAO MOLUCC A S ARAKAN PEGU BRUNEI HAINAN NEGROS SAMAR CEBU CERAMBURU HALMAHERA BUTUNG LAMPUNG PALEMBANG SHAN PRINCIPALITIES CHAMPA CHANGLAN CHIENGMAI C H I N A MALAY PENINSULA V I S A Y A S CAMBODIA N 0 0 300 miles 450 kms 1 THE DOMINANT POLITY on the mainland in the early sixteenth century was Ayutthaya in Thailand, which was to prosper for 400 years. Ayutthaya was an extremely wealthy cosmopolitan city-state because of its enlightened trading policies. In the south, Islam had entered the islands and Malaya and was now a major cultural force, influencing the artistic output of the region. Sculpture was no longer produced here, but craftsmen became skilled at creating the ornate designs and metalwork associated with Islamic art. KAUNGHMUDAW PAGODA, Sagaing, Burma. Modelled on the Mahaceti Pagoda in Sri Lanka, it is the only one of its kind in Burma. Reaching a height of 46 metres (151 ft), it was built in 1636 by King Thalun to mark the return of the court to Ava. It enshrines a tooth of the Buddha. The Kingdoms of Southeast Asia, mid-17th Century important towns and cities ancient religious sites centre of sculpture pagoda (stupa) wat or temple cathedral / church mosque fort other buildings of interest kiln site gold and silver workshop lacquerware wood carving 1 THE PACIFIC 1500–1800 209 improve navigational techniques), to find the Southern Continent and to find the Northwest Passage. Of course, these goals were not purely scientific, but had important military and economic implications as well. Significantly, the Royal Society, a scientific association, and the Admiralty sponsored the voyages together. The separate instructions Cook received from these organizations reflect their sometimes conflicting ideas about the voyages – the Admiralty, for example, ordered Cook to claim newly discovered land in the name of the king, while the Royal Society instructed him to respect the land rights of indigenous peoples. In pursuit of these scientific goals, the voyagers sometimes spent weeks, even months, in various island groups, including New Zealand, Tahiti, Tonga and Hawaii. They developed sustained relationships with many individual Islanders and had an unprecedented opportunity to observe Pacific cultures. The arts played a key role in the exchanges between Islanders and voyagers. Islanders gave the voyagers gifts of regalia, cloth, tools and other objects to indicate goodwill and cement relationships, and they also traded such things for the new materials and objects brought by the voyagers. The collections and journals created on these voyages are today a major source of knowledge about eighteenth-century Pacific cultures, complementing Islanders’ own oral histories and the archaeological record. ‘FATAL’ IMPACT? The contact experience is sometimes discussed in terms of the ‘fatal’ impact of Europeans on Pacific Islanders, but it is essential to separate the issues of health and government from cultural practice. The severely negative impact of Europeans on the Pacific Islanders in terms of disease, violence and dispossession of land cannot be overstated. Some of these effects were experienced immediately in the eighteenth century, others only fully so in the nineteenth century. The idea of fatal impact works rather differently when the focus turns to culture. If populations were decimated, the argument goes, then culture must have been destroyed as well. This viewpoint implies, mistakenly, that Pacific cultures were weak and inferior to European culture, and that they had no control over the degree to which they assimilated European practices. For the visual arts, a fresh examination of the archival and material record suggests that in the eighteenth century, Pacific Islanders responded very strongly to certain materials and images introduced by Europeans. At the same time, artistic styles, forms, and usages showed tremendous continuity. It is important to remember that innovation is a fundamental part of tradition, and that Pacific cultures were never timeless and unchanging. A good example of this is Tahitian resistance to trading mourning dresses during Cook’s first and second voyages. The mourning dress, a spectacular costume incorporating a pearl-shell mask and feather cape, was worn to mark the death of high-ranking titleholders. Cook voyagers greatly admired them, and offered desirable items in trade, but Tahitians refused. Only on Cook’s third visit to Tahiti, during his Second Voyage, did Tahitians consent to trade mourning dresses. This was because the voyagers had inadvertently brought something more valuable: red feathers that ornamented artefacts collected in Tonga. With time, trading and gift-giving patterns changed. When the ill-fated Bounty arrived in 1788, the powerful titleholder Pomare I (c.1750–1803) chose to entrust Captain William Bligh (1754–1817) with a gift of two mourning dresses for George III. In fact, the experience of interacting with such foreign visitors was not entirely new for many of the Pacific peoples encountered by Cook and other voyagers – long before the arrival of Europeans, trade, warfare and diplomatic alliances took place between islands and between island groups. In western Polynesia, for example, Samoa, Tonga and Fiji maintained active relations. Tongan canoe builders often went to Fiji to work, and pottery, bark cloth and mats were traded widely. In eastern Polynesia, the Tuamotu Islanders traded pearl shells and bundles of white dog hair (used to ornament regalia) to Tahiti and the Society Islands. While the arrival of European visitors may have been remarkable in many respects, it was not long before they were encompassed within long-standing frameworks of human relations. GABLE FRONT. The Maori people of New Zealand already had a remarkable sculptural tradition before the arrival of Europeans. Imposing architectural panels depicted gods, ancestors and mythic creatures, as did smaller figures and objects in wood and stone. During the late eighteenth and early nineteenth centuries, Maori traded for nails, chisels, axes and other tools that transformed their sculptural style. Surface decoration became increasingly elaborate, both on large architectural works and small items like treasure boxes. DANCE APRON, TONGA. During his Second Voyage (1772–5), when Captain James Cook and his crew visited Tahiti for the second time, they found, to their surprise, that the dance aprons they had collected in Tonga were valuable trade items – not in themselves, but for the red feathers they incorporated. In Tahiti, red feathers were a medium for the gods, and ornamented both god figures and the girdles worn by the highestranking titleholders. ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 208 prompted the creation of new images and styles. At the same time, the arrival of outsiders sometimes threatened to upset the local balance of power. Virulent new diseases, land claims and deadly conflicts between Europeans and Islanders also formed part of the contact experience. THE COOK VOYAGES The three Pacific voyages of Captain James Cook (1728–79) between 1769 and 1780 were the most comprehensive undertaken by any European nation at that time. Accompanied by astronomers, naturalists and artists, each voyage had a scientific goal: to trace the transit of Venus across the sun (in an attempt to THE KEY EVENT of this period was the intensive exploration of the Pacific by Europeans in the eighteenth century, including English, French and Spanish voyagers. This meant that Pacific Islanders and Europeans came into more sustained contact than ever before. The Enlightenment scientific spirit of enquiry also meant that such encounters were more thoroughly documented and widely published than previously. The knowledge gained from these voyages contributed not only to European geography and natural history, but also to philosophy – the idea of the Noble Savage, for example, was widely debated via accounts of Pacific peoples – and the arts. For Pacific Islanders, extensive contact with Europeans also changed their worlds in profound ways. New trade goods, including woven cotton cloth, glass beads, nails, chisels and axes, transformed artistic traditions and THE PACIFIC 1500-1800 75˚90˚105˚120˚135˚150˚165˚180˚165˚150˚ 30˚ 15˚ 0˚ 15˚ 5 6 28 7 NEW CALEDONIA September 5-13, 1774 HAWAII Third voyage: January 19-February 2, 1778 January 17-March 14, 1779 MARQUESAS ISLANDS Second voyage: April 8-12, 1774 AUSTRALIA First voyage:April 19-23, 1770 Third voyage: January 24-30, 1777 8VANUATU July 22-August 20, 1774 7 TAHITI AND THE SOCIETY ISLANDS First voyage:April 13-August 13, 1769 Second voyage:August 18-September 18, 1773;April 22-June 4, 1774 Third voyage:August 12-December 9, 1777 6 NEW ZEALAND First voyage: October 3, 1769-March 31, 1770 Second voyage: March 26-June 6, 1773; October 22-November 26, 1773 Third voyage: February 12-25, 1777 1 EASTER ISLAND Second voyage: March 13-16; 1774 5 AUSTRAL ISLANDS First voyage:August 14-15, 1769 4 COOK ISLANDS Third voyage: March 29-April 3, 1777 3 TONGA Second voyage: October 2-8, 1773; June 26-29, 1774 Third Voyage: May 1-29, 1777; June 10-July 17, 1777 2 C O R A L S E A TA S M A N S E A P A C I F I C O C E A N CAROLINE ISLANDS SOLOMON ISLANDS NORFOLK ISLAND FIJI ISLANDS SAMOA ELLICE ISLANDS (TUVALU) CHRISTMAS ISLAND CHATHAM ISLANDS MARIANAS ISLANDS MARSHALL ISLANDS GILBERT ISLANDS PITCAIRN ISLAND TAHITI TONGANEW CALEDONIA NEWHEBRIDES(VANUATU) H AWA I I A N I S L A N D S M E L A N E S I A M I C R O N E S I A A L E U TA I N I S L A N D S TUAMOTU ISLANDS NEW GUINEA JAPAN From South Atlantic Jan 1777 To Mauritius To Kamchatka To Alaska From Bering Strait From Antarctica March 1773 Oct 1773 Nov 1774 Feb 1774 From Cape Horn whale’s teeth, fine mats, ornaments, barkcloth bark cloth, sleeping mats, red feathers fine mats canoes, red feathers, decorated bark cloth, mats, baskets, sandalwood, sails, pottery FIJI TONGA WESTERN SAMOA SAMOA TONGATAPU VAVA`U VITI LEVU VANUA LEVU mats, coconuts, marine resources obsidian pottery, pigs, cultigens PAPUA NEW GUINEA NEW BRITAIN SIASSI ISLANDS AROP I. (LONG I.) TOLOKIWA I. SAKAR I. ARAWE IS. TAMI IS. (CRETIN IS.) UMBOI (ROOKE I.) Trade from Yap to East: cultigens, timber, basalt Trade from East to Yap: rape, mats, pearlshells, woven fibre, cloth MARIANAIS C A R O L I N E I S YAP ULITHI GUAM PULUWAT (ENDERBY I.) YAPESE EMPIRE LAMOTREK PALAU N 0 0 1000 miles 1500 kms 1 The Cook Voyage Collections, 1768-1780 Cook’s voyages: First voyage, 1769-71 Second voyage, 1772-75 Third voyage, 1776-80 Objects collected from the Pacific Islands: bark cloth canoe equipment clothing figural sculpture fishing equipment games jewellery household furnishings mats musical instruments regalia ritual objects tattoo implements tools weapons Number of objects collected: 5 or fewer objects 6-19 objects 20 or more objects Indigenous trading networks 1 - The Yapese Empire: Indigenous Trade 2 - The Vitiaz Strait: Indigenous Trade 3 - Fiji-Tonga-Samoa: Indigenous Trade Inset 1 Inset 2 Inset 3 1 THE COOK VOYAGE COLLECTIONS show a direct correlation between the length of time spent at an island and both the quantity and nature of the objects collected. With long acquaintance, voyagers were more likely to acquire valuable and sacred items in trade or gift exchanges. The exception was Hawaii, where Cook’s arrival coincided with rituals for the god Lono – Hawaiians included Cook in the celebrations, and bestowed precious gifts on him. Even so, for all island groups, sacred or valuable objects are less prevalent in the collections than ordinary items such as tools and fishhooks. periods and peoples, including modern Oceania and ancient India. The Grammar was intended to improve British art by encouraging the imitation of early and distant cultures that were less advanced, and soon William Morris and others had extended this preference for the less sophisticated to Europe’s own local folk and vernacular traditions. By the end of the century, alongside the traditional galleries filled with Classical statues and Old Masters, there were permanent collections of both folk and exotic objects. The products of East European peasants and Japanese artisans were influencing art from Vienna to Paris. IN OTHER REGIONS THIS SITUATION WAS OFTEN REVERSED. Centralized empires such as the Turkish, and, even more decisively, the Japanese, abandoned policies of relative isolation and set out to imitate the industry, science and art of Europe, as did the newly independent Spanish and Portuguese colonies of Latin America. This, though, was only part of the story outside Europe. In many places local art foms took on a new lease of life. New and much more efficient and cheap steel tools, for example, allowed communities that had previously had to rely on stone implements to improve their own traditions by making works that were both larger and more permanent. This was most strikingly the case with the carved houses of the Maori and the totem poles of the peoples of the northwest coast of America, but the same phenomenon was found throughout Africa. New styles were also developed around new imported artefacts. Mass-produced glass beads allowed refined beadwork objects to be made by many of the native populations of both the United States and sub-Saharan Africa. Even more intriguingly, a wide variety of European objects, from nails and locks to buttons and mirrors, were used to enhance the appearance and the magic of many African ritual objects at the very moment that their power was threatened by Christianity. Hence, at the same time that much art was being either destroyed by missionaries or seized as booty – as in the sack of Benin in 1897, which distributed a great collection of Nigerian bronzes around Britain, France and Germany – much more was being created in an invigoration of local traditions. IN EUROPE ITSELF, one of the main factors revitalizing art was a reaction against industrialization, often in the name of science and the pursuit of the natural. Owen Jones saw ‘savage’ cultures as more natural in a positive sense, while William Morris rejected the machine in favour of the hand and eventually the imitation of nature created the organic forms of Art Nouveau. In painting the French Impressionists tried to capture something of external nature, often by analogy with a camera, while the Post-Impressionists were influenced by Chevreul’s theory of colour and Helmholtz’s physiology of perception. Behind these developments, though, the most important advance was the progressive improvement in the understanding of the nervous system and the brain, and it was this that, before 1900, inspired the first truly professional art historians, those in the German-speaking world led by the Swiss Heinrich Wölfflin. With the ability, for the first time, to travel great distances easily by train, his knowledge surpassed that of his predecessors, enabling him to imagine a history of art as a worldwide project founded in a scientific psychology. BIBLIOTHÈQUE SAINTE-GENEVIÈVE in Paris, 1839-51, by Henri Labrouste showing the exposed cast-iron frame. T HE MAKING, THE USE AND THE UNDERSTANDING OF ART were all transformed during the nineteenth century under the impact of industry and science, which for the first time put all parts of the world in touch with each other. Engines, powered first by steam and later by electricity and internal combustion, allowed mechanization, which in turn brought an acceleration of everything from the production and distribution of goods to travel. Objects, from printed textiles to lithographic images, from furniture to the parts of buildings, could be replicated cheaply, making them available to new markets. People could travel farther, faster and in larger numbers, whether locally or globally, whether to commute or to emigrate, whether for leisure or for research. MACHINES MAY HAVE BEEN DEVELOPED FIRST in Britain and continental Europe, but they were used increasingly widely and came to affect lives all over the world. The raw materials required by an industry might be found in one place and turned into goods in another, while those goods would then be sold in many more, in a circulation involving many individuals. All the processes involved became more effective as the knowledge on which they were based became more reliable, and that stimulated the improvement of science. Science as such was a European creation, but worldwide there was a more limited expansion of less formal knowledge, as people everywhere had new experiences, either because they were imposed on them, as by missionaries and colonial administrators, or because they were the result of chance contacts. In the field of the visual arts, everyone had access to a wider range of models. In Europe, museum collections expanded to accommodate the arts of every continent. Worldwide, all sorts of foreign artefacts were displayed on streets, in markets and in public buildings. Thus, everyone had some freedom to choose between their own way of making and using art and those of others who might live thousands of miles away. THE WAY THIS NEW FREEDOM COULD PROVOKE CHANGE is well demonstrated by one particular response to London’s Great Exhibition of 1851. The Crystal Palace, a vast glazed hall put together in a few months out of standard cast-iron components, displayed goods from many countries to over six million visitors with surprising results. Many of the British visitors were disturbed to find that their own products, however clever the process by which they were made, were surpassed in the quality of both craftsman-ship and design by those created by people they thought of as their cultural inferiors. Owen Jones, who had himself based the colours of the Crystal Palace on Islamic tastes, was a leader in this self-criticism, and his Grammar of Ornament (1856) published designs from many ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 1800-1900 2 Education and Institutions artists travelling to Europe arts institutions NORTH AMERICA 1800–1860 213 Numerous artists made careers for themselves away from the metropolitan centres of the east. George Caleb Bingham (1811–79) began a long career as artist and statesman in St Louis, Missouri, in 1819 and others, like Charles Deas (1818–67), followed suit. By the end of the next decade William Sidney Mount (1807–68) was painting local scenes with local pigments in Long Island, New York, while in Gloucester, Massachusetts, Fitz Hugh Lane (1804–65) would soon establish his national reputation. Regional centres often supported artists whose nationality or ethnicity mark the changing demographics of the continent. Painting in the outskirts of Quebec City, the German immigrant Cornelius Krieghoff (1815–72) established himself as the foremost Canadian painter. Cincinnati, Ohio, across the Ohio River from the slave state of Kentucky, supported the only African American associate of the Hudson River School: the American- and Scottish-trained Robert Duncanson (1821–72). Cincinnati also facilitated the photographic activities of free blacks, including James Presley Ball (1825–1904/5) who opened ‘Ball’s Great Daguerrean Gallery of the West’ there in 1849. When Ball opened his gallery, North American photography was only a decade old. Daguerreotypes had been introduced in New York by Samuel F. B. Morse (1791–1872) in 1839, and within a year H. L. Pattinson (1796–1858) was at Niagara Falls in New York State and Samuel Bemis (1789–1881) was in the White Mountains in New Hampshire pioneering landscape photography. By 1844, there was enough interest in photography to convince Mathew Brady (1823–96) to open his Daguerrean Miniature Museum in New York City. With the Gold Rush of the late forties, photographers followed prospectors out west to document the natural wonders of Yosemite and outpost cities such as San Francisco. INDIGENOUS ARTS A wealth of Native American art was being discovered as the artist explorers moved west. Typical of the pioneers, Paul Kane reported his distaste for most of what he saw as he crossed PORTRAIT OF BLACK HAWK, Indian chief, colour lithograph by George Catlin (1796–1872), National Portrait Gallery, Smithsonian Institution, Washington DC. Travelling west from eastern cities in the US and Canada, artists such as Catlin, Bodmer and Kane sought to document the indigenous cultures of North America. Catlin’s Indian Gallery, from which this image of Black Hawk derives, was a collection of paintings and artefacts that toured North America and Europe, producing a record of native peoples that continues to impress viewers with its interest in the humanity as well as the individuality of its subjects. Black Hawk was the leader of the Sauk and Fox tribes during the Black Hawk War of 1832, a struggle against white settlers encroaching on native lands in the states of Illinois and Wisconsin. This image demonstrates Catlin’s sensitivity to detail and personality as well as his interest in circulating his vision of North America’s First Peoples. 35˚ 70˚75˚ 40˚ Washington DC New York New Haven (CT) Hartford Toronto Montreal Philadelphia Boston ATLANTIC OCEAN 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 A B C D N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 - 2 - 3 - 4 - 5 - 6 - 7 - 8 Arts Institutions 1800 Library of Congress 1802 American Academy of Fine Arts 1802 Philadelphia Peale Museum 1825 National Academy of Design 1838 Apollo Gallery 1805 Pennsylvania Academy of Fine Arts 1807 Boston Athenaeum 1826 Open Museum 1832 Trumbull Gallery at Yale 1842 Wadsworth Atheneum 1834 Society of Artists & Amateurs 1841 Upper Canada Art Society 1846 Provincial Agriculture and Arts Association 1860 Arts Association of Montreal A B - C D - Artists Travelling to Europe to Rome: Vanderlyn 1803, Heade 1837, Duncanson 1853 to Paris: Allston 1803, Vanderlyn 1805, Eastman Johnson, Inness 1854, La Farge 1856 to London: Allston, Morse 1811, Cole 1829, Cropsey 1857 to Düsseldorf: Eastman Johnson, Whittredge 1849, Bierstadt 1853, Bingham 1856, Richards 1856 2 EDUCATION AND CULTURE continued to draw North Americans to Europe. Rome, London, Paris and Düsseldorf provided artists with advanced training. As the continent entered the new century, returning artists joined the cultural elite to foster the arts. The Library of Congress, founded in 1800, was the first of many institutions that dotted the eastern seaboard. the Canadian south, but still pocketed small utilitarian items he found artfully crafted. Indigenous art was encountered on the Northwest Coast through the Plains and the Great Lakes region south to the American Southwest. The variety of native arts, all of which would become part of western collections in the second half of the century and would then be circulated in exhibitions in the next, included objects as diverse as Ojibwa scrolls and Tlingit totem poles. ARCHITECTURE AND SCULPTURE Significant architectural developments also followed the westward expansion. Two Englishtrained architects, Benjamin H. Latrobe (1764– 1820) and John Haviland (1792–1852), led the way. Latrobe, made Surveyor of Public Buildings by US President Thomas Jefferson in 1803, laid the groundwork for rebuilding Washington DC after the British razed the city in 1814. As Latrobe and his successors were creating a classical monument to American democracy in the form of the Capitol building, Jefferson himself was perfecting his colonial classicism in his city of knowledge, the University of Virginia, which he founded at Charlottesville in 1825. Haviland’s fusion of knowledge and architecture proved quite different from Jefferson’s. His Eastern State Penitentiary in Philadelphia of 1821–5 was built as a set of radial arms that permitted a centrally posted guard to watch over inmates. While Haviland was experimenting with new techniques of observation and control, more conventional technologies were being developed. In the 1820s the mining of granite at Quincy, Massachusetts, aided by the first railroad in North America, shaped the appearance of contemporary municipal architecture. The most conspicuous destination for Quincy granite was the Quincy Market in Boston by Alexander Parris (1780– 1850). Parris used the stone to dress a skeleton of cast-iron supports, a novelty that soon became essential to construction. In the midcentury John A. Roebling (1806–69) created the great suspension bridges over the Monongahela River in Pittsburgh and the Niagara River in New York, prototypes for his Brooklyn Bridge begun the following decade. The Greek revival of Latrobe and Jefferson was adopted in state capitols from Hartford, Connecticut, to Benecia, California. Plantation estates built near New Orleans, beginning in the 1830s, mark the southern migration of Greek revival architecture. A tour from New York to Cincinnati of Hiram Powers’s Neoclassical sculpture Greek Slave (1843) signalled a similar revivalist taste in sculpture. The picturesque Neo-Gothic that came of age in Pugin’s Houses of Parliament, begun in London in 1836, was also successfully transplanted to the Americas. Taste for the medieval is evident in such monuments as Richard Upjohn’s 1839–46 Trinity Church in New York City and James Renwick’s Smithsonian Institution (1847–55) in Washington DC. From the late 1840s into the 1880s, the great Egyptian obelisk of Robert Mills’s Washington Monument rose as a testament to the eclecticism and energy of the century. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 212 BEFORE THE NINETEENTH century was fifteen years old, the new nation of the USA had, in the War of 1812, repelled the British from the East Coast for a second time and, in the expedition (1803–6) of Meriwether Lewis and William Clark, blazed trails to the shores of the Pacific. In Canada, whose explorers had reached the Pacific in the 1790s, British-trained topographical engineers were also surveying and recording the landscape. Painters and photographers – from John Vanderlyn (1775–1852) at Niagara Falls in 1801 to Paul Kane (1810–71) in Vancouver in 1848, Albert Bierstadt in the American West in 1858, and Frederic Church in Labrador in 1859 – set forth across the continent capturing visions of the uncharted terrain and its inhabitants. PIONEERING ARTS Regions of the continent attracted artists of different temperament. Karl Bodmer (1809–93), George Catlin, and Paul Kane set out west with an eye toward documenting the native peoples as much as the landscape. Eastern artists such as Thomas Cole (1801–48), Asher B. Durand (1796–1886) and Frederic Church travelled up the Hudson River from New York City in search of sublime vistas empty of inhabitants. NORTH AMERICA 1800-1860 NIAGARA FALLS, 1867, by Frederic Edwin Church (1826–1900), oil on canvas. By the 1860s, Niagara Falls had provided generations of American artists with the most dramatic scene of the national landscape. As Roebling was spanning the river with suspension bridges of stone and steel, Church gave this symbol of the force of the continent a palpably physical and comfortingly visible form. 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 120˚ 110˚ 100˚ 90˚ 80˚ 70˚ 60˚ 50˚130˚ 1 12 15 13 16 17 3 6 8 10 5 7 9 14 2 11 4 Montreal Fort William Grand Rapids Quebec City St Louis St Joseph Independence Halifax Gloucester Albany Boston New York Baltimore Raleigh Columbus Pittsburgh Philadelphia Charlottesville New Orleans St Francisville White Castle Benecia Frankfort Washington DC Indianapolis Troy Sault Ste Marie Red River Settlement Toronto Buffalo Fort Union Fort Nez Percé Fort Carlton Fort Edmonton Fort Colville Wyoming Fort McKenzie Portland Fort Clatsop Sacramento San Francisco Pensacola Nashville Hartford Cincinnati Fort Vancouver Vancouver Mississippi M issouri Wisconsin Ottawa Ohio Hudson StLawr ence Saskatchewan R ioGrande Colorado Sn ake Columbia Arkans as Platte L.Winnipeg L. Superior L. Ontario L. Huro n L.Michigan L. Erie A T L A N T I C O C E A N H U D S O N B A Y P A C I F I C O C E A N G U L F O F M E X I C O Adirondack Mts White Mts R O C K Y M OUNTAINS P L A I N S GREAT LAKES N O R T H E R N P E O P L E S N E W F O U N D LA N D LABRADOR NOVA SCOTIA LONG ISLAND NORTHWEST COAST SOUTHWEST NORTHEASTERN U N I T E D S TAT E S O F A M E R I C A C A N A D A M E X I C O Niagara Falls Vanderlyn Bingham Deas Mount Lane Krieghoff Krieghoff Duncanson 1839 Morse exhibits first Daguerreotype 1825-26 Quincy Market, Parris 1840 Pattinson Daguerreotypes 1849 Ball’s Great Daguerrean Gallery of the West Yosemite 1859 Weed stereographs totem poles, wood carving, painting Winnebago deerskin garments, beadwork, shields Algonquin painted birchbark, Ojibwa scrolls, Huron weavings Yupik wood and ivory masks, Tanaina and Innu painted and beaded skins, carvings Navajo rugs, pueblo pottery and baskets Micmac quill work Crawford Notch 1840 Bemis Daguerreotype 1849 photographers accompany the Gold Rush 1844 Brady opens Daguerrean Miniature Museum N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 Art and Exploration topographers’ destination artistic centre artistic travels: Catlin, 1830-66 Bodmer, 1833-34 Kane, 1845-48 Bierstadt, 1859 Hudson River School of Painters (Cole, Durand, Church) Oregon Trail route of the Pony Express travels of Lewis and Clark centres of photographic development indigenous arts Architecture 1805-20 Catholic Cathedral, Latrobe 1814 burned by British 1815-17 US Capitol, Latrobe, finished 1829 by Bulfinch, Neoclassical 1848-85 Washington Monument, Mills 1847-55 The Smithsonian, Renwick, Neo-Gothic 1822-26 University of Virginia, Jefferson 1821-25 Eastern State Penitentiary, Haviland 1830 Greenwood, Neoclassical 1836 Oak Alley, Neoclassical 1 - 2 - - - - 3 - 4 - 5 - 6 - 7 - 1857 Belle-Grove, Neoclassical 8 - 1845-51 State capitol, Strickland, Neoclassical 9 - 1852-53 State capitol, Houghton, Rider, Neoclassical 10 - 1827-31 State capitol, Town & Davis, Neoclassical 11 - 1831-35 State capitol, Town & Davis, Neoclassical 12 - 1833-42 State capitol, Town & Davis, Neoclassical 13 - 1836-61 State capitol, Cole, Rogers, Neoclassical 14 - 1831-35 State capitol, Shyrock, Neoclassical 15 - 1839-46 Trinity Church, Upjohn, Neo-Gothic 16 - 1846 Suspension Bridge, Roebling 17 - 1855 Suspension Bridge, Roebling 1 ANGLO-AMERICAN ARTISTS found inspiration in the landscape and culture of North America as they spread the reach of European culture west to the Pacific. The routes and communities of artistexplorers are charted against the activities of indigenous cultures. Architecture of the period was marked by the spread of Neoclassicism, evident in the capitol buildings from Washington DC to California or plantations in Louisiana. The historicism of the period found its complement in new modern markets, prisons and bridges. Movement of Indigenous Artefacts state territories c.1860 indigenous tribal regions pueblo ancestral puebloan sites examples of massacres resulting in movement of artefacts museums of indigenous material, with date of foundation world fairs acquiring and displaying indigenous material movement of artefacts KOSO 2 215 NORTH AMERICA 1860–1900 80˚85˚90˚95˚100˚ 30˚ 25˚ 35˚ 40˚ 45˚ 105˚110˚115˚ KWAKWAKA‘WAKW NUU-CHAH-NULTH KAWAIISU KOSO POMO HUPA YUROK KAROK MAIDU WASHOE MONACHE HEILTSUK NUXALK YOKUT TUBATULABAL MIMBRES CANYON DE CHELLY MESA VERDE ACOMA TAOS SANTA CLARAZUNI HOPI Seattle Portland Salt Lake City Denver Albuquerque San Antonio New Orleans Memphis Atlanta Charleston Jacksonville St Louis Chicago Boston CambridgeBuffalo Omaha New York Philadelphia Washington Kansas City San Francisco Los Angeles L. Superior L. Erie L.Michigan Great Salt Lake Mississippi RioGrand e Colorado Missouri Ohio StLawre nce Tennessee Sn ak e L. Ontario L. Huron A T L A N T I C O C E A N PA C I F I C O C E A N G U L F O F M E X I C O R O C K Y M O UNTAINS APPALACH I A N M TS C A N A D A M E X I C O Wounded Knee 1890 Sand Creek 1864 Brooklyn Museum 1895 American Museum of Natural History 1869 Peabody Museum of Archaeology and Ethnology 1866 Columbian Museum Field Museum from 1905 Thomas Burke Memorial, Washington State Museum 1885 US National Museum (Smithsonian Institution 1858) 1876 The Centennial Exposition 1901 The Pan American Exposition1893 The World Columbian International Exposition 1904 St Louis Universal Exposition 1898 TransMississippi and International Exposition 1908 The Alaska- Yukon-Pacific Exposition basketry pottery, Kachina dolls Carl Hagenbeck organizes a series of tours to Europe (1876-86) with Indigenous people and artefacts; hires Johan Adrean Jacobsen to lead them m asks, shaman’s items, rattles, Chilkat blankets masks, totem poles, house posts, feast dishes, Bent Boxes, rattles, raven rattles N 0 0 500 miles 700 kms East Coast aesthetic most eloquently expressed by Henry James – which perceived Europe as having everything to offer and the USA nothing. Whistler, Sargent and many others joined James in exile in Europe. NATIVE AMERICAN ART After Native American artefacts were first shown in quantity to a mass audience at the Centennial Exhibition in Philadelphia in 1876, major collecting institutions competed to acquire hundreds of thousands of objects. From the Northwest came graves, houses, totem poles, masks, clothing, boxes, spoons, weapons, canoes – no item too small or too large. From the pueblos of the Southwest came staggering volumes of pottery and kachina dolls (tihus). Thousands of baskets were collected in California. From the battleand killing-fields of the Plains came war shirts, feather bonnets, drawings in ledger books. Essentially, the entire material culture of Native America was removed to storerooms and glass-fronted cabinets in the metropolis. Boston Cambridge Worcester New York Philadelphia Pittsburgh Chicago Washington Cincinnati A T L A N T I C O C E A N USA UNITED KINGDOM FRANCE GERMANY NETHERLANDS ITALY Stewart Gardner Johnson Widener Museum of Fine Arts 1870 Fogg Art Museum, Harvard 1895 Philadelphia Museum of Art 1876 Carnegie Institute 1895 Worcester Art Museum 1895 Art Institute 1879 National Sculpture Society 1893 Cincinnati Art Museum 1881 Corcoran Gallery 1870 Barbizon School (Altman, Frick) contemporary paintings (Avery)Vermeer (Metropolitan Museum) Gutenberg Bible and Mainz Psalter (Morgan) Botticelli, Titian, Raphael, Simone Martini, Vermeer (Stewart Gardner) New York Metropolitan Museum 1870 Brooklyn Museum 1895 Morgan Altman Frick Avery Rockefeller Marquand Vanderbilt 3 European Art in the United States museums with important collections of European art, with date of foundation important private collections of European art typical art exports to US N 0 0 800 miles 1200 kms 3 THE VAST EXPLOSION in wealth and prosperity following the Civil War led to an unprecedented acquisition of European art. Bankers and industrialists laid the foundations of an impressive array of museums and art galleries. Accompanying the transfer of European art to North America was a continued American interest in exploring Europe and beyond. 160° 150° 140° 130° 60° 65° TLINGIT HAIDA YUPIK YUPIK TSIMSHIAN Yukon Kuskokw im PA C I F I C O C E A N B E R I N G S E A B R I S T O L S E A C A N A D A A L A S K A masks, shaman’s items, dance rattles artefacts moved east N 0 0 500 miles 700 kms 2 THE ACQUISITION of Native American art involved the movement of both objects and ideas – the whole aesthetic and intellectual capital of the Native American peoples. In scale, it was immense and unique. Metropolitan museums competed for booty – bought, stolen, given, traded, pillaged. Epithets such as ‘swept clean’ and ‘dredged’ were commonly in use even at the time. THOMAS MORAN: Grand Canyon of the Yellowstone (detail), 1872, oil on canvas. Moran used photographs as well as his own sketches for the final composition, which freely interprets the scene in the interests of drama. His participation in the 1871 expedition was partly funded by the Northern Pacific Railroad, eager to publicize Western scenery. THE PEACE THAT FOLLOWED the Civil War (1861–5) enabled North America to concentrate on the creation and disposition of colossal wealth. New technologies altered the physical and aesthetic relationships between human beings and landscape. Photographers had enlisted the new art of photography to comprehend the catastrophe of the Civil War. Mathew Brady and Alexander Gardner published photo albums that transformed the image of war from one glorifying patriotic battle to one concerned with recording the sites and mourning the dead. As the nation healed, its artists looked beyond the technology of the camera to the needs of the growing cities. America’s new art form was the massive rectilinear structure of the city – the steel grids of skyscrapers pushing ever higher, the spreading grid of streets and the straight-drawn lines of property claims and of new city layouts. The construction of skyscrapers was finally perfected in the late 1880s, their form conditioned not only by steelbeam technology, but by the prior inventions of the lift (1852), the telephone (1872) and the light bulb (1879). Technology, cartography and perspective possessed the land. Photography documented the untamed and, in so doing, tamed it. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 214 Older art forms survived and a style of painting was developed that was vividly perspectival, evoking and measuring immense distances. Grand Canyon of the Yellowstone by Thomas Moran (1837–1926) brought the dramatic scenery of the West to Washington in full colour. Bought by Congress, it played a key role in starting the National Parks programme. Moran went out West as a guest of a national scientific and survey expedition led by Dr Ferdinand Vandiveer Hayden, but he used the Northern Pacific railroad to get there. The railroad financiers had their eye on the scenery and on bringing tourists out West to look at geysers and gorges. In the USA and Canada artists provided the imagery for the public perception of the railroads. In 1882 just a year after construction on the Canadian Pacific Railway began, Lucius O’Brien instructed artists to travel from the Gaspé Peninsula to the Rocky Mountains for Picturesque Canada (ed. Principal Grant, Queens University, Kingston Ont.). Upon completion of the railway in 1885, Sir William Van Horne of Montreal commissioned artists to travel West and send back images of the Canadian Rockies for eastern galleries. THE ACQUISITION OF EUROPEAN ART The same economic power that generated all this invention and industry also created enormous surpluses of private wealth. To fill these empty rooms, to flesh out this unprecedented prosperity, came the biggest transfer of cultural property in history: European artworks – Barbizon landscapes, Old Masters, altarpieces and allegories, marbles, ANONYMOUS TLINGIT CARVER: mask of a land-otter man, to be worn by a shaman. Made from wood, copper, bearskin, hide, nails and pigment, c.1850, it was collected before 1875 by James G. Swan in Alaska. The Tlingit considered the land otter a go-between for shamans attempting to control potent spirits. manuscripts, porcelain and genre paintings. The huge collections of bankers, industrialists and their heirs laid the foundations of the great civic, state and national US museums and art galleries. But America was not just filling its empty rooms at random. In 1888 Isabella Stewart Gardner, advised by Bernard Berenson, bought a Madonna by Zurbarán and during the following years bought works by Titian and Raphael, medieval panelling and tapestries, carved cabinets, ancient stonework and coloured glass, turning her house into an inward-looking dream of a Venetian palace. This was the flowering of that North American Seattle Vancouver Calgary Portland Butte Bismarck Winnipeg Virginia City Duluth Cheyenne Milwaukee Cleveland Boston New York Hartford (CT) Philadelphia Washington DC Charleston Appomattox Fredericksburg Manassas Jacksonville Savannah Atlanta Shiloh Cairo Memphis TallahasseeMobile Richmond Baltimore Gettysburg Birmingham Jackson Cincinnati Vicksburg St Louis Sedalia Kansas City St Joseph Omaha Des Moines Topeka Harrisburg Pittsburgh Buffalo Niagara Falls Quebec City Ottowa Port Hope Sault Ste Marie Montreal New Orleans San Francisco Detroit Chicago Dodge City Denver Reno Sacramento Yuma Tucson El Paso Albuquerque Las Vegas San Antonio Laredo Dallas Los Angeles Salt Lake City Promontory Point Pueblo Minneapolis Spokane Lake Superior L. Erie L.Michigan L. Ontario Lake Huron Georgian Bay Lake Nipissing Lake Nipigon Lake Winnipeg Cross Lake Lake Manitoba Lake of the Woods A T L A N T I C O C E A N PACIFIC OCEAN GULF OF MEXICO 1883 1878 1873 1864 1859 1865 1865-69 1863-69 1863 1877 1872 railways meet 1869 Northern Pacific Southern Pacific Texas & Pacific So uthernPacific Central Pacific Union Pacific Kansas PacificAtlantic & Pacific Great Northern Canadian Pacific Railway (1885) Atchison, Topeka & Santa Fe Missouri, Kansas & Texas Crater Lake NP 1902 Mount Rainier NP 1899 Yellowstone NP 1872 Mesa Verde NP 1906 Rocky Mountain NP 1915 General Grant NP 1890 Yosemite NP 1890 Sequoia NP 1890 Glacier NP 1910 Grand Canyon NM c.1915 Lassen Volcanic NM c.1915 Petrified Forest NM 1915 C A N A D A M E X I C O To England: Moran 1862; Homer 1881 To France: Homer 1866; Eakins 1866-9 (on to Madrid 1870); Weir 1873; Tanner 1891 To England: Watson 1886, To France: Brymner 1878; Wilson Morrice 1889; Cullen 1888,1900, To Europe: Hammond 1885 To Europe: Bierdstadt (1867-69; Ryder 1877 To Cuba: Remington 1898 To Japan: LaFarge 1886 0 0 400 miles 600 kms N Artists following the CPR in the 1880s: T. Mower Martin, John C. Forbes, Lucius O’Brien, John Hammond approximate routes travelled by artists: Charles Wimar, 1858 Charles Wimar, 1858-60 Albert Bierstadt, 1859 Albert Bierstadt, 1863 Thomas Moran, 1871 Thomas Moran, 1873 Thomas Moran, 1874 Charles Russell, 1880 Frederic Remington, 1881 Horatio Walker, 1880 Homer Watson, 1876 US artists travelling abroad Canadian artists travelling abroad 1 Taming the Wilderness state and provincial boundaries c.1914 railway date of construction of railway National Park National Monument city with 250,000 - 1 million inhabitants c.1900 city with over 1 million inhabitants c.1900 city with important early skyscrapers locations represented in the Picturesque Canada volume Civil War sites, photographically documented 1865 1 AS THE CITIES OF AMERICA GREW, the spectacular landscapes of the West became better-known. Scientists and surveyors, railroad speculators, painters and inventors like George Eastman (1854–1932), whose Kodak camera was brought out in 1888, made the landscape a commodity – bringing home images, stimulating mass travel and drawing the boundaries of parks and reserves. NORTH AMERICA 1860-1900 CENTRAL AMERICA AND THE CARIBBEAN 1800–1900 217 sponsoring institution. It sought to further the aim of democratic debate and promote thinking that led to calls for political as well as intellectual independence. After independence new academies were established, such as that at Puebla, with the express purpose of developing a national intellectual and artistic life that was freed from the constraints of the old colonial powers. NEOCLASSICISM The Academies were originally based on the concept that art should be learned by study of the work of the Old Masters and that true aesthetics lay in historical precedent. This Classical tradition was enthusiastically espoused by some artists, such as Santiago Rebull (1829–1902), who was directly influenced by Jacques-Louis David. Others, although working in a distinctly European aesthetic tradition, began to turn to local history for their inspiration. Francisco Eduardo Tresguerras (1759–1833), an architect, painter and engraver, attempted to use Classical style in his work but was nevertheless clearly influenced by regional Baroque. Similarly, José María Velasco (1840–1912) considered himself to be a ‘scientific’ painter who drew his understanding from many different academic disciplines, and gained a rich knowledge of zoology, botany, physics, mathematics, geometry, geography and architecture, in addition to Classical aesthetics. He is best-known as an academic landscape painter whose work was exhibited in international fairs in Paris, Philadelphia and Chicago, yet his inspiration was drawn almost entirely from the Valley of Mexico and its surroundings. He was a major influence on Diego Rivera in the twentieth century. JOSÉ MARÍA VELASCO, Valley of Mexico. José María Velasco (1840–1912) was the most famous of the Mexican academic painters and achieved international recognition. He received many awards and honours, including Chevalier de la Légion d’Honneur, Paris, the Franz Joseph Cross, Austria, and First prize at the Chicago World Fair. He was Professor of Perspective (1868) and Professor of Landscape (1875) at the San Carlos Academy. His subject-matter was nevertheless Mexican, particularly the volcanoes and landscapes of the Valley of Mexico. PRIMITIVISM The search for historical truth also led to reaction against the academies and the development of popular art. Many of these artists had formal training, and the Primitivist movement was an attempt to express a sense of regional pride and local values. One of the most important artists of this movement was Hermenegildo Bustos (1832–1907) who, in addition to painting portraits, also produced religious murals and sculptures, and made festival masks for his local parish of Purísima del Rincón in Guanajuato. Another significant artist was José María Estrada. Estrada had trained at the Puebla Academy and became director of the Academy of Fine Arts in the state of Jalisco, but throughout his working life he never left his native state. His own output consisted entirely of portraits of local people and of regional history and myths. The search for a popular art culminated in the work of José Guadalupe Posada (1851–1913), who came from a peasant family in Aguascalientes and died in poverty in Mexico City. He thought of himself as a craftsman and a voice for the people. Throughout his life he produced printed work in the form of broadsheets with illustrated, and often satirical, texts that were intended to be read to a largely illiterate peasant population, and which became the inspiration for much of the revolutionary art that would follow in the twentieth century. CARIBBEAN ART The history of Caribbean art is different from that of Mexico and Central America. Following European colonization, the indigenous populations were annihilated at an early date and replaced by slave labour from Africa. Used by Spain as a stepping-stone for its conquests in the sixteenth century, the area had become politically and culturally divided by the seventeenth century and Spanish dominance was challenged by the British, French and Dutch. Slavery was abolished during the course of the nineteenth century, and wage workers from India and China were brought in to the region. This political and cultural mix resulted in unique art forms and styles. These often incorporated ideas derived from the original homelands of the new arrivals, such as Vodoun in Haiti and Santos in Puerto Rico. While popular sacred art was of significant importance in the region during the nineteenth century, much of our knowledge of this derives from a later period. Expressions of local mixed customs, especially of Carnival, were produced by artists such as the Jamaican painter Isaac Belisario (1795–1849), who made a series of lithographs which depicted the Christmas Masquerade. There were influences from some major French painters. Paul Gauguin (1848–1903) visited here in 1887, and Camille Pissarro (1830–1903) was the son of French merchants from the island of St Thomas. A French School was established in Havana, Cuba, in 1817 at the San Alejandro Academy under the direction of Jean-Baptiste Vernay (1786–1833), a French painter and student of David. Francisco Oller (1833–1917), a Puerto Rican painter, was a friend of both Pissarro and Cézanne, but nevertheless failed in his successive attempts to establish a French academy at San Juan. As in Mexico and Central America, Caribbean artists were often actively involved in the independence wars and the struggles between liberal and conservative factions. Armando Menocal (1863–1942) and Eduardo Morales (1868–1938), for instance, were both active combatants during Cuba’s wars for independence and both artists painted scenes of the conflicts. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 216 IN 1800 THE SEEDS OF NATIONALISM established during the preceding Baroque period rested uneasily with the ideals of academic Classicism being taught by professors who came to the Americas from Spain. While much of the argument was political and questioned the continuing role of a European-dominated government and aristocracy, the debate was fuelled and even encouraged by divisions in the arts between liberal and conservative practitioners. In 1810 these conflicts led to armed struggle between the Nationalists and Spain, resulting in the declaration of independence by Mexico in 1821, followed shortly after by Guatemala, Honduras, Nicaragua and Costa Rica. Despite its avowed aims, independence strengthened the Creole (Spanish American) power base and created further instability: Mexico, for instance, had 30 different presidents during its first 50 years of independence. THE ROLE OF THE ACADEMY In attempts to reassert Spanish intellectual dominance, the Royal Academy of San Carlos, Mexico City, was founded on 4 November 1785 under the sponsorship of the San Fernando Academy in Madrid. Its first director, Manuel Tolsá (1757–1816), and all its professors had been trained in Madrid. The Royal Academy, however, immediately broke links with its CENTRAL AMERICA AND THE CARIBBEAN 1800-1900 60˚ 10˚ 20˚ 70˚80˚90˚ Po Pr Pr Mexico City Guadalajara Aguascalientes Guanajuato Zacatecas San Luis Potosí Nuevo Laredo Purísima del Rincón Celaya Temascalcingo Santa Ana Puebla El Carmen Santiago de Cuba San Juan Havana C A R I B B E A N S E A P A C I F I C O C E A N A T L A N T I C O C E A N G U L F O F M E X I C O GULFOFCALIFORNIA YUCATÁN SIERR A M A D R E SIER RA M ADRE DEL SUR WESTERNSIERRAMADRE EASTERN SIERRA MADRE BAHAMAS JAMAICA HAITI 1804 VIRGIN IS GUADELOUPE ANTIGUA ANGUILLA DOMINICA MARTINIQUE ST LUCIA ST VINCENTNETHERLANDS ANTILLES GRENADA BARBADOS TRINIDAD DOMINICAN REPUBLIC 1844 PUERTO RICO CUBA N O R T H A M E R I C A M E X I C O 1821 BRITISH HONDURAS GUATEMALA 1838 HONDURAS 1838 NICARAGUA 1838 COSTA RICA 1838 PANAMA 1903 EL SALVADOR 1838 S O U T H A M E R I C A Martínez (1871-1946) Ruelas (1870-1907) Posada (1851-1913) Estrada (1800-60) Bustos (1832-1907) Belisario (1795-1849) des Roches (1802-80) Cazabon (1813-88) Tresguerras (1759-1833) Catherwood (English) in Yucatán 1839-40, 1841-42 Charnay (French) in Yucatán and Mexico 1857-59, 1880 Linati (Italian) in Mexico 1825-26 Egerton (English) in Mexico 1830-31, 1840-42 Rugendas (German) in Mexico 1831-45 Pingret (French) in Mexico 1850-55 Gutiérrez (1848-1903) Bustos (1832-1907) Arrieta (1802-74) N 0 0 300 miles 400 kms 1838 Spanish African Amerindian East Indian religious groups: Roman Catholic Protestant Anglican Santera Voodoo Hindu 1 Mexico and Central America, 1800-1900 Spanish British French Danish Dutch date of independence Mexican artists of the Independence period ethnic groups: Maya European dominant art movements: Real Academia de San Carlos (founded 1785) Neoclassicism Impressionism Primitivism Populism French School Academia de Puebla Caribbean painters European traveller-artists I Pr Po MEXICO Mexico City - Tolsá (1750-1810) Clavé (1810-80) Ixtolinque (1774-1834) Rebull (1829-1902) Noreña (1843-94) Izaguirre (1867-1941) Clausell (1866-1935) Puebla - Cordero (1822-84), Jara (1867-1939) Arrieta (1802-74), Clausell (1866-1935) Bustos (1832-1907), Estrada (1800-60) Celaya - Tresguerras (1759-1833) Temascalcingo - Posada (1851-1913) Velasco (1840-1912) I Po CUBA de Lanadaluze (1827-89) Collazo (1850-96) Morell (1864-89) Escobar (1762-1834) Collazo (1850-96) Menocal (1863-1942) Morell (1864-89) Tejada (1867-1943) Morales (1868-1938) PUERTO RICO Oller y Cestero (1833-1917) Campeche (1751-1809) Oller y Cestero (1833-1917) 1 THE MOVE TOWARDS POLITICAL INDEPENDENCE led to divisions and factionalism, and this was reflected in the diversity of art movements from this period. The main division was between the Neoclassicism of scholars based in the Academies and the populist movements, although there were also divisions between ethnic groups on the Caribbean islands. Influences from non-Spanish Europe, especially France, were apparent in the Caribbean and, to a lesser extent, on the mainland. HERMENEGILDO BUSTOS, Still Life with Fruit and Toad. Unlike many of the ‘primitive’ artists of the period, Hermenegildo Bustos (1832–1907) was too poor to afford formal academic training and supported himself and his family by making and selling ice-cream. Bustos painted for the people of his community, making portraits of local dignitaries, retablos for the church, and festival masks, and his work was only ‘discovered’ in 1942 by the art historian Walter Pach. The fruits shown in this painting are those Bustos used to flavour his ice-creams. 40˚ 30˚50˚60˚70˚80˚90˚100˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ Paraná Santa Fe Pôrto Alegre Rio de Janeiro São Salvador (Bahia) Asunción Bogotá Medellín Maracaibo Caracas (1877)Cartagena Belém (Pará) Recife (Pernambuco) Valdivia Rosario Punta Arenas Trujillo Callao Arequipa Iquique Lima Cuzco Potosí La Paz Santiago Valparaíso Quito (1860) Montevideo (1905) Buenos Aires (1878) Córdoba (1896) Villavicencio Meireles de Lima, Américo, Almeida Junior, Bernardelli Blanes, Pallejá, Sáez, Viale García, Ríos Boneo, Agrelo, Lastra, Mendilaharzu, Della Valle, Cafferata, Sivori, Schiaffino Plaza, Lira, Puelma, Arias, Subercaseaux Laso, Montero Urdaneta, Garay, Santa María Toro, Rojas, Michelena, Tovar y Tovar Salas, Cadena Amazon A T L A N T I C O C E A N P A C I F I C O C E A N C A R I B B E A N S E A A N D E S Patagonia FALKLAND IS (to Britain 1833) COLOMBIA VENEZUELA GUIANA BR. FR. ECUADOR BOLIVIA B R A Z I L ARGENTINA URUGUAY PARAGUAY CHILE PERU DUTCH N 0 0 750 miles 1000 kms Art, National Image and Modernization, 1850-1900 borders, c.1900 areas of international conflict migratory currents from Europe artists’ travels to European centres academies/schools of fine art areas of interest and activity of painter Juan Manuel Blanes 2 SOUTH AMERICA 1800–1900 219 More regions became integrated in modern economic systems – cattle-raising, agriculture, mining and so on, producing raw materials and food for the international market. At the same time, hundreds of thousands of impoverished European immigrants arrived in South America. In large cities like Buenos Aires urban life was so dramatically transformed by immigration that it seemed to threaten the budding sense of national identity. Young painters and sculptors began to be sent by their national governments to European academies and ateliers in order to study there and return as ‘national artists’. Museums, academies of fine arts and schools of arts and crafts were opened in the main together with the popularization of portraits of heroes of independence, like the Libertadores Simón Bolívar and José de San Martín, whose campaigns acquired a continental dimension. Painters such as the Peruvian mulatto José Gil de Castro (1785–c.1841) accompanied the revolutionary campaigns, and with the images they created they took an active part in the process of emancipation. THE SOUTH AMERICAN LANDSCAPE The end of the colonial era signified that other imperial interests could explore, map and evaluate the commercial and economic potential of South America. The growing attention of modern European industrialized countries (England, Germany, France) on South America was manifested in the European expeditions to the continent, which brought together a confluence of artistic, scientific, geographic, economic and political aims. Among the most significant expeditions were those of Alexander von Humboldt between 1799 and 1803 and Charles Darwin’s voyage on the Beagle (1831–6). During the first half of the nineteenth century, several different European cultural traditions became established in Latin America: the Neoclassical rhetoric of revolutionary France; the Romantic approach to Nature; and the topographical and naturalistic interest in the detailed description of geography, fauna and vegetation. Large areas of the continent, such as the extensive forests and deserts, continued to be almost inaccessible for Europeans. Areas such as Patagonia, Amazonia and Chaco were already occupied by native peoples who were resistant to colonization and European occupation. They continued with their traditional production of artefacts, which they sometimes traded with Europeans in order to survive in hostile new locations. European artists such as Johann Moritz Rugendas (who travelled in South America between 1822 and 1846) produced the first modern landscapes, which imposed their European conventions and representational schemes on South American nature. They looked for the picturesque and the sublime in South American rainforests, volcanoes, mountains and valleys, and also in the different regional lifestyles and costumes of the inhabitants. Most of these images were transformed into engravings and widely published in England, France, Germany, and so on. These albums of ‘picturesque views’ also circulated in South America. From about 1850, photographic albums superseded artistic engravings. The construction of a landscape (giving shape to the relationship between human societies and nature) was not easy in regions too far from the European experience and patterns of perception. The vast deserts of the south, the pampas and Patagonia were regarded by many Europeans (as the English traveller John Miers wrote in 1826) as a place where nature was ‘empty of landscape’. EMERGING NATIONAL IDENTITIES During the second half of the nineteenth century the end of the civil wars paved the way for the consolidation of South American nations. Increasingly, natural resources were exploited which could be traded with the nations of Europe. Towards the end of the nineteenth century most South American countries were ruled by authoritarian and conservative governments, which were at the same time liberal and progressive in their economic policies. THE URUGUAYAN PAINTER Juan Manuel Blanes (1830–1901) studied in Florence. Identified with the ideals of the modern urban bourgeoisie, his intention was to become a ‘South American painter’, creating a national imagery for the countries in the south of the continent. Un episodio de la fiebre amarilla en Buenos Aires (‘An episode of yellow fever in Buenos Aires’) exhibited in 1871, consecrated him as a great painter in Argentina, Uruguay and Chile. cities, and several European artists established in South America also acted as professors in these new institutions. During the latter decades of the nineteenth century, national historical narratives and iconographies were created and consolidated, and at the same time, a number of important monuments were built in the cities. Latin American countries occupied a peculiar place in the global economic system: they were neither developed and industrialized countries, nor colonies. As young, independent nations they tried to create positions for themselves and national identities on the periphery. One way of fulfilling this aim was to participate in International Exhibitions and World Fairs – not only as producers of raw materials and food but as civilized nations with a Europeanlike fine-arts culture. 2 AS THEIR NEW NATIONAL IDENTITIES became established, South American countries integrated into the international economic system as producers of raw materials. There was a vast influx of European immigrants and cities grew and modernized very rapidly. An emerging urban bourgeoisie emulated European culture and fashion. It was a period of intense interaction with European artistic centres. South American artists travelled to Rome, Florence and Paris to study in academies and ateliers, while new art schools were opened in the capital cities. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 218 TO CONSIDER SOUTH AMERICA as a unity is always problematic. Even during colonial times when, with the exception of Brazil, the continent was a Spanish domain the differences between diverse regions were huge. These differences were caused by geographical diversity, the existence or lack of gold and silver, and the particularities of the conflicts between the European conquerors and many different cultures. From around 1810, when the wars of independence began to succeed, regional differences persisted, although they were activated by new reasons and circumstances. During the first half of the nineteenth century South America suffered a long period of violence and warfare, initially directed against the former colonial powers. Civil confrontations and divisions between the emerging nations led to further violent conflicts, creating new and shifting boundaries. ART AND CONFLICT Revolutions, war and civil conflicts did not create a propitious atmosphere for the flourishing of fine arts. Nevertheless, the field of visual representations played a crucial role in the emergence of the new nations. In the first decades of independent life the images and symbols of colonial power were dramatically transformed and substituted: national anthems, flags, images and allegories of the new nations were created, SOUTH AMERICA 1800-1900 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ 70˚ 60˚ 50˚ 40˚80˚90˚100˚ 10˚Cartagena Cajamarca Trujillo Guayaquil Junín Lima Callao Copiapó La Serena Concepción Valdivia Valparaíso Santiago Pisco Arequipa Arica Iquique Quito Bogotá Ollantaytambo Cuzco La Paz Potosí Salta Córdoba Santa Fe Asunción Montevideo Buenos Aires Rio de Janeiro Recife (Pernambuco) São Salvador (Bahía) Belém (Pará) Georgetown (Stabroek) Paramaribo Cayenne El Carmen Caracas Angostura (Ciudad Bolívar) São Luís (Maranhão) Mendoza Pichincha Boyacá Amazon Juruá Marañón Uruguay Rio N egro Pa raná C ol orado Orinoco A T L A N T I C O C E A N P A C I F I C O C E A N C A R I B B E A N S E A ATACAMA DESERT A N D E S ANDES GRANCHACO GUIANA HIGHLANDS BRAZILIANH IGHLANDS Patagonia Cape Horn FALKLAND ISLANDS TRINIDAD GALAPAGOS ISLANDS B R A Z I L G U I A N A CAPTAINCY- GENERAL OF VENEZUELA VICE-ROYALTY OF NEW GRANADA VICE-ROYALTY OF PERU VICE-ROYALTY OF RÍO DE LA PLATA CAPTAINCY- GENERAL OF CHILE (1826) (1849) (1816) (1846) to Tahiti from Cape Verde Islands to Brazil 1822-25 return to Europe 1846 N 0 0 750 miles 1000 kms Art, Revolution and Exploration, 1800-50 colonial borders pre-1810 Portuguese territory Spanish territory Dutch territory British territory French territory regions unexplored by Europeans Alexander von Humboldt’s voyages, 1799-1803 Charles Darwin’s voyages on the Beagle, 1831-36 military campaign, 1810-13 campaigns of José de San Martín, 1817-22 campaigns of Simón Bolívar, 1821-24 voyages of painter Johann Moritz Rugendas, 1822-46 places of interest and activity of painter José Gil de Castro academies/schools of fine art 1 1 BETWEEN 1800 AND 1850 VISUAL ARTS IN SOUTH AMERICA were deeply transformed by the process of emancipation from colonial domination. Revolutionary campaigns gave place to the emergence of new nations, accompanied by iconographic and symbolic paraphernalia which were created to replace the images and emblems of the colonial era. On the other hand, the growing interest of other European countries (England, Germany, France) in South America encouraged many artistic and scientific expeditions across the continent. GENERAL JOSÉ DE SAN MARTÍN (detail) by José Gil de Castro, 1818. Gil de Castro (1785–c.1841) began his career in Lima as a portraitist. He embraced the revolutionary cause not only as a painter but also marching with the emancipating forces: with Bolívar to Santiago de Chile and with San Martín to Lima. His portraits of those heroes combine the rigidity of the colonial tradition with the freshness and potency of his political ideals. The careful depiction of the subject's garment, paying special attention to the gold trimmings, may indicate the persistence of elements of colonial religious images. EUROPE 1800–1900 221 COALBROOKDALE BY NIGHT, 1801, by Philip James De Loutherbourg (1740–1812). De Loutherbourg described this dramatic view of newly industrialized Shropshire in western England as appealing equally to an economist and a Romantic artist. This landscape celebrates both the exhilarating ‘satanic’ blaze of blast furnaces abhorred by Blake and the idyllic surrounding woodland valley and its rustic inhabitants. HÔTEL TASSEL, BRUSSELS 1892–93, Victor Horta (1861–1947). Horta’s townhouse typifies the lavish ornament and modern structural achievements of the pan-European phenomenon of ‘Art Nouveau’. Many disparate examples of architecture and design are classified as Art Nouveau; most embrace new materials and technologies whilst still celebrating local motifs, such as flora and folklore. NATURE AND NATIONALISM The attempted centralization of Europe into an imperial culture prescribed from Paris also inspired Romantic expressions of dissent. Discredited traditions were reclaimed, for example Schinkel’s reconstructed Gothic Cologne Cathedral, Beckford’s Fonthill Abbey or Scott’s Abbotsford. These, as well as heroic landscapes such as the desolate Baltic coasts and dense Alpine forests of Friedrich or the idyllic rusticity of Constable and Repton, revealed a new-found determination to assert alternative national identities amidst the Napoleonic bloodshed. The drama of the natural world encouraged not only scientific measurement and study (the Vulcanists’ examination of mounts Etna and Vesuvius, for example), but also the visionary landscapes of Martin and Girodet. At the same time, this period of socio-political dislocation inspired complex alternative visions – the ecstatic horror of the ‘Sublime’, witnessed in Goya’s and Géricault’s imagery of madness and dehumanized brutality, or the retreat into esotericism of Runge’s Masonic decorations, or Blake’s and Fuseli’s mystic utopianism. INDUSTRIALIZATION AND THE ARTS The first four railway lines (1825–37), succeeded by a construction boom in the 1860s, linked the most far-flung corners of Europe, allowing more widespread diffusion of raw materials, artworks and ideas. At the same time, new forms of transportation led to mass tourism and international exhibitions, which encouraged national manufactures such as Sèvres and Meissen porcelain and the Gobelins’ tapestry works. New techniques of reproduction processes helped the proliferation of photography as an art medium, and many illustrated periodicals appeared, from The Illustrated London News to the Vienna Secessionist journal Ver Sacrum. New processes led to the more efficient exploitation of natural resources (the coal mines of Britain and Russia, the iron ore deposits of northern France and Spain, the expansion of metal industries and armaments led by Germany, textile production in Britain, Belgium and France). These industries created a vibrant yet volatile economic climate. They also provided the materials and patronage that facilitated the new industrial architecture of production, transport and display such as Saunier’s Menier Factory (1869–74, Noisel-surMarne), Eiffel’s Ponte Maria Pia Bridge (1877, Oporto), Mengoni’s Galleria (1865–77, Milan) and the luxury-liner ships decorated by artists. Many paternalist entrepreneurs embarked on utopian communal housing projects such as Boliger’s Laegeforeningens, which replaced Copenhagen’s slums, Lever’s Port Sunlight near Liverpool and Godin’s Familistère project in Guise. The experience of the working-class was a motif that inspired many nineteenth-century artists, from the bleak ennui of ToulouseLautrec and Seurat’s proletarians to the heroic mill workers of Menzel. FIN DE SIÈCLE EUROPE A complex climate of internationalism and competition was created by the unification of Germany and Italy, the expansion of AustriaHungary and Russia, and European colonization in Africa and Asia. Experimentation in architecture and design, known as ‘Art Nouveau’, flowered against this background. New unusual materials inspired new forms. Wolfers’s chryselephantine objets d’art relied upon ivory from the new Belgian Congo. Advances in metallurgy allowed Guimard and Horta to create their extraordinary ironwork arabesques. Gallé’s participation in the latest discoveries in chemistry and botany emerged in the themes and techniques of his glassware. Art Nouveau often emerged in secondary metropolitan centres, and celebrated these area’s distinctive materials and skills; Mackintosh’s furniture relied upon the skills of Glasgow’s ship fitters, and Eliel Saarinen, Lindgren and Gesellius deployed Finnish granite and timber as their signature materials. Industrial entrepreneurs were key patrons (Güell for Gaudí or Solvay for Horta), and their urban townhouses became one of Art Nouveau’s principal forms. Nostalgia for traditional life also inspired a revival of traditional techniques and art forms. This was evident in the art colonies in Brittany, Abramtsevo and Worpswede as well as the Arts and Crafts collectives formed across Europe, which were inspired by Ruskin’s and Morris’s championing of medieval and folk craftsmanship and sincerity. Lechner drew upon Hungarian folk lace for his architectural ornament in the Postal Savings Bank (Budapest 1898–1901). The Watts’ Chapel and Pottery (Compton 1897) not only taught local people techniques of Celtic interlace but also helped the village economically by marketing the artworks to Liberty’s in London. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 220 NAPOLEON’S CONQUESTS LED to an unprecedented movement and creation of artworks around Europe in the form of war trophies, art publications and research, official portraits and monuments celebrating victories or the fallen. The Napoleonic era also saw the formation of the great state museums of Europe: the Louvre, the British Museum, and the Pinakotheks of Berlin and Munich. These institutions formulated the artistic heritage just as State patronage of contemporary art through acquisitions and exhibitions shaped art’s future. The technological advances and atrocities of warfare inspired complex artistic responses from the conflicted heroism of Gros’s and Turner’s battle paintings to Goya’s horrific etchings. EUROPE 1800-1900 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 40˚ 50˚ Vienna Graz Budapest Szolnok Nagybánya (Baia Mare) Prague Cracow Brussels Darmstadt OstendNewlyn St Nazaire Brighton Southampton Hvitträsk Kirkkonummi (Gesellius, Lindgren, Saarinen 1901-19) Kalela Ruovesi (Gallen-Kallela 1894-95) Tuomiokirkko Tampere (Sonck 1899-1907) Mikaelin Kirkko (Sonck 1900) Biology Museum (Lindegren 1893) Sundborn (C. & K. Larsson 1884-1912) Villa Stuck (1897-98) Elvira Studios (Endell) Haarlem Worpswede Bremen Skagen Paris Nantes Guise Fontainebleau Barbizon LyonSt Étienne San Sebastián BilbaoOviedo Lisbon Geneva Barcelona Cape Trafalgar Oporto Le Havre Pont-Aven Nancy Antwerp Liège Cologne Amsterdam Rotterdam Scheveningen Walberswick Hamburg Hanover Copenhagen Malmö Christiania (Oslo) Bergen Stockholm Uppsala Helsingfors (Helsinki) Riga Åbo (Turku) Karelia St Petersburg Moscow Abramtsevo Tula GorlovkaDresden Frankfurt Fürth Stuttgart Nuremberg Lódz Warsaw Munich Füssen Florence Verona Venice Trieste Milan Turin Genoa Rome Berlin Danzig StettinBirminghamWolverhampton Oxford Merton Abbey Manchester Edinburgh Newcastle (Tyne) Aberdeen Stockton Salts Mill (1853) Glasgow Kilmalcolm Clyde Dublin Liverpool Barrow-in-Furness Darlington London Compton Bristol Belfast ´ Clifton Suspension Bridge (Brunel 1829-54) Menai Road Bridge (Telford 1818-26) Forth Railway Bridge (Fowler, Baker 1881-90) Hack Kampmann Diplon (1892) Saltash, Royal Albert Bridge (Brunel 1859) Ponte Maria Pia (Eiffel 1877) Glasgow School of Art (Mackintosh) Postal Savings Bank (Lechner 1898-1901) Secession Building (Olbrich 1898) Central Hotel (Ohmann 1899-1901) Casa Castiglione (Sommaruga 1900-03) Sagrada Familia (Gaudí 1883-) Duero Tagus Ebro Rhône Po Loire S eine Rhine Elbe VistulaOder Dnieper Dniester Danube D on A T L A N T I C O C E A N N O R T H S E A B L A C K S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A D R I A T I C S E A BA LT I C S E A Mt Etna Mt Vesuvius SCOTTISH HIGHLANDS P Y R E N E E S A L P S CARPATH IA N M T S RÜGEN CRETE SICILY CYPRUS BA L E A R I C I S CORSICA SARDINIA UNITED KINGDOM F R A N C E S PA I N M O R O C C O A L G E R I A TUNISIA G E R M A N E M P I R E F I N L A N D DENMARK A U S T R O - H U N G A R I A N E M P I R E R U S S I A N E M P I R E SWITZERLAND SERBIA GREECE MONTENEGRO PORTUGAL R O M ANIA O T T O M A N E M P I R E NORW AY SWEDEN (Friedrich, Runge) Oesterbrogade housing project (Boliger 1853-55) Grosset House (Kampff, Scherwinsky 1899) Eylau (Gros 1807) Crimea (Butler, Fenton 1854) Piedmont Alsace Lorraine (Rodin, Détaille 1870) Galeria (Mengoni 1865) Viaduc Garabit (Eiffel 1877) Santa Justa Lift (Eiffel 1898-1901) (Vulcanists, Neptunists, Girondet) (Turner, Ruskin, Hodler) (Turner, Benjamin West) 9 4 2 5 21 19 10 20 22 13 18 1215 3023, 24 25 17 7 6 28 29 16 14 27 31 11 1 3 26 8 N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 1 Europe 1800-1900 controlled directly from Paris, c. 1810 controlled by members of Napoleon’s family, c. 1810 other states dependent on Napoleonic empire, c. 1810 international borders, 1871 industrial area first railways artistic colony Romantic site battle zone industrial/utopian architecture shipyard bridge Art Nouveau building Royal Pavilion (Nash 1815-22) East Bergholt (Constable) R. Stour (Constable) Dedham (Constable) Fonthill Abbey (Beckford 1796) Salisbury Cathedral (Turner, Constable) Abbotsford (Walter Scott’s castle) Shoreham (Palmer) Cologne Cathedral (Schinkel 1824-80) Walhalla Donaustauf (von Klenze 1814-42) Neuschwanstein Castle (Riedel, Jank, Dollmann, Hoffmann 1868-92) Uppsala University botanical collections (Runge, Friedrich) Port Sunlight (Lever, Owen 1887-1900) Glasshouse (Kibble 1860) Iron Building (Baird 1855-56) Chiswick, Great Conservatory, Syon house (Fowler 1820-27) Kew Palm House (Turner, Burton 1845-47) University Museum (Woodward, Ruskin 1855-60) Communal housing (Familistère 1859-70) Deptford Horta and van de Velde houses Liberal Volkhuis ‘Help U Zelve’ (1898) Art Nouveau Wijk (c. 1900) Watts Memorial Chapel (1897) L.Windermere, Broadleys Gill Head (Voysey 1898-1900) Hale, Halecroft (1890) Windy Hill (Mackintosh 1899-1901) Knutsford, (Richard Harding Watt 1895-1908) Bexleyheath,The Red House (Webb, Morris 1859-60) Chiswick, Bedford Park, South Parade (Shaw 1874-90, Voysey 1889-94) Sanderson and Sons Wallpaper Factory (Voysey 1900-02) Harrow Weald, Grims Dyke (Shaw 1870-72) Wightwick Manor (Ould 1887-93) Maison Hennebique (1900-04) Maison Coilliot Lille (Guimard 1898-1900) Villa Majorelle (Sauvage 1900-01) Alexandraweg (Olbrich, Glückert, Behrens 1899-1901) De Beurs (Berlage 1897-1903) American Hotel & Cafe (Kromhout 1898-1901) Menier Factory (Saunier 1869-74) 1 - 2 - - - 3 - - 4 - 5 - 6 - 7 - 8 - 9 - 10 - 11 - - 12 - - 13 - 14 - 15 - 16 - 17 - - 18 - 19 - 20 - 21 - 22 - 23 - 24 - - 25 - 26 - 27 - - 28 - 29 - 30 - - 31 - 1 THE EMERGENCE AND SUPPRESSION of national cultures by conflicting imperial ambitions forged the aims and vocabularies of artistic movements such as Romanticism and Art Nouveau. Booming industrialization inspired exhilarating collaborations between art and the new needs of entrepreneurial and urban culture, but also inspired a mood of nostalgia for traditional, rural life manifest in artists’ colonies. SCANDINAVIA AND THE BALTIC 1800–1900 223 ANDERS ZORN, MIDSUMMER DANCE (1897). Farmers are shown in provincial costume, dancing at the summer solstice. The midsummer pole is visible in silhouette against the sky on the right. The scene is set in a farmyard. A fiddler sits on the stoop of a rustic log shed on the left. The farmhouse is visible behind the shed, painted the dark red with white trim traditional for rural buildings. Zorn’s gift for painting light and atmosphere allowed him to capture the warm glow of the midnight sun on the longest day of the year, which is celebrated as a holiday throughout Scandinavia. 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ 50˚ Gothenburg Jönköping Norrköping Lübeck Bremen Hamburg Uppsala Stockholm Trondheim Christiania (Oslo) Bergen Copenhagen Berlin Düsseldorf Dresden Stralsund Stettin KönigsbergDanzig (Gdansk) Riga Vilna (Vilnius) Elbing Revel (Tallinn) Åbo (Turku) Novgorod Pskov Kexholm Narva Yuryev (Tartu) Helsingfors (Helsinki) Viborg St Petersburg ’ Elbe Vist u l a D vina L. Pskov L. Vänern L. Vättern L. Ladoga N O R T H S E A WHITE SEA GULF OF FINLAND N O RW E G I A N S E A GULFOFBOTHNIA GU LF OF RIG A BA LT I C S E A HANOVER FYN ZEALAND BORNHOLM ÅLAND GOTLAND ÖSEL POMERANIA DENMARK SWED E N N O R W A Y BRANDENBURG P R U S S I A G R A N D D U C H Y O F F I N L A N D R U S S I A POLAND EAST PRUSSIA From Western Europe From France 0 0 250 miles 350 kms N 2 THROUGHOUT THE nineteenth century, regional traditions mixed with international movements. Early in the century, the Russian tsar employed Western European Neoclassical artists, whom he sent out to territorial possessions. In Sweden and Norway, Neoclassical and Nordic themes were employed equally by the crown. Toward mid-century, the influence of the landscape and history paintings of the Düsseldorf and Munich schools became dominant. The technique of these schools was applied to local landscape and history to produce a regional variant. group of Norwegian artists displayed works inspired by German painting. The Swedish king immediately offered a scholarship to the first painter to study in Düsseldorf, and the pattern was established for the next 30 years. There was a significant Scandinavian community there until about 1880. The Düsseldorf painters were a revelation, but this also indicates the retardation of Swedish painting at mid-century. Their influence came just at the time when Johan Christian Dahl (1788–1857), a Norwegian painter who had been a close friend of Caspar David Friedrich (1774–1840) in Dresden, advised painters to go to Paris, as German artistic leadership had waned. NATIONAL ROMANTICISM AND IDENTITY In the 1890s the long-standing search for inspiration from beyond Scandinavia was overturned when nearly all the important Scandinavian painters returned home, determined to paint subjects specifically related to local traditions. This movement, called National Romanticism, accompanied a growth of patriotic or nationalistic sentiment in all the Baltic lands. This can be related to a desire for independence in lands ruled by foreign powers. Akseli Gallen-Kallela’s (1865–1931) paintings of the Finnish saga, Kalevala, can be understood in this way. This yearning for independence from Russia, the dominant power, is even more apparent in Lithuania at mid-century. Folk woodcuts with inscriptions in the vernacular were banned in the 1860s for fear that they would incite revolt against Russia. Traditional Lithuanian images were considered so provocative that national antiquities were seized and sent to Moscow, and artistic life in general was dampened; only one school in Vilnius trained painters between 1866 and 1914. National Romanticism dominated the arts in sovereign countries as well, however. Anders Zorn (1860–1920), who had been in France in the 1880s, took the techniques he had learned there and painted Swedish folk dances and rustic life with a crystalline light and an impressionistic touch. Carl Larsson (1853–1919) is widely loved for his depictions of the seasonal activities of a typical Swedish home in the provinces. Both painters’ studios were far from the capital. Larsson refused to accept a position at the Royal Academy in Stockholm, believing that its conservatism would compromise his artistic convictions. National Romanticism extended far beyond the fine arts, and became a broader cultural phenomenon; traditional building techniques and handcrafts were also embraced. While most Scandinavian artists in the 1890s worked with a regional focus, the Norwegian Edvard Munch (1863–1944) pioneered a haunting style of painting that pointed the way to Expressionism, one of the most important international movements of the early twentieth century. More than any Scandinavian since Thorvaldsen, Munch was recognized as a leading international figure, and was indeed the most important Scandinavian artist of the century. 2 Artistic Diffusion in the Baltic, early 19th century Western Empire style of Neoclassicism, officially sanctioned by Imperial Russia 1801-1855 official artistic influence in the new Russian territories German influence in the north, mid-19th century official construction, directed from Stockholm post-1814 Empire style associated with French Bernadotte dynasty in Sweden, post-1810 ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 222 SCANDINAVIAN REALISM In the 1820s, a different trend began to emerge among painters in Denmark, particularly in Copenhagen, which stressed a carefully observed realism, with subjects often taken from national history, local landscape and everyday life. C. W. Eckersberg (1783–1853) and J. L. Lund (1771–1867) led this movement. They were prominent professors at the academy, and thus influenced a generation of painters. Often considered the ‘Golden Age’ of Danish painting, this was really part of a broader trend. Lund in particular maintained close ties with the leading academies in Düsseldorf and Munich, and so this development is linked to German Romanticism. In the second decade of the century in Sweden many figural artists and writers considered Neoclassicism both exhausted and foreign, and looked instead to regional traditions and Norse mythology. Even King Karl XIV Johan of Sweden and Norway (r.1818–44), who had earlier portrayed himself as the Roman god Mars, identified himself as the Norse ruler-god Odin from the later 1810s. In Finland, Neoclassicism can be associated with imperial rule, while in Sweden the crown supported both the internationally current style as well as displaying an interest in regional subjects. Thus the interest in Norse heritage cannot be dismissed as little more than a provincial trend. The continuing adherence to the Neoclassical style and the interest in Norse heritage are equally important aspects of the arts in this period. In 1850, the explicit influence of the Düsseldorf School became apparent in Sweden, when the Stockholm Academy mounted an important exhibition in which a THE GEOGRAPHY OF SCANDINAVIA was redefined in the early nineteenth century. Sweden ceded Finland to Russia in 1809, losing the last vestige of its former dominance of the eastern Baltic. Sweden’s loss was compensated in 1814 when Denmark, which had been an ally of Napoleon, lost Norway to Sweden. There was a great deal of new building in both of these territories, much of it in a strictly Neoclassical style, which suited both international taste and imperial themes as rulers asserted their superiority over new lands. For example, the new palace for the Swedish king in Christiania (now Oslo), built in the 1820s, imposingly established the Swedish monarchy in Norway. THE NEOCLASSICAL APOGEE The Finnish capital was moved from Åbo (Turku) to the little fishing village of Helsinki after the transfer of the duchy to Russia. This was in part because Turku was the capital of Swedish Finland, and even today takes Swedish as its first language. Helsinki was much closer to St Petersburg, and Tsar Alexander I (r.1801–25) hoped to make the new city reflect Russian rule. Already in 1811 Alexander planned the highly symbolic Neoclassical Senate Square in Helsinki, which was to include the senate, the governorgeneral’s residence, and a grand-ducal palace (not built). Carl Ludwig Engel (1778–1840), who had studied with Karl Friedrich Schinkel (1781–1841) at the Berlin Academy of Architecture, carried out these plans. Neoclassicism lingered longer in Denmark than in the other Scandinavian countries, largely because of the influence of the sculptor Bertel Thorvaldsen (1770–1844). Thorvaldsen was active in Rome for nearly his entire career, but was a celebrity in his own country. When he returned home in 1838 he oversaw the opening of a museum for his works, which included sketches, plaster models and full-size marble copies of his complete oeuvre. Thorvaldsen’s work continued to cast a long shadow over the arts in Denmark. SCANDINAVIA AND THE BALTIC 1800-1900 CARL LUDWIG ENGEL’S design for the Imperial Alexander University Library in Helsinki. Born and trained in Berlin, Engel settled in St Petersburg in 1814, where he soon impressed Tsar Alexander I. The tsar worked closely with the architect in the planning of the Neoclassical core of Helsinki, and ultimately chose the plans. He wanted the architecture of the city to reflect Russian rule, but also the broad independence granted the Finnish grand duchy. 50˚ 60˚ 50˚ 40˚30˚20˚ Stockholm Jönköping Norrköping Lübeck Bremen Hamburg Uppsala Trondheim Christiania (Oslo) Bergen Copenhagen Stralsund Stettin Berlin Königsberg Danzig Riga Vilna (Vilnius) Revel (Tallinn) Åbo (Turku) Novgorod St. Petersburg Narva Helsingfors (Helsinki) Viborg Gothenburg L. Ladoga Elbe Vistula Dvina L. Vänern L. Vättern N O RW E G I A N S E A N O R T H S E A WHITE SEA GULFOFBOTHNIA GULF OF FINLAND GULF OF RI GA BALTIC SEA BORNHOLM HANOVER FYN ÅLAND ZEALAND DNALTOG ÖSEL GRAND DUCHY OF FINLAND DENMARK R U S S I A POLAND (1831: Fully part of Russia) SW E D E N POMERANIA BRANDENBURG EAST PRUSSIA N O RW AY P R U S S I A Finland: Transferred from Sweden to Russia as Grand Duchy of Finland 1809 Norway: Transferred from Denmark to Sweden 1814 Johann Tobias Sergel, to 1814 Swedish royal palace, 1823-1848 Karl Rossi, 1815-49 Academy founded 1757 Carl Ludwig Engel 1816-40 Golden age painters c. 1820-1850 Bertel Thorvaldsen, to 1844 Estonia: Transferred from Sweden to Russia Lithuania: Transferred from Poland to Russia 1795 Latvia: Transferred from Sweden and Poland to Russia: 1721, 1722, 1795 N 0 0 250miles 350kms 1 THE POLITICAL STRUCTURE of the Baltic region was fundamentally realigned in the early nineteenth century. Russia expanded on gains made in the eighteenth century, and dominated the eastern Baltic lands. Sweden gained Norway, but lost territories in Pomerania, the last vestige of its former imperialism. All of this had a profound effect on the arts of the colonial territories. Cultural patronage came from new centres with different traditions and often had thinly veiled political implications – new buildings represented the new order. 1 Scandinavia after 1814 borders, 1815 contemporary borders, Baltic States and Norway Residence of prominent artist, with dates RUSSIA 1800–1900 225 colleagues Vladimir Makovsky (1846–1920) and Nikolay Iaroshenko (1846–98) all dealt with issues and images of the populist and revolutionary movements of the 1870s, depicting young, educated men and women from the cities travelling to the countryside, ‘to the people’, as teachers, doctors and advisers to the former serfs about their legal rights. PATRONAGE AND NEW GOALS Independent-minded merchant-class collectors supported the Peredvizhniki. In 1892 Pavel Tretyakov (1832–98) donated to the city of Moscow a collection that ranged from icons to works by his contemporaries and friends. Savva Mamontov (1841–1918), railway magnate and art amateur, formed one of Russia’s first art colonies at Abramtsevo, near Moscow, in the 1870s. Among the members were Repin, Polenov, history painters Viktor Vasnetsov and Vasily Surikov (1848–1916), Korovin, Levitan and Mikhail Vrubel (1856–1910), who became the most innovative artists of the last decades of the century. Alexander III (r.1881–94), while politically conservative and authoritarian, collected art for ISAAK LEVITAN (1861–1900) March, 1895, oil on canvas, Tretyakov Gallery, Moscow. Levitan presents a moment in the country in early spring, without the message or narrative typical of the previous decades. A Jew and extremely poor, Levitan overcame great obstacles to study at the Academy of Art, and became one of Russia’s greatest landscape painters. Murmansk Serov, Korovin Archangel Mezen’ Kotlas Vologda lace, textiles, wood-carving Kholmogory St Petersburg Vyshniy Volochëk Novgorod Pskov Nizhniy Novgorod trade fairs and art exhibits-pavilions on regions and arts; Vrubel, Korovin, Polenov, wood-working, annual market Plës Levitan Azarmas Stupin Art School Perm’ home of Sergey Diaghilev Vyatka home ofVictor and Apollinary Vasnetsov Ufa home of Nesterov Samara Moscow Sergiyev Posad monastery and toy-making industry Talashkino Princess Tenisheva’s art colony Vrubel, Malyutin, Rerikh Vladimir Tula Smolensk Riga Vilna Minsk Revel’ Kursk Repin Orël Abramtsevo Tambov Tver’ Kostroma Astrakhan Rostov Kharkov Chuguyev Repin’s birthplace Yekaterinodar Sukhumi BakuErivan Tiflis Odessa Sevastopol Kherson Kiev Kazan’ Mamontov art circle-Repin, Polenov, Serov, Korovin, Vrubel, Nesterov, Levitan Dnieper Volga D o n N o rthern D vina Pechora Ural Irtysh Kam a B L A C K S E A CASPIAN SEA ARAL SEA BARENTS SEA W H I T E SEA GULFOFBOTHNIA C AU C A S U S URALMTS R U S S I A FINLAND Yaroslavl’ Savrasov Academic dacha; Venetsianov and students Saratov Radishchev Art Museum Bogolyubov Collection ivory carving ivory carving Academy of Arts Hermitage Museum of Alexander III Stieglitz Technical School Bryullov, Bruni, Ivanov; Kramskoi, Repin, the Itinerants, Vrubel; World of Art group (Benua, Somov, Bakst) Moscow School of Painting, Sculpture and Architecture, Collection of Pavel Tretyakov Tropinin; Perov, Savasov, Polenov, Korovin, Serov Turkmenistan Palestine Bulgaria Paris Rome Briullov, Ivanov Repin, Polenov, Korovin, Iakunchikova Polenov, Vereshchagin Polenov Vereshchagin Vereshchagin Port Arthur (Japan) metalwork carved and painted wood N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 2 Art Centres in Western Russia border of Russia c.1900 railways built by 1860 railways built 1860-1900 concentration of serfdom before 1861 emancipation percentage of peasants who are serfs, 50% and over percentage of peasants who are serfs, 18%-50% centre connected with artists and groups centres for folk and applied arts artists’ activity abroad 2 TOWN AND COUNTRY. Serfdom dominated agriculture until emancipation in 1861, and many peasants were left impoverished after the reforms. Yet improved transport and regional trade centres, especially the market at Nizhniy Novgorod, created demand for cultural amenities in the provinces. Many artists came from provincial towns – for example, Saratov (Aleksey Bogolyubov 1824–96), Chuguyev (Ilya Repin 1844–1930), Vyatka (Viktor, 1848–1926, and Apollinary, 1856–1933, Vasnetsov) and Ufa (Mikhail Nesterov 1862–1942). Some chose to paint in rural areas: Aleksey Venetsianov (1780–1847) at Vyshny Volochëk in Tver’ Province, Valentin Serov (1865–1911) at Domotkanovo near Tver’, Levitan at Plës on the Volga; and many participated in the artists’ colonies at Abramtsevo and Talashkino. Some artists spent parts of their careers in Rome early in the century, and by the 1870s in France (Repin, Vasely Polenov, 1844–1927, Serov, Konstantin Korovin, 1861–1939, Konstantin Somov, 1869-1939) and Aleksandr Benua, 1870–1960, among others). Folk and applied arts were exhibited at regional fairs and, late in the century, abroad. his own museum, opened to the public in 1898 in the Neoclassical Michael Palace (today the Russian Museum). By the 1890s, the Academy was becoming open to new ideas, and some of the Peredvizhniki taught there. The younger generation of artists avoided socially critical realism and instead explored a variety of new styles related to Impressionism, Post-Impressionism, Symbolism and Art Nouveau (called style moderne in Russia). A Slavic revival (retrospective and nationalist in content and often highly decorative in style) based itself in Moscow and Abramtsevo. A Western-oriented, urban, sophisticated style was associated with the St Petersburg ‘World of Art’ group. Some artists participated in both groups. The new sense of the importance of style itself marked a significant change in ideas. The World of Art group, including Benua, Lev Bakst (1866–1924) and Konstantin Somov (1869–1939), joined by the impressario Sergey Diaghilev (1872–1929), effectively bridged the art worlds of the two centuries while deliberately linking Russia with the West. Their exhibitions and the journal Mir iskusstva, (1898–1904) emphasized form and design as much as text and content, and their theatrical productions united the best efforts of writers, musicians, choreographers and visual artists. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 224 and announced that art must serve reality and expose the conditions of real life. In 1863, Academy students led by Ivan Kramskoy (1837–87) formed a cooperative. Like-minded artists from the Moscow School joined them in 1871 in the Association of Travelling Art Exhibitions. Among Peredvizhniki (‘travellers’) were Kramskoy, Vasily Perov (1833–82) and Repin. They produced portraits of Tolstoy, Dostoevsky, Musorgsky, and genre works such as Repin’s Barge Haulers on the Volga (1871) and Savitsky’s Repair Work on the Railroad (1874). Russia’s waterways and growing railways gave Aleksey Savrasov (1830–97), Ivan Shishkin (1831–98), Polenov and Levitan access to much of their subject matter: forests, plains, rivers and provincial towns. As a railway promotion, Serov and Korovin painted northern scenes. Savitsky, Repin and their NINETEENTH-CENTURY RUSSIA saw a shift from court display to a broader audience and a corresponding shift from classicism to realism and individual styles. Underlying this change were improved technology and transport and expanded territory in Central Asia, which led to expanding trade. Growth of the middle classes brought a pragmatic concern for production, distribution and profit. THE EUPHORIA OF VICTORY The formative event for early nineteenthcentury Russia was Napoleon’s invasion in 1812 and his defeat. Portraits, sculptures and prints celebrated the Russian victory. The rebuilding of Moscow (burnt in the conflict) stimulated architectural and city planning in St Petersburg and other cities. This reached a high point in the Neoclassical architecture and sculpture of such ensembles as the General Staff Arch adjacent to the Winter Palace, the Academic Theatre and the Michael Palace by architect Karl Rossi (1775–1849). The court-controlled Academy of Art based instruction on classical and Renaissance models that harmonized with the autocratic rule of Tsar Nicholas I (r.1825–55). The leading Russian artists resident in Rome, including Karl Bryullov (1799–1852), Orest Kiprensky (1782–1836) and Aleksandr Ivanov (1806–58), earned international recognition. The highest prestige attached to history painting. Some artists, though, preferred landscape and genre. Venetsianov began painting scenes of peasant life in the 1820s. He taught young peasants and serfs to paint ‘according to nature’. This set the stage for the realist movement of the second half of the century. The Academy gradually modified its curriculum, and the Moscow School of Painting and Sculpture, founded in the 1840s, gained a reputation for high standards in genre and landscape. Instruction became widely available through drawing schools in the capitals and art studios at Azarmas near Nizhniy Novgorod, in Vilna, Kharkov, Kiev, Sevastopol and Odessa. Peasant crafts were exhibited at trade fairs – bone and ivory carving in the far north, wood carving in forested areas along the Dvina and Volga rivers, metalwork in Rostov and Tula, textiles in Vladimir, Vologda and Smolensk provinces, toy-making in Sergiyev Posad. GROWING SOCIAL TENSIONS By mid-century, military campaigns brought more non-Russians into the empire and sent Russian soldiers to far-flung outposts. Within European Russia, the social order, especially the institution of serfdom, accentuated class divisions. Tsar Alexander II (r.1855–81), though, brought a period of peace and liberalization. Essayists questioned the classical conventions RUSSIA 1800-1900 Turkey 1878 Caucasus 1859 Crimea 1845 Central Asia 1860s-90s Murmansk Archangel Kotlas Perm’ Vyatka Helsingfors Kostroma Sergiyev Posad Kazan’ Yaroslavl’Novgorod Tallinn Revel’ Vilna Minsk Warsaw Pskov Smolensk Tver’ Moscow Vladimir Ryazan’ Tambov Kursk Kharkov Yekaterinodar Sukhumi Baku Sevastopol Istanbul Trebizond Erivan Tiflis Odessa Bucharest Sofia Kherson Astrakhan Samara Ufa Chelyabinsk Tyumen’ Omsk Novonikolayevsk Krasnoyarsk Surikov Irkutsk Harbin Vladivostok Khabarovsk Tomsk Yekaterinburg Saratov Tula Orël Kiev St Petersburg Mezen’ Kholmogory Ob Pechora Vologda Nizhniy Novgorod Rostov L. Baikal Yenisey Lena Am ur I rtysh B A R E N T S S E A SEA OF OKHOTSK SEA OF JAPAN A R C T I C O C E A N BAL TICSEA BLACK SEA ARAL SEA B E R I N G S E A URALMTS A LTAI MTS TIEN SHAN G O B I TAKLA MAKAN NORW AY SWEDEN FINLAND R U S S I A GERMAN EMPIRE OTTOMAN EMPIRE PERSIA AFGHANISTAN C H I N A M O N G O L I A M A N CHURIA KOREA J A P A N Shishkin, Kuindzhi Apollinarii Vasnetsov, Shishkin Repin, Levitan Repin Nesterov L. Balkhash L. Ladoga N E N E T S Y A K U T CHUKCHI E V E N K N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 The Russian Empire border of Russia c.1900 limit of permafrost limit of taiga military conflict, with date artists’ homes / landscape, genre subjects folk art toy-making textiles metalwork lace wood carving / painted wood ivory carving fur and leatherwork annual market railway 1 RUSSIAN EXPANSES. Cities clustering east of the Urals, new territories in Central Asia, Vladivostok as a Pacific port from 1860 – all these were barely accessible until the Trans–Siberian Railway linked them. Siberia – home of many distinct ethnic groups with their own arts – continued to be a place of exile for political dissidents, prisoners of foreign wars and revolutionaries – by 1890, some 3400 a week passed through holding stations at Chelyabinsk and Irkutsk. But artists such as Vasily Surikov (1848–1916), a native of Krasnoyarsk, celebrated the distinctive landscapes and peoples of Asian Russia. KONSTANTIN SAVITSKY (1844–1905), Off to War, 1880–88, oil on canvas, Russian Museum, St Petersburg. This scene of peasant recruits being separated from their families contradicts the heroic images of war in academic historical painting. The emotional turbulence of the crowd is set against the sleek steam engine, sharpening the disparity between backward peasantry and modern machine. BRITAIN 1800–1900 227 Birmingham and Leeds, who tended to purchase the work of contemporary artists. The railway system, which linked every major city by 1852, also allowed for the free circulation of decorative arts, such as Sheffield cutlery, and textiles from Leeds and Bradford. The Crystal Palace, designed by Joseph Paxton and assembled in London in 1851 to house the Great Exhibition, was made from iron elements pre-fabricated in Birmingham. The cornucopia of goods shown there displayed British manufacturing skill, but were often in poor taste. The South Kensington Museum, which opened in 1857, was intended to promote design reform. Thames Vauxhall Bridge, 1811 Waterloo Bridge Rennie, 1817, demolished 1836 Sir John Soane’s Museum, 1837 South Kensington Museum, Francis Fowke 1857 (now the Victoria and Albert Museum) Royal Midland (St Pancras) Hotel, Gilbert Scott 1866-76 Paddington Station, Brunel, Wyatt 1850-54 Royal Albert Hall, Grimshaw 1871 Albert Memorial, Gilbert Scott, Foley, Armstead 1861-71 Buckingham Palace, remodelled by Nash (1820), Blore (1840) St James’s Palace, official royal residence to 1857 Marshalsea Debtors Prison Newgate Prison Fleet Prison Crystal Palace, Paxton 1851 Vauxhall Gardens Covent Garden St James’s Park, Nash 1829 Hyde Park Regent’s Park, Nash 1811 3 6 7 5 4 2 2 13 32 31 35 15 2627 23 24 22 14 29 30 34 1936 20 21 37 17 18 169 25 8 10 28 1 33 11 12 West Partridge Partridge Partridge Stothard Flaxman Egg Linnell Linnell Russell Constable Constable Philip Ward O’Neil Frith Brooks Leighton Millais Marochetti Turner Menpes Steer, Hunt, Jopling, Jacomb-Hood Whistler Whistler Whistler Philip de Morgan de Morgan Rossetti Hunt Greaves Lowndes Lowndes Linnell Constable Waters Watts Constable Constable Collins Hampstead SOHO CHELSEA KENSINGTON BLOOMSBURY 3 Victorian London, 1800-1900 studios and homes of artists meeting places art schools/academies exhibition spaces/dealers museum palace prison government building public entertainment bridge park public square public monument/sculpture major building N 0 0 500 yards 500 metres 1 - Jack Straw’s Castle 2 - Chelsea Arts Club 3 - Leigh’s Art School/ Heatherley’s Art School 4 - Chelsea Arts School 5 - Louise Jopling’s Art School 6 - Gambart & Co 7 - Lord Grosvenor’s Gallery 8 - Grosvenor Gallery 9 - Fine Arts Society 10 - The Royal Academy, from 1869 11 - British Museum, Smirke c.1830-52 12 - National Gallery, Wilkins 1838 13 - Houses of Parliament: Palace of Westminster, Pugin, Barry 1840-60 14 - Somerset House, Chambers 1836 15 - Scotland Yard, Shaw 1887-1907 16 - Mansion House, Dance 1735 17 - Guildhall Art Gallery 1873 18 - Royal Exchange, Tite 1844 19 - Blackfriars Bridge, 1863, rebuilt 1899 20 - Southwark Bridge, Rennie 1815-19 21 - London Bridge, Rennie 1831 22 - St James’s Square 23 - Trafalgar Square 24 - Leicester Square 25 - Grosvenor Square 26 - Charing Cross, Barry/Earp 1864 27 - Admiral Nelson, Railton 1839-43 28 - Eros, Gilbert 1893 29 - Brunel, Marochetti 1877 30 - Shakespeare, Fontana 1875 31 - General Gordon, Thorneycroft 1889 32 - Richard I, Marochetti 1860 33 - All Saints, Butterfield 1849-59 34 - Royal Courts of Justice, Street 1874-82 35 - Foreign Office, Gilbert Scott 1868-73 36 - The Embankment, Bazalgette 1864-70 37 - Thames Tunnel, Brunel 1824-40 2 THE INDUSTRIAL Revolution saw a profound change in the geography and demography of the British Isles. Industrial cities emerged in the Midlands and north, such as Manchester, Leeds, Liverpool and Newcastle. Shipbuilding made Glasgow into a great city. 5˚10˚ 55˚ 50˚ Edinburgh Glasgow Newcastle upon Tyne Liverpool Stoke-on-Trent Caughley Holyhead Carmarthen New Hall Worcester Wolverhampton Swinton Manchester Sheffield Derby Pinxton Bradford Swansea CardiffNantgarw Bristol Exeter Portsmouth Dover Plymouth Penzance Birmingham Northampton Leicester Nottingham Leeds Hull Belleek Oxford London Windsor Cambridge Norwich NORTH SEA A T L A N T I C O C E A N ENGLISH CHANNEL 2 Growth of Industry, 1800-1900 coal cotton wool silk linen/flax carpet-making furniture-making creamware earthenware porcelain stoneware tin-glazed earthenware railways, c.1852 lace hats cutlery boots stockings N 0 0 75 miles 100 kms 3 IN LONDON the focus of artistic life shifted from Bloomsbury and Soho, where many artists lived until 1850, to fashionable Kensington, where leading figures included Frederic Leighton and John Everett Millais, successive presidents of the Royal Academy who lived in opulent mansions. Chelsea acquired a bohemian reputation at the height of the Aesthetic Movement in the 1860s and 1870s. REVIVALISM London architecture underwent dramatic changes during this period. John Nash’s elegantly stuccoed Neoclassical development in Regent’s Park, dating to 1811, was vehemently criticised by A. W. N. Pugin and the great art critic John Ruskin. Pugin and Barry’s Palace of Westminster (1840–60) joined William Butterfield’s All Saints, Margaret Street (1849–59) and George Gilbert Scott’s Albert Memorial (1863–76) to form a corpus of major Gothic Revival structures. Ruskin supported the Pre-Raphaelites, a group of young artists turning to naturalism as a means of countering their academic education, and his follower William Morris moved from London to an idyllic Thames side residence at Kelmscott, pursuing his medieval ideal by reviving various craft techniques and eventually adopting Socialist politics. Towards the end of the century, the Arts and Crafts Movement distilled from nostalgic Medievalism a pioneering form of Modernist design. THE AESTHETIC MOVEMENT From the 1860s, British artists and designers abandoned the excessive elaboration of early Victorian styles in favour of formal simplification. The subtle, tonal paintings of James McNeill Whistler, entitled as ‘symphonies’ and ‘nocturnes’, aspired, in the phrase of the aesthete Walter Pater ‘to the condition of music’. Artists such as Frederic Leighton and Edward Burne-Jones created subjectless canvases which were pure meditations on beauty. The Aesthetic Movement influenced interior design for the rest of the century. Oscar Wilde was a prominent aesthete – his advocacy of blue-and-white china and his use of the lily emblem were satirized in Gilbert and Sullivan’s operetta Patience (1881). THE GOTHIC REVIVAL. A.W.N. Pugin and Charles Barry designed a spectacular Neo-Gothic Palace of Westminster (1840–60) to replace the medieval structure destroyed by fire in 1834. Universally known as the ‘Houses of Parliament’ the design was intended to recreate the grandeur and spiritual purity of the Middle Ages, though modern techniques were utilized. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 226 THE NINETEENTH CENTURY saw Britain’s industrial development, imperial power and artistic creativity reach a climax. As urbanization and industrialization, along with population growth and new forms of transport, transformed the British landscape, artists turned more than ever before to the picturesque and sublime modes of landscape painting for solace. THE CULT OF NATURE James Ward pioneered the genre of large-scale sublime, landscape with Gordale Scar (1812–14), based on Yorkshire scenery. For five decades until his death in 1851, Turner travelled tirelessly both within and beyond Britain. Like the work of his contemporary, John Constable, Turner’s oil paintings, watercolours and engravings were vastly more ambitious than any that had gone before. While returning to familiar subjects such as Tintern Abbey, and Bamburgh and Norham Castles, Turner also painted industrial subjects such as Leeds. Constable, whose finest works depicted his native Stour Valley in Suffolk, lived and painted in Hampstead on the outskirts of London, acknowledging the need to be close to the burgeoning art market. While some Victorian artists such as Edwin Landseer painted the Scottish subjects dear to Queen Victoria, who spent much time at Balmoral Castle, most preferred the rolling landscapes of southern England. John Linnell depicted a rural paradise at Redhill in Surrey, while William Dyce and William Powell Frith created contrasting visions of tourism on the Kent coast in Pegwell Bay (1859, Tate) and Ramsgate Sands (1853, Royal Collection). THE INDUSTRIAL REVOLUTION The industrial development of Britain shifted the economic and manufacturing centre of the country from the southeast to the north and Midlands. By the 1850s industrial profits had created a new generation of middle-class patrons based in Manchester, Liverpool, BRITAIN 1800-1900 1 ROMANTIC LANDSCAPE PAINTERS in search of the Sublime favoured the rugged and mountainous landscapes of the Lake District, Wales and the Scottish highlands. The rolling countryside of the southeast, on the other hand, appealed to the picturesque taste. John Constable, like the earlier Suffolk painter Thomas Gainsborough, made icons of national identity from its agrarian scenery. 5˚ 0˚ 50˚ EdinburghGlasgow Dundee Douglas Aberdeen Belfast Newcastle upon Tyne Dublin Liverpool Chester Cheadle Manchester Sheffield Bradford Hessle Halifax Corofin Ennis Killarney Cork Swansea Aberystwyth Newport Bristol Exeter Newlyn School Birmingham Leicester Chipping Campden Cirencester Kelmscott Bath Ramsgate Leeds Lacock Oxford Reading London Brighton Cambridge Letchworth Scarborough Durham Cathedral Kirkstall Abbey Crowland Abbey Tintern Abbey The Trossachs Pegwell BayRedhill Red House The Grange Wightwick Manor Cragside Ballyfin House Balmoral Standen Osborne House Cardiff Castle LAKE DISTRICT Gordale Scar Rhyl Sands Hampstead Heath Stour Valley Norham Castle Bamburgh Castle Caernarvon Castle S pey Tay Trent Wye Shannon Severn Thames Loch Avon Stonehenge Falls of Tummel N O R T H S E A I R I S H S E A A T L A N T I C O C E A N E N G L I S H C H A N N E L NORTHWESTHIGHLANDS P E N N IN ES G R A M PIAN MTS CAMBRIANMTS WICKLOW MTS S C O T L A N D E N G L A N DWALES I R E L A N D (Mullock) (Brunel) (Cockerell, Deane, Woodward, O’Shea Brothers, Butterfield) (Basevi, Wilkins, Butterfield, Gilbert Scott, Bodley, Morris & Co)(Cox, Hansom) (Lynn, Harrison) (Elmes, Cockerell) (Guthries, Macgregor, Walton, Paterson, Lavery,Young, Thomson, Gilbert Scott, Sellers) (Kemp, Playfair, Gilbert Scott, Geddes, Raeburn, Wilkie, Faed, Nicol, Paton) (Barry) (Lockwood, Mawson) (Waterhouse, Cockerell) (Sedding, Morris & Co, Pugin) (Grimshaw, Brodrick) (Bewick) (Gilbert Scott, Burn) (Dyce) (Brodrick, Bodley, Morris & Co, Burne-Jones, Rossetti, Madox Brown) (Nash) 1840s (Watkeys) (Rowland) (Fox Talbot) 1880s (Stanhope Forbes, Bramley, Gotch, Langley, Taylor, Hall, Garstin) (Gandon, Semple, Farrell, Dean, Woodward, Richard Turner) (Nicholl, Lavery) (Maclise) (A.W.N. Pugin, E.W. Pugin) (Burton) (Mulready) 1 2 2 2 3 4 4 5 6 7 8 8 8 7 6 6 6 6 7 9 9 10 2 18 19 1 1514 3 20 16 7 21 22 1 23 24 25 9 26 27 3 12 42 10 6 11 28 5 11 1 2 12 1225 13 3 14 14 15 15 15 2 13 16 15 19 6 17 16 15 6 15 17 1 From Romanticism to Victorian Art, 1800-1900 cathedral/abbey associated with Romanticism castle/fort associated with Romanticism natural feature associated with Romanticism art movement/architecture important art collection important country house important geographical feature centre for Arts and Crafts centre for Art Nouveau N 0 0 75 miles 100 kms Romantic painter 1 - Sir Edwin Landseer (1802-73) 2 - Paul Sandby (1725-1809) 3 - Patrick Nasmyth (1787-1831) 4 - Allan Ramsay (1713-84) 5 - Sir David Wilkie (1785-1841) 6 - Joseph Mallord William Turner (1775-1851) 7 - Thomas Girtin (1775-1802) 8 - John Crome (1768-1821) 9 - Philippe de Loutherbourg (1740-1812) 10 - Thomas Stothard (1755-1834) 11 - James Ward (1769-1855) 12 - Samuel Palmer (1805-81) 13 - David Cox (1783-1859) 14 - John Sell Cotman (1782-1859) 15 - John Constable (1776-1837) 16 - Thomas Gainsborough (1727-88) 17 - Francis Danby (1792/3-1861), Francis Towne 18 - William Blake (1757-1827) 19 - Edward Calvert (1799-1883) 20 - John Henry Fuseli (1741-1825) 21 - Benjamin Robert Haydon (1786-1846) 22 - John Hoppner (1758-1810) 23 - Sir Thomas Lawrence (1769-1830) 24 - John Frederick Lewis (1805-76) 25 - John Linnell (1792-1882) 26 - John Martin (1789-1854) 27 - George Morland (1763-1804) 28 - Benjamin West (1738-1820) Romantic sculptor 1 - Sir Francis Chantrey (1781-1841) 2 - Thomas Banks (1735-1805) 3 - John Flaxman (1755-1826) FORD MADOX BROWN’S Work (1852–63) has come to symbolize the Victorian era's obsession with labour, on the part of the working classes, intellectuals (such as Thomas Carlyle and F. D. Maurice, seen to the right) and also of artists: Madox Brown worked on this elaborate Pre-Raphaelite paintings of modern life for 13 years. THE NETHERLANDS AND BELGIUM 1800–1900 229 5˚ 51˚ S S L L L PP AmsterdamHaarlem Leiden Rotterdam The Hague Utrecht Arnhem Nijmegen Groningen Leeuwarden ’s-Hertogenbosch (Bois-le Duc)Dordrecht Brussels Rebecq CharleroiMons Antwerp BrugesOstend Maastricht Ghent Courtrai (Kortrijk) Tournai Liège Seraing RhineWaal Scheldt Meuse(Maas) N O R T H S E A ZUIDER ZEE (IJSSELMEER) F R A N C E LUXEM- BOURG NETHERLANDS B E L G I U M G E R M A N Y North Sea Canal Border of the Netherlands 1813 Belgium 1830 1 - 2 - 3 - 4 - 5 - 6 Teyler Museum 1778 Mauritshuis 1815; Hague School 1885-1910; Panorama Mesdag 1881 Boymans Museum 1847 Ethnographical and Maritime Museum, 1873; Museum voor Volkenkunde, 1875 Musée d’Archéologie; Oudheid Kundig Museum, 1833 James Ensorhuis, 1884 National Museum of Ethnography N 0 0 60 miles 80 kms Musée Royale des Beaux-Arts; Koninklijk Museum foor Schone; Kunsten 1879-90; Musée Plantiin-Moretus 1875 International Exhibition 1885 International Exhibition 1883 Musée Wellington Waterloo to Belgium from Congo Free State: rubber, ivory, minerals, handicrafts 1 2 3 6 4 5 to Amsterdam from South Africa: diamonds to Amsterdam and Rotterdam from Java & East Indies: artists, art objects, rubber, textiles & coffee to Antwerp from South Africa: diamonds 2 BY DRAINING RIVERS, COASTAL AREAS AND LAKES, new land was created in the Netherlands and used for agriculture. In Belgium the traditional production of linen and lace continued in the Flemish regions, while the iron and glass industries around Liège produced the raw materials for Art Nouveau buildings. Major museums of European art and ethnographic museums were established. The Ixelles district of Brussels became the area in which artists, writers and intellectuals lived, including Auguste Rodin and Constantin Meunier and, along with the St Gilles district, the site of a rich array of Art Nouveau buildings commissioned by a new industrial bourgeoisie. The Palais du Cinquantenaire, a grand exhibition space opened in 1880, contains the Musée d’Art Monumental et Industriel, displaying historical, monumental and decorative art. one of the first modern styles to rework the languages of Classical art, architecture and the decorative arts. Fundamental to Art Nouveau are flowing organic forms employed as both decorative and structural elements. In Brussels, Victor Horta and Paul Hankar built private houses and department stores, such as the Grand Magasin Waucquez, for wealthy bankers and industrialists and the socialist Maison du Peuple (1896–9; destroyed 1965). Individual wealth and state funding supported national collections of historical and modern European art. Rembrandt’s Nightwatch was placed in a pre-eminent position in the new Rijksmuseum, Amsterdam, which displayed ceramics, furniture, gold, silver and glass. The impressionistic style and sombre tonalities of Amsterdam School (1890–1910) painters George Breitner and Isaac Israëls forged a new iconography in paintings and photographs of city spaces, shops, workers and entertainment. The robust financial sector in Amsterdam commissioned new buildings, notably De Beurs (the stock exchange), designed by H. P. Berlage. Rooted in arts and crafts ideals, it contained a rich decorative interior, paradoxically symbolizing both the financial strength of the Netherlands and Amsterdam's Socialism. COLONIAL ACQUISITIONS Numerous art objects and artefacts entered both countries from the Netherlands’ colonies and Léopold II’s central African territories, Place Royal: Musée Moderne 1890s; Palais des Beaux Arts 1880 Hôtel Tassel 1893 Maison du Peuple (destroyed 1960) Grand Magasin Waucquez 1906 Hôtel Winssinger 1890s Musée Wiertz 1865 Hôtel Solvay 1894 Musée Horta (opened as Museum in the 1960s) Musée Royale du Congo 1897 Brussels-Tervuren Exhibition, 1897 Ixelles St Gilles Parc Royale Artists working in Brussels Société Libre des Beaux Arts 1868-mid 1870s: Félicien Rops, Constant Meunier, Camille van Camp Les Vingt 1883-93: J. Ensor; F. Khnopff. J. Lambeaux; A. Rodin; F. Rops; T. van Rysselberghe; H. van der Velde; G. Miine; J. Toorop Parc du Cinquantenaire Palais du Cinquantenaire 1880 (Musée d’Art Monumental; Musée Royal d’Art Décoratifs; Musée d’Art Industriel Ancien; Pavilion des Passions Humaines (designed by Victor Horta) (1878–1908). Scientific researchers and traders in Africa collected souvenirs and curios which were sold and exhibited in western Europe until Léopold insisted that significant material was state property; 250,000 agricultural and musical objects, masks, sacred objects and weapons from central Africa acquired by Léopold were exhibited in the BrusselsTervuren Exposition 1897. Dutch trade in raw materials, dyes, spices, coffee and sugar with the East Indies was extensive. Exchange trade in textiles brought batik and art objects from Southeast and East Asia into the hands of Dutch private collectors and into ethnographic museums and galleries. Javanese art influenced the Dutch Symbolists, particularly Jan Toorop. Japanese art and artefacts were collected by colonial officials and brought to the Netherlands, although the Dutch monopoly on trade with Japan was broken by America in 1850. Japanese material was displayed in the Hague in the Royal Cabinet of Curiosities before 1835, and formed the nucleus of the National Museum of Ethnology, Leiden. Japanese goods and prints were exhibited in Antwerp’s Exposition Universelles in 1885 and sold in Belgian and Dutch cities. Prints bought by artists, including van Gogh, offered new visual forms to western artists. HENDRIK WILLEM MESDAG, Bluff-bowed Fishing Boats on the Beach, 1870s, oil on panel. Scheveningen, near The Hague, offered numerous subjects for artists; the men and women of the fishing industry, the boats, sea and tourists. Mesdag's grandest work, Panorama Mesdag, was funded by a Belgian entrepreneur. It is a huge circular painting made with assistance from five artists, including Sientje Mesdag, from topographical sketches and photographs panoramically representing the old fishing village of Scheveningen. Resources and Collections Natural resources and industry: agriculture fishing grounds coal iron steel glassmaking flax lace carpets porphyry imported goods Artistic institutions: national museums ethnographic collections international exhibitions S L P 2 2a Brussels new museums with historical and contemporary European art new museum showing African art key buildings areas with important Art Nouveau buildings 1895-1909 ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 228 THE NETHERLANDS AND BELGIUM were under Austrian then French domination (1794–1813), becoming one nation, the United Kingdom of the Netherlands (1815–30), following victory over Napoleon at Waterloo. French Beaux Arts traditions in art and architecture remained strong, particularly the Romantic tradition, seen in the work of Antoine Wiertz. In 1830 Belgian independence was established under Leopold of Saxe-CoburgGotha. The cultural institutions, museums and galleries of each new state were fundamental to the formation of national unity and identity. BELGIUM AFTER 1830 Belgium became the fifth-largest industrial state in Europe, dominated after 1848 by a wealthy urban bourgeoisie. Heavy industries expanded in the Wallonian French-speaking provinces, while the development of the port of Antwerp and a rail network allowed the global circulation of goods from, and into, Belgium. Working-class radicalism flourished in the poor conditions of factory workers in the textile, mining, steel and glass industries. The emergent Socialist movement had a profound cultural impact in Belgium. Artists committed to social change and reform in industrial production depicted these workers; Vincent van Gogh (1853–90) worked among Borinage miners, and Constantin Meunier (1831–1905) painted and drew in the industrial Liège basin and Antwerp docks. His Monument to Labour was installed in the Place de Trooz, Brussels. THE NETHERLANDS AFTER 1830 Land, water and wind, the natural elements of the Dutch landscape, remained its most valuable natural resources. Agriculture, mainly dairy and potatoes, and fishing flourished. Engineering and scientific skills were built on traditional expertise, used over the centuries to drain sea and lakes. The Dutch landscape provided rich subject matter for artists, who were inspired by seventeenth-century precedents. The English artist J. M. W. Turner chose a Jan van Goyen subject on his first visit in 1817, while artists from France, England, Germany, Japan and North America were drawn to the atmospheric land- and seascapes. Utilizing the rail networks, art colonies flourished along the Dutch coast, at Egmond, the island of Marken, Volendam, Zandvoort, Katwijk and Domburg, and inland at Laren, THE NETHERLANDS AND BELGIUM 1800-1900 51˚ Nijmegen Arnhem Laren Groningen Volendam Utrecht Zandvoort Leeuwarden ’s-Hertogenbosch (Bois-le-Duc) Brussels Charleroi Nuenen Heeze Ostend Zundert Brabant Liège SeraingMons Courtrai (Kortrijk) Laethem-Saint-Martin Domburg The Hague Leiden Scheveningen Katwijk aan Zee Bruges Rotterdam Dordrecht Maastricht Antwerp Amsterdam Tournai Ghent Egmond aan Zee Rhine Waal Scheldt Meuse(M aas) ZUIDER ZEE (IJSSELMEER) N O R T H S E A D R E N T H E BORINAGE BELGIUM FRANCE GERMANY NETHERLANDS 1869 1870s to London, England summers, 1897-1928 1881 Den Haag 1875 1869 from Java 1883-5 1885 1902 1882 1900 1886toParis 1887-90 to England & Brussels N 0 0 30 miles 40 kms Artists’ Colonies 1 Laren (1871-1886):A. Neuheuys;A. Mauve;W. Moes; P. Gabriel; Max Liebermann; Laura Knight 2 Laethem-Saint-Martin (1898):Valerius de Saedeleer; G Minne; G.Van Woestijne 3 Egmond aan Zee (1883-1903): Jozef Israëls; Isaac Israëls; J.M.Whistler 4 Katwijk aan Zee (1880-1914): J. Israëls; Jan Toorop; Max Liebermann 5 Domburg (1897-1900) J.Toorop; J.M.Whistler 6 Volendam (1880-1914): C. Beaux; E.Armstrong; Stanhope Forbes; G. Clausen; G. Seurat 7 Zandvoort (1855): J. Israëls 1 7 5 6 3 4 2 to Paris: Ary Scheffer; J.B. Jongkind 1846; Willem Mathijs 1869-1877; Jacob Maris 1865-71; George Breitner 1884 1883 to Drenthe with G. Breitner and A. Van Rappard Jacques-Louis David 1815; Auguste Rodin 1870s; Claude Monet 1870s; Georges Seurat 1886 from America and Britain: James McNeill Whistler 1863, 1882, 1884; Seymour Hayden 1863; A. Stieglitz 1894; A. L. Coburn 1908 from France: Charles Daubigny, Claude Monet 1871-2, 1874 to England: L. Alma-Tadema 1870; Maathijs Maris 1877-1917; I. Israëls 1914-20 1 HISTORIC WORKS from Belgium and the Netherlands were acquired by American museums and European, British and American artists came to Dutch and Belgian art colonies. Colonial expansion brought imports of African, East Asian and Japanese art. Amsterdam was a major marketplace for colonial products and a cultural centre for artists, photographers and tourists. Heeze and Laethem-Saint-Maarten in Belgium. Van Gogh made numerous drawings and paintings of agricultural landscapes and workers, weavers and their looms, potato production and consumption on the moors and peat bogs of Drenthe (1883) and in Brabant (1881 and 1883–5). The market for Dutch landscape painting expanded to America, Europe, Australia, New Zealand and Britain. The Hague School (1870–85) formed when a number of artists including Jozef Israëls, Anton Mauve, the Maris brothers and H. W. Mesdag, began painting the landscape, sea and fishing communities at nearby Scheveningen in a characteristic sketchy style with a grey palette. The land reclamation schemes of engineers had created the unique Dutch landscape, and railways now made it accessible. It was artists and photographers. however, who now turned the landscape into a popular tourist attraction. METROPOLITAN CENTRES Wealth and power resided in the metropolitan centres, where collections of national and global artefacts were displayed in private and public collections. Symbolism and Impressionism flourished in Brussels where artists and writers embraced socialist and anarchistic politics. Les XX (‘Les Vingt’, 1883–93), became the leading exhibition space and forum for avant-garde ideas and included European, British and American artists. James Ensor's giant canvas Christ’s Entry into Brussels in 1889, was rejected by Les Vingt. The painting represents the imagined entry of Christ into Brussels as part of a socialist demonstration and a Mardi Gras, drawing on long-standing Belgian traditions of masked carnival. The flourishing of the Belgian iron, glass and steel industries underpinned the development of Art Nouveau, which became Museum Amstelkring 1888 Zoological Gardens Diamond Workers Union HQ 1898-1900 (architect H.P. Berlage) Fodor 1869 Paleis van Volksvleit 1864 (destroyed by fire 1929) Rijksmuseum 1876-85 Stedelijk Museum 1891-95 Councertegebouw 1883 (architect A.L. van Gendt) Arti et Amicitiae 1855 De Beurs (Stock Exchange) 1898-1903 (architect H.P. Berlage) Multatuli’s House Line of removed fortification West Dock East Dock Am stel N 0 250 m Artists and Photographers working in Amsterdam Thérèse Schwartze (1851-1918) George Breitner (1857-1923) Isaac Israëls (1865-1934) Willem Witsen (1860-1923) Jacob Olie (1834-1905) James McNeill Whistler 1863, 1882-83, 1889 STAIRWELL OF THE ART NOUVEAU Hotel van Eetvelde, Brussels, designed in 1895 by Victor Horta for Baron van Eetvelde, state secretary to the Independent Congo state. Like other houses Horta designed for wealthy Brussels clients, the stairwell is the pivot of the design, creating spatial fluidity and complexity. 1 Cross-Border Contacts French state of Belgium and Holland 1799-1813 United Kingdom of the Netherlands 1813-30 Holland 1813 Belgium 1830 artists arriving in the Netherlands artists leaving the Netherlands artists arriving in Belgium artistic colonies Journeys made by individual artists: Vincent Van Gogh 1853-90 Jan Toorop 1858-1928 Constant Meunier 1831-1905 1a Amsterdam new museums with historical and contemporary European art artists’ societies key buildings GERMANY AND SWITZERLAND 1800 –1900 231 Industrialization and commercialization had become nationwide by late in the century. They made the towns of the new German Empire look more alike, and the primarily industrial towns of the Ruhr, Upper Saxony or eastern Upper-Silesia assumed some cultural status, too. Finally, the rise of art publishing on a mass scale, centred in Leipzig and Munich, led to a further democratization of fine art. SWITZERLAND Swiss patronage in the nineteenth century also reflected a background context of urban and regional independence. Within the old Roman/German empire (which included the lands that became French- and Italian-speaking Switzerland) the Swiss had gradually gained their independence and kept their religious freedom (which mostly meant Protestantism). Unlike the Germans, however, the Swiss virtually eliminated rule by princelings. Like Germany, Switzerland was a federal state, and, typically, the federal capital, Bern (from 1848), was only the fourth city in most other respects, after Basle, Zurich and Geneva. Thus one expects no ‘official’ patronage, but the situation is more complex. Most museums were founded by artists’ associations, but the Basle collection was municipal from the seventeenth century onwards, and the Schweizerisches Landesmuseum in Zurich was a federal institution. ARTISTIC MOVEMENTS Regional institutionalism was counterbalanced by artistic movements. Almost by definition, Classicism, Romanticism, Medievalism, Realism, Impressionism and Modernism ignore political boundaries. In any case, many of the movements were directed not from within Germany, but by the major European art centres outside. Rome had been a centre of ‘German’ art since the growth of the Grand Tour from the 1770s. During the 1860s and from the late 1890s Germans joined most other Europeans in flocking to Paris. There were also Copenhagen (in the early nineteenth century), Brussels (in the 1840s) and England (for late nineteenth-century painting and applied arts). Art-geography in German-speaking countries is highly complex where pan-Europeanism interacts with nationalism – for instance, the Nazarene Brotherhood preached a new love of medieval German painting from Rome, and Gothic Revivalists looked to England. PanGerman nationalism increasingly interacted with, or conflicted with, the revival of regional vernacular styles. Its first manifestations were artists’ colonies in the countryside. Did Bavarianism, to name the most pervasive of them, belong to greater German culture or to the wider current of ‘Alpinism’ which included the Tyroleans and the Swiss? The fundamental German problem was that a definition of panGerman art remained elusive. 20˚10˚ 50˚ Hermannsdenkmal Hohensyburg Völkerschlachtdenkmal/Leipzig Niederwalddenkmal Porta Wesfalica Minden Kyffhäuserdenkmal Koblenz Binz Marienburg ReinhardsbrunnSchloss Drachenburg Stolzenfels Rheinstein Moschen Koppitz Landsberg/Meiningen HohenzollernHoch Königsburg Neuschwanstein Hohenschwangau Babelsberg Wartburg Elbe Oder Danube Rhine Vistula L. Geneva N O R T H S E A B A L T I C S E A A L P S SWITZERLAND LIECHTENSTEIN LUXEMBOURG F R A N C E I T A L Y NETHERLAN DS BELGIUM D E N M A R K SWEDEN AUSTRO-HUNGARIAN EMPIRE R U S S I A N E M P I R E G E R M A N E M P I R E 8 7 16 15 6 5 1413 4 3 12 11 21 10 9 Friedrich Modersohn-Becker Liebermann Blechen Leistikow Rethel Schirmer Friedri ch Spitzweg Schwind Kandinsky Münter Defregger Segantini KochHodler Courbet Thoma Leibl Calame Jura ALTES LAND OBERHESSEN ELSASS (ALSACE) SCHWARZWALD (BLACK FOREST) OBERBAYERN (ALPS) SWISS ALPS THURINGIAN POTTERY WESTERWALD POTTERY N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms Artists’ Colonies 1. Sylt, Föhr,Amrum, from c.1850 2. Ekensund, c.1830/1864 3. Rügen,Vilm, Hiddensee, c.1830 4.Ahrenshoop, 1889 5. Nidden, c.1880 6. Daugart, c.1910 7.Worpswede, 1884 8. Goppeln, c.1890 9. Schreiberhau, c.1890 10.Willingshausen, 1814 11. Kronberg im Taunus, 1857 12. Grötzingen, 1877 13. Dachau, c.1850 14. Osternberg, c.1870-80 15. Frauenchiemsee, 1828 16. Murnau, 1908 2 THE DIVERSITY OF LANDSCAPES Artists and antiquarians liked to emphasize the diversity of landscapes in West-Central Europe; folklore studies drew attention to regional peasant dress and later indigenous craft products. Large-scale sculptural and architectonic monuments, celebrating moments of German history, as well as the numerous castellated mansions, also interpreted the landscape. RIGHT: THE EXPULSION OF ST. ELISABETH (of Hungary) (1855) by Moritz von Schwind (1804–71), fresco, Wartburg Castle. The Grand-Duchy of Sachsen-Weimar-Eisenach had few equals for cultural influence. It played host to the poets Goethe and Schiller and initiated the Bauhaus movement of the architect Walter Gropius (1883– 1969). The castle, near Eisenach, was fitted out with frescoes, romantically depicting episodes from its own medieval history. ABOVE: THE KÖNIGSPLATZ IN MUNICH (1815–60). In the early nineteenth century Bavaria became a kingdom under Ludwig I (r.1825–48), who was personally acquainted with the artistic avant-garde. He made Munich his seat of government, the art capital of Germany, by creating grandiose avenues, squares, monuments (including the Propylaen, bottom right) and museums, the first being the Glyptothek (right), for Antique sculpture. 2 Romanticized Landscape boundary of German Empire, 1871 19th and early 20th-century artist's colonies, with date major areas of activity of landscape painters popular stretches of rivers areas of mid-/late 19th-century interest in folklore/crafts revivals castellated country houses/extensively rebuilt medieval ruined castles sculptural/architectural public monument in landscaped surroundings 1 ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 230 IT IS WELL KNOWN that the history of German-speaking Europe is one of drastically shifting external borders. However, what is less often realized is that there are traditionally strong internal borders that have changed little. As far as many regionally minded Germans are concerned, they are still very much with us today. They developed during many centuries preceding the abolition of the old Roman/German empire in 1803 and they continued through the unification process of the Second German Empire under Prussian rule from 1866 to 1918. Furthermore, there has never been a real centre in Germany; the country was and is truly federal. Competition between centres has always been inbuilt. GERMAN DIVERSITY One major difference between regions that carried on from the centuries before was religion. During the Reformation the principle was Cuius regio, eius religio (‘of that kingdom, of that religion’): it was each prince’s decision whether his principality would become Protestant or remain Catholic. Another difference between German regions is the vast range of sizes of regional units. What is singular in Germany is that there is not the same number of similarly mediumsized regions as found in France or Italy. Between 1815 and 1866 Prussia and Bavaria were virtually independent countries on a European scale. Their capitals, Berlin and Munich, both ranked among the top ten European art centres. But there were also the small, and even the diminutive princelings and their ‘capitals’. PRINCELY PATRONAGE AND PUBLIC SPIRIT The Grand Duchy of Oldenburg, largely rural, comprised about 250,000 inhabitants. Its capital, Oldenburg, with some 30,000 inhabitants, sported a picture gallery, a museum of natural history, a theatre and a public library, all purpose-built. In even smaller Meiningen, in the dukedom of Saxe-Meiningen, the Duke’s Van Ruisdaels and Botticellis were accessible in his palace, and the town’s large, purpose-built theatre/opera house became world famous for its first performances of works by Brahms and Richard Strauss and for its historicist stage sets. Of course, one may compare this kind of patronage with that of the aristocracy throughout Europe, but as the German princes were still to some extent sovereigns (until 1918) there was a unique process that gradually transformed privately funded institutions into state ones. Today, the tiny principality of Liechtenstein is a lone survivor of this ancient tradition. A somewhat different kind of public spirit can be found in the ancient ‘free cities’ of the old Roman/German empire and in other large cities that were not capitals of principalities, such as Frankfurt am Main, Hamburg, Bremen, Strassburg, Cologne, Leipzig or Breslau (Wroclaw). Patronage came from local citizens and corporate bodies. Most towns also had art societies (Kunstvereine). GERMANY AND SWITZERLAND 1800-1900 20˚10˚ 50˚ Elbe Oder Danube Rhine Vistula N O R T H S E A B A L T I C S E A A L P S SWITZERLAND LIECHTENSTEIN F R A N C E LUX. I T A L Y N E T H E R L A N D S B E L G I U M D E N M A R K A U S T R I A B O H E M I A B A V A R I A E A S T P R U S S I A W E S T P R U S S I A B R A N D E N B U R G THURINGIA B A D E N S A X O N Y H U N G A R Y SWEDEN R U S S I A P O M E R A N I A S I L E S I A MECKLENBURG H A N O V E R W E S T P H A L I A W ÜRT TEM BERG P R U S S I A Berlin Schwerin Strehlitz Schleswig Kiel Oldenburg Hanover Brunswick Dessau Kassel Arolsen Wiesbaden Strassburg Dresden Munich Gera Mannheim Karlsruhe Stuttgart Darmstadt Mainz Nuremberg Bayreuth Coburg Meiningen AltenburgWeimarGotha Sondershausen Posen (Poznan)´ Stettin (Szczecin) Rostock Lübeck Düsseldorf Cologne Vaduz Hamburg Bremen Hagen Frankfurt am Main Geneva Zurich Bern Basle Leipzig Detmold Bückeburg Königsberg (Kaliningrad) Danzig (Gdansk)´ Breslau (Wroclaw) 1 Centres of Art: Princely and State Support boundary of German Confederation,1815 boundary of German Empire, 1871 Prussia, 1815 Prussian gains, 1866 other German states, 1866 Austria-Hungary, 1867 major cultural / regional centre other cultural centre major provincial town town with institutions founded by private / corporate donors major 19th-century museum other 19th-century museum museum of 19th-century fine art museum for applied arts regional / folk art collection classical sculpture / old master paintings other kinds of European art / historical objects theatre / opera house / concert hall art academy ruler‘s town palace government building N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 THE FEDERAL NATURE of German art institutions reflects all the major, and some of the minor, regional divisions within the country, shown here essentially as they were between 1866 and 1918. The twentieth century would greatly change the external borders, but the internal art map today remains virtually unchanged since the 1800s. FRANCE 1800–1900 233 CLAUDE MONET, A Train in the Countryside, 1870. More affordable and easy travel by rail facilitated a blossoming of French landscape painting. Impressionist paintings of the 1860s highlighted the encroachment of metropolitan ‘modernity’ upon the verdant riverside suburbs of Paris, as with Monet’s suburban commuter train and promenading day-tripper. However, by the 1890s, much Impressionist and Post-Impressionist painting celebrated a nostalgic vision of unpopulated nature, typified by Monet’s Giverny water garden or Van Gogh’s and Cézanne’s Provence. passion for the lush, individualistic images of a timeless countryside, be it Rousseau’s Fontainebleau forest, Monet’s Normandy or Gauguin’s Pont-Aven, reflects the blend of nostalgia and anxiety which the new predominance of the industrial city fuelled. Paris’s dominance also inspired a contrasting desire to escape the uniformity and functionalism of modern metropolitan life. Artists of every style and vision sought out a dream of a simple and artistically sincere life amidst the regional peasantry. Bernard’s and Gauguin’s sojourn in Brittany in the late 1880s drew generations of artists to this distinctive maritime and medieval region. Monet was besieged by eager American acolytes at Giverny. American, British and Scandinavian artists created their own riverside Barbizon at Grez. While Van Gogh and Cézanne each wrestled in isolated studios in Provence, Signac founded an anarchist collective in the then unknown fishing village of St Tropez. The cultural hegemony of Paris was also undermined by the artistic revival of provincial cities. This can be seen, for example, in the flowering of Art Nouveau design in Nancy, around Gallé and Majorelle, or the decoration in public buildings such as Puvis de Chavannes’s murals for the Palace of Fine Arts in Lyon. PARIS: CAPITAL OF THE ARTS The psychological and architectural axis of Paris, from the Arc de Triomphe to the Tuileries and the Louvre initiated by Napoleon I, was fully realized by Baron Haussmann for Napoleon III. Paris was transformed into a city of radial vistas, elegant if anonymous façades and entertainments from the Opéra to the brothel. It became the icon of the modern and the metropolitan in art. This unprecedented display of arts, from antiquities like the Luxor obelisk and the Venus de Milo to Dutch seventeenth-century landscapes to the panorama of contemporary trends in art at the World Fairs, annual Salons and independent exhibitions, drew art students, critics and collectors from every corner of the globe. Paris was the essential artistic début for any nineteenth-century artist of ambition. The eminent École des Beaux-Arts, coupled with more informal studios such as the Académie Julian, which accepted women students, made Paris an unsurpassed educational centre. The city and its environs also offered a vast array of more bohemian sites of learning. Urban cafés, such as Manet’s and Baudelaire’s Café Guerbois and the Café des Nouvelles Athènes, were frequented by the Impressionists, while suburban guingettes (riverside cafés) like La Grenouillière were immortalized by Renoir and Monet. The fin de siècle cabarets of Montmartre, the Chat Noir and the Moulin Rouge were celebrated by Toulouse-Lautrec and drew the young Picasso to Paris in 1899. Paris had an unprecedented concentration of artistic spaces, from the private art galleries and auction houses of international repute on the rue Lafitte, to elegant restaurants such as Maxime’s and the Café Anglais. Exclusive proponents of haute couture and design, such as fashion designer Worth, the jeweller Fouquet or the interior design impresario Siegfried Bing, chose to open their boutiques in Paris. Both these more elite shops and the vast departments stores such as the Bon Marché or the Samaritaine fostered some of the most innovative architectural and sociological experiments of the age. Franz Jourdain’s Samaritaine, for example, was the apotheosis of Art Nouveau extravagance, as well as being systematically functional. N N N Seine Ave des Champs-Élysées Boulevard St Germain Rue de Rivoli Ave de l’Opéra Bois de Boulogne Buttes-Chaumont Bois de Vincennes Tuileries Montsouris Luxembourg Pl.d’Italie Pl.de la République Pl.Pigalle Pl.de la Bastille École des BeauxArts Institut de France Gobelins TapestryManufacturers EiffelTower1889 Salons,Champ de Mars Palais duTrocadéro 1878 Grand et Petit Palais 1900 Salons,Champs Élysées Rue Lafitte (art dealers) Louvre Musée de Luxembourg Gare de l’Est Gare de Lyon Gare d’Orsay Gare du Nord Gare St Lazare Pont Neuf(painted byPissarro,Monet etc) PontAlexandre Pont des Arts (painted byRenoir) Arc de Triomphe 1806-36 CarrouselTriumphalArch 1805 St Germain des Prés (Flandrin murals) Tuileries Palace Folies Bergères LesHalles 1854-66 Hôtel de Ville Panthéon CastelBéranger (Guimard) Samaritaine (department store-Jourdain) Maxime’s Grand Café (first cinema) Chat Noir Moulin Rouge Guimard Synagogue Triumph ofthe Republic (Dalou) Batignolles (Peladan) Passy(Bashkirtseff,Manet,Morisot) Invalides (Napoleon 1840) Montparnasse (Baudelaire,Fantin-Latour,Rude) PASSY LAVILLETTE BELLEVILLE CHARONNE BERCY AUSTERLITZ MONTROUGE LESBATIGNOLLES AUTEUIL MONTM AR TRE 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 1012 14 13 11 N 0 0 1 mile 1.5 kms 2 Paris,Hub of the 19th-Century ArtWorld artistic institution 1Académie Julian,2 First Impressionist Exhibition,Nadar’s Studio 3 Conservatoire National des Arts et Métiers Royalist site (Restoration/Louis Philippe) 4 Obelisk 1829,5 Madeleine Church 1842 Haussmann/Impressionist site 6 Café Guerbois,7 Garnier’s Opera,8 Moulin de la Galette 9 Café des Nouvelles Athènes,10 Sacré Coeur 1876-1914 11 St Sulpice (Delacroix murals) 1849-61 Fin de Siècle site important tomb 12 Montmartre (Degas,Creuze,Scheffer) 13 Père Lachaise (Champollion,Baron Haussmann,Pissarro,Géricault,Ingres, Lalique,Daumier,Corot,David d’Angers,Nadar,Seurat,Delacroix,David, Bonheur,Wilde,Rodenbach,Noir) Napoleonic monument 14 Vendôme Column park bridge railway station Thiers fortifications N 2 PARIS WAS A UNIQUE artistic centre in the nineteenth century, from Napoleon’s monuments to Toulouse-Lautrec’s Moulin Rouge. Art students came from all over the world to learn in its museums, studios and cafés, while ambitious artists battled for fame and commissions at its Salons, World Fairs and exhibitions. Posthumous celebrity could be assured in the pantheon of cemeteries like Père Lachaise. Auvers Épinay Gennevilliers Asnières Clichy Ile de la Grande Jatte Bougival St-Cloud Billancourt Argenteuil Chatou St Germain -en-Laye Marly-le-Roi Louveciennes La Celle-St Cloud Versailles Chennevières Puteaux Pontoise Osny Seine PARIS Inset Suburbs painted by Impressionist and Post-Impressionist painters ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 232 THE LEGACY of Napoleon cannot be overstated. During his brief regime, he not only centralized most of Europe and the Near East politically, but also culturally, setting a precedent for France’s invasion and pillaging of each new territory by sending legions of scholars and artists as well as soldiers. Baron Vivant Denon’s Description de l’Egypte of 1809–29 informed the distinctive Orientalism of Maxime Du Camp’s photo albums or the paintings of Vernet, Fromentin, Delacroix and Gérome of the second half of the century. The popularity and refinement of French design emanating from the national manufactures of porcelain at Sèvres (near Paris) and textiles at Gobelins, set up by Napoleon, fostered the culture of technical innovation and skill required by Art Nouveau designers such as Lalique or Guimard at the end of the century. THE ESCAPE TO THE COUNTRY The volatility of France’s political identity over the century, the unrelenting migration to cities such as Paris, Lyon and Marseille by workmen, artists and the middle classes, and the expansion of the railways fostered the vogue for landscape painting. The nineteenth-century FRANCE 1800-1900 0˚ 50˚ Sainte-Adresse Deauville Honfleur Paris Fontainebleau Moret Ornans Nice Marseille Montpellier Antibes St Tropez Toulon Aix-en-Provence L’Estaque Drôme Nancy Grez Clermont-Ferrand Commentry Lyon Le Creusot Besançon Dijon Barbizon Marlotte Orléans Rouen Calais Dunkerque Lille Louvain Giverny Étretat Varengeville TrouvilleGrandcamp Caen Cherbourg Brest Quimper Pont-Aven Nantes Tours Rennes Poitiers Bordeaux Toulouse Carcassonne Concarneau Lorient Ebro Garo nne Dordogne Loire Seine Rhône Meuse N O R T H S E A B A Y O F B I S C A Y E N G L I S H C H A N N E L M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A P Y R E N E E S A L P S B R I T TA N Y N O R M A N D Y F R A N C H E C O M T É P R O V E N C E ALSCACE LO RRA INE U N I T E D K I N G D O M F R A N C E S P A I N I T A L Y G E R M A N E M P I R E B E L G I U M LUXEMBOURG S W I T Z E R L A N D Palais Idéal du Facteur Cheval Hautrives 1879-1912 American painters, sculptors, architects to École des Beaux Arts, Académie Julian, Paris Brittany, Monet’s Giverny 1883 Munch to Paris British Impressionists study in Paris 1870s Dutch Old Master landscapes inspire Barbizon painters 1830s Barbizon (1830s), Impressionist (1880s), Symbolist (1890s) painters visit Rome (School of David, École de Rome), continues throughout century Flaubert and photographer Maxime du Camp to Egypt and Near East, 1849–51; Delacroix to Algeria and Morocco, 1832; Gérôme, repeatedly from 1856, to Africa and Near East. Many artists, including Bonnat and Fromentin, attend opening of Suez Canal 1869 Antiquities, Denon’s Description de l’Egypte, Obelisk from Luxor gift to Charles X 1829 Impressionists, Post-Impressionists exhibit in Brussels 1880s, 1890sRoderic O’Connor to Pont-Aven 1889 Munch and Scandinavian Pont-Aven colony Pissarro, Monet flee the Commune 1870 Art dealers Durand-Ruel, Goupil bring Impressionist Art to London 1870 Alexander Reid brings Impressionism to Glasgow 1880s Durand-Ruel exhibits Impressionist paintings in New York 1886, Chicago 1870s onwards. Cassatt advises American collectors to purchase European art Gauguin to Tahiti 1891-93, 1895-1901 Japanese prints and objets d’art c. 1860s, Paris Fair 1878 Gauguin from Peru 1855 Pissarro from Virgin Islands 1842 Venus de Milo 1820 from Greece N 0 0 400 miles 500 kms 1 FRANCE EXPERIENCED unprecedented political and cultural upheavals in the nineteenth century, enduring revolutions and everchanging governments from empire to monarchy and commune. Military and economic defeat by Britain, Prussia and America helped inspire France’s selfpromotion as a centre for luxury goods and the arts rather than industrial might. THE VENDÔME COLUMN Forged from cannons from the Battle of Austerlitz (1805), Bergeret’s basreliefs of Napoleon’s victories and Gondouin’s and Lepère’s toga-clad emperor were replaced by a fleur-de-lys during the Restoration. Louis Philippe erected a new statue of Napoleon in a frock coat. The column, toppled by Courbet during the 1870 Commune, was re-erected in 1874. coal mining ironworking steel engineering chemicals shipyard textiles 1 Regionalism and Industrial Revolution artists’ colonies movement of artists railways to 1848 railways to 1860 SPAIN AND PORTUGAL 1800–1900 235 ANTONÍ GAUDÍ, EXPIATORY CHURCH of the Sagrada Familia, Barcelona, begun 1883. The Sagrada Familia by Gaudí (1852–1926) provokes questions about whether it should be called architecture or sculpture. For Gaudí, the architect was only the humble instrument of a Divine Power, and each form was to be fraught with mystical symbolism. He said his architectural operations led to ‘the physical revelation of Divinity’, conforming to ‘the laws of Creation and Nature’ to achieve a spiritual result. 0˚10˚ 40˚ Barcelona Universidad Literaria (Rogent, 1863-72) La Sagrada Familia (Gaudí, begun 1883) Zaragoza Valencia Seville monument to Juan de Ribera (Benlliure, 1895-96) monument to the Marqués de Campo (Benlliure, 1889-1902) Plaza de Toros (Monleón, 1850) monument to Cervantes (Solá, 1835) Columbus (Mélida, 1881-85) Velázquez (Marinas, 1899) Madrid expropriation of church properties for secular building, 1836 Escuela de Arquitectura, 1844 Biblioteca Nacional (Jareño, 1865) Plaza de Toros (Ayuso, 1874) Almudena Cathedral (de Cubas, 1883) Banco de España (Adaro, 1884-91) Atocha Station (de Palacio, 1889-92) Lisbon early 19th-century urban renewal; Santa Justa Lift (Eiffel, 1898-1901) Funerary monument of Columbus (Mélida, 1892) Pena Palace (von Eschwege), 1840-50 Sintra Oporto monument to Ramon de Pignatelli (Palao, 1859) monument to Columbus (Atché et al, 1882-88) Ponte Maria Pia (Eiffel, 1877) Ebro Tagus G uadalquivir Duero ATLANTIC OCEAN M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A P Y R E N E E S B A L E A R I C I S S P A I N F R A N C E PORTUGAL 2 Architecture and Monumental Art, 1800-1900 major works of architecture major works of sculpture N 0 0 150 miles 200 kms 2 AN ACADEMY OF FINE ARTS was founded in Lisbon in 1836. As a result of Napoleonic looting, the Galerie Espagnol opened in 1838 in the Louvre, Paris. Spain became an ‘exotic’ tourist mecca. Major French artists who visited Spain and depicted local scenes were Eugène Delacroix (1832) and Gustave Doré (1862). In Seville the Costumbrismo school of genre painting depicting exotic local customs, flourished, while Valencia espoused Impressionism, and Barcelona fostered a Spanish version of French Symbolist art. Barcelona. Els Quartre Gats café, founded in 1897, became a gathering place of the avant-garde in Barcelona; Picasso had his first show there in 1900. IBERIAN ARCHITECTURE In 1758, an earthquake levelled the city of Lisbon. A comprehensive project for urban renewal commenced with the plan by Manuel da Maia, approved in April 1756, for the Baixa district facing the harbour. The Peña Palace at Sintra, near Lisbon, designed by a German, Baron Wilhelm von FRANCISCO GOYA, The Third of May, 1808, 1814. Responding to the Napoleonic invasion of his homeland, Goya (1746–1828) recreated in horrifying detail the vengeance of the French against mostly innocent civilians following an uprising in Madrid. Here Goya invented a wholly modern variation of history painting which may be called the ‘atrocity picture’. Goya’s modern mutation puts a conventional religious subject, ‘The Massacre of the Innocents’, into a secular and contemporary, anonymous and politicized context. Eschwege, was built between 1840 and 1850. Inspired by Ludwig II’s Neuschwanstein Palace in Bavaria, it inaugurated a Portuguese taste for Wagnerian fantasy. In Madrid the expropriation of church properties by the state in 1836 freed up threequarters of the centre of the capital for secular rebuilding, administrative buildings and mass housing. In 1844 the Escuela de Arquitectura, independent of the Royal Academy of Art, was founded in Madrid; it declared architecture a ‘technical science’, one advancing modern technology in the service of pragmatic goals, especially mass housing. A multi-volume Monumentos arquitectónicos de España, published in 1859, defined the ‘national artistic identity’. Giving new prominence to Arabic monuments, it encouraged historical eclecticism, and a Neo-Gothic revival. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 234 continued to be the central art school well into the twentieth century. The most important art collection in Iberia was in Madrid, where the Prado was made a public museum of painting in 1819 (it was originally built, in 1785–1808, to serve as a museum of natural history). In Lisbon the Academy of Fine Arts was founded in 1836, but no figures of international status emerged. After Goya’s death, a dour and wholly secular ‘history’ painting predominated in government commissions; major artists were Antonio Esquivel (1806–57), Antonio Gisbert Pérez (1834–1901) and Eduardo Rosales (1836–73). Later, in Valencia an Impressionisttype of folklorish genre painting was popularized by Joaquín Sorolla (1863–1923); in Barcelona a Spanish version of French Symbolist art was practised by Santiago Rusiñol (1861–1931), Ramón Casas (1866–1932) and Joaquim Míro (1873–1940). Following the precedent set by grandiose (and profitable) trade-fair ‘international expositions’ mounted in England and France, the Universal Exposition of 1888 was staged in THE NINETEENTH CENTURY was a time of social unrest and economic upheaval throughout the Iberian Peninsula, beginning dramatically with the Napoleonic invasions of 1808–12. Spain’s political impotence led to the loss of its American colonies – and their trade – (some 50 percent of all Spanish trade in 1800), starting with Paraguay, in 1811. In 1822, Brazil seceded from Portugal, precipitating an economic crisis. The disruptive Carlist Wars in Spain (1833–76) paralleled the Miguelista upheavals in Portugal; both involved revolts against the installation of a female ruler. In 1898, the loss of Cuba and the Philippines to the United States signalled the end of the Spanish Empire. GOYA’S ‘TERRIBLE’ VISION Against this backdrop of foreign domination and national debilitation, the culminating stages of outraged expression attained in the art of Francisco de Goya y Lucientes (1746–1828) after 1799 seem astonishing. Goya’s artistic evolution points to a delayed reaffirmation of Spanish paradigms of spontaneous, direct expression and ethical ‘naturalism’, an attitude which seeks to capture life as it is, without the distortions of idealism. By his increasing attachment to social commentary, he returned to that native tradition which considers painting as a vehicle for moral instruction as opposed to the concept of painting for art’s sake. In so doing, Goya seemed also to have invented modern art; at least one underlying modernist conviction – nihilism – propelled much of his anarchic pessimism, irrationality and anticonventionality. Goya’s ‘terrible’ vision bears objective witness and is a precocious parallel to the best of modern journalism. SCHOOLS OF PAINTING Celebrated by visiting Romantic writers and major French artists – including Victor Hugo, Washington Irving, Alexandre Dumas, Prosper Mérimée, Eugène Delacroix and Gustave Doré – Spain suddenly became an exotic tourist mecca. The impact of these foreign men of letters on Spanish visual culture was to encourage Costumbrismo, genre paintings that were a studied, anecdotal depiction of native life and contemporary customs. Major practitioners were José Domínguez Bécquer (1810–41), Manuel Cabral Bejarano (1827–91) and Valeriano Domínguez Bécquer (1833–70). Outside of the School of Seville, the most prominent exponent was the Catalan painter Mariano Fortuny (1838–74). In Madrid Goya, appointed ‘Principal Painter to the King’ in 1799, devoted much of his time to society portraits. He published the ‘underground’ engraving series, the Caprichos, in 1799; another ‘underground’ engraving series, the Disparates or Proverbios, was only published posthumously, in 1864. This vision reached an unprecedented climax in Goya’s cycle of ‘black paintings’ (c.1820–22) placed in his private villa, the Quinta del Sordo. The Fine Arts Academy of San Fernando in Madrid, given a royal charter in 1744, SPAIN AND PORTUGAL 1800-1900 0˚ 40˚ Barcelona Mataró Sabadell Olot Ripoll Arenys Rambla de Santa Coloma Corominas Tarragona Gerona Zaragoza Buñol Palma ValenciaAlbacete Cuenca Alicante Alcoy Murcia Cartagena Toledo Cáceres Almansa Castillejo Talavera Móstoles Guadalajara Jadraque Brihuega Segovia Ezcaray Aranjuez Manzanares Córdoba Úbeda Jerez Puerto Real Gibraltar (to UK) Melilla (to Spain) Ceuta (to Spain) Alcázar de San Juan Sanchidrián Salamanca MadridÁvila Daimiel Badajoz Baeza Granada Lorca Trocadero Cádiz Medina del Campo Burgos Bilbao La Cabada Pamplona Tolosa Santander San Sebastián Valladolid Caparroso Lérida Tarrasa Manresa Reus Lisbon Marvão Santarém Oporto El Ferrol Coimbra Seville Palencia Zamora Bragança Liérganes Oviedo La Coruña Ebro Tagus Guadalquivir Duero ATLANTIC OCEAN M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A P Y R E N E E S B A L E A R I C I S F R A N C E S P A I N A F R I C A P O R T U G A L 1802-12 Spanish art treasures plundered by French Delacroix, 1832 Doré, 1862 trade with New World declines after Brazilian independence, 1822 exports to England, France (wine, iron, lead) imports (manufactured goods) rise of cotton cloth industry contributes to 500% increase in population 1826-87 El Prado made public museum of painting, 1819 1 Portable Art, 1800-1900 main railways, 1860 Spanish trade routes Portuguese trade routes major industrialized areas silk production wool centres cotton manufacture chintz hat-making royal manufactory luxury goods decorative tiles iron and steel production arsenals schools of painting academies of art The Peninsular War, 1808-12: main area of British occupation main area of French occupation main area defended by Joseph Bonaparte against Spanish guerrillas main area of Spanish resistance to Bonaparte major uprisings against French rule Madrid Seville Valencia Barcelona Goya principal painter to the king from 1799; secular history painting (Esquivel, 1806-57; Gisbert Pérez, 1834-1901; Rosales, 1836-73) Costumbrismo genre painting (José Domínguez Bécquer, 1810-41; Bejarano, 1827-91; Valeriano Domínguez Bécquer, 1833-70) Impressionist-type genre painting (Sorolla, 1863-1923) Costumbrismo genre painting (Fortuny, 1838-74); Spanish version of Symbolist art (Rusiñol, 1861-1931; Casas, 1866-1932; Miró, 1873-1949); International Exhibition, 1888; Avant-garde meetings at Els Quatre Gats Café from 1897 Madrid Lisbon Fine Arts Academy of San Fernando, 1744 Academy of Fine Arts, 1836 N 0 0 150 miles 200 kms 1 NAPOLEONIC INVASIONS of the Iberian peninsula from 1808–12 resulted in a ‘War of Independence’, commemorated by Goya. Loss of the American colonies was accompanied by fragmentation in Spain (Carlist Wars, 1833–76) and the Miguelista revolts in Portugal. The economy revived with the rise of the cotton cloth industry in Catalonia. In 1848, the first railway linked Barcelona to Mataró. From 1826–87, the population of Barcelona rose 500 per cent. In 1898, the loss of Cuba and the Philippines marked the end of the Spanish Empire. 2 Garibaldi, Nationalism and the Macchiaioli Kingdom of Sardinia, 1815 territory annexed, 1859 territory annexed, May 1860 territory annexed, Nov 1860 territory annexed, 1866 territory lost to France, 1860 French from 1768, formerly Genoese Italian border, 1914 Garibaldi’s travels abroad Garibaldi’s route, 1860 support for Garibaldi from abroad route of Victor Emanuel, 1860 battle, with date nationalistic site represented in/decorated with art ITALY 1800–1900 237 NAPOLEON AS MARS, 1806, by Antonio Canova (1757–1822). Through an unconventional deployment of classical formulae, Canova typifies the emperor’s ambiguous status for Italians. Napoleon’s colossal scale and heroic posture as peaceful and victorious ruler is undermined by his hesitant step and distracted gaze. 10˚ 40˚ 1859 Magenta, 1859 1859 Naples Salerno Volturno Messina Catania Palermo Marsala Rome Pescara Siena Talamone Ancona Ravenna Modigliana Turin Milan Solferino Genoa Pisa Livorno Florence T Y R R H E N I A N S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A KINGDOM OF SARDINIA PAPAL STATES TUSCANY ROMAGNAPARMA NICE SAVOY LOMBARDY VENETIA CORSICA PIEDMONT M O DENA GENO A KING DOM OFTHETWOSICILIES F R A N C E SWITZERLAND A U S T R O - H U N G A R I A N E M P I R E to UK 1854, 1864 to USA 1850, 1853 to S America 1834, 1851 US ships Washington, Franklin, Oregon transport supplies to Garibaldi; African-American slaves arrive to fight with Garibaldi to Piedmont 1848, 1854 Siege (Borrani, Fanfani) Sicilian Campaign (Fattori) Victor Emanuel Monument Town Hall murals devoted to Victor Emanuel (Aldi) Lunettes in the Oratory of Madonna della Cantone (Lega) Battle of Solferino 1859 (Meissonier, Yvon) The 1000 taking Sicily (Fattori) Battle of Magenta, 1859 (Bertini, Fattori, Yvon) Piedmontese Assault on Madonna della Scoperta (Fattori) Death of Mazzini (Lega) N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 2 THE IMPACT OF ITALIAN unification and Garibaldi’s central role in this transformation of Italian cultural and political life cannot be underestimated. New artistic idioms and institutions that were enlisted to express national identity were intimately linked to the battles and personalities of the Risorgimento. Garibaldi’s romantic persona helped create the rhetoric of individualism and local pride developed by the Macchiaioli, a group of young artists based in Florence. PIETRO ALDI (1852–88) Victor Emanuel II with Garibaldi at the Gates of Teano, 1886–1891 Town Hall, Siena. Near Ambrogio Lorenzetti’s Good and Bad Government (1337–39), this later mural decoration memorializes the Risorgimento’s triumphs, celebrating Italy’s regions, the military victories and alliances leading to reunification. THE ARTISTIC LEGACY Direct experience of the achievements of classical architecture and Palladio’s later rearticulation of these vocabularies informed the work of many of the great nineteenth-century architects, from Sir John Soane to Charles Barry. New industrial millionaires commissioned Classical and Renaissance interiors to house their art collections. In this way, they cloaked their nouveau riche anxieties in the cultural authority of these golden ages, from the shipping magnate Frederick Leyland’s ‘Botticelli Room’ in his London town house to the Renaissance extravaganza in the AmesWebster House in Boston, Massachusetts. Important furniture firms such as the Gerson Weber Company in Stuttgart or the Bernhard Ludwig factory in Vienna specialized in historicist Italianate designs. Although overshadowed by the Classical tradition, the art and architecture of late medieval Italy attracted new attention in the nineteenth century. The German Nazarenes emulated idioms and techniques, such as fresco, favoured by late-medieval Italian artists. The Victorian aesthetician and supporter of the Pre-Raphaelites, John Ruskin, championed the sincerity and virtue of unknown medieval artisans who created the splendours of Italy’s cathedrals; they were alternative role models and antidotes for the slick, soulless paintings that mimicked Raphael and which he abhorred on the walls of the Royal Academy in London. ART OF THE RISORGIMENTO The importance of earlier masters was celebrated locally through initiatives such as the Titian memorial in Venice, but many young Italian painters sought new subjects and rhetorics for their art. Before the unification (see map 2) each of the regions had its own academy and local art schools; the tuition in these institutions centred on developing a capo lavoro, or masterwork, which was the test of matriculation. A group of young radical painters, principally from the northern regions of Italy, rejected such highly finished works and allegorical subjects, envisioning Italy’s desired nationhood by representing the events of local, contemporary life in dramatic sketchy paintings. Critics coined a resonant name for this group of young artists who met at the Café Michelangiolo in Florence, the Macchiaioli. This name couples macchia a term invoking the unusual rough touch of their brushwork – often likened to the vibrant surfaces and colouristic effects of the Impressionist painters working in France – and aiolo, a Latin name for the socially marginal plebeians of Florence. This direct correspondence between artistic and political identity reflected the direct involvement of these young artists in the struggle for nationhood and egalitarianism embodied in the figure of Giuseppe Garibaldi (1807–82). Several members of the Macchiaioli group were wounded veterans of Garibaldi’s fighting force, known as ‘The 1000’. Unification inspired artists to portray unusual themes as well as to attempt the centralization of exhibitions beginning with the First National Exhibition in Florence in 1861. The struggle for nationhood underlies many works of art: the battle paintings of Giovanni Fattori (1825–1908); the portraits and memorials to Victor Emanuel and Garibaldi by Silvestro Lega (1826–93) and Pietro Aldi (1852–88); landscapes by Odardo Borrani (1833–1905) of the post-unification reclaimed Maremma; and the modern life paintings of Giuseppe Abbati (1836–68), Telemaco Signorini (1835–1901), Borrani and Lega which subtly capture the complexities of visualizing nationhood and class in this brave new world. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 236 ITALY’S CULTURAL GLORIES, dating from many eras, were a major attraction to artists from all over Europe. Art academies encouraged their students to compete for scholarships and prizes to travel to Rome to consolidate their skills by copying Roman sculpture and the paintings of the Old Masters. French artists of every aesthetic allegiance recognized the importance of the Italian tradition; Corot, Renoir and Rodin as well as Ingres sketched in the Rome collections and surrounding campagna. The light and scenery of ITALY 1800-1900 10˚ 40˚ Ferrara Santa Croce sull’Arno Modigliana Bologna Florence Canova, Cammuccini, Costa Abbati, Cabianca, Fattori Café Michelangiolo Veduta painters, Signorini, Turner, Cooke, Whistler Fattori Martelli, Borrani Livorno Castiglioncello Pisa Rome Turin Naples Pesaro Milan Venice Verona to United Kingdom: Signorini to Paris: Canova, de Tivoli, Boldini, de Nittis, Zandomeneghi from France to School of David: Robert, Corot, Ingres, Degas, Renoir, Rodin, Péladan from United Kingdom/USA: to Naples: Eastlake, Anderson, Rossetti to Florence: Holman Hunt, Leighton, Burne-Jones, Powers to Rome, Royal Academy Schools: Westmacott, Barry to Venice: Sargent, Whistler, Turner, E.W. Cooke, Sickert to Palladian villas of N Italy: Soane, Nash from Germany: Nazarenes Titian memorial Gilded Salon of Poldi Pezzoli Palazzo Bagatti Valsecchi Spalla statues, Palazzo Stupinigi Palazzo Imperiale Tiber Arno Po T Y R R H E N I A N S E A A D R I A T I C S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A CORSICA ELBA N I C E S AV O Y P I E D M O N T L O M B A R D Y V E N E T I A R O M A G N A T U S C A N Y P A P A L S T A T E S PA R M A M A R EM M A G E N O A M O DENA FRANCE S W I T Z E R L A N D A U S T R O - H U N G A R I A N E M P I R E K I N G D O M O F T H E T W O SICILIES K I N G D O M O F S A R D I N I A ( K I N G D O M O F S A R D I N I A ) Abbati Veduta painters Martelli, Signorini Tivoli, Fattori Benvenuti Borrani d’Ancona Banti Lega Boldini Zandomeneghi CabiancaAppiani to USA: Ames-Webster House, Boston 1890-1900 to London: Botticelli Room for Leyland, 49 Prince’s Gate to Paris: Canova’s Napoleon statuary to Vienna: Bernhard Ludwig furniture factory to Stuttgart: Garson & Weber Company N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 Italy, 1800-1900 influx of artists/patrons Italian artists’ travels outside Italy birthplace of Italian artist major arts school/exhibition Classical and Renaissance revival Classical and Renaissance revival outside Italy landscape site/artists’ colony 1 THE ENDURING CULTURAL authority of the Roman Empire and the Renaissance ensured that the Italian peninsula maintained its centrality in the artistic life of the nineteenth century. Artists, designers, collectors, writers and tourists from around the globe flocked to Italy to experience the importance of classical and humanist aesthetics and art production at first hand. nineteenth-century Italy inspired both local and international artists to create a distinctive idiom of landscape painting known as veduta which was particularly attentive to the play of light and water and the picturesque festivals and architecture of Venice and Naples. AUSTRIA-HUNGARY AND SOUTHEAST EUROPE 1800–1900 239 specialist architectural commission and many of them were designed by a single Viennese firm, Fellner and Hellmer. New large town halls and museums likewise made a considerable impact. New green public areas were neatly clipped and adorned with countless statues, mostly of rulers. Bulgaria alone, after 1878, is said to have erected over 400 public monuments. All this was in stark contrast to the traditional look of the towns of the region: low, small-scale, dense and mostly very irregular, with each property tending (in Hungarian lands) to close in on itself. NATIONALIST COUNTER-CURRENTS Paradoxically, the great wave of ‘progress’ during the later nineteenth century was met with a counter-movement that re-emphasized precisely some of those factors progress was meant to overcome. The key was a new kind of nationalism. It held that borders should be determined by ethnicity and language. In the Turkish areas, ethnic and religious minorities had long enjoyed a certain amount of autonomy. In parts of the Austro-Hungarian empire – particularly in the Slav provinces – dominance by the German or Hungarian-speaking populations began to be strongly resented. Czechoslovakia and Yugoslavia were the eventual political outcomes of these movements after World War I. After 1867 the Austrian Empire tried to confront these problems with tolerance and Hungary was given complete cultural autonomy. After the World Fairs of 1867 (Paris) and especially of 1873 in Vienna, the diversity of nationalities began to be seen as an asset, but within the strictly limited field of ethnic crafts. A further curious twist occurred in the 1860s. The Austrian state decided to ‘reform’ the artistic aspects of most of the major manufactures, based on what it saw as the model of the schools and the museum at South Kensington in London. Schools and museums for ‘art and industry’ were created whose first aim was to bring up standards to the international styles of Classical and Renaissance design. Indeed, the vast majority of new town buildings followed these precepts. But by the 1880s a major function of the regional museums had become that of collecting ethnic, ‘folk’, or ‘peasant’ art – mainly textiles, TULIP CHEST (1910), by the Hungarian István Csók. It represents the love of local and national folk art that developed in the last quarter of the nineteenth century, here shown not in actual folk art but in a fantasy on folk objects, with the main emphasis being on brilliant colour. 2 IN THE LATE NINETEENTH CENTURY, the spread of ‘Westernization’ led to the development of a counter-movement. While wary of the political nationalisms of the smaller ethnicities, the Austrian and Hungarian governments strongly supported the diversity of ethnic applied arts. 30°25°20°15°10° 50° 45° 40° 35° 1911 19111859 1896 1877 1891 1878 1874 1874 1896 1872 1863 1895 1873 1885 1882 1875 1913 1879 1888 1888 1844 1893 RUTHENIANS CARINTHIA CORTINA BOSNIA CARNIOLA NÉMETEMÉR ROMANIANS SZÉKELYFÖLD EGERLAND SALZKAM M ER G U T MATYSZOK BUKOVINA KALOTASZEG TYROL DALM ATIA Prague Cracow Zakopane Lemberg Vienna Höritz Graz Kimpolung Agram Sarajevo Cetinje Laibach Linz Salzburg Innsbruck Bozen Brünn Reichenberg Troppau Czernowitz Budapest Belgrade Bucharest Sofia Marosvásárhely Sepsiszentgyörgy Hermannstadt Koloszvár Grosswardein Temesvár Dniester Danube BLACK SEA I O N I A N S E A A E G EA N SEA A D R I A T I C S E A A U S T R O - H U N G A R I A N E M P I R E SERBIA BULGARIA GREECE SICILY CORSICA CRETE ROMANIA R U S S I A N E M P I R E MONTE- NEGRO O T T O M A N E M P I R E I T A L Y Bulgarian/Russian Style State Educational Workshop 1888 Pottery Class 1908 Ceramics Workshop in Fine Art School 1906 Home Arts Assoc, 1885 Gödöllö Workshops 1902 Huzul Style Polish Górale Style Hungarian National Style Romanian (Wallachian/ Moldavian) Style Maria Theresa Style Slovakian Style Czech Renaissance Neo-Byzantine Style Greek Style Byzantine Style Bosnian Style Tornjow 1900 Pomeranzeff 1904 Antonescu 1906 Mincu 1890 Ziller 1890 von Klenze 1830 von Hansen 1859 Gärtner 1835 Ivackvic Ilkic ˘ ˘ ´ Glauka 1867 Feszl 1859 Lechner 1892 Komor/Jacob 1902 Márkus 1902 Lajta 1908 Kós 1908 Jurkovic 1896˘ Witkiewicz 1892 Wiehl 1883 Vejrich 1887 Ullmann 1866 N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 2 Nationalism and Neo-Vernacularism region/ethnic group of folk art/folk customs museums of applied art/trade/national or regional museum, with date of foundation/building Crafts Training School/courses revivalist movement, mainly in architecture revivalist designer, with date art and crafts workshop, with date borders c.1900 languages German Hungarian Italian Ladin Romanian Czech Polish Slovak Ukrainian Slovene Croat Serbian Bosnian Macedonian Bulgarian Albanian Greek Turkish 1834 1866 TYROL but also metalwork, ceramics and leatherwork. The designs were usually the opposite of Renaissance naturalism and illusionism, or Classical ‘refinement’. They presented abstract, often crude patterns with motifs held to be characteristic of the ethnicity of the producers. Above all it was the lively colours that delighted late Victorian connoisseurs. Soon the interest of a few academics and designers turned into active state and commercial support for the old production methods. It ran parallel with a Europe-wide interest in philological studies of linguistic roots, painters’ new interpretations of local landscapes and musicians’ interest in folksong. By 1900 young and ambitious designers were taking up ‘folk’ motifs. Arts and Crafts groups, to some extent based on English models, started workshops emphasizing ‘work by hand’. Even architecture began to adopt folk styles. In some cases this approximated, paradoxically, to international Art Nouveau and even Vienna Secession styles. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 238 type. They were focused on, or lined by, imposing buildings, three to five stories high, richly decorated in the Renaissance style, serving the commerce of the towns. Invariably there was a grand theatre or opera house. This was a THE COMPLEX CULTURAL GEOGRAPHY of Southeast Europe, from the long-standing perspective of western and central Europe, showed a decline in civilization from northwest to southeast. At the ‘bottom’ end the Ottoman Turks personified the threat from unbelievers and barbarians. At the ‘top’ were the German lands of Austria. During the nineteenth century Austria separated itself from Germany, and its ruler, as Emperor of Austria and King of Hungary, became the head of a new ‘double monarchy’, with respective capital cities, Vienna and Budapest. For much of the century, this state was trying to expand its hold over an area where numerous smaller ethnic groups were on the rise. As a result of this complex history, we inherit today both urban and ‘folk’ images, through which, by 1914, the initial perception of the lowering cultural standards towards the east had already been somewhat moderated. URBAN DEVELOPMENT Until about 1850 Vienna and Constantinople were the only really large cities in the region. In 1857 an imperial fiat abolished the ring of fortifications surrounding the old inner city of Vienna. In its place arose the celebrated Ringstrasse, essentially a boulevard. This entailed the rebuilding of many of the city’s, and thus the empire’s, major public places. The relative openness of Vienna’s later nineteenthcentury developments contrasted strongly with the square grid layout and dense assembly of public buildings that characterized the plan of Athens under Otto, Greece’s Bavarian king (r.1832-62). By 1900 a considerable number of towns throughout the Balkans had over 100,000 inhabitants. Most significantly, a great many of them had acquired a ‘European’ look, largely based on the Viennese model, with large squares, and straight, wide streets, often of the boulevard AUSTRIA-HUNGARY AND SOUTHEAST EUROPE 1800-1900 THE BUCHAREST ATHENAEUM (1886–8) by the French architect P. L. Albert Galleron is Bucharest’s most splendid building of the period. Built to serve the educated public as a concert hall, gallery and library, it represents the craving for western European splendour in Southeast Europe in the late nineteenth century, typically manifest in a very late Neoclassical style. 10° 15° 20° 25° 30° 35° 50° 45° 40° 35° Prague Cracow Lemberg Vienna Graz Agram Sarajevo Trieste Laibach Linz Salzburg Innsbruck Brünn Reichenberg Troppau Czernowitz JassyBudapest Belgrade Bucharest Athens Sofia Constantinople Marosvásárhely Vizaknafürdo´´ Constanza Teplitz Bielsko Krynica Kaschau Klausenburg Hermannstadt Herkulesfürdö Debreczen Grosswardein Neusatz Temesvár Kronstadt Arad Szabadka Sopron Baden bei Wien Klagenfurt Karlsbad Franzensbad Marienbad Szeged Pécs Szombathely Pöstyén Meran Kecskemét Fiume Bad Gastein Pressburg Ilidzeˇ Dniester Danube M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A E G EA N SEA A D R I A T I C S E A B L A C K S E A A U S T R O - H U N G A R I A N E M P I R E G E R M A N E M P I R E CROATIA BOHEMIA MORAVIA GALICIA SERBIA 1878 AUSTRIA HUNGARY BULGARIA 1878 E. RUMELIA 1878 GREECE CRETE 1898 ROMANIA 1878 BOSNIA- HERZEGOVINA MONTE- NEGRO 1878 DALM ATIA CARNIOLA I T A L Y R U S S I A N E M P I R E O T T O M A N E M P I R E N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 1 The Spread of the ‘European‘ Town border of the Austro-Hungarian Empire, 1878 Austrian Crown Lands Hungary and dependencies former Ottoman provinces, with date of autonomy major national/provincial capitals other national/provincial capitals towns with substantial new street layouts (Ringstrasse) new theatre and/or opera house theatre and/or opera house by Ferdinand Fellner and Hermann Hellmer fine art museum applied art/ethnographic or trade museum ‘national‘ or general regional museum town hall central government/parliament building watering place 1 THE ‘EUROPEAN TOWN’ PLAN that spread to Southeast Europe in the nineteenth century was characterized by a regular grand town layout and a more or less complete set of public buildings. The vast majority of those buildings were in the Classical or Renaissance styles and thus in a tradition that was essentially the same throughout Europe. From around 1900, however, many Hungarian public buildings resorted to a new folksy national style. 10° 10° 20° 30° 0° 10° 20° 30° 40° 50° ARABIC SOMALI ARABIC ARABIC ARABICARABIC TUAREG ARABIC & BERBER ARABIC ARABIC ARABIC BERBER Sokoto Kano Katsina Agades Gao Timbuktu Jenne Walata Jerusalem Suez Jedda Mecca Sawakin Qusayr Medina Cairo Alexandria Tunis Qayrawan Algiers Rabat Casablanca Marrakesh Tangier Fez Tlemcen Tripoli Sana Khartoum Nile WhiteNile BlueNile Niger S ene gal L.Chad L. Tana R E D S EA M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A T L A N T I C O C E A N S A H A R A AURES MTS KABYLIA MTS TIBESTI MTS A NA T O L I A CHOKE MTS AMHARA PLATEAU JABAL AKHDAR A R A B I A N D E S E R T RIF MIDDLE ATLAS H I G H A T L A S A N T I - A T L A S SINAI CYPRUS CRETE SICILY JERBA A F R I C A A R A B I A GREECE S P A I N pilgrimage centre for Jews, Christians and Muslims Kiswa (cover) for Kaba at Mecca manufactured in Cairo and sent annually with pilgrimage caravan Al-Azhar Mosque Zaytuna Mosque Qarawiyyin Mosque camel and goat hair tents rise of steamship in 19th century leads to demise of Saharan trade routes Berber artistic traditions continue in mountains of Morocco and Algeria imports of European manufactures during 19th century until 1830 1 Muslim North Africa mountain regions desert fertile land extent of Ottoman Empire and cultural influence c.1800 Coptic Christians Ethiopian Church trade routes early 19th-century pilgrimage routes to Mecca major Islamic school centre of manuscript production silk textile and embroidery centre urban pottery centre rural pottery centre metalworking centre leather-working centre language spokenARABIC N 0 500 miles 0 750 kms NORTH AFRICA 1800–1900 241 3 CAIRO BECAME A DYNAMIC CULTURAL CENTRE during the nineteenth century and the hub of the Arab cultural revival. The city expanded rapidly, especially late in the century, and new suburbs were constructed. Along with European styles of architecture, Islamic revival architecture in a historicizing manner was adopted. Cairo was the first city in the Arab world to witness the emergence of a conservation movement (Committee for the Conservation of Monuments of Arab Art, 1881). It saw the founding of the Museum of Arab Art in 1884 and the opening of the School of Fine Art in 1908. 10° 10° 20° 30° 0° 10° 20° 30° 50°40° SuezCairo Alexandria Tunis Algiers Fort Napoléon Rabat Tangier Fez Tripoli (under international administration 1912) Niger Sen eg al Nile L. Chad M EDI T E R R A NEAN S E A R ED SEA A T L A N T I C O C E A N S A H A R A A R A B I A N D E S E R T MOROCCO SPANISH MOROCCO A L G E R I A RIO DE ORO F R E N C H W E S T A F R I C AGAMBIA PORTUGUESE GUINEA SIERRA LEONE LIBERIA GOLD COAST TOGO N I G E R I A BELGIAN (CONGO) CAM EROONS FRENCH EQUATORIAL AFRICA FRENCH SOMALILAND BRITISH SOMALILAND TUNISIA L I B Y A E G Y P T ANGLO-EGYPTIAN SUDAN ERITREA ITALIAN SO M ALILAND E T H I O P I A 1881 École des BeauxArts created by French 1867 School of Arts and Crafts opened by French 1894 Annual Tunisian Salon inaugurated by French 1912 First Tunisian artist exhibits at Salon 1868 School of Applied Art opens 1880s Museum of Arab Art established 1891 European Orientalist painters hold first exhibition of painting in Egypt at the Opera House 1908 School of Fine Arts opens Suez Canal opened 1869 2 The Colonial Impact by 1914 areas of colonial control by 1914: Spanish French British Belgian N 750 miles0 0 1000 kms Italian Portuguese German MOSQUE OF MUHAMMAD ‘ALI in Cairo, Egypt, 1828–57. The large mosque was erected by Muhammad ‘Ali (r.1805-48) in a prominent location on the Citadel. Built in a style inspired by the Ottoman mosques of Istanbul, it marks a departure from earlier traditions of mosque architecture in Cairo. European artists developed a style of painting that has come to be called ‘Orientalist’ and which embodied a heavily romanticized view of the Arab world. Under European influence archaeological exploration was initiated at a range of sites. Indeed, the French invasion of Egypt in 1798 (which they held until 1801) marked the emergence of Egyptology as a new field of enquiry. By the late nineteenth century various departments of antiquities had been established. This prompted concerns over the conservation of artefacts; in Cairo, for example, the Committee for the Conservation of the Monuments of Arab Art was created in 1881. Museums were founded to preserve Ancient Egyptian, Classical, Phoenician, Byzantine and Islamic remains. In Cairo the Museum of Arab Art was established in 1884, and the Coptic Museum in 1908. URBAN DEVELOPMENT In the French colonies European-style quarters were created within or beside many Arab cities. Between 1830 and 1870 the medina of Algiers was partly destroyed by the French and then rebuilt. New public buildings were constructed in Neoclassical or neo-Islamic idioms (pastiches of Arab styles). Even before colonization in late nineteenth-century Morocco, rich merchants and officials were building palatial houses in the major cities, using imported European materials and designs. In Egypt modernization began under Muhammad ’Ali (r.1805–48), and during the reign of Khedive Isma‘il a new European-style urban environment emerged in Cairo, implemented by the engineer and statesman ‘Ali Mubarak. Public buildings and apartments were constructed to the west of the Arab city in styles similar to those found in Paris or Rome, and Isma‘il moved his residence from the Citadel to the ’Abdin Palace (built 1863–74). Transport was facilitated by the construction of wide boulevards, tramlines and railways, and in 1869 the Suez Canal opened. Some buildings such as the royal mosque of Al-Rifa‘i (built 1869–1912) were constructed in a new neo-Islamic idiom that alluded to the architecture of the Mamluks (r.1250–1517); the reliance on foreign expertise for the design and construction of this mosque was extensive. Jazira Palace 1863-69; first example of Islamic revivalist architecture in Cairo Azbakiya Garden Opera House opened 1869; first exhibition of paintings by European Orientalist painters 1891; destroyed by fire 1972 Qasr al-Nil Palace 1863; destroyed 1947 Mosque of Al-Rifa‘i 1869-1912; designed by Herz (Austrian) Citadel place of manufacture of Kiswa Mosque of Muhammad ‘Ali 1828-57; Ottoman style ‘Abdin Palace 1863-74; designed by del Rosso (French) Museum of Arab Art opened 1903; designed by Manescalo (Italian) Khan Al-Khalili Bazaar inlaid metalwork bought by Europeans Orientalist painters 1891 destroyed by fire 1972 Nile JAZIRAIS RAWDAISLAND Ismailiya Canal filled after 1897 Abu’l-Ala Bridge 1912 Zamalek Bridge 1912 Qasr al-Nil Bridge 1871-72; rebuilt 1931 Abbas Bridge 1907; rebuilt 1966-67 Al-Jala Bridge 1870s; rebuilt 1914 Imbaba Railway Bridge 1890-91; rebuilt 1925 CanalAl-Khalijfilledafter1897 Canal Al-Khalij railway to Heliopolis Ism ailiya Canal 1 2 3 4 5 AL-ABBASIYA originally quarters for military personnel: Khedive Isma‘il founds School of Irrigation and Architecture 1866 BULAQ state printing press 1822; workshops GREEK QUARTER NORTHERN CEMETERY SOUTHERN CEMETERY FUSTAT (OLD CAIRO) GIZA MUQATTAM SPUR COPTIC & JEWISH QUARTERS EUROPEAN QUARTER settled by Europeans settled by Europeans settled by Copts founded by Empain (Belgian) 1906 1 2 3 4 5 N 1000 metres0 0 800 yards 2 WITH EUROPEAN COLONIZATION, many artistic traditions were dislocated or came to an end. East–west trade routes were interrupted, and there was a decline of trans-Saharan trade. In cities, European architectural styles were introduced and indigenous craft traditions were undermined by European imports. Western notions of fine art also began to be disseminated, and Europeans started to document the indigenous architecture and arts they encountered. 3 Cairo c.1800-1914 Old City (before 1863) additions made by Khedive Isma‘il (1863-79) Khedive Isma‘il’s planned new arteries for Old City Suburbs developed in early 20th century Zamalek 1905 Shubra 1898 Heliopolis 1905 Maadi 1907 Garden City 1905 Streets Shubra Street Clot Bay Street 1872 al-Sikka al-Jadida 1845 Abdul Aziz Street 1872 Muhammad ‘Ali Square 1 2 3 4 5 1 2 3 4 5 ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 240 NORTH AFRICA 1800-1900 BY THE EARLY nineteenth century the arts of North Africa had a well-established, continuous tradition (partly because of widespread Ottoman influences), with substantial regional variations. Over the course of the century these cultures were transformed by European colonial expansion. Algeria, which was invaded by the French as early as 1830, was the most intensively colonized. With the arrival of European settlers (including workers from Spain, Italy and Greece), land was purchased or appropriated while indigenous craft traditions were undermined by the importation of lowcost European manufactures. French also began to be widely spoken. Sure of their belief in the European ‘fineart’ traditions of painting and sculpture, for which they could find no evidence, the colonists saw the indigenous North African culture as being one of decline. Despite an admiration for craft techniques, ‘real’ Arab cultural achievements were, for them, located firmly in the medieval past. Such attitudes helped justify colonial expansion. INDIGENOUS ART TRADITIONS Despite the colonial presence across North Africa some indigenous art traditions continued, especially in the remote mountainous regions, such as the Kabilya and Aurès mountains in Algeria and the Rif and Atlas mountains in Morocco. In such areas, there were distinctive Berber traditions in architecture, textiles, jewellery and other arts. Further south in the Sahara Desert, where nomadic lifestyles prevailed, European influences were minimal, although there were profound changes in overland trade patterns because of the rise of the steamship and colonial prohibitions against slavery, which passed along these routes. The Islamic schools and the network of pilgrimage routes to Mecca helped to bind together the traditional cultures. There were also long-established centres for the production of manuscripts, silks, pottery, metalwork and leatherwork. These continued to operate, though in some cases they adapted their products to suit European tastes – most notably Cairo began to produce Mamluk-style metalwork from the latter part of the century. The major centres of manuscript production were closely associated with Islamic schools, calligraphy being the most esteemed art in the Muslim world. Rural pottery, made for local consumption, remained largely untouched, but the more sophisticated and refined urban pottery was again affected by European tastes. COLONIAL ART INSTITUTIONS A number of institutes and schools opened in the nineteenth century to promote indigenous arts and crafts, but equally significant was the promotion of Western notions of ‘fine’ art. In Algeria in 1851 the Société des Beaux-Arts was founded to encourage art in the European community. In 1894 an annual salon was inaugurated by the French in Tunis, although it was not until 1912 that a Tunisian artist exhibited there. By 1908 a School of Fine art was opened by Prince Yusuf Kamal to train Egyptian painters and sculptors in Western techniques. 1 BEFORE EUROPEAN COLONIZATION North Africa as far as the Moroccan-Algerian border remained within the sphere of Ottoman cultural influences. Artistic traditions showed a high degree of continuity, with distinct regional variations. Following the French occupation (1798–1801), however, a modernizing Egypt under Muhammad ‘Ali (r.1805–48) began to challenge the political and cultural hegemony of Istanbul, and by the late 19th century Cairo had emerged as the dominant centre in the region. POLYCHROME BOWL from Fez, Morocco, midnineteenth century. The tin-glazed pottery manufactured in Morocco in the nineteenth century continued a long and relatively conservative ceramic tradition. This polychrome bowl on a high foot is typical of the urban pottery manufactured in Fez. The bowl has an interior design with a central rosette and radiating ‘tortoise’ motifs. SUB-SAHARAN AFRICA 1800–1900 243 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 20˚ 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ L. Victoria L. Chad L. Tanganyika Senegal N iger Benue C ongo Za m bezi I N D I A N O C E A N RED SEA A T L A N T I C O C E A N S A H A R A BENIN DAHOMEY LUNDA LOANGO KUBA LOZI SOKOTO CALIPHATE TUKOLOR EMPIRE FUTA JALLON ASANTE SAMORI A F R I C A c.1850-1900, art objects removed by travellers, missionaries, government officials taken to natural history museums in Europe 1897 Over 1000 art objects (cast copper alloy, carved ivory) looted from Benin king’s palace: taken to England; dispersed among British and European museums 1894 French defeat kingdom of Dahomey: royal statues, thrones, leadership insignia taken to Paris 1830-1900, over 400 carved elephant ivory tusks made by Kongo artists for European traders, travellers and missionaries Post Anglo-Asante wars of 1874 and 1900, cast gold objects, sword ornaments, pipes, bracelets, beads, jewellery enter English private/public collections N 0 0 400 miles 500 kms 2 Masquerades and Traffic in Art distribution of masquerades movement of war booty and tourist art positions and to help effect policy. From the regalia of kings and courtiers to palace architecture and planning, leaders had the power and wealth to commission and maintain art forms that projected their position and stature. Art elevated, framed, dramatized, embellished and otherwise expanded the image of leaders across the continent. Wealthy leaders were able to command rich, durable and rare materials: ivory, cast copper alloys, gold, silver and imported goods. Similarly, they employed the finest artists, often moving them from conquered areas to their own capitals. ART FOR RELIGION On a local level, masks and figural sculptures, and sometimes more practical objects such as stools, were used as symbols or representations of ancestors, deities and spirits. Unlike Leadership arts, this symbolic art tended to be confined to the forest and savannah regions of west and central Africa, but was also found among Bantu-speakers in some eastern and southern regions, mostly among settled agricultural peoples. A large majority of both figural sculptures and masks were associated with religious institutions, many of which also supported leaders. Wooden figures and sometimes small copper alloy castings were also used by diviners and fortune tellers. Much figural sculpture now in western museums and private collections was originally housed in shrines, and served as a point of contact between this world and that of varied supernatural beings. ART IN EVERYDAY LIFE A third category constitutes furniture and household goods (pottery, gourds and baskets), implements (spoons, staffs, dance wands) and personal possessions such as cloth, neckrests and snuff containers. These objects are often of a modest size and made of common, readily available materials. Included in this category is a vast array of textiles, as well as non-woven fabric such as barkcloth. Perhaps the most widely distributed objects on the African continent are beads made of wood, stone, shell and, in earlier times, bone, as well as glass beads of European manufacture. They were used by common people, while rarer specimens served as markers of status for elites. There are no known African peoples who did not focus their artistic sensibility on personal decoration, often marshalling quite spectacular effects for special occasions. Pastoral and nomadic peoples in particular were masters of personal adornment. INFLUENCES FROM ABROAD Some of the above-mentioned objects were more or less strongly affected by ideas from beyond the locales in which they were made. Islamic design ideas can be found in architecture (Asante, Fulani or Fulbe), metalwork and gourd decoration, textile patterns, leatherwork and charm-making. Christianity is ancient enough in Ethiopia to be considered both traditional and indigenous, but this is not the case for churches built along the west African coast in the nineteenth century. Much secular influence from Europe, in dress styles and object types, assimilated motifs, materials and even manufacturing techniques (such as carpentry as opposed to monoxylous – single piece – carving) can also be found wherever there was sustained contact with European strangers. FIGURE OF THE ‘CIVILIZING CULTURAL HERO’, Chibunda Ilunga, Angola, before 1850, 39 cm (15 ins) high, made of wood, hair, cotton fibre and bead (Museum für Volkerkunde, Berlin). This legendary Luba hunter is credited with leading political and technical advances for Chowke, Lunda and other Central African peoples around 1600. He exemplifies internally inspired historical change. 3 ALIEN RULE in about 1890. The Berlin Conference (1884–5) partitioned much of the continent, establishing ‘national’ boundaries without reference to the distribution and borders of ethnic groups and/or indigenous polities. 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 20˚ 10˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 0˚ 20˚ 10˚ 10˚0˚ SENEGAL GAMBIA PORT. GUINEA SIERRA LEONE LIBERIA TOGO ANGOLA GOLD COAST CAPE COLONY MOZAMBIQUE MADAGASCAR ETHIOPIA SOMALILANDA F R I C A N 0 0 800 miles 1000 kms 3 Alien Rule, c.1890 c.1830 Portuguese British French c.1890 Portuguese British French German Spanish Italian Congo Free State 2 EARLY NINETEENTH-CENTURY EUROPEAN INFLUENCE on art and architecture was minimal and confined to a few forest zones and what later became the Republic of South Africa. Yet the effects of slavery were significant if often indirect – for example, in the formation and artistic character of the kingdom of Dahomey, and in the increasingly coastal orientation of strong West African kingdoms. European beads were very widely distributed in the nineteenth century, but for the most part they were a wholly indigenous form of decoration. During the final years of the century wars were fought to subjugate African peoples, and in some cases substantial numbers of art objects were exported to Europe. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 242 THE NINETEENTH CENTURY saw many changes in sub-Saharan Africa wrought by the increasingly insistent presence of Europeans. The slave trade persisted during the first half of the century and Islam continued its conversions. On the other hand, traditional religious practices and political structures accounted for extensive patronage of artists and craftspeople in all media, and the century was very active artistically. Apart from the European arts and crafts in Southern Africa, the wholesale influence of Europe on the arts was relatively slight. The export of art from the continent to Europe, however, began towards the end of the century, in some cases as war booty, in others, adding to the collections of museums of natural history (pointedly not art museums), successors to the ‘curiosity cabinets’ formed by nobility and the wealthy since the Renaissance. The following three main categories of nineteenth-century art may be discerned. ART FOR AFRICAN LEADERS Virtually all African kings and chiefs, as well as religious leaders (often secular and spiritual leadership merge in the same person), invoked myriad arts to legitimize and reinforce their SUB-SAHARAN AFRICA 1800-1900 20˚ 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 20˚ 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ Freetown Bobo-Dioulasso Korhogo Bondoukou Sikasso Segu Monrovia Kumasi Mombasa Kasongo Kirundi Mtowa Nyangwe Zanzibar Bagamoyo KilwaLuanda Benguela Port Natal (Durban) Wadi Halfa Axum Magdala GondarSokoto Gao Agadez Yendi Elmina Salaga Cape Coast Jenne Timbuktu St Louis Zaria Abuja Yola San Salvador Lourenço Marques Sofala Mozambique Mussumba Cabinda Idah Aboh Brass Bida Kano Duala Loango Old Calabar Arochukwu WhiteNile B lueNile At bara Nile Benue Gambia Niger Oka vango Congo Uele Zambezi Limpopo Orange River Vaal L. Tana L. Rudolf L. Chad L. Victoria L. Tanganyika ATLANTIC OCEAN I N D I A N O C E A N R E D SEA KALAHARI DESERT S A H A R A FUTA JALON M O O R S T U A R E G D AMARGAM MARAD I T U A R E G M E N D E BAULE G A L L A MONGO OVAMBO H E R E R O LWENA LAMBA VENDA PEDI X H O S A S A N SIDAM O MASAI KIKUYU S O M A LI 1835 NDEBELE NGWATO GAZA SWAZI ZULU LESOTHO GRIQUA CHOKWE LOZI MBAILUNDU HUAMBO KIAKA KAKONDA NDULU BIHE GALANGI KATANGA BEMBA NGONI NGONI NGONI NGONI TEKE LUNDA KUBA LUBAYAKA KASANJE KANIOK ANKOLE RWANDA BURUNDI KASONGO KALUNDE BUGANDA MIRAMBO NGONI 1848 KIKONJA BUNY ORO KAMBA WAGERA TIGRE SHOA WALLO LASTA GOJJAM AMHARA KORDOFAN SENAR BAHR EL GHAZAL GRASSLAND KINGDOMS FADA NGOURMA BORNU WADAI DARFUR TENKODOGO DAHOMEY BENIN YORUBA STATES MAMPRUSI DAGOMBA BORGU SOKOTO CALIPHATE FUTA TORO CALAMA BAMBUK SAMORI (c.1895) SAMORI (c.1895) BONDU FANTE ASANTE WALO CAYOR W OLOF TUKOLOR EMPIRE WAHIGUYA WAGADUGU DONGOLA SIMIEN BUTANA CHEWA MADAGA S C A R A F R I C A A R A B I A N 0 0 400 miles 500 kms 1 Africa in the Nineteenth Century kingdom/state settlement/kingdom of Ngoni peoples people Swahili/Arab trading post XHOSA 1b Islam in W Africa Islamized areas of Africa mosque Niger Ni ger SenegalSene gal Gamb ia Gambia L. Chad S A H A R A 1a Masking in W Africa distribution of masking 3-part horizontal masks WOOD STOOL AND FOOT REST covered with African and European beads and cowrie shells. Commissioned for King Njoya of Bamum, Cameroon, c.1885, Museum für Volkerkunde, Berlin. Only highranking or wealthy chiefs and kings could command such elaborate thrones. 1 THE WORLD OF AFRICAN ART that came to be known in the middle decades of the twentieth century was firmly established in the nineteenth. Forest-region states and decentralized peoples created numerous figures and masks, as well as elaborate personal decoration, jewellery, domestic objects and myriad architectural forms. Both Islam and Christianity made further inroads, but earlier, more traditional arts were still widely distributed. Peoples living beyond the forests and savannahs of West and Central Africa – in eastern and southern areas – had fewer sculptural forms. WEST ASIA 1800–1900 245 region after 1842 when petroleum wells were sunk at Baku on the Caspian Sea, known since antiquity for its oil seeps. The British, anxious to maintain quick communications with India, ran telegraph wires across the Ottoman Empire in the 1850s and 1860s. Major General Sir Robert Murdoch-Smith continued the project across Persia, incidentally acquiring large collections of Persian art for the South Kensington (later Victoria and Albert) and Royal Scottish museums. Other Europeans built railway lines across the Balkans to Istanbul, and the Ottomans began work on a rail system that would link Istanbul to Baghdad, Damascus, Jerusalem and the Hejaz in western Arabia, which they hoped would facilitate the pilgrimage to Mecca and assert their authority over the region. The project was interrupted by the outbreak of World War I. ART LIFE Traditional craft techniques were supplanted as local bazaars were flooded with European manufactured goods, ranging from Manchester cottons and aniline dyes to Russian glass and paper. Carpet-weaving, for example, was transformed from a traditional village and nomad craft to a factory-driven enterprise – rugged floor-coverings were made in standard sizes to fit European and American drawingrooms. The Manchester firm of Ziegler and Co went so far as to supply woollen yarns dyed in appropriate shades to weavers working around Sultanabad. Many traditional craftsmen in Istanbul, Damascus, Jerusalem, and Cairo turned to making souvenir replicas for the tourist trade. Impressed with the technical superiority of Europe, the Ottomans sent students to study abroad. Krikor Balyan, the first Ottoman architect to study in Europe, returned to design the Nusretiye Mosque (1826) and the Selimiye Barracks (1828) in Istanbul; his son Garabed designed the Dolmabahce Palace (1853) following European models. Sultan Abdülaziz (r.1861–76) was the first Ottoman ruler to visit Western Europe, attending the 1867 Exposition Universelle in Paris. He was soon followed by the Qajar shah Nasir al-Din (r.1848–96) who toured Europe in 1873, visiting the Vienna World Fair. These visits led to the introduction of European skills and techniques to West Asia. The Ottoman and Qajar armies, for example, were reorganized along European lines, and European-style schools of architecture and art were established in Tehran (1851 - Polytechnic/ Dar al-Funun) and Istanbul (1883 - Imperial Academy of Fine Arts; 1884 - College of Civil Engineering). Photography, which had been introduced by European travellers, was taken up by both the court (Nasir al-Din was an avid photographer) and professionals, such as the Russian-Armenian Antoine Sevruguin, who established studios in Tabriz and Teheran. 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ Gordium Pergamum Bogazköy˘ Yazilikaya Ani Ur Khorsabad Babylon Nineveh Eridu Rosetta Nippur Bisitun Lagash (Telloh) Susa Uruk (Warka) Petra Jericho Nimrud Balawat KuyunjikCarchemish Thebes Saqqara Abu Simbel Troy Ephesus N ile Euphra tes Tigris Danube L. Van L. Urmia A R A B I A N S E A R ED SEA B L A C K S E A PE RSIAN GULF M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A CA SPIANSEA ELBURZ MTS ZAGROS M TS TAURUS MTS E G Y P T A R A B I A ANATOLIA B A L K A N S P E R S I A MESOPOTAM IA Napoleon’s expedition to Egypt 1798-1801 British expedition to Palestine to explore Biblical sites, 1801 Russians survey Golden Horde sites, 1850s 1870 1889 1882 1847 1843 1878 1887 1845 1878-82 1835 1808 1808 1850 1850 1850 1853 1850-52 1884-87; 1897 1882 1878-81 1869 1812 1878 1869 1799 1850 1817 1813 N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 2 Archaeological Excavations Sites excavated by British, with dates Sites excavated by French, with dates Sites excavated by Swiss, with dates Sites excavated by Americans, with dates Sites excavated by Russians, with dates Sites excavated by Germans, with dates 2 SPURRED BY AN INTEREST in ancient and biblical history, Europeans and Americans began excavating ancient Egyptian and Near Eastern sites in the nineteenth century. They brought back many of the finds which were prominently displayed in European national museums Only at the very end of the period were museums established in the major cities of the region in an attempt to staunch the flow of archaeological material from the area. REDISCOVERING THE PAST Following Napoleon’s expedition to Egypt in 1798–1800, European interest in ancient Egypt had waxed, particularly after the Frenchman Jean François Champollion deciphered the Rosetta Stone in 1822. Similarly, after the English Orientalist and historian Sir Henry Rawlinson unravelled the trilingual (Old Persian, Elamite and Babylonian) inscription from Bisutun in Persia and unlocked the secrets of the cuneiform script, interest in ancient Near Eastern antiquities flourished and ancient sites, such as Nimrud and Nineveh, began to be excavated. Museums were founded to house these antiquities. A museum of Arab art was envisioned for Cairo as early as 1869 but not realized until 1880; the Egyptian Museum (for antiquities) was the brainchild of Auguste Mariette (d.1881), although it did not open in its present location until 1902. In 1876 Sultan Abdülhamid established the Imperial Ottoman Museum at the Çinili Kiosk in the Topkapi Palace under the directorship of the European-trained Orientalist painter Osman Hamdi. In 1891 the Ottomans founded an archaeological museum in Istanbul, partly in an effort to stem the traffic in illegal antiquities. The Kavkazsky Muzei, the precursor to the Georgian national museums of art and archaeology, was founded at Tiflis (Tbilisi) in the 1870s, achieving an international reputation under its director, Countess P. S. Uvarova. THE DOLMABAHCE PALACE in Istanbul, designed by Garabed Balyan in 1853. In contrast to traditional Islamic palaces, which were enclosed behind high, blank walls, the Europeanizing Dolmabahce Palace was built on a riverbank site overlooking the Bosphorus with classicizing and luxurious details, including a grand staircase with rock-crystal balustrades. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 244 LOCAL POWERS IN WEST ASIA came in contact and conflict with the superior military and economic might of Western Europe and Russia as the region was increasingly marginalized by the oceanic economic system and the Industrial Revolution. The main powers in the region were the Ottomans (who continued to rule from Istanbul until 1922), the Qajars in Persia (1799–1924), who made Tehran their capital, and the Russians, who expanded southwards into the Crimea, the Caucasus, and Transcaucasia, as well as Central Asia at the expense of the Ottomans, the Qajars and the Uzbek Khans. Russia locked horns with the Ottomans in the Crimean War (1854–56), and the Russians lost Sebastopol, their major port on the Black Sea, to the British. The Ottomans themselves lost much territory in Eastern Europe, the Balkans, the Levant and Iraq. Egypt became virtually independent under Muhammad ‘Ali (r.1805–48) in the aftermath of Napoleon’s abortive expedition to Egypt (1798–1800), and much of Arabia fell under the sway of conservative Wahhabi reformers. The Russians annexed Georgia in 1801, extending the Russian frontier westwards by the Treaty of Gulistan (1813) and the Treaty of Turkmanchay (1828). Persia, blocked on the west and north by the Ottomans and the Russians, turned its attention to the east, invading what is now Afghanistan. EUROPEAN ECONOMIC INVOLVEMENT Although the Qajars strove to maintain Persia’s territorial integrity, both they and the Ottomans became increasingly dependent on European capital. European involvement increased in the WEST ASIA 1800-1900 1 THE EUROPEAN POWERS encroached on the lands of West Asia in the nineteenth century bringing, new technologies such as telegraphs and railways and new institutions, including museums and schools of art and architecture. Europeans returned home with ‘Oriental’ furnishings, including carpets, souvenirs and works of art for their own museum collections. Railways and telegraph lines made access to and control of the region easier. 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ 10˚ 20˚ 40˚ 30˚ Adrianople (Edirne) Bursa Kula Mugla˘ Konya Adana Kirsehir Sebastopol ¸ Kayseri Sivas Samsun Trebizond Batumi Erzurum Kars Erivan Lenkoran Ardabil Teheran Qum Isfahan Sultanabad Basra Baghdad Shiraz Mecca Medina Kerman Birjand Meshed Kermanshah Damascus Aleppo Salyany Surakhany Karagashli BakuChonderesk Tabriz Bijar Seichur Tiflis Grozny Derbent Diyarbakir Zonguldak Antalya Mersin Jerusalem Cairo Alexandria Istanbul Çanakkale Balikesir Bergama Smyrna Melas N ile Euph rates Tigris Danube Amu Darya Syr Darya I N D I A N O C E A N A R A B I A N S E A GULF OF ADEN R E D S E A ARAL SEA B L A C K S E A PE RSIAN GULF M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A CASPIAN SEA ELBU RZ MTS ZAGROS M TS IRANIAN PLATEAU TAURUS MTS ITA LY R U S S I A N E M P I R EA U S T R O H U N G A R I A N E M P I R E L I B Y A E G Y P T ANATOLIA SERBIA GREECE ROMANIA CRIMEA BULGARIA ALBANIA O T T O M A N E M P I R E H EJA Z N E J D O M A N KUWAIT P E R S I A KHANATE OF KHIVA KAZAKHSTAN KHANATE OF BUKHARA AFGHANISTAN B R I T I S H I N D I A A D E N HADHRAMAUT cotton Carpets Carpets N 1 Empires under Threat, 1800-1900 Ottoman Empire, 1800 Ottoman Empire, 1913 Persian Empire, 1913 Russian Empire, 1913 strategic railways, 1880-1910 regional exports museums art schools carpet-making centres centres of the souvenir trade 0 0 400 miles 600 kms OIL PAINTING OF THE QAJAR RULER Fath Ali Shah. Intended as a royal gift to Napoleon, this oil painting was presented by Fath Ali Shah to the French envoy Amédée Jaubert on July 11, 1806. Attributed to the court painter Mihr Ali, it shows the ruler impassive, rigidly posed on a chair-throne, and bedecked with jewels, including the Kayani crown. It is the state image, par excellence. 2 Archaeological Surveys Sites excavated by: Sven Hedin (Sweden), 1895-99, 1899-1902 Dmitry Klementz (Russia) 1898 N. I.Veselovsky (Russia) 1885, 1895 Aurel Stein (Great Britain), 1900-1901 R. Pumpelly (US) 1904 expedition of Aurel Stein, 1900-1901 CENTRAL ASIA 1800–1900 247 2 DECIPHERMENT BY A. F. R. HOERNLEIN in 1884 of ancient Buddhist documents, found near Kucha, led to a series of archaeological expeditions to eastern Turkestan. Explorers, some of them spies for their European governments, uncovered the remains of many sites that had once thrived along the Silk Road, the transcontinental network of trade routes connecting ancient China, India and the Mediterranean. WOOL, COTTON AND SILK textiles and carpets were the mainstay of the Central Asian economy. Though sometimes made by nomads for their own use, others were typically sold in urban bazaars, whose small shops had wooden doors which could be closed at night. The Russian photographer Sergei Mikhailovich Prokudin-Gorskii took some of the earliest colour photographs of the region, including this one of a Samarkand merchant in 1911. coverlets of cotton with brightly coloured birds and flowers (suzani) for their dowries. Urban weavers, particularly Jews, made spectacular silk ikats, in which resist-dyed warps create colourful kaleidoscopic designs. Other traditional crafts included silver jewellery encrusted with turquoise and carnelian or coral. Metalsmiths and potters repeated traditional forms and designs, but local production was increasingly replaced by European and Far Eastern export wares. CULTURAL INCURSIONS Orientalist painters accompanied the Russian army, and travellers compiled albums of photographs, drawings and watercolours of exotic eastern locales. The Russians began excavation in the western half of the region to explore its pre-Islamic history. In 1885 the Imperial Archaeological Commission appointed N. I. Veselovsky to excavate old Samarkand, and the Turkestan Archaeological Society was created in 1893. Other national archaeological surveys soon followed. Western explorers, some also spies, made expeditions to the eastern half of the region in search of ancient Buddhist remains along what 90˚80˚70˚60˚ 40˚ 30˚ Kashgar Samarkand Turkestan (Yasi) Anau Merv Khotan Yotkan Tawakkel Dandan-Oilik Keriya Niya Endere Cherchen Yarkand Aksu Kucha Karashahr Loulan Urumchi TurfanYarkhoto Astana Karakhoja Hami Peshawar Chitral Gilgit Srinagar Leh B R I T I S H I N D I A T I B E T S I N K I A N G QING CHINA R U S S I A M O N G O LIA T I E N S H A N P A M I R S K A RA KORAM K U N L U N H I N D U K U S H L O P N O R TARIM BASIN TA K L A M A K A N Yarkand Tarim I li Cherchen Khotan Issyk Kul Lake Balkhash 1899-1902 1901 1885, 1895 Russians 1898-99, 1906 1904 1904 1901 Niya site 1901 1898 1895-6 1898 1898 N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms became the centrepieces of Russian and European museums. The inlaid wooden doors from the Gur-i Mir, Timur’s tomb in Samarkand, went to the Hermitage, along with many other objects from the area. Turkoman tribal weaving began to be studied seriously in late nineteenth-century Russia, and the collection of Turkmen rugs amassed by General A. A. Bogolyubov, Russian governor of Transcaspia, formed the core of the Ethnographic Museum in St Petersburg. The imperial armoury in the Moscow Kremlin acquired a rich collection of clothes, carpets and jewellery. Silk ikats collected by the English tea-planter Robert Shaw during a visit to Yarkand in 1868 are now in the Ashmolean Museum in Oxford. Henri Moser, who accompanied the Prince of Wittgenstein to Central Asia in 1882–3, was presented with 140 robes of honour and 17 sets of horse trappings and harnesses; his collection is now in the Historisches Museum, Bern. Ferdinand von Richtoven had named the ‘Silk Road’. In the 1880s local treasure hunters found several ancient Buddhist manuscripts near Kucha, and their decipherment led to a series of Russian, Swedish, British, German, French and Japanese expeditions. Sven Hedin (1865–1952) set out from Tehran via Meshed, Merv, Bukhara, Samarkand, to Kashgar, whence he made expeditions to the Takla Makan. During his second expedition to East Turkestan and Tibet, he discovered Loulan and explored the Gobi Desert. More famous was Aurel Stein, who made his first expedition from British India to Central Asia in 1900–01. In 1898 the Russian Dmitry Klementz set out with his botanist wife to explore the area around Turfan. Some historical and archaeological museums were created in the region, for example at Ashkhabad, Samarkand and Tashkent, but many of the finest objects ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 246 CENTRAL ASIA WAS TORN apart as imperial rivalries invaded the region in the ‘Great Game’. The British gradually expanded their presence up the Ganges from India against the Russians, who had been spreading south since the midsixteenth century. Following the loss of Sebastopol in the Crimean War, the Russians embarked on a 22-year offensive (1864–86) in Central Asia, conquering the khanates of Bukhara (1868), Kokand (1871) and Khiva (1873). The 1881 Battle of Geoktepe, in which 15,000 Tekke Turkmen were slaughtered, and the 1884 capture of Merv established Russian pre-eminence from the Caspian Sea to the Tien Shan. The Anglo-Russian Agreement of 1887 set the Amu River as the boundary between the Russian-dominated territory of Central Asia and the British client state of Afghanistan. ECONOMIC EXPANSION The Russians made Tashkent, historically the least important of all the oases in western Central Asia, the capital of Russian Turkestan. They laid out a new town modelled on European patterns with European-style buildings and residential quarters. Tashkent was linked by rail to other cities, as the Transcaspian Railway ensured Russian control over, and exploitation of, the region. Russian demand for Central Asian cotton had increased during the American Civil War (1860–65), and the Transcaspian Railway facilitated cotton shipments to factories in European Russia and Europe. In the 1880s the CENTRAL ASIA 1800-1900 60˚ 70˚ 80˚ 30˚ 40˚ Baku Krasnovodsk Kizil Arvat Geoktepe Ashkhabad KaakhaAnau Dushak Meshed Ferghana Bairam-Ali Kushka Panjdeh Herat Mazar-i Sharif Kunduz Kabul Sarakhs Charjui Bukhara Samarkand Shahrisabz Jizak Khojent Kokand TashkentChimkent Khiva Turkestan (Yasi) Aralsk Fort Shevchenko Perovsk Kazanlinsk Chulak Andijan Osh Kashgar Merv A F G H A N I S T A N P E R S I A C H I N A K I R G H I Z U Z B E K S T E K K E T U R K M E N KHANATE OF KHIVA KHANATE OF KOKAND KHANATE OF BUKHARA HINDU KUSH PA M I R S K A R A K U M K Y Z Y L K U M TIEN SHAN K O P ET D A G H Indus AmuDar ya SyrDarya Atrek Issyk Kul Lake Balkhash ARAL SEA CASPIANSEA (1876) (1896) (1899) 1846 1869 1881 1873 1847 1859 1851 1865 1868 1885 1881 1886 1897 1888 1895 c1900 export ofCotton to China to India to Persian Gulf and Teheran 1 The Russian Conquest of Central Asia, 1800-1900 Russian campaigns, 1853-71 Russian settlement or conquest, with dates Russian railways, with dates of construction railway station centre of textile production carpet market museum trade route N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms ROBE OF RESIST-DYED silk and cotton ikat, late nineteenthcentury Bukhara. Red and yellow stylized fruits appear on a blue and white chequered ground. The garment is trimmed with needlebraid borders and lined in Russian printed cloth. Many Central Asian Jews specialized in weaving spectacular ikat silks, with bright colours and bold patterns created by resistdyeing the warps before weaving. The fabrics were typically tailored into large robes or kaftans. The centre of production was the Ferghana Valley, roughly equivalent to the khanate of Kokand. Russians introduced improved long-staple American strains of cotton and expanded irrigation in the Ferghana Valley and the middle reaches of the Syr River. By the twentieth century cotton provided more than half of Russian Turkestan’s agricultural income. Textiles made of cotton, wool or silk were the other major export. Carpets, though marketed in urban bazaars, were traditionally made by nomads, who also made small saddlebags, door covers and tent bands. Weavers combined undyed yarns with others dyed bright red with madder; they favoured geometric designs, often characterized by an octagonal emblem known as a gol. As carpetweaving was transformed by mass production, European aniline dyes were introduced and traditional compositions compressed. Nomadic women also embroidered large 1 THE RUSSIAN CONQUEST OF CENTRAL ASIA 1800–1900. The Russians moved south in the second half of the nineteenth century, conquering the khanates of Khiva, Kokand and Bukhara and establishing political and economic control over Central Asia, from their newly built capital at Tashkent. They developed the production of cotton which they made the mainstay of the economy, exporting it to European factories along newly constructed railways. SOUTH ASIA 1800–1900 249 2 AFTER 1857 INDIA BECAME part of the British Empire and while nationalist movements proliferated, more Indians were Westernized. Calcutta was the centre of culture and trade. Calcutta presses rolled out art prints as well as Bengali literature and English magazines and newspapers. Anglo-Indian architecture spread across the country creating the impression of wealth and ingenuity. COMPANY ART: A Groom with Horse and Carriage, Shakykh Muhammad Amir, c.1840–50, gouache on paper. Displaced Indian artists learned Western techniques of shading and perspective to find employment with the East India Company. Some were commissioned to paint family scenes and homesteads by foreigners who kept the art as mementoes or sent it to friends and relatives. 65° 70° 75° 80° 85° 90° 80˚75˚70˚ 10˚ 15˚ 20˚ 25˚ 30˚ 35˚ I I I Delhi Panipat Surat Baroda Bombay Kolhapur Lahore Simla Agra Raniganj Lucknow Fatehpur Rawalpindi Jalandhar Aligarh Allahabad Benares Mithila Calcutta Ajmer Nathadwara Shahpur Poona Hyderabad Aurangabad Ajanta Pondicherry Mysore Goa Madurai Trincomalee Kandy Trinchinopoly Madras Puri Jaipur KhurjaIndus Ravi Jamu na Sutlej Jh elum Ch enab Gan ges Narmada Godavari Krishna Brahmaputra A R A B I A N S E A BAY O F B E N G A L I N D I A N O C E A N H I M A L A Y A S WESTERNGHATS E A S T E R N G H ATS K A S H M I R N E P A L P U N J A B KUMAUN B I H A R A S S A M B E N G A L O R I S S A S I N D C U T C H G U J A R AT M Y S O R E COORG COCHIN CEYLON TRAVANCORE R A J P U TA N A N I Z A M ’ S D O M I N I O N S BAHAWALPUR NORTH-WESTERNPROVIN CES HOLKAR OUDH UTTAR PRADESH REWA MALWA BHOPAL N A G P U R BERAR (from 1857) Ravi Varma (1848-1906) First independent, gentleman-artist of India N 0 0 300 miles 150 kms 2 India, 1857-1900 British territory, 1857 Anglo-Indian architecture (Indo-Saracenic) Anglo-Indian architecture (Syncretic European) art presses/book production cotton mills Grand Trunk Road folk art: painted cloth banners Warli wall art other mud wall art export products: raw cotton indigo opium tea blue pottery Bidri ware (inlaid metal) glass bangles I European civil and military personnel, constructed with army barracks behind an open parade ground. Pre-mid-century public buildings and personal residences, intended to promote the grandeur of the Raj and show off individual wealth and status, were often Neoclassical – modelled on British prototypes. After the Uprising of 1857 when the Company was replaced by the British Raj (1858), urban architecture became recognizably hybrid, as Indo-Saracenic (of Islamic-Syrian origin) style took precedence. Laxmi Vilas Palace, Baroda and the Victoria Terminus, Mumbai (Bombay) are among the best examples of this native Indian category, while Government House and the Marble Palace, both in Calcutta, represent the imported Neoclassical. Though modest, the domestic bungalow (a rustic Bengali-style hut with high ceilings and other European adaptations) may be the most noteworthy architectural innovation of the Raj. THE REVIVAL OF INDIAN ART Alarmed by the erosion of native craft and decorative arts, the British began to establish art schools to improve native taste and revive the industrial and applied arts. Based on the industrial arts curriculum practised at London’s South Kensington School of Art, painting and sculpture courses were not a priority and were often omitted at government art schools in India. Plagued by a conflict between fine and applied art, the art-school dilemma is yet to be resolved. The growth of Art Societies – Calcutta Art Society, founded in 1831, was the first – eventually benefited native artists after years of exclusion from exhibitions and social events. As upper- and middle-class Indian society was being Westernized, its notion of art and the artist was changing. While the upper classes bought European oil paintings on canvas, art that hung on walls or sculpture that was intended to decorate house and garden were new concepts. Indian artists were apprenticed to learn the trade and worked in karkhanas (group workshops, like an atelier) for an exclusive patron (royalty or gentry). The small-size paintings they produced were kept in leather containers or placed in a muraqqa (bound like a book) to be hand-held and viewed at close range. If Company Art was an initial break from the karkhana, the first independent Indian ‘gentleman artist’ could come only from wealth and royalty. Raja Ravi Varma (1848–1906) belonged to the royal family of Travancore. He learned to paint by watching European artists at court and travelled around India earning fame and lucrative commissions. By the turn of the century his work was hailed as the renaissance in Indian art. Varma painted familiar subjects – mythology and Indian literature – in the Western academic tradition and had oleograph reproductions made for mass consumption. Nevertheless, by the time of his death, the rising tide of Indian nationalism rejected his Western style in favour of a new, more spiritual, Oriental approach to painting. The ethnic and religious diversity that comprises Indian culture of this period reflects upheaval and compromise. The Sikh religious centre at Amritsar is a living museum of distinctive art and architecture. The Jains have recorded their ancient religious literature on brilliantly painted palm-leaf manuscripts. Nothing is lost from India’s past. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 248 studies and other surveys. To accommodate the foreign employer, Indian artists, from hereditary painting families and those newly inducted, learned techniques of illusionism – Western perspective and shading. As Company towns grew, native artists painted family scenes and homesteads for foreign residents, who also bought picturesque scenes of India to send to friends and family back home. While the languishing courts in Rajasthan, the Punjab Hills and at Hyderabad continued to produce Indian miniature painting (referred to as ‘provincial’ to distinguish it from the highly refined painting of the seventeenthand eighteenth-century Mughal and Hindu courts), a style of Indo-European painting called ‘Company Art’, evolved and flourished in cities under British domination. Provenance and style have distinguished a large body of these Indo-European paintings from southern India, eastern and upper India, northern and western India, even Nepal, Burma, Sri Lanka and Malacca. COLONIAL ARCHITECTURE European and Indo-European architecture was not the invention of the East India Company. In the seventeenth century the Portuguese erected Mannerist- and Baroque-style churches in Goa and created a blended Indo-Portuguese form. However, while Portuguese influence was geographically concentrated, British-inspired architecture spread throughout India. Cantonments, the hub of Company towns and cities, constituted a segregated community of BY 1800 THE BRITISH EAST INDIA Company was firmly entrenched in India. The Company exported textile goods (cotton and silk) as well as foodstuffs (sugar cane, tea, coffee, rice, spices) and indigo. It contributed to the Opium Wars by exporting quantities of Indian opium to China. Oddly, the Indian cotton trade was nearly obliterated by cheap imports from Britain’s Lancashire mills. While Surat, Madras, Bombay and Calcutta were the primary Company seaports and major cities, Calcutta became the capital and undisputed cultural centre. Kalighat Pat, a style of painting that was a syncretic blend of Bengali folk and Western realism, was produced and sold at the Kali temple on the outskirts of urban Calcutta, epitomizing the ingenuity of local artists in a socially and economically compromised climate. Ironically, the Calcutta fine-art print industry, so greatly influenced by Kalighat art, caused the demise of that folk tradition by the end of the 1930s. In addition to the print industry, Kalighat had an impact on other art movements, notably that of the Modernist painter, Jamini Roy (1887–1972). COMPANY ART European artists (amateur and professional) had been travelling the breadth of India since the 1780s, painting scenic landscapes, Hindu and Mughal architecture and making sketches and watercolours of the various ethnic groups, trades and castes. Most were freelance artists, but the more famous were commissioned to paint nawabs’ and rajas’ portraits in oil on canvas. A number of British artists made etchings and aquatints in Calcutta studios and later in London. The Company needed artists to map the country, make ethnographic SOUTH ASIA 1800-1900 65° 70° 75° 80° 85° 90° 90˚85˚80˚75˚ 10˚ 15˚ 20˚ 30˚ 25˚ 35˚ I I I en en en en en Delhi Surat Nasik Ellora Karkala Nagamangala Durgi Allagadda Bhuvaneswar Konarka Puri Bombay Salsette Elephanta Jodhpur Nathdwara Multan Amritsar Lahore Jaipur Gwalior Agra Mathura Lucknow Allahabad Benares Bharhut Sanchi Chitor Faizabad Patna Murshidabad Calcutta Kalighat Dacca NagpurAjanta Aurangabad Bagh Ajmer Broach Ahmadabad Poona Aihole Malabar Goa Divar Karle Amaravati Ahmadnagar Hyderabad Masulipatam Madras Mailapur Mahabalipuram Pondicherry Chidambaram Srirangam Negapatan Madurai Chettinad Tanjore Sigiriya Kandy Cochin Colombo Calicut Quilon Coorg Trichinopoly Seringapatam Bangalore Mysore Indus Ravi Jamuna Sutlej Jh elum Ch enab Ganges Narmada Godavari Krishna Brahmaputra A R A B I A N S E A BAY O F B E N G A L I N D I A N O C E A N H I M A L A Y A S WESTERNGHATS E A S T E R N GHATS K A S H M I R N E P A LO U D H P U N J A B KANGRA G A N D H A R A SHEKHAWATI B I H A R A S S A M B E N G A L O R I S S A S I N D G U J A R AT KUTCH G O A MYSORE CEYLON TRAVANCORE KERALA R A J P U T S TAT E S MARATHA CONFEDERACY NIZAM’S DOMINIONS CARNATIC first railway, 1834 Calcutta Mechanics' Institution and School of Arts, 1839; School of Art, 1854 Mayo School of Art, 1875 Madras School of Arts, 1850 JJ School of Art, 1856 export products: quality cloth and yarn low-quality cloth raw cotton silk piece goods jute indigo opium sugar cane rice tea coffee spices stone carving carved timber work copper/brass forming, casting Bidri ware (inlaid metal) enamelled jewellery gold/inlaid, gem jewellery N 0 0 300 miles 150 kms I 1 India, 1800-1857 British territory, 1805 historic site folk art East India Company painting centre native patronage centre photography centre British government art school, with date of foundation major sea port Anglo-Indian architecture (Neoclassical) Anglo-Indian architecture (Syncretic European) en 1 THE BRITISH EAST INDIA COMPANY expanded their interests and land holdings in India which fostered trade with the home country and the Far East. Imported British cotton cloth almost ruined Indian cloth production and export of opium to China contributed to the Opium Wars. As Company cities proliferated and grew, displaced artists learnt Western techniques to make maps, geological surveys and ethnographic studies. The British government created art schools to instill Western taste and revive the applied arts. KALIGHAT PAINTING: The Tarakeshwar Murder, artist unknown, c.1875, watercolour and silver on paper. Folk artists from Bengal gathered at the Kali temple in Calcutta. The syncretic folk and Western watercolour style met the demands of the mass pilgrim market. Subject-matter focused on mythology, but artists also drew from the local social-political milieu, particularly life around the temple, local prostitutes, exotic Europeans and scandals, such as the Tarakeshwar murder. This painting is part of a series in which a husband murdered his wife when he discovered that she had an adulterous affair with a Hindu mahant (abbott of a monastic foundation). CHINA AND TIBET 1800–1900 251 companies, electric plants, telegraph companies, iron mines and foundries and Western schools were founded at this time. Such engines of modernity were unevenly distributed, existing primarily in the Treaty Ports and along their connecting routes. Chinese intellectuals such as Kang Youwei (1858–1927) sought to reconcile traditional Chinese thought with the need for modernization by retaining and rethinking China’s intellectual history while embracing Western contributions to knowledge, especially in science and technology. THE VISUAL ARTS IN CHINA Visual production in nineteenth-century China was similarly informed by indigenous tradition and imported modernity. Localized production of traditional arts continued to flourish throughout the empire, especially in county, prefectural and provincial seats. A number of sites continued to have an empire-wide reputation for specialized artistic production, such as ceramics from Jingdezhen, Dehua, Longquan and Yixing, and paintings from Suzhou and Yangzhou. In the Treaty Ports, Western techniques for the representation and reproduction of images, including single-point perspective and colourism, lithography and photography, challenged traditional modes of making images, as did exposure to new materials, especially oil-paint. A new interest in colour, shading and perspective is found in the works of members of the so-called Shanghai School, for example, Ren Xiong (1820–57). The introduction of photography to China by foreigners, for example, Felice Beato (1820–1907) and John Thompson (1837–1921), documented China’s social and political conditions and challenged established traditional Chinese notions of realism and representation articulated in classical Chinese painting theory. Photography also advanced Western imperial ideology, while recording and disseminating knowledge of China abroad. Cinema was also introduced to China through foreign interests in Shanghai in 1896 by a representative of the Lumière brothers. Early viewing of cinema in China was limited to the Treaty Ports, where it co-existed together with traditional forms of spectacular entertainment such as shadow puppetry, acrobatics, juggling, and magic. SELF-PORTRAIT by Ren Xiong (1820–57) epitomizes the intellectual tensions of nineteenth-century China. The poetic inscription recounts a dialogue between the artist and his image (as reflected in a mirror) that probes questions of moral and ethical conduct, and the value of classical Chinese learning in the modern world. Ren represents the contradictions of the era by contrasting a Westerninfluenced realistic depiction of Ren’s body with the traditional, calligraphic rendering of his robes. 2 SHANGHAI was the richest and most populous of China’s Treaty Ports. Foreign extraterritorial rights created the foreign concession areas, distinct from the old Chinese city. Western expatriates in Shanghai recreated their native visual cultures in the construction and decoration of governmental and commercial buildings, schools, churches, clubs and houses. Tea houses, artists’ studios, and antique dealers catered to Chinese interested in the visual arts; in contrast, expatriates replicated the emergent museum culture of their homelands by founding ‘modern’ musems in Shanghai at this time. In the second half of the nineteenth century, China’s media culture, previously dependent on woodblock printing, with some mid-Qing experiments with metal-plate engraving, was transformed by the Western technology of lithography, and Western-style printed books and newspapers were produced. The development of an alternative, nontraditionally Chinese media culture is evident, for example, in the advertisement and review of imported movies in the new newspapers, and in the turn-of-the-century filming of Chinese street life. ART IN THE TREATY PORTS In the Treaty Ports, traditional Chinese architectural and social forms were articulated within walled Chinese cities. Western and hybrid Sino-European architectural and social practices – including clothing styles – transformed extramural suburbs into small approximations of Western cities. Commercial, administrative, religious and residential structures were built for expatriate residents. To furnish the interiors of these buildings, Western-style paintings, stained glass, furniture, and other decorative arts were locally produced. Techniques for their manufacture were taught to the Chinese, for example, in Shanghai at the Jesuit-run Tushanwan Arts and Crafts Centre in the Xujiawei suburb. The new visual forms of modern life in the Treaty Ports were underscored by the foundation of museums. China’s first museum, the Shanghai Museum of Natural History, was founded in 1868 by Father Pierre Heude in Xujiawei, Shanghai; in 1874 the Northern Branch of the Royal Asiatic Society founded its museum, which became the Shanghai Museum of Art. Establishment of museums meant that objects were on public view under scientific conditions, as opposed to the teahouses, restaurants, antique and curio dealers, and elite private gatherings of traditional China. 2 Shanghai after the Opium Wars private clubs schools consulates hotels public utilities museums gardens and parks Chinese temple Christian churches and missions Chinese government offices English and American business Foreign concessions, 1843, 1848, 1899 French concessions, 1849, 1861 public lands, 1863, 1899 SC P P P S S S S S S C C Bubbling Well Cemetery St John‘s College Old Cemetery Anglo Chinese CollegeShanghai Public School 12 2 3 1 4 9 5 13 14 15 16 18 20 19 21 27 22 23 24 25 28 26 17 6 7 8 Hongkew Park Yuyuan garden Customs Club Hongkew Markets Lower Boathouse Chamber of Commerce Water Tower Union Church London Mission Society American Methodist Mission American Baptist Mission English Church Mission Arts and Crafts School Museum of Natural History British Consulate Masonic Hall French Consulate American Baptist Mission ChapelAmerican Church Mission Chapel American Board Foreign Mission American Mission Society Chapel 11 10 Race Course Huangpu Jiang W uson g Jiang NORTHERN DISTRICT CENTRAL DISTRICT WESTERN DISTRICT NATIVE CITY FRENCH SETTLEMENT French Ziccawei (Xujiahui) Road 0 0 1 mile 1.5 kms - Astor House Hotel - U.S. Consulate - Japanese Consulate - German Consulate - Old Dock - American Episcopal Church Mission - London Mission Society Chapel - Tongkadoo (Roman Catholic) Cathedral - English Church - Japanese Post Office - Electric Light Station - Hanbury School - Jardine, Matheson & Co - P. & O.B.N. Co, and Sassoon & Co - Gibb, Livingston & Co - Augustins Heard & Co - Dr Dixon (in 1886) - Shaw Bros & Co - Dent & Co - Turner & Co - Smith, Kennedy & Co - Russell & Co - Wheelock & Co - Adamson & Co - H.Fogg & Co - Oriental Bank - Chinese Custom house - Russian Consulate 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 18 19 20 21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 N ART IN TIBET A more independent and unified Tibet emerged in the nineteenth century from the political turmoil of border rebellion. Kongtrul Lama (1813–99), who headed the Ri mé (literally ‘without partisan views’) religious movement, oversaw the compilation of a Tibetan encyclopedia, which included esoteric Buddhism, Sanskrit grammar, Tibetan medicine, iconometry and Tibetan painting traditions, and authored an important treatise on Tibetan art history. Although the thirteenth Dalai Lama (1876–1933) encouraged study abroad, there is little evidence of the impact of such study on Tibetan art. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 250 AFTER THE DEATH of the Qianlong emperor in 1795, peasant revolts, the rebellion of non-ethnic Chinese peoples in Hunan and Guizhou in China’s southwest and the incursion of piracy on the Guangdong and Fujian coasts began to destabilize China. Peasant unrest persisted throughout the first quarter of the nineteenth century, most notably in southern China. Simultaneously, non-ethnic Chinese populations on China’s borders, including the Tibetans, the Yao of Guizhou, and the Muslims of Xinjiang also rebelled. In 1816 China’s political and economic situation was complicated by the British East India Company’s development of the opium trade, outlawed by China in 1729, to offset its China Trade imbalances. CHINA IN TURMOIL The 1839 ban on opium by the official Lin Zexu (1785–1850), a traditional Chinese literatus also active as an amateur painter and calligrapher, resulted in British piracy and other acts of military aggression on China’s south coast. China’s military failed to contain the foreign threat, and China consequently agreed to negotiate an end to hostilities. Through the Treaty of Nanjing of 1842 Britain acquired Hong Kong island and trading rights in five Chinese ports; Britain also received payment in silver of large indemnities. The Second Opium War, resolved by the Treaty of Tianjin in 1858, opened up further ports – the ‘Treaty Ports’ – to foreign influence, as did other further diplomatic negotiation. China’s attempts to modernize along Western lines were undercut by social, political and economic instability. Nonetheless, railroads, steamship CHINA AND TIBET 1800-1900 110˚ 120˚ 130˚ 140˚100˚ 40˚ 50˚ 30˚ 20˚ Beijing Yangzhou Xiuning Xuancheng Shexian Derge Lhasa Shigatse (Xigazê) Wuxi Zhenjiang (Chinkiang) Suzhou Chengdu Nanjing (Nanking) Yixing Dehua Longquan Jingdezhen Wuhu Yichang (Ichang) Changsha Hankou (Hankow) Jiujiang (Kiukiang) Newchwang Dairen Port Arthur Nanning Chongqing WuzhouLongzhou Qingdao Mukden Yantai (Chefoo) Weihaiwei Tianjin (Tientsin) Shantou (Swatow) Hong Kong to Britain 1842 Shanghai Ningbo (Ningpo) Wenzhou (Wenchow) Fuzhou (Foochow)Xiamen (Amoy) Hangzhou Guangzhou (Canton) Macao to Portugal 1849 Khotan Kunming Guilin Lanzhou Jinan KaifengXi’an Taiyuan Wuchang Anqing Nanchang Taiwan Jilin Tsitsihar G anges Y alu Yellow River Yangtze Xi Jiang Lop Nor S E A O F J A P A N YELLOW SEA EAST CHINA SEA SOUTH CHINA SEA G O B I TA K L A M A K A N A LTA I M T S Q I L I A N S H A N T I E N S H A N RY U KYU ISLANDS to Japan 1881 Z H I L I SHENGJING H E I L O N G J I A N J I L I N JIANGSU ANHUI SHANXI SHANDONG HENAN SHAANXI G A N S U INNER MONGOLIA ZHEJIANG JIANGXI HUBEI HUNAN S I C H U A N Q I N G H A I FUJIAN GUANG- DONG Y U N N A N G U A N G X I TAIWAN HAINAN G U I Z H O U T I B E T M O N G O L I A X I N J I A N G K O REA I N D I A C H I N A BURMA Silver from the New World Ming Great Wall N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 Visual Production, 1800-1900 China’s borders, c.1850 provincial borders treaty port/open city ceded to foreign power, with date provincial capitals imperial capital painting production site of empire-wide reputation Western-influenced painting major printing centre kiln site of empire-wide reputation textile production site of empire-wide reputation Tibetan art site jade British attacks during the First Opium War, 1839–42 1 THE LAST CENTURY of Manchu rule was shaped by Western interest in China. The Opium Wars led to the opening of treaty ports; the Taiping rebellions, led by the ‘new Messiah’ Hong Xiuquan (1813–64), sought to refashion Chinese society from within. In the Treaty Ports modern Western art forms were practised alongside traditional Chinese ones; in this setting a range of hybrid EuroChinese forms emerged. THE INTRODUCTION of photography to China during the nineteenth century transformed the pictorial practices, documentary habits and established media culture of the Chinese visual field, as represented by this image, A Hong Kong Artist, from John Thompson’s 1873 Illustrations of China and Its People. Photography disseminated knowledge of China and her pictorial practices abroad; domestically it became an important tool for creating Chinese ritual images for ancestral worship. Edo Castle Compound Shogun‘s residence to 1868; emperor‘s palace from 1869; art collections Akasaka Palace (1899-1909) Western-style palace complex Ueno Park Western-style architecture in late 19th c, including art museums; Ueno Imperial Museum 1882; Tokyo University of Arts Campus Tokyo University Campus (1869) Yoshiwara Licensed Pleasure Quarters (17th-20th c) printed materials Nihonbashi area Shopping district for ceramics, textiles, lacquerware, metalwork; Western-style architecture in the 19th c, including Bank of Japan (1890-96) Tokyo Station (1914) Western-style architecture in late 19th c Ginza area (post-1870) Western-style architecture and shopping area in late 19th c Sumo Tournament Grounds (17th-20th c) printed materials Theatre district (19th c) performing arts, printed materials to Kisokaido, Mt Fuji, Northwest provinces to Nikkokaido to Yokohama, Western provinces Sum ida River Furukawa RiverM eguro R iver T O K Y O B A Y 2 Edo/Tokyo, 1800-1900 canal railway bridge silk textile sales cotton dyeing/textile sales woodblock print production and sales kilns for tiles and pottery warehouses/lumberyards N 0 0 2 miles 3 kms JAPAN AND KOREA 1800 –1900 253 HIROSHIGE’S PRINT SURUGACHO from 100 Famous Views of Edo, 1856. Western techniques of one-point perspective and shading were widely known among Japanese painters and print designers. Some artists, like Ando Hiroshige (1797–1858) and Katsushika Hokusai (1760–1849), used traditional Japanese materials to create woodblock prints and paintings that were influenced by illustrated books from Europe and China. KOREA: THE SURVIVAL OF TRADITION At the start of the nineteenth century Korean rulers, observing the dismemberment of China by European colonial forces, felt that their country was now the last bastion of Confucian traditions in Asia and made efforts to officially sponsor and protect Korean values and arts. Seoul, the capital city, continued to be the centre of artistic production, and most artists, scholars and aristocrats (yangban) preferred conservative Chinese styles of painting, calligraphy, ceramics and sculpture. Plain white porcelain wares that had developed during the Chosun Period (1392–1910) were viewed as distinctly Korean and valued for their simplicity and purity, as physical manifestations of Confucian virtues. These continued to be produced in the imperial factories in the Kwangju area southeast of Seoul. Some Korean artists continued to experiment with genre and ‘true view’ landscape (chin’gyong sansu) painting styles begun in the eighteenth century, depicting the Korean people and actual countryside rather than imaginary figures and landscapes. However, Western art seen by Koreans visiting China or brought to Korea by Christian missionaries during the nineteenth century gradually began to affect the traditional arts – especially 2 ARTISTIC PRODUCTION IN JAPAN was concentrated in Kyoto, the imperial city, and in Edo (Tokyo), the government’s political centre. Kyoto focused on traditional arts developed for the aristocracy, wealthy merchants, Buddhist temples and tourists. Edo was associated with innovation, especially in response to foreign imports, and with material goods, produced for the growing middle class. portraiture, which became increasingly detailed and realistic. Western architecture had a limited impact on Korea in the nineteenth century, being identified primarily with buildings for the foreign consulates and Christian missionaries, such as the Gothic-Revival style Myodong Catholic Cathedral, completed in 1898. As part of mid-nineteenth century efforts to affirm Korea’s identity and independence, the old imperial palace compounds in Seoul, which had been in ruins since their destruction by Japanese armies in the 1590s, were elaborately rebuilt. These brightly painted Chinese-style wooden pavilions were raised on stone platforms above paved courtyards, where grand ceremonies of state and Confucian rituals were held as part of the revival of ancient traditions. Korea, like Japan, participated in international expositions, sending artworks to Chicago (1893) and Paris (1900), but outside interests in traditional Korean culture did not really materialize. After 1895 Japan became increasingly involved in Korean politics, eventually annexing the peninsula in 1910, and began sending Korean artists to train in Japan. Efforts to preserve Korean national identity and cultural traditions would be severely challenged in the next century. SWIMMING DUCKS by Korean artist Hong Se-sop (1832–84). The eighteenth-century scholarartist tradition was vigorously continued as part of the overall efforts of the Korean elite to preserve and protect Confucian, Chinese and Korean cultural values from foreign influences. Bird and flower paintings, both in ink on paper and in colours on silk, were extremely popular. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 252 building forms, such as factories, banks, train stations, and public halls, were modelled after examples in Europe and the USA. Japanese painting in the nineteenth century was greatly affected by Western influences. Japanese woodblock prints were extremely popular in the nineteenth century, with landscape images by Hokusai and Hiroshige being produced in large sets (‘36 Views of Mt. Fuji’, ‘53 Stations of the Tokaido’, ‘100 Views of Edo’) and in many editions. The more traditional subject matter of ukiyo-e, such as kabuki actors and courtesans, continued to sell well, although more intense colours and more intricate carving techniques reflected Western influence and fashionable ‘modern’ tastes. Not all Japanese painters reacted to Western techniques, and eighteenth-century trends in literati painting derived from Chinese models still flourished, especially in the Kyoto-Osaka area, and particularly among ‘amateur’ artists. Among these, Uragami Gyokudo (1745–1820) sought selfexpression through the harmony of music and visual art in the gentleman-scholar tradition. gunboats in Japanese waters led to the overthrow of the Tokugawa military government which had controlled the islands for over 250 years. Reform groups moved the young emperor to Tokyo and initiated a process of ‘modernization’ that included inviting foreign artists and technicians to teach in Japan and sending Japanese representatives to study in Europe and the USA. In the 1860s and 1870s Japanese prints, paintings and traditional decorative objects were becoming extremely popular in the West, sparking ‘Japonisme’ and influencing Impressionist painters. By the end of the nineteenth century the government had established art schools and museums in Tokyo and Kyoto, where both traditional and modern arts were taught and displayed. Japanese architecture was significantly changed by the introduction of Western building techniques and materials, especially brick and glass. Wood construction traditions, which essentially had been the same for centuries, were affected by the rapid modernization of Japan in the 1870s–90s. Tokyo and Yokohama were linked by a rail line, and in both cities new JAPAN AND KOREA 1800-1900 140˚130˚120˚110˚ 40˚ 30˚ Nara Edo/Tokyo Aomori Sendai Nagoya Tokaido Kanazawa Yokohama Kyoto Arita OsakaHiroshima Nagasaki KagoshimaShanghai Pusan Seoul Yellow River Yangtze S E A O F J A P A N E A S T C H I N A S E A Y E L L O W S E A P A C I F I C O C E A N KYUSHU SHIKOKU HONSHU HOKKAIDO RYUKY U ISLANDS C H I N A J A P A N K O R E A TAIWAN overseas trade, late 19th c trade with/from Tokyo via Nagasaki/ Yokohama overseas trade, late 19th c Ainu hunter-gatherer culture government-sponsored exhibits sent to international exhibitions tribute gifts exported to China imports of raw materials, finished goodsfrom China to Seoul to China from Seoul toJapa nto China toEurope from India and Europe from China to Nagasaki toKor ea N 0 0 250 miles 350 kms 1 Japan and Korea, 1800-1900 gold silver raw cotton textiles paintings calligraphy lacquerware ceramics kiln sites paper books altar utensils printed materials metalwork sculpture (netsuke/No masks) performing arts centre (kabuki/ No/puppet theatre) private art collections important port overland trade exports imports included under Japanese administration, pre-1870s included under Japanese administration, post-1870s DURING THE EARLY nineteenth century, Japan and Korea feared the destruction of their own national identities by Western imperialism and tried to isolate themselves from outside political and cultural incursions. But by the end of the nineteenth century both Japan and Korea were adopting and adapting to outside artistic influences. THE MODERNIZATION OF JAPAN By the mid-nineteenth century in Japan, government corruption, nationwide economic hardships and the appearance of foreign 1 IN THE LATE EDO PERIOD, Japanese ceramics were made in a number of provinces, and in a wide variety of styles. While mass production in the early nineteenth century was still controlled by regional military governors, who used ceramic sales as a source of income, certain kilns provided distinctive wares for the tea ceremony and others were geared to the export trade. Modern factory production of textiles, cloisonné, ceramics and lacquer developed quickly in the 1880–90s, with significant amounts intended for export to Europe, the USA and Asia. SOUTHEAST ASIA 1800–1900 255 signified wealth, rank and family connections. Fine sarongs were worn at weddings, funerals and other occasions where status and group membership were important. Imported textiles, usually from India, were also popular. Ikat or tie-dyed textiles were woven on backstrap looms, and batik – wax-resistant cloth – was produced in Java, and more widely. The most sacred cloths – those kept for ritual occasions – were kept as family heirlooms. In many of the great, tall-roofed houses of Indonesia, such heirlooms were kept, along with heads taken in head-hunting raids, in the upper roof space, which was considered to relate to and symbolize the upper realm. In some of the more remote areas of Borneo, the Philippines and New Guinea, soft, painted bark-cloth fabric was produced. In more populous areas, the European developers, aware of native hostility, continued to rely on foreign middlemen to build up the businesses, and Chinese and Indian immigration increased. In Siam local Chinese merchants were increasingly involved in trade, and the Chinese quickly became a wealthy group. They brought with them Confucianist and Taoist ideals and built family temples and houses of brick directly on the ground. These they surrounded with high walls. To reflect their status, the more successful among them both imported and commissioned artworks, particularly ceramics, silverware, textiles and furniture. Most of these items were of a highly ornate design, many of them designed specifically for the overseas Chinese or Peranakan market. With the growing strength of the European powers there was also a change in the structuring of local society. Local leaders were in many cases now answerable to European district officers. Christian missionaries were active in the hill regions of the interior and in the outer islands. Mission schools were established in many areas, teaching in the language of the European power, which created an educated elite unable to assume control of government. ART AND ARCHITECTURE In the field of art, lacquerware and wood carving were particularly fine at this time, although little wood carving remains from the period, due to climatic conditions. A few wooden monastic buildings dating from the nineteenth century remain in Burma. Carved with foliate and floral designs, fabulous beasts and other motifs, they show remarkable skill and delicacy. Another – secular – architectural gem from this period is the Lacquer Pavilion in Thailand. This small wooden pavilion, the walls of which are lined with exquisite lacquer panels, escaped destruction in the sacking of Ayutthaya by being moved to the grounds of a summer palace at a safe distance from the city. Southeast Asian houses were very distinctive, as they still are; traditionally the roof generally formed the greater part of the building, which was usually raised on stilts – an ancient design. Longhouses were still built in many parts of the region including the Philippines, Borneo, New Guinea, Vietnam and Malaya. In these houses, which were raised high above the ground on wooden piles, a communal area stretched the length of the house, with individual sleeping areas leading off. These houses were particularly common in head-hunting regions, where safety in numbers was the rule. However, they gradually became scarcer as Christian missionaries discouraged the building of traditional longhouses, considering them to be both unhygienic and conducive to immorality. In the field of architecture and sculpture, the emphasis, as in the past, was on the recreation of earlier forms, although in many cases in a more ornate manner than before. In the Buddhist sculpture of Siam and Cambodia for example, there was an echoing of earlier Ayutthayan forms, but crowned Buddha images wore more decorative robes and crowns. Stupas built in the new city of Bangkok were taller than before, and blended Khmer and Thai forms. One innovation of this period was the use of broken ceramic mosaic to cover stupa walls, creating a brilliant and colourful effect, as can be seen at the soaring Wat Arun in Bangkok and in some buildings within the palace walls. Also noticeable here, however, is the influence of European architecture. Bangkok’s palace, constructed in 1867, is topped with stepped roofs covered with coloured tiles in the Siamese style, but it has a classical façade in marble. Although rather startling, this adopting of different styles and influences is typical of the Southeast Asian approach to the visual over many centuries. In the Philippines, too, Spanish influence could be seen both in the colonial-style architecture of the period and in the sculpture, much of which was catholic in inspiration. ART AND SOCIETY The social framework of Southeast Asia was reflected in the textiles of the region. The thread used, the colours and motifs, all 100˚98˚ 10˚ 12˚ 14˚ 16˚ 18˚ 20˚ 22˚Mandalay Kyaukmyaung Shwei-nyein Amarapura Pyinmana Möng Noi Kengtung Möng Nai Kenglong Kehsi Mansam Möng Küng Bawdwin Meiktila Prome Nwa-ma-ran Tharrawaddy Rangoon Pegu Moulmein Tavoy Mergui Henzada Bassein Akyab Kyauktaw Sandoway Kyaukpyu Thayetmyo Pagan Minbya Ava Sagaing Yesa-gyo Mingun Inle Lake Mouths of the Irrawad dy Irrawaddy Salween Chindwin Salin Chaung BAY O F B E N G A L A N DA M A N S E A CHIN HILLS NAGA HILLS MINGINRANGE A R A K A N PEGU RANGOON SHAN STATES TENASSERIM Ponnyashin nearby village of Ywataung palm-leaf manuscripts (folding books) (kalaga) N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms Burma in the Age of Empire, 1895 Date of annexation by British: 1826 1852 1885 1889 2 Crafts and Manufactures: boat building weaponry stone carving wood carving ivory carving metalwork silversmiths gold beating jade carving amber carving ceramics textiles silk weaving umbrellas lacquerware basketry manuscripts Major buildings: pagoda monastery palace fort Mandalay Mahamuni, 1857 Kyauk taw gyi, 1865 Mandalay Hill Atumashi, 1857 Nan daw gyi, 1857 Royal palace, 1857 Kalaga wall hangings Kyauktawgyi, 1847 Patodawgyi, 1820 Amarapura Mingun (unfinished), started 1790 Hsinbyume, 1816 Mingun 2 OVER THE COURSE of the nineteenth century Burma underwent dramatic political changes. In three AngloBurmese wars British forces gained control of most of its territory. Their movement northward culminated in the fall of the Burmese monarchy at Mandalay in 1885, when the royal family was exiled to India. Administrative change quickly followed, and the British government also encouraged migrant workers from India and China. With the departure of the court, many traditional crafts became less widespread but some craftsmen made items to suit European taste. WOODEN MASK, BbohnarJolong people, central Vietnam. This rare mask shows that in the nineteenth century masks were used in ritual, as they still are today in many parts of Southeast Asia. Masks had a sacred function and were used either to invoke the ancestors or the spirits, usually in dance. In some regions it was the custom for men to carve their own masks which represented their ancestor and which performed a protective function. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 254 AT THE OUTSET of the nineteenth century the last of the great Southeast Asian empires had been formed: the Konbaung (1752–1885) in Burma, the Chakri (1782– present) in Siam, and the Nguyen (1802–1945) in Vietnam. In Java, the Mataram dynasty had divided into two lines: the houses of Surakata and Jogjakarta, neither of which held much power beyond their capitals. These kingdoms functioned in the traditional manner but their rulers were increasingly aware of external influence in the form of European trade and power. During this period the European powers made rapid political and territorial advances into the region, aware of the enormous profits to be made from the trade in spices and other commodities. Government-appointed officials now took the place of representatives of companies such as the East India Company, and territorial revenues replaced trading profits. Natural resources were developed for export, particularly in the form of plantation crops. The French controlled the trade of Indochina: Vietnam, Laos and Cambodia, where huge plantations produced export crops such as rubber and tobacco.Very few areas remained unaffected by Western influence. Even in the inaccessible interior regions, trade brought exotic items and ideas. SOUTHEAST ASIA 1800-1900 90˚ 100˚ 110˚ 120˚ 130˚ 30˚ 20˚ 10˚ 0˚ Ag Ag Ag Ag Ag Ag Ag Ag Ag Ag Ag Batak Funerary effigies Dayak Funerary effigies Torajan Funerary effigies Asmat Totemic poles Masjid Tranquerah Masjid Jami Mosque Wat Doi Suthep Wat Arun Temple of the Emerald Buddha Hainan temple (1866) Sri Marriamman temple (1883) National temple to Confucius Mingun Hsinbyume pagoda (1816) Pagan Sawankhalok Sukhothai Angkor Dieng Plateau Borobudur Prambanan Cebu Basilica Minore de Santo Niño Bangkok Chanthaburi Nakhon Si Thammarat Pattani Kedah Malacca Padang Palembang Batavia Bandung Tjeribon Surakarta Surabaya Bandjarmasin Pandang (Macassar) Dili Ambon Tidore Menado Ternate Sarawak Brunei Yogyakarta George Town (Penang) Phnom Penh Korat Toungoo VientianeChiengmai Moulmein Tavoy Rangoon Pegu Mandalay Prome Macao (To Portugal) Hong Kong (To Britain) Luang Prabang Hanoi Da Nang Nha Trang Saigon Hué Atjeh Manila Kuala Terengganu Kuala Lumpur founded 1857 Singapore founded 1819 Pontianak S U M A T R A COCHIN CHINA 1862 CELEBES TONGKING 1883 S I A M CAMBODIA C H I N A MALAYA British protectorate 1888-1914 FRENCH INDOCHINA united 1887 SARA W AK M O L U C C A S J A V A BORNEO B R I T I S H I N D I A C O M M O N W E A LT H O F A U S T R A L I A P H IL IP PINES1899 A N N A M UPPER BURMA 1886 BRITISH NORTH BORNEO 1881 BURMA 1852 D U T C H E A S T I N D I E S N E W G U I N E A LOWER BURMA 1852 BALI BURU LOMBOK FLORES SUMBA TIMOR BUTUNG CERAM HALMAHERA MINDANAO LUZON TAIWAN HAINAN SAMAR CEBU PANAY NEGROS MINDORO ANDAMAN IS. NIAS SUMBAWA MADURA Irawaddy Mekong R ed River Salween I N D I A N O C E A N S O U T H C H I NA S E A GULF OF TONGKING GULF OF THAILAND C E L E B E S S E A S U L U S E A ANDAMAN SEA O F M ALACCA STRAIT STRAITOFMACASSAR FLORES SEA TIMOR SEA BANDA SEA JAVA SEA ARAFURA SEA emperors’ tombs Notre Dame cathedral Kyauktawgyi pagoda (1878) Shwezigon pagoda Shwe Dagon pagoda St. Joseph’s Cathedral Tu Hieu pagoda (1808) Silver pagoda (1866) N 0 0 500 miles 700 kms 1 The Age of Empire, 1900 British French Dutch U.S. Portuguese important town or city royal palace colonial building Historical and religious sites: important historical site pagoda temple mosque church funerary effigies and ancestral images Economic resources: silver work gold metalwork wood carving manuscripts textiles ceramics stone carving Ag 1 THE NINETEENTH CENTURY saw the consolidation of Western control over the region. Whereas previously the Dutch and English East India Companies had concentrated purely on trade with India, China and the Arab world, Western governments now took over the administration of large areas. Gradually the various Southeast Asian countries became part of the empires of the Netherlands, England, France and the United States. By 1900 only Siam remained independent. FUNERARY EFFIGIES, Torajaland, Celebes (Sulawesi). These effigies, almost life-size, stand guard high on the cliff face overlooking their village. After a person's death an effigy (tao tao) was carved to represent the deceased, and placed high above the village close to the upper realm. In this way the ancestors retained an important protective role in society and provided a sense of continuity within the group. This custom still continues despite the inroads of Islam and Christianity. S O U T H PA C I F I C O C E A N C O R A L S E A SOLOMON SEA WESTERN & ANARVON ISLANDS LAULASI & BUSU ISLANDS SANTA ISABEL NEW GEORGIA MALAITA FLORIDA IS GUADALCANAL CHOISEUL VELLA LAVELLA SIMBO TREASURY ISLANDS RENNELL BELLONA SAN CRISTOVAL SANTA ANA ULAWA I. SANTA CATALINA REEF IS. SANTA CRUZ SOLOMON ISLANDS NEW GUINEA N Areas of Art Production in Solomon Islands 2 0 120 miles 0 200 kms Tumbou (Tubou) Voua Nambukeluka Nakoro Si ngatoka Rewa M ba Nba Bay SOUTH PACIFIC OCEAN BLIGH WATER KORO SEA NANUKU PASSAGE YASAWA GROUP VANUA LEVU KANDAVU GROUP F I J I LOMAIVITI GROUP LAU GROUP MAMANUTHA GROUP LAKEMBA-I-LAU NAMUKA-I-LAU KANDAVU MOTHE ONEATA KAMBARA-I-LAU FULANGA ONGEA NDRIKI ONGEA LEVU VITI LEVU VATULELE N 0 30 miles 3 Areas of Art Production in Fiji 0 50 kms THE PACIFIC 1800–1900 257 often just added further layers to already complex practices of taboo. Missionaries, like explorers, whalers, and traders, also brought with them iron tools, cloth and guns – all of which became sources of power and prestige. (Alcohol also became a bartering object, with the resulting, connected social problems.) COLLECTING PACIFIC ART As part of the process of ‘civilization’, islanders were encouraged to destroy representations of gods, although the LMS in particular collected many of these pieces and brought them back to London, where many suffered emasculation in order to become suitable for public viewing. Explorers, sailors and traders also collected artefacts to take home to Europe, Australia and America, where they frequently made their way into museums, private collections and commercial institutes, often without proper documentation. Although many museums are now established in the Pacific archipelago, only the Bishop Museum in Honolulu came into existence during the nineteenth century, and as a result the majority of collections in Pacific museums are contemporary. Islanders soon recognized the value of their artefacts, and as early as the 1770s the productions of ‘tourist art’ began. In Fiji, for example, traditional oversized pots were reduced to compact pottery bowls that could easily be packed and transported. In New Zealand clubs that were traditionally carved using greenstone (nephrite) were replaced with wood, as the softer material was more readily available as well as quicker to produce. Colonial officers also banned, confiscated and destroyed artefacts and cultural practices. When the Solomon Islands came under a British protectorate in 1893, the administrator Charles Woodford, in an attempt to wipe out the practice of headhunting, destroyed many of the canoes and canoe houses that required heads for their inauguration. In New Zealand war canoes were similarly destroyed or banned as a method of decreasing inter-tribal fighting and the Maori Wars. Along with the destruction or loss of ‘idols’, rituals and the related dances and songs were also banned by the missionaries and colonialists and supplemented with Christian practices and hymns. Missionaries formalized spoken languages into written formats and thereafter manipulated traditional practices and influenced inter-island communication through their newspapers and newsletters. Despite a century of intensive and considerable change, the majority of islands still maintained a sense of unique cultural practices, arts and architecture. Their arts and cultures have not remained unaffected by increased contact among differing islands and with the wider world, but instead they have increasingly chosen what traditions they wish to retain and what new materials, techniques and styles they wish to adopt and adapt for their own purposes. body art. Religious structures, the ‘big house’ or ‘meeting house’, are also widely distributed. In contrast, while diverse and intricate masks and shields appear in Melanesia, neither are conspicuous in either Micronesia or Polynesia. THE EUROPEAN IMPACT By the turn of the nineteenth century all but a few of the islands had experienced contact with Europeans, bringing their materials and technologies. As these early European explorers required water and food supplies, barter systems were quickly established. Islanders sought iron nails, which they reappropriated as tools, particularly as carving points for fine ivory work. Nails did not significantly influence the architecture of many islands; in the eastern Pacific construction is based on complex lashings for securing joints. Although nails are now used in house-building, these joints are still covered with traditional lashings. The introduction of saw and timber mills, however, did have an impact on architecture. Hewn logs were used to provide uniform, thinner planks than previously used, and this was particularly noticeable in the meeting houses of New Zealand. The availability of metal chisels also reduced the time taken to complete pieces with greater detail, thus encouraging more ornate styles of design to develop. One of the most significant factors influencing Pacific art and architecture was the arrival of the missionary. The first missionaries to arrive in the Pacific were sent from the London Missionary Society (LMS) in 1797 to Tahiti. As part of the evangelist movement, islanders themselves trained as missionaries, and over 1200 of these native evangelists travelled to other islands to spread the word. The introduction of a new belief system attempted to destabilize local belief systems, but instead 2/3 THE TRANSFERENCE OF IDEAS regarding art was not a one-way process, but rather a mutual interchange. Important items of adornment and status such as red feathers, tortoise-shell and mother-of-pearl ornaments were taken back to Europe where they were quickly adopted into Western fashion. Western colonialists and missionaries discouraged ‘heathen’ practices, including tattooing, and abstract and decorative styles were encouraged, or replaced with ‘acceptable’ and ‘productive’ crafts – such as sewing and quilt-making. Due to this emphasis, woman’s arts and cultural practices have survived longer and more intact than men’s. AN EXAMPLE OF CEREMONIAL and decorative architecture from San Cristoval, Solomon Islands. This canoe house has upright posts in human form, carved purlin ends, a bamboo palisade fence, and the interior is decorated with carved figures and human and animal skulls. Photographer: George Smith, 1873. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 256 BETWEEN 1800 AND 1900 Pacific islanders fought to maintain their own traditions and identities against a number of new factors, including the arrival of missionaries who attempted to civilize the ‘heathen native’; traders and later colonialists, who exploited many of the resources and people; and the related introduction of diseases, land loss, commercialization and breakdown of traditional status and relationships. Although the Pacific covers an area of 165,384,000 sq km, and over 20,000 islands, there are a number of similarities in art and architecture, as well as noteworthy differences. Throughout the Pacific the human body becomes a cultural art piece through the application of tattoo, scarification or other THE PACIFIC 1800-1900 15° 0° 15° 165° 180° 165° 150° 135° 120° 105° S O U T H P A C I F I C O C E A N ARAFURA SEA TORRES STRAIT MARIANASIS MARSHALL IS C A R O L I N E I S ELLICE IS NORFOLK ISLAND UNION IS GILBERT IS NEW IRELAND (New Mecklenburg) NEW BRITAIN (New Pomerania) NEW GEORGIA NAURU SOLOMON IS NEW GUINEA NEW CALEDONIA NEW HEBRIDES FIJI CHATHAM IS FUTUNA WALLIS IS SAMOA TONGA (Friendly Is) COOK IS SAVAGE IS AUSTRAL IS SOCIETY IS TAHITI OGALEPIHCRA T UAM OTU MARQUESAS IS HAWAIIAN IS EASTER I. MANGAREVA GAMBIER IS PITCAIRN IS M E L A N E S I A M I C R O N E S I A POLY N E S I A NEW ZEALAND MEXICO A U S T R A L I A from Melanesian Islands to Peru aise nyloP hcnerFotecnarF morf from Fiji to Australia ijiFotsIaisenaleMmorf aomaSotynamreGmorf iiawaHotnapaJmorf iiawaHotaisenyloP aomaSWotanihCmorf ijiFotaidnImorf from Melanesian Is to Australia Torres Strait Is. from Fiji to W Samoa 7,500 96% Cook Islanders 4% Europeans & others 120,100 78.6% Fijians 14.2% Indians 7.2% others 38,700 89% Samoans 4% Tongans 7% Europeans and others 26,000 91% Tongans 5% Samoans 4% others 21,000 96.3% Melanesians & Polynesians 2.3% French 1.4% British 37,000 93% Melanesians 4% Polynesians 3% others 3,500 99.7% islanders 0.3% Europeans 21,000 56% Islanders 44% Europeans est. 587,000 98.8% islanders 1.2% Europeans 500 99.5% islanders 0.5% Europeans 900 Predominantly Bounty descendants 130 Predominantly Bounty descendants (first missionary in the Pacific, 1797) first museum established 1889 0 0 800 miles 1200 kms 1 Migrants, Missionaires and Producers migrations from inside Pacific migrations from outside Pacific missionary activity: before 1800 1800-1840 1841-1880 1881-1910 breakdown of island populations population figures, 1900120,100 N 1 THE INCREASING CONTACT between Europeans and islanders, and also between different groups of islanders, enabled exchange of cultural ideas and objects, as well as providing exposure to differing materials and techniques for the production of arts, crafts and architecture. PHOTOGRAPH BY JOSIAH MARTIN, C.1880. Images such as this posed photograph of five young Samoan women recreating the kava ceremony, led to increased tourism to the Pacific Islands and thereby the establishment of cultural centres. 1, 2, 3 Areas of Art Production bark cloth baskets and bags pottery feather work decorative painting wood carving stone carving musical instruments tattoos jewellery and body ornaments combs and headdresses masks shields canoes and equipment photography ceremonial bowls 2 Landscape in 19thCentury Australia topographical views from first white settlement, 1788 Glover‘s Claudean arcadian views, 1831 Romantic views, 1835-78, by Martens journeys of von Guérard places visited by von Guérard Victorian goldfields plein-air paintings by Buvelot painted by Heidelberg School/Australian Impressionists from 1885 I Sydney 170˚ 40˚ London: Brees London, New York: Earle Paris/London: von Guérard Dunedin Gallery 1884 works loaned to South Seas Exhibition, Dunedin, 1889 Auckland Gisborne Wellington Otaki Oamaru Dunedin Christchurch Wanganui Milford Sound Manutuke Rotorua POVERTY BAY BAY OF ISLANDS CO O K STR A IT DUSKY SOUND SO U TH ER N A LPS NORTH ISLAND SOUTH ISLAND OTAGO W EST COAST NEW ZEALAND Maori meeting house carved by Raharuhi Rukupo using iron tools 1842 tourist Maori wood-carving from 1870s tourist Maori wood-carving from 1870s Maori portraits by Lindauer exhibited in London 1886 tourist Maori wood-carving from 1870s Rangitea church built in Maori meeting house style 1848 Te Hau ki Turanga carved meeting house (1842) removed from Manutuke to Wellington 1867 Captain Cook describes Maori hei tiki 1769 c.28 Maori artefacts collected by J & G Forster on Captain Cook‘s second voyage (now in Pitt Rivers Museum) 1865, 1889 N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 140˚ 150˚ 40˚ 30˚ I I I I I I I I Brisbane Warwick Armidale Mudgee Wellington Bathurst Lithgow Glenbrook Sydney Richmond North Richmond Mosman DromanaBacchus Marsh Lilydale Heidelberg Ballarat Box Hill Templestowe Eaglemont Melbourne Dandenong Hobart Deddington Adelaide Tower Hill TA S M A N S E A BASS STRAIT Mt Arapiles THE GRAMPIANS Mt Kosciuszko Cape Otway Cape Schanck TASMANIA VICTORIA N E W S O U T H W A L E S to New Zealand 1876 to Adelaide 1855 to Sydney 1859 to Hobart 1855, 1875 N 0 0 300 miles 400 kms AUSTRALIA AND NEW ZEALAND 1800–1900 259 London in 1835; Benjamin Duterrau (1767–1851) recorded The Conciliation of the remaining Tasmanian Aborigines as a modern history painting in 1840; Marshall Claxton (1813–81) used Sydney residents as models for his Christ Blessing the Little Children in 1851, a colonial event considered so droll that it was written up in Dickens’s Household Words. The colonial balance changed with the discovery of gold in New South Wales and Victoria in 1851, and in Otago in 1861. Among the immigrant prospectors were artists who found a society extravagant enough to support their artistic endeavours. Sydney, a growing town in the 1840s employing local sandstone and imported cast iron for its substantial buildings, was supplanted in the 1850s and 1860s by Melbourne (known as ‘Marvellous Melbourne’ by the 1880s), where grandiose Italianate buildings were erected on unsealed streets with no footpaths. In New Zealand the South Island goldfields upset the North Island’s hegemony. The earliest white settlers had built simply, using basalt rubble with imported Sydney sandstone trim. Even the British Resident’s house, where the Treaty of Waitangi was signed in 1840, had been prefabricated in Sydney in 1833. The discovery of gold, however, encouraged architectural development in both islands, especially in the southern cities of Dunedin and Christchurch where public buildings were erected in grey basalt and white Oamaru limestone. The exotic distinction of the colonial terrain remained the key feature of antipodean painting even as it progressed aesthetically from simple topographical views to the grandiose landscapes of the 1860s and 1870s. A near-panoramic format was thought to suit the vastness of Australia; a sublime prospect matched the grandeur of New Zealand scenery. Von Guérard’s painting of Milford Sound (1877), considered to be the quintessential image of New Zealand, was exhibited as such in 2 INDIGENOUS AUSTRALIANS have a special relationship with the land. Ironically, the colonial presence of nonindigenous artists was validated through visual representations of the land. Colonial painting telescoped European landscape tradition into a single century – from topography to arcadian nostalgia, picturesque romanticism and panoramic grandeur. Finally, the Heidelberg plein-airist landscapes proclaimed national self-confidence. Melbourne, Paris, Sydney, Melbourne (again) and London between 1877 and 1886. Following the example of the Swiss-born painter Buvelot (1814–88), Australian landscape painting became less formal in the mid-1880s as it responded to the introduction of plein-air painting, the influx of (inaccurate) reports on French Impressionism, and the growth of nationalist feeling. By the last decades of the nineteenth century, the white newcomers to both Australia and New Zealand firmly believed that the indigenous peoples they had supplanted were doomed to extinction. The twentieth century was to prove the white colonists wrong, not only in the physical survival of the indigenous population, but in their cultural renaissance. GOLDEN SUMMER, EAGLEMONT (1889) by Arthur Streeton (1867–1943) exemplifies the nationalistic landscapes painted by young Australian pleinairists in the late 1880s, coinciding with the centenary of white settlement. The group, now known as the Heidelberg School, flouted convention by painting scenes that were clearly Australian. Streeton’s blue-and-gold vista has since come to stand for the very essence of Australia. MAORI HARDWOOD MEETING HOUSE, carved by Raharuhi Rukupo (c.1800–1873) in 1842. Ceremonial houses often evoked a male ancestor, with the ridgepole symbolizing his spine, the rafters his ribs, the interior his belly. This intricately carved example (Te Hau ki Turanga), made with iron tools rather than traditional implements, was removed from its original site in 1867 and is now installed at the Museum of New Zealand/Te Papa Tongarewa. ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 258 COLONIAL ART The earliest white art produced in the Australian colonies and in New Zealand was produced for a British audience. The first white settlement at Sydney Cove in 1788 was documented by British First Fleet officers, and from the 1790s by convict artists transported to the Australian colonies. From the 1820s professional artists visited both Australia and New Zealand. Augustus Earle’s (1793–1838) views of Hobart (1825), Sydney (1827), and the Bay of Islands (1828) were exhibited as circular panoramas in London and New York. Other artists – Conrad Martens (1801–78) in South Australia, George French Angas (1822–86) in South Australia and New Zealand, and Charles Heaphy (1820–81) in New Zealand – were employed to produce flattering views as inducements for potential immigrants. Colonial art was not limited to practical objectives. John Glover (1767–1849) sent thityeight of his Tasmanian views for exhibition in 1842. Maori artefacts were turned out quickly for commercial rather than traditional purposes: North Island wood-carvers produced small objects for tourists from the 1870s, while South Island greenstone carvers substituted bowenite, previously despised for its softness, for their original nephrite. In Australia traditional Aboriginal culture retreated from encroaching white settlement, rather than engaging with it. Despite the rich variety of the sandstone carvings, bark paintings and cave paintings described by white explorers, they were regarded as mere ethnographic specimens. Some Aborigines, however, crossed the cultural divide by drawing on paper (as Aborigines of the Sydney district did for the Baudin expedition as early as 1802). The pencil portraits that Eugène von Guérard (1811–1901) and Black Johnny (c.1842–1883) made of each other in 1855 are rare examples of Aboriginal-European cultural reciprocity. AUSTRALIA AND NEW ZEALAND 1800-1900 110˚ 120˚ 160˚150˚140˚ 40˚ 30˚ 20˚ 10˚ Paris/London: Streeton London: Earle, Glover National Gallery of Victoria 1861 Art Gallery of South Australia 1881 Ballarat Fine Art Gallery 1884 Bendigo Art Gallery 1887 Art Gallery of Western Australia 1895 Tasmanian Museum and Art Gallery 1863 Queensland Art Gallery 1895 Melbourne Perth Hobart Adelaide Warrnambool Ballarat Bendigo Corowa Sydney Ulladulla Eaglemont Brisbane Darwin Darling Murray Murrumbidgee F linders Fitzroy G lenelg Murc hison Victoria I N D I A N O C E A N S O U T H E R N O C E A N S O U T H P A C I F I C O C E A N S O U T H P A C I F I C O C E A N BASS STRAIT T I M O R S E A G U L F O F C A R P E N TA R I A C O R A L S E A TASMAN SEA G R E A T S A N D Y D E S E R T G I B S O N D E S E R T G R E A T V I C T O R I A D E S E R T N U L L A R B O R P L A I N S I M P S O N D E S E R T KIMBERLEY PLATEAU GREAT DIVID IN G RAN G E GREAT DIVIDING RANGE ARNHEM LAND W E S T E R N A U S T R A L I A S O U T H A U S T R A L I A Q U E E N S L A N D V I C T O R I A TASMANIA N O R T H E R N T E R R I T O RY N E W S O U T H W A L E S GROOTE EYLANDT MARIA ISLAND A U S T R A L I A drawings by Aboriginal Mickey of Ulladulla sent to Chicago World Fair 1893 drawings by Aboriginal Tommy McRae used to illustrate legendary tales published in London 1896, 1898 rock paintings described and copied by Westall 1803 Wandjina rock paintings described and copied by Grey 1837 bark paintings collected for Australian Museum, Sydney 1878 pencil drawings on paper by Aboriginal inmates of Fannie Bay Prison; exhibited at Melbourne 1888 bark paintings (not extant) described by Baudin 1802 reciprocal portraits by von Guérard and Black Johnny 1855 Murray River, Aboriginal bark paintings sent to Paris International Exhibition 1855 1888 1845, 1846, 1862 1847, 1848, 1857 1853, 1857, 1864, 1866, 1870, 1880 1886, 1870, 1880, 1886, 1888, 1888-89 N 0 0 300 miles 400 kms 1 Indigenous and Colonial Interactions first white reports of indigenous art indigenous art influenced by white contact major public gallery, with date of foundation intercolonial/international exhibition exported art rock carvings on sandstone platforms described by first white settlers 1788 chalk drawings on paper made by Aborigines for Baudin expedition 1802 Art Gallery of New South Wales 1874 1826, 1841, 1847, 1849, 1851, 1857, 1870, 1872, 1879-80, 1880, 1895 Australian works loaned to South Seas Exhibition, Dunedin, 1889 London: e.g. Earle; Grafton Gallery Exhibition of Australian Art 1898 AUSTRALIA AND NEW ZEALAND were relatively isolated from the rest of the world (and from each other) until the arrival of European settlers in the late eighteenth and early nineteenth centuries. Even then, the long and arduous voyage necessary for the movement of objects and ideas between the colonial centre and its periphery kept both antipodean colonies in a cultural time lag. INDIGENOUS CULTURES The indigenous cultures of Australia and New Zealand were unknown to the Western world until the white man arrived to disrupt and destroy them. In New Zealand, the distinctive carving of the Maori people was improved and accelerated by the introduction of iron tools. Maori artists adapted so quickly to European influence that few examples of pre-contact art remain. Indeed, the earliest surviving carved ceremonial house was built with iron tools in 1 THE WHITE NEWCOMERS to Australia and New Zealand assumed a proprietorial interest in the indigenous arts, although scarcely acknowledging their cultural significance. In New Zealand the Maori cleverly adapted their carving tradition to produce novelties such as miniature canoes and churches built in meeting-house style. In Australia Aborigines who engaged with the introduced culture, such as Tommy McRae (c.1836–1901), were considered curiosities, not artists. Meanwhile the interlopers mimicked, via exhibitions, galleries and art societies, the cultural environment of a European ‘home’. become world-famous celebrities. These successes, however, have not been easy. For many ethnic communities the regional arts are much lower in the scale than art that claims to be international, as does that displayed in the great international exhibitions in the tradition of the Venice Biennale. Artists represented in such venues, whose work may unconsciously betray a background in the savannah of Africa or the jungles of Southeast Asia, often prefer to play down their origins and claim instead to be artists in a sense that corresponds to some transcendent European and US norm. Their overriding idea is that they are not craftsmen, but ‘artists’. ONE OF THE SOURCES of the concept of an ‘international’ art is the socialist theory of a worldwide human community, and socialism, in its different forms, has been the idea shaping the work of many individuals and movements. Sometimes it has been associated with conservative tendencies, as in the Soviet Union, where, after the brief innovative episode of Constructivism, there was a move to Socialist Realism with its nineteenth-century roots. The same style was then taken up by many other countries in the Russian orbit, and when China became Communist in 1948 it, too, adapted the same mode until after the Cultural Revolution. Sometimes socialism has been associated with more progressive tendencies, as with the worldwide post-Second World War diffusion of architecture in concrete, a material untainted by elitist associations and inherently sharing properties with the ‘masses’. Le Corbusier was the leader in this trend, as at Chandigarh, the capital of the Punjab, but he also had many local followers, such as Oscar Niemeyer in Brasilia. Other types of art driven by socialist political ideas were the more aggressive mural art of the Sandinistas in Nicaragua and the softer, but still threatening, art of Latinos in the United States. Less necessarily political has been the much longer tradition of Black or African-American art, which now has its parallels in Britain and elsewhere in an art of People of Colour by immigrants from Asia and Africa. Another art which may be more or less political is that driven by the idea of feminism, which emerged strongly in the United States in the 1960s and 1970s, before manifesting itself in most other countries in an effort to reclaim an activity from which women have been systematically excluded. Around the world art has now be harnessed to a myriad causes or ‘ideas’. FINALLY, THERE ARE CATEGORIES OF ART that relate to an idea embedded in art-making itself. Dada set out to smash artistic norms, while Surrealism, taking its cue from Sigmund Freud’s writing on dreams, sought to give all forms of creativity a new starting point in the unconscious. These two connected movements were centred on Europe and the United States, but post-Second World War Conceptual Art – which typically argues that art is less about making, and more about an idea – has, from the beginning, engaged artists worldwide. Its success, like that of so-called Post-Modernist art, often depends on the use of different technologies, videos, lights, lasers, and even containers of formaldehyde. As such it illustrates to what extent, by 2000, art was often only an idea embedded in a technology. MIRIAM SCHAPIRO Anatomy of a Kimono (detail), 1975–6, acrylic and fabric on canvas, one of ten panels. A RT HAS ALWAYS BEEN CONNECTED to the worlds of ideas and technology, but in the twentieth century the connections tightened. Indeed for many the ‘idea’ has been that twentieth- century art should directly reflect technology, and this notion lay behind American skyscrapers, Italian Futurism, Russian Constructivism and the International Modernist architecture of the Bauhaus and Le Corbusier before the Second World War, and Jean Tinguely’s motorized sculptures, Nam Jun Paik’s video installations and Tony Oursler’s projections after it. One reason why this convergence occurred was because, thanks to new technologies, ideas could be disseminated much quicker and more effectively than before. Another was that some of these technologies, such as those of the cinema, television and computer screen, were themselves visual. OF THE MANY OTHER IDEAS that affected twentieth-century art, none were more recurrent than those of nationalism and internationalism. The search for visual expressions of national or regional identity, which has roots in tendencies humans share with other animals and has long been important in culture, strengthened in the nineteenth century before further intensifiying in the twentieth. For many communities, as in the countries of eastern Europe that acquired independence after 1918, the starting point was a new awareness of vernacular and folk traditions, but in Fascist Italy and National Socialist Germany new political and moral ideologies were also involved. Outside Europe, on the other hand, where the suppression of local artistic traditions had been part of the policy both of colonial powers and of the classes that succeeded them, aesthetic and political ideologies were more likely to be combined in some revival of local cultural traditions, as in the Mexican revival of Aztec and the Indian revival of Hindu imagery. In such movements art was an important way for a people to strengthen its sense of a political identity recovered after independence. The vigorous new regional and ethnic art forms that emerged after 1950 were ore economically driven, only loosely inspired by earlier traditions that were fostered and marketed, often by just one or two individuals. Prominent examples are the stone sculptures of the Canadian Inuit, of the Shona in present-day Zimbabwe and of the Makonde on the borders between Tanzania and Mozambique. But the most successful, perhaps because painting is always liable to be taken more seriously than sculpture, have been the acrylic paintings of the Australian Aborigines, which, since 1970, have allowed male and female members of one of the world’s most victimized communities isolated in the desert to ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 1900-2000 NORTH AMERICA 1900–1950 263 GEORGIA O’KEEFFE: Cow’s Skull, Red, White, and Blue 1931, oil on canvas. O’Keeffe’s answer to the great American novel applied the modernist abstraction she had perfected in paintings of nature and skyscrapers with the evocative detritus of the New Mexican desert. Resonating with the hues of the desert and the colours of the flag, O’Keeffe joined abstraction with a patriotic love of the West. 65˚70˚75˚80˚ 50˚ 45˚ 40˚ WPA Cleveland Algonquin Park Lancaster Woodstock Toronto Pittsburgh Gloucester Ogunquit Halifax York Beach Provincetown New York Bear Run19 1 12 Lake George StL awrenc e A T L A N T I C O C E A N L A U R EN TIAN M TS G R E A T L A K E S GASPÉ PENINSULA NEW HAMPSHIRE N E W Y O R K NEW JERSEY P E N N S Y L V A N I A VERMONT RHODE ISLAND CONNECTICUT M A I N E N E W B R U N S W I C K Q U É B E C O N T A R I O NO VA S C O T I A C A N A D A U S A Stieglitz, Paris 1907; Hartley, Paris 1912, Berlin 1913, 1921; Davis, Paris 1928; Wood, Paris 1920, 1923-24, 1926, Munich 1928; Bourke-White, USSR 1932, postwar Europe 1945 1926-39 Rockefeller Park Freud 1909; Picabia 1913; Duchamp 1915; Matisse 1930; Léger 1931, 1935, 1938; Le Corbusier 1935 Davis1915 O'Keeffe1920 Marin1914;Hartley1935 O'Keeffe1932 Strand1929,1936 Group ofSeven Hartley 1936 N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms CHARLES SHEELER, Crisscrossed Conveyors, River Rouge Plant, Ford Motor Company, 1927. Sheeler documented the factory as it was secretly re-tooled to produce the Model A. The photographs were published in the USA and as far as Japan and Russia. In 1932 a two-metre (7-ft) enlargement of this image hung at the Museum of Modern Art, New York. Capitalizing on the refined geometry of modern architecture and an experimental approach to printing that included using multiple negatives and liberal cropping, Sheeler produced lasting images of American industry in the 1920s. previous century, artists often took to the northern and western landscape as a refuge from the growing metropolitan centres. Destinations such as Taos, New Mexico, Stone City, Iowa, or Algonquin Park, Ontario, became meeting places for artists interested in creating art that was connected to the American continent. Georgia O’Keeffe, an artist who was deeply committed to the environment, went as far as distant Hawaii. A similarly modern and romantic impulse drove artists from the cities to explore the industrial landscapes of the USA and Canada. From Port Arthur, Texas, where Edward Weston photographed oil refineries, to the Georgian Bay mining town of Sudbury, Ontario, which was painted by associates of the Canadian Group of Seven, artists crossed the continent, depicting the sites of modern production. Pittsburgh, Cleveland and Detroit now held an allure that in the previous century was reserved for natural wonders of the American West. ART OF THE DEPRESSION ERA Beginning as early as the first decade of the century, artists such as Lewis Hine and Joseph Stella, men sensitive to the human cost of modernization, toured the country, investigating the conditions of the working classes in places as far-flung as Ellis Island (New York), Pittsburgh, and South Carolina. Two decades later, artists such as Thomas Hart Benton, Walker Evans and Margaret Bourke-White re-examined Southern poverty during the Depression. The explosion of industrial jobs in the north occurred in direct contrast to changes in economic conditions in the South, the region of the United States that had been suffering from insufficient industrial advancement since before the Civil War. The plight of rural America led to the migration of American Blacks, sending thousands of people to northern cities. Artists such as Augusta Savage from Florida and Aaron Douglas from Kansas moved to New York City to participate in the Harlem Renaissance of the 1920s and 1930s. At the end of the period, Jacob Lawrence depicted this dramatic uprooting in a portfolio of prints titled The Migration Series that toured the USA from Manchester, New Hampshire, to Los Angeles, California, between 1942 and 1944. New York City remained the dominant urban centre of the early twentieth century. As well as a destination for artists of all cultures and countries, New York was the site of the most dramatic architectural achievements of the period. Three of the world’s tallest buildings, the Woolworth, Chrysler and Empire State Buildings, were all constructed here before the boom of the 1920s became the bust of the Great Depression. As engineers and architects filled American cities of the 1920s with vertical metaphors of American progress, Frank Lloyd Wright was creating his masterpieces of earth-bound prairie architecture. Wright began his residence and studio, Taliesin, in Spring Green, Wisconsin, in 1911. Over a quarter of a decade later, in southern Pennsylvania, he married the prairie aesthetic to the woodlands of Bear Run in his picturesque Fallingwater of 1935-9. Industrial architecture was also developed as methods of production were modernized. Most significant were the Michigan Ford Plants at River Rouge – the model for mass production all over the world. In 1922 Albert Kahn designed the Ford Motor Company facilities, and late in the decade Charles Sheeler created a documentary record of the factories, using an experimental approach that transformed the factories into paradigmatic examples of modernist photography. During the Depression the government became a primary contractor, building structures as great as the Hoover Dam in Nevada or as small as cascades in Washington DC or rose gardens in California. Shortly after the projects of the Works Progress Administration (WPA) – a federal relief agency initiated by President Franklin D. Roosevelt as a means of generating employment and infrastructure during the Great Depression – the North American nations shifted into war production as the global community braced itself for the World War II. 2 EVEN AS AMERICAN and Canadian artists grew secure as capable modernists, few resisted the urge to travel abroad. Artists of this century, however, travelled for research, money or love rather than for training and refinement. Education was found in the company of other artists or in excursions into the American landscape. For the first time, numerous European artists visited America. Famous figures from Freud to Dalí came to gaze at the wonders of skyscrapers and grain silos and, in some cases, to find new homes after the Fascist incursions of the 1930s. 1908 The Eight, Macbeth Gallery, New York 1913 Armory Show, New York, Boston, Chicago 1917 Exhibition of the Society of Independent Artists, New York 1926 Société Anonyme International Exhibition, Brooklyn Museum of Art, New York, Buffalo, Toronto 1942-44 Jacob Lawrence Migration Series exhibition tour, Museum of Modern Art, New York, Manchester, San Francisco, Portland, Sacramento, Los Angeles, St Louis 1943 Jackson Pollock, Art of this Century, New York 1948 Willem de Kooning, Charles Egan Gallery, New York EXHIBITION PANEL 130˚ 120˚ 110˚ 100˚ 90˚ 80˚ 70˚ 60˚ 50˚ 50˚ 40˚ WPA WPA Toledo Dayton Kansas City St Louis Cleveland Asheville Atlanta St Augustine Charleston Port Arthur Austin Torreon Washington DC Detroit Baltimore Pittsburgh Merion New York Boston ManchesterMinneapolis Spring Green Madison Chicago Stone City Iowa City Santa Fe Taos Los Angeles San Francisco Seattle Portland Vancouver Oakland Sacramento Berkeley Buffalo Indianapolis Toronto Sudbury Montreal 1 2 3 4 8 9 5 6 7 15 14 13 11 10 12 18 16 19 17 Masson, Breton, Ernst, Buñuel, Dalí, Chagall, Gropius, Mies van der Rohe Mississippi Missouri St La w rence Rio Grande Colorado Ohio G U L F O F M E X I C O H U D S O N BAY PACIFICOCEAN ROCKYMOUNTAINS G R E A T L A K E S B R I T I S H C O L U M B I A A L B E R T A M A N I T O B A O N T A R I O Q U É B E C NEW BRUNSWICK MAINE NEW HAMPSHIRE VERMONT MASSACHUSETTS RHODE ISLAND CONNECTICUT NEW JERSEY DELAWARE MARYLAND VIRGINIA GEORGIA T E N N E S S E E KENTUCKY OHIO INDIANA ILLINOIS MISSOURI I O WA WISCONSIN MINNESOTA N O R T H D A K O TA S O U T H D A K O TA N E B R A S K A W Y O M I N G M O N T A N A I D A H O CALIFORNIA N E VA D A U TA H C O L O R A D O A R I Z O N A NEW MEXICO T E X A S OKLAHOMA ARKANSAS LOUISIANA K A N S A S WASHINGTON O R E G O N SOUTH CAROLINA N CAROLINA W ESTVIRGINIA PENNSYLVANIA NEW YORK NEWFOUNDLAND AND LABRADOR SASKATCHEWAN NOVA SCOTIA MISSISSIPPI ALABAM A M IC H IGAN FLORIDA SIERRA NEVADA C A N A D A U S A M E X I C O Hartley 1918; Sloan 1919; Davis 1923; O’Keeffe 1929; Marin 1930; Strand 1926; Gottlieb 1937-38 Strand 1932-33 to Veracruz, Mexico City 1932 Rivera: San Francisco Stock Exchange 1930, Detroit 1932, New York 1933 Siqueiros: Los Angeles 1932, New York 1934, Experimental Workshop 1936 Orozco: Claremont (CA), Pomona College 1930, New York 1930, Dartmouth, Hanover (NH) 1932 Hoover Dam 1931-36 1933-37 Municipal Rose Garden Group of Seven 1920s, 1930s Emily Carr c. 1912 Douglas 1925 Hine 1904, 1918; Benton 1929; Evans 1933-35; Bourke-White 1937 1932 Meridian Hill Cascade Morrice, Morocco 1911-12, 1912-13; Colville, post-WWII Europe 1945; Bayefsky, post-WWII Europe 1945 Savage 1921 Stella 1906; Hine 1909 O’Keeffe 1939To Hawaii N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 The Path to Modernization art institutions regional art centres, 1900-30 regional art centres, 1930-50 industrial subjects architectural monuments WPA projects domestic movements of artists movement of artists to and from Mexico American artists overseas Canadian artists overseas visitors from Europe emigrés from Europe, 1930s, 1940s - 1900 Art Museum - 1901 Museum of Art - 1905 Albright Art Gallery - 1906 Museum of the Art Association - 1907 Walters Art Gallery - 1912 Museum of the Art Association - 1913 Los Angeles County Museum - 1915 Institute of Fine Arts - 1916 Museum of Art - 1918 Institute of Art - 1919 Art Institute - 1920 Art Museum of Toronto - 1924 Barnes Foundation - 1933 Nelson-Atkins Museum of Art - 1941 National Museum of Art - 1902-11 Pennsylvania Station, McKim, Mead & White 1910-13 Woolworth Building, Gilbert 1930-31 Empire State Building, Shreve, Lamb & Harmon - 1917-22 Ford Factory, Kahn - 1911 Taliesin, Lloyd Wright - 1935-9 Fallingwater, Lloyd Wright Art Institutions 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 Architectural Monuments 16 17 18 19 WPA ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 262 early exhibitions of European Modernist art, most notably the Armory Show of 1913 that travelled from New York to Boston and Chicago. Over a decade later, the Société Anonyme (1920) curated the International Exhibition of 1926 that carried European modernism from the Brooklyn Museum of Art and the Anderson Galleries, Manhattan, to the Albright Art Gallery, Buffalo, and the Art Museum of Toronto. THE ARTISTIC COLONIZATION OF AMERICA As European modernism toured the continents so did the artists of the USA and Canada. No longer sharing in the Manifest Destiny of the THE FIRST HALF of the twentieth century saw the United States come to the fore as the economic and political global power. The centrality of North America to the cultural life of the Western world was seen most dramatically in the dominance of New York City. Home to both Wall Street and the Museum of Modern Art, New York was the heart of the American arts in the early twentieth century. PATHS TO MODERNIZATION Already host to the nation’s premier cultural institutions, New York saw the formation of five museums of modern art and numerous exhibitions. Moreover, the city was the home of many of the most significant American artists and, in the late 1930s, it was also a refuge to European artists. Accompanying the rise of New York as a global capital was the importance of the industrial cities of the Midwest. During the first decades of the century the cities of the west consolidated their cultural capital. Between 1900 and 1920 museums were opened in Toronto (1900), Toledo (1901), Buffalo (1905), Indianapolis (1906), Minneapolis (1915), Cleveland (1916), Detroit (1918) and Dayton (1919). The Midwest also played host to several NORTH AMERICA 1900-1950 1 IN AN AGE OF MODERNIZATION, signs of power – from the automotive industry in Detroit to the cultural dynamism of New York – attracted artists of all races and nationalities. The century began with the rapid and unceasing transportation of artists and ideas from Mexico through to Canada and from America overseas. Throughout the ‘Roaring Twenties’ and the Great Depression artists and collectors gathered in the cities and cultural enclaves that spanned the continent. NORTH AMERICA 1950–2000 265 FRANK LLOYD WRIGHT’S Solomon R. Guggenheim Museum New York City, 1956–9. Wright’s only building in New York City, the Guggenheim has become a symbol for the grace and insistence of modernist art as well as a flagship for the international network of Guggenheim museums. The structure was modified in 1992 by Charles Gwathmey to increase exhibition space with minimal intrusion on the original design 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 120˚ 110˚ 100˚130˚ San Francisco Seattle Los Angeles Salt Lake City Phoenix Santa Fe DenverRifle Quemado Carson City Amarillo Las Vegas Garden Valley Overton Flagstaff M issouri R ioGrande Colorado Sna ke Columbia Great Salt Lake Tecovas Lake PACIFIC OCEAN ROCKY MTS GREAT BASIN MOJAVE DESERT GRAND CANYON WASHINGTON OREGON M O N TA N A WYOMING COLORADO K A N S A S NEBRASKA SOUTH DAKOTA NORTH DAKOTA UTAH IDAHO CALIFORNIA NEVADA ARIZONA NEW MEXICO T E X A S UNITED STATES OF AMERICA C A N A D A M E X I C O Watts Towers Rodia, 1921-54 Running Fence Christo & Jeanne Claude, 1972-76 King County Project Morris, 1979 Double Negative Heizer, 1969-70 Roden Crater Turrell, 1972-2003? Spiral Jetty Smithson, 1970 Sonoma & Marin counties King County Lightning Field de Maria, 1971-72 Amarillo Ramp Smithson, 1973 Valley Curtain Christo & Jeanne Claude, 1970-72 Sun Tunnels Holt, 1973-76 Complex City Heizer, 1972-76 Mile Long Drawing de Maria, 1968 N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 2 Art and the Earth site of environmental art 2 AN ARTISTIC CENTRE for decades, the American Southwest took on significance as the site of a new form of art, the earthwork. Earthworks were the result of individual engagements with nature, which could be as substantial as stone and earth or as ephemeral as lightning. By the 1990s, the region was host to cross-cultural exchanges in the multinational festivals in Santa Fe and San Diego. In addition to new buildings, the cultural politics of the era inspired the growth of new types of art institutions. Museums such as the National Museum of Women in the Arts (Washington DC, 1981) joined alternative spaces such as the Museo del Bario (New York City, 1970), the New Museum (New York City, 1977), the Artemesia Gallery (Chicago, 1973) and the Powerhouse Gallery (Montreal, 1973) to respond to the cultural demands of underrepresented artists and constituencies. By the end of the century, despite attacks on artistic freedom, including the 1990 censuring of the Robert Mapplethorpe (1946–89) retrospective in the USA and parlimentary debate over funding a Jana Sterbak (1955–) retrospective in Canada the following year, arts institutions in North America had become as widespread as they were diverse. A NEW ARCHITECTURE Architects enjoyed significant advances in scale and style in the second half of the twentieth century. Two of the world’s tallest buildings were completed in North America: Minoru Yamasaki’s World Trade Center, New York (1973, destroyed in the terrorist attack of 2001), Bruce Graham’s Sears Tower, Chicago (1974), which has since passed on the accolade. The towers serve to accent the dénouement of late modernist architecture, a style beautifully illustrated in Eero Saarinen’s soaring TWA Terminal (1962) at John F. Kennedy Airport, New York. As monuments erected to the advancement of trade and travel, these structures signal the constant international contact and commercial development of the era. Accompanying globalization, Post Modernism, an eclectic and often historicist style, was articulated first in architecture of the years following World War II. Forms from Classical Greece to the International Style were copied and assembled into new compositions. Evident as early as Robert Venturi’s Vanna Venturi House (1962), by 1980 the masters of the new style had created works from New Orleans, site of Charles Moore’s Piazza d’Italia (1975–80) to Portland, Oregon and Michael Graves’s Portland Building (1980). International exhibitions: Kansas City International Sculpture Conference, 1960 Toronto Isaacs Gallery Sign of Dada, 1961-2 Pasadena Pasadena Art Museum Marcel Duchamp Retrospective, 1963 Los Angeles County Museum of Art Post Painterly Abstraction, 1964 (> Toronto) St Louis St Louis Art Museum Expressions: New Art from Germany, 1983 New York New Museum Difference: On Representation and Sexuality, 1985 (> Chicago > Boston > London, England) New York Sotheby’s Auction of Russian Art, 1988 San Francisco Museum of Modern Art Against Nature: Japanese Art in the Eighties, 1989 (> Akron > Boston > Seattle > Cincinnati > New York > Houston) San Diego InSITE, 1992 (> Tijuana) Santa Fe Site Santa Fe, 1995 Montreal Montreal Biennial, 1998 New York Asia Society/PSI Inside/Out New Chinese Art, 1998 (> San Francisco > Monterrey > Seattle) New York Brooklyn Museum of Art Sensation, 1999 National exhibitions: Ottawa National Gallery of Canada Canadian Abstract Painting, 1952 (> Montreal) Toronto Abstracts at Home, 1953 New York New American Painting, 1958 Los Angeles Ferus Gallery Warhol Exhibition, 1962 Vancouver Arts of the Raven, 1967 Ottawa National Gallery of Canada Masterpieces of Indian and Eskimo Art in Canada, 1970 Boston Museum of Fine Arts Black American Art, 1971 New York Whitney Museum of American Art Contemporary Black Artists in America, 1971 Los Angeles County Museum of Art Women Artists 1550-1976, 1976 (> Austin > Pittsburgh > Brooklyn) San Francisco Museum of Art Judy Chicago’s Dinner Party, 1979 New York Museum of Modern Art Primitivism in 20th century Art, 1985 (> Detroit > Dallas) Cincinnati Contemporary Art Center Robert Mapplethorpe, 1990 Ottawa National Gallery of Canada Jana Sterbak Exhibition, 1991 EXHIBITION PANEL BREAKING THE BOUNDARIES Despite new facilities, many artists began constructing work that could not be contained in traditional or alternative exhibition spaces. Sculptors, particularly participants in the Earth Art movement such as Robert Smithson, Christo and Jeanne-Claude, and Nancy Holt, created monuments that depended on the vastness of the North American landscape. Deserts, beaches and rivers were transformed by massive earthmoving vehicles, explosives and concrete into the canvases and pedestals for this new art. Even such ephemeral materials as silk or ice and snow took on artistic form in the hands of Earth artists. By the end of the 1970s, interest in such obdurate works of art waned. The 1980s market for saleable objects was booming, creating rich men and women out of some collectors and celebrities out of a few artists. In the auction houses and galleries of New York City, the arts of other cultures were explored as potential goods for the market. This was especially the case for contemporary Russian art as houses like Sotheby’s went directly to the artist to secure works for sale. Arts of non-Western and indigenous cultures were also in demand from North American institutions which were becoming increasingly receptive to alternative voices. Museums in both the USA and Canada sponsored major exhibitions of Russian, Japanese and Chinese art, while cities from San Diego to Montreal sponsored international showcases of the kind that proliferated all over the world. Into this environment appeared artists drawing upon experiences in any number of different cultures, transforming the shape of the art world and the content of art. By the turn of the millennium new art from around the world was regularly on view in any number of North American cities and, via the internet, available online for anyone who chose to investigate. ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 264 In response to expanding interest in the arts in the USA and Canada, public and private institutions multiplied and expanded. In many cases the new institutions erected what have become highlights of post-war architecture. Attending collections at Frank Lloyd Wright’s Solomon R. Guggenheim Museum (New York City, 1956–9), Arthur Erickson’s Museum of Anthropology (Vancouver, 1971–6) or Richard Meier’s Getty Center (Los Angeles, 1997) provides lessons in modern and Post-Modern architecture as well as the visual arts. THE CONSEQUENCES of space in North America changed dramatically following World War II. Images from places as far away as May Lai or the moon and as close as Kent State University, Ohio, or Dallas, Texas, circulated quickly into the public eye. Following the expansion of mass media, experimental printing houses opened in cities from Long Island to Los Angeles. By the end of the century, the ease of air travel and the invention of cyberspace collapsed nearly all the geographic obstacles that had localized art production in the past. A CHANGING WORLD Confronted with change, some artists and intellectuals sought to preserve the separation of art and everyday life. Exhibitions such as ‘New American Painting’ and ‘Post Painterly Abstraction’, consisting largely of work produced in New York in the 1950s and 1960s, crossed the USA and Canada and toured Europe, spreading the influence of American Abstract Expressionism and its formalist and existentialist interpretations. Other artists demanded that art engage with contemporary social life. Dada-related activities such as the Duchamp retrospective (Pasadena, California, 1963) and ‘The Sign of Dada’ (Toronto,1961–2), feminist productions such as ‘Womanhouse’ (Los Angeles, 1971) and Judy Chicago’s ‘Dinner Party’ (San Francisco, 1979) and multi-cultural exhibitions such as ‘Black American Art’ (Boston, 1971) and ‘The Decade Show’ (New York, 1990) represented alternatives to the modernist activities. NORTH AMERICA 1950-2000 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 120˚130˚ Montreal Halifax Ottawa St Louis Detroit Sante Fe Kansas City Ithaca North Adams Cambridge Mountainville Boston New York Miami Columbus Pittsburgh Philadelphia New Orleans Dallas Fort Lauderdale Austin Houston Fort Worth Atlanta Santa Monica San Diego Los Angeles Pasadena Washington DC Oshawa Chicago St Paul Cleveland Winnipeg Toronto Buffalo Portland Seattle Monterrey San Francisco Akron Newark Cincinnati Vancouver 14 15 16 17 22 24 21 18 23 19 20 2 6 13 11 10 9 8 1 3 4 5 12 7 Mississippi M issouri Wisconsin Ohio R ioGrande Sn ake Columbia Arkans as Platte L. Superior L. Ontario L. Huron L.Michigan L. Erie A T L A N T I C O C E A N BISCAYNE BAY P A C I F I C O C E A N G U L F O F M E X I C O R O C K Y M OUNTAINS APPALACHIAN MTS MAINE VIRGINIA OHIOINDIANA MISSOURI ILLINOIS IOWA MINNESOTA N DAKOTA S DAKOTA WYOMING NEVADA UTAH ARIZONA NEW MEXICO COLORADO CALIFORNIA MONTANA IDAHO OREGON WASHINGTON NEBRASKA KANSAS OKLAHOMA T E X A S ARKANSAS MICHIGAN QUÉBEC ONTARIO SASKATCHEWAN ALBERTA BRITISH COLUMBIA WISCONSIN NEW YORK N CAROLINA S CAROLINA GEORGIA TENNESSEE KENTUCKY ALABAMA MISSISSIPPI LOUISIANA FLORIDA NOVA SCOTIA U N I T E D S TAT E S O F A M E R I C A C A N A D A M E X I C O Nova Scotia College of Art and Design Lithography Workshop (1969) Annual Rings Oppenheim, (1968) Arthur M. Sackler Museum, Harvard University (Stirling, 1985) L’Atelier Recherchers Graphiques (1963) Musée d’Art Contemporain (1964) Centre International d’Art Contemporain (1983) National Gallery of Canada (Moshe Safdie 1989) Pigs Eye Landfill Revival Field (Mel Chin, 1990-93) Wexner Centre (Eisenman, 1989) Rock & Roll Hall of Fame (Pei, 1998) The Kemper Museum of Contemporary Art & Design (1995) Universal Limited Arts Editions (1957) Guggenheim (Frank Lloyd Wright, 1956-59) Whitney Museum of American Art (Brauer, 1964-66) Museum of Contemporary Art (1999) Newark Museums (Graves, 1989) Warhol Museum (1994) The Mattress Factory (1977) National Endowment for the Arts National Endowment for the Humanities (1965) National Museum of Women in the Arts (1981) National Gallery of Art, East Building (Pei 1978) Kimbell Museum (Kahn, 1967-72) Museum of Art (1984) High Museum of Art (Meier, 1983) DeMenil Collection (Piano, 1987) Museum of Art (Barnes, 1985) Museum of Contemporary Art (1996) Museum of Anthropology (Erickson, 1971-76) Grand Western Canadian Screenshop (1969) Moosehead Lithography Press (1977) Tamarind Lithography Workshop (1959) Gemini GEL (1965) Temporary Contemporary Museum (Gehry, 1984) Armand Hammer Museum (1990) Getty Centre (Meier, 1997) Disneyland (Anaheim, 1977) Open Studio (1970) N 1 New Spaces for New Art printing houses new art/archeology institutions site of international exhibition (see panel) site of national exhibition (see panel) Emma Lake Workshop (Newman 1959, Greenberg 1962) Storm King Art Centre (1960) N.E. Thing Co. (1966) OBAC Wall of Respect (1967) Artemesia Gallery (1973) Great Wall of Los Angeles (Judy Baca, 1967-84) Womanhouse (1971) New York Art Workers Coalition (1969) Museo del Bario (1970) Black Emergency Cultural Coalition (1971) Artistspace (1973) The New Museum (1977) Exit Art (1982) Art Against Aids (1987) Alternative spaces/political art 1 2 3 4 5 6 - - - - - Corcoran: protests at the Biennial regarding representation of women (1971) Powerhouse Gallery (1973) Nexus Contemporary Art Centre (1973) Hallwalls (1974) MUSE (1977) Border Arts Workshop (1984) AIDS Names Project (1992) Harvard University Graduate Centre (Gropius, 1948-50) TWA Terminal, JFK Airport (Saarinen, 1956-62) Vanna Venturi House (Venturi, 1962) Architecture 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 - - - - - - - - - Demolition of the Pruitt-Igoe Housing (1972) Sears Tower (Graham, 1974) Gehry House (Gehry, 1977-78) Portland Building (Graves, 1980) Piazza d'Italia (Moore, 1975-80) Accumulation Cut (Oppenheim, 1969) Surrounded Islands (Christo & Jeanne Claude, 1980-83) Vietnam Memorial (Maya Lin, 1981-84) Environmental art 17 18 19 20 21 22 23 24 - - - - - - - - 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 IN THE 1950S AND 1960S art museums vigorously supported American modernism at home and abroad. In the 1970s alternative spaces joined museums to exhibit contemporary work created on the local and international scene. By the end of the century, travelling exhibitions, new institutions and improved means of communication broadcast global contemporary culture to nearly every part of the continent. ROBERT SMITHSON’S Spiral Jetty, Great Salt Lake, Utah, 1970. Now hidden beneath the red waters of the Great Salt Lake, Spiral Jetty suggests the artist’s experience of land that seemed to move and water that resisted it. Unlike much Earth Art, Spiral Jetty, with its deliberate engagement of the entropic forces of water and crystals, courted the instability of the landscape rather than its permanence. An essay and a film are part of the artwork. CENTRAL AMERICA AND THE CARIBBEAN 1900–2000 267 BEYOND MURALISM Muralism engendered ideas of national pride that can be best be summed up by the term Indigenista, but it was not only through Muralism and not only in Mexico that these Indigenista views were expressed. Juan O’Gorman (1905–82), an Irish-Mexican architect, believed in a return to organic form that was archaeologically and socially significant and was a founder member of the Liga de Escritores y Artistas Revolucionarios (League of Revolutionary Writers and Artists). Frida Kahlo (1907–54), wife of Diego Rivera, was instrumental in the development of what has been called Mexican Surrealism, although this was deeply rooted in her personal life and in Mexican folk culture. Both Carlos Orozco Romero (1898–1984) and Rufino Tamayo (1899–1991) explored indigenous themes through their paintings. Similar ideas were taken up in Cuba by Amelia Peláez (1896–1968) and Wilfredo Lam (1902–82). Both travelled extensively in Europe, but on their returns to Cuba started using themes of indigenous significance. Peláez’s work, both in painting and murals, draws on the Cubist movement but reinterprets this in terms of Cuban architecture. Lam, also influenced by Picasso and Cubism, explores his Afro-Caribbean heritage and has gained international acclaim. In Haiti, Hector Hyppolite (1894–1948) explored his own spiritual life as a Vodoun priest and painted mystic narratives; while Wilson Bigaud (b.1931), Hyppolite’s neighbour and pupil, turned his attention to the depiction of dissident exhibition in September 1910, two months before the outbreak of the Revolution. Through political connections he was appointed director of the Academy of Fine Arts in 1914, but in his inaugural address he claimed that art belonged on the walls of buildings and then proceeded to close the academy down. Another of Dr Atl’s students, David Alfaro Siqueiros (1896–1975), published his Manifesto in 1922 in which he claimed that Muralism was the only valid art form and that it should deal with Revolutionary themes. Siqueiros’ political activism was even more extreme than that of Dr Atl, including leadership of an assassination squad that made an attempt on the life of Trotsky in 1940, who was at that time in exile in Mexico. Muralism was largely expressed through the work of Orozco, Siqueiros, and a then relatively unknown Diego Rivera (1886–1957), who had also been one of Dr Atl’s pupils. Although they shared the ideal that Muralism should represent revolutionary thoughts and deal with issues of nationalism, poverty and social reform, they disagreed intensely on how this should be done. Rivera broke with his mentor Dr Atl and painted over the work of other Muralists whom he considered inferior; Siqueiros accused Rivera of romanticism, while Orozco, taking Siqueiros’ Manifesto literally, destroyed all his ‘easel paintings’ when he embarked on Muralism. Of the three Mexican muralists, Rivera has gained the most acclaim, partly on the strength of his massive mural for the National Palace in Mexico City, and this has secured him the accolade of ‘The First Great Mexican Artist’. JOSÉ CLEMENTE OROZCO, University Library, Mexico City. This magnificient mural by José Clemente Orozco (1883–1949) was created towards the end of his career. The use of colour and figurative detail to cover large wall spaces is very characteristic of Mexican Muralism and is reminiscent of the manner in which wall spaces were used by the earlier Mayans and Aztecs. Orozco, unlike the other Muralists, abandoned all easel art early in his career and concentrated solely on producing large public artworks such as this. everyday street scenes. After suffering a series of breakdowns in the 1960s, Bigaud’s work since 1970 has focussed more on themes relating to his illness. NEW ART While much of the work of the new generation of artists continues to explore the idea of opposition between the old and the new, it has increasingly seen this as a sense of inner and personal struggle which finds an outlet not only within the region but also in an international context. Influences are drawn from the international art community and from such diverse areas as Conceptual Art, Concrete Art, Abstract Expressionism, Performance, and Photography. Yet there is always a sense that these movements are viewed purely as the medium through which expression takes place and that meaning is located within the Central American and Caribbean context. These new artists have not formed particular schools, and, therefore, comment on individual work would be that of the art critic, not the art historian. There are, however, some generalized trends. In Mexico contemporary art tends to deal with ideas of space and architectural form. Cuban art is exploring new parameters, although the cultural context remains restrictive and many young Cuban artists are in exile, whereas in Jamaica and Haiti there remains a focus on an AfroCaribbean heritage and, in particular, the use of sculptural and votive forms. Central American and Caribbean art is appreciated as a valid expressive form that has gained worldwide recognition. Artists are exhibiting globally and are represented in major collections, such as the Tate Gallery in London and the Museum of Modern Art, New York. 1 THE MEXICAN REVOLUTION and its impact throughout the area attracted international attention. It was during this period that artists actively sought to state a national consciousness that would find its place within the international arena, through distinctive architecture and painting, and especially through Muralism. Many artists travelled widely and drew on influences from outside the area, international exhibitions were promoted, and public manifestos of indigenous awareness were published. Although Modernism has led to artists being recognized in their own right, for the majority this is clearly rooted in a sense of national pride and heritage. ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 266 THE INDEPENDENCE MOVEMENTS of the nineteenth century caused considerable political, social and cultural upheaval throughout Mexico, Central America and the Caribbean. In the arts, conflict raged between schools of thought from Neoclassicism, through Impressionism, to a populist ‘art of the people’. Independence had manifested itself in factionalism and dictatorships rather than national unity. This inherent instability erupted in 1910 with the Mexican Revolution, followed shortly after in the rest of Central America, and gave rise directly to dissident and political art forms that were first expressed through Mexican Muralism. MEXICAN MURALISM The revolution for social change in Mexico coincided with an artistic revolution, and its initiation can largely be credited to one man, Gerardo Murillo (1875–1964). After several years in Europe where he was inspired by Fauvism, Murillo returned to Mexico in 1903, changing his name to Dr Atl (Aztec for ‘water’) as a symbol of his return to cultural roots, and began mural painting. With two of his students, Joáquin Clausell (1866–1935) and José Clemente Orozco (1883–1949), he organized the first CENTRAL AMERICA AND THE CARIBBEAN 1900-2000 60˚ 10˚ 70˚80˚90˚ Coyoacán Aguascalientes Guanajuato Ciudad Guzmán Zacatecas Ciudad Camargo (Santa Rosalía) CampecheVeracruz Guatemala City Puebla Chihuahua Oaxaca San Marcos San José Heredia Panama City Port of Spain St Andrew St-Marc Port-au-Prince Limbé Yaguajay Manzanillo Lucca Sagua la GrandeHavana Santo Domingo C A R I B B E A N S E A P A C I F I C O C E A N ATLANTIC OCEAN G U L F O F M E X I C O GULFOFCALIFORNIA YUCATÁN SIERRA M A DRE M A DRE DEL SUR SIERRA WESTERNSIERRAMADRE EASTERN SIERRA MADRE BAHAMAS 1973 CUBA 1898 JAMAICA 1962 PUERTO RICO (to USA) 1898 BARBADOS 1966GRENADA 1974 DOMINICAN REPUBLIC 1978 VIRGIN IS GUADELOUPE (FRANCE) ANTIGUA & BARBUDA 1981 DOMINICA 1978 ST LUCIA 1979 ANGUILLA (BRAZIL) MARTINIQUE (FRANCE)ST VINCENT & THE GRENADINES 1979 NETHERLANDS ANTILLES (DUTCH) TRINIDAD & TOBAGO 1962 N O R T H A M E R I C A M E X I C O BELIZE GUATEMALA HONDURAS NICARAGUA COSTA RICA PANAMA COLOMBIA V E N E Z U E L A EL SALVADOR S O U T H A M E R I C A Vértebra Congress of Abstract Artists 1 3 12 13 4 7 8 2 24 25 1944-54 Amighetti (1907-98) Zúñiga (1912-98) Universidad Nacional 5 Ferrer (1929-) 15 Coronel (1932-) Siqueiros (1896-1975) Posada (1851-1913) Rivera (1886-1957) Orozco (1883-1949) 16 17 19 20 20 Clausell (1866-1935) 22 23 18 Tamayo (1899-1991) Palacio de Gobernado (Bustos, 1978) 21 14 9 10 6 11 Mexico1914,1916 Guatemala1954 Nicaragua1912-33 Panama1903-18,1989 Cuba1921-23,1933,1961 Haiti 1915-34, 1944, 1994 Dominican Republic 1916-24, 1 965-66 Grenada 1983 Burnside (1947-) Escuela Nacional de Bellas Artes Centre d’Art - Dr Atl (to Madrid 1896-1903) - Clausell (to Paris 1900) - Montenegro (to Paris 1907Picasso, Braque, Gris) - Rivera (to Paris 1909, 1912Picasso, Breton, Gris) - Siqueiros (to Barcelona 1919-21) - Barragán (to Paris 1932Le Corbusier) - Goeritz (to Madrid 1944-45- Arp) - Bustos (to Berlin 1951) Orozco (to New York 1927-34), Siqueiros (to New York 1935) Academia de Bellas Artes Mérida (to Paris 1910-14-Picasso, Modigliani, van Dongen) - Lam (to Madrid 1928-38; to Marseille 1940-Breton, Ernst) - Peláez (to Paris 1927-33) Hyppolite (to Haiti 1945-20 - Breton) N 0 0 300 miles 400 kms major artist active 1900-2000 1 - Malone (1941-) 2 - Ramsay (1953-) Butcher (1960-) 3 - Peláez (1896-1968) 4 - Lam (1902-82) 5 - Portocarrero (1912-85) Sierra (1944-) Mendieta (1948-85) Bedia (1959-) 6 - Woss y Gil (1891-1985) 7 - Mérida (1891-1985) 8 - Barrios (1946-) 9 - Obin (1891-1986) 10 - Hyppolite (1894-1948) 11 - Benoit (1911-86) Bigaud (1931-) 12 - Manley (1900-87) 13 - Abrahams (1913-) 14 - Watson (1931-) 15 - Posada (1851-1913) 16 - Dr Atl (1875-1968) Montenegro (1887-1968) 17 - Orozco (1883-1949) 18 - Rivera (1886-1957) 19 - Leal (1896-1964) Álvarez Bravo (1902-2002) Covarrubias (1904-57) O’Gorman (1905-82) Bustos (1926-) 20 - Siqueiros (1896-1975) 21 - Kahlo (1907-54) 22 - Alfaro (1949-) 23 - Solis (1953-) 24 - Stollmeyer (1913-81) 25 - Holder (1920-) MEXICO 1910-40 1838 Central America and the Caribbean, 1900-2000 date of independence US intervention revolution Mexican artists of the revolutionary period major artist active 1900-2000 art academy/institute gallery showing international work international exhibition artists’ group artists’ publication architecture Muralism foreign visits and contacts Cuban exiles G G Mexico City - Leal (1896-1964), Bravo (1902-2002), Covarrubias (1904-57), O’Gorman (1905-82), Kahlo (1907-54), Bustos (1926-) - Escuela de Pintura y Escultura la Esmeralda - Museo de Arte Moderno - Taller de Gráfica Popular - Chapúltepec Park (Vázquez, 1964) - Palacio de Bellas Artes (Boari, 1904-34) - Hotel Reforma (Pani, 1936) - Museo Nacional de Antropología (Vázquez, 1963) - Universidad de Mexico (Rivera, 1922) - Escuela Nacional Preparatoria (Rivera, Siqueiros, Leal, Orozco, 1922) - Museo de Arte Moderno (O’Gorman, Orozco, 1942) - Museo del Palacio de Bellas Artes (Rivera, Tamayo, Siqueiros, 1934) - Museo Nacional de Antropología (Coronel, 1964) - Liga de Escritores y Artistas Revolucionarios Puebla School - El Machete Guadalajara Murillo (Dr Atl)(1875-1964) Montenegro (1887-1968) Revista Moderna Casa Cristo (Barragán, 1929) - Havana Academia de San Alejandro Museo Nacional Escuela de Artes Plásticas (Posso, 1961) Tribunal de Cuentas (Peláez, 1954) - Kingston School of Arts and Crafts John Peartree Gallery Norman Manley Airport (Abrahams, 1985) G G HAITI Savain - (1906-73) Holy Trinity - Cathedral (Bigaud, 1954) CUBA 1959 - Biennal de Arte - Revista de Avance - Cárdenas (to Paris 1955) Sierra (to Chicago 1961) Mendieta (to Iowa 1961) Bedia (to New York 1985) 1 DIEGO RIVERA, The Arrival of Cortés at Veracruz. Diego Rivera (1886–1957) described his own art as ‘narrative history’: realistic portrayal – as in this detail of Cortés arriving at Veracruz – by which the people could learn the story of their culture and gain pride in nationhood. Rivera, together with other influential artists such as Dr Atl, Siqueiros, and Orozco, was at the forefront of Mexican Revolutionary art. Yet he enjoyed publicity and the company of high society and was denounced by Orozco as a betrayer of the socialist cause for accepting large sums to produce commissioned artwork. SOUTH AMERICA 1900–2000 269 strategies were used to overcome censorship and the withdrawal of government support. Collective groups of artists remaining in Chile and Brazil during repressive dictatorships appropriated urban spaces for ‘happenings’ and installations, mail art, and later internet art, was pioneered in South America as a means to come to terms with its growing diaspora. By the close of the twentieth century democracy was In 1935, the Uruguayan Joaquín TorresGarcía founded the Asociación de Arte Constructivo and the review Circulo y Cuadrado, containing contributions by leading international Constructivists. Torres-García’s workshop, and his writings and lectures, were a source of encouragement for a generation of younger artists in Uruguay and Argentina. He contributed to the review Arturo (Buenos Aires 1944), a publication bringing together artists who subsequently formed the two Concrete art movements, Madi and Concreto Invención. THE POST-WAR BOOM While Europe suffered in the aftermath of the Second World War, some of the economies in South America thrived. Concrete and kinetic art movements were particularly strong in Brazil and Venezuela, where the demand for urban housing and other public building also generated a boom in modern architecture. The war also prompted the immigration of many artists, including Mira Schendel (Italy to Brazil) and Gego (Germany to Venezuela), into South America. The São Paulo Bienal was launched in 1951, establishing a lasting focus for contemporary art in South America and beyond. Outstanding modern museums were constructed in Rio and São Paulo, where groups of non-figurative artists were formed, encompassing both visual art and experimental poetry and causing heated discussion both in the Brazilian press (an active forum for contemporary art) and internationally. Artists from the Rio Frente group later formed the Grupo Neoconcreta, members of which (Lygia Clark and Hélio Oiticica) were invited to London for solo exhibitions during the 1960s. A climate of modernization, and opportunities for public commission, encouraged a strong current of abstract and kinetic art in Venezuela, the leading artists of which were Alejandro Otero, Jesús Soto and Carlos Cruz-Diez. In the later decades of the twentieth century local art markets in Venezuela and Colombia were buoyant, international art magazines were launched and dealers supported the work of young artists. In Brazil, Uruguay, Chile and Peru, political and economic instability forced many artists to continue their careers in exile. Diverse AULA MAGNA AUDITORIUM, Carlos Raúl Villanueva, Central University of Venezuela, Caracas, 1948–57. Alongside the work of Costa, Niemeyer and Reidy, this project is representative of South America’s groundbreaking modern architecture. Villanueva supported and encouraged the work of young Venezuelan abstract artists Jésus Soto and Alejandro Otero, inviting them to collaborate on the University’s design. Other artists involved in the project included Alexander Calder, who designed the auditorium’s ‘acoustic clouds’. MIRA SCHENDEL, DISKS, 1972. Schendel was born in Zurich, brought up in Italy and after being displaced by the Second World War, came to Brazil. Her use of linguistic signs is representative of an experimental attitude towards language, encouraged by concrete and visual poetry, an active and important current in the recent history of Brazilian art. nrocirpaCfociporT 90˚ 80˚ 70˚ 60˚ 50˚ 40˚ 30˚ 20˚ 40˚ 50˚ 30˚ 20˚ 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ The Northeast seen as home to peasant populations, and productive in terms of Arte Popular. The region became a focus for creative and political interest in 1950s/60s 1959 Pioneering architect Lino Bo Bardi obtains grant to restore 16th- century Solar de Unhão in Salvador into a Museum of Popular Art Populist dictatorship witnesses renewed artistic interest in a mass audience. 1976 Premio Nacional de Arte awarded to Antay, artist of the popular retablo 1962 Centro Popular de Cultura, student organization promoting arte popularPorto Alegre Rio de Janeiro Salvador Santiago Lima Cali Maracaibo Caracas São Paulo Montevideo 1963 First American Biennial of Printmaking, Museum of Contemporary Art, University of Chile from 1959 National Exhibitions of Graphics, Central University of Venezuela 1967 Latin American Exhibition of Drawings and Prints 1970 Pan-American Exhibition of Drawings and Prints 1971 First South American Biennial of Graphic Arts 1977-81 Biennials of South American Printmaking 1950 Clube de Gravura de Porto Alegre 1952 Clube de Grabado 1958 Taller 99, Catholic University of Santiago 1970 Centro de Enseñanza Gráfica Taller de Artistas Gráficos Asociados Marañón A mazon TapajósPa ra náXingu Magdalena Ori noco Paraguay Ucayalí Desead o Río Negro L. Titicaca A T L A N T I C O C E A N CARIBBEAN SEA PACIFICOCEAN A N D E S GUIANA HIGHLANDS BRAZILIANHIGHLANDS ATACAMADESERT ANDES PIAUÍ BAHÍA MARANHÃO VENEZUELA COLOMBIA PERU URUGUAY ECUADOR BOLIVIA B R A Z I L PA RAGUAY CHILE ARGENTINA Arte Popular in Post-war South America independent graphics workshop biennials and exhibitions of printmaking and graphics 2 N 0 0 800 miles 1200 kms restored throughout South America, although economic instability continued to be a problem for artists. A burgeoning internationalism in art history and criticism has led to greater recognition in Europe and the USA of the significant role played by South America in the history of twentieth-century art and architecture. 2 CHARACTERISTICS OF ARTE POPULAR have been diversely reinterpreted according to political and artistic demands. In Brazil, for example, the popularist government of Goulart (1961–4) encouraged a national focus on tradition, whereas in Chile arpilleras (patchwork pictures) were produced in opposition to the dictatorship, by the families of the disappeared. Another approach to the popular was a renewed interest in printmaking; biennials and competitions held since 1960 have established a lasting current of graphic art in South America. ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 268 THE 1920s SAW the emergence of radical artistic developments in South America. Movements such as Expressionism, Dada and Cubism were translated into innovative forms in the cosmopolitan art centres of the region. These developments ruptured the conservative tradition of fine art institutions established during the late nineteenth and early twentieth centuries. Artists such as Tarsila do Amaral (Brazil), Emilio Pettoruti and Xul Solar (Argentina) and Luis Vargas (Chile) returned to their respective countries after intense involvement with the Parisian avant-garde. Modern artists established themselves in South America with exhibitions and lectures, and reviews that circulated and debated ideas beyond national boundaries. CRUCIAL OPPOSITIONS The review Amauta (Peru) linked avant-garde aesthetics with revolutionary politics. Although international in scope, it emphasized a Peruvian identity: its title (a Quecha word meaning ‘wise man’) stating adherence to Indigenismo. Martín Fierro, (Argentina), on the other hand, rejected any nationalistic promotion of ancient cultural traditions; its leading writer was Jorge Luis Borges, and the review asserted South American independence but conceded the inevitable presence of European influence. Brazil’s ‘Semana de Arte Moderna’, a week of exhibitions, poetry readings, concerts, and debates, was organized by a group of young artists, writers and musicians and held at São Paulo’s Teatro Municipal in 1922. The monthly review Klaxon embraced a new, modern and industrialized context for art. The phenomenon of modernity in a country of economic contrasts, with African and Indian populations and a colonized history, was examined in the writings of the poet Oswald de Andrade. His 1928 Anthropophagite Manifesto, attempted to come to terms with the contradictions of this position. The anthropophagite (cannibal) personified a critical model for art from Brazil: the notion of devouring the colonizer in order to appropriate his power. The Mexican Muralist movement gave momentum to a broad current of socially committed art in the 1920s, and established a lasting medium for public art throughout South America. In the 1920s Muralism was often associated with social protest (as in Ecuador and the work of Eduardo Kingman) and Indigenismo. Elsewhere Muralism was encouraged by revolutionary political reform, as was the case with the muralist group ‘Anteo,’ which emerged during the 1952 Revolución Nacional in Bolivia. SOUTH AMERICA 1900-2000 1 FROM THE EARLY DECADES of the twentieth century, focus shifted from the traditional academy to the activities of independent groups of artists, contesting conservatism on both political and artistic grounds and supporting an independent American modernism with exhibitions and workshops. Contacts were maintained with the international avant-garde via art reviews and research trips in and out of the region. 80˚ 70˚ 60˚ 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ F F F F F São Paulo Santiago Buenos Aires La Paz Asunciõn Barranquilla Lima Cuenca Quito Bogotá Caracas Recife Salvador Belo Horizonte Brasília Curitiba Pôrto Alegre Montevideo Sucre Rio de Janeiro Medellín Cali O rinoco Amazon Tapajós Ucayalí Río Negro M arañón Paraná D eseado Paraguay Xingu Magdalena L. Titicaca A T L A N T I C O C E A N PA C I F I C O C E A N C A R I B B E A N S E A A N D E S ATACAMADESERT BRAZILIAN HIGHLANDS GUIANA HIGHLANDS VENEZUELA B R A Z I L COLOMBIA ECUADOR P E R U B O L I V I A A R G E N T I N A URUGUAY PA R A G U A Y CHILE Estética 1924Madrugada 1925 Círculo y Cuadrado 1936 Martín Fierro 1924, Qué (Surrealist) 1926, Arturo 1944 Mandragora (Surrealist) 1938 Anteo (Muralists) 1950 Amauta 1926 Agrupación Espacio 1945 Plástica 1957, Prisma 1957 Taller Libre de Arte 1948 A Revista 1925 Klaxon 1922 Revista de Antropofagia 1928 Noigandres (Concrete Poetry) 1952 Frente 1952 Neoconcreta 1959 Ministério da Edução e Saúde (Costa 1937) Museum of Modern Art (Reidy 1953) capital city (Niemeyer 1960) Bienal Building (Niemeyer 1951) Salões de Maio 1937-39 Week of Modern Art 1922 M.A.S.P. 1947 Academia d’Altamira 1946 Centro de Artes y Letras de ‘El País’ 1959-66 Instituto General Electric 1963-69 1973-84 Military dictatorship 1973-88 Pinochet dictatorship 1940-48 Military government 1964-82 Military government; muralism banned 1980s Military repression 1964-85 Military dictatorship Taller Torres-Garcia (TTG) 1944 Madi 1944, Asociación Arte Concreto Invención 1945 International Centenary Exhibition 1910 International Centenary Exhibition 1910 Montparnasse 1923 Rectángulo 1955 Ruptura 1952 Agrupación Espacio 1945 Arte Nuevo c. 1950 Escuela Nacional de Bellas Artes 1919 Fine Arts School 1946 Fine Arts School 1946 Indigenismo c. 1935 Mural art c. 1930, Landscape painting c. 1930 Central University (Villanueva 1952) Colegio Paraguay Brasil (Reidy 1953) Bienal 1968, Anti-Bienal 1968 Taller Libre de Arte 1948 National Exhibition of Concrete Art 1957 N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms South America 1900-2000: Centres of Artistic Activity 1900s 1910s 1920s 1930s 1940s 1 1950s 1960s 1970s 1980s 1990s art review national movement/group of artists landmarks of modern architecture exhibition of national and international artists national exhibition with international impact art institution/school independent taller (workshop) early 20th-century Fine Arts Academy establishment of commercial art market international bienal arts centre established by FUNARTE (Brazilian government body) South American artists abroad visiting artists/architects politics F 1922-24 Tarsila do Amaral in Paris: contacts Léger, poet Blaise Cendrars 1959 Haroldo de Campos (Concrete poet) teaches at University of Stuttgart 1960s Oiticica, Clark, Schendel: solo exhibitions in London 1890-1933 Torres-García in Spain, France and USA, founder-member of Cercle et Carré movement, Paris 1913-24 Emilio Pettoruti in Florence, Paris 1912-24 Xul Solar in Italy, Germany, England, France 1945-52 Alejandro Otero in Paris; forms Los Disidentes (with group of other Venezuelan artists in Paris) and review of same name 1950 Otero and Soto visit Holland to see Mondrian‘s work 1924 Blaise Cendrars (France) lectures on modern French poetry 1929, 1936 Le Corbusier (France) lecture tours 1951 Max Bill (Switzerland) participates in 1st Bienal 1929, 1936 Le Corbusier (France) lecture tours 1929, 1936 Le Corbusier (France) lecture tours 1948 Concreto Invención group (Argentina) exhibit at Taller Libre de Arte 1952 Villanueva invites international artists (Léger, Arp, Laurens, Calder, Vasarély) to design work for the Central University 1953 Affonso Reidy (Brazil) designs Colegio Paraguay-Brasil - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - - 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 15 4 9 378 2 64 EUROPE 1900–2000 271 PABLO PICASSO, Guernica, 1937. Picasso’s large-scale mural Guernica depicts the atrocities committed against innocent civilians during the Spanish Civil War. Here Picasso presents, in his own Cubist style, women, children and animals in the midst of a terrifying conflagration. The work has been exhibited throughout the world and stands as a powerful symbol of anti-war protest. VLADIMIR TATLIN, Model for the Monument to the Third International, 1919–20. Tatlin’s proposed monument in honour of the 1917 Bolshevik Revolution reflected the utopian and internationalist aspirations of the new Soviet state. Planned to be 300 metres (975 ft) high and to include within its structure vast rotating rooms for state agencies, Tatlin’s tower was never, and probably could never have been, built. 1 THE TWENTIETH CENTURY was a period of intense sociopolitical change resulting in the map of Europe being redrawn many times over. Two world wars, the rise and fall of Fascism and the emergence, consolidation and eventual collapse of the world’s first communist state all contributed to mass changes in national and international identities and to dramatic shifts in practice in the visual arts. had once taken for granted, but it was now increasingly forced to take second place to the growing strength and authority of the United States. New York was gradually to establish its primacy over Paris as the capital of the art world. THE IMPACT OF TECHNOLOGY From the very dawn of the twentieth century, scientific and technological developments had a considerable impact upon art production throughout Europe. In Italy, new industries such as automobile manufacture, significantly influenced artists such as the Futurists. Based in the north of the country, where hydroelectric power from the Alps was needed to run the turbines of the new factories, Futurism celebrated speed and modernity. Moreover, through the energetic proselytizing of the movement by its founder and chief spokesman Filippo Tommaso Marinetti, Futurism gained a foothold in many countries throughout Europe. Technology also made a huge impact in the newly established Soviet Union where artists associated with the Constructivist movement embraced new materials and techniques in an attempt to link the worlds of art and industry. Many of the Constructivists’ ideas were gradually exported throughout Europe through dialogues established with artists such as Vasily Kandinsky and El Lissitzky. In architecture, too, new technological developments played a major role in forming a new aesthetic. In the first half of the century an increased emphasis on machine and mass production opposed the more decorative approach to architecture and design that had characterized the late nineteenth century. Reinforced concrete in particular facilitated greater freedom in the design of interior spaces. External walls were also liberated from their previous load-bearing requirement. Throughout Europe architects such as Adolf Loos, Le Corbusier, Ludwig Mies van der Rohe and Konstantin Melnikov erected modern, geometrically inspired and sparsely decorated houses and villas that were to have a marked, and continuing, influence on the development of twentieth-century architecture. These experiments with new technology also went on to influence post-World War II religious architecture such as Le Corbusier’s works at Ronchamp and Eveux and Frederick Gibberd’s Cathedral of Christ the King in Liverpool. Brutalist mass housing projects, such as Le Corbusier’s Unité d’Habitation in Marseille, and Ernö Goldfinger’s Trellick Tower in London also exploited the possibilities of new building technology. PUBLIC ART Public monuments also played a key part in the cultural landscape of twentiethcentury Europe. While most of these monuments occupy urban centres some, including Konstantin Brancusi’s trio of sculptures entitled Endless Column, The Table of Silence and The Gate of the Kiss, and Antony Gormley’s Angel of the North, have been positioned further afield at sites, respectively, at Târgu-Jiu in Romania and Gateshead in England. These works serve more distant audiences for public art, as well as attracting the more determined art pilgrim. The principle of making art available to a mass public audience generated the development of many new museums throughout Europe in the latter half of the twentieth century. Many of these, such as the Moderna Museet in Stockholm, the Pompidou Centre in Paris and the recently opened Guggenheim Museum in Bilbao have commissioned famous architects to build ultra-modern buildings to house the works of the modernist era. Others have redesigned old industrial buildings, most notably London’s Tate Modern at Bankside, to reinforce the link between modern art and the industrial era. ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 270 FOLLOWING PATTERNS that had emerged during the previous century, many early twentieth-century artists sought to escape the ever-expanding urban centres of Europe in favour of more secluded, sparsely populated and less industrially developed rural centres. MODERNITY AND MIGRATION In France, artists associated with both Fauvism and Cubism travelled south from their Parisian studios in search of remote landscapes at St Tropez, Collioure and L’Estaque. Conversely, other European artists travelled great distances to live and work in Paris, recognized at this time as the centre of the art world. The outbreak of the World War I further exacerbated the patterns of international migration already established. German and Russian artists in particular were forced to abandon their Parisian studios and return home, bringing with them their knowledge and experiences of modern art practices. In the midst of the conflict the city of Zurich in neutral Switzerland, little renowned at this point as a haunt for modern artists, became home to some of the most experimental art produced in the twentieth century as a host of international exiles joined forces to launch the Dada movement, soon to spread its influence far and wide. EUROPE 1900-2000 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ Châtou Collioure St Tropez Marseille Trouville Paris L'Estaque Milan London Dresden Munich Oslo Murnau Stampa Vienna Church of Notre Dame (Perret 1922-23) Villa Savoye (Le Corbusier 1929-31) Moscow Melnikov House (Melnikov 1929) Notre Dame du Haut (Le Corbusier 1950-54) Ronchamp Eveux sur l'Arbresle Worpswede Zurich Cologne Hanover Barcelona Migration to USA Duchamp from France 1915 Ernst from France 1941 Grosz from Germany 1932 Albers from Germany 1933 Gropius from Germany 1937 Moholy-Nagy from Germany 1937 Mies van der Rohe from Germany 1938 Mondrian from Netherlands 1940 Amsterdam Florence Ferrara St Petersburg Copenhagen Düsseldorf Liverpool St Ives Brussels House (Whiteread 1993) Târgu-Jiu Puppy (Koons 1997) Vitebsk Gris Madrid Ernst Giacometti Brancusi Bilbao Construction for the Bijenkorf Department store (Gabo 1954-57) Gateshead Angel of the North (Gormley 1998) Stockholm Moderna Museet (1958) Venice Livorno Rome Mondrian Rotterdam Utrecht Berlin Budapest BrnoLe Raincy Poissy Sightpoint (Serra 1971-75) Endless Column (Brancusi 1937) Trellick Tower (Goldfinger 1972) Palais Stoclet (Hoffmann 1905-11) Schröder House (Rietveld 1923-24) Tugendhat House (Mies van der Rohe 1930) Steiner House (Loos 1910) Unité d’Habitation (Le Corbusier 1945-52) Cathedral of Christ the King (Gibberd 1967) Monastery of Ste Marie de laTourette (Le Corbusier 1953-9) Tate Gallery Tate Gallery Tate Modern (Herzog & de Meuron 2000) Guggenheim Museum Pompidou Centre (Rogers & Piano 1971-77) Guggenheim Museum (Gehry 1997) Guggenheim Museum (1951) Goncharova, Kandinsky, Larionov Chagall Severini Modigliani Miró, Picasso Graveyard of Fallen Monuments Szoborpark Tham e s Seine Loire Po Rhône Ebro Gar onne Duero Rhine Elbe Oder Volga Vistula Danube Dniester Dnieper Tagus Me use N O R T H S E A BA LT I C S E A A D R IA TIC SEA B L A C K S E A B A Y O F B I S C A Y M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A T L A N T I C O C E A N P Y R E N E E S A L P S B A L K A N M T S. CA R PA T IAN MTS D IN A R I C A L P S S I C I LY CORSICA SARDINIA BA L E A R I C I S . A F R I C A UNITED KINGDOM IRELAND F R A N C E S P A I N I TA LY GREECE T U R K E Y MACE- DONIA BELGIUM SWITZ. LUX. NETH. DENMARK N O R W AY S W E D E N FINLAND ESTONIA LATVIA LITHUANIA RUSS. FED BELORUSSIA R U S S I A N F E D E R A T I O N U K R A I N E P O L A N D CZECH REPUBLIC SLOVAKIA R O M A N I A B U L G A R I A SLOVENIA CROATIA BOSNIA & HERZEGOVINA A U S T R I A H U N G A R Y G E R M A N Y YUGO S LAVIA ALBANIA PORTUGAL M OLDAVIA N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 1 Europe, 1900-2000 centres associated with Fauvism centres associated with Cubism centres associated with Futurism centres associated with Expressionism centres associated with Dada centres associated with Surrealism centres associated with de Stijl centres associated with Metaphysical painting centres associated with Constructivism centres associated with CoBra centres associated with Fluxus religious architecture domestic architecture museum/gallery of modern art public monument open air sculpture park artist/architect moving to Paris artist/architect moving to USA During the 1920s and 1930s, the rise of Fascism in Italy, Germany and Spain further contributed to artistic migrations. But it was the outbreak of World War II in 1939 that was to generate social movements on a scale that was barely conceivable in previous epochs. Throughout the conflict many of Europe’s most respected artists, not least of all those who had played a major role in developing the Surrealist movement, fled the battlefields of Europe for more peaceful and receptive surroundings, many eventually reaching the shores of the United States. In the post-war era Europe fought to regain the cultural dominance that it 2 Art in a Globalized World, 1988-2000 NIFCA studio exchange programme, based in Helsinki IASPIS studio exchange programme, based in Stockholm NORDPLUS exchange with art colleges artistic migrations, with date art gallery with 20th-century art contemporary art space college of art SCANDINAVIA AND THE BALTIC STATES 1900–2000 273 Einar Jolin and Leander Engström; the Icelander, Jón Stefánsson; the Dane, Harald Giersing, and the Norwegians, Ludvig Karsten and Henrik Sørensen. ART AND POLITICS Public art, which sought to express a unifying national purpose, came to have increasing importance in Norway after the dissolution of the Union between Sweden and Norway in 1905. Monumental frescoes were produced by both Edvard Munch and Gerhard Munthe, while the country’s major sculptural decoration is the Vigeland Park (1905–43), in Oslo, created by Gustav Vigeland. During World War II, when Norway was occupied by the Germans, a parallel art emerged which sought to examine topical subjects away from the public arena – Hannah Ryggen, for example, reflected contemporary subjects in her textile work. The political situation in Finland had a decisive role in the strongly national presentation of art – attempts were made to manifest genuinely Finnish qualities, rather than merely absorbing international trends. In Finland, the influence of international Modernism is first noticeable around 1915, with the formation of the Septem and November groups. The Expressionist Tyko Sallinen, whose wild painting was inspired by the French Fauvistes and Edvard Munch, attracted violent criticism when he first exhibited in 1912. One of the most radical Finnish Modernists was Helene Schjerfbeck, who distinguished herself in a series of selfportraits. The sculptor Wäinö Aaltonen dominated the 1920s and 1930s in Finland, producing granite sculptures that are steeped in patriotic heroism and classicism. It was not until the 1960s that Finnish public art experienced a new era with the monument to Jean Sibelius by Eila Hiltunen, which, among others, paved the way for abstract sculpture. EIJA-LIISA AHTILA (b.1959 in Finland), Anne, Aki and God, 1998, DVD-installation. Ahtila is one of the most famous young contemporary Scandinavian artists. Her works often deal with questions of identity and psychoanalysis mixed with the melancholy tradition of Nordic film. Anne, Aki and God is ostensibly based on the diary of a schizophrenic. 60˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ Helsinki Riga Tallinn Copenhagen Malmö Bornholm Lund 1990s; to Berlin to Berlin to New York, San Francisco to New York, 1980s-1990s with exchange countries Roskilde Odense Vilnius Turku Umeå Tampere (Tammerfors) Jyväskylä Oulu Reykjavík Bergen Oslo Trondheim Tromsø Uppsala Jönköping Gothenburg Helsingborg Wanås Humlebæk Kolding Stavanger Mariefred Bornholms Kunstmuseum 1990s Stockholm Norrtälje Trapholt 1988 1992 Grafikens hus 1993 1988 1990 Vistula Oder W . Dvina SKAGERRAK GULFOFBOTHNIA GULF OF FINLAND A R C T I C O C E A N N O R W E G I A N S E A BALTIC SEA DENMARK SW ED E N N O R W A Y FINLAND RU SSI A N FED ERATI O N LATVIA B E L A R U S POLANDGERMANY LITHUANIA ESTONIA 6 5 19 7, 8 10, 11, 12, 13 18 21 22 23 24 20 16 9 17 3 1 14, 15 2 4 Baltic States 1980s: photography, performance art and conceptual art flourish. post-1991: Baltic artists participate in international exhibitions. There are studio programs in Tallinn, Riga and Vilnius. N 0 0 500 miles 600 kms 1 - Arken 1996 2 - Museet for Samtidskunst 1991 3 - Louisiana 1957 4 - Brandts Klaedefabrik 1997 5 - Kiasma 1998 6 - Tampere Taidemuseo 1966 7 - Astrup Fernley Museum 1993 8 - Museet for Samtidskunst 1990 9 - Dunkerska Kulturhuset 1997 10 - Liljevalchs 1916 11 - Museum of Modern Art 1956 12 - Magasin 3 1987 13 - Färgfabriken 1996 14 - Rooseum 1986 15 - Malmö Konsthall 1975 16 - Konsthallen 1923 17 - Lund Art Gallery 1957 18 - Norrtälje Konsthall 1983 19 - Bildmuseet 1981 20 - Wanås Sculpture Park 1987 21 - Baltic Art Centre 22 - Centre for Contemporary Arts 23 - Latvia Centre for Contemporary Art 24 - Contemporary Art Information Centre 2 THE SCANDINAVIAN COUNTRIES and the Baltic states are on the periphery of the art world, but since the early 1990s this perspective has been greeted as something interesting and refreshing, and – in a global art market – the periphery is having an increasing influence on the centre. Since the 1990s, many Scandinavian and Baltic artists have made careers on the international art scene. The most reputable Scandinavian artists are, in fact, women. The most popular media used by contemporary artists are photography, video and computer art. Conscious Naïvism – in which the subjects were bucolic and idyllic – grew and flourished in Sweden during the 1910s, especially at a time when World War I was preventing artists from working abroad. This trend, together with Expressionism, continued to dominate the Swedish art world over the following two decades, although by the 1930s post-Cubism and Surrealism were also having a marked impact in both Sweden and Denmark. Alvar Aalto from Finland and Gunnar Asplund, from Sweden, have had the greatest influence as pioneers for Functionalism in Scandinavian design. Asplund was the chief architect for the Stockholm Exhibition of 1930, which was Functionalism’s greatest showcase – revealing the impact of the movement on art, architecture and design. THE POST-WAR WORLD After World War II international art trends became significant. In Denmark, an expressive, abstract painting style was created in the 1940s mainly by the internationally active CoBra group (1948–52). A group calling itself ‘1947 års män’ (‘The Men of 1947’) appeared in Sweden during the same period. Their espousal of nonfigurative art came to have considerable influence in the following decade. Pop Art has an internationally famous Scandinavian exponent in Öiyvind Fahlström. He lived and worked in New York, and represents the shift between French and American influence on art in the early 1960s. The Moderna Museet in Stockholm, under the leadership of Pontus Hultén, had an all-important role in developing artistic contacts with the USA. The Danish painter and sculptor Per Kirkeby represented the new Expressionism in the first half of the 1980s, while others who used photography marked the way for a conceptualbased art which flourished in the late 1980s and 1990s. Scandinavian art has recently attracted much attention for its anti-Expressionist style. ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 272 AT THE TURN OF THE CENTURY, the Symbolism of the 1890s, combined with national Romanticism, resulted in ‘atmospheric’ painting, in which the revealing daylight of Naturalism gave way to the thoughtful, soft light of the long summer evenings. Older-generation exponents of this type of art included Richard Berg and Karl Nordström, while representatives of the younger generation included J. F. Willumsen, Hugo Simberg and Magnus Enckell. SCANDINAVIAN MODERNISM The landscape and culture of Scandinavia had a marked impact on artistic trends that were imported from elsewhere in Europe. Continental Art Nouveau, which utilized flourishing plant motifs in interiors and design, led to a more rustic style in Scandinavia, reflecting local plant life with its use of motifs featuring pineneedles and cones. The many brickworks in Denmark and southern Sweden infused local architecture with a special character – façades of dark brick were frequently used to give a sense of weight and simplicity. In Finland the local materials of wood and granite made their mark on buildings, and Helsinki evolved a unique style of Art Nouveau within the Baltic region. Many Scandinavian artists travelled to Europe, where they mixed Continental Modernism with local traditions. A generation of artists, born in the 1880s, went to Paris around 1908, to study under Matisse. Among them were the Swedes, Isaac Grünewald, Sigrid Hjertén, SCANDINAVIA AND THE BALTIC STATES 1900-2000 HILMA AF KLINT (1862–1944) The Swan, No. 17, 1914–15, oil on canvas. Trained at the Academy of Art in Stockholm, Klint was inspired by Spiritualism and Theosophy. In 1906 she embarked on an abstract and symbolic painting, guided by spirits. From that date she never showed her works in public, but she was ‘discovered’ in the late 1980s, and hailed as a pioneer of abstract art. 20˚10˚ 60˚ 20˚ M L L 1 3 22 44 66 55 77 88 Tartu Tallinn Helsinki Riga Klaipéda (Memel) Copenhagen Ystad Malmö Frederikssund Faaborg Esbjerg SilkeborgHerning Kaunas Vilnius Minsk Pori Paimio Vaasa Sundsvall Skellefteå Kiruna Jokkmokk Jukkasjärvi Örnsköldsvik Studio of Bror Marklund, sculptor (1907-77) Turku Mänttä Tampere (Tammerfors) Hämeenlinna Espoo Rovaniemi Savonlinna Hafnarfjördhur Reykjavík Bergen Moss Oslo Arvika Karlstad Örebro Linköping Skövde Norrköping Tromsø StockholmEskilstuna Falun Sala Gävle Uppsala Borås Kalmar Emmaboda Jönköping Halmstad Helsingborg Båstad Humlebæk Vi s tulaOder W. Dv ina S K A G E R R A K GULFOFBOTHNIA GULF OF FINLAND GULF OF RIGA A R C T I C O C E A N N O R W E G I A N S E A BA LT I C S E A L A P P S BORNHOLM FYN JYLLAND DENMARK SW ED E N N O R W A Y FINLAND RUSSIAN FEDERATION L AT V I A B E L A R U S P O L A N D G E R M A N Y ESTONIA LITHUANIA Henie-Onstad museum 1968 1962 1915 1976 1957 1950s Museum of Amos Andersson 1965 SOUP 69 (American Pop Art) Cubism 1924 The Baltic Exhibition 1914 Louisiana 1958 H55 (industrial design) 1955 Thielska galleriet 1905 1905 1981 1983 1978 Gösta Serlachius (1876-1942) collection 1930 1986 19611967 Kjarvalsstadir 1973 1980 1988 1978 1966 1976 Surrealists 1929 1916 1917 After the Wall 1999 Baltic artists emigrate 1940-53 1950 1942 1936 The School of Bornholm 1920-40 (landscape painting) COBRA 1948-52 The School of Fyn 1885-1920 (national romanticism) 1963 1985 1913 The Stockholm Exhibition 1930 Baltic States 1940s-1953 Social Realist art under Stalin Lithuania Nationally coloured modernism between two world wars Implosion-a Postmodern Perspective 1987 1970 1986 1937 1929 1962 1897 1964 1940 1956 SUM 1965-75 Fluxus and conceptual art The Rackstad colony 1898 Osslund, Elgström and Bauer 1900-1910 1970s to Holland and England 1960s: to New York and USA pre-1960s:toParis Lapp handcrafts are sold at the market of Jokkmokk 1 2 5 3 4 N 0 0 500 miles 600 kms Inset Major buildings or monuments 1 - Paimio Permar sanitorium, by Alvar Aalto, 1929-32 2 - Turku Turun Sanomat, by Alvar Aalto, 1928-30 - The Chapel of Resurrection, by Erik Bryggman, 1941 3 - Tampere The Church of Kalevala, by Reima Pietilä & Raili Paatelainen, 1954-55 4 - Savonlinna The Heroes' Tomb, by Wäinö Aaltonen, 1920-21 5 - Helsinki The Jean Sibelius monument, by Eila Hiltunen, 1960-67 6 - Jukkasjärvi Altarpiece, by Bror Hjorth, 1958 7 - Stockholm Skogskyrkogården, by Gunnar Asplund & Sigurd Lewerentz, 1914-40 8 - Oslo The sculpture park of Gustav Vigeland, 1905-43 1 From Symbolism to Post-Modernism, 1900-1987 territory under Russian rule pre-1917 territory under Soviet rule, 1940-1991 major museum of art, with date of foundation museum of art, with date of foundation regional museum of art, with date of foundation major exhibition artists group or colony major building or monument artistic migrations, with date Raw materials: granite glass limestone marble Industrial design: textiles pottery Major Museums: 1 - The Museum of Edvard Munch (1863-1944) 2 - The Museum of J.F.Willumsen (1863-1958) 3 - The Museum of Carl-Hening Petersen and Else Atfelt 4 - The Museum of Ivan Agnéli (1869-1917) 5 - The Museum of Wäinö Aaltonen (1894-1966) porphyry timber soapstone glassworks enamel L M 1 1 DURING THE TWENTIETH CENTURY art in Scandinavia became more and more accessible to the people. Art museums were built in every major town. Many of these museums were based on donations of private collections, while others have gradually built up their collections through purchases. Regional art museums specialize in locally-based work, but are also able to increase their impact by featuring a range of temporary exhibitions. RUSSIA 1900-2000 30˚ 45˚ 60˚ 50˚ St Petersburg (Petrograd/ Leningrad) Tallinn Odessa Kiev Vitebsk Velikiy Ustyug Moscow Tbilisi Saratov Palekh L. Balkhash Dnieper Ural V olga Don Pechora NDvi na Ob V yatka BA LTIC SEA BLACK SEA CASPIANSEA WHITE SEA B A R E N T S S E A ARAL SEA CAUCASUS URAL M TS UKRAINE K A Z A K H S T A N U ZBEKISTA N FINLAND POLAND World of Art (1898-1904); Union of Youth (1910-13); Victory over the Sun (1913); Tramway V (Futurist Exhibition, 1913); 0.10 Exhibition (Suprematism, 1915) Non-Conformist art groups (1970s-80s) Donkey's Tail Exhibition (Neo-Primitivism, 1912); Exhibition of Folk Art and Icons (1913); Knave of Diamonds (Cubo-Futurism, 1910-17); Suprematism, Constructivism ROSTA, Russian Telegraph Agency posters (1919-21); festivals, re-enactments of Revolution; IZO Department of Fine Arts (1918); Tatlin's model for Monument to the Third International (1920; Proletkult (1906, active 1917); Tenth State Exhibition (1919); OST Society of Easel Artists (1925-28); School of Painting, Sculpture and Architecture (later SVOMAS, Vhkutemas, 1920-30, Inkhuk) AkhRR (Association of Artists of Revolutionary Russia, 1922-32); All-Union Exhibition of Arts and Handcrafts (1923); Krupskaya Central House of People's Art (1934); Exhibition of Industry and Agriculture (1937); Manezh Exhibition (1965); Open Air Exhibitions (1974-75); Sotheby's Auction of Non-Conformist Art (1988) Blue Rose (1905) Golden Fleece Exhibitions (Neo-Primitivism, 1908-10) Non-Conformist art groups (1970s-80s) Neo-Primitivism Non-Conformist art groups (1970s-80s) UNOVIS (Affirmers of the New Art School, (1919-21) Northern Niello artel (1920s) Lacquer box factory (founded 1924) Non-Conformist art groups (1970s-80s) Non-Conformist art groups (1970s-80s) N 0 0 750 miles 1000 kms 2 Western Russia: Pre-Revolutionary to Post-Soviet Art border of the Eastern Front, Nov 1917 western border of Soviet Union, 1939 furthest extent of German invasion, 1941-44 area of collectivization of farmland, 1929-38 virgin lands, 1953-61 art movements, early 20th century Revolutionary era schools, organizations, exhibitions artistic activity, Soviet period 2 BEFORE AND AFTER THE REVOLUTION, provincial centres flourished. Both artists of the avant-garde and leaders of Socialist Realism worked at state art schools. ‘Agit-prop’ trains and steamboats carried posters and revolutionary theatre to outlying regions. Soviet authorities renamed many towns to honour political and cultural heroes (most have now resumed their traditional names). SERGEY GERASIMOV (1875–1970), Holiday on the Kolkhoz (1937), oil on canvas, Moscow, Tretyakov Gallery. True to the tenets of Soviet Socialist Realism, Gerasimov celebrates community life on the collective farm. The clear, sunshine-yellow tones in the landscape amplify the sense of relaxation and festivity in the gathering. Avoiding the reality of crop failure and widespread famine, the artist offers what Communist Party spokesman Andrey Zhdanov called ‘a glimpse of our tomorrow’. were sent to the state prison camps (gulags) in the far north and Siberia. Survivors testify that Stalin’s secret terror was more insidious than the invasion by Nazi Germany in 1941. World War II, the Great Patriotic War, marshalled artists to intensify patriotism and national identity. Films, symphonies, operas, paintings, sculptures and photographs documented the war and exhorted the population. Socialist Realism proved capable of rising above propaganda to express tragedy. NONCONFORMIST ART The return to normality after the war was signalled by depictions of new settlements in the eastern ‘virgin lands’, new housing projects and the achievements of the Soviet cosmonauts. Khrushchev’s denunciation of Stalin in 1956 released a current of unrest that evolved into an unofficial and illegal art underground. The first public display of nonconformist art occurred in 1962 at the Manezh exhibition hall in Moscow, where artists such as Ernst Neizvestny (1926–) defended their right to determine their own subjects and styles of work. Khrushchev’s ‘thaw’ was soon over, but some artists managed to work outside of the official system. Unofficial art became known abroad in the mid-1970s, when an outdoor exhibition was deliberately wrecked by bulldozers and fire-hoses. The government eventually permitted independent exhibits, though under tight restrictions. During the ‘era of stagnation’ under Brezhnev, artists developed networks for mutual support. They asserted their right to treat any subject and to employ any style, including Expressionism, Surrealism, Photorealism, Abstract, Kinetic and Conceptual art. Some of the most radical innovations came from the Baltic republics of Estonia, Latvia and Lithuania, and from Georgia and Armenia in the Caucasus, far from Moscow, where control was less strict. Near the end of the Soviet period, conceptualist groups such as Collective Action became adept at evoking the sense of chaos as Soviet traditions and standards came into question. Sots Art (based on Pop Art, with the premise that the Soviet Union, lacking consumer goods, had an over-abundance of ideology) featured absurd slogans and PostModernist pastiches of heroic portraits of Lenin and Stalin. When the Soviet Union dissolved in 1991, many artists considered themselves to be both Russian (or Jewish, Ukrainian, Estonian, Georgian) and international in their allegiance. The challenge before them today is to find ways to relate their individual visions and national traditions to a realistic understanding of modern markets and audiences in an international art world. 275 ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 274 cultural unity. Scenes of daily life showed citizens working together in the community, building strong bodies, reading and studying in workers’ clubs or village reading rooms. While official arts celebrated unity and prosperity, multitudes starved in the famines caused by collectivization, and thousands of intellectuals, politicians and ordinary citizens LEADERS OF VANGUARD movements in Russia knew contemporary European art in the collections of Moscow merchants, and several maintained contact with counterparts in France, Germany and Italy. Besides this international cross-fertilization, new regional perspectives were introduced by artists from provincial backgrounds. Neo-primitivist and futurist groups exploited the bold forms and lively motifs of folk and popular arts. REVOLUTIONARY ART The Bolshevik Revolution of 1917 galvanized artists to invent new forms and venues: to use the streets and squares as their canvases. Revolutionary anniversaries generated parades and decorations on landmarks throughout the country. Embodying the aspirations of the new state was the steel, glass and wood Monument to the Third International (see p.271) by Vladimir Tatlin (1885–1953), never erected but displayed as a model. Besides Tatlin, Malevich and others in the Constructivist and Suprematist movements many artists identified themselves with revolutionary art. After Lenin’s death in 1924 realism gained authority, and abstract art was suppressed. The doctrine of Soviet Socialist Realism announced in 1934 required that subjects and styles of all the arts reflect ‘revolutionary reality’. While Stalin’s government marshalled resources for transport, industry and collectivization of farmland, the official Union of Artists commissioned appropriate works in all media – from textiles and ceramics to murals and monumental sculptures for stadiums and metro stations. Themes of industry and agriculture dominated major exhibitions and the Soviet pavilions at the World Fairs in Paris (1937) and New York (1939). Art projects highlighted geographical and ethnic variety in ways that accentuated RUSSIA 1900-2000 30˚ 45˚ 60˚ 75˚ 90˚ 105˚ 120˚ 135˚ 150˚ 165˚ 180˚ 70˚ 60˚ Murmansk Archangel (Arkhangel’sk) St Petersburg (Petrograd 1914-24, Leningrad) Novgorod Tallinn Riga Belomor Vilnius Warsaw Odessa Kiev Minsk Smolensk Tver’ (Kalinin) Velikiy Ustyug Kotlas Vologda Yaroslavl’ Moscow Tula Kharkov Rostov-na-Donu Astrakhan Saratov Ural’sk Samara (Kuybyshev) Kazan Nizhniy Novgorod (Gor’kiy) Ufa Perm' Solikamsk Vorkuta Nizhniy Tagil Tobol’sk Yekaterinburg (Sverdlovsk) Chelyabinsk Tashkent Omsk Tara Novokuznetsk Novosibirsk Irkutsk Vladivostok Khabarovsk Noril’sk Volgograd (Stalingrad/Tsaritsyn) Yakutsk Magadan Viatka (Kirov) L. Balkhash L. Baikal L. Ladoga L. Onega Ural Volga Don N. Dvin a Dnieper Pechora Ob Syr Dar ya Yenisey Lena A m ur Kolym a Kama A R C T I C SEA OF OKHOTSK P A C I F I C O C E A N S E A O F J A PA N O C E A N B ALTICSEA BLACK SEA CASPIANSEA ARAL SEA GULFOFBOTHNIA WHITE SEA K A R A S E A L A P T E V S E A E A S T S I B E R I A N S E A CAUCASUS URAL M TS A LTA I M T S C E N TA L S I B E R I A N P L A T E A U W E S T S I B E R I A N P L A I N KOLYMA RANGE T I E N S H A N S I B E R I A NOVAYA ZEMLYA KAMCHATKA R U S S I A N F E D E R A T I O N ESTONIA LATVIA LITHUANIA BELORUSSIA JAPAN UKRAINE K A Z A K H S T A N FINLAND C H I N A M O N G O L I A POLAND SWEDEN Turkestan-Siberian railway, 1930 Rodchenko photo series, 1935 Memorial to WWII Heroes (Buchetich, 1967) Gulag Memorial (E. Neizvestny, 1996) Trans-Siberian railway, 1890-1917 N 0 0 1000 miles 1500 kms 1 Russia and the Soviet Union, 1900-2000 area of famine, 1921 collectivization of agricultural lands, 1929-38 virgin lands prison/labour camps and areas designated for isolated, forced labour, 1918-58 extent of German invasion of Soviet Union, 1941-44 White Sea - Baltic Canal (forced labour) Kotlas-Vorkuta railway (forced labour) 1 THE MAGNITUDE OF RUSSIA was a challenge to development and a recurrent theme in art. New industrial centres, hydro-electric dams, canals and railways transformed the landscape. A network of forced-labour camps lined the Kotlas–Vorkuta railway, the Belomor canal and other projects. Vast areas of Siberia became state prison-camp (gulag) zones. While art celebrated prosperity, the Russian heartland suffered crop failures, then brutal occupation by the Nazis. KAZIMIR MALEVICH (1878–1935), Rye Harvest (1912), oil on canvas, Amsterdam, Stedelijk Museum. Malevich, stimulated by French Modernist art and by Russian neoprimitivists, took motifs from folk and popular life. Here, the women binding sheaves resemble painted wooden toys. In 1915 Malevich announced his invention of purely abstract Suprematism. BRITAIN AND IRELAND 1900-2000 277 Thames Tham es Lloyd’s Building (Rogers 1979-86) Adelaide House (Burnet 1924-25) Royal Festival Hall (Martin, Moro, Matthews 1951) National Threatre (Lasdun 1967-76) Daily Express Building (Ellis & Clarke 1931) British Library (St John Wilson 1995) Gorilla House, Penguin Pool at London Zoo (Lubetkin 1939, 1940) Royal Institute of British Architects (Wornum 1931-34) Wolseley Showroom (1922; refit as Barclays Bank Curtis Gree 1925) The Clore Gallery (Stirling 1980) Battersea Power Station (Gilbert Scott 1930-34) Tate Modern (Herzog & de Meuron 2000) Cenotaph (Lutyens 1920) Queen Victoria (outside Buckingham Palace (Webb, Brock 1901-24) Hyde Park Regent’s Park Dilston Grove Studios Butlers Wharf Studios Chisenhale Gallery Henderson WESTMINSTER KENSINGTON BAYSWATER BATTERSEA CITY HOLBORN CAMDEN TOWN ISLINGTON Artangel Pellici’s Cafe The Lux Centre Hales Gallery Delfina Flowers East Matt’s Gallery Interim Art The AIR Gallery Hanover Gallery Goldsmiths College Cable Street Studios 18 18 18 19 18 18 18 18 19 18 49 42 18 19 18 19 19 22 19 35 50 48 18 52 18 18 18 18 18 19 20 53 18 2151 18 19 19 18 18 18 18 34 44 41 43 45 46 54 40 39 24 30 1 4 4 37 1 1 1 1 1 38 365 1 3 2328 44 31 29 47 33 27 26 32 55 17 2 Modern Art in London, 1900-2000 artist‘s home/studio meeting place art school/academy art trades/organization important exhibition venue/dealer modern architecture public sculpture 1 3 4 5 8 9 10 11 13 14 15 17 18 19 20 21 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 30 - Sickert - Gilman - Gore - Omega Workshop - Hepworth - Moholy-Nagy - Mondrian - Moore - Nevinson - Nicholson - Stephenson - Ayres, Mundy - Acme Houses & Studios - SPACE Studios - The Old Jewish School Studios - Chisenhale Studios - Gilbert, George - Fitzroy Tavern - La Tour Eiffel - Isokon Building and Isobar Club - The Colony Room Club - The Gargoyle Club - London Jazz Club - Barcelona restaurant - Wheelers restaurant 31 32 33 34 35 36 37 38 39 40 41 42 43 44 45 46 47 48 49 50 51 52 53 54 55 - The Dog and Duck pub - The French House pub - Academy Cinema - Arts Theatre - The Bricklayers Arms - The Slade School - Rowlandson House - Euston Road School - St Martin’s School of Art - Central School of Arts and Crafts - Brodie and Middleton - Atlantis - Zwemmers - Gallery One - Artists International Association - New Vision Group exhibition - Institute of Contemporary Arts - Factual Nonsense Gallery - Whitechapel Gallery - White Cube - The showroom - The Approach Gallery - Camera Work Gallery - Plinth (Whiteread 2000) - Sainsbury Wing, National Gallery (Venturi, Rauch, Scott Brown 1987-91) N 0 0 1000 yards 1000 metres HAMPSTEAD 9 25 9 10 11 8 14 11 15 13 Everyman Cinema 21 Downshire Hill Keats Grove Bomberg Nash Gabo AgarBevan, de Karlowska 47 Downshire Hill 2 POST-WAR LONDON spawned a bohemian culture, based in the pubs and clubs of Soho, in central London, such as the Colony Room, favourite watering hole of such luminaries as Francis Bacon and Lucian Freud. In recent years the East End has become the centre of a thriving art scene, while the opening of Tate Modern at Bankside marked a major geo-cultural shift (1932–4), whose form frankly expressed the functional requirements of modern urban living. After a period of experimentation with what were considered ‘primitive’ sources, such as Pre-Columbian figures, Henry Moore and Barbara Hepworth pioneered a new and distinctively British approach to modern sculpture in the 1930s. Among the most distinguished work to be produced in London in the 1930s was Ben Nicholson’s series of white reliefs exploring the purest forms of abstraction. Following the pattern established earlier in the century, Nicholson, Hepworth and Christopher Wood moved to the picturesque fishing village of St Ives in Cornwall, which remained a centre for the production of sculpture, ceramics and painting for the rest of the century. Questions of landscape, national identity and history preoccupied many NeoRomantic artists, such as Graham Sutherland, in the late 1930s, a concern which intensified with the threat of World War II. POST-WAR RECONSTRUCTION The Labour government initiated a welfare state and sponsored the Festival of Britain in 1951, whose lasting memorial is the Royal Festival Hall WYNDHAM LEWIS, A Battery Shelled, 1919. Vorticism, an angular near-abstract style, was pioneered by Wyndham Lewis in the years before the First World War. His Futuristinspired publication Blast (1914) advocated a celebration of the machine and of war. Lewis's experiences as a combatant in the First World War undermined these beliefs, however, and he returned to the more figurative style seen here. (1951, Leslie Martin). Economic austerity and post-war shortages were reflected in the gritty social realism of much art produced at this time, such as L.S. Lowry’s canvases of working class life in industrial Lancashire. The ‘School of London’. led by Francis Bacon and Lucien Freud, was the focus of bohemian culture in the 1950s. The reconstruction of Coventry Cathedral (1956–62), to Basil Spence’s designs included work by Henry Moore and Graham Sutherland. By the 1960s government-funded initiatives led to ambitious experiments in modernist architecture, such as the National Theatre (1967–76, Denys Lasdun) and Kenneth Capon’s University of Essex (1963–8). Away from London, St Ives continued to be an artistic hub, reflected in the work of Peter Lanyon and Patrick Heron. The lure of American consumerism and the mass media was irresistible to a generation of young artists in the 1950s and 1960s. The Independent Group, who met at the Institute of Contemporary Arts in Westminster, and a group of artists such as Peter Blake and David Hockney, students together at the Royal College of Art in Kensington, created a new style – ‘Pop’ – which is a keynote for the analysis of British culture from RACHEL WHITEREAD, House, East London, 1993. Whiteread is among the 'young British artists' who revived interest in contemporary art in the 1990s. She filled the interior of a Victorian terrace house with concrete prior to its demolition, preserving a ghostly simulacrum of its interior space. House won her the prestigious Turner Prize in 1993. the 1950s onwards. The 1970s saw various forms of conceptual art, notably ‘the walks’. These were effectively geographical performance pieces, by Bristol-based Richard Long which hark back to the traditions of English landscape painting. There was a period of artistic decline under Margaret Thatcher’s premiership in the early 1980s, an era epitomized by the commercial brashness of Richard Rogers’s Post-Modernist Lloyd’s Building (1979–86). Later, a young generation of artists led by Damien Hirst and Rachel Whiteread, many trained at Goldsmiths’ School of Art, began to exhibit challenging conceptual work under the patronage of a new generation of collectors, notably Charles Saatchi, as well as that of galleries such as White Cube. By 2000, London once again held a central place in the international art world. ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 276 Modernism in Glasgow, epitomized by his suburban masterpiece, Hill House. Challenging forms of Modernist painting definitively entered British culture through a series of exhibitions held in London between 1910 and 1914. The most important of these were curated by the critic and painter Roger Fry who, with the painters Vanessa Bell and Duncan Grant, became a central member of the Bloomsbury Group, based in central London. At the Omega Workshop, the Bloomsbury Group created innovative decorative art objects: one of their most completely realized collective creations is the interior of Charleston Farmhouse near Lewes, the rural home of the art writer Clive Bell and his wife Vanessa from 1916. In London, the Camden Town Group, founded in North London in 1911 and led by Walter Richard Sickert, Spencer Gore and Harold Gilman, pioneered a sensitive Post-Impressionist vision of the modern city. THE GREAT WAR AND ITS AFTERMATH The catastrophic loss of life in World War I (1914–18) found expression in the work of numerous artists. Stanley Spencer’s Sandham Memorial Chapel at Burghclere, near his home at Cookham, memorialized his experiences in Macedonia in a visionary, naive, figurative style. While British culture was preoccupied with mourning during the early 1920s, often articulated through the use of traditional styles, this decade also saw the impact of Modernist influences in Britain. A distinctive Modernist architecture based on the style of Le Corbusier appeared in Wells Coates’ Isokon Building in Hampstead AN AMBIVALENCE towards Continental Modernism and a sensitive exploration of vernacular traditions characterized the work of British artists in the twentieth century. The opulent culture of the Edwardian era (1901–10) balanced an idealization of rural life with a celebration of London as the centre of the British Empire at its fullest extent. Victorian political certainties were undermined by a constitutional crisis and the Suffragette movement, demanding votes for women. Although London was to remain the undisputed centre for artistic production throughout the century, many artists chose to abandon the city for remote rural locations. Adopting French plein-air techniques, painters moved to artists’ colonies amid the unspoilt coastal scenery of Walberswick, Staithes and Newlyn. MODERNISM AND RURALISM The attempt to balance both the urban and rural in architecture and town planning resulted in Garden Cities at Letchworth (1903) and Welwyn (c.1920). Incorporating natural forms, Charles Rennie Mackintosh pioneered a uniquely decorative form of architectural BRITAIN AND IRELAND 1900-2000 1 LIKE THEIR PREDECESSORS, many modern British artists were fascinated by the landscape, especially the coastline, which – twice menaced by German invasion – gained a special significance. Early artists’ colonies at Staithes in Yorkshire and Newlyn in Cornwall prefigured the tremendous post-war impact of the Cornish fishing village of St Ives which became home to many of the leading British artists. 5˚ 0˚ 55˚ 50˚ 1 2 3 4 5 12 8 10 9 6 7 11 F/C F/C F/C F/C V 321 1 10 11 32 13 4 5 6 7 8 9 12 14 15 I EdinburghGlasgow 1901, 1938 Dundee Aberdeen Belfast City Hall, Brumwell Thomas 1896-1906 Newcastle Dublin Municipal Gallery of Modern Art, 1908 Liverpool Tate Liverpool, 1988 St Ives Tate Gallery, 1993 Leach Moser, Hoffman Queen Victoria statue, Webb, Brock 1901-24 University of Birmingham, Webb 1901-09 Breuer, Gropius, Moholy-Nagy Gropius London Tate Modern, 2000 Wembley 1924-25 1951 Birkenhead Williamson Museum, 1928 Manchester Lowry 1909-48 Coventry Piper, Moore, Epstein, Spence all work on Cathedral 1956-62 Sheffield Graves Art Gallery, 1934 Stoke-on-Trent Cliff Bradford Cartwright Hall, 1904 Hull Swansea Ceri Richards 1921-24 Cedric Morris, Tenby Augustus & Gwen John Sligo Yeats Bristol Salford Birmingham Barber Institute of Fine Arts, 1939 Bath Leeds Oxford Reading Brighton Lewes Cambridge Kettle’s Yard, 1957 Stansted Stansted Airport, Foster 1990s Downing College, Terry 1988 Northampton Nottingham Walberswick Steer & others Staithes Newlyn Hunstanton Wivenhoe Dufy Henley-on-Thames Ascot Dufy Cowes Dufy Spencer 1923-32 Cookham Broadstairs Sickert 1930s Dymchurch Nash 1920s Norwich Sainsbury Centre for the Visual Arts, 1978 Orpen 1914 Wyndham Lewis, Wadsworth, Nevinson Fry, Hone, Kauffner Hone Derain, de Vlaminck Capel-y-ffin Gray Lalique Charleston Sp ey Tay Wye Shannon Severn N O R T H S E A I R I S H S E A A T L A N T I C O C E A N E N G L I S H C H A N N E L NORTHWESTHIGHLANDS P E N N IN ES G R A M PIAN MTS CAMBRIANMTS WICKLOW MTS S C O T L A N D E N G L A N D WALES NORTHERN IRELAND I R E L A N D N 0 0 75 miles 100 kms 1 Modernity and Britishness, 1900-2000 major museum/collection World Fair places associated with particular artists Impressionism/Post-Impressionism Vorticism Fauvism/Cubism Constructivists/independent artists Art Deco De Stijl and Secessionists Bauhaus Eclectic architecture Post-Modernist architecture site of German bombing, 1939-45 F/C V I Modernist architecture 1 - W.J. Basset-Lowke Home (Behrens 1926) 2 - Cambridge University Library (Gilbert Scott 1930-34) 3 - Impington Village College (Gropius & Fry 1936-39) 4 - Hill House (Mackintosh 1902-04) 5 - The Burrell Collection (Barry Gasson Architects 1983) 6 - City Hall (James, Pierce 1932-38) 7 - Highgate, Highpoint I (Tecton 1933-36) 8 - Wembley, Empire Pool (Williams 1934) 9 - Boots Wets Factory (Williams 1930-32) 10 - Secondary Modern School (A & P Smithson 1950-54) 11 - University of Essex (Kenneth Capon Architects Co-partnership 1963-68) 12 - Law Library (Martin & St John Wilson 1959-64) 13 - New Hall (Chamberlin, Powell & Bon 1962-65) 14 - Metropolitan Roman Catholic Cathedral (Gibberd 1967) 15 - St Andrew’s House (Tait 1934-39) City planning 1 - Letchworth Garden City (Parker, Unwin 1903) 2 - Great London Plan (Abercrombie 1944) 3 - Welwyn Garden City (Howard 1920) Artists’ colonies 1 - English Impressionists (Steer & others 1910s) 2 - Impressionists (Dame Laura Knight, Harold Knight 1900s-1930s) 3 - Forbes, Langley, Bramley, Gotch, Tuke 1910s-1920s 4 - Nicholson, Gabo, Hepworth, Wood, Wallis, Heron, Barnes-Graham, founded 1928 5 - Scottish Colourists (Fergusson, Cadell, Hunter, Peploe 1920s) 6 - New Scottish Group (Fergusson, Bain, Frood, Eardley 1950s) 7 - Edinburgh Group (Walton, Duncan, Johnstone post-WW1) 8 - Bloomsbury Group (Fry, Bell, Grant 1904-1930s) 9 - Bloomsbury Group (Fry, Bell, Grant 1904-1930s) 10 - Camden Town Group (Sickert, Ginner, Gore, Gilman, Bevan, John, Pissarro, founded 1911) 11 - Guild of St Joseph & St Dominic (Gill, Jones 1924-28) 12 - White Stag Group (Hall, Rakozci, Scott, Reid, Dillon, founded 1939) THE NETHERLANDS AND BELGIUM 1900–2000 279 5˚ 51˚ Amsterdam Hilversum Almelo; Library 1991-95 Otterlo Arnhem Eindhoven1 6 4 3 2 5 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 Delft Rotterdam; 1918-41; 1948-50s; 1990s Bergen; Park Meerwijk 1916-18 Vredespaleis 1908 Scheveningen; Museum Beelden aan Zee 1990-94 Leiden; Rijksmuseum Volkunde 1837 The Hague Utrecht Park Sonsbeek Openluct Museum for architecture and folklore, 1913 Palais du Congo 1930 Musée d’Art Contemporain 1908 (renovated 1933), and 1930 Nijmegen Groningen; Groninger Museum 1988-94 Leeuwarden ’s-Hertogenbosch Dordrecht Waalwijk; 1929-31 Brussels; Expositions Universelles 1910; Atomium 1958 Koksijde- Oostduinkerke Binche Charleroi Mons Antwerp Bruges Oostend Maastricht Ghent Kortrijk (Courtrai) Menin Gate Jabbeke Tournai Liège Hasselt; Kapermolen Park (Japanese gardens) Mechelen Verviers Rhine Waal Scheldt Meuse(M aas) N O R T H S E A IJSSELMEER (ZUIDER ZEE) F R A N C E LUXEM- BOURG NETHERLANDS BELGIUM GERM AN CONFEDERATIO N 1919-28; 1980s 1923-36 1915-19; 1924 1926-30 N 0 0 60 miles 80 kms 1 - van Abbemuseum 1933-36 2 - Gemeentemuseum 1919-35 3 - Bonnefanten Museum 1990-95 4 - Kröller-Müller Museum 1938 5 - Museum Boymans-van Beuningen 1928-35 - Kunsthal 1988-92 6 - Museum van Hedendaagse Kunst Antwerp, 1987 - Openlucht Museum voor Beeldhouwkunst, 1950 - Rubenshuis 1616-40, museum 1950 7 - Provinciaal Museum voor Moderne Kunst - Museum voor Schone Kunsten - James Ensorhuis and souvenir shell shop, 1960s 8 - Gaspard de Wit Royal Tapestry Factory 9 - Museum voor Industriele Archaelogue en Textiel (Mule Jenny Sewing Machine) 10 - Veriersima-Centre de la Laine et de la Mode Museum 1999 11 - Glass Museum 12 - Paul Delvaux Museum, 1982 13 - Constant Permeke Museum 1930-52 14 - Volkundig Museum Nusantara (artefacts from Dutch East Indies), 1864, 20th c 15 - Musée International du Carnaval et du Masque (masks and carnival objects from around the world) 2 MAJOR CULTURAL SITES AND objects were destroyed in both world wars. During the occupation of World War II Jewish populations were deported, state infrastructures were destroyed, and ports were bombed. Museums expanded after 1950 with collections of contemporary, historic and modern art and displays of African, Japanese and Chinese objects. Tintin, the cartoon character created by Hergé in 1929, despite critiques from post-colonialism, remains a popular part of Belgian visual culture. Brussels became the headquarters of the European Economic Union in 1957. committed to the pictorial language and theory of Surrealism. With the Belgian artist Paul Delvaux (1897–1994), Magritte produced a form of poetic Surrealism, moving across dream imagery to amplify the Surrealist concept of the power of desire and eroticism to ‘change life’. RECONSTRUCTION AND EXPANSION During wartime occupation, art objects were taken to Germany and after the war an extensive recovery programme was instituted. The Atomium, a steel and aluminium structure of a magnified molecule of iron, built for the Brussels World Fair in 1958, signified post-war reconstruction. Devastated by bombing, Rotterdam embarked on urban restructuring, commissioning Dutch and international architects and sculptors. Marcel Breuer designed the De Bijenkorf department store, 1955–7, with sculpture by Naum Gabo. Museums were reformulated after 1945. Memorial museums to Jewish history were established, significantly the Anne Frankhuis in Amsterdam (1957). The collections of the 0 0 1 mile 1.5 kms Musée Royale de l’Afrique Centrale, Tervuren 1907; Koninklijk Museum voor midden-Afrika 1907-10 Palais Stoclet, J. Hoffman 1908 Musée Royale d’Art et d’Histoire; Koninklijk Musea voor Kunst en Geschiedenis 1880s Musée David et Alicevan Buuren, 1928-70 Musée Constant Meunier,1939; Musée Beaux Arts d’Ixelles, 1892 European Union Parliament Building, 1997 Maison du Peuple (destroyed 1969) Musée de Costume et de la Dentelle, 1977 Centre Belge de la Bande Dessinée, 1987-89 Musée René Magritte, 2000 Musées Royaux des Beaux-Arts Laeken Pavilion Chinois & Tour Japonaise, 1900 Atomium, 1958 Brussels Kröller-Müller shipping and mining dynasty offered a model for museum policy at Otterlo, celebrating the international canon of modern art. At the Stedelijk Museum, Amsterdam, curated by Willem Sandberg and Hans Jaffé (1945–63), a commitment to European Modernism was strengthened by acquisitions of Suprematist work by Malevich, American Abstract Expressionism and Pop Art. The first exhibition of CoBra (Copenhagen [Co] Brussels [Br] and Amsterdam [A] 1948–55), an avantgarde group of abstract artists, provoked huge uproar, and was held here in 1949. Aided by international competitions, public sculpture in parks and cities developed in both countries. Museums dedicated to individual artists flourished, notably the Van Gogh Museum, Amsterdam, designed by Rietveld (1973), with a Post-Modern extension (1999) by the Japanese architect Kisho Kurokawa . In the late twentieth century, Brussels, Antwerp and Amsterdam were centres for the international fashion trade. Artists such as Jan Dibbets, Ger van Elk and Marcel Broodthaers have been central to Conceptual art and the formation of global Post Modernism which references a wide range of cultural phenomena. Dutch architects, such as Rem Koolhaas’s Office of Metropolitan Architecture (OMA), have achieved international standing with their rich interpretation of architectural form. RENÉ MAGRITTE, THE MENACED ASSASSIN, 1926, oil on canvas. A central figure of the Surrealist movement in Brussels and Paris, using a meticulous academic style, Magritte developed a disturbing relationship between the world and objects in his paintings, placing the familiar in unfamiliar situations and spaces, enlarging elements of familiar objects, animating inanimate everyday objects such as bowler hats, baguettes, shoes and dresses, or reconfiguring anatomical parts. 2 Institutions and monuments key buildings/monuments international modernism Expressionist architecture Post-Modern architecture Major museums: collections of European and American art museums devoted to the Belgian textile and glass industry museums devoted to the work of a single artist other museums (specified) international fairs and exhibitions Inset: 20th century Brussels key monuments and buildings museums with contemporary European and American Art museums devoted to Asian and African Art other museums Quartier des Institutions Europénnes (major EU institutions) ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 278 THE OUTBREAK OF WAR in 1914 halted the economic buoyancy and cultural expansion of both the Netherlands and Belgium. In 1940, despite neutrality, both countries were occupied for four years. Post-war landreclamation programmes rebuilt a Dutch landscape that had been partly flooded through destruction of the dykes during occupation. In 1957 the European Community was established, with its headquarters in Brussels; the Benelux trade area, including Luxembourg, followed in 1958. GLOBAL COLLECTING AND TRADING Léopold II founded the Musée Royal de l’Afrique Centrale at Tervuren (Brussels) in 1907 to display his collections. Global artefacts, textiles and peoples had been included in the Brussels 1910 Expositions Universelles and at the Palais du Congo, Antwerp, in 1930. Although international condemnation prompted Belgium to annex Léopold II’s African territories in 1908, colonial exploitation of Congo’s resources continued until its independence as Zaire in 1960. The Dutch presence in Indonesia continued until the Japanese invasion in 1942; their withdrawal marked the beginning of the struggle for independence, which was achieved in 1949. The foundation of the Openlucht Museum for architecture and folklore in Arnhem in 1913 enabled Dutch architects to study the detailing and structure of Sumatran buildings. The Tropen Museum in Amsterdam (previously the Dutch Colonial Institute, 1926) displayed Indonesian textiles, batiks, shadow puppets and other objects and now includes objects from Southeast Asia, Oceania, West Asia, Africa, Latin America and the Caribbean. THE AVANT-GARDES Luminism, Expressionism, Abstraction and Surrealism were the principle movements in the first half of the twentieth century. Whereas Expressionism was important in Belgian painting, notably in the work of Constant Permeke (1886–1952), it was manifested most strongly in Dutch sculpture and architecture. Expressionist buildings, using traditional Dutch brickwork in expressive and playful forms, were built throughout the Netherlands THE NETHERLANDS AND BELGIUM 1900-2000 51˚ A A A A Nijmegen Arnhem Groningen Utrecht Leeuwarden Drachten ’s-Hertogenbosch (Bois-le-Duc) Brussels Charleroi Namur Nuenen Zundert Liège SeraingMons Kortrijk (Courtrai) The Hague Bruges Rotterdam Haarlem Dordrecht Maastricht Antwerp Eindhoven Ostend Amsterdam Hilversum Tournai Ghent Leuven (Louvain) LarenKatwijk aan Zee Domburg Rhine Waal Scheldt Meuse(Maas) N O R T H S E A IJSSELMEER (ZUIDER ZEE) LU XEM BOURG BELGIUM GERMANY NETHERLANDS FRANCE to Holland from Indonesia: textiles, batiks, shadow puppets De Stijl 1917-31 CoBra 1948-51 to Japan to Hungary T. van Doesburg 1920-22; Piet Mondrian; J.J.P. Oud; C. Domela Dutch architects to Weissenhofsiedlung Stuttgart, 1927 to USA P. Mondrian 1940; W. De Kooning 1926 to UK to Germany Surrealism: R. Magritte; P. Delvaux; E.L.T. Mesens; R. Ubac 1903-39 Dutch artists to and from Paris: participation in Exposition des Arts Décoratifs, 1925, Abstract Création/Cercle et Carré & Art Concret to Russia toFrance to Belgium from Central Africa/ Democratic Republic of Congo (Zaire): African objects, weapons, sculpture, diamonds to Czechoslovakia toCopenhagen Surrealism: to London Surrealism :toParis N 0 0 30 miles 40 kms between 1890 and 1939. The work of the Amsterdam School elaborated on the expressive form of H. P. Berlage’s De Beurs and J. M. van der Mey’s Scheepvaarthuis. M. de Klerk (1884–1923) and K. P. C. de Bazel (1869–1923) developed an architecture of decorative and organic form including stylish housing projects for Amsterdam’s socialist Office of Public Works. The theory and practice of De Stijl dominated the international avant-garde, setting agendas for the twentieth century. Founded in Leiden in 1917, De Stijl advocated a universal style. In painting, formal elements were reduced to the rectangle and pure primary colours; in architecture and sculpture these concepts were extended to include volume and space. Influences from America, Japan and Indonesia shaped the work, which retained strong idealist and spiritual dimensions. Theo van Doesburg (1883–1931), Gerrit Rietveld (1888–1964), J. J. P. Oud (1890–1963) and Piet Mondrian (1872– 1944) were, with Belgian sculptor Georges Vantongerloo, the leading figures. De Stijl artists participated in Parisian avant-garde circles such as: Abstraction Création, Cercle et Carré and Art Concret; at the Bauhaus in Germany, and in the Dada movement, staging a famous Dada Tour of the Netherlands in 1923. In De Stijl architecture van Doesburg introduced axonometric drawing to exemplify the dynamic interrelation of interior and exterior space partly carried out in Rietveld’s Schroder House, Utrecht (1924). By the late 1920s architecture in Belgium and the Netherlands drew on the immateriality and formal abstraction of De Stijl but linked it to a more Russian constructivist aesthetic of machine-like surfaces and smooth glazing. In buildings such as the van Nelle Factory, Rotterdam (J. A. Brinckman and L. C. van der Vlught, 1925–31) and the Zonnestraal Sanatorium at Hilversum (J. Duiker, 1926–31) a unified architectural style was developed for the modern world. Although René Magritte (1898–1967) flirted briefly with De Stijl abstraction, by 1926 he was NEMO Building (R.Piano 1999) Scheepvaarthuis 1912-16 (J.M. van der Mey) Rembrandt House, 1911 Jewish Historical Museum, 1987 Stadhuis/Muziek Theatre-Stopera, 1988 Anne Frankhuis, 1957 Stedelijk Museum, 1938 Museum Vincent van Gogh, 1973, 1999 Cobramuseum Tropen Museum, 1926 Housing, OMA 1989-90 Tuschinski Theatre, 1921 AMSTELVEEN AMSTERDAMSE BOS BIJLMERMEER,1954 Am stel N 0 0 1 miles 1.5 kms Amsterdam PIET MONDRIAN, Tableau 1 with Red, Black, Blue and Yellow (1921), oil on canvas. A central figure of De Stijl, Mondrian developed his mature nieuwe beelding paintings in Paris (1919–30), London (1939–40) and New York, where his theoretical writings and exhilarating paintings, such as Broadway Boogie-Woogie (1942–3, in the collection of the Museum of Modern Art, New York), influenced post-war abstraction, architecture, industrial design and the graphic arts. 1 THE MOVEMENT OF ARTISTS AND ART OBJECTS in and out of Belgium and the Netherlands was determined by wars and the growth of collections of international modern art. Art historian Hans Jaffé fled to Amsterdam in 1936 and Expressionist painter Max Beckmann lived there 1937–47. Innovative Post Modern buildings were constructed on Amsterdam’s eastern harbour. 1a 20th-Century Amsterdam key moments and buildings major museums Key areas of 20th-century architectural development: Amsterdam School architecture housing, 1909-21 Nieuwe Bouwen/International Style Modernist architecture, 1921-34 Olympic quarter: Stadium (J.Wils & C. van Eesteren, 1928 Forum architecture, 1955-66 Post-Modern architecture Eastern harbour area, 1989-present International Connections, 1900-2000 line of trench warfare, 1914-17 territory acquired post-World War I imports from colonial territories important artistic centres artists‘ colonies, 1900-20 artistic movements: De Stijl, 1917-31 CoBra, 1948-51 Surrealism, from 1926 Dada tour of Holland, 1923 movements of artists A 1 2 Politics and the Division of Germany Federal Republic of Germany, 1945 German Democratic Republic, 1945 border of United Germany from 1990 city where museums had modern works confiscated by the National Socialists venue of Entartete Kunst (Degenerate Art) exhibition site of auction of modern art under the Third Reich National Socialist architectural project (completed) National Socialist architectural project (not completed) routes of artists emigrating after the National Socialists took power in Germany anti-Nazi/Holocaust memorial memorial erected at former concentration camp autobahns, 1939: open to traffic under construction authorized $ GERMANY, SWITZERLAND, AUSTRIA 1900–2000 281 Bauhaus has come to symbolize experimentation and innovation in all forms of art and design as well as in its teaching methods. When the National Socialists came to power in 1933, the cultural landscape of central Europe was once again transformed. Art was of vital importance to Hitler’s regime and he moved early on to control the production and display of art throughout the region. Munich was destined to be the new capital of the arts of the Third Reich, and with this objective in mind Hitler called upon the architect Paul Troost to build a new museum in his favoured Neoclassical style: the House of German Art. To coincide with the opening of this new museum, however, the National Socialist regime also launched an exhibition showing the art that it regarded as anathema to its ideals. The works of modern German, Swiss and Austrian artists such as Otto Dix, Paul Klee and Oskar Kokoschka were subsequently confiscated from museums throughout the territories of the Third Reich and MILLIONS STAND BEHIND ME, 1932, by John Heartfield. Heartfield was a highly political artist whose images were mass-produced and disseminated throughout the country in the workers’ journals of the day. In this work Heartfield condemns those who funded Hitler’s rise to power. Heartfield was best known for his use of the photomontage technique. 10˚ 50˚ $ Dresden Prague Breslau Chemnitz Jena Kassel Cologne Hanover Mannheim Wiesbaden Saarbrücken Karlsruhe Lübeck Kiel Munich Leipzig Erfurt BuchenwaldDüsseldorf Essen Wuppertal Weimar Hamburg Bremen Bergen-Belsen Bielefeld Berlin Stettin Frankfurt Ulm Nuremberg Dachau Lucerne Waldenburg Bern Salzburg Linz Mauthausen Graz Stuttgart Vienna Rhine OderElbe Danube N O R T H S E A BA LT I C S E A F E D E R A L R E P U B L I C O F G E R M A N Y GERMAN DEMOCRATIC REPUBLIC P O L A N D I T A L Y A U S T R I A F R A N C E BELGIUM LUX. Y U G O S L A V I A C Z E C H O S L O VA K I A SWITZERLAND NE THERLANDS 1937 1938 1938 1939 1939 1939 1939 1939 1939 1941 1938 1937 Olympic Stadium 1936 (March) New Reichs Chancellory 1938-39 (Speer) Triumphal Arch 1939 (Speer) Great Hall 1940 (Speer) Harburg Column against Racial Hatred and Injustice 1986 (J & E Gerz) Black Form dedicated to the Missing Jews 1989 (LeWitt) Negative Form Monument 1987 (Hoheisel) Monument against War and Fascism 1988 (Hrdlicka) Point of Reference Installation 1988 (Haacke) Deportation Memorial (Mirrorwall) 1995 (Göchel, von Rosenberg, Burkert) Fuhrermuseum 1939 (Speer) Parade Ground 1934 (Speer) Memorial Sculpture 1968 (Glid) Revolt of the Prisoners 1958 (Cremer) Jewish Memorial 1945-49 Berlin Wall constructed 1962; dismantled 1989 Sculpture Garden c. 1957 House of German Art 1937 (Troost) 1938 Kokoschka to Prague 1933 KleetoBerne1933 Kandinsky to Paris 1933 Beckmann to Amsterdam 1937 Grosz to New York 1933-58 Kokoschka & Meidner to London 1938 Moholy-Nagy to London 1935 Moholy-Nagy to Chicago 1937 Schwitters to Lysaker, Norway 1937, to Edinburgh 1940, to Lake District, England 1945 N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 2 THE RISE AND FALL of National Socialism had a massive impact across the region. Hitler’s grandiose architectural plans called for monumental public buildings in cities throughout the territories of the Third Reich as well as an extensive autobahn network to connect these sites. With the conclusion of the war, however, Germany was divided into two opposing states which remained in place until the nation was finally reunited in 1990. were put on exhibition in a deliberately negative light in the so-called ‘Degenerate Art’ exhibitions. These exhibitions toured throughout Germany, Switzerland and Austria from 1937 onwards. In this grim climate, many of the nation’s best-known artists fled the country, spending the war years in England or the United States. Hitler’s grandest plan for the arts was, however, never to be completed. In 1939 he called upon his favourite architect, Albert Speer, to build a monumental museum in Linz, in Hitler’s native Austria. The so-called Fuhrermuseum was planned on a gigantic scale and was intended to house the greatest collection of art ever assembled. This museum was planned to be the culmination of Hitler’s policy of confiscating works of art from private and public collections throughout the territories conquered by the military might of the Third Reich. POST-WAR TURMOIL Following the defeat of National Socialism in 1945, Germany entered a new period of instability and turmoil. With the occupation of the east of the country by the victorious Soviet army Germany was now divided into two separate states and thus became one of the key cultural battlegrounds upon which the Cold War was metaphorically fought. The dialogue between east and west was largely restricted by the Berlin Wall, yet some artists, such as Georg Baselitz and Gerhard Richter, did manage to move from east to west. As in many other countries in Europe, the early post-war period was characterized by debates between proponents of abstraction and realism. Artists such as Willi Baumeister, whose works had been exhibited in the ‘Degenerate Art’ exhibitions of the 1930s, staunchly supported abstraction as the way forward for German art in the wake of the Nazi period. Having been deprived of his teaching rights during the 1930s, he now took up an influential post at the Stuttgart Academy of Arts. The tensions between abstraction and realism were, however, most keenly felt in the divided city of Berlin. Here Georg Baselitz, an artist who had been trained on both sides of the Berlin Wall, strove throughout the 1960s to find a new way to bring together figurative painting and abstraction. It was the city of Düsseldorf, however, that was to become the primary centre of experimental art production and teaching in the second half of the twentieth century. Joseph Beuys first entered the State Academy of Art in Düsseldorf as a student in 1947. By the early 1960s he was a key figure in this prestigious teaching institution which had attracted artists of the stature of Jörg Immendorf, Sigmar Polke and Gerhard Richter. Beuys was active in the conceptual art movement known as Fluxus and participated in many of their exhibitions throughout Europe. The intense political climate of post-war Germany took its toll on Beuys, however, whose increasing political activism alienated him from the Düsseldorf Academy and led to his summary dismissal in 1972. The shadow of the Nazi atrocities continues to haunt Germany, Austria and Switzerland, a factor made evident by the continuing practice of building Holocaust and anti-Nazi monuments. Some of these, constructed on the sites of former concentration camps, pay tribute to the victims of the Hitler era whilst others, erected during the 1980s, emphasize the need for continuing vigilance against a resurgence of Fascism. Such monuments, sited at strategic spots throughout the region, attest to the continuing influence of art in people’s lives. 1 The Modern Movement Dada site rural site for modern painting centre of artistic training Bauhaus site (Kandinsky and Gabo from Moscow; Moholy-Nagy from Budapest; Klee from Bern; Kokoschka from Vienna to Bauhaus to teach) Expressionism site architectural site D ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 280 GERMANY, SWITZERLAND AND AUSTRIA, situated geographically at the very epicentre of Europe, witnessed major social and political turmoil throughout the twentieth century. These changes were to have a considerable impact upon art and artists and, as a result, the centres of artistic activity shifted around the region. CITY AND COUNTRYSIDE The early German Expressionist artists of the group called Die Brücke explored the relationship between city and countryside. Trained originally as architects in Dresden, many Die Brücke artists spent their early careers working in the idyllic countryside of the Moritzburg Lakes, thus following in the footsteps of artists such as Paula Modersohn-Becker who had worked extensively at a rural colony in Worpswede between 1897 and her early death in 1907. In southern Germany too, Vasily Kandinsky and Gabriele Münter left the city of Munich behind for the rural, timeless pleasures of Murnau. However, the Die Brücke artists did not actually avoid the city. In 1911 many of them moved to Berlin where they painted images of modern urban life with all its glamour, excitement and dangers. In Vienna artists including Oskar Kokoschka, Gustav Klimt and Egon Schiele were also experimenting with modern art styles. Their work explored the social anxieties and sexual mores so intrinsically linked to turn-of-the-century bourgeois society. WORLD WARS AND ARTISTIC EXPRESSION World War I inevitably transformed the cultural climate. The city of Zurich, in neutral Switzerland, soon became a mecca for artists escaping the conflict. This hotbed of political and pacifist activity became the spawning ground for the Dada movement that was soon to spread its influence to cities such as Cologne, Hanover, Dresden and Berlin. In the confused years of post-war reconstruction Germany became a centre of artistic experimentation in many media. Artists such as George Grosz, John Heartfield and Hannah Höch all produced illustrations for popular journals while training centres such as the Bauhaus contributed to a design revolution. Founded in Weimar in 1919, the Bauhaus drew artists from throughout the region and beyond. Forced to move to Dessau in 1925 and again to Berlin in 1932 before eventually being closed the following year, the GERMANY, SWITZERLAND, AUSTRIA 1900-2000 BATHERS AT MORITZBURG, 1909–26, by Ernst Ludwig Kirchner, one of Die Brücke artists. Kirchner’s exuberant and celebratory painting of figures bathing in the Moritzburg Lakes near Dresden epitomizes the artist’s desire to go ‘back to nature’. Here the bathers’ bodies take on a green cast as if they are part of the natural surroundings in which they are represented. Kirchner’s mythic Eden is here situated in the idyllic surroundings of the German countryside. 10˚ 50˚ Berlin AEG Turbine Factory 1908-09 (Behrens) New National Gallery 1968 (Mies van der Rohe) Anfield-an-der-Leine Fagus Shoe Factory 1910-14 (Gropius and Meyer) La Chaux-de-Fonds Villa Schwob 1916 (Le Corbusier) Potsdam Einstein Tower 1920-21 (Mendelsohn) Vienna Steiner House 1910 (Loos) Karl Marx Housing Complex 1927 (Ehn) Weimar 1919-25 1925-32 Dessau 1932-33 (Kollwitz, Höch) (Dix, Kirchner, Heckel) Munich (Kandinsky, Münter, Marc) (Klimt, Schiele, Kokoschka) Düsseldorf (Beuys, Richter, Immendorff, Polke) Worpswede (Modersohn-Becker) Murnau (Kandinsky, Münter, Jawlensky, Werefkin) Moritzburg Lakes (Kirchner, Heckel) D D D D D Zurich Cabaret Voltaire 1916 (Ball, Tzara, Arp) Dresden (Dix) Cologne (Ernst) (Grosz, Dix, Hausmann, Höch) Hanover (Schwitters) N O R T H S E A BA LT I C S E A O der Elbe Rhi ne Danube G E R M A N Y F R A N C E BELGIUM LUX. P O L A N D I T A L Y A U S T R I A S L O V E N I A C Z E C H R E P U B L I C SWITZERLAND NETHE RLANDS N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 IN CONTRAST TO FRANCE, where many modern artists established their reputations and their studios almost exclusively in Paris, Germany was home to a diverse number of artistic centres from Hanover in the north to Munich in the south. Important developments also took place in the Austrian city of Vienna and, during World War I, in Zurich in Switzerland. EASTERN EUROPE 1900–2000 283 BERLIN’S DER STURM covers (1910–32) often featured Hungarian artists, including, as here, Lajos Kassák. 40˚ 50˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Cu Danube Oder Elbe Dniest er BALTIC SEA A D RIA TIC SEA R U S S I A N F E D E R A T I O N U K R A I N E P O L A N D ROMANIA BULGARIA GREECE SLOVENIA ALB. HUNGARY MACE. BOSNIA & HERZ. CROATIA CZECH REP. GERMANY ESTONIA LATVIA LITHUANIA B E L A R U S M OLDAVIA YUGOSLAVIA SLOVAKIA A U S T R I A PAROS AIGINA TINOS ANDROS RHODES CRETE Poznan Prague Zagreb Ljubljana Patra Pyrgos Ioannina Nafpaktos Irakleion Bucharest Skopje Thessaloniki Trikala Larisa Xanthi Polykastro Athens Galati Cluj-Napoca Odessa Poltava Kiev Warsaw L’viv Sanak Bardejov Budapest Chisinau¸ ˇ Cracow Wroclaw ´ ¸ N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms High Modernism in Central and Eastern Europe USSR in 1945 Communist states, 1948-89 Iron Curtain, 1948 present-day borders coal foundries copper glassworks textiles and weaving paper production wrought iron wooden architecture pottery outdoor architectural museums national modern style of architecture totalitarian architecture (large-scale projects) experimental modernist architecture centre of contemporary art Cu 2 Thessaloniki Cu Athens century was marked by its uniquely peripatetic nature as national artistic identity gave way to international contact across Europe. Romanian artists Tristan Tzara and Marcel Janco originated the Dada movement in Zurich, while the Czech group, Deve˘tsíl, staged a Dada-like Bazaar of Modern Art in Prague and Brno in 1923–4. The East European presence was strong at the 1925 Exposition Internationale des Arts Décoratifs et Industriels in Paris, and even more pronounced in frequent exhibitions as the Galerie Der Sturm in Berlin and the Bauhaus, where Hungarian László MoholyNagy was put in charge of the curriculum. Artists adapted formal experimentation to the field of industry and design, creating hybridized art forms such as photomontage (Karel Teige) and ‘picture architecture’ (Lajos Kassák). Private collectors (Vincenc Kramár˘ of Prague) amassed significant works of French Cubism and the first national collection and museum of contemporary art was created by Polish Constructivists in the industrial town of L/ ód´z. Multilingual art magazines published in every East European capital facilitated the dissemination of Modernist theory. Political unrest forced artists to seek better conditions abroad, where they were absorbed into the Modernist culture of their adopted countries. ISOLATION AND RECOVERY After World War II Eastern Europe was subject to increasing isolation along an ideological divide. The politicized aesthetics of Soviet Socialist Realism established an artificial artistic cordon. Conventional, academic-style painting and cast bronze sculpture were reinstated for propaganda purposes on a WARSAW’S PALACE OF CULTURE AND SCIENCE, built in the 1950s, is the only one of the Stalinist ‘wedding cake’ structures to be erected outside of Moscow. Its towering scale and dark stone symbolize the severity of authoritarian rule – a brute imposition of the Stalinist ‘vampire’ style on its neighbouring Soviet satellite. 2 THE IRON CURTAIN separated the Communist East, politically as well as culturally, from Western Europe. As dictatorships intensified and Communism spread an artificial homogeneity of artistic culture became pervasive through the politicized aesthetics of Socialist Realism. 3 MANY EAST EUROPEAN ARTISTS made long journeys westwards, establishing their reputations abroad. Their migration reinforced the peripatetic nature of early Modernism in Eastern Europe, and exposed the effects of politically restrictive systems. monumental scale. Foundries were erected to supply every city with its requisite statues of revolutionary heroes. Architecture resorted to classical large-scale Roman imperial models or grand ‘wedding-cake’ forms. Huge complexes of prefabricated high-rises replaced the visionary experimental architecture of the 1920s. In Greece, on the other hand, the regimes – even the dictatorship of Metaxas (1936–40) – encouraged modernist tendencies, with public sculptures displaying a lateromantic style and nationalist iconography. The Khrushchev Thaw of the 1960s brought about a dissident underground movement that exchanged artistic ideas through clandestinely disseminated art materials, books, and photographs smuggled in from the West. With the destruction of the Berlin Wall in 1989, authoritarian rule and state control over artists disintegrated. Centres of Contemporary Art were set up in every major East European city facilitating a discourse over the nature of art in post-totalitarian society, and making possible a viable global exchange of art. As Communist rule became a fading memory, the restoration of sovereign national borders reinforced the rich ethnic diversity and regional integrity of East European Modernist culture. London Paris Amsterdam Zurich Athens Munich Dessau Berlin BudapestVienna Bucharest KharkovKiev Leningrad Moscow M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A T L A N T I C O C E A N UNITED KINGDOM FRANCE SPAIN PORT. ITA LY YUGO. BUL. ROM.HUN. CZECH. GER. POLAND U S S R Artists from Russia/USSR Archipenko (>Berlin>Paris>New York) Delaunay-Terk (>Paris) Malevich (>Moscow>Leningrad>Kharkov>Kiev >Warsaw>Dessau>Berlin) Artists from Romania Brancusi (>Paris) Mattis-Teutsch (>Budapest>Munich) Tzara (>Zurich>Paris) Janco (>Zurich>Paris) Artists from Hungary Moholy-Nagy (>Amsterdam>Dessau (Bahaus) >London>Chicago) Rippl-Rónai (>Paris) Scheiber (>Berlin) Artists from Poland Kisling (>Paris) Marcoussis (>Paris) Stazewski (>Paris) Artists from Czechoslovakia Mucha (>Paris>New York) Kupka (>Paris) Artists from Bulgaria Pascin (>Paris) Artists from Slovenia Mestrovíc (>Vienna>Paris>Italy) Major US exhibitions of East European Art St Louis: Polish Sztuka at the Louisiana Purchase Expositions (1904) New York: Polish Constructivists (Stazewski and Strzeminski) at the Machine Age Exposition (1927) Artists from Greece Galanis (>Paris) Bouzianis (>Munich) Marros (>San Francisco) Vassos, Kaldis, Lefakis,Vagi, Hios (>New York) to USA ˘ First Russian Art Exhibition (1922) ˇ The Diaspora of East European Artists general migration of East European artists major artistic centres: Post-Impressionism Secessionism Expressionism Constructivism Bauhaus Dada Surrealism De Stijl Cubism 3 ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 282 CENTRAL AND EASTERN EUROPE is a swathe of fertile agricultural land incised by waterways that drain into the Black Sea. Until the end of World War I, this region, coveted for its rich resources, was parcelled out among four great empires, resulting in a free-flowing migration of art influences from the East and West. With the collapse of the Hapsburgs, Romanovs and Ottomans, and the redrawing of political borders after World War I, the preservation of the local material ethnographic culture, disrupted by industrialization, brought about a rise in small cottage industries of peasant handiwork. Folkinspired decorative ceramic tiles and brick ornament were integrated into modern regional-style architecture from Cracow to Poltava. Swedish-style outdoor architectural museums (skansen) were set up in Czechoslovakia, Poland, Romania and Hungary to physically reconstruct and preserve the degrading wooden architecture typical of village life. Naïve and primitivist art meshed long-standing folk traditions with modern urban and agricultural themes, especially throughout Yugoslavia and the Balkans. In Greece, the revival of an indigenous style reexamined and rehabilitated Byzantine and rural traditions, and the separation of Greece from its Balkan neighbours was emphasized. EASTERN EUROPE 1900-2000 50˚ 50˚40˚30˚20˚10˚ Leningrad (Petrograd) Poznan Prague Munich Milan Vienna Brno Zagreb Sarajevo Pécs Tirana Trieste Ljubljana Gorizia Budapest Szeged Bratislava Belgrade Timisoara Sofia Skopje Athens Thessaloniki Volos Tinos Bucharest Brasov Cluj Nagybánya (Baia-Mare) Odessa Kherson Poltava 1 2 3 4 6 5 4 Kiev Kharkov Moscow Warsaw Vilnius Lwów Cracow Medzilaborce BreslauDresden Hanover Dessau Weimar Iasi˛ ˛ Constanta˛ ´ Lódz´ Danube Sava Dniester Oder Elbe Vistula Dnieper Masurian Lakes N O R T H S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A B L A C K S E A AEG EA N S E A A D R I A T I C S E A BA LT I C SEA CARPATH I A N M TS TRANSYLVANIAN MTS TATRA MTS BALKAN MTS BE SSA RABIA MONTE NEGRO BOSNIA- HERZEGOVINA CROATIA SERBIA MALEDONIA SLOVENIA F I N L A N D DENMARK G E R M A N Y P O L A N D L A T V I A ESTONIA EAST PRUSSIA LITHUANIA YUGOSLAVIA G R E E C E U K R A I N E ROMANIA WHITE RUSSIA U S S R T U R K E Y SWEDEN CZECHOSLOVAKIA B U L G A R I A H U N G A R Y A U S T R I A ALBANIA I T A L Y N ORWAY from Holland from Paris N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms Modernism in Central and Eastern Europe to 1939 German Empire, 1914 Austro-Hungarian Empire, 1914 Russian Empire, 1914 borders, 1919-38 states created after 1919 art academies art schools art colonies art collections and museums art review magazines, with date of first issue spread of artistic movements: De Stijl, c.1917 Cubism, c.1900 Secessionism, c.1900 Futurism, c.1909 Constructivism, c.1917 Bauhaus, c.1919 Expressionism, c.1910, 1920 prominent religions: Eastern Orthodox Greek Catholic Roman Catholic Protestant Muslim 1 Berlin Der Sturm (1910); Die Aktion (1911); Veshch (1922) Merz (1923) Blok (1924); Praesens (1926) Aurora (1923) Tank (1927) Art Review Magazines: 1 Devetsil (1927); Stavba (1922); Disk (1923); Red (1927) 2 Zwrotnica (1922) 3 MA (1916) 4 Zenit (1921) 5 20th Century (1930s); Third Eye (1930s); Art (1930s) 6 Integral (1925); Contimporanul (1922) Avangard al’manakh (1930) Nova generatsiia (1927) Mystetstvo (1932) LEF (1923); Novyi LEF (1927) ˘ THE FINE ARTS Art colonies began to proliferate in towns and rural areas. A homegrown ethnic modernism flourished in many artists' collectives, represented by variously named societies: the Czech Eight in Prague; Polish Formists in Warsaw; Hungarian Activists in Budapest. Avant-garde exhibitions in most major cities showed works of Cubism, Futurism and Expressionism transported from France and Germany. Individual artists made long journeys away from their homelands to study at Paris’ Académie Julian and the painting school of Slovenian artist, Anton Az˘bè in Munich. In general, East European art of the twentieth 1 THE FIRST HALF OF THE TWENTIETH CENTURY was marked by a free assimilation of contemporary formalist styles, modified and adopted for the purposes of establishing a national and regional Modernist presence against the largescale assimilation of international styles. Art magazines, local art colonies, private collections and the movement of artists across the continent were all a cohesive exploration of progressive tendencies. FRANCE 1900–2000 285 France played a crucial role in Modernist architecture in the first half of the century through the work of such architects as the Swiss-born Charles Jeanneret, who took the name Le Corbusier (1887–1965), Auguste Perret (1874–1954), Tony Garnier (1869–1948) and Jean Prouvé (1901–84), and there are major works all over France. Perret’s innovative use of reinforced concrete in a Paris apartment building of 1903 represents one of the first uses of this industrial material in a fashionable public space. His church (1922–3) in Le Raincy, near Paris, used ferroconcrete in an effort to recall the structural honesty of French Gothic cathedrals. Le Corbusier also espoused the use of modern materials in carrying forward classical aesthetics. His Villa Savoye (1930) at Poissy reconciled modern life with a classical sense of proportion. He adapted ferroconcrete for an apartment block in Marseilles, the Unité d’Habitation (1946–52), that was the culmination of his lifelong commitment to inexpensive urban housing. WORLD WAR II AND LATER In the 1930s there was an exodus of French and foreign-born artists from Paris as Fascism spread across the Continent. Many artists returned to their home countries, while a substantial number, notably many Surrealists, emigrated to the United States. However, following a period of recovery after World War II, France again established itself as a major art centre, though without recovering its earlier supremacy. In the 1960s the Nouveaux Réalistes, which included such artists as Yves Klein (1928–62), Arman (1928–) and Jean Tinguely (1925–91), successfully asserted themselves in the international art market. Paris once again became a magnet for foreign artists, as Tinguely collaborated with his American wife Niki de Saint-Phalle (1930–2002) while the French artist Jeanne-Claude (1935–) worked exclusively with her Bulgarian husband Christo Javacheff (1935–). French contemporary art was further helped in the 1970s when the government began devoting large resources to its creation and exhibition. In the 1980s this project was expanded with the establishment of a series of collecting centres, called Regional Collections of Contemporary Art. In the last decade of the century, artists such as Christian Boltanski (1944–) and Pierre et Gilles (working from 1976), have continued to treat contemporary art themes, particularly the search for personal identity in a fractured postmodern world. The Dutch architect Rem Koolhaas’s (1944–) master plan for the transportation hub near Lille, dubbed Euralille, is notable and features buildings by Koolhaas and Christian de Portzamparc (1944–). Cities outside of Paris have become more significant in a decentralized, global art market. For example, the Lyon biennials of the 1990s established that city as a major contemporary art exhibition centre. 0˚ 50˚ Paris Angers Musée Jean Lurçat et de la Tapisserie Tours (Oiron) Château d’Oiron Dunkerque Musée d’Art Contemporain Liège Musée d’Art Moderne et d’Art Contemporain Tourcoing Studio National des Arts Contemporains Lille Antibes Château Grimaldi: Musée Picasso Vallauris Musée National Picasso War and Peace Biot Antibes/Cannes/Mougins/Vallauris Picasso Musée d’Art Moderne et d’Art Contemporain Musée Matisse Musée National Message Biblique Marc Chagall Grenoble Musée du Grenoble 1994 Le Magasin, Centre National d’Art Contemporain Villeurbanne Institut d’Art Contemporain Aix-en-Provence Masson Derain, Vlaminck Lyon Musée d’Art Contemporain de Lyon Biennials (1991, 1993, 1995, 1997, 2000) Reims Chapelle Foujita Le Collège-FRACAsnières Matisse Puteaux Duchamp, Gris, Duchamp-Villon, Gleizes, Léger, Picabia, VillonFontainebleau Picasso Étretat Matisse Varengeville-sur-Mer Braque Braque Bougival/Chatou Derain, Vlaminck, Matisse Braque Troyes Musée d’Art Moderne Foundation Angladon-Dubrujeaud Sorgues Vence Chapelle du Rosaire (Matisse) Musée Cantini Musée d’Art Contemporain Bordeaux Pessac Podensac Ronchamp Carré d’Art-Musée d’Art Contemporain de Nîmes Saint-Étienne Musée d’Art Moderne de St. Etienne Strasbourg Musée d’Art Moderne1 Évry Poissy St-Cloud 10 Issy-les-Moulineaux Matisse Le Havre Toulouse Espace d’Art Moderne et Contemporain de Toulouse Céret Musée d’Art Moderne Collioure Derain, Matisse, Picasso, Braque, Foujita, Maillol Braque, Picasso, Soutine Nice 11 Musée d’Art Moderne Lille Metropole (Villeneuve d’Ascq) Musée d’Art Contemporain Nîmes Avignon Martigues Marseille Musée National Fernand Léger Matisse, Brassaï Eveux sur l‘Arbresle Loire Seine Rhône P Y R E N E E S F R A N C E S P A I N 3, 4 9 2 8 6 7 12 5 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 - Cathédrale de la Résurrection, 1995 (Botta) 2 - Hôtel de Ville & Church of St. Joseph, 1953 (Perret) 3 - Euralille, 1989 (Koolhaas) 4 - Euralille Crédit Lyonnais Tower, 1995 (de Portzamparc) 5 - Unité d’Habitation de Marseille, 1945-52 (Le Corbusier) 6 - Quartiers Modernes Frugès, 1925-8 (Le Corbusier) 7 - Château d’Eau, 1917 (Le Corbusier) 8 - Villa Savoye, 1929-31 (Le Corbusier) 9 - Chapelle Notre Dame du Haut, 1950-54 (Le Corbusier) 10 - Maison Dall’Ava, 1991 (Koolhaas) 11 - Palais des Droits de l’Homme, 1994 (Rogers) 12 - Ste Marie de La Tourette, 1953-9 (Le Corbusier) N 2 LIVING AND WORKING IN THE PROVINCES. Paris was a mecca for artists and architects, but Pablo Picasso, Georges Braque, and Henri Matisse, among others, maintained homes and studios far from the capital. Some of the century’s finest architecture is scattered throughout France, in cities like Lille and Marseille. Later, many French cities become significant contemporary exhibition centres. LE CORBUSIER’S VILLA SAVOYE (1929–31), POISSY: a view into the living room. Built as a traditional French country home, but of concrete, the villa is designed to display the geometric clarity of the machine aesthetic. Le Corbusier argued that this type of ‘House-Machine’ demonstrated classical beauty in the modern industrial world. 2 Art and Artists throughout France artists’ home/retreat exhibition space/museum architecture ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 284 MUCH OF THE ART of the pre-1914 period in France is a continuation of the latenineteenth century commitment to stylistic experimentation. During this period foreign artists, collectors and critics converged on Paris and worked alongside native artists to create a community informally dubbed the ‘School of Paris’. These included the Spanish painter Pablo Picasso (1881–1973), who settled in the city in 1904, the American author Gertrude Stein (1874–1946), who established a salon around 1905 in Montparnasse, and the Italian poet Filippo Marinetti (1876–1944), who published his manifesto of Futurism in the Paris newspaper Le Figaro in 1909. THE SCHOOL OF PARIS The two key art movements that emerged before World War I were Fauvism, unofficially led by the artist Henri Matisse (1869–1954), and a little later Cubism, which was developed by Picasso and Georges Braque (1882–1963), but taken up and disseminated by several other artists, including the Puteaux Cubists (named after the Paris suburb where they lived), whose members included the Franco-American Marcel Duchamp (1877–1968), the Spaniard Juan Gris (1887–1927), Fernand Léger (1881–1955), and Francis Picabia (1879–1953), one of the few French artists in Paris who was actually a native of the city. In the interwar period artists profited from the support of an established group of collectors and galleries. The dominant Surrealist movement, which grew out of Dadaism, was led by the poet André Breton (1896–1966) and included painters such as the German Max Ernst (1891–1976), André Masson (1896–1987), and the Spaniards Joan Miró (1893–1983) and Salvador Dalí (1904–89). It also spawned many Surrealist groups in other nations. Breton, insisting that political engagement was key to the arts, eschewed the apolitical formalism of the pre-war period. France’s cultural preeminence at this time was demonstrated by the major International Exhibitions of 1925 and 1937, both held in Paris. All these early artistic movements looked beyond the traditions of Western art for inspiration: both Fauvism and Cubism were influenced by African sculpture, while the FRANCE 1900-2000 1 CENTRED IN MONTMARTRE AND MONTPARNASSE, a ‘School of Paris’ developed in the French capital in the first half of the century but declined in World War II. In the 1960s the French government began funding modern museums and public sculpture that created a new and flourishing environment for contemporary art in Paris. Parisian architecture began the century with the experimental forms and materials of Auguste Perret, Le Corbusier and others, and climaxed in the 1980s and 1990s with the spectacle of President François Mitterand’s Grands Projets. 5 imp. de Guelma Braque Severini Dufy Utrillo 11 bd. de Clichy Picasso 71 rue de Caulaincourt Duchamp 21 rue Cambon Chanel 5 rue Auber Poiret 13 Pl. Émile Goudeau, Bâteau-Lavoir Picasso Gris La Ruche, 2 pas. Dantzig Chagall Brancusi Modigliani Léger Archipenko 27 rue de Fleurus Stein 33 bd. des Invalides Matisse 19 quai Saint-Michel Matisse 9 rue Campagne - Première de Chirico 3 sq. Montsouris Foujita Académie Russe, 54 av. du Maine Vassilieff Mondrian 52 av. du Maine Rivera Laurens Delaunay Lipchitz Zadkine Soutine 1903 Flats (Perret) - rue Franklin 1923 Villas La Roche - Jeanneret (Le Corbusier) - 8/10 sq. du Docteur Blanche 1913 Théâtre des Champs-Élysées (Perret) - 13 av. Montaigne 1905 Garage (Perret) - rue de Ponthieu 1925 Pavillon de l’Esprit Nouveau (Le Corbusier) 1933 Glass House (Chareau) - 31 rue St Guillaume 1973 Montparnasse Tower (Beaudouin, Cassan, de Marien, Saubot) pl. Raoul Dautry 1923 Notre Dame de Raincy (Perret) 1989 Opéra Bastille (Ott) - rue de Lyon 1922 Maison-atelier Ozenfant (Le Corbusier) - 53 av. de Reille 1930 Pavillon Suisse (Le Corbusier) - 7 bd. Jourdan 1989 Grande Arche de la Défense (von Sprechelsen, Reitzel) - La Défense metro 1958 CNIT Tower (Bernard Zehrfuss et al) - La Défence metro 1977 Centre National d’Art et de Culture Georges Pompidou - (Piano, Rogers) 1984 Baroque Ladders (Bofill) 78 rue du Château 1972 Mignonette (Dubuffet) - 3 quai Voltaire 1990 Parc de la Villette (Tschumi) - av. Corentin-Cariou 1994 Hommage à Arago (Dibbets) 1983 Fontaine Stravinsky (Saint-Phalle, Tinguely) 1986 Two Plateaus (Buren) - pl. du Palais-Royal 1986 Great White Monument (Kirili) - Tuileries 1985 The Hour of Everything (Arman) - Gare St Lazare Fondation Dina Vierny, Musée Maillol - 61 rue de Grenelle Fondation Le Corbusier - sq. du Docteur Blanche Musée de l’Homme - pl. du Trocadéro Musée du Cinéma Henri-Langlois - pl. du Trocadéro Fondation Cartier pour l’Art Contemporain - bd. Raspail Palais de Tokyo, Musée d’Art Moderne Musée de Montparnasse - 21 av. du Maine Musée Zadkine-rue d’Assas Institut Français d’Architecture - 6 bis rue de Tournon Musée d'Orsay Espace Dalí - rue Poulbot Musée de d’Art Naïf Max Fourny - rue Ronsard Centre Georges Pompidou Centre de Création Industrielle - pl. Georges Pompidou I.M. Pei Pyramid & Carrousel du Louvre Musée Picasso - rue de Thorigny Maison Européenne de Photographie - 5-7 rue de Fourcy Institut du Monde Arabe (Nouvel) - rue des Fossées St Bernard Seine Seine Seine BOIS DE BOULOGNE MONTPARNASSE MONTMARTRE 1 Paris, Artistic Capital of the 20th Century studio/patron's address architecture sculpture museum GERTRUDE STEIN, by Pablo Picasso, 1906. A major patron, she supported the work of both Picasso and Henri Matisse. This portrait displays the flattening of form charcteristic of Cubism. Surrealists were particularly fascinated by the art of the Pacific. Beginning with the Fauvists’ extended sojourns in St Tropez and Collioure, many major artists worked in the south of France both before and after the war. Several museums are dedicated to their work in this region, such as Matisse’s Chapelle du Rosaire in Vence, the Musée Matisse in Nice, the Musée National Message Biblique of the Russian Marc Chagall (1887–1985) in Nice, the Musée Léger in Biot and the Musée Picasso in Antibes. SPAIN AND PORTUGAL 1900–2000 287 of the outside world through the work of an inspired architect, Antoní Gaudí (1852–1926). After a permanent exhibition of Iberian art was installed in the Louvre in 1906, Paris became the chosen residence for most of the memorable artists of the Spanish avantgarde – Juan Gris, Pablo Picasso, Joan Miró and Salvador Dalí (who also made regular visits to Cadaqués in northeast Spain). After 1906, ‘primitive’ Iberian art suddenly became popular among avant-garde artists. In 1907, Picasso began to use ‘primitive’ Iberian motifs. Picasso’s Guernica was commissioned for the Republican Spanish Pavillion in Paris, and exhibited there in 1937. The Surrealist canvases of Joan Miró were exhibited in New York after 1941, and these influenced future American practitioners of Abstract Expressionism. SCHOOLS OF PAINTING In Barcelona the Renaixença (‘Renaissance’) is exemplified in the expressionist architecture of Gaudí. El modernismo represents the local adaptation of contemporary French Symbolist painting and architecture. A later offshoot of these tendencies is seen in the work of the Catalan painter Joan Miró (1893–1983). In Madrid, Tremendismo, a gritty urban realism, was championed by José Gutiérrez Solano (1886–1945) from around 1925. The Arte Nuevo (‘New Art’) group timidly pursued French Cubism and Surrealism before the outbreak of the Civil War. The only internationally ranked Portuguese painter, María Elena Vieira da Silva, worked in exile in France; a rising star following in her lead is Paula Rego (1935–), based in London. 0˚ 40˚ Salazar Bridge (1966) Valencia City of Arts and Sciences (Calatrava, 1998-2000) Marco de Canavezes Santa María Church and Parish Centre, (Siza, 1990-96) Basilica Church of Our Lady of Fátima (1944) Barcelona Madrid Gaudí (1852-1926): Casa Calvet (1904), Casa Batlló(1905-07), Casa Milá (1905-10), Parque Güell (1914) Sagrada Familia (building resumed 1914, unfinished) Barcelona Pavilion (Mies van der Rohe, 1929) urban renewal for Olympic Games (1992) Air Ministry (Gutierrez Soto, 1941-57) Torres Inclinadas (Johnson & Burgee, 1992) Bilbao Guggenheim Museum (Gehry, 1997) Mérida Valley of the Fallen 1942-59, (Pantheon to celebrate Falangist heroes El Escorial Seville San Pablo Airport (Moneo, 1991) Lisbon Fátima Ebro Tagus ATLANTIC OCEAN M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A P Y R E N E E S S P A I N PORTUGAL National Museum of Roman Art (Moneo, 1980-85) 2 Architecture and Monumental Art, 1900-2000 major works of architecture/monumental art N 0 0 150 miles 200 kms 2 NOTABLE IBERIAN twentieth-century architectural monuments exemplify various approaches to Modernism beginning in Barcelona with the Casa Calvet (1904) by Antoní Gaudí. Architectural conservatism characterized Castile after the Civil War. In Madrid, the Air Ministry, 1941–57, by L. Gutiérrez Soto, was a prime example of Franco-era Fascist architecture derived from the Escorial, nostalgically symbolizing Catholic imperialism. After the death of Franco, architecture joined the European mainstream, as characterized by commissions designed by Rafael Moneo and Philip Johnson. The flashy Guggenheim Museum, designed by Frank Gehry, opened in 1997, making Bilbao a tourist mecca. SCULPTURE AND ARCHITECTURE In Barcelona a Modernist school of radically abstract sculpture in iron based on medieval Catalan blacksmith traditions, was pioneered by Pablo Gargallo (1881–1934) and Julio González (1876–1942). The sculptor Eduardo Chillida (1924–2002) later followed similar lines of RAFAEL MONEO, National Museum of Roman Art, Mérida, 1980–85. Suspended above the excavated ruins of Roman Mérida, the archaeological museum designed by this widely acclaimed architect (1937–) achieves a brilliant Post-Modern synthesis of indigenous forms and materials. This is a building which partakes at once of the ancient and of the modern; while employing the Modernist format of a concrete core, the soaring, light-filled interior arcades are revetted in bricks deliberately proportioned to simulate ancient Roman terracotta building blocks. reductive abstraction. In Barcelona, the Dau al Set (‘Seven-spot Dice’) group, founded in 1948, practised total abstraction with a surrealist ideological foundation; its major exponents were Joan Ponç (1927–84), Modest Cuixart (1925–), Joan-Josep Tharrats (1918–), and Antoní Tàpies (1923–). Founded in 1957 in Madrid, the El Paso group adopted ‘Informalist’ post-Cubist radical abstraction; its central figures are Manuel Millares (1926–72), Antonio Saura (1930–98), Rafael Canogar (1935–), Luis Feito (1929–). Founded in 1964, the Equipo Crónica (‘Chronicle Team’), centred in Valencia, used American Pop Art techniques to revisit Spanish art history; its founders were Rafael Solbes (1940–81), and Manuel Valdés (1942–). Founded in 1968, the school of Madrid Realism melded Pop Art and Hyper Realism; the principal practitioners are Juan Genovés (1930–) and Antonio López (1936–). An outstanding twentieth-century architectural legacy in Iberia is spearheaded by the work of Gaudí, who died in a traffic accident in 1926, leaving the Sagrada Familia project, begun in 1914, unfinished. In Madrid, the Air Ministry (1941–57), designed by L. Gutiérrez Soto, is a prime example of Franco-era Fascist architecture. It is derived from the Escorial palace, In contrast, Madrid also boasts the Torres Inclinadas, financial headquarters of the Caja de Madrid, designed by Philip Johnson and John Burgee and opened in 1992. In Bilbao the Guggenheim Museum, designed by Frank Gehry, and opened in 1997, made the city a tourist mecca. ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 286 IN 1900 THE IBERIAN PENINSULA was confronted with a century of upheaval, revolution and modernization. In 1898 Spain’s loss of colonies in the Spanish-American War was the final blow to its imperialist pretentions, causing continuing economic distress. By declaring itself neutral during World War I, Spain benefitted economically, but rampant inflation caused much civil unrest, and a military coup d’état seized control of the government in 1923. In 1931 a Second Republic was declared; in 1934, the Fascist Falangist Party was founded. Between 1936 and 1939, and after 1945, Fascist Spain was ostracized by the international community. The tourist boom of the 1960s finally led Spain towards economic modernization. In Portugal a revolution in 1910 unseated the ruling house of Bragança and a republic was declared, but true democracy was never practised and the army changed governments at will. In 1932 Antonio de Oliviera Salazar seized power, creating a ‘New State’ modelled on Italian Fascism, which served as a precursor for the Spanish state later shaped by Francisco Franco. Salazar died in 1970 and Franco died in 1975, when Spain became a constitutional monarchy. Both Iberian states entered the EU, but Portugal remained the poorest member. ARTISTIC TRENDS AND INFLUENCE After the turn of the century, the literary ‘Generation of ’98’ set out to renew Spanish culture through reappraisals of its moribund traditions. At the same time, another progressive group sought to formulate a ‘modernistic’ spirit to cope with the profoundly altered world in which they found themselves. This sense of modernity was later to acquire a more aggressive political tone (el vanguardismo). The major centre of creative ferment was Barcelona, newly wealthy from its manufacturing economy and always more culturally energetic and centrifugally ‘European’ than dour and centralist Madrid. Catalans themselves were keenly aware that they were taking part in a renaissance – not merely artistic, but also musical, literary, industrial, scientific, even political. This Catalan creative fervour came to the attention SPAIN AND PORTUGAL 1900-2000 MARÍA-ELENA VIEIRA DA SILVA, The Town, 1955, oil on canvas. Vieira da Silva (1908–92) was the only internationally ranked Portuguese painter of the twentieth century. Born in Lisbon into a rich, liberal family, she moved to Paris in 1928, where she studied sculpture with Antoine Bourdelle and Charles Despiau, later painting at Fernand Léger’s academy. Typical of her mature work, The Town is abstract and wiry, composed of prismatic forms which stretch out through space. 0˚ 40˚ Barcelona Toledo Jarama Brunete Burgos Valladolid León Lisbon Seville (Jan 1938) Huelva Cadiz Tarragona Saragossa Albacete Alicante Valencia Equipo Crónica ('Chronicle Team'): uses American Pop Art techniques to revisit Spanish art history (from 1964): Solbes (1940-81), Valdés (1942-) Castellón de la Plana Teruel Cuenca Belchete Granallos Cartagena Almería Cáceres Mérida Guadalajara Córdoba Lopera Gibraltar (to UK) Ceuta Salamanca Madrid Ávila Badajoz Granada Málaga Durango Guernica (April 1937) San Sebastián Santander Oporto El Ferrol Oviedo Gijón La Coruña Santiago de Compostela Museum of Spanish Abstract Art (1963) Bilbao Cadaqués Ebro Duero Tagus Guadalquivir ATLANTIC OCEAN M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A P Y R E N E E S C A T A L O N I A A N D A L U S I A N A V A R R E S PA N I S H M O R O C C O E X TREMADURA BASQUE PROVINCES CAST IL E A R A G O N L E Ó N M U R C I A G A L I C I A A F R I C A A L G E R I A S P A I N F R A N C E PORTU G A L da Silva (1908-92) to Paris 1928 Rego (1935-) to London 1952 Picasso's first exhibition at Els Quatre Gats Café, 1900 Picasso Museum (1963, 1975) Gris (1887-1927) to Paris 1906 Picasso (1881-1973) to Paris 1907 Miró (1893-1983) to Paris 1920 Dalí (1904-89) to Paris 1926 First International Congress of Abstract Art, 1953 Calouste Gulbenkian Foundation (1969) José Azeredo Perdigão Centre of Modern Art (1983) Guggenheim Museum (Gehry, 1997) National Museum of Roman Art (Moneo, 1980-85) (March 1937) (Jan 1938) (Nov 1936) N 0 0 150 miles 200 kms Renaixença (Catalan regionalist Renaissance): exemplified in Expressionist architecture of Gaudí (1852-1926) Barcelona El Modernismo: adaptation of contemporary French Symbolist painting and architecture (from c.1895) Dau al Set ('Seven-spot dice') group: total abstraction with Surrealist ideological foundation (from 1948) Ponç (1927-84), Cuixart (1925-), Tharrats (1918-), Tàpies (1923-) Modernist school of radically abstract sculpture in iron based upon medieval Catalan blacksmith traditions (from c.1925) Gargallo (1881-1934), González (1876-1942), Chillida (1924-2002) Museum of Catalan Art (1934) Fundación Joan Miró (1979) (Jan, March, June 1938) Madrid Tremendismo: gritty urban realism (from c.1925) Solano (1886-1945) El Paso group: Informalist post-Cubist radical abstraction (from 1957): Millares (1926-72), Saura (1930-98), Canogar (1935-), Feito (1929-) Arte Nuevo: (new art group): French Cubism and Surrealism (from c.1925) Madrid Realism: Pop Art and Hyper Realism (from 1968): Genovés (1930-), López (1938-) (Aug, Nov 1936) Museo Arqueológico Nacional (1972) Thyssen-Bornemisza Collection (1992) Reina Sofía Museum of Contemporary Art (1991) 1 FROM C.1895, ‘El modernismo’ represented the local adaptation of contemporary French Symbolist painting and architecture. In Madrid beginning around 1925 ‘Tremendismo’, a gritty urban realism, was championed by José Gutiérrez Solano. At the same time The ‘Arte Nuevo’ (New Art) group timidly pursued French Cubism and Surrealism until the outbreak of the Civil War. In Barcelona a Modernist school of radically abstract sculpture in iron was pioneered from c.1925. 1 Portable Art, 1900-2000 Iberian painters' travels abroad schools of painting/sculpture major art collections Spanish Civil War, 1936-39: Nationalist territory by July 1938 Nationalist air raid (with date) Republican air raid (with date) ‘International Brigade’ operations ITALY 1900–2000 289 Tiber Tiber TIBURTINA QUARTIERE MONTEVERDE QUARTIERE PIAZZI D’ARMI QUARTIERE PARIOLI Viale Giulio Cesare Via Cola di Rienzo Via Salaria Via XX Settembre Via Liguria Via Depretis Via Aurelia Via della Lungara Via della Conciliazione Corso Vittorio Emanuele II Viale Trastevere Via Arenula Via del Babuino Via dei Corso Via Cavour Via Giovanni Giolitti Via dei Cerchi Via dei Fori Imperiali (Imperial route) Via Nazionale Via del Quirinale Via della Vite Via del Corso Forum Piazza Augusto Imperatore Foro Mussolini Villa Borghese Vatican City St. Peter’s Esposizione Universale di Roma (EUR) ToPisa ToNaples Appian W ay ToFlorence Corso di'Italia Via Claudia Via del Circo Massimo 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10 112 1 0 1.5 miles 1 - Mausoleum of Augustus & Ara Pacis Augustae 1934-38 2 - Theatre of Marcellus 3 - Campidoglio 4 - Basilica of Maxentius 5 - Piazza Venezia 6 - Palazzo delle Esposizioni 7 - Castel Sant' Angelo 8 - Piazza Navona 9 - Piazza della Rotonda 10 - Colosseum 11 - Palazzo del Lithorio N GERARDO DOTTORI, Portrait of the Duce, 1933. Dottori’s powerful portrait of Benito Mussolini notably represents the Italian Fascist leader in a style derived from Cubism and early Italian Futurism. Here, Mussolini’s bust bursts forth from a landscape setting as if he is as powerful and indestructible as nature itself. His monumental presence, emphasized by his strong, jutting chin and robust forehead, towers over the viewer who is forced to gaze upwards at this awe-inspiring, yet profoundly intimidating, figure. Mussolini’s head is here framed by a halo of aeroplanes. Thus, nature and technology are deployed to evoke the eternity and modernity of the Italian state. the Fascists under Benito Mussolini ushered in a new and complex era in Italian history. Yet, unlike art policies in Nazi Germany or the Soviet Union, the state remained open to certain aspects of modern art, as can be seen in the diverse works exhibited at the major exhibitions staged throughout the period and in the selection of winners for two new art competitions, the Cremona and Bergamo prizes, launched in 1939. The key figure here was, once again, Marinetti, who had emerged relatively unscathed from the war and was now a staunch supporter of the Fascist dictator. In 1925 he moved to Rome, now capital of the new Fascist Empire, soon to be transformed by a major building programme resulting in the clearing of major sites from ancient Roman history. It was from here in 1929 that Marinetti, along with a new wave of artists including Fortunato Depero (1892–1960), Gerardo Dottori (1884–1977) and Enrico Prampolini (1894–1956), launched a new Futurist manifesto dedicated to Aeropittura or Air Painting. The aeroplane was now to become the archetypal symbol of post-war Futurism. THE AFTERMATH OF WAR The final defeat of Mussolini in 1945 threw Italy once more into a period of great political and cultural instability. The city of Rome remained other extreme lay the abstract works of Alberto Burri (1915–95), frequently deploying unconventional materials such as sacking, pieces of wood and rusted metal. Similar experiments in abstraction and in the exploration of the qualities of materials were conducted in Milan by the painter, sculptor and ceramicist Lucio Fontana (1899–1968). FROM ARTE POVERA TO THE PRESENT Both Burri and Fontana were highly influential for the generation of artists who emerged in the late 1960s and whose works are frequently characterized under the label Arte Povera. This term covers the experimental works of artists as diverse as Michelangelo Pistoletto (1933–) and Jannis Kounellis (1936–). Arte Povera was, in essence, a fragmented movement and had centres of activity in Genoa, Bologna, Rome and Milan. Despite its adherence to the use of new and radical materials, however, a sense of the Italian Renaissance tradition often lurked just below the surface. 2 THE RISE OF FASCISM during the inter-war years led to the wholesale reconstruction of Rome. The Fascists, under Mussolini, sought to exploit Rome's past grandeur and used architecture and planning to declare the notional power and legitimacy of the new regime. Sites of Roman archaeological and historical interest, such as the Mausoleum of Augustus, the Theatre of Marcellus, the Campidoglio and the Basilica of Maxentius were all systematically cleared and integrated into a new city plan. Great triumphal routes such as the Via dell’Impero were also designed to form the theatrical backdrop to the excesses of Mussolini’s own self image. 2 Mussolini and the Rebuilding of Rome, 1922-43 sites of archaeological interest cleared and promoted during Mussolini’s reconstruction of Rome Via dell’Impero triumphal route the major cultural arena during this period as the debate between Realism and Abstraction that characterized artistic positions throughout much of Europe, continued to rage. At one end of the spectrum lay Renato Guttuso (1912–87), whose large-scale images of Sicilian peasants were inspired by, but never subordinated to, the cultural policies of the Communist Party. At the 1 The Modern Movement in Italy, 1900-2000 art centre exhibition journal artists group or club prize major architectural projects Movements and periods: Italian Futurism 1909-18 Italian Futurism 1918-44 Metaphysical painting 1910-24 Art under the Fascist State 1922-45 Post-war Italy Arte Povera ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 288 THROUGHOUT THE TWENTIETH CENTURY, Italy underwent major social and political changes that inevitably impacted considerably on the production of art. One theme, however, remained dominant throughout the century; namely, the tension between Italy’s Classical past and its desire to be recognized as a modern nation-state. FROM SYMBOLISM TO FUTURISM At the turn of the twentieth century Italian art remained much influenced by current trends in Paris. Symbolism and Neo-Impressionism continued to dominate modern art exhibitions as evidenced in the work of artists such as Giovanni Pelizza da Valpedo (1868–1907) and Gaetano Previati (1852–1920). However, the new national identity which had been forged in 1870 with the movement for unification was soon to explode dramatically onto the art scene through the activities of one of Italy’s most influential twentieth-century cultural figures, Filippo Tommaso Marinetti (1876–1944). In 1909 Marinetti launched the movement known as Futurism upon the world stage. Futurism demanded the rejection of all past art and called upon artists and writers to celebrate the modern age. The ultimate symbol of modernity for Marinetti and his Futurist colleagues was the motor car. The industrial centres of Milan and Turin, where much Futurist activity was based, were also home to the Fiat and Pirelli factories, both major players in the burgeoning automobile industry in the early twentieth century. Futurism, however, did not confine itself to Milan and Turin. From the start Marinetti looked to promote the movement nationally and internationally. Exhibitions drew attention to the movement while artists’ clubs were formed in Ferrara, Florence, Rome and Taranto. Journals such as Poesia and Lacerba also promoted Futurism. Within three years of Marinetti’s announcement of the birth of the movement, Futurist exhibitions were staged in Paris, London, Berlin, Amsterdam, Zurich, Vienna and Budapest and Futurist groups were formed as far afield as England, France, Germany, Russia, Mexico and Japan. METAPHYSICAL PAINTING While Futurism staunchly rejected the past, other modern movements identified a nostalgia for the now faded Classical grandeur of Italy as a major influence in their art. Giorgio de Chirico (1888–1978) first developed the style that he later called Metaphysical Painting while in Milan. It was in the more sedate surroundings of Florence, however, that he subsequently developed his emphasis on strange, eerie spaces, based upon the Italian piazza. Many of de Chirico’s works from his Florence period evoke a sense of dislocation between past and present, between the individual subject and the space he or she inhabits. These works soon drew the attention of other artists such as Carlo Carrà (1881–1966) and Giorgio Morandi (1890–1964). In 1917, in the midst of the First World War, Carrà and de Chirico spent time in Ferarra where they further developed the Metaphysical Painting style that was later to attract the attention of the French Surrealists. ART UNDER MUSSOLINI The initial phase of Italian Futurism effectively collapsed with the outbreak of the First World War. Although many Futurist artists had openly supported military conflict the experiences of war transformed many attitudes. Some artists, such as Umberto Boccioni (1882–1916) were killed during the conflict. The rise to power of ITALY 1900-2000 UMBERTO BOCCIONI, Unique Forms of Continuity in Space, 1913. Boccioni’s most famous sculpture represents, in true Futurist style, an aggressive, powerfully striding figure whose dynamic movement forward cannot be captured by reference to a static moment. Yet, despite the Futurist cry to reject art of the past, the work has most frequently been compared to the Classical sculpture, the Victory of Samothrace. 10˚ 40˚ Milan Como Turin Ivrea Genoa 1 4 5 6 3 2 Parma Bergamo Cremona Trento Venice Bologna San Marino Ancona L’Aquila Ferrara Florence Perugia Rome Naples Taranto Catanzaro Bari Palermo Cagliari Po Tiber LIGURIAN SEA T Y R R H E N I A N S E A I O N I A N S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A A D R I A T I C S E A A P E N N I N E S A L P S SARDINIA CORSICA MOLISE UMBRIA L I G U R I A VALLE D’AOSTA PIEDMONT FRIULI- VENEZIA GIULIA VENETO TRENTINO-ALTO ADIGE ABRUZZO L A Z I O S I C I L Y CAL ABRIA BASI LICATA LOMBARDY P U G L I A CA M P A N IA M AR CHE EMILIA-ROMAGNA TUSCANY FRANCE SWITZERLAND AUSTRIA SLOVENIA BOSNIA AND HERZEGOVINA MONTE- NEGRO CROATIA ALBANIA Poesia Lingotto Fiat Factory 1916-26 (Trucco) Palazzetto dello Sport 1956-58 (Nervi) Lacerba 1939 1923 1967 1968 1939 1968 1931 N 0 0 100 miles 150 kms 1 - Fronte Nuovo delle Arti 1947 Movimento Spaziale 1947 Movimento Nucleare 1951 2 - Art Sociale 1946 Gruppo Origine 1951 Astratto-Concreto 1952 3 - Pirelli Tower 1955-59 (Ponti) 4 - Casa del Fascio 1932-36 (Terragni) 5 - Olivetti Factory 1934-57 (Figini & Pollini) 6 - S Giovanni Battista 1961-64 (Michelucci) 1 THROUGHOUT THE TWENTIETH CENTURY Italy struggled to overcome the sharp divisions between the industrial north and rural south. The growth of cities like Milan and Turin in the north acted as the catalyst for the emergence and development of Futurism, a movement much enamoured of modernity, and symbolized by the Italian car industry. Through both the rise and subsequent fall of Fascism, however, Rome has retained a preeminence as the first cultural city of the nation. NORTH AFRICA 1900–2000 291 the apogee of artistic achievement had a notable impact in the colonized lands. Although there was some admiration in Europe for North African craft techniques, it was generally believed that Arab cultural and artistic achievements belonged to the medieval era, and that since then there had been a decline. Influenced by European artistic norms, fine-art movements developed across North Africa. In 1908 a School of Fine Art was founded in Cairo to train Egyptian artists in Western styles and techniques – the first to open in Arab lands. Among the first graduates were some of the pioneering figures of the new Egyptian fine-art movement. They included the sculptor Mahmoud Moukhtar (1891–1934), whose large granite statue The Awakening of Egypt (1927) dominated the entrance to Cairo University, and the painters Mohamed Naghi (1880–1956), Mahmoud Said (1897–1964) and Ragheb Ayad (1892–1980). Similar movements were encouraged in other regions. In Algeria, for example, Western-style art was promoted by the French Orientalist painter AlphonseEtienne Dinet (1861–1929), while in Morocco the Spanish Orientalist painter Mariano Bertuchi (1895–1958) established the Escuela Preparatoria de Bellas Artes in Tétouan. Following independence, North African artists working in the fine-art context continued NJA MAHDAOUI Calligram, 1994, 40 × 50cm (151/2 × 191/2 in). Calligraphy was a dominant theme in the work of this Tunisian painter. With his emphasis on visual, painterly qualities rather than on calligraphy per se, he created a lyrical and abstract style that was at once relevant in the context of Western art yet distinct from it. 2 NEW GOURNA by Hassan Fathy. The village, built from the late 1940s, did not attract residents, and the design was only partially implemented. Clearly seen on the plan are Fathy’s use of domed mudbrick houses with courtyards, and clusters of houses arranged around small open spaces. 1 THE CULTURAL LIFE OF NORTH AFRICA was dominated in the first half of the century by colonialism, but with the emergence of independent nations (in the years shown in white boxes), new movements in architecture and art reflected the indigenous heritage. At the same time, Western artistic influences remained powerful, with attention shifting increasingly to the United States. 2 New Gourna, Master Plan Implementation to visit Europe or, increasingly, the United States as part of their training and to exhibit their work. While absorbing the current preoccupations of the Western tradition, they also began to search for new ways to express their own identity. One result was calligraphic painting, which started to appear in North Africa and elsewhere in the Muslim world in the 1950s and 1960s. Representatives of this movement in North Africa include Nja Mahdaoui (1937–) from Tunisia, Ahmed Moustafa (1943–) from Egypt, Ali Omar Ermes (1945–) from Libya, Rachid Koraichi (1947–) from Algeria, and Mehdi Qotbi (1951–) from Morocco. In the Maghreb some artists employed Berber motifs in a similar manner. TRADITIONAL CRAFTS Textiles, metalwork, woodwork, pottery and other crafts continued to be produced in many of the traditional urban centres, such as Fez, Tunis and Cairo. With the European colonial presence, however, some new styles and techniques were adopted, and imported materials became available. In Morocco, where the French implemented policies to protect indigenous traditions, there was greater continuity and more conservatism. Rural Berber traditions in architecture, textiles, jewellery and other arts were also given a measure of protection. In general, urban rather than rural arts were most affected by Western influences. From the 1960s, mass tourism constituted a new form of patronage. ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 290 IN THE TWENTIETH CENTURY Western cultural and artistic ideas had a great impact across North Africa. Europeans administered the area as colonial rulers until the 1950s and 1960s. New movements in architecture and art then arose to reflect the indigenous heritages of the newly independent states, although Western cultural influences remained powerful. ARCHITECTURE Colonial rule and the arrival of settlers, especially in the Maghreb, had numerous consequences. European-style quarters were built, often using imported European materials. The buildings were erected in European styles and also in revivalist ‘Arab’ styles. New types of buildings, such as railway stations and banks, were introduced, and several industrial centres emerged, the most notable in the Maghreb being Casablanca, where the dock installations were begun in 1915. Some cities, especially Algiers, became a focus for European Modernist ideas. In the 1930s Le Corbusier drew up plans for the development of the city, and he designed a plan for the town of Nemours on the Algerian coast. These projects were documented in his book Poésie sur Alger (1950). Although European influences remained minimal in the Sahara, the new political situation, together with the development of maritime routes and aviation, led to the demise of trans-Saharan trade. In sub-Saharan West Africa, artistic traditions were also disrupted by rapid colonization. Thus, new congregational mosques that were built under French supervision at Djenné in 1909 and at Mopti in 1935 marked the emergence of an official colonial style for the region, which also became accepted for secular buildings. Even after independence in North Africa, many architectural projects relied on Western architects and expertise. In Libya, for example, the University of Garyounis (built 1966–77) at Benghazi was designed by James Cubitt. Highrise buildings were introduced to the major cities, such as the Hotel Meridien Africa (built 1970) in Tunis, which rose to twenty-one storeys. Japanese companies also became involved in the region: the National Cultural Centre (built 1985–8) in Cairo, for example, was designed by a team of architects from the Japanese firm of Nikken Sekkei. It was against this background that some Arab architects began to examine their indigenous architectural traditions. The most influential was the Egyptian architect Hassan Fathy (1900–89). After the Second World War he designed the village of New Gourna, near Luxor, an experiment in rural regeneration that aimed at the relocation of 7,000 villagers. The inhabitants, some of whom had depended on tomb robbing for their livelihood, were to be moved there from the village of Gourna in the Valley of the Kings. The project encountered NORTH AFRICA 1900-2000 10˚ 20˚ 20˚ 30˚ 50˚40˚30˚20˚10˚0˚10˚ Casablanca industrial centre Tangier Timbuktu Djenné Mopti JerusalemAlexandria Cairo opened 1908 Khartoum Rabat Safi Algiers Oran Constantine Gafsa Fez Tunis NabeulKairouan Tripoli Benghazi Tétouan New Gourna 1948 designed by Hassan Fathy; inspired by traditional Egyptian architecture Medina Mecca (international zone 1912-56) Nile Niger Seneg al A T L A N T I C O C E A N R E D S E A B L A C K S E A N U B I A N D E S E R T SINAI C H OKE MTS S A H A R A T I B E S T I AL JABAL AL AKHDAR S Y R I A N D E S E R T JERBA MOROCCO 1956 ALGERIA 1962 SPAIN LIBYA 1951 EGYPT 1956 CHAD 1960 MAURITANIA 1960 NIGER 1960 MALI 1960 F R E N C H W E S T A F R I C A SENEGAL 1960 ERITREA ETHIOPIA 1942 FRENCH SOMALILAND 1977 BRITISH SOMALILAND 1960 ITALIAN SOMALILAND 1960 KENYA 1963BELGIAN CONGO GAMBIA SIERRA LEONE LIBERIA GOLD COAST N I G E R I A FRENCH EQUATORIAL AFRICA SAUDI ARABIA IRAQ YEMEN ADEN PROTECTORATE TRANS- JORDAN SYRIA LEBANON PALESTINE ANGLO-EGYPTIAN SUDAN 1956 TUNISIA 1956 ITALY SPANISH M O RO CCO (Spanish 1912-5 6) Spanish orientalist painter Mariano Bertuchi (1895-1958) establishes Escuela Preparatoria de Bellas Artes French Orientalist painter Alphonse-Etienne Dinet (1861-1929) promotes Western-style art French painters promote Western-style art 1931-42 Le Corbusier submits plans for city - none accepted. 1950s Fernand Pouillon, chief architect of Algiers, designs large-scale housing estates 1993 Great Mosque of Hassan II designed by Michel Pinseau (French) and Royal Architectural Workshop new colonial towns built by French; old towns preserved as historic monuments 1973 Mausoleum of Muhammad V designed by Vietnamese architect Vo Toan 1920s Cathedral of the Sacred Heart of Jesus, designed by Panteri (Italian) buildings of neo-Islamic, neo-Pharaonic modernist idioms by European architects 1985-88 National Cultural Centre designed by Japanese architects 1966-77 University of Garyounis designed by James Cubitt neo-vernacular architecture developed post-World War II (French 1912-56) (French 1830-1962) (Italian 1911-43) (British 1882-1952) (Italian) (Italian 1934-42) (British 1899-1952) (French 1881-1956) Melehi,Belkahia Melehi, Turki OmerErmes Koraichi,benHaffaf M oukhtar, Ayad, Nada Turki N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 Colonies and States French colony British colony Spanish colony Italian colony date of independence architecture of foreign design school of fine art urban pottery centre rural pottery centre textile and embroidery centre metalworking centre artists from N Africa train in USA from mid-20th century Moroccan artists train in France and Spain Algerian artists train and work in France Tunisian artists train and work in France and Italy Libyan artists train in Rome and Europe Libyan artists train at School of Fine Art in Cairo Egyptian artists train in France and Italy migration of Jewish craftsmen from N Africa to Israel European influence 1960 STUDY IN GOUACHE by Hassan Fathy of his Nasr House, Egypt (1945). Fathy graduated from the High School of Engineering in Cairo in 1926 and worked for the Egyptian Department of Municipal Affairs. From 1930 to 1946 he taught in the Faculty of Fine Arts in Cairo and, from 1946 to 1953, worked for the Antiquities Department. Active until his death in 1989, he was influential as an architect and theorist concerning the environmental significance of lowcost indigenous construction techniques. social and administrative problems. Fathy also designed many individual buildings and by the end of his life had won international acclaim. In Tunisia, meanwhile, a neo-vernacular style of architecture was attempted, based on the traditions of Djerba Island. Regenerative projects were also implemented, such as the redevelopment of the Hafsia quarter of the Tunis medina, completed in 1977. Independence led to a new role for state sponsorship in architecture. This took a number of forms, depending on the desired self-image of the state. In Morocco, for example, the monarchy promoted its legitimacy by fostering traditionalism in architecture, although often with recourse to modern techniques and foreign architects. In this category can be placed the mausoleum of Muhammad V (completed 1973) in Rabat, designed by the Vietnamese architect Vo Toan, and the vast Great Mosque of Hassan II (completed 1993) in Casablanca, designed by French architect Michel Pinseau in association with the Royal Architectural Workshop. PAINTING AND SCULPTURE The European belief that the so-called ‘fine’ art traditions of painting and sculpture represent EAST AND CENTRAL AFRICA 1900-2000 293 50˚ 20˚ 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 40˚30˚20˚10˚ Tinga Tinga (Dar es Salaam) 1960s Pachipamwe (nr. Bulawayo) 1989 Ujamaa (Maputo) 1990-93 Kinshasa CICIBA Biennale,1987 Poto-Poto (Brazzaville) Mbile (Lusaka) 1993 Makerere University (Kampala) Kisangani Paa Ya Paa (Nairobi) 1961-96 Harare (Salisbury) Libreville Lubumbashi (Elizabethville) Addis Ababa Djibouti Mogadishu Kigali Bujumbura (Usumbura) Kisumu Zanzibar Lilongwe Luanda Antananarivo (Tananarive) Mombasa Congo Zam bezi WhiteNile Shebeli L. Tana L. Victoria L. Nyasa L. Rukwa L. Tanganyika L. Kariba L. Albert L. Rudolph ATLANTIC OCEAN I N D I A N O C E A N ETHIOPIAN HIGHLANDS GREAT RIFT VALLEY CENTRAL AFRICAN REPUBLIC S U D A NC H A D N I G E R I A SOUTH AFRICA BOTSWANA NAMIBIA RWANDA 1962 BURUNDI 1962 SWAZILAND ZANZIBAR (united with Tanzania 1964) E R I T R E A E T H I O P I A 1941 K E N YA 1963 UGANDA 1962 TA N Z A N I A (TANGANYIKA) 1961 MOZAMBIQUE 1975 MALAWI (NYASALAND) 1974 MADAGASCAR 1960 A N G O L A 1975 ZAMBIA 1963 ZIMBABWE (S. RHODESIA) 1979 SOMALIA 1960 GABON 1960 CONGO 1960 Z A I R E (BELGIAN CONGO) 1960 CAM ERO O N N 0 0 400 miles 500 kms 2 POST-COLONIAL EAST AND CENTRAL AFRICA extended and expanded upon the European forms of visual and material culture in place at independence. Painting and graphic arts became more important than sculpture. The visual arts were centred in urban, university and East African coastal settings, which were also the the places where tourist arts were made for export or sale to a largely non-African clientele. COLONIE BELGE, 1885–1959. Prison yard, with prisoner being flogged by guard, with officer watching. Painted on a flour sack, 21 November 1974, by Tchibumba Kanda Matulu. Such images, ostensibly about the early colonial era, are actually a critical commentary on the repressive, violent regime of Mobutu Sese Seko, president of Zaire from 1960 until 1997, after the painting was completed. than by village-based traditions. These included centres at Makerere University in Uganda, founded by M. Trowell in 1939, and the Atelier d’Art Le Hangar, established by P. Roman-Desfosses in Elizabethville, Congo, in 1953. Europeans were the main patrons of these art forms. The late 1960s saw the invention of a form of popular urban painting in Zaire (now Congo) called Colonie Belge which depicted apparently earlier colonial topics but actually referred to then current political violence under the corrupt presidency of Mobutu Sese Seko. These were painted on flour sacks and sold cheaply in great numbers in many cities. Thus in 1975, there was a multiplicity of art forms in the region. It would have been possible to visit a university-trained painter of figures or landscapes in acrylics by European conventions, a mukanda initiation among Chokwe-related groups in Angola or Zambia with masked dances, a self-trained sign painter in Mombasa, an urban painter of political themes in Lubumbashi, or a workshop near Dar es Salaam where Makonde carvers daily turned out hundreds of tourist carvings of animals or stacked human figures in ebony. AFRICAN-INSPIRED ART Towards 2000 few rural arts (which could be described as pre-colonial), such as masquerades or shrines with figural sculptures, were to be found, apart from occasional masquerading, and continuing personal decoration among East African pastoralists. Many portable artworks had been stolen or purchased from their original sites in Congo, Angola, Gabon and Kenya, ending up on the international art market in Paris, Brussels, London or New York. By the 1980s most countries boasted a number of self-taught and school-trained painters, and modern, manifestly post-colonial artists whose work was sold in galleries or hung in museums. Painting often replaced sculpture as the dominant form. Artists’ workshops were held in a number of places in the late 1980s and 1990s, and some African artists were invited to biennial exhibitions in Dakar, Johannesburg, or Venice. Towards the end of the twentieth century a significant shift had occurred in art, from stimulus by whites to African-led discourses. In the 1980s and 1990s many books, journals and catalogues also featured contemporary arts, most from university or urban centres. Some artists migrated to Paris or New York either because of socio-political unrest at home and/or because their primary markets were abroad. By the 1990s a great plurality of styles and types of art could be discerned, most betraying an interdependence of Western and African ideas, motifs, materials and themes. While in rural East Africa, on the one hand, modified forms of earlier, very striking personal adornment were still viable in the 1990s, in much of central Africa, the final decade saw the production of very few art forms due to prevailing patterns of warfare and civil unrest. 2 The Growth of Modern Art in East and Central Africa date of independence Centres of tourist and modern art / craft production 1960 ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 292 THE SO-CALLED ‘TRADITIONAL’ ARTS of wood carving (figures, masks, and domestic implements), pottery making, blacksmithing, house-building and personal decoration continued fairly well intact from the late nineteenth century into the 1930s and 1940s in East and Central Africa. Fine Arab- and Islaminfluenced wood portals survived into the twentieth century in Zanzibar and other coastal trading centres, as did varied figural memorial posts. Yet as in most of the continent, this was a time of overwhelming change and adaptation to the structures, ideas and materials of colonial overlords who established hegemony around 1900. THE COLONIAL IMPACT In the period prior to the 1950s the following forms were introduced: a money economy, Western schooling, Christian missions, European political forms, dress, trains and automobiles. By 1950 arts were being affected by these imports. Many earlier forms were eroding, some becoming extinct. By 1965, in most places, governments established by the French and British had become independent, yet foreign impact continued to the end of the millennium. Nevertheless, there were exceptions; masked dances continued to EAST AND CENTRAL AFRICA 1900-2000 50˚ 20˚ 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ 40˚30˚ Mombasa Malindi Lamu Kilwa Kisumu Nairobi Kigali Mbuji-Mayi (Bakwanga) Tabora Mbeya Lusaka Beira Pemba Antananarivo (Tananarive) Mahajanga (Majunga) Maputo (Lourenço Marques) Bulawayo Luanda Addis Ababa Libreville Kinshasa (Léopoldville) Kananga (Luluabourg) Mbandaka (Coquilhatville) Kisangani (Stanleyville) Kalémié (Albertville) Brazzaville Djibouti Mogadishu Kampala Asmara Lilongwe Harare (Salisbury) Dodoma Bujumbura (Usumbura) Gonder Zanzibar Dar es Salaam Congo Zam bez i WhiteNile Shebeli L. Tana L. Victoria L. Nyasa L. Rukwa L. Tanganyika L. Kariba L. Albert L. Rudolph ATLANTIC OCEAN I N D I A N O C E A N E T H I O P I A N H I G H L A N D S G R E A T R I F T VA L L E Y B O N G O K O N S O K E R E W E S U K U M A L U G U R U ZARAMO M A H A FA LY SA K A LA V A MIJIKENDA G A B O N C E N T R A L A F R I C A N R E P U B L I C S U D A N C H A D L I B YA E G Y P T C O N G O E T H I O P I A S O M A L I A K E N YA TANZANIA (TANGANYIKA) M A D A G A S C A R Z A I R E (BELGIAN CONGO) Z I M B A B W E (SOUTHERN RHODESIA) A N G O L A S O U T H A F R I C A Z A M B I A RWANDA SWAZILAND BURUNDI ZANZIBAR UGANDA MALAW I )DNALASAYN( E R I T R E A M O ZA M B I Q U E CAM ER O O N N 0 0 400 miles 500 kms 1 Traditional Arts in East and Central Africa distribution of Central African masquerades sites with Arab-Islamic Swahili architectural decoration distribution of post sculptures peoples with East African memorial posts sites of post-Colonial art production production of international African arts major national artistic and cultural centre LUGURU Inset: European Colonial Possessions, 1925 British French Belgian Italian Portuguese Under League of Nations mandate Independent 1 AS IN THE WHOLE of the African continent, the overwhelming impact of European colonial powers transformed the visual, material and ideological cultures of East and Central Africa irrevocably in the twentieth century. Changes that had begun in the late nineteenth century accelerated by the 1930s and 1940s, and by the era of Independence (c.1960–65), had become wholesale and extreme, especially in expanding urban regions. Traditional dress, household material culture and architectural forms remained intact, if modified, in remote rural areas, however, until the end of the century. ELABORATELY DECORATED SWAHILI portals with interlocking parts such as this (in the collection of the Museum für Volkerkunde), some dating as early as the sixteenth century, were concentrated in Zanzibar, Lamu and Mombasa. Most were in place in the early decades of the twentieth century, but by the end of the century had largely been removed to museums or private collections. In place, these doorways reflected the wealth of their owners from trade in the Muslim-dominated Indian Ocean. feature in coming-of-age and agricultural rituals in remote Angola, Zambia and Zaire into the 1970s and later. By 1950 tourism was common in East and Central Africa, with emerging cities such as Kampala, Nairobi, Mombasa, Dar es Salaam, Kinshasa becoming sites of tourist art production, often by Kamba or Makonde men. As many as 10,000 men were involved in making tourist arts at any one time. Cottage industries also produced stamped, batiked and tie-dyed fabrics, as well as baskets and some toys. Cities also became sites for instruction in painting, sculpture, pottery and textile design in art schools which had been established by Europeans and continued to be influenced by European teachers, styles and materials rather MADAGASCAR ABYSSINIA KENYA TANGANYIKA BRITISH SOMALILAND M OZAM BIQUE NORTHERN RHODESIA ITA LIAN S O M ALILAND FRENCH EQUATORIAL AFRICA FRENCH SOMALILAND CAMEROONS BELGIAN CONGO ANGOLA WEST AFRICA 1900–2000 295 20˚10˚0˚10˚20˚ 0˚ 10˚ 20˚ To New York City ToLondon ToParis To Washington D.C. To Los Angeles Abidjan Conakry Freetown Monrovia Korhogo Bandiagara Bamako Nouakchott Bouaké Bissau Banjul Yamoussoukro Lomé Jos Ndjamena Abuja Abomey Cotonou Bobo-Dioulasso Ouagadougo Niamey Zaria Lagos Porto- Novo Ife Oshogbo Benin City Nsukka Douala Yaoundé Foumban Bangui Accra Kumasi Man Dakar Niger Sene gal Benue Black Vol ta A T L A N T I C O C E A N M A U R I T I A N I A 1960 M A L I 1960 GUINEA 1975 NIGERIA 1960 SAO TOME & PRINCIPE 1975 EQUATORIAL GUINEA 1968 SIERRA LEONE 1961 GUINEA-BISSAU 1974 GAMBIA 1965 SENEGAL 1960 IVORY COAST 1960 GHANA 1957 LIBERIA 1847 CAMEROON 1960 CENTRAL AFRICAN REP 1960 C H A D 1960 N I G E R 1960 BURKINA FASO 1960 BENIN1960 TOGO1960 1966,1992 1997 N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 2 THE EUROPEAN IMPACT ON ALL REALMS of visual and material culture continues to be felt in post-colonial, late twentieth-century West Africa. European imports – transportation systems, urban architecture, signs, publications – were only slightly ‘Africanized’ in their local manifestations. In dress, however, local and even nationalistic inventions or adaptations (such as industrialized wax prints all over the region and kente and adinkra cloth in Ghana) prevailed alongside more strongly Western-influenced fabrics and styles for both men and women. MASQUERADES WERE perhaps the quintessential ‘traditional’ African art in the nineteenth and early twentieth centuries. They had many vital social, political, judicial and educational roles, as well as being an entertainment and a means of aesthetic expression – verbal, visual and kinetic. This installation photograph of contemporary arts of the Kalabari Ijo is displayed in the British Museum. Here a contemporary woman sculptor, Sokari Douglas Camp, who lives and works in England, has recreated an earlier wood, cloth and feather masquerade in welded steel for display in a gallery setting. and Uzo Egonu (1931–94) worked in modern traditions of painting and sculpture, taught by Europeans (some in Europe) from around 1950. The Negritude movement was established in Francophone Africa in the late 1930s, where it was the reigning artistic philosophy into the independence period. Around then (the 1960s), many artists, still trained by Europeans, entered studio practice, producing modern art which often used African motifs self-consciously, even if styles and materials were mostly imported. Unlike most earlier artists, often anonymous and usually identified with the style of an ethnic group, these artists had personal styles tied more to internationalism than to local canons. There was relatively little wood sculpture among the modern works, that of El Anatsui (1944–) being a notable exception. Colonial governments in most West African nations established museums and art schools by 1950–60, usually in growing urban centres. These cities also experienced the infusion of European-style architecture, urban planning and imported materials: cinder block, reinforced concrete, steel and glass. From the 1920s to the 1950s colonial education officers and mission schools introduced drawing and easel painting, gallery exhibitions, new theatrical forms and other new ideas. NEW BEGINNINGS In the independence period (1957–65) new nations took over colonial-inspired art institutions, and art centres and workshops were born and sometimes quickly died. Those at Oshogbo, Nigeria, and Dakar, Senegal (Ecole de Dakar), are the best-known. The same period saw the growth of African art history programmes, mostly in the USA, which fostered fieldwork across Africa. As the use of earlier, ‘traditional’ forms decreased or ceased, new types of art came into being. These included commercial forms (signs, posters), tourist-oriented work (copies, fakes, thorn and gourd carvings, ebony busts), glazed pottery, recycled materials (tin, wire) for toys, cement sculpture (memorials, urban monuments), and carpentered works (‘fantasy’ coffins in Ghana, Ode-lay masks in Freetown). In the latter part of the century, painting and sculpture were made for display, enjoyment and sale across West Africa. Yoruba adire (starch resist indigo) cloth, Bamana bogolan (mud-dyed resist) and Asante and Ewe kente cloth, all long used in local dress, plus innovative tie-dyes and batiks, were made for sale. At first most new arts and crafts found expatriate patronage, but by the end of the century they were supported by middleclass Africans. Kente and bogolan were brought into the international fashion industry. By the 1980s and 1990s studio artists had become the teachers of their younger compatriots, usually in university settings. This work was showcased at pan-African venues: the 1st World Festival of Negro Arts, (Dakar, 1966), then at the larger Second World Black Festival of Arts and Culture (FESTAC, Lagos, 1977), followed by Dak’Art, the First Dakar Biennale (1992). While many artists remained in African urban centres, the structures supporting West African arts had undergone fundamental change, and some artists had moved to Europe or the USA. Overwhelmingly, late twentieth-century arts were secular, made not for local but for national or international audiences and a few African collectors, corporations and government projects. ART FOR AFRICANS? Towards the year 2000 both ‘traditional’ and more recent art, including street and studio photography, had gained international recognition, as shown by numerous exhibitions and books such as Magiciens de la Terre (1989, Paris) and Africa Explores: 20th-Century African Art (1991, New York), and several exhibitions known as ‘Africa 95’ (London, 1995). The new interest in African arts also stimulated the publication of several journals. Yet traditional or ‘classical’ African art rarely upheld the values of African communities, and indeed, much of it had left Africa to enter the lucrative international antiquities market. It is a troubling irony that the finest West African art, from ancient times until the final years of the 20th century, is in museum and private collections in England, Europe and the United States. 2 Post-Colonial West Africa date of independence sites of post-Colonial art production production of international African arts major national artistic and cultural centre sites (and years) of international art festivals international dispersal of West African artists 1960 ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 294 THE PAST 100 YEARS have seen changes in art and lifestyle that are unprecedented in African history. Colonial governments, which had imposed rule over much of the continent from around 1900, were mostly gone by 1965 with incalculable impact. NEW INFLUENCES ON TRADITIONAL ART The century began with traditional arts and architectures intact. Until the mid-century and later, a number of traditional items were still made: woodcarving (masks and figures); ironwork and copper-alloy casting; jewellery, personal decoration and leadership regalia; sun-dried mud buildings, some with painted walls. In rural areas these traditional forms remained viable until the 1970s or 1980s. Most areas, however, were influenced increasingly by both a more insistent European presence in coastal regions and cities, and by further conversions to Islam. Colonial regimes helped to stimulate changes in the arts: from the 1920s conversions to Christianity meant a loss of patronage for local religions, and the traditional arts associated with them. As well as a money economy and new educational and political structures, Europeans also introduced new materials, pigments, styles, technologies WEST AFRICA 1900-2000 10˚ 0˚ 20˚ 0˚10˚ 10˚ 20˚ Freetown Monrovia Abidjan Accra KumasiYamoussoukro Lomé Lagos Naimey Bangui Benin City Enugu Calabar Ikot Ekpene Okigwi Nsukka Zaria Abuja Oshogbo Ouagadougou Porto- Novo Malabo (Santa Isabel) Yaoundé Ndjamena (Fort-Lamy) Bamako Conakry Bissau Banjul (Bathurst) Dakar Nouakchott Niger Niger Niger Benue Sen egal BlackVolta Gambia White Volta RedVolt a Lake Volta BIGHT OF BENIN A T L A N T I C O C E A N A L G E R I A M O R O C C O L I B Y A N I G E R M A L I (FRENCH SUDAN) LIBERIA N I G E R I A C H A D M A U R I T A N I A CENTRAL AFRICAN REPUBLIC (UBANGI-SHARI) CAMEROON I V O R Y C O A S T SENEGAL D E M O C R A T I C R E P U B L I C O F C O N G O ( Z A I R E ) CONGOG A B O N GAMBIA G U I N E A GUINEA BISSAU (PORT. GUINEA) SIERRA LEONE BURKINA FASO (UPPER VOLTA) BENIN (DAHOMEY) SÃO TOME & PRINCIPE TOGO GHANA (GOLD COAST) EQUATORIAL GUINEA (SPANISH GUINEA) Inland Niger Delta 1100 Nok 800 BC Yelwa 100 Karauchi 200 BC Bankoni 1300 Ke 950 Sao ?950 Daima 900 Koma 1550 Bura 200 Messo 900 Ife 1100 Owo 1350 Akan 1650 The Colonial Impact on West African Arts Distribution of technologies and materials: cement, reinforced concrete, enamel paint photography, easel painting and print-making carpentry recycled wire, tin and rubber glazed pottery Distribution of motifs: grave markers and civic monuments bicycles, cars, trucks aeroplane motifs crucifix motifs distribution of Western-style dress sites where terracotta heads and figures have been found, and excavated, with dates of manufacture movement of art objects to Europe and America N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 1 THE IMPACT OF EUROPEAN COLONIALISM on the peoples and visual cultures of West Africa was so great that the face of the entire region was forever changed. The growth of urbanism, along with permanent roads and buildings, are major factors in this transformation, followed by the overwhelming presence of pictorial imagery and writing (signs, magazines, books), and by transportation systems using trains, trucks, cars, and since about 1950s, buses and aeroplanes. IGBO SHRINE to major tutelary deities in Oba Uke, eastern Nigeria. Photograph by Herbert M. Cole, 1983. The wooden figures are ‘traditional’ but the impact of Europe can be seen in the clothing the priest has provided for them. By the close of the twentieth century few such shrines remained. Figures were either destroyed or sold to art dealers for export to Europe or the USA. Figures such as these can now be found in museums and private collections. Some sell for very high prices. and motifs. Glass painting in Senegal and cement sculpture in urban and rural areas are examples of these developments. Islam had a dampening effect on the arts due to its proscription of figurative arts, although textile production and some dress styles, as well as mosque building and other architecture, thrived. By the 1990s most West African peoples were either nominally Muslim or Christian, so most traditional arts were no longer viable. ART BEFORE INDEPENDENCE A handful of artists such as Aina Onobulu (1882–1963), Ben Enwonwu (1918–94), Christian Lattier (1925–78), Iba Ndiaye (1928–) FRENCH WEST AFRICA NIGERIA RIO DE ORO & SPANISH SAHARA GAMBIA GOLD COASTSIERRA LEONE CAM EROON PORT GUINEA N British French Spanish Portuguese Independent Under League of Nations mandate European Colonial Possessions, 1925 Community Art Centres in South Africa community art centre, with date of foundation 2 2 PUBLICLY FUNDED ART CENTRES like the Polly Street Art School in Johannesburg played a crucial role in nurturing the creativity of black artists as early as the 1950s. In the 1970s these attempts to empower black artists were further promoted through independent, often privately funded centres, most with increasingly radical political agendas of black consciousness. State funding retained as its primary aim the generation of employment in impoverished black townships. SOUTHERN AFRICA 1900–2000 297 30˚ 20˚ 30˚ Germiston Katlehong Art Centre, 1977-90 Nyanga Port Elizabeth East London Bloemfontein Pretoria Pretoria Arts, Music and Drama Association (PAMDA), est. 1989 Pietermaritzburg Kimberley Lim popo Vaal Orange R. ATLANTIC OCEAN I N D I A N O C E A N CAPE OF GOOD HOPE DRAKENSBER G NORTHERN PROVINCE (LIMPOPO) FREE STATE MPUMALANGA GAUTENG KWAZULU-NATAL NORTH-WEST NORTHERN CAPE EASTERN CAPE WESTERN CAPE REPUBLIC OF SOUTH AFRICA BOTSWANA NAMIBIA LESOTHO SWAZILAND ZIMBABWE Nyanga Art Centre, 1979-90 N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms - Funda-The African Institute of Art. Founded with the support of international artists in 1983 Soweto - The Johannesburg Arts Foundation, est. 1972 in the suburb of Saxonwold - Federated Union of Black Artists (FUBA), est. in 1978 in Newtown, central Johannesburg - The Bag Factory. Studio cooperative est. 1995 in Newtown - Polly Street Art School, est. 1952. Major centre for training Black artists in the 1950s and 1960s Johannesburg - Community Arts Project (CAP), est. 1977 in the suburb of Woodstock - Greatmore Studios. Studio cooperative est. 1998 in Woodstock Cape Town - Community Arts Workshop, est. 1983 - The Bartel Arts Trust (the BAT Centre), est. 1990 on the quays in Durban Durban THE BASOTHO CULTURAL VILLAGE in the Free State was opened in 1994, evidently as part of the policy of the new South African government to restore the history of African peoples that had been systematically denied by the previous apartheid government. The village traces the evolution of South Sotho material culture, especially architecture, from prehistoric times to the present, thereby avoiding the trap of many tourist villages that work uncritically with the idea of an ethnographic present. This illustration shows the contemporary version of painted clay shelving, of which there are several earlier forms in the village. THE SOUTH AFRICAN National Gallery in Cape Town, by Francis Kendall, includes elements of European classical tradition and Cape Dutch architecture. Since its completion in 1930, the colonial appearance of the façade has been modified by the introduction of later artwork, notably, after the first democratic elections in 1994, the decoration of the niches by the Ndebele artists, Isa Kabini and Rose Mahlangu, in an African mural style. The sculpture in the foreground is Bruce Arnott’s Numinous Beast. colonial population. Soon these schools, and those founded at Afrikaans-language universities such as Pretoria, Stellenbosch and Bloemfontein, assumed the role of promoting European culture in support of white claims to power. As in other parts of the world at that time, these institutions distinguished their product not only from craft (both black and white), but also from the various forms of commercial art. As the urban centres grew, the demands from industry for graphic design, illustration and photography were satisfied at first by a number of technical schools established not only in South Africa but throughout the region. For economic reasons, and because of changes in the understanding of art, the South African universities that continue to teach Fine Art now also include commercial subjects in their curricula. COMMUNITY ART The apartheid Bantu education policy denied young South African black people the qualifications to study either fine art or commercial art at tertiary level, and for the most part prevented admission to such courses at white institutions to those few black students who survived the system. A number of well-qualified black students enrolled at such private art schools as the Frank Joubert Art School in Cape Town and the Johannesburg Arts Foundation. In a few urban areas, or ‘townships’, municipalities set up a variety of art courses at community art centres, such as the influential but short-lived Polly Street Art School in Johannesburg, and the Katlehong Art Centre, near Germiston. Other community centres, such as the Community Arts Project in Cape Town, operated with the help of overseas funding. Many community schools quickly acquired a political dimension, and several of them combined regular art classes with workshops on the making of posters, banners and community murals. In rural areas throughout the region, the major proponents of art training were the mission schools. From the middle of the nineteenth century, mission schools encouraged their scholars to produce both liturgical objects and religious themes in three and two dimensions. Around the mid-twentieth century mission teachers seem to have recognized generally that, in a hostile economic climate, communities could sustain themselves by making art- and some individuals could actually make a career from art. Thus, in the 1960s, at the Art and Craft Centre at Rorke’s Drift in KwaZulu-Natal, the Swedish Evangelical Lutheran Church introduced ceramic and textile workshops, which employed mainly local women, and a fine art school, which attracted mainly urban black men. The political aspirations of the black art students disturbed the peace of the mission and it was closed after only a few years. In the short time of its existence, however, it not only produced Azaria Mbatha and John Muafangejo from Namibia, two of southern Africa’s most significant artists of recent years, but it also established the linocut as a major medium of South African artistic expression. Similarly, mission schools in Rhodesia/Zimbabwe played a significant role in establishing the genre of soapstone carving, and they launched the careers of several notable sculptors. As the world economic climate deteriorates, on the one hand, and global tourism proliferates, on the other, philanthropic enterprises have founded community craft centres throughout southern Africa. Thus basket-making centres have been set up in KwaZulu-Natal and Botswana; textile and embroidery cooperatives have been established throughout the region; and San, or Bushman, art and craft schools have been founded in Namibia, South Africa and Botswana. While not all of these would be seen as centres of art in some countries, they are performing the significant function of bringing traditional craft practices into the new global economy, while providing much-needed employment for their practitioners. ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 296 collected at all, was displayed in natural history museums, where it remains to this day in Maputo, for example. Post-colonial developments in museum practice vary throughout the region and include: the integration of African art into the major art galleries of Cape Town and Johannesburg; the establishment of schools of carving within the precincts of the national art museums in Harare and Maputo; the displacement of the colonial collection by the work of such revolutionary artists as Malangatana in the national museum in Maputo; and the creation of a new series of museums celebrating the achievements of national heroes in Botswana. The oldest art schools in the region are in South Africa and they are attached to universities – in Cape Town, Pietermaritzburg and Johannesburg – that had as part of their original mission the function of civilizing the THE DISTRIBUTION OF ART CENTRES throughout Southern Africa, both collections of art and formal educational institutions, reflects the political and economic history of the region – as well as colonial debates over the definition of the term ‘art’. Art, in the European sense, was practised as a rule by people of European origin in the great urban centres of the region. For a long time, this understanding of art was denied to African peoples, whose traditional practice in rural areas was generally thought of as ‘material culture’ and whose production in mission schools and other philanthropic foundations was widely regarded as ‘craft’. THE COLONIAL LEGACY Similarly, collections of art in the region were affected by changes in the understanding of this concept. Thus the earliest collections of art were made with the purpose of instilling European cultural values, and occasionally craft-manufacturing techniques, in a supposedly unrefined colonial population. Gradually art produced locally in the European mould, mainly by white people but eventually by blacks also, was admitted into the collections, a trend accelerated, of course, by the decline in value of local currencies. Traditionalist African art, meanwhile, if it was SOUTHERN AFRICA 1900-2000 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 10˚ 20˚ 30˚ Nyanga Art School C C C C Gaborone (Gaberones) Johannesburg Rustenburg Letsitele Soweto Molepolole Kanye D’Kar Dobe Francistown Mutare (Umtali) Rusape Beira Municipal Museum Maputo (Lourenço Marques) Nyanga Guruve Mochudi Pietersburg (Polokwane) Bakone Malapa Museum Mpumalanga Port Elizabeth East London Alice Bloemfontein Thaba Nchu Tweespruit Cape Town Thupelo Ujamaa/Pemba Siavonga Marondera Mbile Pachipamwe Thapong Robben Island Museum Stellenbosch Pretoria Gauteng Mabopane Winterveld Radoo Mpambo Mbabne Serowe Bulawayo Nampula Harare (Salisbury) Macheke Maun Windhoek Gibeon Lüderitz Museum Kagga Kamma Okaukuejo Pietermaritzburg Morija Museum of Morija Kimberley Durban Richmond Basotho village Marburg Eshowe UlundiRorke’s Drift Golden Gate Nkwalini Hlabisa 3 3 5 2 2 Grahamstown Fort Hare William Fehr Collection Michaelis Collection South African Museum South African National Gallery Irma Stern Museum Philani Workshops Schmidtsdrif Nelson Mandela Art Gallery Albany Museum Ann Bryant Art Gallery East London Museum Zululand Historical Museum E.S. Malan Ethnographical Museum De Beers Art Gallery The Sasol Art Gallery Duggan-Cronin Bantu Gallery William Humphreys Art Gallery Museum and Art Gallery William Campbell Museum Mariannhill Mission and Teachers Training College Natal Museum Tatham Art Gallery KwaZulu Cultural Museum African Window Museum Pretoria Art Museum Museum Africa Gertrude Posel Art Gallery Johannesburg Art Gallery National Art Collection Museu Chissano Natural History Museum Putakikobo Museum Kaross Workers Embroidery Project Chivirika Embroidery Project Shangaan Motifs Weya Bathoen II Museum National Museum and Art Gallery Art Gallery State Museum Educational Museum Sechebele I Museum Kuru Museum Kuru Art Project Supa-Ngwao Museum Khama III Memorial Museum National Museum Khami Ruins Site Museum Museu Nacional de Etnologia Nyahokwe Ruins Site Museum The Vukutu School National Archives National Gallery The Workshop School St Francis Mission Mission of Our Lady of Sorrows Evangelical Lutheran Church Art and Craft Centre Mission of the Good Shepherd St Faith's Mission Serima Mission National Museum Matsulu village Nedebele village at the Middelburg Museum Cyrene Mission Nabe Museum Ondini, reconstructed Zulu capital Shakaland The Tengenenge Sculpture Community Gibeon Folk Art ’Ikhoba National Museum Olievenhuis Art Gallery Museum of the Island of Mozambique Ndaleni Methodist Mission Grace Dieu Anglican Mission Limpopo Zam bezi Vaal Orange R. Okavango Delta Victoria Falls L. Cabora Bassa A T L A N T I C O C E A N I N D I A N O C E A N CAPE OF GOOD HOPE K A L A H A R I D E S E R T N A M IB DESERT DRAKENSBER G S O U T H A F R I C A B O T S W A N A N A M I B I A LESOTHO SWAZILAND ZIMBABWE Z A M B I A M O Z A M B I Q U E Zimbabwe Ruins Site Museum N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 1 Arts and Crafts in Southern Africa major art galleries and museums ethnographic reconstructions art schools and university art departments mission schools that encouraged art international artists workshops, held annually Khoisan art centres stone-carving centres in Zimbabwe embroidery and textile projects basket-making co-operatives C 1 SOUTHERN AFRICAN ECONOMIC HISTORY reflects the geography of the region, for example the gold seam underlying Johannesburg and the Witwatersrand. However, the distribution of art centres in southern Africa follows economic and political dictates. European-inspired art, both in museum collections and fine art schools, clusters around the major cities. Both traditionalist art forms and philanthropically-founded community art and craft centres are distributed in the vast, and generally impoverished, rural areas. ASIA 1900–2000 299 GLOBALIZATION New means of transport – from steamships and railways to cars and aeroplanes – globalized the arts throughout the region. With the advent of radio, television and the internet, images were instantaneously transmitted to the remotest corners of the world. During this period Asian urban culture was assaulted by the latest in world developments, ranging from Parisian Cubism and the International Style to Soviet realism and American PostModernism. Conversely Asian arts and artists became familiar in the West, as Asian cinematographers, designers, architects, sculptors and painters developed worldwide reputations. Enhanced communication encouraged individuals to travel, and artists from one culture studied in another. Iranian architects trained in the USA, while British potters studied in Japan. Le Corbusier and Louis Kahn designed regional capitals in South Asia, while the Chinese-born I. M. Pei redesigned the Louvre in Paris and the Japanese Kenzo Tange redesigned the Italian cities of Bologna and Catania. Communication also encouraged group tourism on an unprecedented scale, as NATIONAL STADIUMS, TOKYO, 1961–64. Kenzo Tange (1913–) designed these two stunning pavilions for the 1964 Olympic Games held in Tokyo. Two asymmetrically arranged steel suspension structures with sweeping curved roofs recall traditional Japanese architecture as well as contemporary structures by Le Corbusier and Eero Saarinen. Tange’s work thus encapsulates the fruitful conjunction of East and West and won him the Pritzker Prize for architecture in 1987. 1 THE ENTIRE ASIAN CONTINENT became integrated into the global world of art in the twentieth century as newly-independent nations established Westernstyle institutions, including museums of art and archaeology as well as schools for teaching the fine and applied arts. World organizations identified cultural sites throughout the region as having significance not only for local histories but also – and more importantly – in the shared heritage of civilization on earth. some people became wealthier and had more leisure time in the post-war period. The popularization of cheap portable still and video cameras led to a proliferation of images worldwide. From the late 1970s UNESCO, itself a creation of a post-war desire for world improvement, began designating cultural complexes throughout the region as World Heritage Sites to preserve them from destruction, unrestricted development and industrial pollution. Concrete and steel construction replaced brick and wood, as skyscrapers supplanted traditional low structures, and Western-style rooms with particular functions and furniture replaced traditional multi-functional spaces defined only by their furnishings. Iranian artists turned calligraphy into sculpture, and Indian artists realized traditional subjects using Japanese washes and Chinese brushwork. Artists also looked for inspiration in their endangered folk art traditions and in their own cultural past, newly-revealed through archaeology and art history. West and Central Asian carpets and kilims became collectable worldwide, and Japanese raku pottery was in vogue everwhere, as was the traditional Indonesian textile technique of batik resistdyeing. Indeed, some individuals held up these traditional crafts as the antitdote for what they saw as the poison of globalization and Modernism, and many artists combined traditional craft techniques with modern tools and sensibilities in their work. Archaeology, which had been introduced to Asia by Europeans at the beginning of the century to fill European museums, became a means of establishing national identities in the post-war period. From Syria and Saudi Arabia through Iran and Pakistan to China and Mongolia, archaeologists made startling discoveries that revolutionized knowledge of the arts of the distant past. National and regional museums were established throughout Asia to house the finds and old royal collections. Although the bulk of their collections was local material, some museums, particularly in wealthy countries like Japan and pre-revolutionary Iran, not only repurchased their country’s own antiquities but also became players in the international art market for European painting. THE ARTIST IN ASIA Continuing a process begun earlier, the individual artist emerged as a distinct personality throughout Asia. The traditional master-pupil system of individual instruction, where the best a student could do was to imitate his master flawlessly, was replaced by training in government-sponsored art schools that offered a variety of courses in many media and techniques, both traditional and foreign. Innovation and individual expression were emphasized over tradition and continuity. The exit of maharajas and emperors from the political stage closed artists’ traditional source of patronage. It was replaced on the one hand by government sponsorship, particularly for large projects, and on the other hand by private patronage, whether by newly-enriched industrialists or – at a more modest level – by the emerging middle class. 20˚ 30˚ 40˚ 50˚ 60˚ 70˚ 80˚ 100˚ 110˚ 120˚ 130˚ 140˚ 150˚ 160˚90˚ 30˚ 20˚ 10˚ 0˚ 10˚ Nanjing Guangzhou Shanghai Tokyo Hanoi Lucknow Mathura Bhubaneshwar Sarnath Tashkent Khudzhand (Khojent) 1876 Samarkand Bukhara Nukus Khiva Almaty (Alma-Ata) Ashgabat (Ashkhabad) Lhasa Seoul Mandalay Rangoon Pagan Hue KyotoOsaka Nara Hangzhou Suzhou Taipei Manila Cebu City Marawi Naga Quezon City Tianjin Ulan Bator Ulan-Ude Yeniseysk Krasnoyarsk Tyumen’ Omsk Yekaterinburg (Sverdlovsk) Erdeni Dzuu Hohhot (Kuei-sui) Irkutsk Tobol’sk Xi’an Hong Kong Ho Chi Minh City (Saigon) Phnom Penh Ayutthaya National Museum Khon Kaien National MuseumPhimai National Museum Pahang Bangkok Battambang Gia Dinh Jakarta Denpasar Calcutta (Kolkata) Allahabad Gwalior 1922Jaipur Ajmer Hyderabad1930 1950 Karachi TeheranBaghdad Isfahan Kuwait Baku Tblisi Kashan Shiraz Mosul Riyadh Sana’a Tarim Muscat Aleppo Damascus Istanbul Ankara Bursa 1975 Gazi Teachers College, 1932 Anatolian Civilization, 1921; Ethnographical, 1925 Palestine (Rockefeller) (1927-34) Bezalel (Israel) Museum (1965) Konya Jerusalem Tel Aviv Meshed Kabul Dushanbe (Stalinabad) Bishkek (Frunze) Ethnographical Museum, 1938 Archaeological Museum, 1946 Archaeology and Ethnography, 1978 National Museum, 1978 Patna Guwahati (Gauhati) Shantiniketan Gianyar Ubud Cagayan de Oro Bandung Yogyakarta1950 Kuala Lumpur1960 Madras (Chennai) Bombay (Mumbai) Lahore Fort 1864 National College of Arts National Museum of Afghanistan, 1919/1931 National Museum of Modern Art Varanasi Bharat Kala Bhavan, 1920 Vadodara (Baroda) Ahmedabad National Institute of Design, 1962 1948 NewDelhi Malacca Singapore Penang Taiping Baoding 1906 Yan’an Beijing Lahore Merv Harappa Islamabad Taxila Peshawar Mohenjo-Daro Quetta I N D I A I R A N S A U D I A R A B I A I R A Q OMAN YEMEN SYRIA JORDAN LEBANON TURKEY BURMA THAILAND SOUTH KOREA NORTH KOREA C H I N A M O N G O L I A R U S S I A (SIBERIA) AFGHANISTAN KYRGYZSTAN V I E T N A M L A O S TAJIKISTAN TU RKMENISTAN U ZBEK ISTA N P H I LI P PIN ES CAMBODIA T I B E T ISRAEL M A L A Y S I A K A Z A K H S T A N BANGLA- DESH JAPAN N E P A L PAKISTAN SUMATRA SRI LANKA SIND JAVA SARAWAK SABAH BORNEO I N D O N E S I A TAIWAN MINDANAO NEW GUINEA LUZON TIMOR SULAWESI (CELEBES) HAINAN I N D I A N O C E A N A R A B I A N S E A B A Y O F B E N G A L YELLOW SEA ARAL SEA SEA OF JAPAN EAST CHINA SEA P A C I F I C O C E A N CASPIANSEA BLAC K SEA REDSEA PERSIAN G ULF Academy of Fine Art, 1922 Academy of Fine Art, 1912 National Academy of Art, 1928 Municipal Academy of Art, 1922 Lu Xun Academy, 1938 Beijing Academy, 1918 National Palace Museum, 1925 1936 1936 1883 1977 1924 Lianjing Higher Normal School, 1906 Central University Art Department, 1927 Technical Art School, 1876-83 Prefectural School of Painting, 1880 1925 1955 1957 1913, 1933 1953 State Museum 1953 National Museum 1947 1986 1965 Bali Museum Sabah State Museum 1954 Victoria Memorial, 1906 Birla Academy of Art, 1967 1850 1851 1914 1856 Prince of Wales, 1922 National Museum, 1946 National College of Arts, Lalit Kala Akademi 1894-1920 1950 1960 1960 1863 1931 1880 1940 1917 1959 1908 Archaeological Museum, 1920 1974 1984 1905 1925 1926 Dar al-Funun, 1851 Museum of Pioneer Artists, 1979; National Museum of Modern Art, 1962; Iraq Museum, 1923 College of Fine Arts, 1938 Archaeological Museum, 1950 Museum of Art, 1920 Nizami Museum of Azerbaijani Literature, 1940 Caucasian Museum, 1852 State Museum of Arts, 1923 State Museum of Georgia, 1923-9 Armenian, 1930 Chehel-Sotun, 1938 National Museum, 1971 al-Afqa Library, 1972 Pars, 1936 1957/1981 National, 1967 1977 1960 1932 National Museum (1921; 1938) Academy of Fine Arts, 1883 State School of Applied Arts, 1957 1846, 1876, 1914,1924 1934 1876 1931 1926, 1935 x3 x2 x5 x4 x3 x3 N 0 0 800 miles 1200 kms 1 The Arts of Asia, 1900-2000 art schools, with date of foundation art museums, with number and date of foundation archaeological museum UNESCO World Heritage Sites (history, art and architecture only) ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 298 AT THE BEGINNING of the twentieth century Asia was largely controlled, directly or indirectly, by European powers, which exploited the region for its raw materials as well as its markets for European manufactured goods. By the end of the century Asia was totally independent and poised to be the economic powerhouse of the new millennium. In the interval, the continent was wracked by political and social upheavals resulting from two world wars, wars of national liberation, civil wars and other regional conflicts. The Japanese victory over the Russians in 1905, the first Asian defeat of a European colonial power, encouraged the Japanese to embark on their own programme of imperial expansion over East and South Asia, from which the continent was rescued, paradoxically, by a new wave of Western intervention. The end of World War II was followed not only by the American occupation of Japan, but also by the collapse of European colonial empires in much of the region and the establishment of Communist regimes from Eastern Europe to Southeast Asia. By the end of the century, most of the Communist systems had collapsed in the face of freewheeling market capitalism, which came to rule Asia along with the rest of the world. Nevertheless, millions of Asians in isolated and rural areas were untouched by world developments and largely maintained their traditional lifestyles. ASIA 1900-2000 CAST BRONZE by the Italian-trained Iranian artist Parviz Tanavoli (1937–), who used sculpture, which is not a traditional art form in Islamic societies, for calligraphy, the most appreciated Islamic art form. His most famous theme is the sculptural representation of the Persian word heech, meaning ‘nothing’. Here the word becomes a complex visual pun, appearing to represent something but saying ‘nothing’. 2 The Indigenous Artistic Traditions of W Asia, c. 1914 extent of the Ottoman Empire Anatolian carpet area Persian carpet area Kurdish textile area influence of Ottoman patronage and cosmopolitan styles influence of Qajar patronage and cosmopolitan styles European mass-produced goods (undermining local craft traditions) holy city calligraphy and the arts of the book centres of woodworking centres of metalworking centres of ceramics WEST ASIA 1900–2000 301 Gulf states most of the architectural development occurred during the construction boom between the 1960s and the 1980s, for which both Arab and Western architects were employed. Both Riyadh and Jiddah became centres for modern architecture. PAINTING AND SCULPTURE The Academy of Fine Arts was founded in Istanbul in 1883 by Osman Hamdi (1842–1910). From the outset the academy employed Europeans on its staff. Various artists from the academy continued their training in Europe, and then returned to Turkey as instructors of the next generation of artists. Some Lebanese artists also studied in Europe: the writer and painter Gibran Khalil Gibran (1883–1931) trained in Paris and settled in New York, while Saliba Douaihy (1915–) trained in Paris, returned to Beirut, and moved to New York in 1950. Turkish and Lebanese painters in turn influenced artists in Iraq, Jordan, Palestine and Syria, some of whom also trained in the West. 20˚ 25˚ 30˚ 35˚ 40˚ 45˚ 50˚ 55˚ 60˚ 65˚ 70˚ 40˚ 35˚ 30˚ 25˚ 20˚ 15˚ Istanbul Teheran Muscat Cairo Medina Jerusalem Damascus Isfahan Sana Na'in Aden Mashhad Tabriz Zenjan Bijar Sanandaj Hamadan Arak Yazd Mecca Euph rates Tigris Nile Indus A R A B I A N P E N I N S U L A BLACK SEA MEDITERRANEAN SEA CASPIANSEA PERSI A N GULF TARSUS MTS R E D S E A A R A B I A N S E A Z A G R O S M T S IRANIAN PLATEAU E L B U R Z M T S CAUCASUS M A R S H A R A B S H A D H R A M A U T A S I R YEMEN KUWAIT H E JA Z A N AT O L I A KURDISTAN ARM ENIA O M A N S Y R I A MESOPOTAMIA A N G L O E G Y P T I A N S U D A N R U S S I A RUSSIA B R I T I S H I N D I A P E R S I A ABYSSINIA E R I T R E A O T T O M A N E M P I R E AFG H A N I S T A N E G Y P T N 0 0 350 miles 500 kms 2 THERE WAS A DECLINE in indigenous artistic practices across much of the region as mass-produced imported goods undermined local craft traditions. Nomadism, which had favoured portable art forms, also declined. Carpets, however, remained an important export. Tourism provided a new but limited market in the late twentieth century. The manufacture of Jewish ritual objects in Palestine and Israel was expanded and revitalized. The Iraqi sculptor Jawad Salim (1920–61), who studied in Paris, Rome and London, founded the Baghdad Group of Modern Art (1951), which was concerned with forging a modern identity for Iraqi art. In the 1970s Iraq made a bid for cultural leadership in the Arab world and Iraqi cultural centres were set up in many countries. The regime of Saddam Hussein extolled ancient Assyrian history in an attempt to create a strong national consciousness. However, there was also an exodus of artists from Iraq for political reasons. In Iran the court painter Muhammad Ghaffari (1848–1940) studied in Europe and set up an art school in Tehran in 1911. Modernism was promoted by Jalil Ziapur (1928–), Marcos Gregorian (1925–) and others. From the 1960s the Shah, Muhammad Reza, identified himself with the pre-Islamic Iranian heritage and held cultural events at Persepolis. Meanwhile, the painter Hussein Zenderoudi (1937–), the sculptor Parviz Tanavoli (1937–) and other artists of the Saqqakhana school in Iran were inspired by indigenous Shi‘a iconography and folklore. After 1979 art that affirmed the ideals of the Iranian Revolution was promoted. CALLIGRAPHY AND TRADITIONAL ARTS The art of calligraphy was undermined by the advent of printing. The situation was greatly exacerbated in Turkey, where the Roman alphabet was adopted in 1928. Some Turkish calligraphers emigrated, and the Ottoman tradition of calligraphy was kept alive in Cairo and Baghdad. In Iran the calligraphic tradition was more vibrant. From the 1950s a new genre known as calligraphic painting developed throughout the region, which fused elements of calligraphy with Western-style painting. West Asia, especially Iran and Turkey, is noted for its carpets. Metalwork, ceramics and woodwork are found in the major centres such as Istanbul, Cairo, Damascus, Teheran and Isfahan. Textile and metalworking traditions are found in the Kurdish region, and also among the Lur and Bakhtyari tribes in western Iran and among the Baluchs in the east. Circassian émigrés brought niello work on silver to Jordan, and there were traditions of silversmithing in Yemen and Oman. PLAQUE OF BRASS SHEET, inlaid with silver and copper, and silver appliqué bosses with niello, Damascus, 1912–13. The inscriptions in the roundels consist of Arabic proverbs and sayings. The inscription in Turkish within the arms of the star reads ‘Bomb Foundry of the Inspectorate of Long-range Artillery, Damascus 1331’. The Kufic inscription on the band surrounding the central field praises the Ottoman sultan Mehmed V Rashad (r.1906–18). ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 300 onto reinforced concrete structures. The monumentalizing national idiom of the 1930s was influenced by contemporary Italian and German architecture. After the Second World War, the International Style gained favour. In Palestine, Jewish immigrants introduced European modernism, while after the creation of Israel the International and Post-Modernist idioms were employed. In Saudi Arabia and the THE ARTISTIC TRADITIONS of Western Asia underwent a profound transformation after World War I, when new states were created in former Ottoman lands; these included the British Mandates of Palestine, Jordan and Iraq, and the French Mandates of Lebanon and Syria. The new states were later bolstered by the promotion of ‘national’ schools of art, and the foundation of national museums and galleries of fine art – a concept that was imported from the West. In Turkey and Iran modernization programmes were also implemented. After World War II, cultural links were established with Western Europe and the United States, or with the Soviet Union. ARCHITECTURE Traditional building practices, which used mudbrick and baked brick or stone, disappeared as buildings were increasingly built with concrete, glass, steel and aluminium. Architectural styles imported from the West, such as Art Nouveau, changed the character of many cities. Turkish architects developed an eclectic style for their public buildings, grafting Ottoman elements WEST ASIA 1900-2000 1 THE TWENTIETH CENTURY was marked by the emergence of many new states in the region, each of which attempted to create a specific cultural identity. Money from oil, which was produced in Saudi Arabia and Kuwait from the 1940s, and Iraq and Iran from the 1950s, was invested in various cultural programmes. Although Western ideas about fine art were adopted throughout the region, many artists strove to integrate them with indigenous traditions. 70˚65˚60˚55˚50˚45˚40˚35˚30˚25˚ 40˚ 35˚ 30˚ 25˚ 20˚ Baghdad Riyadh Kuwait City Teheran Doha Manama Muscat Aden Sana Mecca Medina Jerusalem Beirut Tel Aviv Ankara Istanbul Amman Damascus Euphr ates Tigris Indus A R A B I A N S E A R E D S E A M E D I T E R R A N E A N S E A PERSIAN GULF CASPIAN SEA B L A C K S E A C A U C A S U S Z A G R O S M T S E L B U R Z M T S I R A N I A N P L A T E A U SINAI S A U D I A R A B I A O M A N U A E Y E M E N I R A Q T U R K E Y I R A N A F G H A N I S T A N T U R K M E N I S T A N U Z B E K I S T A N PAKISTAN S Y R I A EGYPT SUDAN ETHIOPIA QATAR BAHRAIN KUWAIT MUSCAT ISRAEL LEBANON NADROJ Muhammad Ghaffari’s art school, 1911 College of Fine Arts, 1938 College of Decorative Arts, 1960 Ethnographical Museum, 1938 Iran Bastan Museum, 1946 Decorative Arts Museum, 1960 Museum of Contemporary Art, 1976 Institute of Fine Arts (painting and sculture taught by 1939) Dept. of Architecture at College of Engineering, 1959) Academy of Fine Arts, 1962 Institute of Applied Arts, 1969 Iraq Museum, inception 1923, fully inaugurated 1966 National Museum of Modern Art, 1962 Museum of Pioneer Artists, 1979 Saddam Arts Centre, replaced 1962 and 1979 museums National Museum, 1976 Institute of Art Education, 1965 Museum of Archaeology and Ethnography, 1978 Art Dept. at Gazi Teachers’ College, 1932 Museum of Archaeology, 1936 Museum of Ethnography, 1920s Museum of Painting and Sculpture, 1980s National Museum, Ethnographical Museum Atelier for Fine Arts, 1980s Oman Museum, 1974 National Museum, 1975 National Museum, 1971 Cultural Centre (including training in arts and crafts) 1975 Bezalel School of Arts and Crafts, 1906 Bezalel Museum, 1906 Israel Museum, 1965 Museum of Art, 1932 National Gallery of Fine Arts, 1980 Archaeological Museum, 1951 Institute of Music and Painting, 1952 (closed 1962) Institute of Fine Arts, 1972 architects: Mohamed Makiya (b.1914), Rifat Chadirji (b.1926) trained in England artists: Faik Hassan (1914-92), Jawad Salim (1920-61), Ismail Fattah (b.1934) trained in Paris, Rome or London artists: Muhammad Ghaffari (1848-1940), Jalil Ziapur (b.1928), Marcos Gregorian (b.1925), Parviz Tanavoli (b.1937) studied in France or Italy National Museum, 1957, Museum of Islamic Art, 1983 Tareq al-Sayyid Rajab Museum, 1983 1 2 3 5 4 N 0 0 350 miles 500 kms 1 Architecture and Fine Art in W Asia, late 20th Century area of British colonial rule, early 20th century area of French colonial rule, early 20th century international borders, 2000 principal colleges/schools of architecture and art, with date founded principal national/archaeological/ ethnographical museums, with date founded principal galleries of modern 'fine' art, with date founded architects/artists studying/working in Europe/USA migration of Jewish craftsmen/artists to Israel 1 2 3 - - - - - - - - - - - - College of Fine Arts, 1959 National Museum, early 20th c 'Azm Palace Museum Academy of Fine Arts, 1883 College of Civil Engineering, 1884 State School of Applied Arts, 1957 Museum of Turkish and Islamic Art, 1914 Topkapi Palace Museum, 1924 Museum of Painting and Sculpture, 1937 Academy of Fine Arts, 1937 Dept. of Fine Arts, American University, 1954 Fine Arts Institute, Lebanese University, 1965 National Archaeological Museum, 1919 Archaeology Museum, American University in Beirut4 5 architects: Kemalettin Bey (1870-1927) trained in Berlin Vedat Bey (1873-1942) trained in Paris artists: Ibrahim Çalli (1882-1960), Nazmi Ziya Güran (1881-1937), Ahmet Zeki Kocamemi (1901-59), Refik Epikman (1902-74), Ali Çelebi (1904-), Nurullah Berk (1906-82), Hadi Bara (1906-71), Zühtü Müridoglu (1906-), Bedri Rahmi Eyüboglu (1911-75), Hüseyin Gezer (1920-) trained in Paris or Munich architects: Farid Trad (early 20th c) trained in Paris Antoine Tabet (early 20th c) trained in Paris artists: Habib Srour (1860-1938), Khalil Saleeby (1870-1928), Youssef Hoyeck (1883-1962). Saliba Douaihy (1915-) trained in Rome or Paris * ˇ THE MARTYR’S MONUMENT, Baghdad (1981–3). The monument was conceived by the Iraqi artist Ismail Fattah (1934–) and built by the Mitsubishi Corporation to the specifications of Ove Arup and Partners. It was constructed to commemorate the dead in the Iran-Iraq war (1980–88). The giant turquoise ceramic-tile dome (40 metres, 130 ft, high) is, split into halves and encloses a twisted metal flag. The monument stands on a circular platform, situated in the middle of an artificial lake. CENTRAL ASIA 1900–2000 303 ‘TIANSHAN MOUNTAIN’ by GUO BU, ink on paper, 1988. This painting uses Chinese ink and brush to interpret the splendour of nature, depicting the rocky Tianshan Mountain in the golden sunset. The abstract image is more or less Western in style, but the taste is still very Central Asian. It embodies the so-called New Humanistic Movement, which emerged in Xinjiang from 1986 to 2000, when Xinjiang artists were inspired by traditional Central Asian, Chinese and Western modern art. Guo Bu was born in 1957 in Xinjiang, and graduated from the Art Institute of Xinjiang and Xi’an Academy of Fine Arts, Russian and Soviet Expeditions and Archaeological Surveys museum date of expedition archaeological site 1938 2 80˚75˚70˚65˚60˚55˚50˚ 35˚ 40˚ 45˚ Nukus Nisa Anau Khiva Khorezm Province Koy-Krylgan-Kala site SEMIRETCHIE Kara-tepe Tula-Tepe Paykend Varakhsha Mary (Merv) Kampyr-tepe Khalchayan Bukhara Ashgabat (Ashkhabad) Tashkent Panjikent Dzhizak (Jizak) Afrasiyab Karakol Almaty (Alma-Ata) Tomak (Ak-Beshim site) Frunze (Bishkek) Kashgar Yarkand Taxila Dushanbe (Stalinabad) Gilgit Khotan Niya Kabul Termez Dalverzine-tepe Bactra Begram Bamiyan Hadda Fayaz-tepe Samarkand Kok-tepe Ind us Talas Murgab Kashgar H e Sutlej Syr D arya Am u Darya L.Balkhash Issy Kul ARAL SEA CASPIANSEA TIEN SHAN HINDU KUSH HIM ALAYAS KARA KUM TAKLA MAKAN DESERT E L B U R Z M T S KARAKORAMRANGE KYZYL KUM TURKMENISTAN UZBEKISTAN TAJIKISTAN KYRGYZSTAN C H I N A A F G H A N I S TA N I R A N K A Z A K H S T A N Kirghiz Museum of Fine Arts (textile) N 0 0 300 miles 400 kms 1963 1940s 1960s 1938-57 1913-89 1947-2000 1983-2000 1989-2000 1947-2000 1948-1950s 1966-81 1938-60s 1960s-90s 2 CENTRAL ASIA is rich in ancient sites and Soviet scientists organized a great number of excavations in Russian Central Asia. In the 1930s and 1940s they investigated Varakhsha, Paykend, Koy-KrylganKala, Khalchayan, Dalverzine-tepe, Kampyr-tepe, Kara-tepe and Fayaz-tepe. Subsequent expeditions have excavated Pandjikent, old Nisa and new Nisa. In the east important archaeological excavations occurred in the Turfan Basin, Khotan and elsewhere. Navoi (1441–1501) and the astronomer Ulug Bek (1397–1449), were made during the 1960s–1980s in Bukhara, Tashkent and Samarkand respectively. Many government buildings at this time were typically Soviet ‘wedding cake’ in style, especially in Dushanbe, Beshkek, Tashkent and Almaty. Nevertheless, some old mosques and monuments were repaired or reconstructed and traditional interior and exterior Islamic designs remained popular. Artists who formed the Central Asian School of Art, brought to this area the spirit and traditions of the Russian avant-garde and modern Western art, which were transformed and enriched by oriental culture and philosophy. Important artists who lived in Central Asia during this time include P. P. Benkov, Isupov, R. Falk, R. Mazel, V. Ufimtsev, A. Volkov, N. Karakhan, Usto-Mumin and E. Korovay. For Russian artists, Central Asia provided an opportunity to indulge in Orientalist themes. A young mother breastfeeding her baby on a summer night, an old man cutting a boy’s hair, village girls collecting grapes, a wife calling her husband in the fields back for lunch, were among the favourite topics for modern Central Asian artists. Most of these paintings are kept in the Uzbekistan National Museum of Fine Art in Tashkent and the Savitsky Art Museum of the Karakalpakstan in Nukus, Northern Uzbekistan. The traditional art of miniature painting has been an inexhaustible source of inspiration for Central Asian artists. Influenced by this, in 1968 Iskander Azimov (1945–) painted the mural Ibn Sina and his Students in the Institute of Oriental Studies, Uzbekistan Academy of Sciences, Tashkent. Likewise, in 1968 Chingiv Ashmarov, inspired by Navoi’s lyrics, painted many murals which were used to decorate the metro station of Alisher Navoi in Tashkent. TRADITIONAL CRAFTS Today, the heritage of craftsmen of the past is lovingly preserved and developed. Among the famous crafts of Central Asia are carpetweaving, embroidery, wood carving, including Ustun uyma-carved columns, ceramics such as the blue-and-white ware of Rishtan and Gurumsaray, metal wares such as copperembossing, and leather crafts. At the beginning of the twentieth century, Russian factory production undermined the development of local handicrafts. In the first half of the twentieth century technological developments meant that a number of traditional handicraft products became obsolete and were no longer made. For instance, the appearance of porcelain production in Uzbekistan in the early 1950s and the mass use of porcelain in everyday life caused a sharp drop in demand for the traditional handmade pottery; the decrease in the production of copper-embossed utensils had the same cause. The impact of Soviet ideological doctrine, backed by corresponding economic programmes, was another important factor in the decline of traditional handicrafts. After independence, the transition to a market economy changed the organization of handicrafts. Traditional gold-embroidered wedding gowns and wooden cradles (beshik) had been banned during the Soviet period as survivals of feudalism, but they soon became widespread again. The openness of the new countries to the world community also provided craftsmen with new resources and inspiration. XINJIANG ART After lengthy exposure to Chinese and Soviet influences, traditional Central Asian, Chinese and Western modern art inspired Xinjiang artists after 1980. Some Xinxiang artists used traditional Chinese ink and brush techniques to interpret the splendour of nature, especially evident in Xinjiang’s spectacular scenery of deserts, snow-capped mountains, and vast grassy plains. Kashgar rural artisans were highly appreciated, especially for their naive but lyrical depictions of lively local bazaars and festivals. Traditional artefacts, such as the woven carpets of Kashgar and the silk and jade of Khotan, were also famous. THE ART OF TIBET Tibet’s traditional art was influenced by India and Nepal, swept away by Mao’s Communist propaganda, and rediscovered after 1980. While railways and highways have opened this mysterious land to the world and introducing modern technology, traditional artefacts, such as wool carpets and decorated metal knives, are still well-known. Thangka scroll paintings, depicting Buddhist scenes, are the most famous art of Tibet. Several Thangka schools survived the vandalism of China’s cultural revolution, and each year competitions are held among different Thangka schools during festivals. Tibetan artists, such as Anduo Qianngba, also excelled at Buddhist figure paintings. Tibetan dramatic art, especially the dancing masks called ‘cham’, sometimes exaggerated as demons or beasts, are unique and fabulous. ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 302 WESTERN CENTRAL ASIAN ART of the twentieth century can be divided into three stages. The first stage, from 1900 to 1917, covers the period of the Russian conquest of Western Turkestan. The second stage is from 1917 to 1991. After the Great October revolution in 1917, Russian Central Asian states joined the USSR in the early 1920s. During the Soviet period, Central Asian art adopted some Communist ideological doctrine. The third stage starts from 1991 when, following the dissolution of the USSR, Central Asian republics became five independent countries. Many types of traditional art and artefacts formerly forbidden on ideological grounds, were revived. THE ECONOMIC BACKGROUND Natural resources such as oil, gas and gold were found in Central Asia., but the main CENTRAL ASIA 1900-2000 70˚65˚60˚ 40˚ 35˚ 30˚ 45˚ Nukus Urgench Khiva Charjui Andizhan (Andijan) Kuybyshevo (Rishtan) Ferghana Kashgar Dushanbe Khotan Niya Aksu Kucha Almaty Tokmak Turfan Kurle Qiemo Urumqi Shahrisabz Urgut NavoiGizhduvan Madyt Ashkhabad Merv Baysun Kandahar KabulHerat Denau Dzhizak (Jizak) Bukhara Tashkent Turkestan Otraro Termez Balkh Namangan Chirik-Rabat Bishkek (Frunze) Samarkand Karshi Syr Dary a C hu Amu Darya L.Balkhash Issy Kul A R A L S E A K A R A K U M TA K L A M A K A N D E S E R T TA R I M BA S I N K A R A K O R A M K Y Z Y L K U M T U R K M E N I S TA N U Z B E K I S TA N K Y R G Y Z S TA N TA J I K I S TA N X I N J I A N G A F G H A N I S T A N PA K I S TA NI R A N K A Z A K H S TA N N 0 0 150 miles 400 kms Lhasa Mozugongkar Golmud SuoxianAnduo Dangxiong Yangbajin Shigatse Linzhi Changdu Dege Yushu Deqin Mangkang Zay Naqu Gongbu Griamda Gonggar Gyantse Purang Gegye Ali Rutak Zhada Saga Dingri Yangzt e N E P A L T I B E T C H I N A Tibet Thangka painting/Ikat weaving temple dramatic art 1 Arts and Crafts of Central Asia museum ceramics embroidery carpet weaving metalwork jade ware wood carving/printing copper embossing lacquered miniature painting leather processing Silk 1 THE REGIONS OF CENTRAL ASIA have spent much of the twentieth century under the sway of imperial regimes and Communist orthodoxies. However, their emergence as independent countries, with the exception of Tibet, in the 1990s has been accompanied by an outpouring of art, which seeks to integrate the lessons learnt from the past with a celebration of the newly rediscovered indigenous cultures, traditions and oriental philosophy of the region. resource in the Soviet period was cotton. Uzbekistan alone contributed 61.8 percent to total Soviet cotton production. Today, cotton is still over-planted, and the area lacks natural irrigation. The Aral Sea has become a synonym for ecological disaster. Water is scarce in Central Asia and the two rivers that feed the Aral Sea, the Amu Darya and the Syr Darya, have been taxed to the limit for irrigation. Now their waters are nearly depleted by the time they reach the Aral Sea, which has shrunk to half its former size and is four times more salty. Vast western segments of Kazakhstan and Uzbekistan now suffer from the millions of tons of salt and dust which are swept off the dried sea floor every year. CENTRAL ASIAN ART During the Soviet period, statues of Lenin and Stalin, along with some propaganda monuments, were established in the city centres of Tashkent, Bukhara, Samarkand, and Khiva, standing alongside thousands of ancient madrasas, mausolea and mosques. After the dissolution of the USSR, some of these statues were removed, and replaced with statues of Central Asian historical heroes. Statues of figures such as the medicinal scientist Abu Ibn Sina (Avicenna, 980–1037), the poet Alisher ‘THE END OF THE BAZAAR’, REYIMU SELIMU, 1992 This painting shows the end of a local bazaar in Kashgar, when people carry their goods back home. The perspective of the painting is distorted, such that the camel and the donkey in the foreground are much smaller than the young couple at the top left corner, in the distance. The naive art of Kashgar, which depicts everyday events in a childish, but lyrical manner, has been well known since the 1960s. SOUTH ASIA 1900–2000 305 WESTERN INFLUENCES Abstraction competed with realistic portraiture, landscape and still-life throughout India, but Bombay, New Delhi and Calcutta were centres for Modernist art. In 1946 Francis Newton Souza (1924–2002) founded the Bombay Progressives, a Leftist group that wished to be part of the global art scene. India’s fascination with modernity was further evidenced by the choice of the French architect Le Corbusier to create a new state capital for Chandigarh in 1951. In the 1950–70s there arose a popular painting movement, called Neo-Tantric, which was both abstract and modern, yet reflected Indian identity. Maqbool Fida Husain (1915–) was the major Indian artist of the mid-twentieth-century. Though Muslim, he treated the spectrum of Indian themes, from Hindu myth to Islamic history to social and political commentary, favouring realism with a Cubist edge. In the 1970s the Faculty of Fine Arts at the University of Baroda became pre-eminent in India under the artist and teacher K. G. Subramanyan (1924–). In 1980 Subramanyan transferred to Santiniketan and there gathered together a talented group of artists and art historians. By the 1980s women – among the most prominent artists in the country – helped to reconcile the 2 NEW DELHI was founded by the the British government of India, the Raj, after a decision to move the capital from Calcutta to Delhi in 1911. The masterplan was drawn up by the chief architect Edwin Lutyens (1869–1944), who created a regal, symmetrically designed administrative centre with a wide central axis to carry on the imperial tradition of grand processions. Predominantly Neoclassical, reflecting Lutyens’ own taste, some of the structures were Indianized by his collaborator, Herbert Baker (1862–1946), who organized the interior decoration by Indian artists. YATRA, 1956, oil on canvas by Maqbool Fida Husain. Husain was the most significant Indian artist of the mid-twentieth century. Among the few artists who remained in India after Independence, he evolved a quasi-Cubist style. He treated myriad themes – from mythology and history to sociopolitical commentary – with intelligence and humour. Going on yatra (pilgrimage) in a bullock cart is still a familiar sight in India. So, too, is mixing myth and reality. Here the standing figure is Hanuman, the monkey god, racing to save a dying hero in the epic Ramayana. The scantily clad woman derives from the yakshi (female fertility figure) on Hindu and Buddhist monuments. Cantonment Road South Avenue North Avenue Queen Mary AvenueKing George Avenue Parliament FerozshanRoad Delhi Muttra Road Hardinge Lytton Road Jaswant Man Singh Road Pandara Road Akdar Road Prithnvi Raj Road Singh Road CanningRoad Church KingsWayKingsWay WaterWay WaterWay Water KingEdwardRoad Water Way Way Road Bhagwan Das Road Curzon Road Avenue RajinaRoad Street Surgeon Private Secretary Military Secretary Gurudwara Secretariat Parliament house Secretariat Staff Quarters Talkatora Park Mughal Garden Viceroy’s House Park Great Place Honourable members’ houses Honourable members’ houses Hostels War Museum Record OfficeEthnological Museum Museum Medical Research Memorial Arch Ruling Princes and Chiefs Club Powana Park Princes Park Hostels Park Comptroller’s House Body Guard N 0 500 yds 2 Plan of New Delhi, 1911-31 buildings designed by Edwin Lutyens buildings designed by Herbert Baker 0 500 m incompatibility of Indian identity with the dominance of Western art. MODERNISM IN PAKISTAN In Pakistan artists also struggled in finding a national, cultural or religious identity. Some artists, such as A. R. Chughtai (1894–1975), painted in a modified Bengal School style, others, such as Anna Molka Ahmed (head of the art department at Punjab University) and Khalid Iqbal (principal at the National College of Arts [NCA]), used Western realism. Shakir Ali, the first Pakistani principal of the Mayo School of Arts (now NCA) who studied with André Lhote in France, introduced Cubism in the 1950s. Artists from East Pakistan, notably Zain ul Abedin, further popularized abstraction. A movement featuring abstracted calligraphy swept the country from the 1960s to 1980s. It satisfied the need to be modern, but also fulfilled Muslim religious and Asian cultural identity. Contemporary themes were combined with age-old painting techniques to update traditional Indian miniature art. Bashir Ahmed, trained by two court painters, started a degree programme in miniature painting at the NCA in 1982. The movement had eager patronage in Pakistan as well as in Europe. Shahzia Sikander, a Pakistani wunderkind in America, studied miniature painting at NCA. ART IN SRI LANKA Like India, Sri Lanka was heavily influenced by British Victorian art. Harry Pieris, the foremost academic portrait painter, earned a diploma from the Royal College of Art in London in 1927 and worked in Paris until 1935. He later became secretary of the 43 Group – an organization formed in 1943 by ten artists offering an alternative to the Victorian naturalism espoused by the Ceylon Society of Arts. The most famous mid-century painter was self-taught George Keyt (1901–93), whose images of robust, sensous women derive from Léger, Matisse and Picasso as well as Indian poetry. Tissa De Alwis and Jagath Weerasinghe made sculpture and installations with social and political content. The acclaimed architect Geoffrey Bawa (1919–2002) was also a major patron of the arts. ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 304 CALCUTTA WAS THE PRE-EMINENT city of art and culture for most of the twentieth century, even though New Delhi became the administrative capital in 1911. While British institutions permeated society and infrastructure, the impact of Calcutta’s leading family, the Tagores, on art and culture cannot be overestimated. The poet and novelist Rabindranath Tagore (1861–1941) was awarded the Nobel Prize for Literature in 1913, and his darkly Expressionist paintings – which he began only at the age of 65 – were highly acclaimed in Paris and London. In 1920 he began a revolutionary fine arts and language university at Santiniketan, a short train ride north of Calcutta. At the Tagore ancestral home, Joresanko, the famous Japanese philosopher Okakura Kazuko wrote Ideals of the East, which fuelled the idea of pan-Asianism. Influenced by the two Japanese painters who had accompanied Okakura (1902–4), Abanindranath Tagore (1871–1951), nephew of the poet, devised the distinctive wash technique that became the keynote of his style. THE BENGAL SCHOOL Abanindranath’s Bengal School movement evolved with encouragement from E. B. Havell, principal of the Calcutta School of Art. Havell, in pursuit of a return to Indian artistic ideals and style, sold the gallery’s European paintings and replaced them with Mughal miniatures and other Indian art. He made Abanindranath vice-principal of the art school in 1905, and when Tagore’s painting students graduated and took teaching positions in other art schools, the movement spread across the country. The resulting delicate, softly coloured, small watercolours were praised for their esoteric, spiritual qualities, countering the West’s declaration that Indian painting was not fine art, but only craft. Avid nationalists and Theosophists supported Abanindranath’s art, most notably Ananda Kentish Coomaraswamy, art historian and friend of the family, as well as the political activist, Sister Nivideta and Calcutta publisher O. C. Ganguli. The style and subject-matter of Ajanta wall painting permeated Bengal School painting after its students copied the fifth-century masterpieces in 1910. Yet it was an exhibition of works on paper by German Bauhaus artists in Calcutta in 1922 that pointed to the future. Gagendranath Tagore may have been the first artist influenced by the show, implementing a technique that resembled the Orphism of the French painter Robert Delaunay. Gagendranath, however, is best remembered for his cynical cartoons making fun of baboos (Westernized Indians), not unlike the humour of Kalighat artists from the seamier side of the city. The national debate over Bengal School Orientalism versus Western realism created serious competitive tensions between the Calcutta School of Art and the J. J. School in Bombay from the 1920s to 1940s. Indicative of a contemporaneous Bengali initiative to revive folk and native arts, the academically trained artist Jamini Roy created a new idiom inspired by Kalighat pat (folk art) and then by indigenous Bengali craft and architectural decoration. The Punjabi artist Amrita Sher Gil, with his Hungarian and Punjabi heritage and a master’s degree from the École des Beaux-Arts, Paris, mixed the colour and style of Rajput miniatures with that of Gauguin and Matisse. Roy and Sher Gil were the first Indian Modernists. SOUTH ASIA 1900-2000 60˚ 70˚ 80˚ 30˚ 20˚ 10˚ TP Calcutta Dacca (Dhaka) Santiniketan Srinagar Islamabad Lahore Amritsar Chandigarh Peshawar Simla Agra Lucknow Gwalior Jaipur Ahmadabad Baroda Bhopal Ajanta Bombay Hyderabad Bangalore Calicut Mysore Colombo Cochin Tanjore (Thanjavur) Quilon Madras Kanchipuram Cuttack Raipur Varanasi (Benares) Kathmandu Karachi Kandahar Quetta Bamiyan I N D I A IRAN A F G H A N I S TA N PA K I S TA N ( 1 9 4 7 ) N E P A L BURMA C H I N A BHUTAN CEYLON (1948) SRI LANKA (FROM 1972) EAST PAKISTAN (1947) BANGLADESH (FROM 1971) H I M A L A Y A S WESTERNGHATS EASTERN GH AT S Indus J helum Ravi Chenab Ganges Jam una Narmada Godavari Krishna Brahmaputra Sutlej A R A B I A N S E A B A Y O F B E N G A L I N D I A N O C E A N Pakistan National Council of Arts (1972) (from 1920s)Calcutta School of Art (1920s-30s) Cholamandel (1960s-80s) Vibahavi Academy of Fine Arts(1993); School of Aesthetic Studies (1974) (1951) J. J. School of Art (1920s-30s) National College of Arts (1958) Indus Valley School of Arts (from 1990s) University of Baroda, Faculty of Fine Arts (1970s-80s) The folk art of India: lacquerwork glass painting stone carving wood carving brass-work metalwork saris (silk brocade) saris (cotton) folk embroidery block-textile printing tie-dye and ikat carpets (dhurries) carpets (knotted pile) folk painting miniature painting N 0 0 800 miles 1200 kms 1 India, 1900-2000 European town planning major art school/art commune national art society seminal art exhibition centre, 1920s-40s major museum centre of film production important artistic centre TP New Delhi Arts Co-operative (from 1970s) (1911-31) Lalit Kala Akademi (1954) TP 1 INDIAN ARTISTS in the twentieth century absorbed Western influences and merged them with elements of the native culture. However, traditional arts and crafts continued alongside these Western-oriented developments. Pakistan, Bangladesh and Sri Lanka evolved independent art institutions and artistic personalities after 1947. Later in the century Bollywood (Bombay cinema) came to rival Hollywood in terms of its prolific output. TISSARAKSHITA, QUEEN OF ASHOKA, c.1910, watercolour on paper, by Abanindranath Tagore. Tagore’s Bengal School style of painting defied the British declaration that Indian painting was not fine art. A mix of East and West, the misty, effeminate style was deemed spiritual, while historical themes revived the past. One of the most famous of Indian kings, the thirdcentury BC king, Ashoka Maurya, converted to Buddhism. His queen is shown pondering her future. CHINA 1900–2000 307 School. Ambitious young artists went to Japan and, increasingly, to Paris, where they were influenced by a range of artistic trends. The conflict between the Communists and the ruling Guomindang led, in 1927, to the expulsion of the former from Shanghai to a rural base, from which they set out seven years later on their Long March round south and west China to their new base at Yan’an. There they disseminated anti-Japanese propaganda making effective use of the woodcut, which had been developed as a revolutionary tool under the inspiration of the writer and polemicist Lu Xun (1881–1936). WARTIME EXILE During the years of the war with Japan (1937–45), the government, schools and universities, as well as teachers and students, migrated to the western provinces of ‘Free China’. Cut off from the coastal cities, artists discovered the wild beauty of the West, many of them travelling among the minority people. This gave the art of the period a new urgency and realism. The traditional painter Zhang Daqian (Chang Dai Chien, 1899–1983) spent the years 1942–3 copying the wall-paintings at the remote desert site of Dunhuang, leading to the creation of the Dunhuang Research Institute, still active today. When the war ended, dreams of reconstruction were soon shattered by civil war and rising inflation. In 1948, the Guomindang moved its seat of government, together with treasures, from the Palace Museum to Taiwan. THE NATIONAL LIBRARY, Beijing, 1987, by architects Yang Tingbao and others. The straight roof-line and emphasized frame structure of this building represent a rejection of both the Soviet style and the synthesis of Western elements with the elaborate bracketing and curved roof of later dynasties, which characterized many buildings in modern China. Here, the architect went back to the simpler style of the Han Dynasty, which was perceived to be more expressive of modern taste and needs. 130˚120˚110˚100˚90˚ 30˚ 20˚ A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A 9,10,11 19 20,21 18 30 29 31 27,28 17 26 36 15 12,13 14 1,2,3,4,5 6,7 8 37 35 34 33 32 24,25 16 22,23 Beijing Dingzhou ShanghaiSuzhou Jiaxingxian Fuzhou HemuduHangzhou Tangshan Qingliangang Yangzhou Qingzhou Pyongyang Tangshan Tianjin Jinan Hongshan Dawenkou Nanjing PixianLuoyang Houma Banpo Luoyang Huxian Shenyang Xianyang Maijishan Binglingsi Leitai Lanzhou Dunhuang Ürümqi Qishan Jiangling Jiangxi Hefei Wuhan Mancheng Taipei Macao Luoyang Nanchang Panlongcheng Mawangdui Guangzhou (Canton) Hong Kong Guilin Changsha Xiamen (Amoy) Chongqing Lantian LongmenSanmenxia Zhengzhou Anyang Seoul Yan‘an Yungang Taiyuan Xuzhou Ulan Bator Sanxingdui Chengdu Xi‘an Dazu GuiyangPanxian Shizhaishan Yuanmou Kunming Shenzhen M O N G O L I A VIETNAM NORTH KOREA SOUTH KOREA LAOS C H I N A T I B E T BURMA JAPAN INNER MONGOLIA TAIWAN HAINAN G O B I D E S E R T Q I L I A N S H A N Y I N S H A N N A N L I N G KUNLUN MTS Yell ow River Yangtze Yuan Jiang Great Wall S O U T H C H I NA S E A E A S T C H I NA S E A YELLOW SEA SEA OF JAPAN to USA to Europe 2 Revolutionary Art in 20th-century China dissemination of new art policy from Beijing artistic exchange with Soviet Union in 1950s artists travel to Tibet and minority areas artists travel to the USA and Europe in 1980s and 1990s major cities archaeological sites Buddhist cave shrines Provincial museums founded after 1949, with date of foundation A N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms THE COMMUNIST ERA On 1 October 1949, Mao Zedong declared the establishment of the People’s Republic of China. The early years after Liberation, as it was called, were devoted to political education of the masses, reconstruction, and social and economic levelling, in which there was both idealism and tight Party control. Brief periods of liberalization were followed by reaction and chaos. The turmoil of the Cultural Revolution only ended with Mao’s death in 1976. During the early years after Liberation the influence of Soviet Russia on architecture and art was dominant, although the Great Hall of the People, opened in 1959, was in a new compromise style embodying Chinese and Western elements. The Central Art Academy in Beijing, under direct control of the Ministry of Culture, was the centre where new policies and styles in art were tried out, and disseminated across the country. Monumental sculpture was created for propaganda purposes. Much attention was given to archaeology and the preservation of ancient monuments. Meantime, the art of the peasants was officially promoted. More recently regional schools, with strong local character, have developed. After the death of Mao, a freer cultural atmosphere began to develop, sparked by the first exhibition of dissident art in 1979. During the 1980s contacts were renewed with the whole tradition of Western art and culture. The departure to the West of independent artists accelerated after the crushing of the prodemocracy demonstration at Tiananmen on 4 June 1989. More recently, booming consumerism and the rebirth of a ‘middle class’ in China have brought a degree of freedom, cynicism and new sources of patronage beyond the state, while major exhibitions in China, and shows abroad of the work of modern Chinese artists, have helped to establish a place for China in the international world of contemporary art. Provinicial museums founded after 1949 1 China Art Gallery 1962 2 Museum of Arts and Crafts 1964 3 Historical Museum 1959 4 Beijing Art Museum 1975 5 Xu Beihong Memorial Museum 1954 6 Tianjin Municipal Art Museum 1957 7 Tianjin Historical Museum 1952 8 Shaanxi Provincial Museum 1951 9 Shanghai Art Museum 1956 10 Shanghai Museum 1951 11 Lu Xun Memorial Museum 1951 12 Jiangsu Provincial Museum 1956 13 Nanjing Municipal Museum 1958 14 Suzhou Museum 1960 15 Yangzhou Museum 1951 16 Xuzhou Museum 1960 17 Pan Tianshou Memorial Museum 1981 18 Anhui Provincial Museum 1956 19 Fujian Provincial Museum 1953 20 Jiangxi Crafts Museum 1971 21 Jiangxi Provincial Museum 1961 22 Shandong Provincial Art Museum 1977 23 Shandong Provincial Museum 1956 24 Luoyang Museum 1958 25 Museum of Ancient Art 1981 26 Hunan Provincial Museum 1951 27 Guangdong Provincial Museum 1959 28 Guangdong Art Museum 1957 29 Chongqing Municipal Museum 1951 30 Guizhou Provincial Museum 1957 31 Yunnan Provincial Museum 1951 32 Qinshihuangdi Terracotta Figures Museum 1971 33 Xi'an Banpo Museum 1958 34 Shenyang Municipal Museum 1962 35 Gansu Provincial Museum 1953 36 Hubei Provincial Museum 1951 37 Xinjiang Regional Museum 2 FROM 1949 UNTIL MAO’S DEATH IN 1976, China’s artistic life was largely controlled by the Ministry of Culture, acting through the art schools and the local brances of the Artists Association. ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 306 THE TWENTIETH CENTURY IN CHINA was an era of political and social upheaval, marked by war and civil war, rapid but uneven modernization and an ever-widening involvement with Western ideas, technology and culture. THE WESTERN IMPACT By 1900, the alien Manchu Dynasty was in terminal decline, its death-blow being dealt by the revolution of 1911. Thereafter the era of the warlords (1912–26) was followed by the establishment of a central government by the Guomindang Party under Chiang Kaishek (Jiang Jieshi), ruling from Nanjing. The early and mid-1930s was a time of rapid development. New architecture sprang up in the cities and towns touched by Western culture. The commercial buildings tended to be Western in style, while government buildings, such as those in the new national capital at Nanjing, were essentially Western in form and construction, enriched with the traditional Chinese roof and ornament. At the beginning of the twentieth century, tombs were robbed of their treasures, as has always happened in Chinese history. Many of these treasures enriched foreign museums. The first archaeological excavations were carried out in the early 1920s at Neolithic pottery sites in central China, while in 1927 scientific excavation began at the site of the late Shang royal tombs at Anyang (c.1300–1050 BC). Although traditional painting continued to flourish, the need for teachers of the more useful Western methods grew rapidly, leading to the founding of the first Western-style art schools in Nanjing, Shanghai and Hangzhou. In Canton the Lingnan pai (Southern School) promoted a modernized form of traditional painting modelled on the Japanese Nihonga CHINA 1900-2000 140˚130˚120˚110˚100˚90˚ 50˚ 40˚ 30˚ 20˚ A A A A A A A A A A A A A A A AA A A A A A A A A A A A A A A Zhengzhou Kaifeng Chengdu Luoyang Mukden Shenyang Jinzhou Weifang Seoul Pyongyang Yuanling Communist base 1929-33 Guiyang Macao to Europe Anshun Harbin Ulan Bator Changchun Jilin Beijing ShanghaiSuzhou Lanzhou Hong Kong Chongqing Kunming Changsha Taipei Xi‘an Guilin Xiamen (Amoy) Guangzhou (Canton) Yan‘an Nanjing Hangzhou Zhejiang Provincial Museum, 1929 Palace Museum, 1924 Palace Museum, 1925 Sichuan Provincial Museum, 1940 Weijang Municipal Museum, 1948 West China Union University Museum, 1939 Henan Provincial Museum, 1927 Shaanxi Provincial Museum, 1938 Nanjing Museum, 1933 Maijishan Yungang Dunhuang Longmen Tianlong Shan Tai Shan Hua Shan Jingcheng Shan Emei Shan Huang Shan Zhoukoudian (Peking man) Anyang Banshan Machang Shouzhou Majiayao Piziwo Longshan Yinan Li Yu Jincun Luolang Liangzhu Hemudu Yangshao M A N C H U R I A M O N G O L I A C H I N A KOREA T I B E T BURMA FRENCH INDO-CHINA TAIWAN U S S R J A P A N G O B I D E S E R T Q I L I A N S H A N YIN SHAN NAN LING K U N L U N M T S YellowRiver Yangtze Yuan Jiang GreatW all S E A O F J A PA N S O U T H C H I N A S E A E A S T C H I NA S E A YELLOW SEA GULF OF TONGKING N 0 400 miles 0 600 kms 1 Pre-Communist Art in 20th century China journey of Communist party and armies 1929-33 the Long March, Oct 1934-35 artists travelling to Europe 1920-37 artists travelling to Japan 1916-37 route taken by National Academy, Beijing and Hangzhou Academy to west China during World War II, and travels of individual artists route taken by Palace Museum treasures evacuated during World War II and in 1948 major cities museums founded pre-1949 archaeological sites sacred mountains Buddhist cave shrines A 1 THE GREAT REVOLUTIONARY movements and developments of the early decades of the twentieth century took place in the big cities and coastal areas from which new styles in architecture, and new movements in the arts, spread into the interior. This era saw the founding of the first public collections of art in China, beginning with the National Palace Museum in Beijing (1925). This map also shows how artists travelled abroad to study, how Communism travelled to Yan’an, and the removal of the former imperial art collection to west China and eventually to Taiwan. HUANG BINHONG (1864–1955), A Ferry in Sichuan, ink and colour on paper, 1948. Huang Binhong was a leading member of the traditional school of scholarly landscape painting which was revived in the twentieth century. JAPAN AND KOREA 1900-2000 309 1960s and 1970s, but the south gradually allowed more freedom of expression and experimentation in the arts. Both Japanese and South Korean artists were greatly affected by outside cultures, especially – because of the presence of military forces from the USA – by American culture. After the Second World War many young Japanese architects and artists pursued graduate studies abroad, especially in the USA, and began careers documented by the international press. MATERIALS AND TECHNIQUES In both Japan and Korea, Western construction techniques and materials were increasingly adopted throughout the twentieth century. The lightweight wooden framing and easily movable wall panels of traditional one-storey residential buildings in both countries have been replaced by concrete and steel multilevel construction with Western-style rooms and furnishings. The staging of the 1964 Tokyo Olympics was a significant moment for the revitalized city, with several strikingly beautiful new sports facilities designed by Kenzo Tange (1913–) and his studio. This group of young architects developed the idea of ‘metabolism’, believing that buildings must be considered as organic forms that expand and contract according to functional needs. In the early twentieth century, Nihonga (Japanese painting) and yoga (Western painting) were taught in governmentsponsored art schools in Tokyo and Kyoto. Nihonga, begun in the last decades of the nineteenth century, used traditional Japanese materials (ink and natural pigments on silk or paper) and formats (folding screens, hanging scrolls and hand-scrolls), but the subject matter was not limited to pre-twentiethcentury topics. Japanese artists also studied abroad and had access to publications about Western art. As a result they followed the various changes in modern European and American painting materials and techniques. There was a deliberate revival of Korean ink painting in the early twentieth century and a strong interest in folk-painting styles and materials. In both Japan and Korea, printmaking was influenced by the introduction of lithography, silk screening and other Western techniques, although artists in the post-war period had a renewed interest in Ch‘angdok Palace 15th-c royal palace complex; rebuilt 17th-19th c Kyongbok Palace 14th-c royal palace complex; rebuilt 20th c. Site of Japanese governor-general’s headquarters (d.1995) Olympic Park 1988 Olympic pavilions with sculpture park and remains of 5th-c Mongch’on Fortress Toksu Palace 16th-c royal palace complex; rebuilt 20th c Seoul sports complex Piwon South Gate Ch‘anggyong Palace 12th-c royal palace complex; rebuilt 20th c Chongye-sa 12th-c temple complex for Korea’s largest Budddhist sect; exemplifies traditional Korean wooden architectural styles; shops and studios for traditional Buddhist arts and alter fittings Namsan Park site of National Theatre and preserved traditional houses Sinch’on area comprises several universities, including Hong-ik University, noted for its arts school, Yonsei University, and Ewha Women’s University with its art programmes Chongmyo Shrine ancestral shrine to Choson dynasty kings; UNESCO World Cultural Heritage site Han-gang 2 Seoul in the 20th Century traditional woodblock printing. Artists often used handmade papers to distinguish their work from Western prints. The Japanese-American artist Isamu Noguchi (1904–88) proved to be an important link between modern abstract sculpture and Japanese three-dimensional arts. Multimedia installation artworks, such as those by the South Korean video artist Nam June Paik (1932–), have captured world attention. The government often sponsored North Korean sculptors to create large-scale public monuments celebrating the achievements of Communism. In the areas of photography and film, both Japan and Korea initially followed Western models. Japan’s success in the manufacture of cameras and electronics in the next few decades would also identify Japanese film artists as significant contributors to modern art internationally, and in the post-war era Japanese filmmakers developed worldwide audiences for their often evocative imagery. Directors like Akira Kurosawa (1910–98) were internationally respected and emulated. Television developed quickly in Japan, both as a new technology for export and in programming: samurai films and science fiction thrillers (like the Godzilla films) were seen worldwide in the 1960s–80s, and manga (cartoon) characters dominated international markets in the 1980s and 1990s. While traditional Japanese textiles were popular in the USA and Europe, especially in haute couture circles, Japanese fashion designers like Issey Miyake and Hanae Mori created new shapes and developed new fabrics that made headlines. In both countries, government encouragement of traditional arts has helped 2 FOLLOWING THE JAPANESE OCCUPATION of Korea in 1910, areas of Seoul were bulldozed for the construction of office buildings and residences for the occupation authorities. The enormous Beaux Arts style Japanese government headquarters building became a symbol of this imposed ‘modernization’ and was knocked down in 1995 as a demonstration of Korea’s cultural independence from Japan. The 1988 Seoul Olympics was an important moment culturally for the South Koreans, as their nation’s heritage and potential were recognized internationally. preserve many textile and costume making techniques, and has supported traditional performers (music, dance and theatre) who use such clothing and accessories. ART AND SOCIETY In Japan, both the military and industry were headquartered in Tokyo, and this city became the hub for modern art production and sales. Several wealthy Japanese businessmen formed important collections of both contemporary art and historical pieces, and these collections would later become the core of many small private museums in the Tokyo and Osaka areas. The economic boom in Japan during the 1970s and 1980s resulted in extraordinary public and private displays of support for the arts. Many brand-new prefectural museums were built to display travelling exhibitions of Japanese and foreign artists, and major department stores dedicated whole floors to the staging of art events. When the ‘bubble economy’ burst in the early 1990s, financial support for the arts was badly affected. Nevertheless, Japanese architects garnered major commissions to design important buildings outside Japan, and Japanese films and videos reached a worldwide audience. Korean ceramics, both traditional and contemporary, are collected worldwide, and many museums in Europe and America have created separate galleries to feature Korean antiquities. Korean arts are increasingly seen as distinctive and worthy of special consideration. North Korea has remained isolated from the international arts community, and internal economic problems in the late twentieth century restricted both public and private support of the arts. GRANDMOTHER by O YUN (1946–85), woodblock on paper. The anguish felt by many Koreans after a half century of war, territorial occupation and rapid modernization is vividly expressed in this print by O Yun, who was a leading member of the People’s Art Protest Movement in the 1980s that sought both to revive traditional Korean arts and crafts and to comment on contemporary social issues. The bold outlines and flat colours suggest the personal strength and dignity of this woman who has suffered and survived the political and cultural transformations of her country. ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 308 caused a gradual reduction in support for the arts, especially those not linked in some way to the increasing sense of nationalism. As military efforts overseas expanded, Japanese and Korean artists were placed under greater and greater control. In the final years of World War II Japan was devastated but recovered industrial strength by the 1960s. Korea had barely emerged from the war when the country was divided and then immersed in the Korean War, which further decimated the population and its resources. Although a truce was signed in 1953, the peninsula is still partitioned, and the economic ‘miracle’ of South Korea has not been matched by North Korea. Both governments exerted strict controls over society and the arts in the JAPAN AND KOREA 1900-2000 NAKATANI TSURU DRESSING BY HASHIGUCHI GOYO (1880–1921). Modern Japanese print artists like Goyo studied both Western art and traditional ukiyo-e and then combined features from each to create distinctive new images. In this portrait of a specific, identified woman rather than an idealized anonymous female, Goyo subtly combines the three-dimensionality of European figure painting with a flatness of patterns and lines in her sheer silk robe, which displays an understanding of eighteenth-century prints designed by Utamaro. 150˚145˚140˚135˚130˚125˚120˚115˚110˚ 25˚ 30˚ 40˚ 35˚ S S S S S S S SG G G Yokohama Sendai Hachinohe KushiroSapporo Hitachi Nagaoka Toyama Tokyo Osaka Fukuoka Kitakyushu Nagoya Kyoto Kobe Kanazawa Hiroshima Pusan Kwangju Inch’on Seoul Kyongju KWANGJU-GUN Pyongyang Ch’ongjin Yellow River Ya ngtze P A C I F I C O C E A N S E A O F J A P A N TONGJOSON- MAN SEA OF OKHOTSK KOREA BAY Y E L L O W S E A E A S T C H I N A S E A KOREA STRAI T TAIWAN HOKKAIDO HONSHU SHIKOKU KYUSHU RY U K Y U I SLA N D S C H I N A NORTH KOREA SOUTH KOREA JAPAN RUSSIAN FEDERATION political and artistic exchange Between N. Korea/Russian Federation/China late 20th-century political and artistic exchange between Japan/USA/Europe economic and artistic exchange between Japan, Taiwan and S Asia direct trade between Japan and China from late 20th century early 20th-century artistic and political exchange between Japan and China through Korea and Manchuria 1 Twentieth-Century Japan and Korea economic/political/cultural exchange centre for arts education contemporary arts production/export traditional arts/export ceramics silk paper paintings lacquerware public/private musuems art galleries movie and TV industry traditional performing arts (Kabuki/No/puppet theatre) major port major industrial centre car manufacture chemicals engineering iron and steel shipbuilding textiles hi-tech research and developmentN 0 0 250 miles 350 kms S G JAPANESE AND KOREAN ARTISTS in the twentieth century responded to modernization and imperialism, to various powerful outside influences, to strong traditions from within their cultures, and to many decades of warfare. A TURBULENT CENTURY The first half of the twentieth century was overshadowed by the rise of Japanese militarism and by the social disruptions caused by Japanese imperialism in Asia and the South Pacific. In 1910 Japan annexed Korea and tried to impose its own culture on the Koreans. In the 1930s, the Japanese government’s increasing focus on militarization and colonial expansion in Manchuria, China and South Asia 1 BY THE END OF THE TWENTIETH CENTURY, Japan and South Korea had become important industrial nations with modern urban centres, numerous public and private art museums, important public and private art collections and vigorous artistic communities. North Korea was influenced by artistic styles developed in the Soviet Union, particularly in monumental works of architecture, sculpture and painting designed to celebrate the communist government’s policies and personalities. SOUTHEAST ASIA 1900–2000 311 end in itself, not necessarily connected to religious beliefs. Many artists began to produce items – which once would have been used solely for ritual purposes – purely for commercial gain. Western influence was discernible in many areas, but traditional styles were still the most popular. Buddha images continued to emulate earlier models, although Western naturalism can be seen in some of the Ratnakosin (Bangkok) Buddha images, which otherwise seek to recreate the stylized images of the Sukhothai period. In many parts of the region there was now a flourishing trade in small carvings, handicrafts and textiles, all objects which are easily portable. Many objects such as With the eventual recovery from war there was little money available for restoration, and it was not until the latter part of the century that joint restoration programmes were conducted between the Southeast Asian countries and international organizations. In 1973 a ten-year programme, with funding from the government, private organizations and UNESCO, was undertaken at Borobudur in central Java. This great monument was gradually collapsing due to water seepage from within the hill on which it was built. The stupa was dismantled and reassembled stone by stone, the galleries were strengthened and the reliefs cleaned. The area was turned into a national park, and now attracts thousands of visitors from all over the world. Other major sites throughout Southeast Asia were restored from the 1970s to the 1990s, and now attract local and foreign visitors. NEW ARTISTIC TRADITIONS Carving and painting had previously been for religious or ritual purposes. Originality was not valued and had little meaning. However, the West was to profoundly influence this aspect of art. An important influence on the art of Bali, which was to become famous for its painting tradition, was the residency of Walter Spies and Rudolf Bonnet, European artists who settled on the island in the 1920s and introduced materials and ideas which influenced young artists there to paint in a more expressionist manner, free from the constraints of earlier rigid conventions. In countries such as Burma and Vietnam the fall of the monarchy had led to a lack of sponsorship of the arts. Many of the arts had fallen into decline, but the advent of largescale tourism in the region during the second half of the twentieth century caused major changes both in production and approach to the arts. There was a new demand for crafts such as wood carving, lacquerware and painting, and creativity began to be seen as an Singaraja Beratan Banguning Luhur Ululn Danu Jati PujungTegallatang Tampaksiring Besakih Goa Lawah Ulu Watu Tirta Empul Bangli Sideman Budakling Tenganan Kamason Ubud TohpatiBelayn Bedulu Mas Mengwi Penarukun Pejaton Pataen Krambitan Taman Ayun Tanah Lot Celuk Denpasar Gianyar Bono Tihingan Batuan Blahbatuh Batubulan Puaya Ubung Sawan BA L I S E A S E L A T L O M B O K S E L A T BA L I J E M B R A N A NUSA PENIDA stone carving jewellery B A L I N 0 0 30 miles 40 kms 2 The Arts and Crafts of Bali temple silver workshops gold workshops ikat cloth weaving ceramics wood carving gamelan instruments painting basketry other 2 THE TINY ISLAND OF BALI has seen an explosion of creative talent over the last hundred years. In the fields of music, dance, painting, wood carving, weaving and metalwork, its originality is unrivalled, and the success of the tourist trade has meant that examples of Balinese work are found worldwide. Unlike craftsmen in some other areas who continue to produce traditional work, Balinese craftsmen are innovative, incorporating ideas and stylistic influences from other cultures, yet they retain a distinctively Balinese style. MALAY WALL HANGING, by Kelvin Chap Kok Leong. This work is a synthesis of the modern and the traditional in that the media used are western in inspiration, but the themes and images – the Iban culture of Sarawak – are of traditional society, often seen to be in conflict with Western ideology. The field of painting is developing rapidly in Southeast Asia. In contrast to earlier times, the identity of the artist is known, and the subject matter is usually secular rather than religious. Western influence was strong from the start of the century but a return to Asian roots began to manifest itself by the mid-1900s. lacquerware, which can take months to produce, showed a decrease in quality; however, fine pieces were also being made in smaller numbers, usually to order. Textile production now made use of synthetic rather than vegetable dyes. Although traditional motifs were still used, most cloth was not of such a fine finish as in former days, when a garment might have taken months to complete; however, alongside this commercial production of objects the traditional methods continued on items that would be used in a sacred/ritual context. Architecturally, the ability to blend cultural styles continued in the twentieth century. In several places, such as Papua New Guinea and Sumatra, government buildings or museums have been built in the distinctive traditional style but on a larger scale. Householders continue to build in the traditional style but many find it cheaper to roof their houses with corrugated iron rather than thatched or woven rattan roofs. The major change in creativity within the region over the course of the century is that artists have become conscious of themselves as a distinct group. Their work has contributed enormously to the economy of Southeast Asia. ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 310 THE TWENTIETH CENTURY was a time of great political and social change in Southeast Asia. After a long period of Western encroachment and colonial rule, the outbreak of the Second World War brought a growing awareness that the Western nations could be defeated. After the war, Independence movements sprang up throughout Southeast Asia. The pattern of government established over the previous two hundred years crumbled, and the colonial powers were gradually forced into granting independence. The independence struggle was reflected in literature, painting and theatre. PRESERVING THE PAST The disruptions of this period meant that work on artefacts and on the great ‘lost’ cities of Southeast Asia was abruptly halted. The French, in particular, had undertaken extensive research into the great city of Angkor in Cambodia, and into the sculpture of the period, but they were forced to abandon this work, and for a long period no local archaeologists took their place. World War II, followed by the Vietnam War and the ensuing Cambodian holocaust, meant that the field of art was neglected. The systematic identification of sculpture and temples, and their conservation, ceased, and the humid conditions of the region caused deterioration of temples and sculpture. SOUTHEAST ASIA 1900-2000 20° 90° 100° 110° 120° 130° 10° 0° T T T T T T T T Bangkok Rat Buri Phimai Pattaya Ayutthaya Nakhon Ratchasima (Korat) Sukhothai Chanthaburi Gan Tho Preah Vihear Angkor Sawankhalok Malacca Padang Bengkulu Bukittinggi Medan (Atjeh) Banda Aceh Palembang Surabaya Surakarta (Solo) Banjarmasin Ujung Pandang (Macassar) Watensoppeng Rantepao Samarinda Pontianak Kuching Kota Kinabalu (Jesselton) Bandar Seri Begawan Kalumpang Bada Yogyakarta (Jogjakarta)Borobudur Prambanan Bandung Jakarta (Batavia) Gresik Kendari Agats George Town Phnom Penh Vientiane Chiengmai Chiang Rai Moulmein Haiphong Bassein Pagan Rangoon Myohaung Myitkyina Lashio Pegu MandalaySagaing Luang Prabang Sam Neua Hanoi Da Nang Ho Chi Minh City (Saigon) Hué Xieng Khouang Vinh Manila Baguio Naga Tacloban Butuan Zamboanga Cebu Davao Terengganu Kota Bahru Songkhla Kuala Lumpur Singapore S U M A T R A B O R N E O CELEBES (SULAWESI) I N D O N E S I A CAMBODIA THAILAND C H I N A MALAYSIA S ARA W AK M O LUCCAS J A V A SENIPPILI H P BURMA LAOS N E W G U I N E A A U S T R A L I A VIETNAM BALI BURU LOMBOK NDAO FLORES SUMBA TIMOR IRIAN JAYA BUTUNG CERAM BASILAN HALMAHERA MINDANAO LUZON HAINAN CEBU SAMAR NEGROS SABAHBRUNEI SUMBAWA MADURA KO SAMUI KO PHUKET NIAS KELANTAN YUNNAN PLATEAU ChaoPhraya (Menam) Re d River Salween Lake Toba Tonle Sap I N D I A N O C E A N MALAY PENINSULA S O U T H C H I N A S E A GULF OF TONGKING GULF OF THAILAND C E L E B E S S E A S U L U S E A PHILIPPINES SEA PA C I F I C O C E A N ANDAMAN SEA S TRAIT OF M ALACCA FLORES SEA TIMOR SEA BANDA SEA JAVA SEA ARAFURA SEA shadow puppets shadow puppets bark cloth boatbuilding fine basketry fine basketry tattooing and beadwork pottery, basketware furniture gold and silver jewellery water puppets umbrella workshops umbrella making & hill tribe handicrafts paper making marionette making N 0 0 400 miles 600 kms 1 The Arts and Crafts of Southeast Asia ancient religious site important tourist destination arts and crafts: silverware gold workshop metalwork textiles silk weaving stone carving wood carving lacquerware ceramics painting other crafts (specified) batik T 1 A GRADUAL DECLINE in the production of many crafts occurred during the first half of the twentieth century, but the rise of tourism after the Second World War brought about a renewal of artistic production, and many old crafts were saved from extinction. Although tourism has brought problems to the region, it has done much to revitalize its creative life. GRANARIES, TANA TORAJALAND, west Sulawesi. Buildings such as this exemplify the sweeping saddle-backed roof formations of Southeast Asia. The houses, which are raised on stilts, have a threefold symbolism: the area beneath the house symbolizes the underworld, the living area of the house is the world of men and the roof area represents the realm of the heavens. THE PACIFIC 1900–2000 313 one of the major Pacific powers for international relations and defence. Only France and the United States have maintained colonies in the Pacific. Papua New Guinea, with more than 4 million, people and Fiji, with nearly 1 million, are clearly the largest and most important of these newly independent states. ART AND COLONIALISM During the twentieth century art throughout the Pacific was profoundly affected by the presence of these foreigners, and in each archipelago artists experienced a different impact from the interests and desires of their colonial elites. Modernization and missionaries led villagers to abandon customary religions and the art that so often accompanied them. Traders, curio collectors and missionaries bought up most of the major carved wooden figures that had previously been so central in Polynesian religions. Ironically, the introduction of steel tools in the nineteenth and early twentieth centuries, led to an increased production of art early on, allowing carvers to elaborate on detail and motifs that were difficult with traditional stone, bone and shell tools. The vast majority of objects in museum collections from Melanesia, for example, were made after the introduction of steel. But between the World Wars production of traditional art in most areas of the Pacific was in decline, being replaced in some areas by production of art solely for overseas visitors and markets. These carved, painted, plaited, woven or netted objects began to incorporate imported media, especially paints, beads, and yarns, as well as increasingly realistic motifs that foreigners could easily recognize and appreciate. The carving that did persist in twentieth-century Polynesia was largely a nostalgic reinterpretation of traditional styles, made for sale to international travellers. Production of bark cloth (tapa) continued into the twentieth century and flourished in Samoa, Tonga, Fiji and Hawaii. In Tonga and Fiji tapa cloths with intricate designs were used at royal ceremonies, such as weddings. During the same period tapa also took on many innovative design elements and motifs that islanders had obtained from contact with Europeans and natives from other island groups. Necklaces of shell and indigenous beads, together with grass skirts, became emblematic of the sexual freedom that Western visitors associated with the Polynesian islands. TRADITIONAL ART COLLECTIONS Traditional art continued to flourish in New Guinea and many of the Melanesian Islands until the 1920s. This was the period when most European, Australian and American museums built up huge collections of Melanesian art, by sending out anthropological expeditions to make field collections or by purchasing collections from traders, missionaries and government officers living in various parts of 10° 5° 0° 150°145°140°135°130° Manokwari Port Moresby Lae Madang Goroka Wabag Hoskins Kokopo Jayapura Biak Agats Lake Murray SOLOMON SEA C O R A L S E A Gulf of Papua BISMARCK ARCHIPELAGO Geelvink Bay Torres Strait Humboldt Bay Puncak Trikora (Mt. Wilhelmina) OW EN STANLEY RA. M A S S I M PA P U A N E W G U I N E A IRIAN JAYA NEW IRELAND NEW BRITAIN SCHOUTEN IS. Marind Anim Asmat Dani Mimika Lake Sentani Berlinhafen Finschhafen Arawe Islands Kerepuna Motu Paniai National Museum & Art Gallery 1954 Institute of Papua New Guinea Studies 1974 Faculty of Creative Arts, University of Papua New Guinea J.K. McCarthy Museum Kundiawa Women’s Cultural Centre West New Britain Cultural Centre University of Technology Universitas Cenderawasih Museum 1973 Museum Negeri Irian Jaya 1982 Jayapura Museum Cenderawasih Museum East New Britain Cultural CentreMadang Museum and Cultural Bureau 1981 Western Highlands Cultural Centre Enga Cultural Centre Baliem Valley Palimo Museum Asmat Museum of Culture and Progress 1973 Sulka Bainings Aua (Durour Island) Wuvulu (Matty Island) HERMIT ISLANDS NUMFOR BIAK KIRIWINA (TROBRIAND IS.) SIASSI ISLANDS ADMIRALTY ISLANDS Huon Gulf Orokaiva Sepik River (Kaiserin Augusta) Ramu River Madang (Fredrich Wilhelmsafen) N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms Changing 20th-Century Art Production in New Guinea important art-producing areas in 1910 important art-producing areas, c. 1975 Art products: carvings bowls pottery string bags wickerwork bark cloth necklaces Cultural institutions: museums art gallery cultural centre university or institute 2 NATIONAL MUSEUM AND ART GALLERY, Port Moresby, Papua New Guinea, 1974. The facade was designed by the New Ireland artist, David Lasisi, its mural executed by students of the National Arts School. Buildings like this aim to express bung wantaim, pidgin for ‘a true coming together’, here symbolized by cooperation and mixing of styles by artists from different regions, in celebration of the multicultural richness of Papua New Guinea, a more diverse nation than any other in the Pacific. 2 DESPITE COLONIAL INFLUENCE traditional art flourished in New Guinea until the 1920s. Art from New Guinea was the focus for many European collections of Pacific art. The earliest collections from New Guinea and Melanesia emphasized carved clubs, spears, shields and other weapons, but collectors soon noticed the remarkable variety of wood, bark cloth and wickerwork masks, carved figures, ancestor boards, wooden bowls and ornaments made of shell. Since the 1960s the rise of tourism in Papua New Guinea has had a profound impact on art production as visitors have demanded ‘traditional’ art forms using traditional materials and pigments. this vast region. The Museum für Volkerkunde in Berlin assembled the largest collection from Melanesia, emphasizing material from its colony, German New Guinea, followed closely by Chicago’s Field Museum of Natural History and Sydney’s Australian Museum, both of which had much broader general collections. Within the Pacific region, only the Bernice P. Bishop Museum in Honolulu, the Fiji Museum in Suva and the Territorial Museum of New Caledonia contain early Pacific collections, each emphasizing collections from their own subregions. There are also Pacific collections in New Zealand: in the National Museum in Wellington and the Auckland Museum. In the latter half of the twentieth century, as new countries and self-governing states have sought to assert a national identity, they have established museums and cultural centres as ways of promoting the arts. They have also sought to promote performances of customary dances. Among the most important of these are the National Museum and Art Gallery in Port Moresby and the Tjibaou Cultural Centre in Nouméa. Both institutions have made use of innovative architecture that drew on indigenous house forms. NEW DIRECTIONS Around the 1960s, new artistic movements began to emerge in many Pacific Island countries. Centred on the growing cities, a new group of contemporary artists emerged, using innovative media, styles and forms. In Papua New Guinea, contemporary artists began painting on canvas in acrylics, tempera or oil. Some artists have begun sculptures that elaborate on traditional pottery, while others have begun sculpting in metals. Similar movements are present in most urban centres in the Pacific as well as in cities in New Zealand and Australia, where Pacific Islanders had migrated. Contemporary artists throughout the Pacific have incorporated traditional elements into their art at the same time that they have made use of modern themes, motifs and situations to react to their changing social conditions. New Zealand, in particular, has played an important role in the development of contemporary Polynesian art by bringing together thousands of Pacific Islanders from other islands who now live in Auckland, Wellington, Hamilton and other New Zealand cities. Since 1972 Pacific Island states have participated in eight South Pacific Festivals of Art, each in a different Pacific country, with participation from more than twenty Pacific Island countries which send dance troops, artists and representatives from museums and cultural centres. These festivals have encouraged the preservation of traditional art forms as emblems of national and cultural identity, while simultaneously offering opportunities for islanders to innovate by drawing on themes from other Pacific countries. ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 312 POLITICALLY, BY 1900 the inhabited archipelagos in the Pacific had been divided up as colonies or protectorates controlled by one or another of the major European powers, as well as the United States. Several colonies, such as New Caledonia, Fiji and Samoa, had become important centres for a plantation economy and attracted significant European settlement. Others, like the tiny coconut-rich Micronesian islands of the Marianas, the Carolines, and the Marshalls were economically useful colonial possessions because of products such as copra or phosphate. Still others, such as New Guinea, the Solomon Islands and the New Hebrides, were inhabited by native peoples who fiercely resisted any form of European exploitation. For these Melanesian islands the only economic product they seemed to offer was human labour for plantations and sugar-cane fields in Australia, leading to slave raids by European ‘blackbirding’ ships. In the post-war period all but the smallest island groups became either independent nations or self-governing states that relied on THE PACIFIC 1900-2000 A DIALOGUE BETWEEN TRADITION AND CHANGE. A member of the Pacific Sisters, a collective of performance artists based in Auckland, New Zealand, appearing at the Seventh Pacific Festival of Art, Western Samoa, 1996. The costumes worn by the Sisters juxtapose tapa (bark cloth) and raffia with coconut-shell bras, lycra and polyester. This playful body ornament incorporates longestablished meanings, helping to recreate the spirit of the Polynesian legends that the Sisters frequently perform. 1 IN THE POST-WAR PERIOD the vast majority of the Pacific islands gained independence from colonial overlords, or achieved self- government. In nearly all of the new Pacific Island countries and self-governing states, governments have seen the local production of art as playing an important role in creating new national identities, both for their own peoples and for outsiders. Regular festivals of Pacific art have also promoted the preservation of traditional art. 135˚ 135˚ 120˚150˚ 150˚165˚ 165˚180˚ 45˚ 30˚ 15˚ 0˚ 15˚ 30˚ Tropic of Capricorn Tropic of Cancer Com Com Com Com Com Com Com Com Com Com Adm Adm Adm Adm Adm Adm Adm Adm Adm S-G S-G S-G IND IND IND IND IND IND IND IND IND IND IND IND IND IND IND Honiara Port-Vila Pago Pago Honolulu Townsville 1988 Auckland Hamilton Wellington Suva 1972 Rotorua 1976 Port Moresby 1980 Rarotonga 1992 Apia 1996 Nouméa 2000 S O U T H P A C I F I C O C E A N N O R T H PA C I F I C O C E A N CORAL SEA ARAFURA SEA SOLOMON IS. Kiribati (Gilbert Islands) Tokelau (Union Islands) 1877 Ellice Island 1877 1887 New Hebrides Northern Mariana Islands 1899 Galapagos Islands 1832 (Ecuadorian possession) M E L A N E S I A POLY N E S I A M I C R O N E S IA EASTER ISLAND 1888 Marquesas 1842 Tuvalu LINE ISLANDS claimed by Britain and USA COOK ISLANDS 1888 PITCAIRN ISLANDS 1898 Tonga 1900 Caroline Islands 1899 HAWAIIAN ISLANDS 1898 AM. SAMOASAMOA AUSTRALIA U S A IRIAN JAYA PAPUA NEW GUINEA Dutch New Guinea 1828 1884 NEW ZEALAND New Caledonia 1853 Fiji 1874 PHOENIX ISLANDS claimed by Britain and USA Norfolk Island 1788 Tahiti 1842 1900 1985 Vanuatu Nauru Island 1888 Guam Marshall Islands 1885 Wallis 1842 Futuna 1888 left commonwealth 1987 Palau FEDERATED STATES OF MICRONESIA German New Guinea Papua to Los Angeles to San Francisco 1840 1980 1970 1979 transferred to New Zealand 1925 1970 1975 1975 1978 1979 1978 1962 1968 19941994 1898 1965 1974 1986 ceded by USA to Kiribati, Tuvalu & Cook Islands, 1979-80 ceded to Kiribati, 1979 Tuamotu Archipelago 1880 Niue 1900 Austral Islands 1842 18 1 6 7 8 9 10 12 34 13 19 20 21 22 26 32 33 29 28 3031 27 25 23 24 17 1415 16 11 5 4 3 2 35 36 37 N 0 0 1200 miles 1800 kms 1 Port Moresby National Museum & Art Gallery 1954 2 Goroka J.K. McCarthy Museum 3 Honiara Solomon Islands National Museum 1969 4 Honiara National Art Gallery & Cultural Centre 5 Port-Vila Vanuatu Cultural Centre & National Museum 1959 6 Suva Fiji Museum 1904 7 Suva Indian Cultural Centre 8 Levuka Museum and Library 9 Nouméa Musée Territorial de Nouvelle-Caledonie 1971 10 Nouméa Tjibaou Cultural Centre 1998 11 Nouméa Musée de la Histoire Maritime de Nouvelle-Caledonie 12 Bourail Historical Museum 13 Pago Pago Jean P. Haydon Museum 1970 14 Apia National Museum & Cultural Centre 1984 15 Apia Robert Louis Stevenson Museum 1994 16 Tarawa Kiribati National Cultural Centre & Museum 17 Panaauia Musée des Iles Tahiti 1974 18 Papeari Paul Gauguin Museum 1965 19 Alofi Huaniaki Cultural Centre, National Museum and Open Theatre 20 Rarotonga Sir Geoffrey Henry National Cultural Centre 1992 21 Cook Islands National Art Gallery 22 Rarotonga Cook Islands National Museum 23 Nuku'alofa Tonga National Museum 24 Nuku'alofa Tupou College Museum 25 Easter Island Rapa Nui Museum and Cultural Centre 1973 26 Koror National Museum of Belau 1955 27 Tolfol Kosrae State Museum 28 Kolonia Pohnpei Lidorkini Museum 29 Kolonia Pohnpei Maritime Museum 30 Majuro Alele Museum 1981 31 Kwajalein Cultural Centre 32 Hagåtña (Agana) Guam Museum 33 Saipan Northern Mariana Islands Museum of History and Culture 1981 34 Norfolk Islands Integrated Museum 35 La'ie Polynesian Cultural Centre 1963 36 Honolulu Bernice Pauahi Bishop Museum 1889 37 Manoa Hawaiian Cultural Centre 1 Major Cultural Centres of the Pacific Colonial possessions, with dates of acquisition (Historical names are shown in italics) Dutch German British British protectorates IND S-G Adm Com Changing political status in the 20th century independence, with date self-government, with date administration, with date member of the British Commonwealth main routes of Pacific migration Cultural and artistic centres museum cultural centre art gallery main urban centres for production of contemporary Pacific art South Pacific Festivals of Art Australian French American Chilean 166˚ 168˚ 170˚ 172˚ 174˚ 176˚ 178˚ 180˚ 46˚ 44˚ 42˚ 40˚ 38˚ 36˚ Napier G G G rebuilt in Art Deco style (1932-3) Christchurch Dunedin Wellington Lower Hutt Palmerston North Rotorua Aniwaniwa Auckland Hamilton New Plymouth SO U TH ER N A LPS N O R T H I S L A N D S O U T H I S L A N D STEWART I. PA C I F I C O C E A N TA S M A N S E A C O OKSTRA IT Te Ao Marama exhibition of seven Maori artists tour Australia (1986) Robert Mcdougall Gallery (1932) New Zealand Maori Culture and the Contemporary Scene (1966) first exhibition of Maori Artists and Writers Society/Nga Puna Waihanga (1976) Cross- Currents exhibition (1991) 1 2 3 4 Dowse Art Gallery (1971) Manawatu Art Gallery (1977) Dorset Street Flats (1956, Warren) N 0 0 200 miles 300 kms 2 - Govett-Brewster Art Gallery (1970) - Borrowing and Belonging exhibition, and The Raising of the Noxious answering exhibition (1999) 3 - Colin McCahon’s Urewera Mural stolen from Te Urewera National Park Visitor Centre (1997): rehung in Visitor Centre (2000) 4 - National Art Gallery of New Zealand (1936) - Kohia Ko Taikaka Anake exhibition of contemporary Maori art (1990) - Museum of New Zealand/ Te Papa Tongarewa (1998) (1994-8, JASMAX Architects) - Contemporary Painting in New Zealand at Commonwealth Institute, London (1965) - Te Maori exhibition to USA galleries (1984) - Colin McCahon’s exhibition I Will Need Words in Sydney, Edinburgh (1984) - Pacific Parallels exhibition to seven USA galleries (1991-92) - Cultural Safety exhibition in Frankfurt (1995) - Massey House (1952-7, Plischke) G G 1 -Urewera Mural restored (1998); exhibited (1999) - Maori portraits by Gottfried Lindauer at St Louis World Fair (1904) - Arts Building, University of Auckland (1921-5, Lippincott) AUSTRALIA AND NEW ZEALAND 1900–2000 315 Aborigine to be ‘a relic of the early childhood of mankind left stranded’. He could not see that, in agreeing to paint bark paintings to order, these Aboriginal artists demonstrated that they were not frozen in time, but willing to respond to new cultural circumstances. Uncertain of their own national identity, white antipodean artists turned to indigenous culture for inspiration. In Australia Preston exhorted her fellow artists to ‘Be Aboriginal’. Beginning with Jessie Traill in 1928, white artists visited remote Aboriginal communities in central Australia – a region unfamiliar to citybased Australians – and were influenced by the stark landscape and the rich indigenous culture. Initially, Aboriginal motifs were respected in much the same way as the ‘primitive’ elements that had informed European Modernism earlier in the century. Later, they were used indiscriminately and carelessly as decoration, so that by the 1950s pseudoAboriginal ornamentation and furnishings overwhelmed Australian suburbia. This commercialization occurred without the collaboration of the Aboriginal originators of these designs and without acknowledgement of the cultural misappropriation involved. There were, however, some reverse benefits from this contact between indigenous and nonindigenous artists. Albert Namatjira, an Arrenrte resident of the Hermannsburg Lutheran mission, learned watercolour technique from the visitors. His idiosyncratic depictions of his own country were dismissed at the time as poor attempts at copying the Western landscape paradigm, but have since been critically rehabilitated as sophisticated reworkings of Aboriginal tradition. In the Kimberley district the monumental Wandjina figures characteristic of the region were transferred from rock faces to small bark panels for the first time in the 1930s, producing paintings that were both accessible and collectable. 2 WHILE ART SCHOOL-TRAINED Maori artists combined Maori and Western (Pakeha) traditions to produce paintings that negotiated the cultural gap with wit and self-reflection, Maori elders maintained control over the more profound elements of their visual culture, encouraging a resurgence of traditional arts. New Zealand’s biculturalism, which became official policy in 1990, was exemplified in 1998 by the opening of the Museum of New Zealand/Te Papa Tongarewa. Another significant innovation occurred in central Australia, where Aboriginal elders painted The Honey Ant Dreaming – sacred/secret knowledge, traditionally inscribed in ephemeral sand-paintings – as a mural on the external walls of the Papunya school in 1971. By the 1980s, Papunya artists were painting secularized versions of their dreamings with acrylic pigments on canvas or composition board, and the northwestern bark painters had extended their art practice to non-traditional screen prints and fabric panels. These Aboriginal artists of central and northern Australia retained the authenticity of their culture while altering its material base. Their work commercially overshadowed the art COLIN MCCAHON, Urewera Mural, 1975, acrylic on three canvas panels, Aniwaniwa Park headquarters building, Lake Waikaremoana, New Zealand. It represents the theme ‘The Mystery of Man in the Urewera’, which was suggested by the Maori architect of the building, John Scott. The Urewera is a forested region of the North Island. NED KELLY, 1955, oil on board, by Sydney Nolan, perhaps the most famous Australian painter of the twentieth century. From 1945 onwards Nolan produced numerous paintings of Ned Kelly, the Irish-Australian outlaw who was hanged in 1880 and whose life had achieved almost mythic status in the Australian consciousness. In all of these Nolan emphasized the black square of Kelly’s head, derived from the homemade metal armour that Kelly had worn. produced by city-based Aborigines of the southeast, whose ironic visual responses to their urban environment were not considered authentically Aboriginal. Maori artists had adapted to Western influences in the nineteenth century, so that, for most of the twentieth century, Maori decorative motifs were familiar to, and regarded as the cultural heritage of, all New Zealanders. Non-Maori artists, such as Gordon Walters, who incorporated the koru motif into his Modernist paintings from the mid-1960s to the mid-1980s, absorbed Maori design elements into their work, a practice that by the end of the century was considered exploitative. CULTURAL APPROPRIATIONS The axiom that indigenous artists can ‘borrow’, whereas non-indigenous artists cannot ‘appropriate’ seems heavy-handed, but is necessary in light of persistent non-indigenous assumption of cultural authority. Australian examples include the unilateral decision to restore (by overpainting!) ancient rock paintings in the Kimberleys (1987), and the imposture of the white artist Elizabeth Durack as the fictitious indigenous painter Eddie Burrup in a misguided belief that her long association and empathy with the Aboriginal people allowed her to paint in their name (1997). The Maori text incorporated into the Urewera Mural (1975) by the non-indigenous painter, Colin McCahon, was judged an affront rather than the homage he perhaps intended, and the painting was taken hostage by radical Maoris in 1997. 2 Art and Architecture in New Zealand, 1900-2000 gallery (with date of foundation) Maori and Pakeha interrelated art exported art G architecture ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 314 Danish architect Jørn Utzon after winning an international competition in 1957. INDIGENOUS ROOTS Despite these outside influences, Australia and New Zealand were largely defined by their indigenous cultures, even though the Aboriginal and Maori people were still considered – just as they had been at the end of the previous century – to be ‘dying out’. Their physical appearance was recorded for posterity by white artists such as Percy Leason in his forty-six portraits of The Last of the Victorian Aborigines (1934) and Charles Goldie in his series of Maori portraits (1900–40). Similarly, their material culture was collected for its historic or nostalgic value. In 1912 the noted anthropologist Baldwin Spencer commissioned bark paintings from the Aboriginal people of Oenpelli for the Museum of Victoria. Spencer believed the Australian Margaret Preston (1875–1963) in Australia and Rita Angus (1908–70) in New Zealand. Later, the short-lived Australian magazine Angry Penguins (1941–6) gathered around it a group of likeminded figurative painters, such as Arthur Boyd (1920–99) and Sidney Nolan (1917–92), whose work drew on a range of influences, including Surrealism. In the latter half of the century, artists keenly followed the developments in abstract, performance and conceptual art that were prevalent in the international art world. In architecture the earliest, considered response to modernism came from the work of the Austrian-born Harry Seidler (1923–), who moved to Sydney in 1948. The later work of the Australian Glenn Murcutt (1936–) showed a growing interest in vernacular building types: in particular the verandah-style house. However, the most significant single work of twentieth-century architecture in the region is the Sydney Opera House, designed by the AUSTRALIA AND NEW ZEALAND 1900-2000 150˚ 15˚ 30˚ 135˚120˚ Kempsey G G Riverside Centre (1983-6, Seidler) Marie Short House (1974-5, Murcutt) Sydney Opera House (1957-73, Utzon) Australia Square (1961-7, Seidler) Ball-Eastaway House, Glenorie (1983, Murcutt) Brisbane Sydney Canberra Melbourne Adelaide Darwin Oenpelli Ramingining Derby Mowanjum Mount Barnett Station Yirrkala Broome Hermannsburg Papunya Utopia Perth Darling M ur ray Fitzroy M ur chison Victoria Flinde rs M itchell I N D I A N O C E A N PA C I F I C O C E A N G R E A T A U S T R A L I A N B I G H T C O R A L S E A GULF OF CARPENTARIA BASS STRAIT G R E A T S A N D Y D E S E R T KIMBERLEY PLATEAU G R E A T V I C T O R I A D E S E R T G I B S O N D E S E R T SIMPSON DESERT M ACDONNELL RANGES MUSGRAVE RANGES G R E A T D IV ID IN G RANGE GREATDIVID IN G R A N G E ARNHEM LAND Q U E E N S L A N D N E W S O U T H W A L E S V I C T O R I A TASMANIA N O R T H E R N T E R R I T O RY W E S T E R N A U S T R A L I A S O U T H A U S T R A L I A MELVILLE I. A U S T R A L I A ’Eddie Burrup’ (Elizabeth Durack) awarded Indigenous Artist prize (1996) replica of Kimberley rock shelter painted for Western Australian Museum (1972) controversial repainting of fading cave paintings (1987) Namatjira’s one-man show (1939) Albert Namatjira begins painting (1936) formation of Western Desert art movement (1972) Honey Ant Dreaming mural (1971) first attempts at painting Wandjina cave motifs on bark (early 1930s) G National Gallery of Australia (1982) Michael Nelson Tjakamarra’s mosiac for Parliament House forecourt (1988) Aboriginal Memorial (now housed at the National Gallery) exhibited at Lausanne (1999) Contemporary Australian Aboriginal Art in Modern Worlds exhibition at St Petersburg and Hanover (2000) Namatjira’s one-man show (1939) Aboriginal women (including Emily Kame Kngwarreye) paint with acrylics (late 1980s) artists prepare 200 burial poles (The Aboriginal Memorial) to commemorate Aboriginal deaths during 200 years of white settlement (1788-1988), 1988 Emily Kame Kngwarreye retrospective exhibition (1998) G Museum of Contemporary Art (1991) Margaret Preston exhorts white artists to ‘Be Aboriginal’ (1925-1941) Aboriginal Art and Its Application exhibition (1941) Aboriginal Memorial exhibited at Biennale of Sydney (1988) Australian Aboriginal Art exhibition (1929) Museum and Art Gallery of the Northern Territory (1971) bark paintings commissioned for Art Gallery of New South Wales (1959) Baldwin Spencer commissions bark paintings for Museum of Victoria (1912) pukumani mortuary poles commissioned for Art Gallery of New South Wales (1958) Australian-American Expedition sponsored by National Geographic Society (1948) Public Library (1912, Bates, Peebles & Smart) ICI House (1958, Bates, Smart & McCutcheon) 101 Collins Street (1992, Denton, Corker & Marshall) Flinders University Art Museum (1966) Parliament House (1980-88, Mitchell/Giurgola & Thorp) 1 Art and Architecture in Australia, 1900-2000 gallery (with date of foundation) traditional Aboriginal art collection white appropriation of Aboriginal art landmark in Australian indigenous art architecture N 0 0 300 miles 400 kms G DESPITE GAINING INDEPENDENCE at the beginning of the twentieth century, the former British colonies of Australia (1901) and New Zealand (1907) remained culturally subordinate for much of the subsequent century. Antipodean artists who followed European trends were dismissed as derivative. Those who ignored them were regarded as provincial. Earnest debates on the merits of internationalism over regionalism, modernism over conservatism, and abstraction over figurative art – key issues of early twentiethcentury Western visual culture – seemed somewhat comical to the wider world when argued at such a geographical remove. Nevertheless, Australian and New Zealand artists developed their own distinctive responses to these new schools, as they had in the previous century. Some of the earliest modernist works were by the women artists Grace Cossington Smith (1892–1984) and 1 CROSS-CULTURAL TENSION has been the dominant thread in the development of the visual arts in both Australia and New Zealand. Architecture and public sculpture are exceptions that follow international trends and only occasionally incorporate indigenous components. Two-dimensional art, however, owes its international appeal and regional relevance (a paradoxical combination) to the contested issues of national identity and belonging to the land. By combining Western and traditional art practices, Australian Aborigines affirmed their cultural relevance, globally and locally. ART INSTITUTIONS WORLDWIDE 2000 317 American Express the WMF has since 1996 published biennial ‘World Monuments Watch’ reports on ‘100 Sites in Peril’. In September 2001 Lower Manhattan became the 101st site in the list for 2002. Perceptions of cultural identity reflect a much more varied reality than does contemporary political rhetoric. For instance, recent exhibitions and publications in Bogotá, Buenos Aires and Mexico City have investigated the aesthetics of ‘América’, and consider the nomenclature of the USA as ‘America’ to be misleading. The outreach of UNESCO and of the World Monuments Fund is broad but not ubiquitous. In many areas of post-colonial Africa it is felt that heritage is better managed through indigenous involvement than by the imposition of international guidelines. TOURISM Tourism increased over the latter part of the twentieth century to become in itself an important, even dominant, cultural phenomenon. Its effects are ambivalent. Tourist visits fund sites, both directly by way of admission fees and indirectly via the souvenir trade. However, many sites are unwittingly ‘uglified’ for the supposed benefit of visitors, and every tourist visit causes wear and tear. Attacks on both tourists and monuments have contributed to a reduction in travel, but the destruction of the Buddhas at Bamiyan in Afghanistan has had the side effect of focussing global attention on heritage conservation. WORLDWIDE WEB The worldwide web enables the display and viewing of art. The internet is especially appreciated by artists operating outside the established cities for private exhibiting galleries because it lets them bypass intermediary gallery owners to find a public directly. Biennials’ and other art events’ web pages are an end in themselves as well as a means of self-publicity. The web also increasingly serves scholarship with online journals. The internet, a dynamic visual medium in its own right, makes art accessible to anyone who wants it. 2 ARTISTIC SITES IN PERIL. This map quantifies by country UNESCO World Heritage sites nominated in the quarter of a century up to 2002, and shows the ‘100 Sites in Peril’ as listed by the World Monuments Fund in 2000; it also marks some of the important sites that were wilfully attacked either side of 2000. THE THAI-LANGUAGE brochure for the SEAMEO Regional Centre for the Project in Archaeology and the Fine Arts (SPAFA). SPAFA promotes and supports educational initiatives to further professional competence in the fields of archaeology and the fine arts, with the aim of cultiviating awareness of cultural heritage within and between Southeast Asian nations. The Bangkok regional centre produces the thrice-yearly SPAFA Journal. I N D I A N O C E A N A T L A N T I C O C E A N PA C I F I C O C E A N Dubrovnik, Croatia (Oct.-Dec. 1991) Colossal Buddha Bamiyan,Afghanistan (March 2001) Twin Towers, New York City (September 2001) 2 Artistic Sites in Peril World Monuments Fund sites in peril, c.2000 destruction of patrimony Dulan - Dulan County Tibetan Royal Tomb Group, Reshuixiang-Xuewei Sichuan - Palpung Monastery, Babang Village Beijing - Temple of Agriculture (Xiannongtan) Shanxi - Xuanjian Tower,Yuci City Nias - Omo Hada (Royal Palace Complex) Tabanan - Tanah Lot Temple Ulan Bator - Bogd Haan Palace Museum Ifugao - Rice Terraces of the Cordilleras Kathmandu - Itum Monastery - Teku Thapatali Monument Zone Bahawalpur - Uch Monument Complex Huê - Minh Mang Tomb Quang Nam/Quang Ngai -My Son Temple Complex, Duy Xuyên George Town - George Town Historic Enclave, Penang State Kuala Terengganu -Kampung Cina River Frontage CHINA 46 47 48 49 INDONESIA 50 51 MONGOLIA 52 PHILIPPINES 53 NEPAL 54 PAKISTAN 55 VIETNAM 56 57 MALAYSIA 58 59 Moscow - Arkhangelskoye State Museum - Russakov club Irkutsk - Irkutsk Historic Center Lomonosov - Oranienbaum State Museum Panayarvi Village Rostov Velikiy - Rostov Velikiy Historic Center Vyborg - Viipuri Library Chihuahua - Madera Cave Dwellings Veracruz - San Juan de Ulúa Fort Taxco de Alarcón - Santa Prisca Parish Church San Juan Teotihuacán - Teotihuacán Archaeological Site Cuenca del Usumacinta - Yaxchilán Archaeological Zone Philadelphia - Eastern State Penitentiary Lancaster County New York - Seventh Regiment Armory Chicago - Tree Studios and Medinah Temple Los Angeles - VDL Research House II Bahia/Salvador - Santo Antonio do Paraguaço, São Francisco do Paraguaçu São Paulo - Vila de Paranapiacaba, Santo André Easter Island - Orongo Ceremonial Site Havana - National Art Schools, Cubanacán - Santa Teresa de Jesús Cloisters Valle de los Ingenios - San Isidro de los Destiladeros Puerto Plata - Puerto Plata Lighthouse Cuscatlán - Suchitoto City Falmouth Historic Town - Trelawny Parish Colón and Portobelo - San Lorenzo Castle and San Gerónimo Fort Cuzco - Cuzco Historic Center - Machu Picchu, Urubamba Rio Abiseo National Park - Los Pinchudos Archaeological Site Redi Doti - Jodensavanne Archaeological Site Coro, Falcón - San Francisco Church RUSSIA 68 69 70 71 72 73 MEXICO 74 75 76 77 78 U.S.A. 79 80 81 82 83 BRAZIL 84 85 CHILE 86 CUBA 87 88 DOMINICAN REPUBLIC 89 EL SALVADOR 90 JAMAICA 91 PANAMA 92 PERU 93 94 SURINAM 95 VENEZUELA 96 Gonder - Mentewab-Qwesqwam Palace Migori - Thimlich Ohinga Cultural Landscape Giraffe Rock Art Site near Agadez Kareima - Gebel Barkal Archaeological Site Bulawayo - Khami National Monument Thmar Puok -Banteay Chhmar Temple of Jayavarman VII ETHIOPIA 31 KENYA 32 NIGER 33 SUDAN 34 ZIMBABWE 35 CAMBODIA 36 Faversham - Abbey Farmstead East Manchester - Saint Francis Church and Monastery Clonfert - Saint Brendan’s Cathedral Brussels - Tour and Taxis (transport hub) Beauvais, Saint Pierre Cathedral Dessau - Gartenreich Dessau-Wörlitz Leipzig - Thomaskirche Rhodes - Kahal Shalom Synagogue Subotica - Subotica Synagogue Mostar - Mostar Historic Center Ruse Region - Ivanovo Rock Chapels Vukovar City, Center Vukovar Naples - Ancient Pompeii Bagni di Lucca - Bridge of Chains Liguria - Cinque Terre Rome - Santi Quattro Coronati Cloister Mnajdra - Mnajdra Prehistoric Temples Ocarli Köyü, Kars - Ani Archaeological Site Konya - Çatalhöyük, Çumra Kâhta - Mount Nemrut Archaeological Site Istanbul - Zeyrek Mosque Tipasa - Tipasa Archaeological Park Idfu, Kom el Ahmar Khasekhemwy at Hierakonpolis Cairo - Sultan Qa’it Bay Complex Luxor - Valley of the Kings,Thebes UNITED KINGDOM 1 2 IRELAND 3 BELGIUM 4 FRANCE 5 GERMANY 6 7 GREECE 8 YUGOSLAVIA 9 BOSNIA AND HERZEGOVINA 10 BULGARIA 11 CROATIA 12 ITALY 13 14 15 16 MALTA 17 TURKEY 18 19 20 21 ALGERIA 22 EGYPT 23 24 25 Mary (Merv) - Archaeological Site, Bayramaly Bukhara - Abdulaziz Khan Complex Wadi Hadhramaut - Tarim Historic City Sarandë - Butrint Archaeological Site Leh - Basgo Gompa (Maitreya Temples), Ladakh Gujarat - Champaner Archaeological Site, Panchmahal Rajasthan - Jaisalmer Fort Calcutta - Metropolitan Building Goa - Saint Anne Church,Talaulim TURKMENISTAN 37 UZBEKISTAN 38 YEMEN 39 ALBANIA 40 INDIA 41 42 43 44 45 Arbil Citadel - Kurdish Autonomous Region Tel-Dan - Tel-Dan Canaanite Gate Ramla - Ramla White Mosque Archaeological Site Wadi Musa - Petra Archaeological Site Enfé - Enfé Archaeological Site IRAQ 26 ISRAEL 27 28 JORDAN 29 LEBANON 30 Kuks - Kuks Forest Sculptures Zemo Artsevi Village - Ikorta Church of the Archangel Tbilisi - Tbilisi Historic District Gdansk - Vistula Mouth Fortress Bontida - Bánffy Castle Krajné Cierno - Basil the Great Church Kamyanets Podilsky - Kamyanets Podilskyy Castle Bridge Zhovkva - Zhovkva Synagogue CZECH REPUBLIC 60 GEORGIA 61 62 POLAND 63 ROMANIA 64 SLOVAKIA 65 UKRAINE 66 67 N 0 0 1800 miles 2400 kms ´ ˘ ¸ 84 8586 93 94 95 96 92 91 89 88 87 90 78 75 76 7774 83 82 81 80 79 52 69 48 49 47 46 56 57 36 53 58 59 50 51 45 4442 43 54 41 55 38 37 71 73 70 72 68 67 66 62 61 18 20 26 30 27 2928 39 19 8 9 11 64 6563 76 60 12 15 4 2 3 1 5 14 16 1322 17 10 40 23 24 25 34 31 33 35 32 21 I N D I A N O C E A N A T L A N T I C O C E A N PA C I F I C O C E A N Dubrovnik, Croatia (Oct.-Dec. 1991) Colossal Buddha Bamiyan,Afghanistan (March 2001) Twin Towers, New York City (September 2001) 2 Artistic Sites in Peril World Monuments Fund sites in peril, c.2000 destruction of patrimony Dulan - Dulan County Tibetan Royal Tomb Group, Reshuixiang-Xuewei Sichuan - Palpung Monastery, Babang Village Beijing - Temple of Agriculture (Xiannongtan) Shanxi - Xuanjian Tower,Yuci City Nias - Omo Hada (Royal Palace Complex) Tabanan - Tanah Lot Temple Ulan Bator - Bogd Haan Palace Museum Ifugao - Rice Terraces of the Cordilleras Kathmandu - Itum Monastery - Teku Thapatali Monument Zone Bahawalpur - Uch Monument Complex Huê - Minh Mang Tomb Quang Nam/Quang Ngai -My Son Temple Complex, Duy Xuyên George Town - George Town Historic Enclave, Penang State Kuala Terengganu -Kampung Cina River Frontage CHINA 46 47 48 49 INDONESIA 50 51 MONGOLIA 52 PHILIPPINES 53 NEPAL 54 PAKISTAN 55 VIETNAM 56 57 MALAYSIA 58 59 Moscow - Arkhangelskoye State Museum - Russakov club Irkutsk - Irkutsk Historic Center Lomonosov - Oranienbaum State Museum Panayarvi Village Rostov Velikiy - Rostov Velikiy Historic Center Vyborg - Viipuri Library Chihuahua - Madera Cave Dwellings Veracruz - San Juan de Ulúa Fort Taxco de Alarcón - Santa Prisca Parish Church San Juan Teotihuacán - Teotihuacán Archaeological Site Cuenca del Usumacinta - Yaxchilán Archaeological Zone Philadelphia - Eastern State Penitentiary Lancaster County New York - Seventh Regiment Armory Chicago - Tree Studios and Medinah Temple Los Angeles - VDL Research House II Bahia/Salvador - Santo Antonio do Paraguaço, São Francisco do Paraguaçu São Paulo - Vila de Paranapiacaba, Santo André Easter Island - Orongo Ceremonial Site Havana - National Art Schools, Cubanacán - Santa Teresa de Jesús Cloisters Valle de los Ingenios - San Isidro de los Destiladeros Puerto Plata - Puerto Plata Lighthouse Cuscatlán - Suchitoto City Falmouth Historic Town - Trelawny Parish Colón and Portobelo - San Lorenzo Castle and San Gerónimo Fort Cuzco - Cuzco Historic Center - Machu Picchu, Urubamba Rio Abiseo National Park - Los Pinchudos Archaeological Site Redi Doti - Jodensavanne Archaeological Site Coro, Falcón - San Francisco Church RUSSIA 68 69 70 71 72 73 MEXICO 74 75 76 77 78 U.S.A. 79 80 81 82 83 BRAZIL 84 85 CHILE 86 CUBA 87 88 DOMINICAN REPUBLIC 89 EL SALVADOR 90 JAMAICA 91 PANAMA 92 PERU 93 94 SURINAM 95 VENEZUELA 96 Gonder - Mentewab-Qwesqwam Palace Migori - Thimlich Ohinga Cultural Landscape Giraffe Rock Art Site near Agadez Kareima - Gebel Barkal Archaeological Site Bulawayo - Khami National Monument Thmar Puok -Banteay Chhmar Temple of Jayavarman VII ETHIOPIA 31 KENYA 32 NIGER 33 SUDAN 34 ZIMBABWE 35 CAMBODIA 36 Faversham - Abbey Farmstead East Manchester - Saint Francis Church and Monastery Clonfert - Saint Brendan’s Cathedral Brussels - Tour and Taxis (transport hub) Beauvais, Saint Pierre Cathedral Dessau - Gartenreich Dessau-Wörlitz Leipzig - Thomaskirche Rhodes - Kahal Shalom Synagogue Subotica - Subotica Synagogue Mostar - Mostar Historic Center Ruse Region - Ivanovo Rock Chapels Vukovar City, Center Vukovar Naples - Ancient Pompeii Bagni di Lucca - Bridge of Chains Liguria - Cinque Terre Rome - Santi Quattro Coronati Cloister Mnajdra - Mnajdra Prehistoric Temples Ocarli Köyü, Kars - Ani Archaeological Site Konya - Çatalhöyük, Çumra Kâhta - Mount Nemrut Archaeological Site Istanbul - Zeyrek Mosque Tipasa - Tipasa Archaeological Park Idfu, Kom el Ahmar Khasekhemwy at Hierakonpolis Cairo - Sultan Qa’it Bay Complex Luxor - Valley of the Kings,Thebes UNITED KINGDOM 1 2 IRELAND 3 BELGIUM 4 FRANCE 5 GERMANY 6 7 GREECE 8 YUGOSLAVIA 9 BOSNIA AND HERZEGOVINA 10 BULGARIA 11 CROATIA 12 ITALY 13 14 15 16 MALTA 17 TURKEY 18 19 20 21 ALGERIA 22 EGYPT 23 24 25 Mary (Merv) - Archaeological Site, Bayramaly Bukhara - Abdulaziz Khan Complex Wadi Hadhramaut - Tarim Historic City Sarandë - Butrint Archaeological Site Leh - Basgo Gompa (Maitreya Temples), Ladakh Gujarat - Champaner Archaeological Site, Panchmahal Rajasthan - Jaisalmer Fort Calcutta - Metropolitan Building Goa - Saint Anne Church,Talaulim TURKMENISTAN 37 UZBEKISTAN 38 YEMEN 39 ALBANIA 40 INDIA 41 42 43 44 45 Arbil Citadel - Kurdish Autonomous Region Tel-Dan - Tel-Dan Canaanite Gate Ramla - Ramla White Mosque Archaeological Site Wadi Musa - Petra Archaeological Site Enfé - Enfé Archaeological Site IRAQ 26 ISRAEL 27 28 JORDAN 29 LEBANON 30 Kuks - Kuks Forest Sculptures Zemo Artsevi Village - Ikorta Church of the Archangel Tbilisi - Tbilisi Historic District Gdansk - Vistula Mouth Fortress Bontida - Bánffy Castle Krajné Cierno - Basil the Great Church Kamyanets Podilsky - Kamyanets Podilskyy Castle Bridge Zhovkva - Zhovkva Synagogue CZECH REPUBLIC 60 GEORGIA 61 62 POLAND 63 ROMANIA 64 SLOVAKIA 65 UKRAINE 66 67 N 0 0 1800 miles 2400 kms ´ ˘ ¸ 84 8586 93 94 95 96 92 91 89 88 87 90 78 75 76 7774 83 82 81 80 79 52 69 48 49 47 46 56 57 36 53 58 59 50 51 45 4442 43 54 41 55 38 37 71 73 70 72 68 67 66 62 61 18 20 26 30 27 2928 39 19 8 9 11 64 6563 76 60 12 15 4 2 3 1 5 14 16 1322 17 10 40 23 24 25 34 31 33 35 32 21 A A A B B B B B B B B B B B B B B BB T B B B B B T T T T T Q C C C C C C C C C C C C C C C C C C C C L P P P P P P P S S S S S S S S S S S S S S S S S S S S S1 2 2 2 6 6 3 4 5 7 W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W W Dakar Addis Ababa Zanzibar Colombo Tel Aviv Cairo Karachi New Delhi Fukuoka Kwangju Shanghai Hong Kong Quezon City Taipei Singapore Bangkok Hangzhou Melbourne Wellington Sydney Brisbane Honiara Head office of the SEAMEO Project in Archaeology and Fine Arts SPAFA Yokohama Tokyo Havana New York Williamstown St. Louis Washington DC Newport Beach Toronto Los Angeles Mexico City Chicago San Juan Bogotá La Paz Panama São Paulo Buenos Aires Santiago Belo Horizonte Johannesburg Cape Town Sofia Rome Lyon Valencia Paris London Venice Munich Berlin Hamburg Norwich Eindhoven NovosibirskMoscow Edinburgh Tirana Jerusalem Tel Aviv Istanbul Rome Karlsruhe Ljubljana Milan Monaco Geneva Albisola Luxembourg Much Hadham Versailles Kassel Amsterdam Rotterdam Zurich CAA (College Art Association) International Society for Education through Art I N D I A N O C E A N PA C I F I C O C E A N A T L A N T I C O C E A N PA C I F I C O C E A N J K KAZAKHSTAN INDIA NEPAL CHINA SRI LANKA BRUNEI PHILIPPINES JAPAN CANADA PUERTO RICO BARBADOS VENEZUELA PARAGUAY URUGUAY ARGENTINA COLOMBIA ECUADOR BOLIVIA CHILE UNITED STATES MEXICO CUBA BRAZIL MA SE GU-B GU CI BF T B GH MALI NIGER NIGERIA CA GABON ZI CHAD KENYA EGYPT SAUDI ARABIA IRAN PA BA SK TH V L MAL INDONESIA AUSTRALIA FIJI SAMOA PAPUA NEW GUINEA SWITZ MOROCCO SEYCHELLES COMOROS SINGAPORE MALDIVES SOUTH AFRICA MADAGASCAR MAURITIUS NORWAY GERMANY REP OF IRELAND N EDEWS FINLAND PORTUGAL SPAIN CYPRUS ALBANIA ISRAEL HUNGARY SLOVAKIA LITHUANIA BELGIUM FRANCE GREECE TUNISIA DENMARK UK Festival do Inverno Mécénat Getty Grant Program Samuel H. Kress Foundation Ford Foundation American Express Andy Warhol Foundation Banco de la República African Heritage Trust UNESCO Henry Moore Foundation N 0 0 1800 miles 2400 kms 1 Art Institutions, c.2000 yearly art event biennial art event triennial art event quadriennial art event sponsor of the arts auctioneers: Christie‘s Los Angeles Modern Phillip’s Sotheby’s international organization A T Q B ICOM -International Council of Museums SEAMEO -South East Asian Ministers of Education Organization CIHA -Comité International de l’Histoire de l’Art ICOMOS -International Council on Monuments and Sites IFLA -International Federation of Landscape Architects ICCROM -International Centre for the Preservation and Restoration of Cultural Property DOCOMOMO -International Working Party for Documentation and Conservation of Buildings, Sites and Neighbourhoods of the Modern Movement 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 selected art research institutes Warburg and Courtauld Institutes, London School of World Art Studies, University of East Anglia, Norwich Institut National pour l’Histoire de l’Art, Paris Zentrum für Kunst und Medien (ZKM), Karlsruhe Warburg Haus, Hamburg Bibliotheca Hertziana, Rome Research Institute of History and Theory of Fine Arts, Moscow Swiss Institute for Art Research, Zurich Institute of Ethiopian Studies, Addis Ababa Witwatersrand University, Johannesburg Institute of Archaeology, Hebrew University, Jerusalem Institute of Ethnography, Novosibirsk, Siberia Lok Virsa, Karachi Indira Gandhi National Centre for the Arts, New Delhi All India Fine Arts and Crafts Society, New Delhi Institute of Aesthetic Studies, Colombo Silpakorn University, Bangkok College of Fine Arts, University of the Philippines, Quezon City National Academy of Fine Art, Hangzhou Power Institute, Sydney New Zealand Academy of Fine Arts, Wellington National Museum and Cultural Centre, Honiara Clark Art Institute, Williamstown, Massachusetts Getty Research Institute, Los Angeles Centre for Advanced Study in the Visual Arts, Washington DC Instituto de Investigaciones Estéticas, Mexico City Escuela de Bellas Artes, Universidad Nacional, Bogotá Instituto de Investigaciones Artísticas, La Paz Instituto de Investigaciones Estéticas J. Payró, Buenos Aires Facultad de Bellas Artes, Universidad de Chile, Santiago W - Abbreviated Countries with World Crafts Council - Benin - Bangladesh - Burkina Faso - Cameroon - Côte d’Ivoire - Ghana - Guinea B BA BF CA CI GH GU - Guinea-Bissau - Jordan - Kuwait - Kenya - Laos - Mauritania - Malaysia GU-B J K KE L MA MAL - Pakistan - Senegal - South Korea - Togo - Thailand - Vietnam - Zimbabwe PA SE SK T TH V ZI C L P S ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 316 The World Monuments Fund, a coalition of philanthropic individuals loosely allied with UNESCO, was created in 1965. Based in New York and with subsidiary offices in London, Paris, Madrid and Lisbon, with the support of AROUND 2000 INTERCONTINENTAL travel and communication networks have enabled an unprecedented degree of reciprocal cultural awareness to develop around the world. New technologies make contact between artists amazingly quick and easy; they also affect heritage, its conservation and the tourism that depends upon it. ART EVENTS From the mid-twentieth century biennials and other art events have recast the geographical canon of art. Of late-nineteenth-century origins, the Venice Biennale remains primarily European; the São Paulo Biennial, founded in 1951, epitomizes Latin-American relations with the First World. Dating from the mid-1980s, the Havana Biennial has cast itself as the first transperipheral exhibition open to artists from Asia, Africa, Latin America, the Caribbean and the Middle East. Since the 1990s events such as the Zanzibar Film Festival and the Johannesburg, Dakar, Prague, Tirana and Sofia Biennials have helped to shift attention towards Africa and Eastern Europe. Reflecting how curatorial power is now shared more widely, the eleventh Documenta quadriennial in Kassel was curated by the Nigerian Okwui Enwezor. Annual national and international prizes for art and architecture include the Turner Prize (1984–), administered from the Tate Gallery in London and, since 1991, only for artists under 50 and resident in Britain. Based in Los Angeles, the Pritzker Architecture Prize (1979–) is open to architects from around the world. The most successful visual media of the twentieth century – photography, film and television – continue to attract a mass audience. Fine art’s public is by comparison very restricted, even though for the last 100 years the parameters of ‘art’ have been expanded. One way artists and their supporters attempt to regain a wider appeal is by borrowing the tools and approaches of more popular media. The Turner and other such prizes are screened on television, and art events are normally publicized on the web. The World Crafts Council is a nonprofit NGO that promotes contact between craftspeople worldwide. In 2001 its secretariat transferred from Kyoto to Ioannina in Greece. SPONSORSHIP The USA remains the main centre of private sponsorship of artistic activity and heritage management worldwide, and a high proportion of international organizations are based in Paris – but in recent decades African, Asian, Australasian and Latin American banks, foundations and ministerial organizations have played an increasing part in the management of the artistic heritages of their respective continents. Worldwide, public sponsorship remains the most powerful force. On the commercial side, London-based auction houses, with tentacles in well-to-do centres elsewhere, continue to enjoy the lion’s share of the art market – although they are increasingly subject to legal challenges. WORLD HERITAGE ORGANIZATIONS UNESCO initiatives of the 1960s led to the 1972 Convention Concerning the Protection of World Cultural and Natural Heritage, and thence to the World Heritage List. Since the first List of 1978, new locations of ‘outstanding universal value’ have been added annually; by 2002, 730 sites in 125 countries were inscribed. Of these, 563 are cultural, 144 natural and the remaining twenty-odd ‘mixed’ – reflecting how nature and culture are now understood by many to be interrelated. ART INSTITUTIONS WORLDWIDE 2000 PAGE FROM THE WEBSITE of the seventh Havana Biennial of 2000–01, showing the internet’s effectiveness as a means of visual communication. The stills are from the South African William Kentridge’s Shadow Procession, a video of handmade cut-out figures. Shadow Procession revisited absurdist Ubu iconography in the nostalgic and slightly apocalyptic spirit of 1999. Shadow Procession now exists as a DVD. 1 WHILE ART AND ARCHITECTURAL initiatives beyond national boundaries continue to be largely financed and organized by wealthier nations, later twentieth-century educational and curatorial initiatives in Asia, Africa and Latin America have succeeded in transferring significant artistic clout to the eastern and southern hemispheres. BIBLIOGRAPHY 319 Archaeology of Lower Central America Albuquerque, New Mexico, 1984 SOUTH AMERICA 600-1500 E. P. Benson and A. G. Cook Ritual Sacrifice in Ancient Peru Austin, Texas, 2001 M. E. Moseley The Incas and Their Ancestors, The Archaeology of Peru London, 1992 K. Olsen Bruhns Ancient South America Cambridge, 1994 EUROPE 600-800 Michael McCormick Origins of the European Economy Cambridge, 2001 Martin Carver (ed.) The Age of Sutton Hoo: The Seventh Century in North-Western Europe Woodbridge, Suffolk, 1992 Leslie Webster and Michelle Brown (eds) The Transformation of the Roman World AD 400–900 London, 1997 EUROPE 800-1000 Rosamond McKitterick (ed.) The New Cambridge Medieval History II, c.700–c.900 Cambridge, 1995 Timothy Reuter (ed.) The New Cambridge Medieval History III, c.900–c.1024 Cambridge, 1999 Mayke De Jong and Frans Theuws (eds) Topographies of Power in the Early Middle Ages (Transformations of the Roman World 6) Leiden, Boston and Cologne, 2001 EASTERN EUROPE AND SOUTHWEST ASIA 600-1500 H. E. Evans and W. Wixom (eds) The Glory of Byzantium New York, 1997 R. Cormack and D. Gaze (eds) The Art of Holy Russia London, 1998 R. Cormack Byzantine Art Oxford, 2000 NORTHERN EUROPE 1000-1200 R. W. Southern The Making of the Middle Ages London, 1953 Veronica Sekules Medieval Art Oxford and New York, 2001 SOUTHERN EUROPE 1000-1200 C. H. Lawrence Medieval Monasticism London and New York, 1984 Kenneth John Conant Carolingean and Romanesque Architecture 4th edn, New Haven and London, 1978 NORTHERN EUROPE 1200-1300 Michael Camille Gothic Art: Glorious Visions New York, 1996 Henry Kraus Gold Was the Mortar: The Economics of Cathedral Building London and Boston, 1979 SOUTHERN EUROPE 1200-1300 Xavier Barral i Altet Art and Architecture of Spain Boston, 1998 André Chastel Italian Art New York, 1963 Maria Romanini Angiola Assisi: The Frescoes in the Basilica of St Francis New York, 1998 NORTHERN EUROPE 1300-1500 James Snyder Northern Renaissance Art: Painting, Sculpture and the Graphic Arts from 1350 to 1575 New York, 1985 Till-Holger Borchert et al. The Age of Van Eyck: The Mediterranean World and Early Netherlandish Painting 1430–1530 London, 2002 Walter Prevenier and Wim Blockmans The Burgundian Netherlands (trans. P. Kin and Y. Mead), Cambridge, 1986 SOUTHERN EUROPE 1300-1500 Michel Laclotte and Dominique Thiébaut L’École d’Avignon Paris, 1983 Judith Berg Sobré Behind the Altar Table: The Development of the Painted Retable in Spain, 1350–1500 Columbia, Missouri, 1989 Theodor Müller Sculpture in the Netherlands, Germany, France, and Spain 1400 to 1500 Harmondsworth, 1966 ITALY 1300-1400 Giovanni Boccaccio The Decameron (trans. G. H. McWilliam) 2nd edn, Harmondsworth, 1995 John White Art and Architecture in Italy 1250–1400 Harmondsworth, 1966 John White The Birth and Rebirth of Pictorial Space London, 1972 ITALY 1400-1500 Michael Baxandall Painting and Experience in Fifteenth-Century Italy Oxford, 1972 Mary Hollingsworth Patronage in Renaissance Italy: From 1400 to the Early Sixteenth Century London, 1994 Iris Origo The Merchant of Prato Harmondsworth, 1963 NORTH AFRICA 600-1500 Richard Ettinghausen, Oleg Grabar and Marilyn Jenkins-Madina Islamic Art and Architecture 650–1250 New Haven and London, 2001 Sheila S. Blair and Jonathan M. Bloom The Art and Architecture of Islam: 1250–1800 New Haven and London, 1994 SUB-SAHARAN AFRICA 600–1500 Peter Garlake Early Art and Architecture of Africa Oxford, 2002 M. B. Visona, R. Poyner, H. M. Cole et al. A History of Art in Africa New York, 2000 WEST ASIA AND EGYPT 600-1000 Richard Ettinghausen, Oleg Grabar and Marilyn Jenkins-Madina Islamic Art and Architecture 650–1250 New Haven and London, 2001 Oleg Grabar The Formation of Islamic Art New Haven, 1990 WEST ASIA 1000-1500 Richard Ettinghausen, Oleg Grabar and Marilyn Jenkins-Madina Islamic Art and Architecture 650–1250 New Haven and London, 2001 Sheila S. Blair and Jonathan M. Bloom The Art and Architecture of Islam: 1250–1800 New Haven and London, 1994 CENTRAL ASIA 600-1500 Richard Ettinghausen, Oleg Grabar and Marilyn Jenkins-Madina Islamic Art and Architecture 650–1250 New Haven and London, 2001 Sheila S. Blair and Jonathan M. Bloom The Art and Architecture of Islam: 1250–1800 New Haven and London, 1994 SOUTH ASIA 600-1500 Lallanji Gopal The Economic Life of Northern India, c.AD 700–1200 Delhi, 1989 Vishaka N. Desai and Darielle Mason Gods, Guardians and Lovers: Temple Sculptures from North India, AD 700–1200 London, 1993 Gordon Johnson Cultural Atlas of India New York, 1996 Hamida Khatoon Naqvi Agricultural, Industrial and Urban Dynamism Under the Sultans of Delhi, 1200–1555 Delhi, 1986 Tapan Rayachaudhuri and Irfan Habib The Cambridge Economic History of India, c.1200–c.1750 vol. 1, Cambridge, 1982 John Fritz, George Michell and M. S. Nagaraja Rao Where Kings and Gods Meet: The Royal Centre at Vijayanagara, India Tuscon, Arizona, 2002 CHINA 600-1300 Peter K. Bol This Culture of Ours: Intellectual Transitions in T’ang and Sung China Stanford, 1991 Maxwell K. Hearn and Judith G. Smith (eds) Arts of the Sung and Yuan New York, 1996 Shiba Yoshinobu Commerce and Society in Sung China (trans. Mark Elvin) Ann Arbor, 1992 CHINA AND TIBET 1300-1500 Lauren Arnold Princely Gifts and Papal Treasures: The Franciscan Mission to China and its Influence on the Art of the West, 1250–1350 San Francisco, 1999 Maggie Bickford Ink Plum: The Making of a Chinese Scholar-Painting Genre New York, 1996 Percival David Chinese Connoisseurship: The ‘Ke Ku Yao Lun’, the Essential Criteria of Antiquities London, 1971 Adam Kessler et al. Empires Beyond the Great Wall: The Heritage of Genghis Khan Los Angeles, 1993 Marco Polo The Travels (trans. Ronald Latham) New York, 1992 JAPAN AND KOREA 600-1500 Penelope Mason History of Japanese Art New York, 1993 Jane Portal Korea: Art and Archeology London, 2000 Kumya Paik Kim Goryeo Dynasty: Korea’s Age of Enlightenment San Francisco, 2003 Quitman E. Phillips The Practices of Painting in Japan, 1475-1500 Stanford, 2000 Naomi Richard (ed.) Transmitting the Forms of Divinity: Early Buddhist Art from Korea and Japan New York, 2003 SOUTHEAST ASIA 600-1500 Kenneth R. Hall Maritime Trade and State Development in Early Southeast Asia Honolulu, 1985 Charles Higham The Civilization of Angkor Berkeley, 2001 Philip Rawson The Art of Southeast Asia: Cambodia, Vietnam, Thailand, Laos, Burma, Java, Bali New York, 1967 Reimar Schefold and Han F. Vermeulen Treasure Hunting?: Collectors and Collections of Indonesian Artifacts Leiden, 2002 J. F. Scheltema Monumental Java London, 1912 THE PACIFIC 600-1500 Adrienne L. Kaeppler, Christian Kaufmann and Douglas Newton Oceanic Art New York, 1997 Patrick V. Kirsch On the Road of the Winds: An Archaeological History of the Pacific Islands Before European Contact Berkeley, 2000 Eric Kjellgren, with Jo Anne Van Tilburg and Adrienne L. Kaeppler, Splendid Isolation: Art of Easter Island New York, 2001 Sidney M. Mead Te Maori: Maori Art from New Zealand Collections New York, 1984 PART V ART, EXPLOITATION AND DISPLAY 1500-1800 NORTH AMERICA 1500-1800 Norman Bancroft Hunt North American Indians: The Life and Culture of the Native American London, 1991 Janet C. Berlo and Ruth B. Phillips Native North American Art Oxford, 1998 Jayne Sokolow The Great Encounter: Native Peoples and European Settlers in the Americas, 1492–1800 New York, 2002 Carl Waldman Atlas of the North American Indian London, 2000 CENTRAL AMERICA 1500-1800 Norman Bancroft Hunt Historical Atlas of Ancient America New York, 2001 Samuel Y. Edgerton and Jorge Perez de Lara Theaters of Conversion: Religious Architecture and Indian Artisans in Colonial Mexico Albuquerque, New Mexico, 2001 Diane Fane Converging Cultures: Art and Identity in Spanish America New York, 1996 Alan Knight Mexico, vol 2 The Colonial Era, Cambridge, 2002 SOUTH AMERICA 1500-1800 Thomas DaCosta Kauffman Toward a Geography of Art Chicago and London, 2004 D. Bayón et al. History of South American Colonial Art and Architecture New York, 1992 R. Gutiérrez Arquitectura y urbanismo en Iberoamérica Madrid, 1983 EUROPE 1500-1600 Peter Burke The European Renaissance: Centres and Peripheries Oxford and Malden, Massachusetts, 1998 Thomas DaCosta Kauffman Court, Cloister, and City Chicago and London, 1995 Roy Strong Art and Power: Renaissance Festivals, 1450–1650 Rochester, New York, 1984 SCANDINAVIA AND THE BALTIC 1500-1800 Marian C. Donnelly Architecture in the Scandinavian Countries Cambridge, Massachusetts, 1992 Christian IV and Europe: The 19th Council of Europe Exhibition, Denmark 1988 exh. cat., Copenhagen, 1988 POLAND AND LITHUANIA 1500-1800 Jan Bialostocki The Art of the Renaissance in Eastern Europe New York, 1976 Adam Milobedzki The Architecture of Poland: A Chapter of the European Heritage Cracow, 1994 Stefan Muthesius Art, Architecture and Design in Poland: An Introduction Königstein im Taunus, 1994 Jan K. Ostrowski et al. Land of the Winged Horse: Art in Poland 1572–1764 exh. cat., Walters Art Galley, Baltimore, 1999 RUSSIA 1500-1800 William C. Brumfield A History of Russian Architecture New York and Cambridge, 1993 George Heard Hamilton The Art and Architecture of Russia New Haven and London, 1986 Alison Hilton Russian Folk Art Bloomington, Indiana, 1995 A. Opolovnikov and Y. Opolovnikova The Wooden Architecture of Russia New York, 1989 BRITAIN 1500-1666 Catharine MacLeod Painted Ladies: Women at the Court of Charles II London, 2001 Karen Hearn Dynasties: Painting in Tudor and Jacobean England,1530–1630 London, 1995 Simon Thurley The Royal Palaces of Tudor England New Haven and London, 1993 BRITAIN 1666-1800 David Solkin Painting for Money New Haven and London, 1992 Marcia Pointon Hanging the Head New Haven and London, 1994 John Brewer The Pleasures of the Imagination London, 1997 THE NORTH NETHERLANDS 1500-1800 J. I. Israel The Dutch Republic: Its Rise, Greatness and Fall, 1477–1806 Oxford, 1995 B. Haak The Golden Age: Dutch Painters of the Seventeenth Century London, 1984 A. Lambert The Making of the Dutch Landscape London, 1971 THE SOUTH NETHERLANDS 1500-1800 Luc Duerloo and Werner Thomas (eds) Albert & Isabelle 1598–1621, Catalogue and Essays exh. cat., 2 vols, Brussels,1998 Copper as Canvas: Two Centuries of Masterpiece Paintings on Copper, 1575–1775 exh. cat., Phoenix Art Museum, New York, 1998 Guy Delmarcel Flemish Tapestry New York, 2000 Lynn F. Jacobs Early Netherlandish Carved Altarpieces 1380—1550: Medieval Tastes and Mass Marketing Cambridge, 1998 Neil de Marchi, Hans J. van Miegroet and Matthew E. Raiff, ‘Dealer–Dealer Pricing in the Mid Seventeenth-Century Antwerp to Paris Art Trade’ in Art Markets in Europe, 1400–1800, ed. M. North and D. Ormond: Brookfield, Vermont, 1998 GERMANY AND SWITZERLAND 1500-1650 Ars Helvetica 13 vols. Bern, 1987–93 Henry Russell Hitchcock German Renaissance Architecture Princeton, 1981 Jeffrey Chipps Smith German Sculpture of the Later Renaissance, c.1520–1580 Princeton, 1994 GERMANY AND SWITZERLAND 1650-1800 Ars Helvetica 13 vols. Bern, 1987–93 Thomas DaCosta Kauffman Court, Cloister, and City Chicago and London, 1995 Eberhard Hempel Baroque Art and Architecture in Central Europe Baltimore, 1965 FRANCE 1500-1650 Anthony Blunt Art and Architecture in France 1500–1700 Harmondsworth, 1984 Ivan Cloules and Michèle Baimbenet-Privat Treasures of the French Renaissance New York, 1998 André Chastel French Art: The Renaissance 1430–1620 Paris and New York, 1995 FRANCE 1650-1800 Walter Kalein and Michael Levey Art and Architecture in France 1700–1800 Harmondsworth, 1976 Guy Walton Louis XIV’s Versailles Chicago, 1980 John Fleming and Hugh Honour Neo-Classicism Harmondsworth, 1970 SPAIN AND PORTUGAL 1500-1800 John F. Moffitt The Arts in Spain London, 1999 Robert C. Smith The Art of Portugal New York, 1968 ITALY 1500-1600 Benvenuto Cellini Autobiography (trans. George Anthony Bull) revised edn, Harmondsworth, 1999 Mary Hollingsworth Patronage in Sixteenth-Century 318 GENERAL READING ON WORLD ART Hugh Honour and John Fleming A World History of Art 6th edn, London, 2002 Alfred Gell Art and Agency: An Anthropological Theory Oxford, 1998 E. H. Gombrich The Sense of Order: A Study in the Psychology of Decorative Art Oxford, 1979 Martin Kemp (ed.) The Oxford History of Western Art Oxford, 2000 David Summers Real Spaces: World Art History and the Rise of Western Modernism London, 2003 Jane Turner (ed.) The Dictionary of Art, 34 vols, London, 1996 Part I ART, HUNTING AND GATHERING 40,000-5000 BC P. G. Bahn The Cambridge Illustrated History of Prehistoric Art Cambridge, 1998 P. Bahn and J. Vertut Journey Through the Ice Age London and Berkeley, 1997 M. Lorblanchet Les grottes ornées de la préhistoire Paris, 1995 M. Lorblanchet La naissance de l’art: Genèse de l’art préhistorique Paris, 1999 PART II ART, AGRICULTURE AND URBANIZATION 5000–500 BC THE WORLD 10,000–3000 BC S. Mithen After the Ice: A Global Human History 20,000–5000 BC. London, 2003 C. Scarre and B. M. Fagan Ancient Civilizations revised 2nd edn, New York, 2002 B. D. Smith The Emergence of Agriculture New York, 1995 THE AMERICAS 5000–500BC B. T. Arriaza Beyond Death: The Chinchorro Mummies of Ancient Chile Washington, 1995 Thomas D. Hurst Exploring Ancient Native America: An Archaeological Guide New York, 1999 C. McEwan, C. Barreto and E. Neves (eds) Unknown Amazon: Culture in Nature in Ancient Brazil London, 2001 G. R. Willey and J. A. Sabloff A History of American Archaeology New York, 1993 EUROPE 7000-2500 BC T. D. Price (ed.) Europe’s First Farmers Cambridge, 2000 C. Scarre Exploring Prehistoric Europe New York, 1998 A. Whittle Europe in the Neolithic: The Creation of New Worlds Cambridge, 1996 EUROPE 2500 –500BC B. Cunliffe Facing the Ocean: The Atlantic and its Peoples Oxford, 2001 K. Kristiansen Europe before History Cambridge,1998 A. F. Harding European Societies in the Bronze Age Cambridge, 2000 THE AEGEAN 2000–1000 BC D. Preziosi and L. Hitchcock Aegean Art and Architecture Oxford, 1999 T. Cullen (ed.) Aegean Prehistory: A Review Boston, 2001 S. Sherratt (ed.) The Wall Paintings of Thera London, 2000 THE MEDITERRANEAN 1000-500 BC John Boardman (ed.) The Oxford History of Classical Art Oxford, 1993 John Boardman The Greeks Overseas London, 1999 Otto Brendel, Etruscan Art New Haven, 1978 F. Briquel-Chatonnet and E. Gubel Les Phéniciens aux origines du Liban Paris, 1998 AFRICA 5000-500 BC Werner Gillon A Short History of African Art Harmondsworth, 1984 Peter Garlake Early Art and Architecture of Africa Oxford, 2002 David Phillipson African Archaeology 2nd edn, Cambridge, 2001 THE NILE VALLEY 3000-500 BC Gay Robins The Art of Ancient Egypt London, 1997 Paul.T. Nicholson and Ian Shaw (eds) Ancient Egyptian Materials and Technology Cambridge, 2000 Jaromir Malek Egypt: 4000 Years of Art London, 2003 WEST ASIA 3000-2000 BC Dominique Collon Ancient Near Eastern Art London, 1995 Henri Frankfort The Art and Architecture of the Ancient Orient revised edn, Harmondsworth, 1970 Julian Reade Mesopotamia revised edn, London, 2000 WEST ASIA 2000-500 BC Julian Reade Assyrian Sculpture London, 1998 Dominique Collon Ancient Near Eastern Art London, 1995 CENTRAL AND SOUTH ASIA 5000-500 BC J. R. McIntosh A Peaceful Realm: The Rise and Fall of the Indus Civilization Boulder, Colorado, 2002 J. M. Kenoyer Ancient Cities of the Indus Valley Civilization Karachi, 1998 EAST ASIA AND CHINA 5000-500 BC L. Sickman and A. Soper The Art and Architecture of China Harmondsworth, 1971 J. Rawson (ed.) The British Museum Book of Chinese Art London, 1992 C. Clunas Art in China Oxford, 1997 JAPAN AND KOREA 5000-500 BC Sarah M. Nelson The Archaeology of Korea Cambridge, 1993 Jane Portal Korea: Art and Archaeology London, 2000 Koji Mizoguchi An Archaeological History of Japan Philadelphia, 2002 THE PACIFIC AND INDONESIA 5000-500 BC Peter Bellwood Prehistory of the Indo-Malaysian Archipelago Honolulu, 1997 Charles Higham The Bronze Age of Southeast Asia Cambridge, 1996 Patrick V. Kirsch The Lapita Peoples: Ancestors of the Oceanic World Oxford, 1997 Matthew Spriggs The Island Melanesians Oxford, 1997 John Terrell Prehistory of the Pacific Islands Cambridge, 1986 J. Peter White, James F. O’Connell and Margrit Koettig (eds) A Prehistory of Australia, New Guinea, and Sahul Sydney, 1982 Part III ART, WAR AND EMPIRE, 500 BC-AD 600 NORTH AND CENTRAL AMERICA 600 BC-AD 600 Michael D. Coe, Dean Snow and Elizabeth Benson Atlas of Ancient America New York, 1986 Michael D. Coe and Rex Koontz Mexico 5th edn, London, 2002 Michael D. Coe The Maya 6th edn, London and New York, 1999 Alice Beck Kehoe America Before the European Invasions London and New York, 2002 SOUTH AMERICA 500 BC-AD 600 R. W. Keatinge Peruvian Prehistory New York, 1988 K. Olsen Bruhns Ancient South America Cambridge, 1994 H. Silverman and D. A. Proulx The Nasca Malden, Massachusetts and Oxford, 2002 EUROPE 500 BC-AD 300 Ruth and Vincent Megaw Celtic Art from its Beginnings to the Book of Kells London, 1989 Boris Piotrowsky, Luidmila Galanina and Nonna Grach Scythian Art Oxford,1987 Timothy Taylor, ‘Thracians, Scythians and Dacians’, in Barry Cunliffe (ed.) Prehistoric Europe Oxford, 1998 THE AEGEAN 500-300 BC John Onians Classical Art and the Cultures of Greece and Rome New Haven and London, 1999 J. J. Pollitt Art and Experience in Classical Greece Cambridge, 1972 THE EASTERN MEDITERRANEAN 500-100 BC Martin Robertson, A History of Greek Art Cambridge, 1975 John Onians Art and Thought in the Hellenistic Age: The Greek World View 350–50 BC London, 1979 Peter Levi Atlas of the Greek World Oxford, 1980 J. J. Pollitt Art in the Hellenistic Age Cambridge, 1986 THE WESTERN MEDITERRANEAN 500-100 BC R. J. Harrison Spain at the Dawn of History: Iberians, Phoenicians and Greeks London, 1988 Sybille Haynes Etruscan Civilization: A Cultural History London and Malibu, 2000 Glenn Markoe Phoenicians London, 2000 Giovanni Pugliese Carratelli The Western Greeks: Classical Civilization in the Western Mediterranean London, 1996 THE MEDITERRANEAN 100 BC-AD 100 Tim Cornell and John Matthews Atlas of the Roman World Oxford, 1982 Susan Walker and Peter Higgs Cleopatra of Egypt: From History to Myth London, 2000 Mary Beard and John Henderson Classical Art from Greece to Rome Oxford, 2001 Karl Galinsky Augustan Culture: An Interpretative Introduction Princeton,1996 THE MEDITERRANEAN AD 100-300 M. Henig (ed.) A Handbook of Roman Art: A Survey of the Visual Arts of the Roman World Oxford, 1983 J. B. Ward-Perkins Roman Imperial Architecture 2nd edn, Harmondsworth, 1981 Donald Strong (ed. J. M. C. Toynbee) Roman Art revised edn (with further revisions and notes by R. Ling), Harmondsworth, 1988 Mary T. Boatwright Hadrian and the Cities of the Roman Empire Princeton, 2000 EUROPE AD 300-600 F. van der Meer and Christine Mohrmann Atlas of the Early Christian World 3rd edn (trans. M. Hedlund and H. H. Rowley), London, 1966 Jás Elsner Imperial Rome and Christian Triumph: The Art of the Roman Empire AD 100–450 Oxford, 1998 Peter Brown The World of Late Antiquity from Marcus Aurelius to Muhammad London, 1971 G. W. Bowersock, Peter Brown and Oleg Grabar Late Antiquity: A Guide to the Postclassical World Cambridge, Massachusetts and London,1999 AFRICA 500 BC-AD 600 Werner Gillon A Short History of African Art, Harmondsworth, 1984 Peter Garlake Early Art and Architecture of Africa Oxford, 2002 David Phillipson African Archaeology 2nd edn., Cambridge, 2001 THE NILE VALLEY 500 BC-AD 300 Paul. T. Nicholson and Ian Shaw (eds) Ancient Egyptian Materials and Technology Cambridge, 2000 Jaromir Malek Egypt: 4000 Years of Art London, 2003 NORTH AFRICA AD 300-600 R. Bagnall Egypt in Late Antiquity Princeton, 1993 K. Dunbabin The Mosaics of Roman North Africa Oxford, 1978 T. K. Thomas Egyptian Funerary Sculpture: Images for This World and the Next Princeton, 2000 WEST ASIA 500-300 BC Margaret Cool Root The King and Kingship in Archaemenid Art Acta Iranica 19, Leiden, 1979 Pierre Birant From Cyrus to Alexander: A History of the Persian Empire (trans. Peter T. Daniels) Winona Lake, Indiana, 2002 Peter Green Alexander to Actavian Berkeley, 1990 WEST ASIA 300 BC-AD 600 M. A. R. Colledge The Parthian Period Leiden, 1986 V. S. Curtis, R. Hillenbrand and M. Rogers (eds) The Art and Archaeology of Ancient Persia: New Light on the Parthian and Sasanian Empires London,1996 N. C. Debevoise A Political History of Parthia Chicago, 1938 CENTRAL ASIA 500 BC-AD 600 E. Errington, J. Cribb and M. Claringbull (eds) The Crossroads of Asia: Transformation in Image and Symbol Cambridge, 1992 M. Hallade Gandharan Art of North India and the Graeco-Buddhist Tradition in India, Persia, and Central Asia New York, 1968 SOUTH ASIA 500 BC-AD 600 S. L. and J. C. Huntington The Art of Ancient India: Buddhist, Hindu, Jain New York, 1985 J. Schwartzberg (ed.) A Historical Atlas of South Asia Oxford, 1992 R. Thapar Early India: From the Origins to AD 1300 Berkeley, 2003 CHINA 500 BC-AD 600 L. Sickman and A. Soper The Art and Architecture of China Harmondsworth, 1971 J. Rawson (ed.) The British Museum Book of Chinese Art London, 1992 C. Clunas Art in China Oxford, 1997 JAPAN AND KOREA 500 BC-AD 600 Sarah. M. Nelson The Archaeology of Korea Cambridge, 1993 Jane Portal Korea, Art and Archaeology London. 2000 Koji Mizoguchi An Archaeological History of Japan Philadelphia, 2002 SOUTHEAST ASIA 500 BC-AD 600 Peter Bellwood Prehistory of the Indo-Malaysian Archipelago Honolulu, 1997 H. R. van Heekeren The Bronze-Iron Age of Indonesia ‘s-Gravenhage, 1958 Charles Higham The Bronze Age of Southeast Asia Cambridge, 1996 THE PACIFIC 500 BC-AD 600 Patrick V. Kirsch On the Road of the Winds: An Archaeological History of the Pacific Islands Before European Contact Berkeley, 2000 R. C. Green and M. Kelly Studies in Oceanic Culture History Honolulu, 1970 James R. Specht and J. Peter White Trade and Exchange in Oceania and Australia Sydney, 1978 Matthew Spriggs The Island Melanesians Oxford, 1997 PART IV ART, RELIGION AND THE RULER 600-1500 NORTH AMERICA 600-1500 Michael Coe, Dean Snow and Elizabeth Benson Atlas of Ancient America New York, 1986 James E. Dixon Bones, Boats, and Bison: Archaeology and the First Colonization of North America Albuquerque, New Mexico, 2000 Brian M. Fagan Ancient North America: The Archaeology of a Continent London, 1991 CENTRAL AMERICA 600-1500 Richard F. Townsend The Aztecs revised edn, London and New York, 2000 Michael E. Smith and Francis F. Berdan (eds) The Postclassic Mesoamerican World, Salt Lake City, 2003 Richard A. Diehl and Janet Catherine Berlo (eds) Mesoamerica After the Decline of Teotihuacan, A.D. 700–900 Washington D.C., 1989 Frederick W. Lange and Doris Z. Stone (eds) The BIBLIOGRAPHY 321 BIBLIOGRAPHY Joan Murray Canadian Art in the Twentieth Century Toronto, 1999 Nancy Lou Patterson Canadian Native Arts Don Mills, Ontario, 1973 NORTH AMERICA 1950-2000 David Hopkins After Modern Art 1945–2000 New York, 2000 Mark Cheetham and Linda Hutcheon Remembering Postmodernism: Trends in Recent Canadian Art New York, 1991 David Bjelajac American Art: A Cultural History Upper Saddle River, New Jersey, 2000 Robert Hughes American Visions: The Epic History of Art in America New York, 1997 Janet Catherine Berlo and Ruth B. Phillips Native North American Art New York, 1998 Joan Murray Canadian Art in the Twentieth Century Toronto, 1999 Nancy Lou Patterson Canadian Native Arts Don Mills, Ontario, 1973 CENTRAL AMERICA AND THE CARIBBEAN 1900-2000 Veerle Poupeye Caribbean Art London, 1998 Desmond Rochfort Mexican Muralists: Orozco, Rivera and Siqueiros London, 1997 Edward Sullivan (ed.) Latin American Art in the Twentieth Century London, 2000 SOUTH AMERICA 1900-2000 Dawn Ades Art in Latin America: The Modern Period New Haven and London, 1989 Valerie Fraser Building the New World: Studies in the Modern Architecture of Latin America 1930–1960 London and New York, 2000 Oriana Baddeley and Valerie Fraser Drawing the Line: Art and Cultural Identity in Contemporary Latin America London, 1989 EUROPE 1900-2000 Pam Meecham and Julie Sheldon Modern Art: A Critical Introduction London and New York, 2000 Robert Hughes The Shock of the New: Art and the Century of Change London, 1980 H. H. Arnason A History of Modern Art: Painting, Sculpture, Architecture London 1977 SCANDINAVIA AND THE BALTIC STATES 1900-2000 Cecilia Widenheim (ed.) Utopia and Reality: Modernity in Sweden 1900–1960 New Haven, 2002 Charlotte Fiell, Scandinavian Design Cologne, 2002 RUSSIA 1900-2000 John E. Bowlt Russian Art of the Avant-Garde: Theory and Criticism 1902–1934 New York, 1976 Norton Dodge and Alison Hilton (eds) New Art from the Soviet Union: The Known and the Unknown Washington DC, 1977 Norton Dodge and Alla Rosenfeld (eds) Nonconformist Art from the Soviet Union London, 1995 Camilla Gray The Russian Experiment in Art revised edn by M. Burleigh-Motley, London, 1986 The Great Utopia exh. cat., Solomon R. Guggenheim Museum and Tretyakov Gallery, New York and Moscow, 1993 Christina Lodder Russian Constructivism New Haven and London, 1990 Margarita Tupitsyn The Soviet Photograph New Haven and London, 1996 BRITAIN AND IRELAND 1900-2000 Lisa Tickner Modern Life and Modern Subjects: British Art in the Early Twentieth Century New Haven and London, 2000 Margaret Garlake New Art, New World: British Art in Postwar Society New Haven and London, 1998 Norman Rosenthal Sensation: Young British Artists from the Saatchi Collection London, 1997 THE NETHERLANDS AND BELGIUM 1900-2000 H. Kossman The Low Countries: 1780–1940 Oxford, 1978 Michael Wintle An Economic and Social History of The Netherlands 1880–1920 Cambridge, 2000 Auke van der Woude The Art of Building, from Classicism to Modernity: The Dutch Architectural Debate 1840–1990 Aldershot, 2001 GERMANY, SWITZERLAND, AUSTRIA 1900-2000 Shearer West The Visual Arts in Germany, 1890–1937: Utopia and Despair Piscataway, New Jersey, 2001 Brandon Taylor and Wilfried van der Will (eds) The Nazification of Art Winchester, 1990 Christos Joachimides, Norman Rosenthal and Wieland Schmied (eds) German Art in the Twentieth Century: Painting and Sculpture 1905–1985 exh cat., Royal Academy of Art, London, 1985 EASTERN EUROPE 1900-2000 S. A. Mansbach Modern Art in Eastern Europe: From the Baltic to the Balkans, c.1890–1939 Cambridge, 1999 Bojana Pejic and David Elliott (eds) After the Wall: Art and Culture in Post-Communist Europe Stockholm, 1999 FRANCE 1900-2000 David Cottington Cubism in the Shadow of War: The Avant-Garde and Politics in Paris,1905–1914 New Haven, 1998 Alexander Tzonis Le Corbusier: The Poetics of Machine and Metaphor Lincoln, Nebraska, 2002 Sidra Stich Art-SITES France: Contemporary Art and Architecture Handbook Chicago, 1999 Christopher Green Art in France: 1900–1940 New Haven, 2001 SPAIN AND PORTUGAL 1900-2000 John F. Moffitt The Arts in Spain London, 1999 Robert C. Smith The Art of Portugal New York, 1968 ITALY 1900-2000 Italian Art in the Twentieth Century exh. cat., Royal Academy of Arts, London, 1989 Marjorie Perloff The Futurist Moment Chicago, 1986 NORTH AFRICA 1900-2000 Henriette Camps-Fabrer Les bijoux de Grande Kabylie Paris, 1970 Mohamed Sijelmassi Les arts traditionnels au Maroc Paris, 1986 Wijdan Ali (ed.) Contemporary Art from the Islamic World London, 1989 John Hedgecoe and S. Samar Damluji (eds) Zillïj: The Art of Moroccan Ceramics Reading, 1992 Tarek Mohamed Refaat Sakr Early TwentiethCentury Architecture in Cairo Cairo, 1993 Christopher Spring and Julie Hudson North African Textiles London, 1995 EAST AND CENTRAL AFRICA 1900-2000 M. B. Visona, R. Poyner, H. M. Cole et al. A History of Art in Africa New York, 2000 André Magnin Contemporary African Art New York, 1995 WEST AFRICA 1900-2000 M. B. Visona, R. Poyner, H. M. Cole et al. A History of Art in Africa New York, 2000 Susan M. Vogel Africa Explores: 20th Century African Art New York, 1991 SOUTHERN AFRICA 1900-2000 Art and Ambiguity: Perspectives on the Brenthurst Collection of African Art exh. cat., Johannesburg Art Gallery, Johannesburg, 1991 Elizabeth Rankin Images of Wood: Aspects of the History of Sculpture in 20th-Century South Africa Johannesburg, 1989 Sue Williamson Resistance Art in South Africa Cape Town, 1989 Nigel Worden The Making of Modern South Africa: Conquest, Segregation and Apartheid Oxford, 1994 ASIA 1900-2000 Jane Turner (ed.) The Dictionary of Art, 34 vols, London, 1996 WEST ASIA 1900-2000 H. E. Wulff The Traditional Crafts of Persia Cambridge, Massachusetts, and London, 1966 Renata Holod and A. Evin (eds) Modern Turkish Architecture Philadelphia, 1984 Günsel Renda, Turan Erol, Adnan Turani, Kaya Özsezgin and Mustafa Aslıer A History of Turkish Painting Geneva, Seattle and London, 1988 Lebanon – the Artist’s View: 200 Years of Lebanese Painting exh. cat., British Lebanese Association, London, 1989 Wijdan Ali (ed.) Contemporary Art from the Islamic World London, 1989 H. Glassie Turkish Traditional Art Today Bloomington and Indianapolis, 1993 Stephen Vernoit (ed.) Discovering Islamic Art: Scholars, Collectors and Collections London, 2000 CENTRAL ASIA 1900-2000 Gulina Pugachenkova Akbar Khakimov The Art of Central Asia Leningrad, 1988 Johannes Kalter and Margareta Pavaloi (eds) Heirs to the Silk Road: Uzbekistan London, 1997 Shakhalil Shayakubov Modern Miniature Painting of Uzbekistan Tashkent, 1994 SOUTH ASIA 1900-2000 Balraj Khanna and Aziz Kurtha Art of Modern India London, 1998 Marcella Sirhandi Contemporary Painting in Pakistan Lahore, 1992 CHINA 1900-2000 Julia F. Andrews Painters and Politics in the People’s Republic of China, 1949–1979 Berkeley, Los Angeles and London, 1994 Michael Sullivan Art and Artists of Twentieth Century China Berkeley, Los Angeles and London, 1996 JAPAN AND KOREA 1900-2000 Penelope Mason History of Japanese Art New York, 1993 Jane Portal Korea: Art and Archeology London, 2000 Ellen Conant Nihonga, Transcending the Past: Japanese-Style Painting, 1868–1968 New York, 1995 SOUTHEAST ASIA 1900-2000 Fred B. Eiseman Bali: Sekala and Niskala Vol. 1 Essays on Religion, Ritual and Art Berkeley, 1989 Jacqueline M. Piper Bamboo and Rattan: Traditional Uses and Beliefs Oxford, 1992 Sylvia Fraser-Lu Silverware of South-East Asia Oxford, 1989 THE PACIFIC 1900-2000 Susan Cochrane Contemporary Art in Papua New Guinea Sydney, 1997 Anita Herle, Nick Stanley, Karen Stevenson and Robert L. Welsch (eds) Pacific Art: Persistence, Change, and Meaning Honolulu, 2002 Nicholas Thomas Oceanic Art London, 1995 Robert L. Welsch (ed.) An American Anthropologist in Melanesia: A. B. Lewis and the Joseph N. Field South Pacific Expedition, 1909–1913 Honolulu, 1998 AUSTRALIA AND NEW ZEALAND 1900-2000 Sylvia Kleinert and Margo Neale (eds) The Oxford Companion to Aboriginal Art and Culture Melbourne, 2000 Francis Pound The Space Between: Pakeha Use of Maori Motifs in Modernist New Zealand Art Auckland, 1994 Bernard Smith, with additional chapters by Terry Smith and Christopher Heathcote, Australian Painting, 1788–2000 4th edn, Melbourne, 2001 ART INSTITUTIONS WORLDWIDE 2000 Global Conceptualism: Points of Origin, 1950s–1980s exh. cat., Queens Museum of Art, New York, 1999 BIBLIOGRAPHY 320 Italy London, 1996 Peter Partner Renaissance Rome 1500–1559 Los Angeles and London, 1976 ITALY 1600-1800 Francis Haskell Patrons and Painters: A Study in the Relations between Italian Art and Society in the Age of the Baroque revised edn, New Haven and London, 1980 SOUTHEAST EUROPE 1500-1800 R. Hootz (ed.) Kunstmälerei in Ungarn Leipzig and Munich, 1981 R. Hootz (ed.) Kunstmälerei in Rumänien Leipzig and Munich, 1986 R. Hootz (ed.) Kunstmälerei in Jugoslavien Leipzig and Munich, 1981 R. Hootz (ed.) Kunstmälerei in Bulgarien Leipzig and Munich, 1983 EUROPE 1600-1800 Thomas DaCosta Kauffman Court, Cloister, and City Chicago and London, 1995 E. Bergvelt, D. Meijers and M. Rijnders Verzamelen: van rariteitenkabinet tot kunstmuseum Houten, 1993 Thomas Crow Painters and Public Life in EighteenthCentury Paris New Haven and London, 1985 NORTH AFRICA 1500-1800 André Raymond Artisans et commerçants au Caire au XVIIIe siècle 2 vols, Paris, 1973–4 J. Revault and B. Maury Palais et maisons du Caire du XIVe au XVIIIe siècle 3 vols, Paris, 1975–9 D. Hill, L. Golvin and R. Hillenbrand Islamic Architecture in North Africa London, 1976 Antony Hutt Islamic Architecture: North Africa London, 1977 John Hedgecoe and S. Samar Damluji (eds) Zillïj: The Art of Moroccan Ceramics Reading, 1992 SUB-SAHARAN AFRICA 1500-1800 Paula BenAmos The Art of Benin London, 1980 M. B. Visona, R. Poyner, H. M. Cole et al. A History of Art in Africa New York, 2000 ASIA 1500-1800 Jane Turner (ed.) The Dictionary of Art, 34 vols, London, 1996 WEST ASIA 1500-1800 Sheila S. Blair and Jonathan M. Bloom The Art and Architecture of Islam: 1250–1800 New Haven and London, 1994 J. M. Rogers Islamic Art and Design: 1500–1700 London, 1983 CENTRAL ASIA 1500-1800 Sheila S. Blair and Jonathan M. Bloom The Art and Architecture of Islam: 1250–1800 New Haven and London, 1994 Jane Turner (ed.) The Dictionary of Art, 34 vols, London, 1996 SOUTH ASIA 1500-1800 Bianca Maria Alfieri Islamic Architecture of the Indian Subcontinent London, 2000 Catherine Asher Architecture of Mughal India Cambridge, 1992 Milo Cleveland Beach Mughal and Rajput Painting Cambridge, 1992 CHINA AND TIBET 1500-1650 Sarah Handler Austere Luminosity of Chinese Classical Furniture Berkeley, 2001 Chu-tsing Li and James Watt (eds) The Chinese Scholar’s Studio: Artistic Life in the Later Ming Period New York, 1987 Jonathan Spence The Memory Palace of Matteo Ricci London, 1983 Yinong Xu The Chinese City in Space and Time: The Development of Urban Form in Suzhou Honolulu, 2000 CHINA AND TIBET 1650-1800 Qianshen Bai Fu Shan’s World: The Transformation of Chinese Calligraphy in the Seventeenth Century Cambridge, Massachusetts, 2003 Patricia Berger Empire of Emptiness: Buddhist Art and Political Authority in Qing China Honolulu, 2003 Jonathan Hay Painting and Modernity in Early Qing China New York, 2001 Tobie Meyer-Fong Building Culture in Early Qing Yangzhou Stanford, 2003 Susan Naquin Peking: Temples and City Life, 1400–1900 Berkeley, 2000 Nancy Shatzman Steinhardt Chinese Imperial City Planning Honolulu, 1990 JAPAN AND KOREA 1500-1800 Penelope Mason History of Japanese Art New York, 1993 Jane Portal Korea: Art and Archeology London, 2000 Christine Guth Art of Edo Japan: The Artist and the City 1615–1868 New York, 1996 Hongnam Kim Korean Arts of the Eighteenth Century: Splendor and Simplicity New York, 1993 Miyeko Murase (ed.) Turning Point: Oribe and the Arts of Sixteenth-Century Japan New York, 2003 Robert T. Singer Edo: Art in Japan 1615–1868 New Haven, 1998 SOUTHEAST ASIA 1500-1800 Anthony Reid Southeast Asia in the Age of Commerce Volume One: The Land Below the Winds New Haven and London, 1988 Nicholas Tarling (ed.) The Cambridge History of Southeast Asia Volume One: From Early Times to c.1800 Cambridge, 1992 Gwyneth Chaturachinda, Sunanda Krishnamurty and Pauline W. Tabtiang Dictionary of South and Southeast Asian Art Chiang Mai, 2000 THE PACIFIC 1500-1800 The Forster Collection, a website for Pacific artefacts collected by Johann Reinhold and George Forster on Captain Cook’s second voyage (1772–75), Pitt Rivers Museum, Oxford: www.prm.ox.ac.uk/forster/ Anne Salmond Two Worlds: First Meetings between Maori and Europeans 1642–1772 London, 1991 PART VI ART, INDUSTRY AND SCIENCE 1800-1900 NORTH AMERICA 1800-1860 David Bjelajac American Art: A Cultural History Upper Saddle River, New Jersey, 2000 Robert Hughes American Visions: The Epic History of Art in America New York, 1997 Janet Catherine Berlo and Ruth B. Phillips Native North American Art New York, 1998 Nancy Lou Patterson Canadian Native Arts Don Mills, Ontario, 1973 NORTH AMERICA 1860-1900 David Bjelajac American Art: A Cultural History Upper Saddle River, New Jersey, 2000 Robert Hughes American Visions: The Epic History of Art in America New York, 1997 Janet Catherine Berlo and Ruth B. Phillips Native North American Art New York, 1998 Nancy Lou Patterson Canadian Native Arts Don Mills, Ontario, 1973 CENTRAL AMERICA AND THE CARIBBEAN 1800-1900 Dawn Ades Art in Latin America 1820–1980; London, 1989 Timothy E. Anna Forging Mexico, 1821–1835 Lincoln, Nebraska, 1998 Robert Harvey The Liberators: Latin America’s Struggle for Independence, 1810–1850 London, 2002 Elizabeth Netto Calil Zarur Art and Faith in Mexico: The Nineteenth Century Retablo Tradition Albuquerque, New Mexico, 2001 SOUTH AMERICA 1800-1900 Dawn Ades (ed.) Art in Latin America: The Modern Era, 1820–1980 New Haven and London, 1974 Gustavo Curiel, Renato González Mello and Juana Gutiérrez Haces (eds) Arte, Historia e Identidad en América: Visiones comparativas Mexico City, 1994 Pablo Diener Ojeda (ed.) Rugendas: América de punta a cabo Santiago de Chile, 1992 EUROPE 1800-1900 Stephen F. Eisenman Nineteenth Century Art: A Critical History London, 1994 Paul Greenhalgh Art Nouveau 1890–1914 London, 2000 Dennis and Elizabeth De Witt Modern Architecture in Europe: A Guide to Buildings since the Industrial Revolution London, 1987 SCANDINAVIA AND THE BALTIC 1800-1900 Marian C. Donnelly Architecture in the Scandinavian Countries Cambridge, Massachusetts, 1992 Neil Kent The Soul of the North. A Social, Architectural and Cultural History of the Nordic Countries, 1700–1940 London, 2000 Barbara Miller Lane National Romanticism and Modern Architecture in Germany and the Scandinavian Countries Cambridge, 2000 RUSSIA 1800-1900 The Art of Russia 1800–1850 exh. cat., University of Minnesota Art Gallery, Minneapolis, 1977 Dmitry Sarabianov Russian Art from Neoclassicism to the Avant-Garde New York, 1990 G. T. Stavrou (ed.) Art and Culture in NineteenthCentury Russia Bloomington, Indiana, 1983 Elizabeth Valkenier Russian Realist Art: The Peredvizhniki and their Tradition New York, 1989 BRITAIN 1800-1900 John Gage and J. M. W. Turner A Wonderful Range of Mind New Haven and London, 1984 Chris Brooks The Gothic Revival London, 1999 Elizabeth Prettejohn Art of the Pre-Raphaelites London, 2000 THE NETHERLANDS AND BELGIUM 1800-1900 H. Kossman The Low Countries: 1780–1940 Oxford, 1978 Michael Wintle An Economic and Social History of The Netherlands 1880–1920 Cambridge, 2000 Richard Bionda and Carel Blotkamp (eds.) The Age of van Gogh: Dutch Painting 1880–1895 Zwolle, 1990 Auke van der Woude The Art of Building, from Classicism to Modernity: The Dutch Architectural Debate 1840–1990 Aldershot, 2001 GERMANY AND SWITZERLAND 1800-1900 Harry Francis Mallgrave and Gottfried Semper Architecture of the Nineteenth Century New Haven and London, 1996 G. Wietek (ed.) Deutsche Künstlerkolonien und Künstlerorte Munich, 1976 FRANCE 1800-1900 John House Landscapes of France: Impressionism and its Rivals London, 1995 Charles Rearick Pleasures of the Belle Époque: Entertainment and Festivity in Turn-of-the-Century France London, 1985 Eugen Weber France: Fin de Siècle London, 1986 SPAIN AND PORTUGAL 1800-1900 John F. Moffitt The Arts in Spain London, 1999 Robert C. Smith The Art of Portugal New York, 1968 ITALY 1800-1900 Albert Boime The Art of the Macchia and the Risorgimento: Representing Culture and Nationalism in Nineteenth-Century Italy Chicago, 1993 Omar Calabrese (ed.) Modern Italy: Images and History of a National Identity, from Unification to the New Century Milan, 1982 AUSTRIA-HUNGARY AND SOUTHEAST EUROPE 1800-1900 Akos Moravánsky Competing Visions: Aesthetic Invention and Social Imagination in Central European Architecture 1867–1918 Cambridge, Massachusetts, 1997 Gyöngyi Éri and Zsuzsa Tobbágyi A Golden Age: Art and Society in Hungary 1896–1914 Budapest, London and Miami, 1990/91 NORTH AFRICA 1800-1900 Gaston Wiet Mohammed Ali et les beaux-arts Cairo, 1949 Caroline Stone The Embroideries of North Africa London, 1985 James F. Jereb Arts and Crafts of Morocco London, 1995 Christopher Spring and Julie Hudson North African Textiles London, 1995 Stephen Vernoit Occidentalism: Islamic Art in the 19th Century London, 1997 SUB-SAHARAN AFRICA 1800-1900 Suzanne P. Blier The Royal Arts of Africa: The Majesty of Form New York, 1998 Labelle Prussin Hatumere: Islamic Design in West Africa Berkeley, 1986 M. B. Visona, R. Poyner, H. M. Cole et al. A History of Art in Africa New York, 2000 WEST ASIA 1800-1900 Jane Turner (ed.) The Dictionary of Art, 34 vols, London, 1996 CENTRAL ASIA 1800-1900 Jane Turner (ed.) The Dictionary of Art, 34 vols, London, 1996 INDIA 1800-1900 Rosemary Crill, John Guy, Veronica Murphy, Susan Stronge and Deborah Swallow Arts of India: 1550–1900 London, 1990 Tapati Guha-Thakurta The Making of a New Indian Art: 1850–1920 Cambridge, 1992 Partha Mitter Art and Nationalism in Colonial India:1850–1922 Cambridge, 1994 CHINA AND TIBET 1800-1900 Claudia Brown and Ju-hsi Chou Transcending Turmoil: Painting at the Close of China’s Empire, 1796–1911 Phoenix, Arizona, 1992 Carl Crossman The Decorative Arts of the China Trade: Paintings, Furnishings, and Exotic Curiosities Woodbridge, Suffolk, 1991 F. L. Hawkes Pott A Short History of Shanghai Shanghai, 1928 Richard Ellis Vinograd Boundaries of the Self: Chinese Portraits 1600–1900 New York, 1992 JAPAN AND KOREA 1800-1900 Penelope Mason History of Japanese Art New York, 1993 Jane Portal Korea: Art and Archeology London, 2000 Dallas Finn Meiji Revisited: The Sites of Victorian Japan New York,1995 Young-pil Kwon (ed.) The Fragrance of Ink: Korean Literati Paintings of the Choson Dynasty (1392–1910) Seoul, 1996 Julia Meech-Pekarik The World of the Meiji Print: Impressions of a New Civilization New York, 1987 SOUTHEAST ASIA 1800-1900 Sylvia Fraser-Lu Burmese Crafts Past and Present Oxford, 1994 Jean-Paul Barbier and Douglas Newton (eds) Islands and Ancestors: Indigenous Styles of Southeast Asia New York and Geneva, 1988 Robyn Maxwell Textiles of Southeast Asia: Tradition, Trade and Transformation Melbourne, 1990 THE PACIFIC 1800-1900 A. Herle, N. Stanley, K. Stevenson and R. Welsch (eds) Pacific Art: Persistence, Change and Meaning Hawaii, 2002 R. Nile and C. Clerk Cultural Atlas of Australia, New Zealand and the South Pacific Oxford, 1996 Nicholas Thomas Oceanic Art London, 1995 AUSTRALIA AND NEW ZEALAND 1800-1900 Joan Kerr (ed.) The Dictionary of Australian Artists: Painters, Sketchers, Photographers and Engravers to 1870 Melbourne, 1992 D. C. Starzecka (ed.) Maori: Art and Culture London, 1996 Jane Clark and Bridget Whitelaw Golden Summers: Heidelberg and Beyond, International Cultural Corporation of Australia Sydney, 1986 PART VII ART, IDEAS AND TECHNOLOGY 1900-2000 NORTH AMERICA 1900-1950 Abraham A. Davidson Early American Modernist Painting, 1910–1935 New York, 1981 Terry Smith Making the Modern: Industry, Art, and Design in America Chicago, 1993 David Bjelajac American Art: A Cultural History Upper Saddle River, New Jersey, 2000 Robert Hughes American Visions: The Epic History of Art in America New York, 1997 Janet Catherine Berlo and Ruth B. Phillips Native North American Art New York, 1998 PICTURE CREDITS AND LOCATIONS 323 264 © Estate of Robert Smithson/VAGA, New York/DACS, London 2003 265 Bridgeman Art Library, London 266 National Palace, Mexico City/Art Archive/Dagli Orti © 2003 Banco de Mexico Diego Rivera & Frida Kahlo Museums Trust. Av. Cinco de Mayo No 2, Col.Centro, Del. Cuauhtemoc 06059, Mexico, D.F. 267 Hutchison-Eye Ubiquitous/Liba Taylor © DACS 2003 269t Mira Schendel Archiv, Sao Paolo, Brazil 269b Fundacion Villaneuva, Caracas, Venezuela 271t Museo Nacional Centro de Arte Reina Sofia, Madrid/Bridgeman Art Library, London © Succession Picasso/DACS 2003 271b Moderna Museet, Stockholm © DACS 2003 272 The Hilma af Klint Foundation, Stockholm 273 Moderna Museet, Stockholm 274 Amsterdam Stedelijk Museum/Artothek 275 Tretyakov Gallery, Moscow/Scala © DACS 2003 277t Imperial War Museum, London/Bridgeman Art Library, London 277b © Rachel Whiteread/Artangel/Sue Ormerod 278 Haags Gemeentemuseum, Netherlands/Bridgeman Art Library, London © 2004 Mondrian/Holtzman Trust c/o HCRinternational- hcr@hcrinternational.com 279 Museum of Modern Art, New York/Scala © ADAGP, Paris and DACS, London 2003 280 Tate Gallery, London © by Dr. Wolfgang & Ingeborg Henze-Ketterer, Wichtrach/Bern 281 Stiftung Archiv der Akademie der Kunste Berlin, Kunstsammlung © DACS 2003 283t Staatsbibliothek zu Berlin, BPK 283b Hutchison-Eye Ubiquitous/Vladimir Birgus 284 Metropolitan Museum of Art, New York, Bequest of Gertrude Stein, 1947 (47 106) photo © 1996; © Succession Picasso/DACS 2003 285 Peter Kent © FLC/ADAGP, Paris and DACS, London 2003 286 Private Collection/Bridgeman Art Library, London © ADAGP, Paris and DACS, London 2003 287 Lluis Casals Fotografia Scp 288 Tate Gallery, London 289 Civico Museo d’Arte Contemporanea, Milan/© Saporetti 290 Aga Khan Trust for Culture/Gary Otte 291 Rose Issa 292 Staatliche Museen zu Berlin, Ethnologisches Museum, BPK/Heini Schneebeli 293 from Johannes Fabian: Remembering the Present: Painting and Popular History in Zaire (1996) 294 Herbert Cole 295 British Museum, London © Sokari Douglas Camp 297 Professor Michael Godby 298 Parviz Tanavoli 299 Sue Barr/View Pictures, London 300 Robert Harding Picture Library 301 Khalili Collection/The Nour Foundation 302 Fine Arts & Photography, Xinjiang, China 303 Fine Arts & Photography, Xinjiang, China 304 The Royal Collection © HM Queen Elizabeth II 305 Thomas B Keehn 306 Private Collection/Michael Sullivan 307 SMC Publishing Inc.Taipei 308 British Museum, London 309 British Museum, London 310 Hutchison-Eye Ubiquitous/Michael MacIntyre 311 National Gallery of Malaysia Permanent Collection 312 © Karen Stevenson, Christchurch, New Zealand 313 © Hugh Stevenson, P.N.G Advisers, New South Wales 315t Photo: Dunstan and Kinge Photographers, Gisborne, New Zealand 315b Private Collection/Bridgeman Art Library, London 316 Universe in Universe Worlds of Art © Pat Binder, Gerhard Haupt and William Kentridge NOTE ON SPELLINGS AND PLACE NAMES The names of all the countries, major physical features and regions, and cities (modern or historical) are spelled in accordance with English conventional usage, e.g. Burma, Nile, Anatolia, Carthage, Constantinople. For all other names the general practice is to show them in terms of the contemporary forms that fit the time-scale of the maps concerned. Thus Latin names in the Classical world, Sanskrit names in the early dynastic states of India, e.g. Nicaea (modern Iznik), Pataliputra (modern Patna). All Chinese names, whether ancient or modern, are spelled in accordance with the now widely accepted Pinyin system. For the early modern period contemporary names may reflect a political administrative situation rather different from today’s, e.g. Christiania (now Oslo), Pozsony (now Bratislava), Königsberg (now Kaliningrad). All names in languages using Roman alphabet are spelled with all the diacritics appropriate to those languages, e.g. Córdoba, Århus, S˘ibenik, Chis,nina˘u. But names derived from transliteration or transcription from non-Roman alphabet languages, e.g. Arabic, Hebrew, Japanese, Korean, Persian, Sanskrit, are spelled without the often unfamiliar diacritics used in the scholarly romanisation of these languages, e.g. Sana (not S,an‘a¯’), Sravasti (not S´ra¯vastı¯). 322 PICTURE CREDITS AND LOCATIONS 14–15 © Colorphoto Hinz, Allschwil-Basel 16 Direction Regionale des Affaires Culturelles, Rhônes-Alpes 17 National Museum of Namibia 20l Paul Bahn 20r Bridgeman Art Library, London 21 Paul Bahn 20r Flemming Bau 22–23 Robert Harding Picture Library/Richard Ashworth 24 British Museum, London 25 Ashmolean Museum, Oxford 26t South American Pictures, Woodbridge/Tony Morrison 26b Powerstock 29 Hutchison-Eye Ubiquitous/Peter Moszynski 29b Natural History Museum, Vienna/Alice Schumacher 30 © 2003 Centro Camuno di Studi Preistorici, Capo di Ponte, Italy 31 National Museum of Denmark, Copenhagen 32 from Christos Doumas: The Wall Paintings of Thera (Athens & London, 1992) 33 British School at Athens 34 British Museum, London 35 Ancient Art & Architecture Collection, Pinner, Middlesex 36 British Museum, London 37 Sonia Halliday Photographs/James Wellard 38 Royal Ontario Museum, Toronto © ROM 39 British Museum, London/Bridgeman Art Library, London 40 from L Woolley: The Ziggurat and its Surroundings, Ur Excavations, vol. V (1939) 41 British Museum, London/Bridgeman Art Library, London 42 The Art Archive/Archaeological Museum, Aleppo, Syria/Dagli Orti 43 British Museum, London/Bridgeman Art Library, London 45t&b Omar Khan www.harappa.com 46 Cultural Relics Press, Beijing 47 Cultural Relics Press, Beijing 48 National Museum of Korea, Seoul 49 Shinto Village Museum for Earrings, Gumma Prefecture, Japan 50 National Gallery of Australia, Canberra 51 Auckland University 52–3 Robert Harding Picture Library, London 54 Jeffrey Blomster 55 South American Pictures, Woodbridge/Tony Morrison 56 Adriana von Hagen 57 Adriana von Hagen 61t Hutchison-Eye Ubiquitous/Nigel Howard 61b Bildarchiv Preussisches Kulturbesitz, Berlin 62 British Museum, London 63 Pergamon Museum, Berlin/Bridgeman Art Library, London 64 Archivo Fotografico, Museo Arqueologica Nacional, Madrid/Jose Latova 65 Museo Civico Archeologico, Bologna 67r Kunsthistorisches Museum, Vienna 67l Biblioteca Apostolica Vaticana, Rome/Scala 68 Noordbrabants Museum, ‘s-Hertogenbosch 69 Bridgeman Art Library, London 70 British Museum, London 71 Cameraphoto Arte, Venice 72 Museum of Fine Arts Houston, Texas/Bridgeman Art Library, London 73 Werner Forman Archive, London 74 Brooklyn Museum of Art/Bridgeman Art Library, London 75 Stapleton Collection/Bridgeman Art Library, London 76 British Museum, London 77 Ancient Art & Architecture Collection, Pinner, Middlesex 78 Usak Archaeological Museum, Usak 79 Ancient Art & Architecture Collection, Pinner, Middlesex 80 Murray Eiland 81 Musée Historique des Tissus, Lyon Inv.897.iii.s/Studio Basset 82 Kabul Museum, Afghanistan Bridgeman Art Library, London 83 Staatliche Museen zu Berlin, Museum für Indische Kunst 84 Sarnath Museum, Uttar Pradesh/Bridgeman Art Library, London 85 Hutchison-Eye Ubiquitous/Patricio Goycolea 86 Robert Harding Picture Library, London 87 British Museum, London 88 Gwongu Kim, The New National Museum project Team, Seoul 89 Kobe City Museum 89 Historical Museum, Hanoi/Werner Forman Archive, London 90 Cleveland Museum of Art, John L. Severance Fund 1973.106 93t Stuart Bedford, New Zealand Historic Places Trust/Pouhere Taongo 93b Archives Barbier-Mueller, Geneva/JeanLouis Sosna,1998 94–95 Robert Harding Picture Library, London 96t Maxwell Museum of Anthropology, Albuquerque/Werner Forman Archive, London 96b Field Museum of Natural History, Chicago/Werner Forman Archive, London 98 British Museum, London 99 Museo Nacional de Antropología, Mexico City/Ancient Art & Architecture Collection, Pinner, Middlesex 101 Frank Meddens 102 AKG London/Erich Lessing 103l Bildarchiv Preussisches Kulturbesitz/photo Karin Marz 103r Biblioteca Apostolica Vaticana, Rome 104 Scala Picture Library 105 National Library of the Netherlands 106 Ancient Art & Architecture, Pinner, Middlesex /John King 107 Trésors de la Cathédrale, Musées de Sens/J. P. Elie 109l Crown Copyright Historic Royal Palaces 109r National Museum of Denmark, Copenhagen 110 Paul M. R. Maeyaert 112 Parker Library, Corpus Christi College, Cambridge 113 Laurence King Publishing 114 Scala Picture Library 115 Cleveland Museum of Art 2003, Purchase from the J. H. Wade Fund 1966.368 117t © National Gallery, London 117b © Victoria & Albert Museum, London 118 © Victoria & Albert Museum, London 119 © National Gallery, London 120 Laurence King Archive 121 Bridgeman Art Library, London 122 Studio Quattrone, Florence 123 Bridgeman Art Library, London 124 Sheila Blair & Jonathan Bloom 125 Mrs Bashir Mohamed Collection/Werner Forman Archive, London 126 Ancient Art & Architecture/Ronald Sheridan 127 Institute of Ethiopian Studies, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia/Malcolm Varon 128 Sheila Blair & Jonathan Bloom 129 Staatliche Museen zu Berlin, Museen für Islam/G.Niedermeiser Inv nr. 1346G 131 Sheila Blair & Jonathan Bloom 132 Sheila Blair & Jonathan Bloom 133 Freer Gallery of Art, Smithsonian Institution, Washington, DC, Purchase F 1952.11 134 Daud Ali 135 Daud Ali 136 Nelson–Atkins Museum of Art, Kansas City (Purchase) F80-5 137 Martin Powers 138 Percival David Foundation, London 139 Musée des Arts Asiatiques-Guimet, Paris (copyright L. Fournier)/© RMNEvandro Costa 140 UNESCO 141 Tokugawam Reimeikai Foundation, Tokyo/Bridgeman Art Library, London 142 Robert Harding Picture Library, London 143 Private Collection/Werner Forman Archive, London 144 British Museum, London 145 Bridgeman Art Library, London/Ken Walsh 146–7 AKG Images/Jean Louis Nou 148 Collection Anderson, Plains Indian Museum, Cody, Wyoming/Werner Forman Archive, London 149 Portland Museum, Oregon/Werner Forman Archive, London 150 Hutchison-Eye Ubiquitous/Jeremy Horner 151 Hutchison-Eye Ubiquitous/Liba Taylor 152 South American Pictures, Woodbridge/Tony Morrison 153 South American Pictures, Woodbridge/Tony Morrison 155t Kunsthistorisches Museum, Vienna/Bridgeman Art Library, London 155b Hutchison-Eye Ubiquitous 156 Nationalmuseum, Stockholm 157 Det Nationalhistoriske Museum pa Frederiksborg, Hillerød 158 Castle Museum, Liw, Poland 159 Polska Akademia Nauk, Instytut Sztuki 160 State Russian Museum, St Petersburg/Bridgeman Art Library, London 161 Hutchison-Eye Ubiquitous/Nick Haslam 162 Bridgeman Art Library, London/John Bethell 163 © Victoria & Albert Museum, London/ Bridgeman Art Library, London 164 AKG London 165 Christopher Simon-Sykes 166 Stichting Koninklijk Amsterdam, Educatieve Dienst 167 Kunsthistorisches Museum Vienna/Bridgeman Art Library, London 168 Musée Royaux des Beaux-Arts de Belgique/photo Cussac 169 Museo del Prado, Madrid/Bridgeman Art Library, London 170 Staatliche Kunstsammlungen, Dresden 171 Stadtarchiv, Nuremberg 172 A. F. Kersting 173 Die Staatlichen Kunstsammlungen Dresden 174 Bridgeman Art Library, London 175 Gemaldegalerie, Dresden/Artothek 176 Château de Versailles et de Trianon/Photo Réunion des Musées Nationaux/Jean Schormans 177 Schloss Charlottenburg, Berlin/Bridgeman Art Library, London 178 Art Archive/Dagli Orti 179 Bridgeman Art Library, London/Ken Walsh 180 Vatican Museums and Galleries/Bridgeman Art Library, London 181 Museo e Gallerie Nazionali di Capodimonte/Bridgeman Art Library, London 182 Araldo de Luca, Rome 183 Harvard University Art Museums, Fogg Art Museum/Bridgeman Art Library, London 184 Paul M. R. Maeyaert 185 Paul M. R. Maeyaert 188 Antony Hutt Archive/Ashmolean Museum 189 N. Erzini 190 Museen zu Berlin-Preussischer Kulturbesitz Ethnologisches Museum 191 Brooklyn Museum of Art, New York/Bridgeman Art Library, London 192 © Victoria & Albert Museum, London 193 Sheila Blair & Jonathan Bloom 194 British Library, London 195 Ashmolean Museum, Oxford 196 Chester Beatty Library, Dublin 197 © John Fleming & Hugh Honour 198 Daud Ali 199 Daud Ali 200 Metropolitan Museum of Art, New York. Purchase, The Vincent Astor Foundation and the Dillon Funds Gifts (1996.338) 201 Rare Books, East Asiatic Collection, University of California, Berkeley 202 Metropolitan Museum of Art, New York. Purchase, The Dillon Fund, 1982 (1982.126), photo © 1995 203 Asian Art Museum of San Francisco, The Avery Brundage Collection, B60.D102 205l Hutchison-Eye Ubiquitous 205r Yun Young-Son Collection/National Museum of Korea 206 Miranda Bruce-Mitford 207 Rijksmuseum Foundation, Amsterdam 209t Pitt Rivers Museum, Oxford 209b Auckland War Memorial Museum 210–11 AKG London/Joseph Martin 212 National Gallery of Scotland/Bridgeman Art Library, London 213 Smithsonian Institution, Washington DC/Bridgeman Art Library, London 214 Bridgeman Art Library, London 215 Bridgeman Art Library, London 216 Museo de Alhondiga de Granadita, Guanajuat/Index Bridgeman Art Library, London 217 Museo Nacional de Arte, Mexico/Bridgeman Art Library, London 218 Munipipalidad de la Serena, Chile 219 Museo Nacional de Artes Visuales, Montevideo, Uruguay 221t Science Museum, London/Bridgeman Art Library, London 221b Martin Charles © DACS: 2003 222 Kansallisarkisto, Helsinki 223 Nationalmuseum, Stockholm 224 State Russian Museum, St Petersburg/Scala 225 Tretyakov Gallery, Moscow/Bridgeman Art Library, London 226 Manchester City Art Galleries, UK/Bridgeman Art Library, London 227 Hutchison-Eye Ubiquitous/Robert Francis 228 AKG Images/Hilbich © DACS 2003 229 Mesdag Documentatie Stichting, Wassenaar 231l Deutsche Luftbild, Hamburg 231r Ulrich Kneise, Fotogalerie 232 Musée d’Orsay, Paris/Bridgeman Art Library, London 233 Musée d’Orsay, Paris,/Bridgeman Art Library, London 235t Robert HardingPicture Library, London/Adina Tovy 235b Museo del Prado, Madrid/Bridgeman Art Library, London 237t Wellington Museum, London/Victoria and Albert Museum Picture Library 237b Town Hall & Civic Museum, Siena/Bridgeman Art Library, London 238 Paul M. R. Maeyaert 239 Hungarian National Gallery, Budapest/Mester Tibor 240 Khalili Collection/The Nour Foundation 241 Steven Vernoit 242 Staatliche Museen zu BerlinPreussischer Kulturbesitz Ethnologisches Museum/BPK 243 Staatliche Museen zu BerlinPreussischer Kulturbesitz Ethnologisches Museum/BPK 244 Musée du Louvre, Paris/© Photo RMN- HerveLewandowski 245 Hutchison-Eye Ubiqitous/John Egan 246 Christies Images 247 Library of Congress/Prokudin-Gorskii Collection 248 India Office Library and Records, London 249 © Victoria & Albert Museum, London 250 Martyn Gregory Gallery 251 National Palace Museum, Beijing 253t National Museum of Korea, Seoul 251b Scripps College, Claremont, CA 254 Hutchison-Eye Ubiquitous/Jeremy Horner 255 Archives Barbier-Mueller, Geneva/Alain Ferrazzini 256 Pitt Rivers Museum, Oxford 257 Pitt Rivers Museum, Oxford 259t National Gallery of Australia, Canberra 259b National Museum of New Zealand, Wellington/Werner Forman Archive, London 260–61 © Miriam Schapiro/Galerie Bischofberger, Zurich 263t Metropolitan Museum of Art, New York, Alfred Stieglitz Collection 1952 (52.203) Photo © ARS, NY and DACS, London 2003 263b Henry Ford Museum & Greenfield Village Every effort has been made by the publishers to trace the copyright holders and we apologize in advance for any unintentional omissions. We would be pleased to insert the appropriate acknowledgement in any subsequent edition of this publication. Picture credits are given by page number. The following abbreviations are used: l left r right b bottom t top INDEX 325 Angels, collapse of 70 Angers architecture 110, 154 ecclesiastical centre 116 museum 285 university 112 Angevin family 121 Angilbertus, Archbishop 104 Angkor historical site 206, 254, 310 temple 95, 142, 143, 206, 206 Angles-sur-l’Anglin 19 Anglesey, megalithic art 29 Anglo-Russian Agreement 246 Angoche 127 Angola 191, 243, 292 Angostura 218 Angoulême murals 110 panel painting 118 royal progress 154 Angry Penguins 314 Angus, Rita (1908-70) 314 Ani 106, 107 excavations 245 Aniane 103 Aniba 37, 38 Anige (1245-1306) 139 Anika 272 Animals in art 42-43, 43, 57, 80 trade in wild 69, 69 Aniwaniwa, indigenous art 315 Anjar 128 Ankara 130, 195 archaeology 298 fine arts 298, 300 Anlar, temple 134 Anman 128 Annaba 76, 124 Annam 254 Anne, Aki and God (Ahtila) 273 Annecy, château 118 Anping, trade centre 192 Anqing 202, 250 Anshan (Persis) 78 Anshun (China) 306 Ansi 89 Antalya 32, 195 carpet-making 244 Antelas, megalithic art 29 Anthropophagite Manifesto 268 Antibes 284, 285 Antigonid kingdom 62 Antigonus Monophthalmos 62 Antimachus I, tetradrachm 62 Antinoopolis 74, 74, 77 Antioch 63, 67, 69, 70, 128 Crusader control 106 gem workshop 67 Latin Christian territory 130 mosaics 71, 81 patronage centre 66 Roman empire art 68 sculpture centre 62 trading centre 107 Antiochia 66 Antiochus I 63 Antiquities Italian 122, 122, 123, 181 restored 183 Antiquity, culture of 128, 171, 180, 182 Antoninus Pius, emperor 91 Antwerp architecture 279 art academy 186 art collection 187 art market 155 Art Nouveau 220 artistic centre 154, 166, 168, 228, 278, 279 artistic institutions 229 artists’ travels 187 auction houses 187 ecclesiastical centre 116 Exposition Universelles 229 global artefacts 278 Jesuit Church 168 sculpture 117 Spanish conquest 154 trade centre 228, 228 Anumakonda, temple 134 Anuradhapura, stupa 84, 85, 134 Anuta, Lapita pottery 51, 92 Anxi 83 kiln site 137 Anyang archaeology 306, 306, 307 early urbanism 22, 25 tombs 25, 25 Aomori 252 Aosta, panel painting 118 Apa Apollo 77 Apa Jeremia 77 Apa Shenoute, White Monastery 77 Apadana relief 78, 79, 79 Apamea 62, 70, 71, 80 Apatzingan 54, 54 Apelles (painter) 61 Apennines 65 Aphrodisias 67, 68 Aphrodito 77 Apollo 11 Cave 16, 16, 17 Apollo Fountain (Flötner) 171 Apollodorus of Damascus 66 Apollonia 62, 65, 67 Appomaottox, Civil War site 214 Apuli peoples 65 Apurimac 101 Aq Kupruq, carved stone head 16 Aqaba, trade centre 131 Aqua, Andrea del’ 158 Aquae Calidae 66 Aquae Sulis 68 Aquileia 67, 68, 69, 70 archbishopric 104 glass-making centre 71 literary centre 103 murals 110 Aquitaine 102 Aquitania 65, 69 Arabia Ottoman Possession 194 Roman Empire trade 69 Wahhabi clerics 195 Wahhabi reformers 244 and West Asia 80, 195 Arabistan 81 Arachosia 63, 79, 80, 83 Arad 238 Arago 89 Aragon 110, 119 Araisk 246 Arak, carpets 301 Arakan 206 Aran, lustre ware 131 Aranjuez 178, 234 Aranquin 100 Aratu sites 100 Arausio 66 Arawak 100 language 56 Arawe, Lapita pottery 51, 92 Arayashiki 49 Arbanasi 185 Arbela 80 Arbuda, temple 134 Arcadia 60 Archaeology Africa 36, 72, 73 Asia 298, 299 Central Asia 247, 247 China 46, 47, 86, 87, 139, 306, 306, 307, 307 Ice Age 16, 18 India 84, 85 Italy 182, 183, 183 Japan and Korea 48, 49 marine 68 North Africa 76, 241 Pacific 92, 92 Southeast Asia 91, 310 West Africa 294 West Asia 245, 300 Archanes 33 Archangel 160 folk art 224, 225 trade centre 156 Architecture countries Abbasid 128, 129 Achaemenid 78, 78 Aegean 60 Asia 192, 193 Australia 259, 314 Austria 280 Britain 162, 164, 226, 227, 276 Byzantine 184 Central America 54, 55, 99, 151, 151, 167, 266 Central Andean 57 Central Asia 196 China 136, 251, 306, 307, 307 Egyptian 12, 22, 75 European 112, 184-185, 185, 186, 220, 220, 221, 282-283, 283 Finland 222 France 174, 276, 284, 284, 285, 285 Germany 61, 170, 171, 172, 173, 280, 281 Greek centres 35 India 135, 248, 248, 249, 304, 304 Iran 130 Italy 120-121, 122, 123, 155, 181, 182, 237, 288, 289 Japan 140, 141, 204, 205, 252, 309 Korea 140, 141, 204, 309 Netherlands 166, 166, 168, 169, 229, 278, 278, 279, 279 New Zealand 315 North Africa 76, 124, 124, 125, 125, 188, 188, 189, 241, 290, 290-291 North America 97, 214 Pacific 257, 257 Parthian 80, 80, 130 Poland/Lithuania 158-159, 159 Portugal 178, 178, 235 Roman 67 Russian 160, 160, 161, 224 Sasanian 81 Scandinavia and the Baltic 156-157, 222-223, 223, 272 Scottish 162 South America 27, 152, 268, 269 South Asia 198, 199 South Netherlands 168, 169 Southeast Asia 91, 206, 255 Spain 178, 179, 235, 287 Sub-Saharan Africa 126, 190-191, 243 Switzerland 171, 171, 280 Umayyad 125 USA 212, 213, 213, 263, 264, 265 West Africa 294, 295 West Asia 194, 195, 195, 245, 300, 300 Pritzker Prize 316 styles Adam 165 Baroque 151, 155, 162, 164, 164, 169, 182 Beaux Arts 309 church patronage 155 Churrigueresque 151 classical rules 12, 122, 123, 154, 180, 224 decoration 39, 43 domestic 270 Doric order 12, 35, 60 eclectic 276 Gothic 110, 110, 112, 120- 121, 122, 159, 162, 164, 164, 184, 185 Gothic Revival (NeoGothic) 227, 227 Greek revival 213 Hispano-Moresque 125 industrial 220, 221, 263 International 300 Ionic order 12, 35, 60 major architects and main cities 173 Manueline 178 Modernism/Post- 260, 276, 276, 277, 278, 280, 283, 285 monumental 35, 103, 135, 262 Mughal 199, 199 Neo-Gothic (Gothic Revival) 213 Neoclassical 164, 212, 222, 224, 238, 248, 249, 281 Palladian 159, 162, 164, 165 revivalism 226, 239 Rococo 173 Spanish colonial 151 technological developments 271 town-planning 60, 123, 159, 174, 181, 221, 238, 238, 239, 276, 304 city layouts 214 communal housing 221 see also Churches; Palace/castle sites; Religious; Renaissance Arcisate 67 Arcy-sur-Cure 17 Ardabil 128, 195 carpet-making 244 minaret 130 shrine comples 131 Ardashir I 81, 81 Ardistan, minaret 130 Ardmulchan, megalithic art 29 Areia 63 Areion 82 Arelate 66, 68 Arenys 234 Arequipa 152, 152, 218, 219 art centre 153 Arévalo 110 Arezzo 121, 122, 123 altarpieces 181 university 114 Argentina 57, 101 architecture 153 artistic activity 219, 219, 268, 268, 269, 269 Jesuit institutions 153 Postglacial 20 World Crafts Council 317 Argos 33, 35 cult statues 60 floor mosaics 71 Aria 78, 80, 81, 82 Arica 152, 153, 218 Arikamedu, coins 84 Arima, Crusader castle 130 Ariminum 64, 66 Aristotle 120 Arita 88, 89, 204, 205, 252 Arkhangel’sk 160, 160 Arles 70, 103 architecture 177 artists’ travels 119 glass-making centre 71 pilgrimage centre 110, 111, 111, 118 Arman (1928-) 285 Armant 77 Armenia 78 Christian persecution 81 Christian territory 130 churches 158 kingdom 106 Levant territory 131 manuscript production 107 Monophysite 106 nationalism 81 radical art 275 Armenoi 33 Armidale 259 Armory Show, New York 262 Arnhem 228 architecture 278, 279 painting 117 Arnhem Land indigenous art 314 shelters 16 Arnott, Bruce 297 Arofreville, metalwork 59 Arolsen 230 Arras 110 ecclesiastical centre 116 metalworking 112 tapestry 117, 174 Arretium 64, 65, 66 Arsaces 80 Arsikere, temple 134 Arsinoe 74, 75, 77 Arsinoe, Pharaoh consort 62 Arslantas 43 Art associations/institutions/ societies 186, 204, 205, 230, 231, 244, 262, 268, 286 chambers see Kunstkammern colonies/groups 220, 221, 228, 228, 232, 236, 272, 276, 278, 282, 282, 288, 304 environmental 265 and the Earth 265, 265 in a globalized world 273 and industry 239 events 316 exhibitions 215, 219, 236, 239, 245, 258, 262, 265, 266, 268, 269, 272, 274, 284, 288, 295, 304, 307 folk Eastern Europe 282 ethnic/folk 230, 231, 239, 239, 274, 291, 307 India 248, 249, 304, 304 Russian folk/peasant crafts 161, 224, 224, 225 graphic workshops 269 guilds 116 institutions, worldwide 316, 316, 317, 317 mail 269 markets 154-155, 226, 232, 277 movements see names, e.g. Art Nouveau publishing 231, 282 research institutes 316, 317 review magazines, 268, 268, 269, 282, 283 revolutionary 274 schools/academies 157, 165, 172, 172, 179, 179, 180, 218, 236, 248, 259, 266, 277, 282, 298, 300 sponsors 316, 317 styles cave art 18, 18, 19-20, 258- 259, 314 conceptual 267, 273, 275, 277, 279 Costumbrismo 234 experimentation 204, 270 Greek archaic 35 Ilkhanid 131 illusionism 248 internet 269 Japanese 204, 205, 252 kinetic 275 linocut 297 Muralism 266, 267, 267 new spaces for new art 264, 273 non-figurative 207, 269, 273 nonconformist 275, 275 panel painting 116, 117 plein-air 259, 259 popular media 273, 309 public 271, 273 Timurid 132 video 309, 316 studios 205, 224 training centres 280 workshops 268 vandalism 187 see also Movie and TV Art cabinet 146, 168, 168, 169 Art collections Australia 258, 314, 314 British 226, 243 China 137, 306, 307 English Renaissance 163 European 154, 186, 187, 220, 243, 282 Germany 172 Japan and Korea 252, 308, 309 Netherlands 167, 228, 278, 279 North America 214, 215, 262, 262 Pacific 312, 313 Poland/Lithuania 159 Russian 161, 225 Scandinavia and the Baltic States 272 Spain and Portugal 179, 286 Swedish 156 and Thirty Years’ War 172 West Asia 300 Art Concret 278 Art Deco 276 Art Nouveau 211, 220, 221, 221, 225, 226, 228, 228, 229, 232, 233, 239, 272, 300 Art of Painting (Vermeer) 167 Artabanus II 80 Artaxata 62, 80 Arte Popular 269 Arte Povera 288, 289 Artemita 80 Artistic work African exports 190, 243 British 226-227 commissions 155 cross-currents 154, 154, 155, 169, 173, 174, 180, 182, 187, 218, 219, 225, 262, 263, 270, 270, 272, 273, 286, 290-291, 300 European 103, 108, 109, 110 North America 212, 212, 213, 213, 213 Pacific cultural centres 312 Russian 224-225 Russian patronage 160 treatises 180 Artois 168 Arts and Crafts movement 221, 226, 227, 239, 239 Arturo (review) 269 Arverni tribe 66 Aryans 159 Arzanene 80 Arzeu 124 Asahi 88 Asam, Cosmas Damian (1686- 1739) and Egid Quirin (1692- 1750) 172, 172 Asana 27, 27 Asante kingdom 191, 243, 243 Ascalon 68, 78 Aschaffenburg 170 Ashgabat 303 Ashikaga dictatorship 141 Ashir 124 Ashkhabad arts and crafts 302 carpet market 246 museum 247, 302, 303 Ashmarov, Chingiv 303 Ashmed, Bashir 305 Ashmunayn 129 Ashoka, emperor 53, 82, 84 Buddhism 83 lion capital 84 Tissarakshita, Queen of Ashoka (A. Tagore) 304 Ashur 40, 42, 42, 43, 43 early urbanism 25 Parthian architecture 80 tablets 78 Ashville 262 Asia 16, 18, 21, 94, 106-107, 111, 192-193, 298-299 art forms 298 art schools 298 Byzantine art 106, 106, 107 Communism 298 courtly art 192 east 46, 46, 47 globalization 299 international art market 299 Japanese imperialism 308 museums 298 Postglacial 21 religions 192 trade and culture 192, 192 maritime 192 Roman Empire 69 Asia Minor 63, 68 late Roman Art 71 324 A Battery Shelled (Lewis) 277 A Ferry in Sichuan (Huang Binhong) 306 A Hong Kong Artist (Thompson) 250 Aachen 10, 102 ecclesiastical centre116 manuscript painting 112 palace 104, 104, 108, 109 wall mosaics 105 Aalto, Alvar 273 Aaltonen, Wäinö 272, 273 Abaj Takalik 54 Abarquh 131 Abarshahr 80, 81 Abbas, Shah 194 Abbasid Caliphate 125, 128-129, 129, 130, 132 Abbati, Giuseppe (1836-68) 237 Abbott Farm 55 Abd Allah, Muhammad ibn 188 Abdera 64 Greek colony 58 Abdulaziz, sultan 245 Abdulhamid, sultan 245 Abelard, Peter 113 Aberdeen 163, 220 art movement 226 Aberystwyth 164 art movement 226 Abi 302 Abildgaard, Nicolai (1743-1809) 157 Abo 157, 220, 222, 222 Aboboreira, megalithic art 29 Abomey, art centre 295 Aboriginal Memorial 315 Abramtsevo, art colony 220, 221, 225, 225 Abri Morin 20 Abri Pataud 17 Abstract art 267, 272, 274-275, 278, 281, 287, 289, 314 Abtei Laach 108 Abu, temple 134 Abu Iulia, architecture 155 Abu Mena cemetery 77 pilgrimage centre 76 Abu Simbel 37, 38 excavations 245 Abuja, archaeology 294 Abusir 78 Abydos 38 early urbanism 25 Acacus, pottery 36 Academy of Fine Arts, St Petersburg 161 Acancéh 54 Accra 191 Aceh 143 Acem Hüyük 41 Acha-sansong 89 Achaea 66, 69 Achaemenid empire 58, 58, 59, 62- 63, 78, 78, 79, 82 tributes 82 Achyutaraya, king 135 Acolman 98 Acra, arts and crafts 294 Acragas 64, 65 Acre 106 Crusader castle 130 Ottoman 195 trading centre 107 Acruvium 66 Adamklissi 68 Adana 244 Addis Ababa tourist/modern art 293 traditional arts 292 Adelaide 258, 259 indigenous art 314 Aden 126, 129, 190 museums 300 Adena 27, 55, 97 Adena people 26, 55, 55, 97 Admonitions of the Instructress to Court Ladies (Gu Kaizhi) 87 Adrano 110 Adrianople 102, 130 carpet-making 244 Judaism 184 Ottoman capital 131 trade centre 195 Adriatic Sea, trading route 107, 122 Adulis 72, 73 Aegae 62 Aegean 32-33, 33, 60, 60, 61 -style frescoes 32 art 42 palace sites 32 Aegina 33, 35 temple 60 Aegyptus 66, 69 Aeneid, The 67 Aesthetic movement 227 Aetolia 60 Aezanes, king 72, 73 Afalou Bou Rhummel 18 Afghanistan 41, 53, 69 art schools/museums 298 British client state 246 destruction of Buddhas 317 Roman Empire trade 69 trade 36 Afrasiyab 133 Buddhist art 83 museum 303 Africa 11, 36-37, 72-73, 190-191, 242-243 culture art 190, 211, 242, 243, 284 chairs 190, 191 festivals 190 iron-age 73 iron-working 53, 72 late Roman Art 71 masks 12, 242, 243 Nile Valley 36 Nok figures 72, 72 red slip ware 71 rock art and agriculture 14, 36 rock paintings 17 Upper Nile 37 war booty 243 Ice Age/Postglacial 16, 16, 17, 18, 21 politics in the 19th century 242 alien rule 243 colonial settlements 190, 191 outside influences 127, 242 Roman empire 66, 70 states 127, 190, 191 religion Christianity 154 trade 69, 127, 190, 191, 242 ivory 70, 127 Afro-Portuguese ivories 190, 191 Afyon 78, 130 mosque 131 Agade (Akkad) 41 Agades 240 Agadez, trade centre 126, 188 Agathe 64 Agats, wood carving 310 Agedincum 68 Agen, ecclesiastical centre 118 Agerup, wall painting 116 Aghmat, textiles 124 Aghtamar 106 Agighiol, Thraco-Getic hoard 58 Agimont 168 Agnéli, Ivan (1869-1917) 272 Agra architecture 249 historic site 248 miniature paintings 198 museum 304 religious architecture 192 Taj Mahal 147 Agricola (Tacitus) 69 Agrigentum 64, 65, 68 Agrinion 60 Aguascalientes 266 Populism 216 Ahar, sculpture 85 Ahichhatra, archaeology 84 Ahmad Yasavi, gravesite 132, 133 Ahmadabad mosque 134 painting 248, 304 textiles 198, 248, 304 Ahmadnagar miniatures 198 mosque 134 Ahmantan 81 Ahmedabad, museum 298 Ahteut 96 Ahtila, Eua-Liisa (1959-) 273 Ahuramazda (deity) 78 Ai Khanum 63, 79, 84 Aigle, château 118 Aigues-Mortes 112, 114 Aihole, historic site 248 ‘Ain Ghazal 21 Ain Manawir 78 Ainu culture 204 Air 126, 190, 191 Air Painting (Aeropittura) 289 Aitape, Lapita pottery 51, 51, 92 Aix-en-Provence 103, 104, 110, 119, 285 architecture 177 cathedral altarpiece 119 stained glass 118 Ajanta folk art 249 historic site 248 painted caves 84, 85, 85 wall painting 304 Ajdabiya, textiles 124 Ajlun, Muslim castle 130 Ajmer architecture 249 miniature paintings 198 mosque 134 museum 298 Akan, archaeology 294 Akan states 127, 127, 190 Akbar, emperor 198, 199 Akhmim 77 Akhnur 85 Akita 204 Akkad 40, 41 Akkadian Empire 41 and art 41 Akota, sculpture 85 Akrotiri 32, 33 Aksu 196, 196, 247, 302 Akwamu 190 Akyu 49 Al Akhdar 188 Al Azhar mosque 188 Al Bakri (chronicler) 126 Al Jabal 188 Al Mina 34, 34, 78 al-Mansur, Ahmad 188, 188, 189 Alabaster 23, 37, 43 Assyrian wall relief 43 carved trough 24 Egyptian see calcite English 109, 111, 112, 116, 116, 118, 163, 169 exports 109 Northern Europe 116 South Netherlands 168, 169 Alaca Hüyük 40, 41, 41 Alagou 86 Alalakh 32 Alamgirpur, early urbanism 25 Åland 157 Alans, collapse of 70 Alanya, mosque 130, 131 Alasehir 130 Alaska decorative art 97 Inuits 53, 96 land-otter mask 214 Microblade tradition 26 Alawi dynasty 188, 189 Alba Fucens 64 Alba Iulia 154 cathedral 185, 185 Albacet 234 Albania 81 World Crafts Council 316 Albany 212 Albert Galleron, P. L. 238 Albert and Isabella 168 Alberti, Leon Battista 122 Albi, print-making 118 Albisola, art event 316 Albright Art Gallery 262 Alcalá de Guadaira, castle 118 Alcalá de Henares 71, 178 Alcázar de San Juan 234 Alchi, art centre 200 Alcobaça 110, 114 ecclesiastical centre 118 Alcoy, paper 234 Alcuin 105 Aldi, Pietro (1858-88) 237, 237 Aleijandinho 152 Aleksandropol, Dacian phalerae 58 Aleppo 42, 42, 43, 78 mosaics 128 museum 298 Muslim 130 Seljuk 130 textiles 195 trading centre 131 Aleria 66 Alexander I, Tsar 222 Alexander II, Tsar 224 Alexander III of Macedon (the Great) 12, 52, 60, 61, 62-63, 74, 78, 78, 79, 80, 82, 82, 84 Alexander III (Russia) 225 Alexandria 52, 63, 67, 73, 74, 78, 82, 128 cemetery 77 churches 70, 74 Hellenistic art 63 Islamic control 102 ivory carving 76 Mamluk monument 131 mosaics 77 Ottoman city 188, 195 patronage centre 66 pilgrimage centre 240 red slip ware 71 Roman art and trade 67, 68 School of Fine Art 291 tiraz factories 129 trade 131, 190 and West Asia 80 Alexandria ad Caucasum 79 Alexandria ad Indum 79 Alexandria ad Issum 78 Alexandria Arachoton 79 Alexandria Areion 63, 78, 80 Alexandria Bactra, Kushan art/hoards 82 Alexandria Bucephala 82 Alexandria (Carmania) 78 Alexandria Charax 78 Alexandria in Egypt 61 Alexandria Eschate 63, 79, 82 Alexandria in India 82 Alexandria (Kabul) 79 Alexandria Margiana 78 Alexandria (Merv), Parthian mint 80 Alexandria Nicaea 82 Alexandria Oreiton 79, 82 Alexandria Oxiana 79, 80, 82 Alexandria Prophthasia 63, 78, 82 Alexandropolis 80 Alfonso I of Naples 122 Alfonso V of Aragon 119 Alfred the Great 105 Algeria architecture 290 artistic cross-currents 290 colonial expansion 240 Ice Age 18 indigenous art 240, 240 Muslim/Jewish refugees 188 Ottoman 194 Western-style art 240, 291 Algiers 102, 178 architecture 125, 290, 290 artistic centre 188, 241, 290 textiles 240 urban development 241 Algonquin Park 263 Algonquian tribe 148, 148, 212 Alhambra see Granada Alicante 125, 178, 234 Alice (South Africa), art school 296 Aligates Quarry 96 Alijó, megalithic art 29 Alkali Ridge 96 Allagadda, carving 248 Allahabad miniatures 198 museum 298 Allahdino, early urbanism 25 all’antica 122, 123, 183 Allegory of Sight, The (Jan Brueghel the Elder) 169 Allifae 66 Alligator teeth 97 Almansa 234 Almaty, museum 298, 303 Almelo, architecture 279 Almendras, megalithic art 29 Almería 124, 125 Almodóvar del Rio, castle 118 Almohads empire 110, 124, 125, 125 Almoravid empire 124, 125, 125 Alnwick, castle 116 Alpériz, megalithic art 29 Alphabet Cyrillic 106 Greek art 34 Roman 301 Alpinism 231 Alsace Lorraine 220 Alta Vista 98 Altai 82 Altamira 19 Altar de Sacrificios 54 Altenburg 230 Altintepe 44, 44, 78, Altishahr 196, 196 Altun Ha 98 Aluchaideng 86 Alum Creek 55 Alvsborg 156 Ama 88, 89 Amagh archbishopric 104 monastery 103 Amalfi archbishopric 104 bronze doors 111 metalworking 110 Amapa 98 Amara 72 Amara, temple 37 Amaral, Tarsila do 268, 268 Amarapura, pagodas 255 Amaravati archaeology 84 historic site 248 stupa 85, 85 Amasis vase 34 Amasya 130, 195 mosque 131 Amauta (review) 268 Amazon region 100 Amazonia 219 Ambaranatha, temple 134 Amber 21, 53 Aegean 32, 33 Baltic 68, 69 Burma 255 figurine 68 Northern Europe 58 Roman empire 67, 69 trade route 30 Western Mediterranean 64-65 Amber (S Asia), minature painting 198 Ambitle, Lapita pottery 51 Ambon 254 mosque 143 trade 207 Ambrose, Bishop 70 Ameca 54 Amecameca 98 Amekni, pottery 36 Amenhotep III, temple 39 America 10, 12, 94 Civil War 214, 214, 215, 246 North Netherlands trade 167 see also North America; South America Americas 26-27, 27 Ames-Webster house, Boston 236, 237 Amida 81, 129 Amiens 103, 112 ecclesiastical centre 116 Amin, sculpture 84 Amir, Shakykh Muhammad 249 Amman 32, 195 fine arts 300 Amnisos 33 Amoi 132 Amol, Sasanian mint 81 Amorbach 103 Amoy 250, 306, 307 Amphipolis 60, 61 Amphorae, wine/oil 71 Amri, early urbanism 25 Amritsar artistic centre 304 miniature paintings 198 Sikh religious centre 249 Amrol, temple 134 Amsa-dong 49 Amsterdam 154, 157 20th century 278 architecture 278, 279, 279 art centre 166, 166, 186, 228, 228, 270, 278, 279 art collection 187 Art Nouveau 220 artistic influences 173, 176 artistic institutions 229, 278, 279 artists’ travels 187 auction houses 187, 316 De Stijl 283 illumination 117 map-making 167 School 229, 278, 278 Town Hall 166 trade centre 166, 167, 169 Amun Karnak temple 39 precinct 39 Theban deity 38-9 Amunemopet 39 Anabaptist, attitudes to art 154 Anagni 110, 111, 114 Anasazi culture 96, 97 Anatolia 28, 78, 132 artistic influences 79, 188 carpet-making centres 244, 301 Islamization 131 Ottoman Possession 188, 194 trade routes 195 Anatomy of a Komono (Schapiro) 261 Anau 246, 303 archaeological survey 247 madrasa 133 Ancona 66, 67, 181 cathedral 110 fortifications 180 Ancyra 62 Andermach 108 Anderson Galleries 262 Andes, Andean cultures 56-57, 100 Andhras dynasty 85 Andijan 196, 246, 302 Andizhan, arts and crafts 302 Andrade, Oswald de 268 Andros, architecture 283 Anduo 302 Aneityum, Lapita pottery 51 Anfield-an-der-Leine 280 Angas, George French (1822-86) 258 Angel 96, 97 INDEX Figures in roman refer to main text references; figures in bold refer to maps; and figures in extra bold refer to illustration captions. INDEX 327 Beckmann, Max (1884-1950) 278 Bécquer, José Domínguez (1805- 45) 234 Bécquer, Valeriano Domínguez (1833-70) 234 Bedford 55 Bednur 198 Bedolina rock carving 30 Bedsa, caves 84 Beduins 190 Beer Street (Hogarth) 164 Begram archaeology 303 Buddhist art 83 ivory 83, 84 Beijing 46, 47, 86, 87, 133, 138, 200 architecture 192 art centre 138, 200, 202, 250 Central Art Academy 307 courtly art 192 Forbidden City 203, 203 gardens 200, 202 Ming capital 138 museums 298, 306, 307 National Library 307 policy centre 307 printing 139, 192, 200, 202, 250 route to west China 306 textiles 250 treasures’ route 306 Beirut 130 Beirut 195, fine arts 300 Beja, castle 118 Bejarano, Manuel Cabral (1827- 91) 234 Belcayre 17 Belec 185 Belém 218, 219 Belém do Pará 152, 153 Belevi 60 Belfast 220 architecture 276 art movement 226 Belgian Congo, ivory 221 Belgica 66, 69 Belgium 228-229, 278-279 artistic institutions 229 artists’ travels 228, 278 cross-border contacts 228 institutions and monuments 279 World Crafts Council 316 Belgrade 184, 195 art centre 282 art review magazine 282 town-planning 238 Belisario, Isaac (1795-1849) 217 Belize 266 Bell, Clive and Vanessa 276 Bellini, Giovanni 122 Bellotto, Bernardo (1721-80) 173 Belmonte, castle 118 Belo Horizonte 268 art event 317 Beluga Point 96 Belur, temple 134 Belvoir, Crusader castle 130 Bemba 190 Bemis, Samuel 213 Benares architecture 248 historic site 248 textiles 198 Bendigo 258 Beneca 212 Benedict Biscop 102 Benedictine order 153 Benediktbeuern 103 Benevento 102, 110, 114, 182 Beneventum 64, 66 Bengal, art movement 304 Benghazi 195, 290, 291 Benguela 190, 191 Benin 95, 127, 190, 191, 211 distribution of masks 243 World Crafts Council 316 Benin City, arts and crafts 294, 295 Benton, Thomas Hart 263 Benua, Aleksandr (1870-1960) 225 Berat 185 Berber dynasty 64, 70, 124, 188, 189 indigenous art 240, 240 motifs in art 291 Berbera 190 Berbers 76, 76 Berda’a, Ilkhanid monument 131 Berelekh 21 Berenice 62, 68 Berenike 74 Berenson, Bernard 214 Berethalom 185 Berg, Richard 272 Bergama, carpet-making 244 Bergamo 121, 122, 123 art collection 182 prize 288, 289 Bergana 130 Bergen 108, 154, 156, 157, 220, 222 architecture 279 art college 273 Jewish memorial 281 museum 272 Beringia, Ice Age 17 Berlage, H. P. 229, 278 Berlin 170, 222 abstract/realism conflicts 281 academy 172, 186 architecture 173, 270, 280, 281 art collections 172, 282, 313 art event 316 art review magazine 282, 283 artistic academy 157, 280, 282 artistic cross-currents 154, 173 artists’ travels 187 arts centre 172, 230 Bauhaus site 280 Dada movement 280, 280, 283 Deportation memorial 281 Die Brücke artists 280 Expressionism 280, 283 industrial 220 Prussian capital 230 urban development 186 Bermejo, Bartolomé (c.1440-after 1495) 119, 119 Bern (Berne) 154, 170, 281 academy 172 architecture 171 arts centre 230 federal capital 231 Historisches Museum 247 stained glass 110, 116 Bernadotte dynasty 223 Bernard, Emile 233 Bernhard Ludwig factory 237 Bernini, Gianlorenzo (1598-1680) 182, 182 Berrecci, Bartolomeo 158 Berruguete, Pedro (c.1450-c.1500) 119 Bertuchi, Mariano (1895-1958) 291 Berytus 66 Berzé-la-Ville 110 Besançon 70, 110 architecture 177 art centre 186 ecclesiastical centre 116 Beshbalik 132 textiles 133 Beszterce 185 Bethlehem 70 Beuys, Joseph 281 Beysehir 130 Bezeklik, Buddhist/Kushan art 83 Béziers, wall painting 118 Bhadgaon, palace 198 Bhaja, caves 84 Bharhut caves 84 historic site 248 Bharuch, mosque 134 Bhattiprolu, stupa 85 Bhitargaon, temple 85 Bhojapura, temple 134 Bhopal, museum 304 Bhubaneshwar art school 298 temple 134 Bhuj 198 Bhuvaneswar, historic site 248 Biala Radziwillowska 159 Bialaczów 159 Bialystok 159 Bianliang 138 Bianzhou, silk production 136 Bibi 49 Bichl, wood carving 59 Bidar, mosque 134 Biecek, mosque 131 Bielefeld 281 Bielsko 238 Bierstadt, Albert (1830-1902) 212, 212, 214 Biertan 185 Bigaud, Wilson (1931-) 267 Bihar 198 Bijapur, mosque 134 Bijar 244, 301 Bijaya 124 Bikaner, palace 198 Bilbao 178, 220, 234, 270, 271, 286, 287 Bilbilis 66 Bilbo 96 Billom, wall painting 118 Bilma 126 Bimaran, Buddhist/Kushan art 83 Bin Dinh 206 Binche 154, 279 Bing, Siegfried 233 Bingham, George Caleb 213 Binglingsi, Buddhist caves 307 Binxian, religious art 136 Biot 284, 285 Birjand 244 Birkenhead 276 Birmingham 163, 164, 220 architecture 276 art movement 226 Birnik 96 Birth of a Virgin (Giotto) 121 Birze 158 Bishapur 81 Bishkek 83 arts and crafts 302, 303 Bishket, museum 298 Bishnupur, temple 198 Bisitun 80 excavations 245 sculpture 78 Bismarck Archipelago 50, 50, 51, 92, 93 Bistrita 154, 185 Bisutun, trilingual inscription 245 Bithynia 62, 66, 69, 78 Bitlis, mosque 130 Bitola 185 Bitti, Bernardo (1548-1610) 153 Bizen, pottery 140 Bizerta 124 Black Death 120, 120 Black Decorated art 101 Black Hawk, portrait 213 Black Johnny (c.1842-1883) 258 Blackburn 163 Blaj 185 Blake, Peter 277 Blake, William 221 Blanchard 17 Blanes, Juan Manuel (1830-1901) 219, 219 Blast (publication/Lewis) 277 Blatná, wall painting 116 Blaubeuren, ecclesiastical centre 116 Blenheim 186 Bligh, Captain William 209 Blima 73 Blistrup 31 Blombos 16 Bloemaert, Abraham (1566-1651) 156 Bloemfontein, art schools 296, 297 Blois 154, 174 Blois architecture 177 château 116 Bloomsbury Group 276 Bluff-bowed Fishing Boats (Mesdag) 229 Bobbio 103 Bobo-Dioulasso, art production 295 Bobongara 50 Bobrujsk 158 Boccioni, Umberto (1882-1916) 288, 288 Bodh Gaya caves 84 temple 85 Bodman 105 Charlemagne 104 Bodmer, Karl (1809-93) 212, 212, 213 Body-painting 16 Body symbolism 48 Boeotia 60 Boers 191 Bogatá 268 Bogazköy 32, 42 excavations 245 Bogolyubov, Aleksei (1824-96) 225 Bogolyubov, General A. A. 247 Bogomils (Manichaeans) 106 Bogotá 218, 219 art event 317 Bohemia 110, 169, 170 architecture 238 copper and tin sources 30, 30 Lutheran 154 patronage 116 Bohemian Brethren 159 Boii peoples 65 Bois-le Duc 228, 229 Bolívar, Simón 218, 218, 219 Bolivia artistic activity 219, 268, 268, 269 World Crafts Council 317 Bologna 64, 121, 123 academy 182, 236 architecture 299 art centre 114, 154, 186, 288 Arte Povera 288, 289 Bronze situlae 58 Counter-Reformation 180 court 122 funerary stele 65 murals 110 town planning 181 university 113, 114, 120 Bolsena 64 Bolshevik Revolution 274 Boltanski, Christian (1944-) 285 Bolu 130 Bolzano, wood sculpture 116 Bomarzo 181 Bombay 198, 248, 248 architecture 249, 249 art school 298, 304, 304 Bollywood 304 Modernism 305 museum 298, 304 Progressives group 305 trade centre 192 Bominaco 110 Bonampak 98, 99 Bône, 124, 125 Bone carvings 16, 21, 37 Russian 160 tools 53 trade in relics 111, 111 Bonfire 96 Bongo, post sculptures 292 Bonn 108 Bonnet, Rudolf 311 Bononia 64, 65, 66, 69, 102 Books 69 Central America 99 centres of decorated 106 China 136, 251 European centres 103, 170, 174, 175 Greco-Roman 103 Hellenstic 63 illustrated 112, 131, 199 Indian centres 249 Italian 120 Japan and Korea 140, 204, 252 patronage 196 scriptoriums 106 South Netherlands 168, 169 and universities 113 West Asia 131, 301 see also manuscripts; papyrus; scrolls Boone 55 Boräs 272 Borax Lake 96 Borbjeto 109 Bordeaux 70, 71 alabaster 109, 112, 118 archbishopric 104 architecture 177 murals 110 museum 285 royal progress 154 shrine 111 wall painting 118 writing centre 103 Border Cave, engraved wood/bone 16 Borges, Jorge Luis 268 Borgholm 154 Borgo di S. Donnino 110 Borgu kingdoms 190, 191 Borneo 142, 206, 255 arts and crafts 310 Bronze Age 51, 90 early settlements 50 funerary effigies 254 Ice Age 16 trade 91, 207 Bornholm 156, 157 art gallery 273 landscape painting 272 Bornu 191 Borobudur, Buddhist stupa 94- 95, 95, 142, 142, 206, 254, 310, 311 Borovikovsky, Vladimir 161 Borrani, Odardo (1833-1905) 237 Borromeo, Cardinal 181 Borromini, Francesco 182 Borsippa 80 Bosch 155 Bosco 181 Bosna Saray 184, 185 Bosnia-Herzegovina, architecture 238 Bosporan kingdom 58, 62 Bosra 128 Muslim castle 130 Bost 81 Boston (UK), alabaster 116 Boston (USA) 212 exhibitions 262, 264 Quincy Market 213 Bothwell 164 Botswana arts and crafts 296 basket-making 296, 297 museums 296, 296 Botticelli, Sandro 123, 230 Bouaké, art production 295 Bougainville, Lapita pottery 51 Bougie 178 Bouillon 168 Bouray, metalwork 59 Bourbon empire 175, 187 palaces 178 Bourg-en-Bresse, ecclesiastical centre 118 Bourges 103, 110, 112, 174 Bourges archbishopric 104 ecclesiastical centre 116 Bourke-White, Margaret 263 Boury, megalithic art 29 Bourzey, Crusader castle 130 Bouvignes 168 Box Hill, Heidelberg School 259 Boyacá 218 Boyana 106 Boye, Pierre 119 Boyne, megalithic art 29 Bozhou, silk production 136 Brabant 168 landscapes 228, 228 Brabantine 169 Bracciano 181 Bradford 276 Brady, Mathew 213, 214 Braga 104, 178 Brahmagiri, coins 85 Brahmapura, temple 134 Brahms, Johannes 230 Braine 110 Bramante (architect) 123, 180 Brancusi, Konstantin 271, 271 Brandenburg 170, 172, 172, 230 architecture 173 Brandenburg-Prussia 173 Braniewo 158 Braque, Georges (1881-1963) 284, 285 Brasov 185, 282 Brassempouy 17 Brassó 184, 185 Bratislava 154, 185, 282 Brauron, shrine 60 Brava 127 Brazil 16-18, 100, 218, 218, 234 artistic activity 153, 219, 268, 268, 269, 269 building techniques 152 Jesuit order 153 pottery 56 Brazzaville, tourist/modern art 292, 293 Breda, sculpture 117 Breitner, George (1857-1923) 228, 229 Bremen 103, 104, 156, 157, 170, 172, 222 National Socialism 281 public spirit 230 shipyard 220 Bremen-Verden 156 Brennen, arts centre 230 Brescia 122, 123 Breslau 173, 230, 282 art centre 186 artists’ travels 119, 187 National Socialism 281 public spirit 230 Breton, André 284 Bretons 102 Breuer, Marcel 279 Bridgeman, Charles 164 Bridgewater 163 Brighton 220 art movement 226 Brihuega, wool production 234 Brinay 110 Brinckman, J. A. 278 Brindisi 181 archbishopric 104 fortifications 180 Brioude 110 Brisbane 258, 259 architecture 314 art event 316 indigenous art 314 Bristol 163, 164 alabaster 109 Clifton Suspension Bridge 220 ecclesiastical centre 116 Romanticism 226 Britain 162-163, 164-165, 226-227, 276-277 culture Anglo-Saxon 70, 70 architecture 276 art workshops 69 artistic centres 164 artists’ colonies 276 birth of modern art world 165 city planning 276 English Baroque 162 great estates 164 Iron Age 58 landscape 164 late Roman Art 71 modernity and Britishness 276 museums 245, 276 Roman 67, 68, 70 Virgin Queen 162 politics industrial 165, 226-227, 227 settlements in Africa 191 INDEX 326 marble quarries 69 mosaic schools 68 Roman empire collapse 70 Asinou 106 Asirgarh 198 Askut, fort 37 Asociación de Arte Constructivo 269 Aspendos 62 Asplund, Gunnar 273 Asse 168 Assiros 32 Assisi 110, 114, 120, 121 Association of Travelling Art Exhibitions 224 Assyria 34, 42, 42, 43, 66, 78 Empire 43, 43, 52 palace wall relief 43 Assyrians 42 Astana 247 Astana Cemetery 87 Astara, Safavid capital 195 Astauene 80 Astigi 66 Astorga, castle 118 Astrakhan 133, 160, 160, 224, 225 Astrological vaults 181 Asturias 102 Asuka-Itabuki, palace site 89 Asunción 218, 219, 268 Asuristan 81 Aswan 38, 74, 179 red slip pottery 76 textiles 77 Asyut 38, 129 Atacama Desert 56, 57, 100, 101 Ataka, maska 49 Atarco art 101 Ateste 65 Atfelt, Else 272 Athena, Olympian god 63 Athens 23, 33, 35, 62, 63, 65, 66, 68 art centre 283 art review magazine 282 art school 282 Byzantine 102 city’s expansion 60, 60, 61 contemporary art 283 marble quarries 69 museums 282 Ottoman 184, 195 Parthenon 61 and Peiraeus 61 town-planning 238, 238 trade centre 107 Athos Mt 184, 185 Atjeh 254 arts and crafts 310 gold workshops 206 trade centre 207 Atlanta 264 Civil War site 214 Atlantic Ocean, Viking route 104 Atlas Mountains, Berber dynasty 124, 124 Atrani 110, 111 Atropatene 80, 81 Attaleia 68 Attalus I of Pergamum 63 Attic ’Foundry Cup’ 61 sarcophagi 68 Attica 35, 35, 59, 60 Atzcapotzalco 98 Aubusson, tapestry 154, 174, 177 Auch archbishopric 104 ecclesiastical centre 118 Auckland architecture 315 indigenous art 315 Maori art 259 Pacific art 313 Pacific Sisters 312 Auctioneers 187, 316, 317 Audenarde 168 Aughnagwgan, megalithic art 29 Augsburg 103, 108 academy 172, 186 artistic cross-currents 173 arts centre 170 auction houses 187 ecclesiastical centre 116 printmaking 171 royal progress 154 sculpture 170, 171 Augusta Emerita 68 Augusta Praetoria 66 Augusta Taurinorum 66 Augusta Trevirorum 68, 69, 69 Augusta Vindelicorum 69 Augustodonum 68 Augustus emperor 66, 66, 67 Roman commander 52 Aula Magna Auditorium (Villanueva) 269 Aulos, gem-cutter 66 Aurangabad historic site 248 miniatures 198 Aurès 189 Austral Islands 208 Australia 10, 11, 16, 18, 18, 21, 258-259, 314-315 Aboriginal culture 50, 53, 258, 260, 314, 315 architecture 314 Cook’s voyages 208 Heidelberg School 259, 259 indigenous art 314 indigenous and Colonial interactions 258 landscape paintings 259 Pacific cultural centres 312 rock art 23, 24, 50, 258, 258, 314 World Crafts Council 316 Austria 172, 280, 280, 281, 281 archduchy 170 architecture 238 Crown lands 238 Habsburg lands 184 Holy Roman Empire 120 Ice Age 17 Modern movement 280 and Poland/Lithuania 158 South Netherlands trade 169 tulip bulbs 195 Austria-Hungary 230 Austro-Hungarian empire 220, 238, 238, 239, 239 borders 282 crafts training schools/courses 239 ethnic applied arts 239 nationalism and neovernacularism 239, 239 Autun 103, 110, 110 artists’ travels 119 ecclesiastical centre 116 Auxerre 103, 110 stained glass 116 Ava lacquerware 206 trade centre 207 Avantipura, temple 134 Avar empire 102 Avaris 32 Avdeevo 16, 18 Aventicum 68 Aveny, megalithic art 29 Avesnes 110 Avigliana, artists’ travels 119 Avignon 109, 119, 182 archbishopric 104 architecture 110, 154 artists’ travels 119 manuscript painting 112 museum 285 panel painting 118 Papal Palace 118 Avila 110, 114, 154 alabaster 118 wool centre 234 Aviles 109 Avola 64 Awazu 49 Awdaghost 126 Awjilah 126 Axim 191 Axminster 164 Axum 72, 73, 73, 127, 190 stela 73 Ay Khanum Hellenized city 82 Kushan art 82 Ayacucho area 100-101 basin 57 Ayad, Ragheb (1892-1980) 291 Aydhab 128 Aydin 130 Ayia Triada 33 Ayios Stephanos 33 Aylesford, metalwork 59 Ayodhya 198 coins 84 trade 134 Ayrtam, Kushan art 82 Ayutthaya 255 architecture 192, 193 ceramics 207 city state 206, 206 courtly art 192 crowned Buddha 207 museum 298 religious site 310 Ayyubid Sultanate 106 Azangaro 101 Azarmas 224 Stupin Art School 225 Az˘bè, Anton (1862-1905) 282 Azcapotzalco 54 Azilian Culture 15, 21, 21 Azimov, Iskander (1945-) 303 Azov 184 Aztalan, archaeology 96, 97 Aztec empire 95, 98, 99, 99, 150, 260 Azzammur, textiles 124 Ba 86 Ba Trang, kiln site 206 Baalbek, Muslim castle 130 Bab al Mansur al-Ilj gateway 189 Baba Jan 78 Babur, emperor 198 Babylon 42, 42, 43, 81 artistic centre 78 early urbanism 25 excavations 245 Parthian architecture 80 Babylonia 42, 42, 43, 62, 62 Bac Ninh, kiln site 206 Bacan 143 Bacchias 75 Bacchus 68 Bacchus Marsh, plein-air paintings 259 Bachkovo monastery 185 Bacon, Francis 277 Bactra 63, 79, 81, 83, 84, 303 Hellenized city 82 Bactria 44, 63, 63, 79, 80, 83 Achaemenid tribute 82 Golden Mound artefacts 82 trade 82 Bad Gastein 238 Bada, bark cloth 310 Bada shanren (1626-1705) 203 Bada Valley 206 Badajoz 234 Badaling 138 Badayun, mosque 134 Baden 170, 230 Baden bei Wien 238 Badetta 181 Badi Palace 189 Baeterrae 66 Baetica 66, 69 Baeza, wool production 234 Bagamoyo, trading post 242 Bagawat 77 Bagh caves 85 historic site 248 Baghdad 94, 106, 107, 133 Abbasid capital 128, 129 calligraphy 301 fine arts 298, 300 lustre ware 131 madrasa 130 Martyr’s Monument 300 railway connections 245 trade centre 131, 132, 195 Bagnaia 181 Bagnola 181 Baguio, silverware 310 Bagumbayan, pottery 50 Bahamas 99, 266 Bahariya Oasis 38, 74 Bahía 152, 218, 219, 269 art centre 153 Bahrain 40, 41, 128 Baia Mare, art colony 220, 282 Bainas, megalithic art 29 Bairam-Ali 246 Bajaur, site of hoard 82 Bakchisarai 184 Bakhtyari tribes 301 Bakra 190 Bakst, Lev (1866-1924) 225 Baku 224, 225, 246 carpet-making centre 244 lustr ware 131 minaret 130 museums 298 petroleum wells 245 Bala Hissar, caves 84 Balaklije, Dacian phalerae 58 Balakot, early urbanism 25 Balankanche 98 Balasore 198 trade centre 192 Balat 38 Balawat 43 excavations 245 Balawinne Cave 18 Balazsfalva 185 Balearic Is 34 art and trade 67, 68 Byzantine 102 late Roman Art 71 Mediterranean world 64 and Napoleon 220 Roman empire 66, 70 Viking route 104 Bali 142, 143, 206, 207 arts and crafts 310, 311, 311 cotton 207 Dong Son culture 90 economic resources 254 painting 311 Balikesir 130 Balinees 71 Balkans 68, 184 art styles 282 Byzantine art 106 late Roman Art 71 Latin rite 106 Ottoman Possession 194 political borders 184 population increase 238 trade and culture 195 Balkesir 244 Balkh 83, 128, 132, 196 arts and crafts 302 ceramics 79 coins 81 madrasa 130 mosque 129 shrine 133, 196 textiles 132 trade centre 131 Balkuwara palace 129 Ball, James Presley 213 Ball courts 98 Ballarat 258, 259 Balline 71 Balof 50 Balti 185 Baltic region 156, 156, 157, 222, 222, 223, 223, 272, 272, 273, 273 amber trade 30 artistic influence 186 National Romanticism 223 peoples 102 trade route 102, 102 see also individual countries Baltimore, Ireland 163 Baltimore, USA 212, 262 Baltinglass, megalithic art 29 Baluch tribes 301 Balyan, Garabed 245 Balyan, Krikor 245 Bam 129 Bamako, arts and crafts 294, 295 Bamberg 112, 170, 172 Bambuk 126 Bamburgh 226 Bamiyan 81, 85, 303, 317, 317 Buddhist/Kushan art 83 Bamum kingdom 191 Bamyian, Kushan art 82 Ban 104 Ban Puan Phu, iron work 90 Banat 40 Banbhore 129 Banda Aceh, arts and crafts 310 Bandar Abbas 195 Bandar Seri Begawan, silverware 310 Bandelier 96 Bandiagara, art production 295 Bandjarmasin 206 trade centre 207 Bandung 50, 254 art school 298 painting 310 Bangalore, architecture 248 Bangkok museum 298 temples 254, 255 UNESCO project 316 Bangladesh art movements 298 World Crafts Council 316 Bangor 103, 164 Banjarmasin 143 Bankoni, archaeology 294 Banpo, museum 307 Banshan, archaeology 306 Banshoji 88 Banten 143, 206, 207 Bantu 11, 23, 53, 72, 126, 191, 243 Baoding, art school 298 Baptist, Johann 173 Baqirqan 196 Bar 158 Bar-le-Duc 154 Baranagar, temple 198 Baranów 159 Barbados, World Crafts Council 317 Barbari, Jacopo de’ 171 Barbarians collapse of Roman empire 70 symbolic art 80 Barbaricum 134 Barbizon, artistic colony 214, 220, 232, 233 Barca 126 textiles 124 Barcelona architecture 235 art centre 111, 154, 270, 286, 286 Art Nouveau 220 artistic groups/influence 286, 287 artists’ travels 119 Charlemagne 104 Costumbrismo 234, 234 Els Quatre Gats café 235 French Symbolism 234, 234, 235 literary centre 103, 114 metalwork 109, 114, 287 Sagrada Familia (Gaudí) 235 sculpture 235, 287 textiles 234 trade route 178 Umayyad Caliphate 102 Universal Exposition (1888) 235 wall painting 118 Barciense, castle 118 Barcino 67 Barco de Avila, castle 118 Bardejov, architecture 283 Bardi family 114 Bardjov 154 Barge Haulers on the Volga (Repin) 224 Bari 102, 106, 110 Bark cloth see textiles Barletta 180 Baroda 198 architecture 249 art school 304, 305 museum 298, 304 Baroque period 155, 162, 164, 164, 169, 172, 182, 216, 217 Barrancas 56, 56 Barrancoid tradition 56, 56 Barranquilla, art market 268 Barrial 98 Barriles 54, 98 Barrosa, megalithic art 29 Barrow-in-Furness 220 Barry, Charles 227, 227, 237 Barry, Madame du 156 Barshilunah 102 Barygaza, trade centre 83, 85, 134 Basècles 168 Baselitz, Georg 281 Bashkirs 160, 161 Basket-making 296 Basle (Basel) 103,109, 154, 172, 230, 231 architecture 171 arts centre 170, 171 metalworking 112 Protestantism 171 wood sculpture 116 Basohli 198 Basotho Cultural Village 296, 297 Basques 70, 102 Basra 128, 128, 132 trade centre 131 Bassano 114 Basse-Yutz, metalwork 59, 59 Bassein, umbrellas 310 Bästad 272 Bastam minaret 130 shrine 131 Bat Cave 55 Báta, wild boar 59 Batalha 178 Batang, art centre 202 Batavia 254 church 206 furniture 310 trade centre 192, 207 Batesar, temple 134 Bath 67, 164 Arts and Crafts 226 urban development 186 Bathers at Mitzburg (Kirchner) 280 Bathhurst 259 Batik see Textiles Battambang, museum 298 Battersea, metalwork 59 Batumi, carpet-making centre 244 Batwa, mosque 134 Baudelaire, Charles 233 Bauhaus movement 231, 260, 276, 278, 280, 280, 282, 283, 283, 304 Baumeister, Willi 281 Bautzen 172 Bavaria 102, 169, 170, 172, 173, 230, 230 architecture 172 Bavarianism 231 Bawit 77, 77 Bay of Islands 258 Bayana, mosque 134 Bayeux 110 ecclesiastical centre 116 Bayindir 78 Bayonne ecclesiastical centre 118 royal progress 154 Bayreuth 170, 230 Baysum, arts and crafts 302 Baza 64 Dama de 64 Bazhou, silk production 137 Beato, Felice 251 Beaufort, Crusader castle 130 Beaumaris 112, 163 castle 116 Beauvais, tapestry 177 Beaux Arts tradition 228 Bec 110 INDEX 329 Carrhe 128 Carrickfergus 163 Carrion los Condes 118 Cartagena 102, 109, 111, 152, 153, 153, 218, 219, 234 alabaster 118 Carteia 64 Cartenna 66 Carthage 23, 34, 34, 43, 102, 124 art and trade 67, 68 art workshops 69, 70 Dominus Julius mosaic 77 floor mosaics 71, 76, 76, 77 Muslim conquest 102 portable wealth 76 red slip pottery 76 Roman empire 66 and Western Mediterranean 64-65, 64, 65 Carthago Nova 64, 66, 69 Cartonnage 75 Casa grande 96 Casablanca 240, 290 Casas, Ramón (1866-1932) 234 Casas Grandes 98 Caserta 182 Casilinum 64, 66 Caspian Gates 80, 81 Cassandrea 66 Castañeira, megalithic art 29 Castanet 17 Castel Appiano 110 Castel Nuovo 114 Castelfranco Veneto 181 Castellamare di Stabia 110 Castello 181 Castello Caetani 114 Castello del Buonconsiglio 114 Castello dell’Imperatore 114 Castiglioncello 236 Castiglione, Guiseppe (1688-1766) 203 Castiglione del Lago 181 Castile 104, 110 Castle Hedingham 108 Castle Howard 165, 186 Castle Rising 108 Castllejo 234 Castro 180, 181 Castro, José Gil de (1785-c.1841) 218, 218, 219 Castrogiovanni 124 Castrojeriz, print-making 118 Castulo 64 Çatal Hüyük 15, 21, 24 Catalonia 118, 119 Catana 66 Catania 109, 111 architecture 299 Catherine de’ Medici, royal progress 154, 155 Catherine II (the Great) 161 Catlin, George (1796-1872) 212, 212, 213 Caucasus 35 Russian expansion 244 Caudebec, stained glass 116 Caughley 164 Causani 185 Cavallini, Pietro 115 Caverna da Pedra, pottery 27, 27 Cayenne 218 Cayman Is 99 Cebreiro 118 Cebu 206, 254 trade 207 Cecil, William 162 Cefalu 106, 110 Celaya, art movements 216 Celebes arts and crafts 310 early settlements 50 funerary effigies 254, 254 trade 207 Celeia 68 Cellier 17 Cellini, Benvenuto (1500-71) 155, 175 Celsa 66 Celtiberians 64 Celtic art 35, 59, 64 Basse-Yutz flagon 59 diaspora 59 La Tène style 58, 59, 59 metalwork 53 peoples 58, 64, 70 Western Mediterranean origins 64-65 Cempola 98 Cenomani peoples 65 Centcelles 71 Central Africa 292-293 modern art 293 traditional arts 292 Central America 54-55, 98-99, 147, 150-151, 216-217, 266-267 cultures 54 exploration and trade 150 independence movements 266, 266 major artists 266 Spanish colonial architecture 151 three cultural regions 98 Central Andean, cultures 57, 57 Central Asia 44-45, 82-83, 85, 132- 133, 196, 197, 246, 247, 302-303 archaeological surveys 247 art production 83 artistic influence 140 arts and crafts 302, 302 before the Mongols 132 Buddhist impact 83 civilizations 44, 44, 133, 195, 196, 196, 197 colonization 244, 246 ecology 302 empires and tributes 82 ’Golden Mound’ artefacts 82 Hellenistic impact 82 Islam 128 metalwork 53 Russian conquest 246 School of Art 303 trade 44, 82, 83, 83 western influences 44 Central Europe, High Modernism 283 Centula 102 Cephalonia 67 Ceram 206, 254 trade 207 Ceramics countries Abbasic centres 129 Achaemenid 78 Aegean 60 British 164, 227 Byzantine 106, 107 Central America 98 Central Asia 132, 133, 133, 197, 302, 303 Chinese 136, 137, 138, 139, 140, 200, 202-203 Egyptian 75 Japan and Korea 140, 141, 204, 204, 205, 205, 252 Korean 308, 309 Mesopotamian 80 Mycenaean 32-33 North America 26 Pacific 93 Russian 160, 274 South American 23, 27, 56, 100-101 Southeast Asia 90, 207, 254, 255, 255, 310, 311 Southern Africa 297 Spain and Portugal 178 West Asia 130, 130, 131, 194-195, 301, 301 Western Islam 125 styles celadon ware 140, 141 ethnic/folk 239 folk inspired 282 Ice Age 18, 20-21 lustre ware 129 Neolithic 28 Pacific 93, 93 Syrian technique 129 Tohil Plumbate ware 98 white ware 140 Cercle et Carré 278 Ceren 54, 98 Céret 285 Cerfontaine 168 Cerro Baúl 101 Cerro Blanco 57, 57 Cerro Brujo 98 Cerro de la Campana 98 Cerro de las Mesas 54, 54 Cerro de las Minas 54, 54, 98 Cerros 54 Certosa, Bronze situlae 58 Cesky Krumlov 154 ecclesiastical centre 116 Ceta, temple 142 Ceuta 102, 124, 125, 234 Cézanne, Paul (1839-1906) 217, 233 Chaco 219 Chad 126, 291 World Crafts Council 316 Chagall, Marc (1887-1985) 284 Chagatai Khanate 131, 133 Chaghatay (ruler) 196 Chagua 100 Chakipampa art 101 Chalchuapa 54 Chalcidice 35, 60 Chalcedony 97 Chalco 98 Chalon 103 Châlons-sur-Marne 110 architecture 177 ecclesiastical centre 116 Chaltcatzingo 54, 54 Cham culture 91 Chamba, miniature paintings 198 Chambers, William 165 Chambéry artists’ travels 119 panel painting 118 Chambord 154, 174, 174, 174 Chamdo, art centre 200 Champa 206 trade 91, 207 Champagne 113 Champaner, temple 134 Champollion, Jean François 245 Chan Chan 100, 101 Chanapata 56, 57 Chancay culture 101, 101 Chanchan 101 Chanderi mosque 134 textiles 198 Chandigarh 261, 304, 305 Chandragiri, palace 198 Chandragupta, emperor 84 Chandraketugarh, ivory 84 Chang Dai Chien see Zhang Daqian Chang’an 53, 86, 87, 87, 95 capital city 136, 141 Changchon-ni 49 Changchun 306 Changdu 302 Changsha 86, 136, 202, 250 archaeology 306 museum 307 painting 200 Changshu, painting 202 Chanhu-Daro, early urbanism 25 Chania 32, 33 Chanka confederation 101 Chanlat 17 Channel Islands, megalithic art 29 Chanthaburi 254 Chantilly 154, 174, 177 Chao Redondo, megalithic art 29 Chaozhou 138 kiln site 137 Chap Kok Leong, Kelvin 311 Chapultepec 98 Char Bakr 197 Characene, kingdom 80 Charax 134 Charcoal 16-17 Chardin, Jean 194 Charente 18 Chares of Lindos 63 Charjui 246, 302 Charlemagne 95, 105 denarius coin 103 Frankish kingdoms 104 visits by 104 Charleroi 228, 229, 279 Charles I (England) 162-163, 175, 187 Charles II (England) 163, 164 Charles IV (Denmark) 156 Charles IX 154, 155, 175 Charles V 154, 155, 175, 178, 180, 180 Charleston, Civil War site 214 Charleston Farmhouse 276, 276 Charlottesville 212, 213 Charsadda, Hellenized city 82, 82 Chartres 112, 177 pilgrimage route 111 stained glass 110, 116 Chartreuse de Champmol 116 Chastel Rouge, Crusader castle 130 Château Gontier 110 Château-Landon 110 Châteaudun 110 Chatelaudren 109, 111 Chatham Islands 144, 208 Châtou 270 Chaul, textiles 198 Chauvet Cave 16, 16, 17 Chavín de Huantár 56, 57, 57 Chavín tradition 27, 56, 57, 101 Cheadle, art movement 226 Checiny 159 Chedzurgwe 127 Chefoo 250 Chellaston, alabaster 112, 116 Chelles 103, 104 Chelmno 158, 159 Chelyabinsk 160, 224 Chemnitz, Degenerate Art exhibition 281 Chengdu 47, 86, 87, 307 gardens 200, 202 museums 306 printing 137, 138, 192, 200 textiles 250 Chengzhou 86 Chenonceaux 154, 174 Chepstow 163 Cheras dynasty 85 Cherchel 67, 76 Cherchen 83, 247 Chernigov 158, 160 Chersonesus, Greek colony 58 Chersonnesus 62, 107 Chertomlyk, Scythian burials 58 Chester 163 art movement 226 ecclesiastical centre 116 Chewa 191 Chhatrarhi, temple 134 Chiamigaito 49, 49 Chiang Kaishek 306 Chiang Rai, paper making 310 Chiapa de Corzo 54, 98 Chiaravalle 110 Chiaroscuro 159 Chibcha 100, 100 Chibunda Ilunga 243 Chicacole 198 Chicago 262, 264, 265 auctioneers 317 Pacific art 313 world fair 215 Chichén Itzá 98, 99 Chichester 67 Chiclayo 56 Chidambaram 134 historic site 248 Chiemsee 103 Chiengmai 142, 207 arts and crafts 310 carving 206, 254 Chihuahua 266 Chikamori 49 Chile 101 artistic activity 219, 268, 268, 269, 269 campaigns 218 Jesuit workshops 153 World Crafts Council 317 Chillon 112 Chiloe Island, Jesuit workshop 153 Chimkent 246 Chimú Capac 101 Chimú culture 95, 101, 101 China 16, 46-47, 86-87, 94, 138- 139, 200-201, 202-203, 250-251, 306-307 culture archaeological sites 86 art market 137 art production sites 136, 137 art schools/museums 298 artistic centres 87, 138, 200, 250 artistic influence 12, 140, 140, 141, 201, 203, 204, 205 artists’ travels 306, 307 Buddhas of the Three Generations 203 cultural influence 12, 89, 139 modern cities 46, 47, 86 Mongol/Yuan/Ming dynasty 138, 139, 200, 200, 201 museums 306, 307 neolithic 46 nomadic tribes 46, 46, 86 paper production see Paper- making pioneering innovations 137 pre-Communist art 306 printing see Printing publishing 137 religious art 136, 137 revolutionary art 307 state funded projects 136, 137 urban development 25 visual production 138, 200, 202, 250, 251 wallpaper 192, 192, 193 politics building the empire 86, 87 Central Asia 196 Communism 261, 306, 307, 307 divided 87 Dzungar campaigns 202 egalitarianism 136 foreign contact 200, 202 global contacts 139 Great Wall 86, 138, 200, 202, 306, 307 Guomindang Party 306-307 Japanese expansion 308 Long March route 306 Manchu conquest 200, 202- 203 Ming dynasty 138, 139, 192, 200, 200 Mongol rule 138, 139 Opium Wars 248, 250, 250, 251 peasant revolts 250 Qing dynasty 192, 200, 202- 203, 250 Song dynasty 136, 137 Tang empire 11, 95, 132, 136, 136 urban planning 139, 200 Warring States 52 Willow Wall 200 Yuan dynasty 139 trade 53, 69, 70, 81, 86, 87, 91, 91, 95, 136, 137, 200, 207, 250 World Crafts Council 316 Chincha 101 Chincilla 154 Chinkiang 250 Chinon, château 116 Chinquiquita, pilgrimage centre 153 Chinul (monk) 141 Chios 32, 33, 35, 60 monastery 106 Chipadze’s 127 Chipas 54 Chippendale, Thomas 164 Chipping Campden, Arts and Crafts 226 Chirik-Rabat 302 Chiripa 56, 57, 57 Chisinau, contemporary art 283 Chitam-ni 49 Chitor 198, 248 Chitral 247 Chivalry centres 122 Chlorite vessels 41, 41 Cho-Do 88 Chodorow 158 Choga 42 Ch’ogjin 308 Choji-ri 49 Chokwe 190, 191 Cholas dynasty 85 Cholbon 89 Cholula 54, 98 Chonderesk 244 Chongbaeng-ni 88 Chongqing 250 archaeology 306 museum 307 Chonjin-dong 49 Chorasmia 78, 80, 81 Choson Dynasty 140, 204, 204 Chotua 56 Chowke people 243 Choyang-dong 88 Christchurch architecture 259, 315 indigenous art 315 Christendom, Western 104, 105 Christian IV 157 Christiana 222, 222 Christiania 186, 220 Christianity 94, 95 countries Asia 192, 193 Eastern Europe 282 Egypt 74, 77 Islam 111 Levant’s Latin states 130 North Africa 77, 124, 188, 240 northern Europe 108 Southeast Asia 207 Sub-Saharan Africa 126- 127, 190-191, 191 culture attitudes to art 70-71, 108, 154 and Byzantine art 106, 106 cross-cultural exchanges 111 devotional icons 77 illuminated book 103 Lund Crucifix 109 patronage 77, 77, 181 revival of Early Christian art 181 groups church reform 120 Huguenots 176 Nestorian 132 Orthodox 106 Protestantism 169, 171, 176, 180, 181, 184, 185, 231, 282 Reformation 154, 156, 170, 171, 181, 230 see also Reformation; Religious Christina, Queen 156, 187 Christo and Jeanne-Claude 265 Christ’s Entry into Brussels in 1889 (Ensor) 228 Chu 86 Chucalissa 97 Chughtai, A. R. (1895-1975) 305 Chuguyev 225, 225 Chukchi 224 Chulak 246 Chulman culture 46, 49 Chur 103 Church, Frederic 212 Church Hole Cave 18 Church of the Transfiguration 161 Churches architecture 12, 76, 77, 95, 147, 184, 184-185, 185, 186, 196, 197, 270, 271 cathedrals 108, 109, 110, 114, 120-121, 121, 123, 157, 163, 226 chapels/cloisters 181 INDEX 328 Stuart ascendancy 162 telegraph communications 245 religion, Reformation 162 trade copper sources 30, 30 international 162 North Netherlands 167 South Netherlands 169 tin 30 World Fair 276 travel/tourism 164 Britannia 66, 69 British Columbia, decorative art 97 British Hondurus 216 Brittany chambered tombs 29 tin 30, 30 Brivan 244 Brixia 66, 67 Brno 16, 270, 282 Brno Bazaar of Modern Art 283 panel painting 116 Broach 198 Broadstairs 276 Brochow 159 Brody 159 Bronze 33, 147 countries Aegean 61 Asia 298 British centres 164 Central Asia 45, 197 China 23, 25, 47, 47, 86, 87, 88, 90 Danish Bronze Age 31, 31 Egyptian 39 European 105, 110, 170 Greece 60 India 84, 85 Italian 65 Japanese 49, 53, 88, 88, 89, 205 Korea 49, 49, 88 Mesopotamian 41 Northern Europe 58, 116 Nuraghic 34 Pacific and Indonesia 51 Roman empire 67, 69, 83 Sasanian 81 Southeast Asia 90, 207 Spanish 64 Western Mediterranean 64- 65 general Attic ’Foundry Cup’ 61 casting 105, 106, 170 doors 110, 111 early implements 51 figurines 31 from Constantinople 111, 111 hammered 35 long-distance trade 30, 31 sun chariot 31 taotie motif 47 Bronze Age 30, 31, 34, 44, 47, 47, 58, 90, 90 Dong Son kettledrums 90 Broodthaers, Marcel 279 Brooklyn Bridge 213 Brooklyn Museum of Art 262 Brough-on-Humber 71 Brown, Lancelot ’Capability’ 164 Brudevaelte 31 Bruegel the Elder, Pieter (d.1569) 154 Brueghel the Elder, Jan (1568- 1625) 169 Bruges 109, 228, 229 artistic centre 154, 168 artists’ travels 119 manuscript painting 112 stained glass 116 tapestry 117 Brundisium 67 Brunei 206, 254 trade centre 207 World Crafts Council 316 Brunei Sabah, arts and crafts 310 Brunelleschi, Filippo 122 Brunn 238 Brunsberg 104 Brunswick 108, 170 arts centre 230 Brunswick-Lüneburg 170, 172 Bruselas, Hanequin de 119 Brussels 20th century 279 architecture 168 art collection 187 Art Nouveau 220, 228, 228, 229, 229 artistic centre 154, 168, 174, 228, 231, 232, 270, 278, 279 artistic institutions 229 artists’ travels 119 ecclesiastical centre 116 Expositions Universelles 278, 279 Hotel Eetvelde 228 Hotel Tassel 221 sculpture 117 stained glass 116 Tervuren Exposition 229, 278 Brutini peoples 65 Bryullov, Karl 224 Brzesc Litewski 158 Brzezany 159 Buang Merabak 50 Bubastis 78 Bucephala 79 Buchanap 96 Bucharest 154, 224 architecture 283 art colony 282 art review magazine 282 Athenaeum 238 Judaism 184 religious architecture 185 town-planning 238 Buchenwald, memorial 281 Buckeburg 230 Buczacz 159 Buda 109 Buda 184 Buda, ecclesiastical centre 116 Buda Pest 185 Budapest Activists 282 architecture 195 art colony 282 Art Nouveau 220 art review magazine 282 artistic centre 154, 155, 282, 283 capital city 238 Judaism 184 Postal Building 221 sculpture park 270 Secessionism 283 town-planning 238 Buddhas of the Three Generations 203 Buddhism 82, 84, 94, 95, 132 countries Asia 192, 193 Central Asia 83, 83 China 136 Japan and Korea 89, 140, 141 rise of Indianized states 142 Southeast Asia 91 Tibet 139, 201, 203 culture Ajanta cave painting 85 archaeology 84, 91, 247 architecture 136, 140, 141 artistic influence 12, 140, 204, 311 Bamiyan destruction 317 Buddhas of the Three Generations 203 Chinese art 87, 87, 139 crowned Buddha 207, 255 Gandharan Art 83 movable metal type 141 Sasanian complex 81 sculptures 140, 140, 141, 207, 255 seated Buddha 140 tallest Buddha 81 religion Mahayana 206 monasteries 84, 85, 85, 134 Ratnakosin images 311 temple sites 134, 142, 206 Theravaddha 206 veneration of relics 85 shrines Borobudor stupa 142, 143 cave shrines 136, 306, 307 stupas 83, 84, 85, 85, 134, 206, 254, 255, 255 Buenos Aires artistic activity 218, 219, 268 Jesuit workshop 153 Buffalo 212, 262, 262, 264 Buganda 191 Bugavita 98 Buhen, fort 37 Buka 50, 93 Bukhara 83, 129, 132, 195, 196 in the 16th century 197 architecture 192, 197 artistic centre 133 arts and crafts 302 carpet market 246 courtly art 192 manuscript centre 196 Mir-i Arab madrasa 197 museum 298, 302, 303 paper-making 132 Samanid mausoleum 132, 133 sculpture 302-303 shrine complex 196, 197 silk and cotton ikat 246 textile centre 246 trade centre 131 Bukhara khanate 246, 246 Bukittinggi, arts and crafts 310 Bulaway, art school 296 Bulayiq 83 Bulbjerg 31 Bulgaria 102, 184 architecture 238 Byzantine architecture 184 cultural status 184 diaspora of artists 283 manuscript production 107 nationalism and neovernacularism 239 public monuments 239 Bulhoa, megalithic art 29 Bunce Island 191 Bundi, miniature paintings 198 Bunol, paper production 234 Bunyoro 127, 191 Bura 126, 190 archaeology 294 Burana, minaret 132 Burdig 68 Burghley House 162 Burgos 109, 114, 234 archbishopric 104 architecture 154, 178 artists’ travels 119 metalwork 110 Burgundians, kingdom 70 Burgundy 121 kingdom 110 Valois dukes 116-117 Burhanpur mosque 134 textiles 198 Burial see funerary Burkin Faso, World Crafts Council 316 Burkina Faso, arts and crafts 294 Burma 95 age of empire 255 architecture 255 art schools/museums 298 arts and crafts 310 crafts and manufacture 255 historic sites 254 Konbaung dynasty 254 tourism 311 trade 207, 254 Burne-Jones, Edward 227 Burri, Alberto (1915-95) 289 Burrup, Eddie see Durack, Elizabeth Bursa 67, 130, 244 art museum 298 Ottoman capital 131 silk trade 194, 195 Buru 143, 206, 254 Bury 163 Bury St Edmunds 108, 111, 162, 163 Buryats 161 Busbecq, Ogier Ghislain du 195 Bustan (’Orchard’/Saadi) 196 Bustos, Hermenegildo (1832- 1907) 216, 217 Buthrotum 66 Buto 38 Bütschwil Butsunami, masks 49 Butterfield, William 227 Butua 66 Butung 206 Buvelot, Abram-Louis 259 Buzd 185 Byblos 32, 40, 41, 42, 43 Alexander the Great 78 Bynum 55 Byzantine empire 102, 106, 124, 129, 130, 132 architecture 184 contested territory 124, 132 Europe and Asia 106, 106, 107, 107 expansion 80 ivory trade 125 Manzikert battle 131 movement of art/artists 106 trade routes 111, 125, 131 Byzantium 62, 67, 68, 69 Cabral 190 Cacaxtla 98, 98 Cáceres 234 Cacheu 191 Cadaqués 287 Cádiz 71, 234 trading port 154 Caen, architecture 110 Caere 64, 65 Caerlaverock 112 Caernarvon 112, 164 castle 116 Caesarea 67, 67, 68, 69, 70 Crusader castle 130 mosaics 76, 76 trading centre 107 Caesarea Maritima 67 Cagayan de Oro 299 Cagli 122, 123 Cahokia 55, 96, 97, 97 Cahor, wall painting 118 Cahors 110, 111 Cahuachi 56, 57 Caimito 56 Cairo 71 Al-Azhar mosque 240 architecture 189, 195, 241, 241, 290, 291 art event 316 art schools 241 c.1800-1914 241 calligraphy 301 ceramics 130 crafts 291, 291 Fatimid capital 130 Ka’bah Kiswa 188, 188 manuscript production 240 metalwork 240, 240 museums/souvenirs 241, 244 School of Fine Art 241, 291 textiles 131, 188, 240, 301 tourist souvenirs 245 trade centre 126, 240 traditional arts 301, 301 Cairo (USA), Civil War site 214 Caizhou, silk production 137 Cajamarca 100, 101, 152, 153, 218 Cajamarquilla 57 Cajnice 185 Calagurris 66 Calais 154 Calakmul 54, 55 Calatia 66 Calcite 38, 72 Calcutta architecture 249 art schools 298, 304, 304 cultural centre 248, 248 film-production 304 Modernism 305 museums 298, 304 printing 192 Tarakeshwar Murder 248 textiles 198, 248, 304 trade centre 192, 207 Calder, Alexander 268, 269 Calgacus, chieftain 69 Calgary, paintings 214 Cali, artistic activity 268, 269 Calicut 192, 198 jewellery 248 California, archaelogical sites 96 Calixtlahuaca 54 Callao 152, 153, 218, 219 Calligram (Mahdaour) 291 Calligraphy calligraphic painting 291, 301 cast bronze 298 Chinese 87, 87, 136, 137, 201 India 305 Islamic art 133, 135, 240 Japan and Korea 140, 140, 141, 205, 252 kana 140 Kufic 125, 301 Mughal empire 199 West Asia 301, 301 Caltanisetta 110 Calvi 110 Calvinism 158, 175 attitudes to art 154 in Hungary 185, 185 Camancaya 56 Camarthen 163 Cambay 192, 198 trade centre 207 Cambodia 95, 206, 254 art schools/museums 298 arts and crafts 310 bronze implements 51 Khmer empire 142 Krishna Govardhana 91 sculpture 255 trade 91, 207 Cambrai 110, 112, 168 ecclesiastical centre 116 sculpture 117 Cambridge 163, 164 Arts and Crafts 226 modernist architecture 276 university 112 Cambridge, USA 264 Camden Town Group 276 Cameron, Charles 161 Cameroon 126 World Crafts Council 316 Cammin 109 Camp, Maxime Du 232 Camp, Sokari Douglas (1958-) 295 Campani peoples 65 Campania 65 Campavati, temple 134 Campeche 266 Campus 96 Camulodunum 68 Canaan 42 Canaanites 42 Canada art and exploration 212, 212, 263 Canadian Group of Seven 263 environmental art 265 exhibitions 265 Microblade tradition 26 post-war architecture 264, 264, 265 World Crafts Council 317 Canakkale 130 Canaletto (Giovanni Antonio Canal, 1697-1768) 173, 183, 183 Canberra, indigenous art 314 Candelaria 56 Candia 107 Cane 134 Cangzhou 136 Cannakkate 244 Canoe equipment 209 Canosa 110 Canova, Antonio (1757-1822) 182, 237 Canterbury 71, 102, 111 Archbishops 102, 104 book production 103, 104, 112 cathedral 108, 108 ecclesiastical centre 116 Canton 86 archaeology 306, 307 kiln site 138 Lingnan pai (Southern School) 306 painting/printing 250 Canusium 65 Canyon Creek 96 Canyon de Chelly 96 Cao, Diago, route of 127 Caozhou, silk production 136 Caparroso 234 Cape Colony 243 Cape Flattery 96 Cape Krusenstern 96 Cape Nome 96 Cape St Catherine 190 Cape Town 191 art schools 297 arts and crafts 296 auctioneers 316 community art centres 297 South African National Gallery 297 Cape Trafalgar 220 Capel-y-ffin, artists’ colony 276 Capon, Kenneth 277 Cappadocia 62, 66, 69, 78, 80, 81 frescoes 107 rock monasteries 106 Caprarola 180, 181 Capriana 185 Capua 64, 66, 67 Caracas 153 artistic activity 218, 219, 268, 269 Aula Magna Auditorium 269 Carallis 70 Caravaggio, Michelangelo Merisi da (1571-1610) 175, 182 Caravanserais 130, 130, 132, 133, 133, 177, 196 Carcassonne 110, 111, 112 stained glass 118 Carchemish 43, 78 excavations 245 Cardona, wall painting 118 Caria 62, 63, 78 Caribbean 99, 216-217, 266-267 art & artists 216, 217, 266 cultures 99 independence movements 266, 266 North Netherlands trade 167 pottery traditions 99 Carlisle, wall painting 116 Carlyle, Thomas 226 Carmana 62 Carmania 62, 78, 81, 82, 83 Carmona 64 castle 118 Carnanmore, megalithic art 29 Carnavanaghan, megalithic art 29 Carnelian, etched 41, 41 Carniola 238 Carnuncum 69 Carolina 263 Caroline Islands 92, 208, 312, 312 art production 256 Carolingian Europe 104 schools 103 Carpenter’s Gap, rock shelter 16 Carpets see textiles Carrà, Carlo (1881-1966) 288 Carrara 67, 69, 182 Carrhae 80, 81 INDEX 331 pilgramage route 1299 plaque of brass sheet 301 railway connections 245 souvenir trade 244 textiles 131, 195 tourist souvenirs 245 trading centre 107, 131, 132 traditional arts 301, 301 Damavand, minaret 130 Dambal, temple 134 Damghan 129 lustre ware 131 minaret 130 Damietta 129 Damingfu, silk production 137 Damstadt 230 Dandan-Oilik 83, 247 Dandenong, plein-air paintings 259 Danger Cave 96 Dangziong 302 Danyang tombs 87 Danzig 156, 157, 220, 222, 230 Daphni 106 Dar es Salaam tourism 292 tourist/modern art 292, 293 Darab, lustre ware 131 Darabgird 81 Darfur 190, 191 Darius I 74, 78 Darius III 79 Darlington 220 Darmstadt 220 Daroca alabaster 118 artists’ travels 119 Dartmouth 109, 163 Darwin Aboriginal drawings 258 indigenous art 314 Darwin, Charles 218, 219 Dascylioum 78 Datia, miniature paintings 198 Daulatabad, mosque 134 Davad, wood carving 310 Davaudieu 110 Davding 31 David, Jacques-Louis (1748-1825) 177, 217 Dawenkou archaeology 307 culture 46 Dax, ecclesiastical centre 118 Daxi culture 46 Dayak, effigies 254 Dayakhatyn 132 Dayton 262, 262 Dazu Buddhist cave 307 religious art 137 de Bazel, K. P. C. (1869-1923) 278 de Blicquy 96 de Chirico, Giorgio (1888-1978) 288 de Lairesse, Gérard (1640-1711) 167 de Medici, Catherine 175 De Stijl movement 270, 276, 278, 279, 282, 283 Dead Man’s Pocket, rock art 50 Deas, Charles 213 Debnik 159 Debreczen 238 Deccan Sultanate 135, 198 Deddington 259 Dege 302 Dehua, kiln site 137, 138, 200, 202, 251 Deir El-Bahri 39 Deir El-Medina 39 del Sarto, Andrea (1486-1530) 174 Delacroix, Eugène (1798-1863) 232, 235 Delagoa Bay 191 Delaunay, Robert (1885-1941) 304 Delft 154 architecture 166 East Indies artefacts 279 painting 117 South Netherlands trade 169 tapestry 167 Delhi 132, 132, 133, 135 architecture 192 courtly art 192 Humayan’s tomb 198 miniature paintings 198 mosque 134, 198 painting centre 248 Qutb Minar 134 Delhi Sultanate 131, 135 Delli, Dello di Niccolò 119 Delos 35, 62, 66, 68 temple 60 Delphi 35, 60, 60, 62 sanctuary 59, 59 Delvaux, Paul (1897-1994) 279 Demak architecture 192 mosque 143, 193, 206 Demetrias 62 Demetrius I Poliorcetes 63 Demsus 185 Denau, arts and crafts 302 Dendera 74, 74 Denenchofu 89 Dengzhou 88, 136 silk production 137 Denkyira 190 Denmark 156, 169, 222, 222 architecture 272 art in a globalized world 273 artistic leadership 156, 157 arts movement 220, 222, 273 Catholicism 104 Danish Bronze Age 31, 31 Lutheran 154, 156 museums 272 Neoclassicism 222 Postglacial 15, 20-21 Renaissance 156 trade in Asia 192 World Crafts Council 316 Denon, Baron 232, 232 Denpasar, art school 299 Densatil, art centre Densus 185 Deogarh, temple 85 Depero, Fortunato (1892-1960) 289 Deptford 163 Deqin 302 Der Sturm 282, 283 Derbent 244 Derby 116, 164 Derge art centre 202, 203 printing 192, 250 Dertosa 66 Desalpur, early urbanism 25 Descartes, René 156 Description de l’Egypte (Denon) 232, 232 Desenzano 71 Desiderius, Abbot 111 Deskford, wild boar 59 Desmarées, Georg (1697-1776) 157 Despeñaperros 64 Dessau art centre 230 art school 282 Bauhaus movement 280, 280, 283 Detmold 104, 230 Detroit 262, 262, 263, 264 Deutz 108 Deve Hüyük 78 Deventer, painting 117 Devetsíl group 283 Devil’s Lair 18 Deybel, Johann Sigmund 158 Dhar 198 mosque 134 Dharangaon, textiles 198 Dholka, mosque 134 Diaghilev, Sergey 225 Dian 86 Dias, Bartolomeu, route of 127 Dibbets, Jan 279 Dickson 97 Didyma 62 temple 60 Die Brücke group 280, 280 Diedenhofen 104 Diegem 168 Dieng Plateau 206, 254 temples 142, 143 Dijon 103, 154, 174 architecture 177 artists’ travels 119 ecclesiastical centre 116 Dilbeek 168 Dilberjin inscriptions 83 Kushan art 82 Dilberzin 63 Dili 254 Dimchurch 276 Dimolit, pottery 50 Dinant brass engraving 117 metalworking 110 mining 168, 168 Dinavar 81 Dinet, Alphonse-Etienne (1861- 1929) 291 Ding 138 Ding Yunpeng (1547-c.1621) 201 Dingri 302 Dingzhou 87 archaeology 307 kiln site 136, 137 Diocletian, emperor 74 Dionysias 75 Diorite 41 Dioskourides (gem-cutter) 66 Diospolis Magna 74 Diquiyú 54 Discourses (Reynolds) 165 Disentis 103 Disks (Schendel) 269 Dissignac, megalithic art 29 Diu 198 Dium 66 Divar, historic site 248 Divrig˘i, mosque 130 Dix, Otto (1891-1969) 281 Diyarbakir 131, 195, 244 mosque 130 Dizhou, silk production 137 Djemila 76 Djenné 290 Djerba Island architecture 290 textiles/pottery 188, 189 Djoser, king 38 D’Kar, museum 296 Dnieper River, trade route 107 Dodge Island 96 Dodona 60, 66 Doha 300 Doigahama 88 Dol 103 Dole, ecclesiastical centre 116 Dolmabahce Palace 245, 245 Dolmen (burial monuments) 49 Dolní Ve˘stonice 15, 16-17, 16 Dombate, megalithic art 29 Domburg, art colony 228, 228, 278 Dominican order 114, 120, 121 Dominican Republic artists 266 independence 216 Domotkanovo 225 Donatello (sculptor) 122 Dong Qichang (1555-1636) 201, 203 Dong Son culture 90, 90, 90 Dongola 126 Donkeys, wall relief 38 Doornik 168 Dor 43 Dorchester 71 stained glass 116 Dordogne 15, 18 Dordrecht 228, 229 artists 166 painting 117 Doré, Gustave 235 Dorestad 102, 102, 109 Dorpat 156, 157 Dortmund, wood sculpture 116 Dos Pilas 98 Dostoyevsky, Fyodor 224 Dot Island 96 Dottori, Gerardo (1884-1977) 289, 289 Dou, Gerrit (1613-75) 167 Douaihy, Saliba (1915–) 301 Douala, art production 295 Dougga 76 Douglas, Aaron 263 Douglas, Arts and Crafts 226 Dourdan 110 Douris (biographer) 61 Dover 112 Dr Atl see Murillo, Gerardo Dra Abu El-Naga 39 Drachten 278 Dragomima 185 Draksharama 134 Drangiana 63, 79, 80, 81, 83 Achaemenid tribute 82 Drapsaca, site of hoard 82 Dravidian literature 85 Drenthe, landscapes 228 Dresden 170, 220 academy 172, 186, 282 artistic cross-currents 173, 223 artists’ travels 119, 187 bronze work 116 court centre 154, 154 Dada movement 280, 280 Degenerate Art exhibition 281 Expressionism centre 270, 280 Kunstkammern 154, 155, 186 patronage 172 urban development 186 Dresden from the Right Bank of the Elbe (Bellotto) 173 Dressel 58 Drogheda 163 Drohiczyn 158, 159 Dromana, plein-air paintings 259 Drome, art colony 232 Drunemeton, cult centre 59 Dublin 163, 164, 220 art academy 186 art movement 226 artists’ travels 187 trade centre 109 urban development 186 Dubrovnik 130, 185 Duccio (artist) 120 Duchamp, Marcel (1877-1968) 284 Duiker, Johannes 278 Duke of York Islands, Lapita pottery 51 Dullu Dailek, temple 198 Dumbarton 163, 164 Dumfries 163 Duncanson, Robert 213 Dundalk 163 Dundee 163 art movement 226 Dunedin 259 architecture 259 Dunhuang 86, 87, 132 art centre 138 Buddhist art 83 Buddhist shrine 306, 307 religious art 136, 137 wall-paintings 307 Dunkeld 164 Dunkerque 285 Dunkirk 168 Dunsun 91, 91 Dur Karigalzu 42 Dur Sharrukin 43 Dura Europos 62, 68, 69, 80, 80, 81 Durack, Elizabeth 315 Durand, Asher B. (1796-1886) 212 Durango 98 Durban community art centres 297 museums 296 Duren 104 Durentsi, Dacian phalerae 58 Dürer, Albrecht (1471-1528) 170, 171 Durgi, carving 248 Durham 108, 108, 109 Durmberg-bei-Hallein, metalwork 59 Durres 71 Dushak 246 Dushanbe arts and crafts 302 museum 298, 302, 303 Düsseldorf 230 academy 172, 222-223, 281, 281 art centre 270 artistic influence 223 Degenerate Art exhibition 281 experimental art 281 Duterrau, Benjamin (1767-1851) 259 Dvin 107 Dwarka, trade centre 85 Dyce, William (1806-64) 226 Dyrrhachium 67, 68, 106 Dzhizak, ceramics 302, 303 Eaglemont exported art 258 Heidelberg School 259, 259 Earle, Augustus (1793-1838) 258 Early Man Shelter 18 Earth Art movement 265, 265 East Africa 292-293 modern art 293 traditional arts 292 East Anglia 102 East Asia 46-47, 229 East India Company 206, 207, 229, 248, 248, 250, 254 East Indies 91, 142 North Netherlands trade 167 East Indies Company 167 East London (South Africa), art gallery 296 East Prussa 230 East Rumelia 238 East Timor 50 Easter Island 92, 93, 95, 144 art production 257 Cook’s voyage 209 Pacific art 312 sculptures 145, 145 Eastern Europe 106-107, 282-283 diaspora of artists 283 Modernism 282, 283 Soviet Socialist Realism 283 Eastern Orthodox religion 282 Eastman, George (1854-1932) 214 Eberbach 108 Ebing 156 Ebla 40, 41 early urbanism 25 Ebreuil 110 Ebusus 64 Ecaquelon 109 Ecausinnes-d’Enghein 168 Ecausinnes-Lalaing 168 Ecbatana 62, 80 architecture 78 Echizen 140 Echmiadzin 106 Echternach archbishopric 104 book production 103, 108, 109 Eckersburg, C. W. (1783-1853) 222 Eckhout, Albert (c.1610-1666) 153 Ecouis, ecclesiastical centre 116 Ecstasy of S. Teresa (Bernini) 183 Ecuador 56, 100-101 artistic activity 219, 268, 269 World Crafts Council 317 Edessa 81, 106, 128, 130 Edfu 74, 74, 128 Edime 244 Edinburgh 154, 163 artistic centre 164, 226 artists’ colony 276 artists’ travels 187 Arts and Crafts 226 arts movement 220 auctioneers 316 ecclesiastical centre 116 modernist architecture 276 urban development 186 Edingen 168 Edo 147, 204, 252, 253 architecture 193, 193 arts centre 204, 205 painting guilds 206, 207 Tokugawa headquarters 205 woodblock printing 205 Efate, Lapita pottery 51, 92, 93 Effigy Mounds 96 Efigy Mounds 55 Egebak 31 Eger 185 Egmond aan Zee, art colony 228, 228 Egmond gospels 105 Egonu, Uzo (1931-94) 295 Egypt 38-39 culture artistic cross-currents 290 art and monasticism 77 art styles 22, 39, 42, 67 bone figure of a woman 36 Egyptian art 74-75 Egyptology 241 late Roman art 71 macehead 25 monumental art 12 Nile Valley 36, 37, 37 obelisks and columns 53 pilgrimage sites 77 sites and monuments 38 urban development 25, 241 politics after Napoleon 244 British colony 291 Nile colonization 37 Ottoman Possession 188, 194, 195 Pharaohs 52, 62-63 Roman empire 70 and West Asia 80, 81, 128- 129 religion Christianity 77, 77, 126, 188 Upper Nile sites 37 trade 35, 76, 84 natural resources 74 World Crafts Council 316 see also Fatimid Caliphate; Islam; Mamluk Ehrenberg, William Schubert von 168 Ehrenstrahl, David Klöcker (1629- 98) 156 Eichstätt 170 Eilat 130 Eindhoven art collection 279 UNESCO project 316 Einhard (biographer) 105 Einsiedeln 108 Einsiedeln Abbey 172 Ejutla 54, 98 Ekain 19 Ekamra, temple 134 Ekpene, arts and crafts 294 El Anatsui (1944-) 295 El Arenal 54 El Baúl 54, 98 El Bosque 55 El Carmen 218 Neoclassicism 216 El Castillo 19 El Ceibo 20 El Cerrillo 100 El Djem 76 El Escorial 154, 178, 179 El Fasher 126 El Ferrol 234 El Greco (1541-1614) 155, 178 El Kab 38, 38 El Mermouta, pottery 36 El Mina 191 El Mirador 54, 54 El Molle 56 El Paraiso 27, 27 El Salvador independence 216, 266 sculpture 54 El Shincal 100 El Tajín 54, 54, 98 El Teul 54 El Wad 21 El-Amarna 38 early urbanism 25 El-Lisht, early urbanism 25 Elam 42, 42, 43, 78 Elapura, temple 134 INDEX 330 domed sepulchral 159 ecclesiastical remains 102 Gothic 112, 114, 185 groin-vault construction 120 monasteries see monasteries vault mosaics 71 countries Armenian 81 British abbeys 164 Italian 123, 181, 181 Moldavian 184 Northern Europe 112, 112 Northern Europe 116 Poland/Lithuania 158-159, 159 Portugal 178 Roman empire 70 SE Europe 184-185, 185 South Netherlands 169 Southeast Asia 206, 207, 254 Southern Europe 114, 118 Spain 178 Uniate 158, 159 furnishings altar utensils in Japan and Korea 252 altarpieces 118, 123, 166, 169, 169, 181, 181, 185 wooden minbars (pulpits) 125 general archbishoprics 104, 106 Jesuit 168, 181 monastic dissolution 162, 163 royal/imperial 104 see also Religious architecture; Specific names Churchi 185 Churriguera, José Benito (1664- 1725) 178 Chuzhou, silk production 137 Cicero 66, 122 Cigarralejo 64 Cilicia 66, 69, 78, 80, 81 manuscript production 107 Cimabue (d.1302) 115 Cincinnati, Ohio 212, 213, 264 Cinema see Film-making Çinili Kiosk, Imperial Ottoman Museum 245 Cioara, Dacian phalerae 58 Circesium 80 Circulo y Cuadrado (review) 269 Cirebon, mosque 143 Cirencester 70, 71 Arts and Crafts 226 Cirta 64, 66 mosaics 76 Cishan culture 46 Citeaux 110 Citium 32 Citrakuta, temple 134 Città di Castello 121, 180, 181 City states 43, 62, 64, 68, 120, 121, 126 Ciudad 100 Ciudad Bolivar 218 Ciudad Camargo 266 Ciudad Guzán 266 Ciudad Real 152, 153 artists’ travels 119 Ciudad Rodrigo 110 ecclesiastical centre 118 Ciumesti, stone carving 59 Civate 110 Cividale 103 Civil War (England) 162 Civitavecchia 180, 181 Cixian, kiln site 138 Cizhou kiln site 137 silk production 137 Clairvaux 110 Clark, Lygia 269 Clark, William 212 Claros 66 Classicism 178, 216, 231, 236 Claude (1604/5-1682) 165, 182, 175 Clausell, Joáquin (1866-1935) 266 Claxton, Marshall (1813-81) 259 Clazomenae 35 Clear Island, megalithic art 29 Clermont-Ferrand 110 stained glass 118 Cléry-Saint-André, ecclesiastical centre 116 Cleveland 262, 262, 263, 263, 264 Clocks, 24 equal hours 120 Cloisonné 107 Clonard 103 Clonmacnoise 103 metalwork 59 Cluj 282 Cluj-Baoica 185 Cluj-Napoca 154 architecture 283 Cluny alabaster 111 ecclesiastical centre 116 monastery 104, 105 murals 110 Clupea 66 mosaics 76 Clusium 64, 65, 66 Clyde 220 Clyidale 102 Cnidus 62 Coalbrookdale by Night (de Loutherbourg) 221 Coatlinchan 98 Cobá 54, 98 CoBra movement 270, 272, 273, 278, 279 Coburg arts centre 230 castle 116 Coca, castle 118 Cochin 198 printing 192 Cochin China 254 Codesas, megalithic art 29 Coimbra 110, 114, 154, 178, 234 wood sculpture 118 Coins 95 Abbasid 129 Achaemenid 78, 78 Axumite 72, 73 Byzantine 107 Geto-Dacian 58 Greek style 65 India 84, 85 Parthian 80, 80 Roman 91, 122 Sasanian 81 sceattas 102 silver denarius 103 stone 145 tetradrachms 80 trans-Saharan trade 125 see also mints Coixtlahuaca 98 Colantonio (d.after 1460) 119 Colchester 108 coins 58 Colchis 78 Cole, Thomas 212 Collao 101 Collioure, Fauvism 270, 270, 284, 285 Colmar 112 ecclesiastical centre 116 Cologne 70, 71, 111, 173, 230 art collections 186, 187 artists’ travels 119 book production 103, 104, 112, 170 cathedral 220 Dada centre 270, 280, 280 glass-making centre 71 metalwork 108, 109, 109, 112 National Socialism 281 public spirit 230 South Netherlands trade 169 stained glass 116 trade route 102 Colombia 56, 100-101 architecture 153 artistic activity 219, 268, 269, 269 World Crafts Council 317 Colombo 192, 198 art school 304 Colonia Agrippina 68, 69, 69 Colonia, Juan de 119 Colonie Belge (Matulu) 293 Colosseum 66 Columbus 212, 264 Columbus, Christopher 150 Comalcalco 98 Comama 66 Commagene 80 Como 121 architecture 110, 154, 288 Comoros, World Crafts Council 316 Compiègne 104, 177 Complutum 71 Compostela see Santiago de Compostela Compton 220, 221 Comum 64 Comza 158 Con Con Ngua, iron work 90 Conakry, art centre 295 Concepción 152, 153, 218 Conceptual Art 261 Conchopata 57, 101 Concreto Invencíon 268, 269 Confucianism 192, 193, 207, 255 Congo, colonial exploitation 278 Conimbriga 68 Conisbrough 108 Conques 105, 110, 111, 111, 118 Conscious Naivism 273 Constable, John 220, 221, 226 Constance 103 ecclesiastical centre 116 Constantia 107 Constantine 76, 290 Constantine, emperor 70, 71, 103, 122 Constantinople 70, 95, 102-103, 113 architecture 193 artistic influence 115 Byzantine 102, 106-107, 106, 107, 129, 130 churches 70, 122 city 238 crusades 114 government centre 74 Judaism 184 late Roman art 71 map (c.AD 413) 71 Ottoman capital 131 pilgrimage centre 106 Sack of 106 silk industry 107 trading centre 76, 107 Constanza 238 Constructivism 260, 261, 269, 270, 270, 274, 276, 282, 283, 283 Conway 112, 163 Conza, archbishopric 104 Cook, Captain James 208, 10, 208, 209, 259 Cook Islands 92, 144, 208 art production 256 Cookham 276 Coomaraswamy, Ananda Kentish 304 Coorg, painting 248 Copacabana, art centre 153 Copán 54, 54 Copáno 98 Copenhagen 156, 157, 272 art academy 186 art college 273 artistic influences 173 artists’ travels 119, 187 arts movements 220, 222, 222, 231, 270 contemporary art 273 Laegeforeningens 221 Copiapo 218 Copper countries Aegean 32, 33, 33, 60 Africa 36, 37, 72 Akkadian 41 Byzantine 107 Central Asia 302 Egyptian 38, 39 European 109, 283 India 134, 248 North America 97 Northern Europe 58 Roman empire 67, 69 Scandinavia and the Baltic 156 South American 27, 56, 57, 100, 100, 101, 152 South Netherlands 168, 168, 169 Southeast Asia 91, 91 Southern Europe 115 Sub-Saharan Africa 126, 127 West Africa 294 West Asia 42 Western Mediterranean 64- 65 general oil paintings on 168 sources 30 standards 40 Coptos 38, 74 Corao, megalithic art 29 Corbeny 104 Corbie 103 Corbridge 71 Cordillera Central 100 Córdoba 66, 69, 70, 71, 102, 152, 234 architecture 114, 178 art centre 154 artists’ travels 119 Caliphate 104, 111, 114 ecclesiastical centre 118 Islamic 124, 129 ivory 125 mosque 110, 125 palace 110 Córdoba (Chile) 218 art academy 219 Jesuit workshop 153 Corfe 112 Corinium 68 Corinth 35, 62, 65, 66, 68 pottery 60 trading centre 107 Cork 163, 164 art movement 226 trade centre 109 Corobal 100 Corofin, art movement 226 Coromina 234 Corot, Camille (1796-1875) 236 Corredor 98 Corsica 34, 103 art and trade 67, 68, 69 controlled from Paris 220 late Roman Art 71 Lombard 102 Mediterranean world 64-5, 64-5 Roman empire 66, 70 to Genoa 182 Viking route 104 Cortés, Hernán 150 Cortona 122, 123 museum 182 palace 110 Corvey 108 Cos 35, 62 Cosa 64 Cosimo, Duke 180 Coso Range sites 55 Cosquer Cave 17 Cossacks 161 Cossington Smith, Grace (1892- 1984) 314 Costa, Lúcio (1902-98) 268, 269 Costa Rica early cultures 55, 99 independence 216, 216, 266 Cote d’Ivoire, World Crafts Council 316 Cotofenesti, Thraco-Getic hoard 58 Cotonou, art production 295 Cotowa, Aboriginal drawings 258 Cottonwood Creek 55 Cougnac 17, 19 Council of Trent 181 Courland 156, 158 Courtrai 168, 228, 229 Coutances 110 Covaciella 19 Coventry 163, 276 Covilha, Pero de, route of 127 Cowes, Fauvism/Cubism 276 Cow’s Skull, Red, White, and Blue (O’Keeffe) 263 Coyoacán 98, 266 Coza 185 Crab Orchard 55 Crac des Chevaliers, Crusader castle 130 Cracow 106, 154, 184, 283 architecture 155,159, 282 art centre 186, 262 art review magazine 262 ecclesiastical centre 116 industrial 220 Sigismundus chapel 158 town-planning 238 university 158 Wawel Castle 158 Crafts training schools 239 Craig Harbour 96 Cranach the Elder, Lucas (1472- 1553) 170, 171 Cranach the Younger, Lucas (1515- 86) 170 Crayons, Ice Age 18 Crema 121 Cremna 66 Cremona 66, 122, 123 architecture 110, 154, 114 prize 288, 289 Cresap 55 Cressac 110 Creta 69 Crete 32, 64-65 art and trade 67, 68, 69 Byzantine 102, 106 Mediterranean world 64-65 Ottoman 184 Phocaean ware 71 Roman empire 66, 70 Crimea 220, 224 Russian expansion 244 Crimean War 244, 246 Croatia 184 architecture 238 Catholicism 104, 184 Croesus, king 35 Cromwell, Oliver 162 Cross Lake, paintings 214 Croton 65 Crusades 106-107, 111, 113, 114, 115, 131 castles 130 First 106 and Islam 111 Second 111 Cruz-Diez, Carlos 269 Crystal 96 Crystal River 55 Cserény, panel painting 116 Csetnek, wall painting 116 Csók, István (1865-1961) 239 Ctesiphon 80, 81, 81, 128 Achaemenid 78 Cuba 234 architecture 151, 267 art movements 216, 266 gold sites 99 World Crafts Council 317 Cubism 267, 268, 270, 270, 271, 276, 282, 282, 283, 283, 284, 287, 305 post- 273 Cubitt, James 290 Cuenca abstract art 286 artists’ travels 119 ecclesiastical centre 118 wool production 234 Cuenta 268 Cueva de las Manos 20, 20 Cueva Pintada 54, 98 Cuicuilco 54 Cuicul, mosaics 76 Culiacán 98 Cumae 34, 34, 64 Cuneo 180, 181 Cunha Baixa, megalithic art 29 Cupid and Psyche (Sergel) 156 Cupisnique style 57 Curitiba 268 Curtea de Arges 185 Curubis 66 Cusco see Cuzco Cushites 190 Cuttack, miniatures 198 Cuvilliés, François 172 Cuxa 110 Cuzco (Cusco) 100, 101, 101, 152, 152, 218, 219 indigenous art 153 Cyclades Is 35, 35 Cyprus 32, 32, 33-34, 74 art and trade 67, 68, 69, 69 Byzantine 106, 107 church art 107 Mediterranean world 64-5, 64-5 Roman empire 66, 69, 70 World Crafts Council 316 Cyrenaica 66, 69, 74 Cyrene 34, 62, 66, 67, 68, 70 Cyropilis 79 Cyrus II 78 Cyzicus 62 Czechoslovakia 239 architecture 238, 282 clay figurines 16 diaspora of artists 283 Czemierniki 159 Czernowitz, town-planning 238 Da Carpi, Scibec 175 Da Nang 254 Dacca art centre 304 textiles 198, 248 Dachau, memorial 281 Dacia 58, 66, 69 artefacts 58, 59 Dada movement 261, 268, 270, 270, 278, 278, 280, 280, 283, 283, 284 Dadeldhura, temple 198 Dadu, Dagon, kiln site 206 Daguerrean Miniature Museum 212, 213 Dahae 80 Dahl, Johan Christian (1788-1857) 223 Dahl, Michael (1659-1743) 157 Dahomey 190, 191 effect of slave trade 243 Dai, textiles 124 Dai Viet, trade 207 Dai Viet kingdom 206 Daidu, textiles 133 Daima, archaeology 294 Daimiel 234 Dainzú 54 Dairen 250 Dakar art event 316 arts and crafts 294, 295, 295 Biennial 316 Dakhla Oasis 38, 74 Dali 138 Dalí, Salvador (1904-89) 263, 284, 287 Dallam, Thomas 194 Dallas 264 Dalmatia 69, 184, 184, 238 Dalmau, Lluis 119 Dalton 96 Dalverzin-tepe archaeology 303 Kushan art 82 Dama de Baza 64 Daman 198 Damascus 41, 70, 81, 133 Alexander the Great 78 fine arts 300 Great Mosque 128, 128 metalworking 130, 131 museum 298 Muslim castle 130 INDEX 333 Frith, William Powell (1819-1909) 226 Froment, Nicolas (d.1484) 119 Fromentin, Eugène (1820-76) 232 Frómista 118 Fry, Roger 276 Fudodo 49 Fuente del Salin 19 Fuenterrabia 109 Fukuoka 141 art event 316 Fulani 243 Fulbe 243 Fulda 103 book production 104 Funan empire 91, 91 Functionalism 273 Funerary burial sites 26, 31, 49, 58, 72, 73, 73, 84, 89 effigies 65, 254, 254 Egyptian art 75 grave wrappings 115 jar burials 88, 90 monuments 77 portraits 69, 77 urnfields 31 urns 100 see also Grave-goods; Pyramids; Stele Funj 190 Furniture Japan and Korea 140, 141 Southeast Asia 206, 255 Fürth 220 Furuichi 89 Fuseli, Henry (Johann Heinrich Füssli, 1741-1825) 173, 221 Füssen 220 Fustat 128, 128, 129 Futa Jallon 191, 243 Futa Toro 191 Futurism 260, 260, 270, 270, 274, 282, 282, 284, 288, 288, 289 Fuzhou 136 gardens 200 kiln site 250 museum 307 printing 137, 192, 200 silk production 137 textiles 138, 202, 250 Fyn 156, 157, 222, 272 Gabae 62, 80 Gabès, textiles 124 Gabo, Naum (1890-1977) 279 Gabon, World Crafts Council 316 Gaborone, museum 296 Gabrong, pottery 36 Gades 64, 67, 69 Gafsa 290 textiles 124 Gaimonova Mogila, Scythian burials 58 Gainsborough, Thomas (1727-88) 165, 226 Gaius Verres 66 Galapagos Islands 218 Galati, architecture 283 Galatia 66, 69, 80, 81 Galerie Der Sturm 283 Galgertberg 16 Galich-Volhynia 108 Galiche, Dacian phalerae 58 Galicia architecture 178, 238 tin 30, 30 Galindo 57 Gallé, Emile (1846-1904) 221, 233 Gallen-Kallela, Akseli (1865-1931) 223 Gallinazo culture 57 Gallipoli 180, 181 Gama, Vasco da, route of 127 Gambia 243, 290 Games 209 Gamla Uppsala 108 Gandara 79 Gandesheim 103 Gandhara 81, 82, 83 Achaemenid tribute 82 art style 83 sculpture 85 Gangaikondacolapuram 134 Gangala culture 56 Gangwayao, kiln site 137 Gantuoli 91 Ganzak 81 Ganzhou Gao 126, 188, 240 Gaocheng, early urbanism 25 Gardens Asia 193 Chinese 200, 202 Italian 123, 180 landscape 164 Mughal 198, 199 Poland/Lithuania 159 revival of antique 181 Gardner, Alexander 214 Gargas 17 Garibaldi, Giuseppe 237, 237 Garnier, Tony 285 Garrick, David 164 Gasja 18 Gaston 55 Gateshead 270, 271 Gaudí, Antoní (1852-1926) 221, 235, 287 Gaugamela 78, 80 Gauguin, Paul (1848-1903) 217, 233 Gauhati 298 Gaul 64, 69 art workshops 69 Frankish 70 late Roman Art 71 Roman culture 67 Gauls 63, 65 Gault Site 20 Gauteng, Nedebele village 296 Gävle 272 Gaya, stupa 134 Gaza 130 Achaemenid 43, 67, 74, 78 Mamluk monument 131 pilgrimage route 128 Gazelle Pen, Lapita pottery 51 Gaziantep 195 Gazurgah 133 Gdansk 109, 156 alabaster 109 architecture 159 artistic centre 154, 230 artistic influence 157 ecclesiastical centre 116 Jesuit centre 158 Gebze, mosque 131 Gedebjerg 31 Gedi 127 Gedong Songo, temple 142 Gedrosia 63, 79, 80, 82, 83 Gego (artist, 1912-94) 269 Gehry, Frank (1929-) 287 Geissenklôsterle, ivory carvings 16, 17 Gekkodaira 89 Gela 64 Gelati 106 Gelidonya 32 Gellone 103 Gemma Augustea 67 Gems carving 65, 66 diamonds 134, 152, 153, 168, 169, 198 emeralds 57, 100, 101 engraved 65 garnets 63, 69 gold/inlaid 248 Mediterranean workshops 67 precious and semi- 32, 38, 57, 63, 69, 74, 84, 84 Roman trade 69, 70 Russian 160, 197 sapphires 69 South Asia 198 trade routes 111, 111 workmanship 70, 103 see also lapis lazuli Geneva 70, 102, 171, 220, 231 academy 172 art collection 154 arts centre 171, 230 auctioneers 316 book production 170 Catholicism 104 French influence 173 metalwork 170 print-making 118 Protestantism 171 Genghis Khan 196 Genoa 121, 123 alabaster 111 archbishopric 104 Arte Povera 288, 289 gold/silversmithery 154 metalwork 109 monuments 182 murals 110 patronage 181 sculpture 114 shipyard 220 South Netherlands trade 169 trade centre 102, 111, 114, 115, 120, 122, 131, 180 Genova 70 Geoktepe 246, 246 George III 209 George Town temples 254 tourism 310 Georgetown (Guina) 218 Georgia 81 annexed by Russia 244 Orthodox 106, 106 radical art 275 Georgian Bay, paintings 214 Gera 230 Gerasimov, Sergey (1875-1970) 275 Gerbert of Aurillac (Sylvester II) 105 Gerhard, Hubert 171 Géricault, Théodore (1791-1824) 221 German-Austrian, power 185 Germania Inferior 66, 69 Germania Superior 66, 69 Germany 58, 170-171, 172-173, 230-231, 280-281 culture 19th century museums 230 art centres 230, 231 art societies 230 artistic influence 223 artistic workshops 170 artists’ colonies 231 Degenerate Art exhibitions 281, 281 Modern movement 280 Roman 67 romanticized landscape 231 routes of emigrating artists 281 politics anti-Nazi/Holocaust memorials 281 at the crossroads of Europe 173 borders 110, 170, 230, 231, 281, 282 Holocaust memorials 281 National Socialism 260, 281, 281 Ottonian 105 political divisions 281 Roman/German empire 230-231 Third Reich auction sites 281 Thirty Years War 146, 156, 171, 172, 172 religion 230 Reformation 170, 171 trade 35 North Netherlands 167 World Crafts Council 316 Germigny 104 Germigny-des-Prés 102, 103, 105 Germiston, art centre 297 Gérome, Jean-Léon (1821-1904) 232 Gerona 64 archbishopric 104 artists’ travels 119 cathedral 110 literary centre 103 metalwork 109, 114 wool production 234 Gerson Weber Company 237 Gêrzê 302 Gesellius, Herman (1874-1916) 221 Geto-Dacian, trade and culture 58 Gettysburg, Civil War site 214 Geying 91, 91 Gezer 43 Ghadami 126 Ghaffari, Muhammad 301 Ghana 126, 126, 127, 294 fantasy coffins 295 World Crafts Council 316 Ghantasala, stupa 85 Ghat 126 Ghaznavid rulers 132, 132 Ghazni 129 lustre ware 131 minaret 132 mosque 134 tomb 133 trade centre 198 Ghedi 180, 181 Gheeraerts, Marcus (1520-90) 162 Ghengis Khan 10 Ghent 228 art centre 154, 279 artistic institutions 229 artists’ travels 119 brass engraving 117 furnishings 168 manuscript painting 112 visited by Charlemagne 104 Gherla 185 Ghiz 81 Ghurid rulers 132 Gia 33 Giali 33 Giambologna (1529-1608) 171 Gianyar, museum 299 Gibberd, Frederick 271 Gibbons, Grinling (1648-1721) 164 Gibbs, James 164 Gibeon, folk art 296 Giblet, Crusader castle 130 Gibralfaro, castle 118 Gibraltar 124, 179, 234 Giersing, Harald 273 Gifu 140 Gil, Amrita Sher (1913-41) 304 Gilbert Islands 92 Gilgili 66 Gilgit 83, 247, 303 Gilman, Harold (1876-1919) 276 Gilpin, Revd. William 164 Gimar, temple 134 Gimignano 110 Gingee 198 Giordano, Luca (1634-1705) 182 Giorgio, Francesco di 122 Giotto (d.1337) 115, 120 Birth of a Virgin 121 Girodet, Anne-Louis (1767-1824) 221 Girona, stained glass 118 Gisbert, Antonio (1834-1901) 234 Gisborne, Maori art 259 Gisors 110 Giverny 232, 233 Giza 38 early urbanism 25 Gizhduvan 133 arts and crafts 302 Glanum 64, 67, 68 Glasgow 163, 164 art collection 226 artists’ colony 276 Arts and Crafts 226 industry 227 modernist architecture 276 School of Art 220 Glass countries Achaemenid 78, 78 Aegean 32 Alexandrian 83 Belgium 229 Byzantine 107, 107 Central Asia 83 Central and Eastern Europe 283 Egyptian 75 English Renaissance 163 France 177 Hellenistic 63 Netherlands 279 Northern Europe 116 Roman empire 67, 69, 91 Sasanian 81 Scandinavia and the Baltic States 272 Senegal 294 sub-Saharan Africa 191 West Asia 42, 81 techniques artefacts 52 blue ingots 32 cage cups 71 claw beakers 71 Gallé’s technology 221 gold 71 mirror 176 mosaics 128 painting 168, 294, 304 stained 108, 110, 116, 118 workshops/centres 69, 70-71, 71 Glastonbury 102 Glauberg, stone carving 59 Glenbrook, Heidelberg School 259 Glendalough 103 Gloucester 108, 163 ecclesiastical centre 116 Gloucester, USA 212, 213 Glover, John (1767-1849) 258, 259 Gniezno 104, 106 churches 158 metalwork 108 Go Mun, Dong Son culture 90 Goa 147, 198 architecture 248 historic site 248 printing 192 Gobelins, textiles 221, 232 Gobi Desert, exploration 247 Gobir 191 Godescalc Evangelistary 105 Godin Tepe 78 Goethe 231 Gold countries Aegean 60 African 37, 72, 95, 127, 188, 189, 190 Akkadian 41 Arab trade 111 Australia 259, 259 British centres 164 Byzantine 107, 107 Central America 55, 98, 99, 150, 151 Central Asia 44, 302 Egyptian 38, 39, 42 European centres 111, 154 Hellenstic 62-3, 63 India 84, 134, 248 Japan and Korea 89, 141, 205, 252 Mesopotamian 41 Northern Europe 58, 58, 116 Roman trade 69 South American 27, 56, 57, 57, 100, 100, 101, 152, 153 South Asia 198 South Netherlands 169 Southeast Asia 206, 254, 255, 310, 311 Southern Europe 115, 118 West Asia 42 Western Islam 124 Western Mediterranean 64- 65 early ornaments 31 glasses 71 workmanship 70, 100 Gold Coast 243 Gold Rush 213 Golden Gate, Basotho village 296, 297 Golden Horde 131 Russian excavations 245 Golden Summer (Streeton) 259 Goldfinger, Ernö (1902-87) 271 Goldie, Charles 314 Goldsmiths’ School of Art 277 Golkonda, mosque 134, 198 Golmud 302 Gombroon 195 Gomes, Fernao, route of 127 Gómez Saquerera Macedo 100 Gondar 190 Gongbo Giarda 302 Gonggar 302 Gongxian, kiln site 136 Gönnersdorf 18 Gonzaga, Federigo 180 Gonzaga, Ludovico 122, 123 Good and Bad Government (Lorenzetti) 237 Goodall 55 Gop, sculpture 85 Gopagiri, temple 134 Gordale Scar (Ward) 226 Gordium 43 ceramics 78 excavations 245 Gordyene 80 Gore, Spencer 276 Gorée 191 Göreme 106 Gorizia 282 Gorlovka, industrial 220 Gormley, Antony 270, 271 Gorodets 160 Goslar manuscript painting 112 metalwork 108 Gostyn 159 Gotha 230 Gothenburg 157, 273 Gothic architecture 120-121, 164, 184, 185 ’folly’ 164 Gothick 164 and monastic dissolution 162 revival 159, 227, 227, 231 styles 123 Gotland 157 Gouda painting 117 printing 116 Gourna 290 Gournay-sur-Aronde, metalwork 59 Gowa, mosque 206 Goya y Lucientes, Francisco de (1746-1828) 179, 221, 234, 235 Goyo, Hashiguchi (1880-1921) 308 Gracanica 106 Graeco-Bactrians 82, 84 Graeco-Roman culture 67, 77, 102- 3 Graf, Urs 171 Graff, Anton (1736-1813) 173 Graham, Bruce 265 Graham Cave 96 Grahamstown, art school 296 Grain Coast 191 Gran 106, 185 Gran Pajatén 100 Granada 114, 124, 129 Alhambra 95, 114, 125, 179, 188 castle 118 architecture 110, 114, 155, 178, 178 art centre 154 Christian reconquest 119 ecclesiastical centre 118 madrasa 125 Palace of Charles V 179 textiles 125, 234 Grand Canyon of the Yellowstone (Moran) 214, 215 Grand Gulch 26, 27 Grand Rapids 212 INDEX 332 Elba 182 Elbasan 185 Elbing 157 Elblag 158 Elea 65 Elephanta, temple 85, 248 Elephantine 25, 37, 38, 78 Eleusis 35, 66 shrine 60 Elis, theatre 60 Elizabeth, Countess of Shrewsbury 162 Elizabeth I of England 162 Elizabeth I of Russia 161 Elizabethville, art school 293 Ellora historic site 248 temple 85 Elmali 78 Elmina 190 Elne artists’ travels 119 ecclesiastical centre 118 Ely 108, 108 ecclesiastical centre 116 Elymais, kingdom 80 Embid, castle 118 Embrun, archbishopric 104 Emerald Mound 96, 97 Emerita Augusta 66, 69 Emmaboda 272 Empire style 223 Emporiae 64, 64, 67 Emporion 34 Greek colony 58 Enamelwork Limoges 174 Russian 160 Scandinavia and the Baltic States 272 Enckell, Magnus 272 End of the Bazaar (Selimu) 302 Endere 247 Engel, Carl Ludwig (1778-1840) 222, 222 Engelburg 108 Enghien 168 England age of the aristrocracy 164 art centre 231 Catholicism 104 Christianity 154 cross-cultural exchanges 111 English Renaissance 163 North Netherlands trade 167 see also Britain English Baroque 162 Engraving Ice Age 16, 18 metal-plate 251 niello 301 Northern Europe 116, 117 South American 219 Engström, Leander 272 Enkomi 32 Enlène 19 Enna, pre-Islamic 124 Ennis, art movement 226 Enseigne de Gersaint (Watteau) 177 Ensérune 64 Ensor, James (1860-1949) 228 Entremont 64 stone carving 59 Enugu, arts and crafts 294 Enwonwu (1918-94) 294 Eoca 185 Epardus 80 Ephesus (Ephesos) Achaemenid 62, 66, 67, 68, 70, 78 demise 102 excavations 245 shrine 60 source of marble 35 Epidaurus 60, 62, 66 Epirus 66, 69 Épone, megalithic art 29 Epsom 154 Equatorial Africa, exotic products 68 Erasmus of Rotterdam 171 Erdely 185 Erdeni Dzuu 298 Eresburg 104 Eretria 35, 62 theatre 60 Erfurt 112, 170, 281 ecclesiastical centre 116 Erickson, Arthur 264 Eridu early urbanism 25 excavations 245 Erivan 224, 225 Erlau 185 Erlitou, early urbanism 25 Ermes, Ali Omar (1945-) 291 Ernst, Max (1891-1976) 284 Erzincan 78 Erzurum Abbasid 129 carpet-making 244 metalwork 78 mosque 130 trade centre 195 Esbjerg 272 Escalona, castle 118 Escariz, megalithic art 29 Esch, amber figurine 68 Escomb 102 Eshnunna 40, 42 Eshowe, museum 296 Esie 127, 190 Eski Gümus 106 Eskilstuna 272 Eskisehir 130 Esna 74, 74, 77 Espiñaredo, megalithic art 29 Espoo 272 Esquivel, Antonio (1806-57) 234 Essaouira, architecture 188, 189 Essen 103, 108, 281 Esslingen, ecclesiastical centre 116 Este, Alfonso d’ 180 Este, Leonello d’ 122 Estella 118 Estonia 156, 157 art in a globalized world 273 pagan 106 radical art 275 Estrada, José María (c.1800-60) 217 Estremoz, castle 118 Esztergom 104, 106 architecture 155, 185 artistic cross-currents 154 ecclesiastical centre 116 Étampes 110 Ethiopia 126, 127, 190, 191 Christianity 73, 126-127, 188, 190, 240, 243 Etowah 96, 97 Etretat 285 Etruria 34, 65, 65 Etruscans artistic influence 34, 34, 35, 58, 65, 66 and Western Mediterranean 64-65 Etzatlán 54 Euboea 32, 33, 34, 35, 60 Eufemia 65 Euffigneix, stone carving 59 Euhesperides 62 Eumenes II 63 Eupatoria 195 Eurasia Ice Age 16-19 trade routes 131, 194 Europe 11, 28-29, 102-103, 104- 105, 154-155, 184-185, 186-187, 220-221, 270, 271 agriculture early farming settlements 28 culture Age of Enlightenment 179, 208 artistic cross-currents 154, 154, 155, 221, 290 artistic crossroad 186 artistic works 103 artists’ travels 187 Byzantine art 106 court expression 154, 155 cultural contacts 187 fin de siècle 221 industrial/utopian architecture 220, 221 late Roman art 71 luxury goods 102 major art centres 186, 187 writing centres 103 Ice Age/Postglacial 16, 16, 18, 18, 19, 21, 28 politics Asian possessions 192 Eastern 106-107, 282-283 ethnicity 184 involvement in west Asia 244-245 nature and nationalism 220 Northern 108, 108, 109, 109, 112, 112, 113 Ottoman empire 194 Roman disintegration 70 Southeastern 28, 184-185, 238-9 Southern 110, 110, 111, 111, 114-115 religion monasteries 103 Western Christendom 104 trade and art 109 and artistic influence 111 Asian ports 192 imports/exports 154, 155, 194-195, 194-195, 301 and industry 107 Evans, Walker 263 Evenk 224 Éveux sur l’Arbresle 270, 271 Évora 110, 114, 154 Évreux 109 stained glass 116 Evron, stained glass 110, 116 Evry 285 Eworth, Hans (1540-73) 162 Exeter 154 cathedral 108, 112 Romanticism 226 wool trade 163, 164 Exmouth 163 Exposition Universelle (Paris 1867) 245 Expressionism 223, 268, 270, 273, 275, 278, 279, 280, 280, 282, 282, 283, 287, 311 Expulsion of St. Elizabeth (Schwind) 231 Eyck, Barthélemy d’ 119 Eylau, battle zone 220 Ezcaray, wool production 234 Èze 64 Faaborg 272 Faesulae 66 Fagaras 185 Fahlström, Öiyvind 273 Faico, gold 207 Faience, 23, 32, 33, 39, 75, 177 Faifo 206 Failaka 40, 41, 42, 43 Faiyum 38, 68, 69, 74, 77 Graeco-Roman 75 pottery 36, 37 tiraz 129 Falaise 110 Falerio 66 Falisci peoples 65 Falkland 154 Falkland Palace 162 Falls of Tummel 226 Falun 108, 272 Familistère (housing) 221 Fangel Torp, figurines 31 Fanzolo 181 Far East 85 Farafra Oasis 38, 74 Faras 72 Fardal, figurines 31 Faremoutiers 103 Farfa 103 Farfan 101 Farnese family 180, 181 Faro 178 Fars 81, 81 Fatehpur Sikri miniature paintings 198 Mughal imperial city 199 Fath Ali Shah 244 Fathy, Hassan (1900-1989) 290, 290, 291, 291 Fatimid dynasty 125, 132 Fattori, Giovanni (1825-1908) 237 Fauvism 270, 270, 273, 276, 284 Faxian (Buddhist pilgrim) 85 Fayaz-Tepe 303 Kushan art 82 Fécamp 110 stained glass 116 Fellbach-Schmiden, wood carving 58, 59 Felletin, tapestry 154 Fellner, Ferdinand 238, 239 Felsina 64, 65 Fengyuan, 200 Fengzhou, silk production 137 Fenovillar 110 Ferdinand II 114, 155 Ferentillo 110 Ferghana 129, 246, 246 arts and crafts 302 Fernando Po 190 Ferrara 121, 122, 236 academy 182 alabaster 111 antiquities 181 art centre 154, 180, 181 artists’ club 288, 288 Metaphysical painting 270 music 180 patrons and projects 110, 123, 181 printing 180 Ferrières 103 Festival of Britain 277 Fetörákos 185 Fez 126, 188 architecture 124, 124, 125, 189 Attarin Madrasa 124, 125 crafts 240, 291 paper-making 125, 125 polychrome bowl 240 trade centre 240 Fez Wattasid 188 Fezzan 126 Fiji archaeology 92 art production 256, 257 indigenous trade 209, 209 Pacific art 257, 312, 312, 313 pottery 51, 51, 92 World Crafts Council 316 Film-making 251, 304, 304, 309 Finland 156, 157, 160, 222, 222 architecture 272 art in a globalized world 273 artistic movements 220, 221, 273 exchange programme 273 Lutheran 154 museums 272 Neoclassicism 222 pre-Revolutionary to PostSoviet art 275 Swedish-speaking areas 156 Finno Ugrians 70, 109 Finns, pagan 106 Firmum 66 Firuz Shah Tughlug 134 Firuzabad (Gur) 81 minaret 130 Fischer von Erlach, Johann Bernhard 172 Fishbourne 67, 67 Fitna Astonishing Bahram Gur (Zaman) 194 Fiume 185 Flanders 168, 168 style of painting 119 wool imports 116 Flandes, Juan de (d. before 1519) 119, 119 Flatalunga 109 Flavigny 103 Flavium amphitheatre 66 Flemish art 180, 181 Fleury 103 Anglo-Saxon artists 105 Flint 97, 112 Floreffe 168 Florence 102 archbishopric 104 architecture 110, 114, 115, 120-121, 122, 180 art academy 186, 187 art centre 154, 236 art collection 172, 182, 186, 282 artists’ club 288, 288 artists’ travels 119, 187 Counter-Reformation 180 First National Exhibition (1861) 237 Giotto’s work 120 industrial 220 library 181 Macchiaioli group 236, 237 manuscript production 114 metalwork 109, 114 Metaphysical painting 270 monuments 182 music 180 nationalistic site 237 patrons and projects 121, 122, 123, 180, 181 trading centre 122 treatises/academies 180 university 120 Florence (USA) 97 Florentia 66 Flores 142, 143, 206, 254, 310 Bronze Age 90 Flötner, Peter (d.1546) 170, 171 Fluxus movement 270, 281 Foa Island, Lapita pottery 51 Fogaras 185 Fogliano, Guidoriccio da 121 Foix, panel painting 118 Fojinho, megalithic art 29 Folsom 96 Fontaine-l’Evêque 168 Fontainebleau 20, 21, 21 art centre 154, 175, 177, 285 court centre 154, 174, 174 Romantic site 220 urban development 186 Fontana, Lucio (1899-1968) 289 Fontanet 19 Fontao, megalithic art 29 Fontevrault 110 Foochow 250 Ford Motor Company 263, 263 Forles, megalithic art 29 Foro Claudio 110 Fort Ancient 55, 96, 97 Fort Carlton 212 Fort Center 55 Fort Clatson 212 Fort Colville 212 Fort Edmonton 212 Fort James 191 Fort Lauderdale 264 Fort McKenzie 212 Fort Napoléon, art school 241 Fort Nez Percé 212 Fort Shevchenko 246 Fort Union 212 Fort Vancouver 212 Fort William 212 Fort Worth 264 Fortat 81 Fortuny, Mariano (1838-74) 234 Forum Iulii 66 Fossascesia 110 Fossils, hominids 16 Fotuna, Lapita pottery 51 Fougères, château 116 Foumban, art production 295 Fouquet (jewellery designer) 233 Fourche Maliners 55 Fourknocks, megalithic art 29 Fowey 163 Fragtrup 31 France 16, 17-19, 20-21, 174-175, 176-177, 232-233, 284-285 culture art and artists 285 art centre 110, 232 artistic florescence 174, 174, 175, 177 artistic influence 111, 157, 232 Byzantine art 107 château 116, 118, 174, 174, 177 Gothic churches 110 politics borders 120, 122 civil wars 175, 176 colonization 34 Edict of Nantes 176 Islamic 111 North African colonies 290-291 regionalism 232 reunification 174 Revolution 165, 177, 232 settlements in Africa 191, 243 state centralization 176 Wars of Religion 154 trade 167, 169 in Asia 192 railways 232 World Crafts Council 316 Francesca, Piero della 122 Francis I 174-175 Cellini salt cellar 155 Franciscan order 114, 120, 121, 139, 152 Francistown, museum 296 Franconia 170 Frankfort, Indiana 212 Frankfurt 104, 112, 176, 220 ecclesiastical centre 116 National Socialism 281 Frankfurt am Main 230 academy 172 arts centre 230 book production 170 Frankfurt an der Oder 172 Franks, kingdom 70, 70, 102, 104, 105 Franzensbad 238 Frascati 181 Frederick II of Prussia 113, 115, 172 Fredericksburg (USA), Civil War site 214 Frederiksborg palace 156, 157, 157, 187 Frederikssund 272 Free State, Basotho Cultural Village 297 Freetown, Ode-lay masks 295 Freiburg 170, 171 ecclesiastical centre 116 stained-glass 116 wood sculpture 116 Fremont tradition 96 French West Africa 290 Frescoes/murals/wall paintings Aegean 32 Byzantine 106, 184 Central Asia 83 China 136 Egypt 77 European 108, 110 France 175, 233 Franciscan 120 German 173, 237 Graeco-Roman 67 Hellenstic 62-3 Italian 180, 182, 237 Minoan 33 Muralism 266, 267, 268 Mycenaean 33 Nile Valley 39 Northern Europe 116 Norway 273 Odyssey 67 Rome 115 Southern Europe 118 and ‘total artwork’ 173 Freud, Lucian (1922-) 277 Friedersbach, stained glass 110, 116 Friedrich, Caspar David (1774- 1840) 223 Frisians 102 INDEX 335 auctioneers 316 museum 298 painting/printing 250 Hong Se-sop (1832-84) 253 Hongshan archaeology 307 culture 46, 46, 47 Hongzhou, kiln site 136, 137 Honhot, museum 298 Honiara, museums 312 Honnecourt 112 Honnecourt, Villard de 112 Honolulu, Pacific art 257, 312, 313 Honshu 48, 49, 49, 88, 88, 140, 141, 204, 205, 205, 252 Honthorst, Gerrit von (1592-1656) 156 Hooghly 207 Hooper Bay 96 Hopewell 55, 97 Hopewell peoples 55, 55, 97, 97 Horikoshi 89 Horinouchi 49 Hormuz 129 Seljuk 130 trade centre 131 Hormuz Island, trading port 192 Horoztepe 40 Horta, Victor 221, 228, 229 Horus, temple at Edfu 75 Horyu-ji 141 Hosios 106 Hotel van Eetvelde, Brussels 297 Houbice, wall painting 116 Houma 86 archaeology 307 House (Whiteread) 277 Houses of Parliament see Palace of Westminster Houston 264 Hove (Jutland) 31 Howard Lake 55 Hoxne, pepper-pot 70, 71 Hradec, wall painting 116 Hromkla 106 Huaca de la Luna 57 Huaca del Loro 101 Huaca del Sol 53, 57 Huaca el Dragón 101 Huaca Prieta, textiles 27 Huaizhou, silk production 136 Huamelupan 54 Huang Binhong (1865-1955) 306 Huánuco Pampa 100 Huánuco Picchu 100 Huari (Wuari) 57, 57, 101 empire 100-101, 101 Huarpa 57 culture 57 Hudson River School of painters 212, 213 Hué arts and crafts 310 historical site 254 Hue, museum 298 Huelva, ecclesiastical centre 118 Huerta, Juan de la 119 Huesca 110, 114 Huetamo 54, 54 Huexotla 98 Huff Village 96 Huguenot emigration 176, 177 Huixian, early urbanism 25 Huizhou, paper production 136 Hull 109, 112, 163 alabaster 116 Hultén, Pontus 273 Humanism 120, 122, 122, 123 Renaissance 163 Humayun, emperor 198, 199 Humboldt, Alexander von 218, 219 Humboldt Bay 92, 93 Humboldt Cave 96 Humersiut 96 Humlebæk 273 Humor 185 Huna dynasty 85 Hunan 250 paper production 136 Hungary architecture 238, 282 borders 120, 122, 123 Byzantine art 106 cultural influences 184-5 dependencies 238 diaspora of artists 283 Jászó monastery 185 Latin rite 106 religion 104, 105, 154 religious architecture 185 Renaissance art 185 trade and culture 195 World Crafts Council 316 Hunnam-ni 49 Hunstanton 276 Hunyuan, kiln site 136 Hunza-Haldeikish 83 Hupa-iya 56, 56 Hupo-ri 49 Hurez 185 Hurmizd Ardashir 81 Husaby 108 Husain, Maqbool Fida (1915-) 305, 305 Huskapura, Buddhist/Kushan art 83 Hussite, attitudes to art 154 Huxian 307 Huym St Hubert 110 Huyssens, Peter (1577-1637) 168 Hwangsae 89 Hwangsong-ni 49 Hyderabad 207 architecture 248 museum 298, 304 palace 198 textiles 304 Hyppolite, Hector (1894-1948) 267 Hyrcania 62, 80, 81 Ialysos 33 Iaroshenko, Nikolay (1846-98) 224 IASPIS studio programme 273 Iasus 33 Ibadan 190 Iberia 58, 64, 70, 80, 81 artworks 178, 287 copper sources 30, 30 Islamic influence 119 late Roman Art 71 major art collection 234 megalithic tombs 29 painters’ travels 286 secular patronage 119 settlements 64-65 South Netherlands trade 168 Iberians 34, 34, 35 Ibiza 34 Ibn Battuta, route of 127 Ibn Khaldun (chronicler) 126 Ice Age 12, 16-17, 16-17, 18-19, 18-19, 20, 24-25 Iceland, Christendom 105 Ichang 250 Iconium 106, 107, 128 Iconoclast controversy 106 Icons, Byzantine 106, 106, 184 Ictinus (architect) 61 Idrisids 124, 129 Ife archaeology 294 cultural centre 295 Iga, pottery 140 Igala 190 Igbo 126 Igbo Ukwu 126, 126, 190 Igluligardjuk 96 Ignatiev Cave 18 Ignatius of Loyola 168 Ikaruga, palace site 89 Ikawazu 49 Ikegami-Sone 88 Ikkeri 198 Ikot, arts and crafts 294 Il Gesù, Rome 158 Ile Ife 126, 126, 127 Ile Maré, Lapita pottery 51 Ilhuatzio 98 Iliad 76 Ilidze 238 Ilkhanate 131, 131 Illesca, castle 118 Illutalik 96 Illyrians 65 Illyricum 66 Ilorin 190 Imakumano 89 Imbul-li 49 Immendorf, Jörg 281 Imperial Academy of Fine Arts, Istanbul 245 Impressionism/Post- 211, 216, 225, 228, 231, 232, 233, 233, 259, 276, 276, 283, 288 Inca Cueva 20 Inca empire 100, 101 culture 95, 101 indigenous culture 152 shirt 101 Inch’on 308 Independence 212 Independent Group 277 India 44-45, 63, 79, 84, 85, 134- 135, 248-249, 304-305 culture 20th century 304 archaeology 84, 85 architecture 248, 304 art schools 248, 249 art societies 249 artistic influence 12, 140, 140, 208, 248-249, 304 Bengal School movement 304 early historic period 84 East India Company 248- 249 exotic products 68, 69 folk/native art 304, 304 miniature painting 248, 304 monumental art 134 town-planning 304 politics British government 248-249 emperors 52 major dynasties 84, 85, 134 Persian invasion 194 religion, temple kingdoms 134, 134 trade export products 248 Roman Empire 69, 70 routes 44, 84, 85, 134, 207 Southeast Asia 91, 91 World Crafts Council 316 Indianapolis 212, 262, 262 Indo-Greek dynasty 84 Indo-Pacific 50, 51 Indochina 254, see also Vietnam, Laos, Cambodia Indonesia 11, 12, 50, 50, 51, 53, 95, 146 art schools/museums 298 arts and crafts 310 Catholicism 207 Dong Son culture 90 independence 278 World Crafts Council 316 Indraprastha, archaeology 84 Indrapura 206 Indus civilization 44-45, 45 early urbanism 25 Industrial Revolution 244 Inegol 131 Ingaladdi, rock art 50 Ingelheim 102 palace complex 104 Inglefield Land 96 Ingobe Ilede 127 Ingres, Jean-Auguste-Dominique (1780-1867) 236 Inhambane 191 Inlay, Mesopotamian 41 Innsbruck 154, 238 bronze casting 170 castle 116 Institute of Ethiopian Studies 127 Interamnia 66 Inuit culture 11, 53, 96, 149, 260 Inussul 96 Inuyama 140 Inverary 163, 164 Inverness 163 Ioannina 283 Iol 64 Iolkos 33 Iomnium 76 Iona 103 Ionia 34, 35 Ionic order 35 Iowa City 262, 263 Ipec 195 Ipiutak peoples 53 Ipswich 164 Iquique 218, 219 Irakleion, pottery 283 Iran 40, 40, 41, 43, 192, 300 art schools/museums 298 artistic influence 130 calligraphic cast bronze 298 calligraphy 299, 301 carpet-making 301 cultural programmes 300 Parthian expansion 80 Peacock Throne 193 Saqqakhana school 301 Seljuk Turks 131 trade 84, 131 World Crafts Council 316 Iran-Iraq war 300 Iraq 40 art schools/museums 298 British Mandate 300 fine arts 300, 301 Ireland artistic centres 164 Catholic 154 Celtic art 59 copper sources 30, 30 major country houses 164 World Crafts Council 316 Iria 32 Irian Jaya, Pacific art 312, 313 Irish 70 kingdoms 102 Irkutsk 224 museum 298 Iron see metalwork Iron Age 47, 58-59 Iron Gates, Thraco-Getic hoard 58 Isaacz, Pieter (1569-1625) 156 Ise 140 Isfahan 128, 129, 131, 132, 133, 195, 196 architecture 192 carpet trade 194, 244, 301 courtly art 192 Courtyard of the Congregational Mosque 131 map of capital 194 minarets 130 museum 298 printing 192, 194 Safavid capital 195 traditional arts 301, 301 Ishtar, goddess 41 Isin 42, 42 Isis, god 75 Isla Mujeres 98 Islam 94 Christian invasions 111, 130 conquests Asia 192, 193 in Central Asia 132 Eastern Europe 282 Levant 128, 130 Muslim battles 102 in North Africa 124, 125 in SE Europe 184, 185 Southeast Asia 142, 143, 143, 206, 207, 254 Sub-Saharan Africa 127, 190, 190, 191, 242, 242, 243 Umayyad Syria 128 West Africa 294 Western 124, 125 West Asia 128-129, 130 culture architecture 135, 136, 193, 241 attitudes to art 132, 154 and Byzantium 106 cultural influence 11, 12, 111, 126, 190-191 illuminated book 103 important schools 188, 240 khanaqahs 131 madrasas 125, 130, 131, 133, 196, 197, 302 Maliki school 125 Muslim dynasties 129 sects Shi’i 194-195, 197 Sufi brotherhood 196, 197 Sunni 195, 197 trade, routes in Asia 192 see also Minarets; Mosques Islamabad museum 298 National Art Society 304 Islands of Sun and Moon 100 Isle of Pines, Lapita pottery 51 Isle Royal 96 Isma’il (statesman) 241 Isnik 194 Isong-sansong 89 Israel architecture 300 art schools/museums 298 Ice Age 18 N. African craftsmen 291 World Crafts Council 316 Israëls Isaac (1865-1934) 228, 229 Jozef (1824-1911) 228 Issus 78 Issy-les-Moulineaux 285 Istakhr 129 Istanbul 224, 240 Academy of Fine Arts 298, 301 art centre 244, 301, 301 art event 316 fine arts 300 illegal antiquities 245 museums 298 Ottoman capital 194-195, 195, 244 railway connections 245 tourist souvenirs 245 traditional arts 301 Istrus 62 Greek colony 34, 58 Isturitz 17 Isuritz 19 Ita Yemoo 126 Itacoatiara 56, 56, 100 Italia 69 Italica 66, 68 Italy 21, 34, 65, 114, 120-121, 180- 183, 236-237, 288-289 culture academic system 182, 182, 236, 237 ancient sites 182, 183 art collections 182, 183 art and Fascism 288 art forms 65, 155 artistic centres 180, 182, 236 cultural influence 13, 121, 186, 188, 236, 290 excavations 182 late Roman Art 71 modern movement 288 museums 182 patrons and projects95 121, 123, 181, 236 universities 120 politics city states 64, 120 Fascism 260, 288 Garibaldi, Nationalism and the Macchiaioli 237 and Napoleon 220 Norman incursions 110 North African colonies 290-291 political divisions 182 Roman empire collapse 70 Unification 237, 237 religion, Catholicism 154 trade and culture 120, 122, 180 medieval 114 North Netherlands 167 travel and tourism 182 Itazuke 88 Ithaca, USA 264 Ithaka 33 Ito 88 Ittagi, diamonds 134 Itztepetl 54 Ivan III 160 Ivan IV (the Terrible) 155, 160-161 Ivanov, Aleksandr 224 Ivory countries Abbasid trade 129 Achaemenid 78 African 37, 116, 126, 168, 189, 190, 243 Belgian Congo 221 Burma 255 Central Asia 83 Eastern Mediterranean 32, 33, 63 European centres 109, 112 India 83, 84, 84, 85 Maghreb 124, 125 North Africa 76, 76, 124, 125 North America 55, 148 Northern Europe 116 Pacific 257 Roman trade 69 in Russia 224, 224 South Netherlands 169 Southern Europe 115 West Asia 43, 43 general Aegean statuette 33 and bone 224 court patronage 105 diptych-leaves 71 elephant 71 mammoth 16 St Gall abbey 105 toggles 204, 205 walrus 53 Ivory Coast 191 arts and crafts 294 Ivrea, architecture 288 Ivry la Bataille 110 Ixtían del Rio 54 Iyatayet 55, 96 Izapa 54 Izmir 130 Izmit 130 Iznik 130, 131, 195, 195 Izumo 89 Jabal Nafusah 188, 189 Jabal Says 128 Jabbeke, museum 279 Jaca 110 Jackson Vaughan 96 Jade see stone Jadraque 234 Jaén 125 Jaffa 130, 195 Jaffé, Hans (art historian) 278, 279 Jaffna 198 Jagatu, inscriptions 83 Jaggayyapeta, stupa 85 Jagiellonian dynasty 158 Jago, temple 142 Jahan (Shah) 199 Jaina 98 Jainism 84, 85, 134, 249 Jaipur carpets 304 miniature paintings 198, 304 museum 298, 304 pottery 249 stone carving 248 Jaisalmer, palace 198 Jakarta art school 298 church 206 furniture 310 museum 298 Jaketown 55, 96 Jalalabad 198 site of hoard 82 Jalieza 98 Jam, minaret 132 Jamaica INDEX 334 Grand Tour 164, 182, 183, 187, 231 Grandmother (O Yun) 309 Grandson 112 Granicus 78 Granite 38, 38 Granja de Toninuelo, megalithic art 29 Grant, Duncan 276 Graphic Arts 269 Grasmere 164 Grathang, art centre Grave Creek Mound 26, 55, 97 Grave-goods 24, 31, 40, 41, 44, 58 Graves, Michael 265 Gravettian period 17 Graz 154, 184 art centre 154, 186 industrial 220 memorial 281 stained glass 110, 116 town-planning 238 Great Fire of London 162-3, 164 Great Hunt mosaic 69 Great Kabylia, pottery 188 Great Malvern, stained glass 116 Great Northern War 157, 158 Great Orme, copper 30, 31 Great Ryzhanovka, Scythian burials 58 Great Serpent Mound 97 Great Zimbabwe 95, 126, 127 Greece culture artistic patronage 60 artistic/cultural influence 12, 23, 34-35, 60, 64-66, 66, 75 diaspora of artists 283 frescoes 33 Helllenstic period 62-63, 62-63, 64 indigenous style 282 late Roman Art 71 major arts 35, 35 marble quarries 69 modernist tendencies 283 Mycenaean pottery 32 palace sites 32, 33 silk industry 107 politics colonies 58 Iron Age 58 looting by Rome 53, 66 nationalism and neovernacularism 239 Roman empire collapse 70 and West Asia 80 and Western Mediterranean 64-65 religion, Christian territory 130 trade 32, 34, 84 World Crafts Council 316 Greek Slave (Powers) 213 Greenland archaeological sites 96 Christendom 105 Ice Age 17 Gregorian, Marcos 301 Grenoble 102, 285 Gresik 143, 310 Grevensvaenge 31 Greywacke 38 Grez 232, 233 Grid designs 20, 21 Grinagara, temple 134 Gris, Juan (1887-1927) 284, 287 Grizzly bear teeth 97 Grodno 158, 159 Grodzisk Wielkopolski 159 Groningen 228, 229 architecture 279 Groom with Horse and Carriage (Amir) 249 Gropius, Walter (1883-1969) 231, 280 Gross-Grönau 109 Grosswardein 238 Grosz, George (1893-1959) 280 Grotte Chauvet 17, 17 Grotte Cosquer 17, 17, 19 Grotte des Bernous 17 Grozny, carpet-making centre 244 Grumath 104 Grundestrup, wild boar 59 Grünewald, Isaac 272 Grupo Neoconcreta 269 Gu Kaizhi (344-406) 87 Gua Gajah, temple 142 Gua Harimau, pottery 50 Gua Lawa 50 Guadalajara 110, 154 castle 118 Primitivism 216 wool production 234 Guadalcanal 50 Guadalquivir 19 Guadalupe, ecclesiastical centre 118 Guam 145, 312 Guan Daosheng (1262-1319) 139 Guanajuato 266 Primitivism 216, 217 Guangyuan, religious art 136 Guangzhou 46, 86, 87, 136, 192, 200 archaeology 306, 307 kiln site 138, 202 museums 298, 307 painting/printing 250 Guar, mosque 134 Guaraní 100 Guardi, Francesco 183 Guarini, Guarino 173 Guarita phase 100 Guasare 56 Guascalla 180 Guastalla 181 Guatemala 151, 216, 216, 266 Guatemala City 266 Guayabo 98 Guayaquil 218 Gubbio 121 court 122, 123 Gudea 41 Gudimallam, archaeology 84 Guernica, air raid 286 Guernica (Picasso) 271, 287 Guggenheim, Solomon R. 264 Guiana 218, 219 Guiana Highlands 56, 100, 218 Guiengola 98 Guilin 200, 202, 250, 306, 307 Guimaraes 154 Guimard, Hector 221 Guimard (designer) 232 Guinea, World Crafts Council 316 Guinea Bissau arts and crafts 294 World Crafts Council 316 Guiry, megalithic art 29 Guise, Familistère project 220, 221 Guiyang 200, 306 museum 307 Guizhou 250 Gulbarga 198 mosque 134 Guldhoj 31 Gulf of Finland 160, 161 Gulf states 301 Gullakra Mosse 31 Gulpaygan, mosque 130 Gum Tree Valley 18 Gundeshapur 81 Gundestrup cauldron 58 Dacian phalerae 58 Gunther Island 96 Gunugu 66 Gunung Kawi, temple 142 Gupta empire 85, 85 Gur (Firuzabad) 81 Gur-i Mir, Timur’s tomb 247 Güre 78 Gurgan 83 ceramics 130, 131 Gurk, wall painting 116 Guruve, sculpture community 296 Gustav II Adolf 156 Gustav III 156, 157 Gustav Vasa, king 156 Güstrow 170 Gutiérrez Soto, L. 287 Guttuso, Renato (1912-87) 289 Guwahati, museum 298 Gwadar 84 Gwalior museum 298 temple 134, 198 Gwathmey, Charles (1938-) 265 Gwazhili 191 Gwozdziec 158 Gyantse, art centre, 200 Gyaraspur, temple 134 Gyartse 302 Gyokudo, Uragami 252 Gyor 185 Gypsum Cave 96 Gyulafehérvär 185 Ha Lung, pottery 50 Ha’apai Islands, Lapita pottery 51 Haarlem 154, 166, 166 Teyler museum 229 Habsburg 108 Habsburg dynasty 194-195, 282 Habsburg empire 159, 182 -Valois wars 180 influence and patronage 178- 179, 187 palaces 178 possessions 160, 166, 168-169, 172, 173, 180, 184, 185, 185 Habuba, early urbanism 25 Hachinohe 308 Hachon-ni 88 Hacimusalar 78 Hadda archaeology 85, 303 Kushan art 82 Hadrian 68, 103 Hadrian’s Wall 69 Hadrumetum 64, 124 Hae’in-sa 89 Hafar 128 Hafnarfjördhur 272 Hafsid dynasty 125, 190 Hagen 230 Hagenau (Haguenau) 172 Haidarabad, mosque 134 Hainan 206 Hainault 117, 168, 168 Haithabu 102 Haiti 267 art movement 216 independence 216 Hajiabad 131 Hakata 140, 141, 204 Halberstadt 108 Halicarnassus 62, 78 Halifax (UK), art movement 226 Halifax (USA) 212, 264 Halikarnassos, town-planning 60, 61 Halle 154, 172 ecclesiastical centre 116 Hallstatt, Scythian objects 58, 58 Halmahera 50, 206, 254 boatbuilding 310 trade 207 Halmstad 272 Hama 71, 128 Hamadan 80, 128, 132, 300 Ilkhanid monuments 131 Hamanasuno 49 Hamar 108 Hamath 43 Hamburg 103, 109, 156, 172, 222 archbishopric 104 artistic cross-currents 154, 157, 173 arts centre 230 auction houses 187, 316, 316, 317 copper exports 168 Degenerate Art venue 281 Holocaust memorial 281 manuscript painting 112 metalwork 108, 170 public spirit 230 shipyard 220 South Netherlands trade 169 wood sculpture 116 Hamdi, Osman 245, 301 Hämeenlinna 272 Hamess 55 Hami 83, 132, 196, 247, 302 Hamilton, indigenous art 315 Hammamiya, pottery 36 Hammurabi Code of 42 king 42 Hamozia 134 Hampi palace 198 temple 134 Hampton Court Palace 163 Hamwih 102, 102 Han Dynasty 52, 81, 86, 87, 88, 91, 94 Hang Gon bronze 51 pottery 50 Sa Huynh site 90 Hangzhou 46, 136 art schools 299, 306 gardens 200, 202 kiln site 136, 137 museum 307 printing/painting 138, 192, 200, 202 route to west China 306 silk production 200, 250 Hanhoi, museum 298 Hankar, Paul 229 Hankou 250 Hannibal 65 Hanoi 138 arts and crafts 310 ceramics 207 stone carving 254 Hanover 222 art review magazine 282 arts centre 230, 270, 282 Dada site 280 industrial 220 National Socialism 281 united with Great Britain 173 Hans Empire 89 Hansan 89 Hanseatic League 113, 115, 160 Hansen, Christian Frederik 157 Hanzhou, silk production 137 Hapsong-ni 88 Haranojo 89 Harappa 22, 25, 45 Harappan civilization 44, 44, 45 Harare art school 296 tourist/modern art 292, 293 traditional arts 292, 296, 296 Harbin 224, 306 Hardegg 112 Hardwick Hall 162 Hariharpur, textiles 198 Harlech 112 Harlem Renaissance 263 Harput 130 Harran 80, 128 Harris 96 Harsaagiri 134 Harsha, temple 134 Hartford 212 Harvan 85 Hasanlu 42, 43, 43, 78 Hasselt, garden 279 Hastinapura, archaeology 84 Hatien 206 Hatra 68, 80, 81 Hatshepsut, temple 39 Hatti 42 Hattushash 42 Hausa States 190 Haussmann, Baron 233, 233 Hauvillers 103 Havana 55 art event 317 art movement 217, 266 Biennial 316, 316 Haverdfordwest 163 Haviland, John 213 Hawaii 93, 95, 144-145, 263 Cook’s voyages 208, 209 Kukailimoku 144 Pacific art 312, 313 Hawaiian Islands 92, 93 Hawaiian Islands 92, art production 256 Hawara 75 monastery 77 textiles 77 Hazor 43 Heaphy, Charles (1820-81) 258 Hearne, Thomas 165 Heartfield, John (1891-1968) 280, 281 Hebe/Lughuru 191 Hecatompylos 62, 80 Hedeby 102 Hedin, Sven 247, 247 Heeze, art colony 228, 228 Hefei, museum 307 Heiankyo 141 Heidelberg 170 art collection 172 artistic centre 154, 172 Castle 171 panel painting 116 stone carving 59 Heidelberg (Australia) 259, 259, 259 Heijokyo 141 Heilbronn, ecclesiastical centre 116 Heiligencreuz, stained glass 110, 116 Heiligenkreuz 112 Hejaz 128 Helden, Dacian phalerae 58 Helena Crossing 55 Heliopolis, early urbanism 25 Helios statue 63 Hellenistic empires 62-3, 62-3 culture 66-7 Hellner, Hermann 238, 239 Helmarshausen 108 Helsingborg 272, 273 Helsingfors 157, 220, 222, 224 Helsingor 154, 157 wall painting 116 Helsinki 160, 220, 222 Art Nouveau 272 arts centre 272, 273 Neoclassicism 222 NIFCA programme 273 Heluodan 91, 91 Hemavati, temple 134 Hemeroscopeum 64 Hemudu, archaeology 306, 307 Hemudua culture 46 Henley-on-Thames 276 Henry III 112 Henry VI, emperor 110 Henry VIII 162, 163, 171 Hephthalite dynasty 85 Hepworth, Barbara 277 Heraclea 62, 65 Heraclea Minoa 64 Heraclea Pontica 66 Herakleopolis Magna 75, 77 Herastrau, Dacian phalerae 58 Herat 81, 82, 84, 129, 132, 246 manuscripts 133, 196, 197 metalwork 130, 131, 132 shrine complex 134, 196 Herculaneum 64, 66, 67, 182, 183 Hereford 108 Herkulesfurdo 238 Hermannsburg, indigenous art 314, 315 Hermannstadt 238 Hermonthis 77 Hermopolis Magna 74, 76 Hermuz 195 Herning 272 Herod the Great 67 Herodium 67 Heron, Patrick 277 Hersfeld 103, 108 Herstal 104 Herstelle 104 Hertogenbosch 228, 229, 279 Herzogenburg, stained glass 110, 116 Hesle, Arts and Crafts 226 Hesse 170, 172 Hexham 102, 103 Hezhongfu, silk production 137 Hibis 38, 74 Hidaka 88 Hie 89 Hieraconpolis, early urbanism 25 Hierakonpolis 37, 38 Hierapolis 128 Hieroglyphs see Scripts Higashi-Kushiro 49 High Atlas 189 Hikone 205 Hildesheim 67 artistic centre 108, 109 Hillerød 157 Hilliard, Nicholas (d.1619) 163 Hiltunen, Eila 273 Hilversum, architecture 278, 279 Himeji 204, 205 castle 205 Himera 64 Hinduism 85, 94, 134, 142, 260 in Asia 192, 193 in Central Asia 83 rise of Indianized states 142 Southeast Asia 91, 207 temple sites 134 Hine, Lewis 263 Hippo Regius 76, 124 Hiraizumi 140, 141 Hirlau 185 Hiroshige, Ando (1797-1858) 252, 253 Hiroshima 204, 308 Hirsau 108, 108 Hirschlanden, stone carving 59 Hirst, Damien 277 Hisar 198 Hisare, mosque 134 Hispaniola 99 Hispano-Moresque tradition 188 Hitachi 308 Hittite empire 32, 42 Hjertén, Sigrid 272 Hlabisa, mission school 296 Ho Chi Minh City arts and crafts 310 museum 298 Hoabinhian culture 51 Hobart 258, 258, 259 Höch, Hannah 280 Hochdorf, Dacian phalerae 58 Hocheleve 104 Hochob 98 Hockwold 67 Hoernlein, A. F. R. 247 Hogarth, William (1697-1764) 164, 165 Hoggar 73, 126 Hogok-dong 49 Hogup Cave 96 Hohemichele, Dacian phalerae 58 Hohensburg 104 Hohlenstein-Stadel 16 ivory carvings 17 Hohokam culture 96, 97 Hoi An 206 Hokkaido 49, 88, 252, 308 Hokusai, Katsushika (1760-1849) 252, 253 Holbein the Younger, Hans (1497/8-1543) 162, 163, 171 Holiday on the Kolkhoz (Gerasimov) 275 Holland 173 trade in Asia 192 Hollar, Wenceslaus (1607-77) 162 Hollensted 104 Hollywood 96 Holstein 170 Holt, Nancy 265 Holy Land artistic influence 111 see also Crusades Holy Roman Empire 158, 168 artistic cross-currents 154 borders 108, 110, 114, 116, 118, 120, 122, 170, 172, 173, 180, 184, 185, 186 Byzantine art 106 German lands 170, 172 Holzgerlingen, stone carving 59 Homer 31 Homs 128, 130 Honco Pampa 101 Honduras, independence 216, 216, 266 Høng 31 Hong Kong 250, 254, 306, 307 INDEX 337 Khorezm Province 303 Khorsabad, excavations 245 Khosrow II 81, 81 Khotan 87, 132, 133, 196, 196 archaeological 83, 247 Buddhist/Kushan art 83 jade 200, 202, 250, 303 Khudzhand, museum 298 Khummi 18 Khurasan 128, 129, 197 Khurga, pottery 249 Khusrawgird, minaret 130 Khwarazmshahs 132 Khwarizm 81 Khyber Pass 80, 81 Kibi 89 Kidal, temple 142 Kidderminster 163, 164 Kiejdany 158 Kiel 230, 281 Kielce 159 Kiev 225 architecture 160, 283 art colony 282 art movements 275 art review magazine 282 art studio 224, 224, 282 Byzantine 106, 107, 107 churches 158 Constructivism 283 Kiliman 190 Killarney 164 art movement 226 Kilmalcolm 220 Kiltierney, megalithic art 29 Kilwa 190, 191, 292 trading post 242 Kilwa Kisiwani 127 Kimberley Plateau 18 indigenous art 314, 315 rock art 50 Kimberley (South Africa), art galleries 296 Kinai region 89 Kinetic art 269 Kingdom of Flora (Poussin) 175 Kingman, Eduardo 268 King’s Lynn 109 Kings Mound 97 King’s Mtn, megalithic art 29 Kingswear 163 Kinsei 49, 88 Kinshasa tourism 292 tourist/modern art 292, 293 traditional arts 292 Kiprensky, Orest 224 Kiradu, temple 134 Kirat, minaret 130 Kiratakupa, temple 134 Kirchner, Ernst Ludwig (1880- 1938) 280 Kiribati 312 Kirkeby, Per 273 Kirman 129, 131 minaret 130 Kirsehir 130, 244 mosque 130, 131 Kiruna 272 Kiseiba, pottery 36 Kish 40, 41, 42 early urbanism 25 Kishengarh, miniature paintings 198 Kishinev 185 Judaism 184 Kissengen 104 Kissi 190 Kisumu, tourist/modern art 293 Kitadeni 89 Kitakyushu 308 Kitamura 49 Kitao Musanobu (print designer) 205 Kitsunezuka 89 Kiukiang 250 Kiyonaga (print designer) 205 Kizil Arvat 246 Kjarvalsstadir 272 Klagenfurt 154, 238 Klaipéda 272 Klausenburg 238 Klaxon (review) 268 Klee, Paul (1879-1940) 281 Klein, Yves (1928-62) 285 Klejdany 158 Klementz, Dmitry 247, 247 Klenze, Leo von 173 Klerk, M de 278 Klimontów 159 Klimt, Gustav 280 Klint, Hilma af (1862-1944) 272 Klosterneuberg, stained glass 110, 116 Klosterneuburg, metalwork 108, 112 Knapp Mounds 97 Kneller, Godfrey 165 Knidos, shrine 60 Knight 55 Knockmany, megalithic art 29 Knossos 32, 33, 35 Knowth 29 Ko Samui, tourism 310 Kobadian, Oxus treasure 82 Kobe 308 Kocho, manuscripts 83 Kock 159 Koden 159 Kodiak 55 Kodiak Island 96 Koeth 104 Koguryo state 89, 89 Kojindani 88, 88 Kok Phanom Di, pottery 50 Kok-tepe 303 Kokand 83, 196, 246, 246 khanate 246, 246 Kokoschka, Oskar 280, 281 Koksijde-Oostduinkerke 279 Kolding 273 Kolhapur architecture 249 coins 84 sculpture 85 Kolomoki 55, 97 Kolonna 33 Kolozsvár 184, 185 Kom Ombo 74, 74, 128 Koma 190 archaeology 294 Komakino 48, 49 Kommos 32, 33 Konarka historic site 248 temple 134 Konda Culture 21 Kondapur, coins 85 Kong 191 Kongo 127, 190, 190, 191, 191, 243 Kongsted, wall painting 116 Königsberg 156, 157, 158, 222, 230 Konson, post sculptures 292 Konstanz 171 Konya 107, 132, 195, 244 art museum 298 caravanserai 130 mosque 130, 131 Koolhaas, Rem (1944-) 279, 285 Koonalda Cave 16, 18 Kopet Dag 80, 81 Korai 35 Koraichi, Rachid (1947-) 291 Koran 125, 128, 188 Blue 125 Korat 206 ceramics 310 textiles 254 Korea 48-49, 88-89, 95, 140-141, 204-205, 306, 308-309 20th Century 308 agricultural communities 88 art centres 140 artistic influence 204 artistic influences 193 Buddhism 89 cultural influences 46, 140, 141, 204, 309 emergence of elite art 89 forager communities 49 ink painting 309 invasions by China/Japan 192 Iron Age 88, 88 museums 308 rice 53 rock engravings 88 silk 53 tombs and cemeteries 89 trade and culture 192 see also North Korea, South Korea Korean War 308 Korekawa 49, 88 Korovin, Konstantin (1861-1939) 224-225 Korsun 159 Kortrijk 168, 228, 229 Koryo Dynasty 140, 141 Kos 33, 60 Kosambi, trade 134 Koscielec 159 Koshinden 89 Kosipe 50 Köskerbaba Hoyük 78 Kostienki 16 Kostienki Culture 17 Kostroma 160, 224, 225 Kot Diji, early urbanism 25 Kota Bahru, tourism 310 Kotah, miniature paintings 198 Kotlas 224, 225 Kotosh, temple 27 Kounellis, Jannis (1936-) 289 Kourion 32 Kouros dedication 35 Kowno 158 Koy-Krylgan-Kaln 303 inscriptions 83 Koyohan 88 Kozlovsky, Mikhail 161 Kramár, Vincenc 283 Kramskoy, Ivan (1837-87) 224 Kranjska Gora 154 Krasiczyn 159 Krasnovodsk 246 Krasnoyarsk 224 museum 298 Krasnystaw 158 Kratochvile 154 Kremikowszi monastery 185 Kremsmünster, Abbey Treasury 102 Kreuznath 104 Krieghoff, Cornelius 212 Krisel-Jardins, pottery 36 Krishna Govardhana 91 Kriva Palanka 185 Kronborg palace 156, 157 Kronstadt 238 Kroze 158 Krynica 238 Krystynopol 159 Kshvakkus dynasty 85 Ksiaz Wielki 159 Kuaiji 87 Kuala Lumpur 254 museum 298 painting 310 Kuala Terengganu, silverwork 254 Kuba 127, 190, 191 Kubadabad, ceramics 130 Kucha 87, 196, 196, 302 Buddhist documents 247, 247 Buddhist/Kushan art 83 Kudus 206 Kufa 128, 128, 129, 131 Kuffarn, Bronze situlae 58 Kufra 126 Kuh-i Khwaja 81 Kuhpaya, lustre ware 131 Kujong-dong 88 Kuk 50, 50, 92 Kuknaesong 89 Kuksong-dong 49 Kula 244 Kulen, temple 142 Kültepe 32, 40, 42 Kulu, miniature paintings 198 Kumanohara 89 Kumasi, arts and crafts 294, 295 Kumbakonam, temple 134 Kumbi Saleh 126, 126 Kumbum, art centre 200, 202 Kumgang-ni 49 Kumma, fort 37 Kumsong 89 Kunduz 246 site of hoard 82 Kungsan-ni 49 Kunming 86, 200, 202, 250, 306 museum 307 Kunshan, painting 202 Kunstkammern 154, 155, 186 Kurbinovo 106 Kurdish textiles 301 Kurkihar, sculpture 85 Kurlgitavik 96 Kurokawa, Kisho 279 Kurosawa, Akira 309 Kurru 37, 72 Kursk 160, 224 artists’ centre 225 Küs 128 Kusha 132 Kushan dynasty 82, 83, 83, 85, 85 Kushiro 308 Kushka 83, 246 Kutahya 130, 195 Kutai 142, 143 Kutná Hora, ecclesiastical centre 116 Kuujjua River 96 Kuwagaishmo 49 Kuwait 300 fine art 300 museum 298 World Crafts Council 316 Kuybyshevo, arts and crafts 302 Kuyunjik, excavations 245 Kvas 81 Kwangiu 204 Kwangju art event 316 textiles 308 Kwangju-Gun, ceramics 308 Kwararafa 190 KwaZula-Natal, basket-making 296, 297 Kyauks 206 Kyo-dong 49 Kyongiu 141 arts centre 140 Kyongju 89 architecture 89 museum 308 seated Buddha 140 Kyoto 141, 204 arts centre 140, 141, 204, 205, 252, 253, 299 cultural centre 308 imports and exports 205 kiln sites 205 movement of artists 141 Nihonga painting 309 painting guilds 206, 207 Tale of Genji 141 woodblock printing 192, 205 Kyrgyzstan art schools/museums 298 arts and crafts 302 Kythera 32, 32, 33 Kythnos 33 Kyushu 49, 88, 88, 89, 140, 141, 204, 205, 252 Kyzyl 83 La Bâtiaz 112 La Cabada 234 La Cabana 54 La Chaux-de-Fonds, architecture 280 La Colombière 19 La Coruña 178, 234 La Croze à Gontran 17 La Ferrassie 17 La Garma 19 La Granja 179 La Marche 19 La Mojarra 54 La Montaná 54 La Mota 114 La Paz 152, 152, 153, 218, 219, 268 art centre 153 La Pierre Turquaise, megalithic art 29 La Plata 152, 153 La Quemada 98, 98 La Roche-en-Ardenne 168 La Rochelle architecture 177 royal progress 154 La Roda 110 La Serena 218 La Tène Celtic culture 58, 59 metalwork 59 La Vathe 19 La Venta 26, 54, 54 La Villita 98 Laan Spean, pottery 50 Labastide 19 Labattut 17 Labrador 212, 212 Labranda, temple 60 Labraunda 78 Labrouste, Henri (1801-75) 211 Labunie 159 Lace 229 Lacerba (journal) 288, 288 Lachish 32, 78 Lachsh 43 Lacock, art movement 226 Laconia, pottery 60 Lacquerware Anyang tombs 25 archaeological finds 48 Central Asia 302 China 83, 139, 201, 203 Chu state 87 India 304 Japan and Korea 49, 140, 140, 141, 204, 205, 205, 308 Southeast Asia 206, 206, 207, 255, 255, 310, 311 Lad 159 Laddicea 80 Lade 109 Lady Franklin Point 96 Laegeforeningens (housing) 221 Laestrygones of Sicily 67 Laethem-Saint-Martin 228 art colony 228, 228 Lagash 40, 41, 41 early urbanism 25 excavations 245 Lagos, arts and crafts 294, 295, 295 Lagoudera 106 Lahore 132, 133, 196 architecture 249 art centre 304 garden 198 mosque 134, 198 museum 298 trade 134 Laibach 238 Lake Jackson 97 Lakeba Island, Lapita pottery 51 Lakhawar, textiles 198 Lakhundi, temple 134 Lalibela 126, 127, 190 Lalique (designer) 232 Lam, Wilfredo (1902-82) 267 Lamanai 98 Lamar 97 Lambityeco 98 Lamoso, megalithic art 29 Lampang, kiln site 206 Lampsacus 66 Lampung 206 Lamu 127, 292 Lan Chang 206 trade 207 Lanark 164 Lancut 158, 159 Landévennec 103 Landscape gardens 164 Landscape paintings 164, 164, 168 American industrial 263 Australian 258, 259, 259 Barbizon 214 British 226, 226, 277 Chinese 306 Dutch 228 Flemish 180 French 232, 233 Italian 236, 236, 237 Japanese images 252 Mexican 217 Netherlands 167 romanticized 231 Russian 224, 225 South American 219 veduta 236 Landseer, Edwin 226 Landshut 154, 155 ecclesiastical centre 116 Lane, Fitz Hugh 213 Lang Ca, Dong Son culture 90 Lang Shining see Castiglione, Guiseppe Lang Vac, Dong Son culture 90 Langeais 110 Langres 103, 154 ecclesiastical centre 116 Languages African 72, 73, 126 Afrikaans 297 Arabic 124, 125, 132, 240 Aramaic 63, 80 Arawak 56, 99 in Austro-Hungarian empire 239 Austronesian 51 Berber 240 and ethnicity 239 French 177 Greek 63, 64-65, 68, 72 Indo-European 42 Iranian 132 Latin 64-65, 67, 68, 105 linguistic signs 269 Maipuran 56 Melanesia 144 Middle Persian 81 Napatan 37 Parthian 80 Persian 193 Sanskrit 85, 142 Semitic 42 Somali 241 in South-East Europe 184, 239 Swiss 171, 173 Tamil 85 Tuareg 240 Turkic 132 Lantian, archaeology 307 Lanyon, Peter 277 Lanzhou 202, 250, 306, 307 Laon 103, 110, 110, 112 wall painting 116 Laos art schools/museums 298 arts and crafts 310 bronze implements 51 World Crafts Council 316 Lapidary, Russian 16 Lapis lazuli Aegean 32, 33 Afghanistan 36, 41, 44, 45, 53, 69 Akkadian 41, 41 West Asia 42 Lapita culture 23, 50, 51, 51, 51 Lapland 157 Lapps 160 artists’ colony 272 Laredo 178 ecclesiastical centre 118 Laren, art colony 228, 228, 278 Larisa, textiles 283 Larisa am Hermos 78 Larsa 42, 42 Larsson, Carl (1853-1919) 223 Las Cebollas 54 Las Chimeneas 19 Las Heulgas 110 Las Huacas 54, 55 Las Marias 98 Las Mercedes 54, 56, 100 Las Monedas 19 Las Vegas 98 Lascaux 15, 19 Lasdun, Denys 277 Lashio, arts and crafts 310 Lasisi, David 313 Last Judgement (Michelangelo) 180 Last Supper (Leonardo) 123 INDEX 336 art movement 216, 267 gold 99 Jambi 142 Jambukesvara 134 James, Henry 215 James of Aragon, King 114 James VI of Scotland 162 Jammu, miniature painting 198 Janco, Marcel (1895-1984) 283 Janjira 198 Japan 16, 18, 48-49, 88-89, 95, 140- 141, 204-205, 308-309 culture 20th century 308 agricultural communities 88 art forms 140 art schools/museums 298 artistic influence 12, 140, 193, 204, 306, 307, 309 artists’ communities 205 Chinese/Buddhist arts 141 court 140, 141 elite art 89 forager communities 49 heartland 141 Jomon 46 museums 308 Nihonga School 307, 309 tea ceremony 193 politics imperial expansion 298 modernization 252, 252 and North Africa 290 religion Buddhism 89 tombs and cemeteries 89 trade 207, 229 and culture 192 World Crafts Council 316 Jaroslaw 158 Jarrow 102, 103 JASMAX Architects 315 Jasov (Jászó) monastery 185 Jasper 38 Jassy 184, 185 fine art museum 238 Judaism 184 Jászó (Jasov) 185, 185 Jativa, paper-making 125, 125 Jauar 56 Jauari 56 Jaubert, Amedee 244 Jaunpur, mosque 134 Java 206 art schools/museums 298 artistic influence 229 arts and crafts 310 bronze implements 51 Buddhist stupa 142 cult shrines 143 Dong Son culture 90 early settlements 50, 50 Great Mosque of Demak 193 historical sites 254 Ice Age 16 Mataram dynasty 254 rise of Islam 143 temples 142 trade 91, 91, 207 Wayang Kulit puppet 143 Javacheff, Christo (1935-) 285 Jbala tribes 189 Jeanne-Claude (1935-) 285 Jeanneret, Charles see Le Corbusier Jebel Barkal 37, 72 Jebel Moya 72 Jedda 188, 240 Jefferson, President Thomas 213 Jena 281 Jenkins, Anthony 196 Jenne 53, 72, 73, 127, 188, 240 Jenzat, wall painting 118 Jerez 234 Jerf el-Ahmar 20, 21 Jericho 21, 62, 67, 195 Achaemenid ceramics 78 excavations 245 Jerusalem 34, 42, 43, 62, 301 Alexander the Great 78 churches 70 craft centre 291 Crusader control 106, 113, 131 Dome of the Rock 128, 129 fine arts 300 Herod’s temples 67 Holy Sepulchre 70, 81 Islamic architecture 128, 128, 195 late Roman art 71 Latin Christian territory 130 Mamluk monument 131 metalworking 301 Ottoman city 188 and Parthians 80 pilgrimage centre 106, 106, 188, 240 railway connections 245 souvenir trade 244, 245 trading centre 107, 188 unique centre 66 Jesuit order Asian travels 192 centres 158, 168, 181 missions/workshops 153, 153 Jewellery Achaemenid 78 Aegean 33, 33 Berber 291 British centres 164 Central Asian 44, 247 Etruscan 65 European 103 Graeco-Roman 67, 69 Hellenistic 63 Ice Age 16, 16, 18 Indian 84, 85, 134, 248, 249 Italian 65 Kayani crown 244 Maghreb 125 Mesopotamian 41 Mughal 199 Nile Valley 39 North Africa 76 Pacific 92, 93, 256, 313 Southeast Asia 207 techniques beads 48, 57, 92, 190, 211, 242, 243, 243, 313 cloisonné 70 ear ornaments 48, 49, 57 rings 53, 65 workmanship 70 West Africa 294 Jewish art 70-71 migration to Israel 300 N. African craftsmen 291 ritual objects 301 settlements 106 see also Judaism Jiading, painting 202 Jiahu 21 Jiangling 86 archaeology 307 Jiangningfu, paper production 137 Jiangxi, museum 307 Jianyang kiln site 138 printing 200 Jianye 87 Jiaojun 87 Jiashan, painting 202 Jiaxing gardens 200 painting 202 Jiaxingxian 307 Jiayuguan 138 Jiddah, architecture 301 Jiexiu, kiln site 137 Jijiahu 86 Jilin 202, 250, 306 Jimma 191 Jinan 202, 250 museums 307 religious art 137 Jincamocco 101 Jincun 306 Jindrichuv Hradec 154 Jingdezhen ceramics 251 kiln site 137, 138, 193, 200, 202, 202, 250 Ming flask porcelain 200, 202, 203 Jingzhaofu print centre 137 silk production 137 Jingzhen, kiln site 200 Jingzhou 87 Jinhau, kiln site 138 Jinmium, rock art 50, 50 Jinnai 88 figurines 49 Jinzhou 306 Jiujiang 250 Jizak 246, 302, 303 Jizhou 136, 200 kiln site 138 Jizoden 88 Jizozo 89 Jochi (ruler) 196 Jodhpur, miniature paintings 198 Jogjakarta 206 arts and crafts 310 Johannesburg art event 316 art galleries 296 art schools 296, 297 auctioneers 316 Biennial 316 community art centres 297 John the Scot Eriugena 105 Johore 206 Jokkmokk 272 Jolin, Einar 273 Jomon culture 15, 18, 46, 48, 48, 49, 49, 88, 89 Jones, Inigo 162, 162 Jones, Owen 210-211 Jönköping 156, 157, 222, 272, 273 Jordaens, Jacob (1593-1678) 156 Jordan 15 art schools/museums 298 British Mandate 300 fine arts 300, 301 World Crafts Council 316 Joresanko 304 Jos, art centre 295 Jouarre 102, 103 Jourdain, Franz 233 Juanpur, textiles 198 Juba II of Mauretania 67 Jubayri family 197 Judaea 66, 67, 69 and West Asia 80 Judaism 94, 132 in North Africa 124, 188 in SE Europe 184, 184 synagogues 69, 70, 158 Jukkasjarvi 272 Jukun 191 Julianos (banker) 70 Julius Caesar 66, 67, 122 Julius II, pope 180 Jumieges 103, 110 Junagadh 198 coins 84 Juncais, megalithic art 29 Juneau 96 Junim 218 Junnar 198 Junzhou, kiln site 137 Jus 81 Justinian, emperor 70, 70, 71, 71, 76, 77 Jutes, collapse of 70 Jutland amber trade 30, 31 Danish Bronze Age 31 Gundestrup cauldron 58 Juvarra, Felipe 179 Juyan Tombs 87 Jylland 272 Kaakha 246 Kaarta 191 Kabáh 98 Kabi 191 Kabini, Isa 297 Kabuki theatres 204, 205, 308 Kabul 80, 81, 129, 132, 132, 133, 196, 246, 303 ceramics 79 mosque 198 museum 298, 303 Kaempfer, Engelbert 194 Kaesong 140, 141 Kaffa 133 Kagga Kamma, Khoisan art 296 Kagoshima 252 Kahlo, Frida (1907-54) 267 Kahn, Albert 263 Kahn, Louis 299 Kaifeng 138, 200, 202, 250, 306 art collection 137 kiln site 137 Kairoua, manuscripts 125 Kairouan 102, 126, 128, 128 mosque 124, 125 textiles 124, 290 trade centre 124, 188 Kaiseraugst 70, 71 Kaiseri, mosque 130, 131 Kakadu 21 rock art 50, 50 Kakongo 127, 190 Kakovatos 33 Kalabari Ijo masquerade 295 Kalabsha 72, 74, 74 Kalahari Desert 126, 127 Kalahasti 134 Kalanay, Bronze Age 90 Kalanjar, temple 134 Kalasan, temple 142 Kalchayan 303 Kaleb, king 73 Kalevala (Finnish saga) 223 Kalibangan, early urbanism 25 Kalinga dynasty 84 Kalinganagara, temple 134 Kaliningrad 154, 230 Kalinjar, textiles 198 Kalisz 158, 159 Kalkar, ecclesiastical centre 116 Kalmar 112, 154, 157, 272 Kalmyks 160, 161 Kalocsa 185 Kalonga 191 Kalumpang 50 textiles 310 Kamakura 141 lacquerware 140, 204, 205 Kamchatka 161 Kamegaoka 88 Kamezuka 88 Kami 88 Kamien 109 Kamieniec 158 Kamieniec Podolski 159 Kamikuroiwa 18 Kaminaljuyú 54, 54 Kampala tourist/modern art 292, 293 traditional arts 292 Kamphengphet 206 Kampyr-Tepe 303 Kamul 132 Kanauj 198 trade 134 Kanazawa, art and trade 140, 204, 205, 308 Kanchipuram 85, 134 saris 304 Kandahar 79, 80, 129, 133, 196 mosque 134 trade centre 131, 195, 198 Kandinsky, Vasily (1866-1944) 270, 280 Kandrian, Lapita pottery 51 Kandy, temple 198 Kane, Paul 212, 212-213 Kanem 126 Kanem-Bornu 127, 190 Kanesh 40, 42, 42 Kangavar 80, 81 Kangia 96 Kangra, miniature paintings 198 Kanheri, caves 84 Kanishka (Koshan ruler) 83 Kannauj, temple 85 Kano 188, 191, 240 Kansas City 262, 264 Kantanagar, temple 198 Kanyakumari, temple 134 Kanye, museum 296 Kanyo Iwakura 88 Kapisa, treasure hoard 83 Kapova Cave 18, 19 Kara Sea 160 Kara-tepe 83, 303 Kushan art 82 Karachi art school 304 museum 298, 304 Karagashli 244 Karaite faith 158 Karak-dong 88 Karakhanid rulers 132, 132 Karakhoja 247 Karako-Kagi 88 Karakol 303 Karakorum 138 Karanis 75, 77 Karashahr 247 Buddhist/Kushan art 83 Karauchi, archaeology 294 Karausubayashi 89 Karelia 21, 156, 220 Kargopol’ 160 Karhogo, art production 295 Karkala, carving 248 Karl XIV Johan, King 222 Karle, historic site 248 Karlovo 185 Karlsbad 238 Karlsgraben 104 Karlsruhe 172, 230, 281 Karlstad 272 Karlstejn, wall painting 116 Karmina 196 Karnak 38, 39 Kars 244 Karshi, arts and crafts 302 Karsten, Ludwig 273 Karum 42 Kasanje 191 Kashan 130, 195 lustre ware 131 museum 298 Kashgar 81, 87, 132, 196, 196, 246, 303 archaeological expeditions 247, 247 arts and crafts 302, 303 Buddhist/Kushan art 83 The End of the Bazaar 302 trade centre 131 Kashihara 88 figurines 49 Kashiwagi B 49 Kasori 49 Kassa 184, 185 Kassák, Lajos (1887-1967) 283 Kassel 154, 172 art academy 186 art collection 186 art event 316 Documenta quadriennial 316 memorial 281 Kassope, theatre 60 Kastamonu 130 Kastanas 32 Kastoria 106 Kastri 32, 33 Katamatasuzuka 89 Kathmandu 134 art centre temple 198 Kato Zakros 32, 33 Katsina 188, 191, 240 Katsura Rikyu 204 Katwijk aan Zee, art colony 228, 228, 278 Kaufbeuren 172 Kauffman, Angelica 165, 173 Kaunas 272 Kaupang 109 Kaushambi 83 archaeology 84 Kawa 37, 72, 73 Kaya state 89 Kayama 89 Kaysen 244 Kayseri 244 Kazahari 49, 88 Kazakhstan 160, 161, 302 art schools/museums 298 World Crafts Council 316 Kazan’ 160, 160, 196, 224, 225 Kazanluk 62 Kazimierz Dolny 158 Kazuko, Okakura 304 Ke, archaeology 294 Kea 33 Keatley Creek 55 Kecskemet 185, 238 Kedah 206, 254 Kedaton, temple 142 Kef el-Blida 64 Kefermarkt, ecclesiastical centre 116 Kelaenae 78 Kélibia 76 Kellia, cemetery 77 Kelmscott, Arts and Crafts 226 Kempten 172 Kendal, Francis 297 Kendari, silverware 310 Kenilworth, castle 116 Kent 102 Kent, William 164 Kenya, World Crafts Council 316 Kephalos, theatre 60 Kerak, Crusader castle 130 Kerbela 194, 195 Kerch 78 Kerewe, post sculptures 292 Kerguntuil, megalithic art 29 Keriya 247 Kerkenes Dagi 78 Kerkouane 64 Kerma, culture 37, 37 Kermadec Islands 144 Kerman 81, 195 carpet-making 244 Kermanshah 130, 244 Kermaria 109, 111 Kermarquer, megalithic art 29 Kermorvan, megalithic art 29 Keswick 164 Kexholme 157 Key Marco 96 Keyser, Hendrick de (1565-1621) 157 Keyt, George (1901-88) 305 Kezil Caves 87 Kezmarok 154 Khabarovsk 224 Khajuravahaka, temple 134 Khalchangan, Buddhist/Kushan art 83 Khalchayan 303 Kushan art 82, 83 Khalil Gibran, Gibran (1883-1931) 301 Khambayat, mosque 134 Khamsa (Quintet) (Nizami) 194 Khanate of the Golden Horde 132, 133 Kharga Oasis 38, 74, 78 Khargird, mosque 130, 133 Kharkov 160, 225 art colony 282 art review magazine 282 art studio 224, 224, 282 Constructivism 283 Khartoum 36, 291 pottery 36 trade centre 240 Kherson 224, 225, 282 Khirbat al-Mafjar 128, 128 Khirbat al-Minya 128 Khiva 133, 195, 196 arts and crafts 302 mosque 132, 133 museum 303 sculpture 302 trade centre 131 Khiva khanate 246, 246 Khmer empire 91, 142, 143 Khoisan art centres 296 peoples 190, 191 Khojas 196 Khojent 82, 246 museum 298 Kholm 81 Kholmogory 160 folk art 224, 225 Khon, museum 298 Khonj, lustre ware 131 INDEX 339 Machang, archaeology 306 Macheke, textiles 296 Machelonia 81 Machilipatnam 134 Machu Picchu 100, 152 indigenous art 153 Mackintosh, Charles Rennie 221, 276 Mâcon 110 ecclesiastical centre 118 Mcquorquodale 55 McRae, Tommy (c.1836-1901) 258 Madaba 71 Madagascar 127, 243 World Crafts Council 316 Madai & Baturong 50 Madi movement 269 Madison 262 Madox Brown, Ford (1821-93) 226 Madras 248 architecture 249 art school 298, 304 historic site 248 museum 298, 304 painting 248 textiles 198 trade centre 192 Madrid 286 architecture 178, 178, 235, 235, 287 art academy 186, 234, 234 art centre 154, 179, 216, 286 art collection 186, 187, 234, 234 artist migration 270 artistic groups/influence 286, 287 artists’ travels 187 court centre 154 ecclesiastical centre 118 expulsions 178 Goy’s work 234 sculpture 235 urban development 186 Madura batik 310 textiles 207, 310 Madurai painting 248 palace 198 temple 134 Madyt, arts and crafts 302 Maeander 41 Maeike 49 Maestà (Duccio) 120 Mafia (Africa) 127 Mafra 178, 186 Magadan, Gualag memorial 275 Magarida 88 Magasins Waucquez 229 Magdalensberg 67 Magdalenska Gora, Bronze situlae 58 Magdeburg 104, 108, 112, 170, 171, 172 ecclesiastical centre 116 Maghreb 124-125, 290, 291 Maglaj 185 Maglemose Culture 21, 21 Magna Graecia 64-5 Magnesia, shrine 60 Magnesia ad Maendrum 78 Magnificent Gallery 21 Magome 89 Magritte, René 278, 279, 279 Mahabalipuram, historic site 248 Mahdaoui, Nja (1937-) 291 Mahdia, textiles 124 Mahkar, temple 134 Mahlangu, Rosa (1935-) 297 Mahmudabad, temple 134 Mahriz, Sidi 189 Maiano, Giovanni de 163 Maidum, early urbanism 25 Maijishan Buddhist caves 306, 307 religious art 137 Mailapur, historic site 248 Maininskaya 18 Mainz 103, 170, 230 art centre 186 art collection 172 ecclesiastical centre 116 manuscript painting 112 stained glass 108 Maiori 111 Maishan 81 Majang-ni 88 Majapahit kingdom 142, 143 Majiayao, archaeology 306 Majorelle, Louis (1859-1926) 233 Maka 78 Makerere University, tourist/modern art 293 Makovsky, Vladimir (1846-1920) 224 Makran 81, 129 Makuria 190 Mal Abrigo 56, 57 Malaca 64 Malacca 143, 143, 192, 206, 207, 254 museum 298 Málaga 125, 154, 178 Malaia Began, wild boar 59 Malangatana (1936-) 296 Malatesta, Sigismondo 122 Malatya 130 Malay peninsula 142, 143 cultural influence 206 trade 207 Malaya, British protectorate 254 Malaysia art schools/museums 298 arts and crafts 310 wall hanging 311 World Crafts Council 316 Malayu 142 Malazgird 131 Malbork 158 Malda, textiles 198 Maldives, World Crafts Council 316 Malemba 191 Malerualik 96 Malevich, Kazimir (1878-1935) 274, 274, 279 Mali 126, 127, 190 World Crafts Council 316 Malia 33 Malindi 127, 190, 292 Malines 168 Mallia 32 Mallikarjuna 134 Mallorca, Muslim kingdom 110 Malmesbury 103, 108 Malmö 220 art college 273 Baltic Exhibition 272 wall painting 116 Malo, Lapita pottery 51 Malqata 39 Mal’ta 16 Malta 23, 34, 102, 182 Mamallapuram 134 Mamluk Sultanate 128, 131, 131, 190 Mammoths 16, 16, 17, 19 Mamontov, Savva (1841-1918) 225 Mampuku-ji 205 Man, art production 295 Manama, national museum 300 Manassas, Civil War site 214 Manaus 56, 152, 153 Manbij 128, 129 Manchan 101 Mancheng 86 archaeology 307 Manchester 220 art collection 276 Arts and Crafts 226 Manchuria 161, 200, 202-203, 204, 204, 306 Japanese expansion 308 Manda 127 Mandalay arts and crafts 310 museum 298 pagodas 254, 255 Mander III, Karel van (1610-1670) 156 Mandeville 55, 96 Mandi, miniature paintings 198 Mandu, mosque 134 Mandu Mandu Creek, rock shelter 16 Manefred 154 Manet, Edouard (1832-83) 233 Mangaia 144 Mangalore 198 Mangareva 144 Mangkang 302 Mangrol, mosque 134 Mangueiras 56 Mani 98 Manichaeans (Bogomils) 106 Manichaeism 132 Codex 83 Manikyal, Kushan art 82, 83 Manila architecture 206 museum 299 painting 310 printing 192 silver work 200, 254 trade centre 192, 207 Manisa 130 mosque 131 Mann 55 Mannar 198 Mannerist style 155 Mannheim 172, 230, 281 Manresa, textiles 234 Mans, Raphael du 194 Manta 100, 100 Mantegna, Andrea (1430/31-1506) 123, 175 Manteño 100, 100 Mantes 110 ecclesiastical centre 116 Mantineia, theatre 60 Manttä 272 Mantua academy 182 art centre 154, 180 art collections 181, 182 chivalry centre 122 music 180 painted/sculpted cycles 181 patrons and projects 121, 122, 123, 181 Manunggul Cave 90 Manus, Lapita pottery 51 Manuscripts Abbasid paper mills 129, 129 Blue Koran 125 Burma 255 Central Asia 83, 132, 133, 196, 197 centres European 108, 110 Italian 110, 121 North African 188, 240, 240 Northern Europe 116, 117 Southeast Asia 254 Southern Europe 114, 118 Umayyad 128 West Asia 131 Western Islamic 124, 125 Chelles 103 illuminated 103, 103, 104, 104, 105, 112, 166 Manutuke, Maori art 259 Manzanares 234 Manzanares el Real, castle 118 Manzanillo 266 Manzikert, Byzantine defeat 130, 131 Mao Zedong 307 Ma’on Nirim, floor mosaics 71 Maoqingguo 86 Mapplethorpe, Robert 265 Maputo tourist/modern art 292, 293 traditional arts 292, 296, 296 Maracaibo 152, 153, 219, 269 Maracanda 63, 82 Maraghen 133 Marand, Ilkhanid monument 131 Maranhão 218, 269 Marathas state 198 Maravi 127, 190 Marawi 299 Marble Aegean sources 33, 60 Byzantine 107, 107 coloured 69, 70 Greek sources 35, 61 Italian use 120-121, 181 Mediterranean 67 Pentelic 35 Poland/Lithuania 159 Roman Empire 67, 68, 69, 69, 103 South Asia 198 South Netherlands 168, 168, 169 white 35, 166, 168, 199 Marburg 112, 170 textiles 296 Marca Huamachuco 101 Marcellina 110 March (Levitan) 225 Marcus Aurelius, emperor 91 Mardin 195 mosque 130 Maremma 236, 237 Marengo 181 Margiana 78 Mari 32, 40, 41, 42 early urbanism 25 Maria Island, bark paintings 258 Maria Laach 108 Mariana 66 Marianas Islands 92, 208, 312, 312 Mariefred 273 Mariemont 154 Marienbad 238 Marienburg 158 castle 116 Marienwerder, castle 116 Mariette, Auguste 245 Marine shells 97 Marinetti, Filippo Tomaso (1876- 1944) 270, 284, 288 Marinid dynasty 124, 125, 125 Maris brothers (Jacob, Matthijs and Willem) 228 Marka 127 Marksville 55, 96 Marlik 42, 43, 43 Maros 50 Marosvásárhely 185, 238 Marpole 55 Marquesas Islands 92, 93, 95, 144, 145, 312 art production 256 Cook’s voyage 208 paepae (house platform) 93 Marrakesh 126, 188, 190, 240 architecture 125, 189 metalworking 125, 188 textiles 124 Marseille 70, 71 murals 110 panel painting 118 porcelain 177 trade route 102 Unité d’Habitation 270, 271, 285, 285 Marsh Pass 26, 27 Marshall Islands 92, 312, 312 Marsin 244 Martanda, temple 134 Martens, Conrad (1801-78) 259 Martigues 285 Martin, John (1789-1854) 221 Martín Fierro (review) 268 Martin, Leslie 277 Martini, Simone (d.1344) 118, 119 Martos, Ivan 161 Martyr’s Monument 300 Maruyama 49, 89 Marvao 234 Marzabotto 64, 65 Marzo, megalithic art 29 Masaccio (1401-28) 122, 122 Masada 67 Maser 181 Mashhad 196, 301 lustre ware 131 Mashiz, Ilkhanid monuments 131 Masks 12 Africa 72, 190 Japan and Korea 49 Mesoamerica 54, 54 Pacific 256 Tibetan 303 Massa 182 Massa Marittima 114 Massalia 34, 64, 64, 65, 66, 67 Celtic colony 59 grave stele 59 Greek colony 58 Masson, André (1896-1987) 284 Master Cheng’s Ink Garden (Cheng Dayue) 201 Masulipatam textiles 198, 207 trade centre 192 Masuura 88 Matacapan 54 Matamba 191 Matanbek 50 Matapalo 54 Matara 72 Mataro, wool production 234 Matenkupkum 50 Mathu, archaeology 84 Mathura Buddhist/Kushan art 83 historic site 248 Kushan capital 85 miniature paintings 198 museum 298 stupas 85, 85 trade 134 Matifou 76 Matisse, Henri (1869-1954) 272, 284, 285 Matmata 189 Matsumoto 140 Matsuno 89 Matsuoka 89 Matthew Paris (d.1259) 112 Matulu, Tchibumba Kanda 293 Matupi Cave 18 Mau, textiles 198 Mauberge, painting 117 Maulbronn 108 Maun, museum 296 Mauretania 66 Mauretania Caesariensis 69 Mauretania Tingitania 69 Maurice, F. D. 226 Mauritania 290 ivory 76 World Crafts Council 316 Mauritius, World Crafts Council 316 Mauro Takus, temple 142 Mauryan Empire 53, 82, 84, 84, 85, 94 Mausolus, king 61, 63 Mauthausen, memorial 281 Mauve, Anton (1838-88) 228 Mawaki 49 Mawangdui 86 archaeology 307 Mawlay Isma’il 188, 189, 189 Maximian, Bishop 70-71 Maxwell Bay 96 Maya civilization 98, 98, 99 Mayapán 98 Mayenne 110 Mazar-i Sharif 246 tomb 133 Mazara 110 Mazarin, Cardinal 175 Mazerier, wall painting 118 Mbabne, art school 296 Mbailundu 191 Mbangala 190 Mbatha, Azaria (1941-) 297 Mbile, tourist/modern art 292, 293 Meaux 103, 112 Mecca 126, 128, 132, 188, 195 Islamic centre 128, 301 pilgrimage routes 128, 188, 240, 240 railway connections 245 trade centre 131 Mechelen 168, 169 brass engraving 117 tapestry factory 279 Mecklenburg 170, 172, 230 Medellin 219, 268 Media 78, 80, 81 Media Atropatene 62 Medici family 11, 122, 180, 200 Medievalism 231 Medina 126, 132, 240, 195, 301 Islam 128 Mamluk monument 131 Ottoman city 188 Medina del Campo 154, 178, 234 Medinet Habu 39 Mediolanum 64, 69, 70, 70 Medionemeton, cult centre 59 Mediterranean 34-35, 62-63, 64-65, 66-67, 68-69 art and trade 67, 71 colonizing from East 34, 124 colony and empire 66 international art 42 movement of artists 106 shipwrecks 68 western 64-65 see also Trade routes Medut, temple 142 Megalithic art 28-29, 29, 29, 92, 93, 93, 145 Megalopolis, theatre 60 Megara 60 Megiddo 32, 43 Mehmed V Rashad 301 Mehrgam, early urbanism 25 Mehrgarh 44, 44 Meier, Richard 264 Meiningen 230, 230 Meissen 112, 203 ecclesiastical centre 116 Meissonier, Juste-Aurèle 158 Meizhou, silk production 137 Meknès architecture 125, 189 artistic centre 188 city of Mawlay Isma’il 189 Melaka architecture 206 trade 207 Melanesia 50, 50, 51, 92, 92, 144, 208, 312, 313 artistic traditions 93, 93, 257 Melas 244 Melbourne 258, 259 architecture 259, 314, 314 auctioneers 316 indigenous art 314 Melcome Regis 163 Melide 118 Melilla 124, 178, 234 Melkart, temple of 64 Melnik 185 Melnikov, Konstantin 271 Melos 32, 33, 60 Melrose 103 Memmingen, wood sculpture 116 Memorana 96 Memphis 22, 32, 38, 41, 70, 73 Achaemenid 78 Civil War site 214 early urbanism 25 Hellenistic art 62 iron working 36 Nile Valley sites 38, 74 stone carving 77 Memphis (Egypt) monastery 77 pottery 32, 71 Menaced Assassin (Magritte) 279 Menado 254 Menander (dramatist) 63 Menapolis, cemetery 77 Mende, ecclesiastical centre 118 Mendes 38 Mendoza 218 Mengs, Anton Raphael 173 Menin Gate 279 Menocal, Armando (1863-1942) 217 Mentuhotep tomb 39 Menzel 221 Meran 238 Mercia 102 Mergiana 81 Mérida 98, 102, 286 National Museum of Roman Art 287 wild boar 59 Merimda, pottery 36, 37 Merlemont 168 Meroë 36, 37, 126 INDEX 338 Last Supper of the Protestants (Cranach the Younger) 170 Latakia 128 Lati Koili, palace 198 Latin Christian territory 130 Latini peoples 65 Latium 66 Latopolis 77 Latrobe, Benhamin H. 213 Latter Prose-poem (Qiao Zhongchang) 136 Lattier, Christian (1925-78) 294 Latvia art in a globalized world 273 museums 272 radical art 275 Laurium, silver mines 59, 60 Lausanne 110, 112, 171 stained glass 118 Laussel, Venus with horn 17 Laval, château 116 Lawrence, Jacob 263 Layyanids 190 Le Brun, Charles (1619-90) 176 Le Corbusier (Charles Jeanneret, 1887-1965) 260, 261, 268, 271, 276, 284, 285, 285, 290, 299, 305 Le Havre 220, 285 Le Mans 103, 110 stained glass 110, 116 Le Mas d’Azil 19, 21, 21 Le Placard 17, 19 Le Portel 19 Le Puy pilgrimage centre 111, 111, 118 wall painting 118 Le Raincy 270 Le Tret Magrite 16 Le Tuc d’Audoubert 19 Leason, Percy 314 Lebanon art schools/museums 298 fine arts 301 French Mandate 300 Ottoman 195 printing 194 Lebena 62 Lechfeld 104 Lechner, Ödön (1845-1914) 221 L’Écluse 110 Leeds art collection 226 ceramic centre 164 painted by Turner 226 woollen trade 165 Leeuwarden 228, 229 Lefkadia 62 Lega, Silvestro (1826-93) 237 Léger, Fernand (1881-1955) 268, 284 Leh 247 Silk Road 132 Lehner 96 Léhon 103 Leiden 154, 166, 228, 229, 278 artists 166 De Stijl 278 ethnography 229 painting 117 Rijksmuseum 279 Leighton, Frederic 227 Leigudun 86 Leipzig 230 academy 172 art publishing 231 book production 170 Degenerate Art exhibition 281 patronage 230 Leiria 154 castle 118 Leitai, archaeology 307 Leith 163 Leizno 158 Lekkerwater 127 Lelang 88, 89 Lely, Sir Peter (1608-80) 162, 164 Lemberg art centre 186 town-planning 238 Lemgo 170 Lemnos 33, 35 theatre 60 Leningrad art centre 282 Constructivism 283 Lenkoran 244 Lenne 126 Leo X 180 León 104, 112, 114 architecture 110, 154 cathedral 114, 114 pilgrimage route 111 stained glass 118 León-Castile 108 Leonardo da Vinci (1452-1519) 95, 122, 123, 174, 179 Léopoldville 292 Lepenski Vir 15, 20, 21 Leptis Magna 65, 67, 68, 69, 70, 76 Lerici 114 Lérida 110, 114, 115, 234 Lerida, panel painting 118 Lérins 103 Les Andelys 110 Les Houyottes, megalithic art 29 Les Orchides 21 Les Ronces, megalithic art 29 Lesbos 33, 35, 60 Lesotho, arts and crafts 296 Lespugue, Venus figurines 17 L’Estaque 270, 270 Leszno 159 Letchworth Arts and Crafts 226 Garden City 276, 276 Letsitele, textiles 296 Leuven, stained glass 110, 116 Leuwiliang, pottery 50 Levant 68, 70 Armenian territory 131 late Roman Art 71 Latin states 130 Ottoman Possession 194 rock art 24 Umayyad empire 129 Levantine art 20, 35 Levitan, Isak (1861-1900) 224-225, 225 Levitsky, Dmitry (1735-1822) 160, 161 Levoca 154 Levy 96 Lewis, Meriwether 212 Lewis, Wyndham (1882-1957) 277 Leyden, architecture 108, 109 Leyland, Frederick 237 Leyre 110 Lezajsk 159 Lhasa 47, 203 art centre, 200, 202, 250 arts and crafts 302 museum 298 Lhatse, art centre Li Qizhao (poetess) 137 Li Yu, archaeology 306 Liangzhou 136 Liangzhu 46, 47 archaeology 306 Lianjiang, kiln site 137 Liaoyang Liberia 243 arts and crafts 294 Libya 189, 290-291 architecture 290, 290-291 aristic cross-currents 290 colonization 34 Liebana 103 Liechtenstein 230, 230 Liège 103, 220, 228, 229 armour 168, 168 artistic centre 154, 279, 285 brass engraving 117 ecclesiastical centre 116 manuscripts 108 Lier, stained glass 116 Liérganes 234 Life of St George (de Sas) 118 Lifou, Lapita pottery 51 Lifuka Island, Lapita pottery 51 Ligor 206 Ligurians 64, 64 Lijiang 138 art centre 200 Lijó, megalithic art 29 Lille 116, 154, 168, 174 Euralille 285 museums 285 tapestry 117 Lille Baelt 20 Lilydale, plein-air paintings 259 Lima 57, 152, 153 architecture 152 artistic activity 218, 219, 268, 269 Limbe 266 Limburg 108, 168 Limerick 109 Limoges alabaster 118 enamels 112 gems trade 111 metalwork 109, 110, 112, 174 porcelain 177 shrine 111, 111 Limyra 78 Lincoln 108, 109, 112 ecclesiastical centre 116 Lindgren, Armas (1874-1929) 221 Lindisfarne 103 Lindos, shrine 60 Linear B see script Lingones peoples 65 Linjan, shrine 131 Linköping 112, 272 Linnell, John 226 Linru 138 Linz 154, 172, 238 architecture 281 Fuhrermuseum 281 Linzhi 302 Linzi 87 Lipara 66 Lippspringe 104 Lipscomb 96 Lisbon 70 alabaster 109, 111 architecture110 178, 220, 235, 235 art academy 234, 234, 235 art centre 154, 286 artists’ travels 119 university 114, 115 Lishui, kiln site 137 Lissitzky, El 270 Lissus 66 Litang, art centre 200, 202 Lithgow 259 Lithuania art in a globalized world 273 folk woodcuts 223 multi-ethnicity 158 Occidentalism 159 Orientalism 159 pagan 106 and Poland 158-9 radical art 275 and Russia 223 Sarmatism 159 World Crafts Council 316 Litomysl 154 Little Diomeda Island 55 Little Harbor 55 Liu Bang 87 Liulichang, silk production 137 Liverpool 163 architecture 270, 271 art movement 226 Arts and Crafts 226 ceramic centre 164 modernist architecture 276 shipyard 2220 Tate 276 Livonia 157, 158 Livorno 181, 236, 237, 270 Livs, pagan 106 Lixus 34, 68 Ljubljana 185 art colony 282 art event 316 contemporary art 283 Llanos de Mojos 100, 100 Llullaillaco River 100 Llyn Cerrig Bach, metalwork 59 Loango 127, 190, 191 distribution of masks 243 Loarre 110 Lobbes 103 Loches 110 Locmariaquer, megalithic art 29 Locri 65 Lodi, painting 114 L/ ód´z 220 art collection 282, 283 art colony 282 Lofthoj 31 Logan Creek 96 Logrono 118 Loire Valley 174, 174, 175 Lokkigundi, temple 134 Lolland, Danish Bronze Age 31 Lombard, kingdom 102 Lombardy 182, 182, 236 Lombok 142, 143, 206, 254 Bronze Age 90 cotton 207, 310 Lomé, arts and crafts 294, 295 Lomello 102 Lonar, temple 134 Londinium 69 London 70, 71, 102, 147, 277 academies/exhibition rooms 165, 186, 277 Adam-style mansions 165 age of the aristocracy 164 art collection 186, 187 art dealers/trades/ organizations 277 art movements 276 art schools/acadamies 165, 227, 277 artistic cross-currents 112, 154, 236 artists’ studios/homes 165, 227, 277 artists’ travels 119, 187 Arts and Crafts 226 auction houses 187, 316, 316, 317 c.1600 162 c.1700-1800 165 cathedral/churches 108, 112, 165 Catholicism 104 city-planning 276 ecclesiastical centre 116 English Renaissance 163 Great Exhibition 210 Huguenots 176 important monuments 165, 227 manuscript painting 112 meeting places 165, 227, 277 metalworking 112 modern architecture 270, 271 modern art sites 277 Palladian mansions 165 Romantic site 220, 226 theatres/architect/date 165 Tower of 109 trade centre 109 Tudor and Stuart 162 urban development 186 Victorian 227 writing centre 103 see also sculpture Londonderry 163 Long, Richard 277 Long Island, New York 213 Long Melford, stained glass 116 Long Thanh 51 Longgu Cave 18 Longleat House 162 Longlien 104 Longlier 104 Longmen Buddhist caves 87, 306, 307 religious art 136 silk production 136 Longquan, kiln site 137, 138, 200, 202, 250, 251 Longshan archaeology 306 culture 46 Longxing Longzhou 250 Lonhy, Antoine de 119 Loos, Adolf 271 Lop Buri 206 Lorca, textiles 234 Lorenzetti, Ambrogio (d.1348) 120, 237 Loreto 122, 123, 180, 181 Lorient, megalithic art 29 Lorsch 102, 103 book production 104 Los Angeles 262, 264, 264 auctioneers 317 Los Narannjos 54 Los Ortices 54 Los Toldos 20 Losenko, Anton 161 Lost-wax process 40, 55, 87, 90, 126, 126 Lotun Cave 54 Loughborough 164 Loughcrew, megalithic art 29 Louis XIV (France) 112, 113, 166, 172, 176, 187, 189 Louis XV (France) 156 Louis XVI (France) 177 Louisade archipelago 93 Loukas 106 Loulan 86, 132 archaeological survey 247, 247 Buddhist art 83 Lourenço Marques 292 Loutherbourg, Philip James de (1740-1812) 221 Louvain 168 painting 117 Louviers, ecclesiastical centre 116 Lovek 206 Lovelock Cave 26, 27, 96 Lowasera, pottery 36 Lower Hutt, indigenous art 315 Lower Palatinate 170 Lowestoft 164 Lowicz 159 Lowry, L. S. 277 Lozi 191 Lu 86 Lu Lengjia (active c.730-60) 203 Lu Xun (writer) 307 Luang Prabang 207 kiln site 206 silver work 254 textiles 310 Luba 127, 190 Chibunda Ilunga 243 Lubagueira, megalithic art 29 Lubbock 96 Lübeck 156, 157, 172, 222, 230 ecclesiastical centre 116 National Socialism 281 sculpture 170 Lublin 154, 158, 159 Lubostron 159 Lucani peoples 65, 65 Lucca 103, 121, 123, 180 art academy 182 cathedral 110 painting 114 royal progress 154 trading centre 120 Lucca (Jamaica) 266 Luceria 64 Lucerne 154, 281 Luck 158 Lucknow architecture 248 miniature paintings 198, 248 museum 298 textiles 304 Luçon, ecclesiastical centre 118 Lüderitz 190 museum 296 Ludlow, castle 116 Ludovico Gonzaga and his Court (Mantegna) 123 Ludwig I 231 Lugano 171, 171 Lügde 104 Lugdunensis 66, 69 Lugdunum 66, 68, 69 Lugo, castle 118 Luguru, post sculptures 292 Luguvallium 68 Luini, Bernardino (c.1480/85-1532) 171 Luminism 278 Luncani, wild boar 59 Lund 108, 108, 109, 273 crucifix 109 ecclesiastical centre 116 Lund, J. L. (1771-1867) 222 Lunda 127, 191 Chibunda Ilunga 243 distribution of masks 243 Lundu 127, 190, 191 Lüneburg 154, 170 Luolang 306 Luoyang 47, 86, 87, 87, 136, 306, 307 art collection 137 early urbanism 25 Luoyang, 307 Lupaka 101 Lur tribes 301 Luristan 42, 43, 43 Lusaka tourist/modern art 292, 293 traditional arts 292 Lusitania 66, 69 Lustreware 131 Luther, Martin 170, 171 Lutheranism 156 attitudes to art 154 churches 158, 159, 185 Luwu 206 Luxembourg 168 art event 316 UNESCO project 316 Luxeuil 103 Luxor 38, 290 temple 39 see also Thebes Luzira 190 Luzon 207, 254 L’viv, architecture 283 Lwow 154 art centre 282 art review magazine 282 churches 158, 159 Lycia 62, 66, 78, 80 Lycia-Pamphylia 69 Lydenburg, pottery 72, 73, 126 Lydia 35, 78, 80, 81 Lydians 34 Lyme Regis 163 Lyon 70 archbishopric 104 architecture 177 art centre 154, 285 art event 316 biennials 285 floor mosaics 71 industrial 220 literary centre 103 murals 110, 233 print-making 118 publishing 174 trade route 102 Lysimachea 62 Lysippos (sculptor) 61 Lystra 66 Ma Dong 51 Maarken, art colony 228 Maastricht 103, 168, 228, 229 art collection 279 brass engraving 117 ecclesiastical centre 116 Maat 39 Mabopane, art school 296 Macacanda 80 Macao 250, 306, 307 trade centre 192, 207, 254 Macassar 143, 206 arts and crafts 310 cotton 207, 254 trade centre 192 McCahon, Colin (1919-87) 315, 315 Macchiaioli group 236, 237 Macedon 62, 65 Macedonia 58, 62, 66, 69, 184 Byzantine architecture 184 headdress 62 McGillivray, Alexander 149 INDEX 341 198, 199 courtly culture 199 miniatures 304 patronage 196 Peacock Throne 194, 199 Mugla 244 Mugye-ri 49 Muhammad 128 Muhammad’Ali (Egypt) 240, 241, 241, 244 Mühlhausen 172 Mukden 250, 306 Mulasthana, mosque 134 Muldbjerg 31 Multan 79, 132 carpets 198 mosque 134 trade centre 84 Mumbai 198, 248, 248, 249 Mummies 57, 75, 83 Munch, Edvard (1863-1944) 223, 272, 273 Munich 154 academies 172, 222, 280, 282, 282 architecture 155, 173, 281 art centre 186 art collections 172, 282 art colony 282 Art Nouveau 220 art publishing 231 artistic cross-currents 173 artists’ travels 187 arts centre 171, 230 auctioneers 316 Bavarian capital 230 bronze casting 170 Degenerate Art exhibition 281 Expressionism centre 270 Königsplatz 231 Secessionism 283 Third Reich arts capital 281 wood sculpture 116 Münster 103, 154, 168, 170, 173 artists’ travels 187 ecclesiastical centre 116 Münter, Gabriele 280 Munthe, Gerhard 273 Muralism 266, 266, 267, 267 Murals see Frescoes Murasaki Shikibu 141 Muratowicz, Sefer 194 Murbach 103 Murcia 154 print-making 118 textiles 234 Murciélago 98 Murcutt, Glen (1936-) 314, 314 Murdoch-Smith, Major General Sir Robert 245 Murillo, Bartolomé Esteban (1617- 82) 150, 179 Murillo, Gerardo (Dr Atl,1875- 1964) 266-267 Murmansk 224 artists’ centre 225 Murnau 280 Expressionism centre 270 modern painting 280 Murray river, Aboriginal art 258 Murshidabad 198 architecture 248 Musang Cave 51 Musawwarat es-Sufra 72, 73 Muscat 129 fine arts 300 museum 298 Seljuk 130 trading port 192 Muscovy 196 Music, Italian centres 180 Musical instruments 41, 256 Muskebi 32 Muslim see Islam Musorgsky, Modest 224 Mussau, Lapita pottery 51 Mussolini, Benito 289 Mussy-sur-Seine, stained glass 116 Müstair 103 Mustang, art centre Mustard Seed Garden Painting Manual 205 Mut precint (Amun’s consort) 39 Mutapa 127 Mutare, museum 296 Müteferrika, Ibrahim 194 Muzins, trade 134 Muzná 185 Mwene Mutapa’s court 127 My Xuyen, pagoda 206 Mycenae 32, 33, 33 first states 31 Lion Gate 33 Shaft Graves 31 Mycenaean culture 32-33, 33 Myitkyina, arts and crafts 310 Myohaung 206 Myongji-ni 88 Myra 67 Mysenec, wall painting 116 Mysore exhibition centre 304 jewellery 248 museum 304 palace 198 Mysz Nowa 158 Mythograms 19 Mythology Central Andean 57 classical 180 Elamite 42 Hellenistic 67 Norse 222 painted scenes 123 Romulus and Remus 65 on silver vessels 70 Mzab oases 189 Na 88 Naayama 88 Nabatake 88 Nabeul 76, 290 Nabonidus, king 43 Nabta Playa 36 Nachnakuthara, temple 85 Naco 54, 96, 98 Naedong-ni 49 Naepyong-ni 49 Nafta, textiles 124 Naga 299 Nagamangala, carving 248 Nagamine 89 Nagaoka 308 Nagapattinam (Negapatam) 134, 198, 248 coins 85 textiles 207 Nagarahara, Kushan art 82 Nagari, coins 84 Nagarjunakonda, stupa 85 Nagasaki 204, 204, 252 Naghi, Mohamed (1880-1956) 291 Nagoya 204, 204, 205, 205, 252, 308 Naguar, miniature paintings 198 Nagybánya, art colony 220, 282 Nagyszeben 185 Nagyvárad 185 Nahdia 66 Nahr-Tire 81 Naigani Island, Lapita pottery 51 Na’in, ceramics 301 Nairobi tourist/modern art 292, 293 traditional arts 292 Naissus 68 Naj Tunich 98 Najaf 131, 194, 195 Nájera 118 Naju 49 Nakasawame 49 Nakatani Tsuru Dressing (Hashiguchi Goyo) 308 Nakayama chiku 89 Nakayama Minami 89 Nakazato 89 Nakbe 54 Nakhichevan, Ilkhanid monument 131 Nakhon Ratchasima, religious site 310 Nakhon Si Thammarat 206, 254 Nakur 124 Nakusu-ri 88 Nalanda 134 archaeology 85 Nam Puyo 89 Namangan, arts and crafts 302 Namatjira, Albert 315 Namgyong 49 Namibia 16, 36, 297 arts and crafts 296 Nampula, museum 296 Namsong-ni 49 Namsu-ri 88 Namur 168, 168 Nan’an, kiln site 137 Nanchang 200, 202, 250, 307 Nancy 220 architecture 177 ecclesiastical centre 116 urban development 186 Nangminng-dong 88 Nanjing 87, 306 Ming capital, museum 298 museums 306, 307 painting 202 printing 192, 200 textiles 250 Nanning 138, 250 Nantes 71, 103, 111 albaster 109 architecture 177 château 116 ecclesiastical centre 116 Edict of 176 manuscript painting 112 sculpture 154 shipyard 220 Nanyue 86 Napata, 37, 37, 72, 72 Napier, architecture 314 Naples 70, 71, 102, 147 alabaster 109, 111 archbishopric 104 architecture 114, 119, 181 art centre 154, 181, 236 art collections 182 artists’ travels 119, 187 humanism 122 literary centre 103, 114 monuments 182 patrons and projects 121, 123, 181 trade and culture 180 university 114, 120 urban development 186 Napoleon 220, 220, 221 Egypt expedition 244, 245 and Russia 224 Napoleon as Mars (Canova) 237 Naqa 72 Naqada, early culture 36, 37 Naqsh-e Rajab 81 Naqsh-e Rostam 81 Naqsh-i Bahram 81, 81 Naqshbandi sheikhs 196, 197 Naqu 302 Nar al-Kalb 43 Nara arts centre 140, 141, 205, 252, 299 Buddhist arts 204 Naram-Sin 41 Narbo 66, 67, 68, 69 Narbonensis 69 Narbonne 70 archbishopric 104 literary centre 103 royal progress 154 stained glass 118 Narmouthis 75 Narona 66 Narowla 158 Narthang, art centre 138 Narutaki 89 Narva 156, 157, 222 Nasarpur 198 Nash, John 226 Nashville 212 Nasik 248 Nasir al-Din 245 Nasmus, Ilkhanid monument 131 Nasrids 125 Nassilia 67 Natanz, shrine 131 Natchez 97 Nathadwara, folk art 249 National Romanticism 223 Nationalism and NeoVernacularism 239 Native American art 213 Natpaktos, textiles 283 Natufian figurines 21 Naturalism 272 Naucratis 34, 35, 74 Naujan 96 Naumburg 112, 172 Navajo tribe 148, 148, 212 Navarre 110, 116 Navarrete, Juan Fernández de (’el Mudo; 1520-1579) 178 Nawinpuquio 57, 57 Naxos 32, 33, 35 marble 60 Nayin 129, 131 minaret 130 Nayriz, minaret 130 Nazarene Brotherhood 231, 237 Nazca culture 57, 57, 95 Ndiaye, Iba (1928-) 294 Ndongo 127 Nea Paphos 70 Neam monastery 185 Neapolis 64, 66, 68 mosaics 76, 76 Near East 34, 111 Nebamun, tomb 38, 39 Nebo 71 Nebuchadnezzar II 43 Neck 96 Nedroma 125 Nefertari, tomb 39 Negapatam see Nagapattinam Negoroji, lacquerware 140, 141 Negoyadai 49 Negritude movement 295 Negros 206, 254 Nehavend 81 Neizvestny, Ernst (1926-) 275 Nekhbet, vulture goddess 38 Nemausus 68 Nemea, Doric temple 60 Nemetacum, cult centre 59 Nemetogriga, cult centre 59 Nemi 64, 65 Nemours 290 Nenagh 112 Nendram 103 Neo-Assyrian period 43 Neo-Attic 66 Neo-Confucianism 141, 205, 205 Neo-Impressionism 288 Neo-primitivism 274 Neo-Romanticism 277 Neo-Tantric 305 Neoclassicism 157, 173, 175, 177, 182, 216, 216, 217, 222, 223, 219 Neolithic agriculture 53 art 28-29 cultures 44, 46, 46 figurine 29 Neon, Bishop 70 Nepal art schools/museums 298 sculpture/painting 139, 139 World Crafts Council 316 Nerezi 106 Nero, emperor 66 Nesebur 185 Nesterov, Mikhail (1862-1942) 225 Nestorian Christianity 132 Netherlands 228-229, 278-279 art and commerce 117, 166 artistic influence 157, 178, 186 artistic institutions 229 artists’ travels 228, 278 colonial acquisitions 229 institutions and monuments 279 North 166, 166, 167, 167 South 168-169 Neubrandenburg 112, 172 Neumann, Balthasar 173 Neusatz 238 Neuvy-en-Sullias, wild boar 59 Nevers 103, 110 New Age 19 New Caledonia 92, 92, 312, 312, 313 art production 256 Cook’s voyage 208 Lapita pottery 51, 51 New Delhi art event 316 artistic centre 304 European town planning 304, 305, 305 Modernism 305 museums 298, 304 New Gourna 290, 291 New Granada 218 New Guinea 11, 23, 255, 312 archaeology 92 architecture 311 art production 256 artistic traditions 93 arts and crafts 310 Catholicism 207 Cook’s voyage 208 Dong Son culture 90 early settlements 16, 50, 50 Pacific art 312, 313 pottery 51, 51, 93 wood-carving 254 New Hall 164 New Hebrides, 92, 92, 93 93, 312 New Hebrides art production 256 New Ireland, Lapita pottery 51 New Mexico 263 New Orleans 212, 264, 265 Civil War site 214 plantation estates 213 New Plymouth, indigenous art 315 New South Wales, goldfields 259 New Stone Age 20 New York, auctioneers 317 New York City 212, 212 architecture 263, 264, 265 art capital 271 exhibitions 262, 262, 264 World Fair (1939) 274 New Zealand 144, 145, 258-259, 314-315 architecture 315 Cook’s voyages 208, 209 gable front 209 indigenous art 257, 315 indigenous and colonial interactions 259 Maori artists 145, 211, 258, 259, 314, 315 meeting house 257, 259, 259 Pacific art 312, 312, 313 Newark 55, 96, 97, 264 Newcastle upon Tyne 108, 163, 220, art movement 226 Newchwang 250 Newfoundland 212 Newgrange, chambered tomb 29, 29 Newlyn, art colony 220, 226, 276, 276 Newport 226 Newport Beach, art event 317 Ngawen, temple 142 Ngor, art centre Ngoyo 127, 190 Niagara Falls 212, 212, 212, 213 paintings 214 Niah 51 iron work 90 pottery 50 Niamey 126 art production 295 Niani 126 Nias, wood-carving 254, 310 Niaux 19 Nicaea 64, 79, 84 Nicaragua 261 independence 216, 216, 266 Nice 284, 285 panel painting 118 Nicholas I, Tsar 224 Nicholson, Ben 277 Nichoria 33 Nicomedia 69, 70, 106 Nicopolis 70 floor mosaics 71 Nicosta 195 Nidaros 156 Niebla, castle 118 Nieborów 159 Niello (silver sulphide) 70, 301 Niemeyer, Oscar (1907-) 261, 269 Niepolomice 159 Nieswiez 158, 159 NIFCA studio programme 273 Nigar Ilkhanid monuments 131 minaret 130 Nigde 130 Niger 290 archaeology 294 World Crafts Council 316 Niger Delta 190 Nigeria 11, 126, 191 Igbo shrine 294 Nok figures 72, 72 World Crafts Council 316 Night Watch (Rembrandt) 229 Nijmegen 102, 228 painting 117 Nikken Sekkei 290 Nikko 204 Nikopol, Judaism 184 Niksar, mosque 130 Nile 72 trade routes 72, 188, 189 Nile Delta, papyrus 69 Nile Valley 38-9, 74-5 city of Thebes 39 early cultures 36, 37, 72 sites and monuments 38, 74 Nimes 285 ecclesiastical centre 118 Nimrud 43, 43 ceramics 78 excavations 245, 245 Nindowari, early urbanism 25 Nineveh 40, 42, 43, 43, 80 Achaemenid 78 excavations 245, 245 Ningbo 250 painting/printing, 200 Ningzhou, silk production 137 Niño Korin 101, 101 Niort 110 Nipigon Lake, paintings 214 Nipissing Lake, paintings 214 Nippur 40, 41, 43 early urbanism 25 excavations 245 Nirakubo 49 pottery 48 Nisa 80, 303 Nishapur 80, 81, 83, 129, 132 madrasa 130 pottery 132, 133, 133, 195 textiles 132 Nishida 49 Nishikoko 89 Nishitan 88 Nishpur, lustre ware 131 Nisibis 80, 81 Nissan, Lapita pottery 51, 93 Nithart, Matthias (1475/80-1528) 170 Niuatoputapu, Lapita pottery 51 Niuheliang 46 Nivelles 103 Niya 86, 247 arts and crafts 302 Buddhist art 83 Nizami (Khamsa/Quintet) 194 Nizampatam, textiles 198 Nizhniy Novgorod 160 annual market 224, 225, 225 toy-making 224, 224 Nizhniy Tagil 160 Njimbo a Kalunga 191 Njoya of Bamum, wood stool and foot rest 242 Nkwalini 296 Nobi 89 Nochixtlán 98 Noguchi, Isamu (1904-88) 309 INDEX 340 iron smelting 73 kingdom 72, 73 Nok figures 72 Merrill 96 Mersa Matruh 32 Merton Abbey 220 Merv 80, 81, 83, 129, 132, 133, 196 archaeological survey 247 captured by Russians 246 carpet market 246 ceramics 78, 131 museum 298, 303 tomb 132 Merve, madrasa 130 Mesa Verde 96 Mesdag, H. W. (1831-1915) 228, 229 Mesdag, Sientje (1834-1909) 229 Mesene 80 Meserve 96 Meshed 80, 194, 195, 246 architecture 192 carpet-making 244 manuscripts 195 mosque 133, 195 museum 298 shrine 133, 194 Mesoamerica 17, 22, 26, 27 cultures 54, 54, 55, 100 Postclassic period 98 Mesolithic art 28, 28 Mesopotamia 12, 22, 25, 32, 35, 42-43, 62, 66 Abbasid capital 128, 129 Achaemenid empire 78, 78, 79 animal carvings 43 Islam 128, 128 Ottoman Possession 194, 195 Parthian expansion 80 pious gestures 78 religious imagery 42, 42 urban civilization 25, 40 Messana 65, 66, 67 Messapii peoples 65 Messe, archaeology 294 Messene, theatre 60 Messila, textiles 124 Messina 102, 109, 110 royal progress 154 Western Christendom 104 Metabetchouan 96 Metallurgy 31, 31, 60 Metalwork countries Achaemenid 78, 78, 78, 79 Aegean 60 Africa 36, 37, 72, 72, 73 British centre 164 Byzantine 106 Celtic 53 Central America 98 Central Asia 132, 133, 133, 197, 247, 303 Chinese 47, 47, 87 Danish Bronze Age 31, 31 East and Central Africa 292 Egyptian 75 European 108, 109, 110, 112, 170, 283 France 177 Greek centres 34, 35 Guangala 56 India 248, 249, 304 Japan and Korea 53, 140, 141, 205, 252 North Africa 188, 188, 240, 290-291, 291 Northern Europe 59, 116, 117 Russian 160, 160, 161, 224, 224 St Gall abbey 105 South American 56-57 Southeast Asia 90, 90, 254, 255, 310 Southern Europe 114 Spain and Portugal 178 sub-Saharan Africa 190-191 West Africa 294 West Asia 42, 43, 81, 130, 131, 195, 301, 301 Western Islam 125 Iron Age 59 techniques casting 40 decoration 52 enamel 118 ethnic/folk 239 gift-exchanges 103 industrial architecture 220, 221 jewelled 71 trade 30, 31, 68 Metaphysical painting 270, 288, 288 Metapontum 65 Meteora 106 Metjetji tomb, wall relief 38 Metsketa 80 Metz 102, 103 architecture 177 Charlemagne 104 ecclesiastical centre 116 manuscript painting 112 Meunier, Constant (1831-1905) 228, 228 Meuse 105 Mexico archaic cultures 26, 54, 98, 98 architecture 151 artistic activity 216, 217, 266, 268 Muralism 266 Northern/Greater Southwest 98 Revolution 216, 266, 266, 267 sculpture 54 World Crafts Council 317 Yaxchilán Lintel 98 Mexico City 216 art movements 216 Meydancikkâle 78 Meytens the Younger, Martin van (1695-1770) 157 Mezek, wild boar 59 Mezen’ 224, 225 Mezhirich 18 Mezin 16, 18 Miahuatlán 54 Miami 264 Mianzhou, silk production 136 Mica 97 Michelangelo (1475-1564) 95, 154, 175, 180 Micronesia 53, 92, 93, 144-145, 208, 312, 312 Middelburg 168 Middle East 12 medieval period 81 Middle Stone Age 20 Middleburg, brass engraving 117 Midland 96 Midsummer Dance (Zorn) 223 Miedzyrzecz Korecki 159 Miers, John 219 Mies van der Rohe, Ludwig 270, 271 Miharada 49 Mihr Ali (artist) 244 Mihrakert 80 Mikhailovich, Tsar Alexey 160 Milan 64, 70, 71 archbishopric 104 architecture 121, 123, 181, 182, 220, 288 art centre 154, 180, 186, 236 art collections 182 Art Nouveau 220 Arte Povera 288, 289 artists’ travels 119, 187 auctioneers 316 Counter-Reformation 180, 181 cultural centre 122 Futurism centre 270, 288 literary centre 103, 121 manuscript production 114 metalwork 109, 110, 114 nationalistic site 237 patrons and projects 121, 123, 181 S. Ambrogio 104 South Netherlands trade 169 trade centre 102, 120 Mildenhall 70, 71 Miletus 32, 33, 35, 62, 78 temple 60 Milford Haven 163 Milford Sound 259 Millais, John Everett 227 Miller 55 Millions Stand Behind Me (Heartfield) 281 Mills, Robert 213 Milton, John 162 Mimanda 88 Mimanda Higashibaru, figurines 49 Mimbres 96 Minamikata 49 Minarets 130, 132, 132 Minas Gerais 152, 153 Minas Nova 152 Mindanao 206, 254 trade 207 Minden 103, 104, 108, 172 Mindoro 254 Mine 88 Mingun, pagodas 255 Mingzhou, paper production 137 Minneapolis 262, 262 Minoan culture 31, 32-33, 33 Minsk 158, 224, 225, 272 Mints Byzantine 107, 107 Hellenestic 62-3 Parthian 80 Sasanian 81 Sutton Hoo burial 102 Western Mediterranean 64-5 see also coins Minturnae 66 Mir, Joaquim (1873-1949) 234 Mir iskusstva (journal) 225 Mira 181 Miracanguera 100, 100 Miraflores, ecclesiastical centre 118 Miran 132 Miró, Joan (1893-1983) 284, 287 Mirpur Khas, stupa 85 Miruk-sa 89 Mishe MiShyaang ma Mbul (king) 191 Misisil 50 Mison, temple 142 Mississippi (France), megalithic art 29 Mississippian culture 97, 97, 97, 148, 148 Mistra 106 Mit Rahina 38 Mitanni 42 Mithila, folk art 249 Mithradates I 80, 80 Mithradates II 80, 80 Mitla 98 Mitsubishi Corporation 300 Mitsudera 89, 89 Mitterburg 30, 31 Mittimatalik 96 Mixco Viejo 98 Mixian 138 Mixteca Alta 99 Miyake, Issey 309 Miyamaegawa 89 Miyanomae 88 Mizhou, silk production 137 Mizonoguchi 49 Mizque 100 Mjikenda, post sculptures 292 Mocha 192 Moche 53, 56, 57 culture 57 ’Decapitator God’ 57 ear spools 56 Mochudi, museum 296 Model for the Monument to the Third International (Tatlin) 271, 274 Modena 110, 122, 123 academy 182 art collection 182 Modern art 270, 277, 280 birth of 165 Italian collections 181, 182 rural sites 280 Scandinavian/Baltic galleries 273 Modernism 227, 231, 260, 261, 262, 263, 264, 264, 265, 265, 267, 272, 272, 273, 276, 279, 280, 282, 304, 305, 314 Modersohn-Becker, Paula 280 Modhera, temple 134 Modigliana 236, 237 Modoc 96 Mogadishu 126, 127, 190 Mogador 73 Mogao Caves 87 Mogollon 55 Mogollon culture 96, 97 Mimbres mortuary bowl 96 Mogontiacum 67, 69 Mohenio, museum 298 Mohenjo-Daro Dancing Girl 45 early urbanism 25 Great Bath 45 Moholy-Nagy, László 283 Mohylów 158 Moissac 110, 111 Moldavia 158, 184 religious architecture 184, 185 Moldovita 185 Molepolole, museum 296 Molfetta 110 Molino 98 Moluccas 50, 142, 143, 206, 206, 207, 207 Bronze Age 90 trade 207 Molycrion 60 Mombasa 127, 190, 191, 292 tourist/modern art 292, 293 trading post 242 wood carving 292 Monaco auctioneers 316 Principality 182 Monasteboice 103 Monasteries art vandalism 187 Balkan 184 Buddhist 84, 85, 85, 134 Burma 255 Byzantine 184 dissolution 162, 163 in Egypt 77 European 103, 109, 113 illuminated texts 103 Netherlands 166 patrons 105 relics 105 SE Europe 184-5, 185 Spanish colonial architecture 12, 151 see also specific names Monastir 124 Monchengladbach, stained glass 110, 116 Mondavio 122, 123 Mondrian, Piet (1872-1944) 278, 278 Mondsee 103 ecclesiastical centre 116 Monemvasia 107 Monet, Claude (1840-1926) 233, 233 Moneydig, megalithic art 29 Mongchon 89 Monghyr (Mongir, Monghir) 134, 198 Mongol dynasty 131, 139, 160 Mongolia, art schools/museums 298 Monk Mending Clothes 137 Monkwearmouth 102, 103 Monomotapa 190 Monongahela River 213 Monreale 110, 180, 181 Monrovia, art centre 295 Mons 69, 168, 228, 229 painting 117 Monte Sant’ Angelo 104, 111 Mont-Saint-Michel 110 Montalbán, castle 118 Montbouy, wood carving 59 Monte Albán 54, 98, 99 sculpture 54 Monte Alegre 20 Monte Cassino manuscript production 114 monastery 103, 110, 111, 111 Monte Frio, megalithic art 29 Monte Negro 54 Montealegre, castle 118 Montefeltro, Federigo da 122 Montefortino 64 Montenegro 184, 220, 238 nationalism and neovernacularism 239 Montepulciano 110, 181 Montevideo 152, 218 artistic activity 268, 269 Montezuma Castle 96 Montmorrillon 110 Montpellier 109 architecture 177 panel painting 118 university 112, 114 Montreal 212, 262, 264, 265 paintings 214 Montreal (Levant), Crusader castle 130 Montségur 112 Montu falcon-headed 39 precinct 39 Monument to Labour (Meunier) 228 Monza 103, 121 Moore, Charles 265 Moore, Henry 277 Moosbrugger, Caspar (1656-1723) 172 Mopti 290 Mor, Antonis (1516-76) 162 Morales, Eduardo (1868-1938) 217 Moran, Thomas (1837-1926) 214, 214, 215 Morandi, Giorgio (1890-1964) 288 Morando, Bernardo 158 Moravia 16-17 architecture 238 More, Thomas 163 Morella 109 panel painting 118 Morgantina 64, 65 Mori, Hanae 309 Moritzburg Lakes 280, 280, 280 Morocco 35, 189 architecture 290, 290 aristic cross-currents 290 indigenous art 240, 240 indigenous traditions 291 Muslim/Jewish refugees 188 patronage 189, 290 Sultanate 188 urban development 241 World Crafts Council 316 Morris, William 211-212, 220, 221, 227 Morse, Samuel F. B. 213 Mosaics Aachen 105 Byzantine 106, 107, 125 Central America 150 European 110 Graeco-Roman 67 Great Hunt 69 Hellenstic 62-3 Islamic 135 Italian 65, 121, 181 Mediterranean 64-5, 67, 68, 68 miniature 183 North Africa 76, 76, 77, 77 Roman 67, 70, 71, 115 Southeast Asia 255 Southern Europe 114 tile 189 Umayyad 128, 128 workshops 69, 70 Moscow architecture 160, 160, 271 art movements 275 art review magazines 282 artistic centre 160, 186 artistic cross-currents 154, 271, 282 Byzantine 106 Constructivism 283 folk art 224 Graveyard of Fallen Monuments 271 Hermitage museum 247 industrial 220 Kremlin 160 Neoclassical Michael Palace 225 noncomformist art 275 rebuilt 224 St Basil’s Cathedral 155 School of Painting and Sculpture 224, 225 Slavic revival 225 trading centre 107 urban development 186 Moser, Henry 247 Moser, Mary 165 Mosman, Heidelberg School 259 Mosna 185 Mosques Asia 193 Central Asia 133, 302 congregational 124, 125, 130, 131, 131, 132, 132 Córdoba 110, 125 four-iwan plan 130, 131 hypostyle 125, 130, 133 Maghreb 125 nine-bay 124, 125, 132 North Africa 188-189, 240, 241, 241 Ottoman 131, 245 Poland and Lithuania 158, 159 SE Europe 184, 185 South Asia 134, 198 Southeast Asia 143, 206, 254 Sub-Saharan Africa 191 West Africa 290, 294 West Asia and Egypt 128, 128, 129, 129 West Asia 130, 194, 195, 195 Western Islam 124, 125 see also Islam Moss 272 Mossi kingdoms 190 Mostaganem, textiles 124 Mostar 184 Móstoles 234 Mosul 70, 128, 129, 132, 195 metalworking 130, 131 museum 298 textiles 131 Motya 34, 64 Mougau-Bihar, megalithic art 29 Moukhtar, Mahmoud 291 Moulin 168 Moulins 154 château 116 stained glass 118 Moulmein 254 Mound City 96 Moundville 96, 97 Mount, William Sydney 213 Mount Barnett Station 314 Mount Horeb 55 Mousstafa, Ahmed (1943-) 291 Movie and TV industry 308, 309 Moxeke 57 Mozambique 127, 190, 191, 243, 260 art 292 arts and crafts 296 Mozu 89 Mozugenglar 302 Mpambo, textiles 296 Mpumalanga, Matsulu village 296 Mrauk-U, pagoda 206 Msecké Zehrovice, stone carving 59 Mshatta 128 Mtskheta 106 Muafangejo, John (1943-87) 297 Mu’awiya, Umayyad founder 128 Mubarak, ’Ali 241 Much Hadham, Henry Moore Foundation 316 Mudgee 259 Mudhera, temple 134 Muduma, mosque 131 Mughal empire 146, 192, 198, INDEX 343 Palenque 54, 55, 98, 99 Palermo 102, 109, 111, 120, 124, 131 architecture 121 monuments 182 mosaics 106, 110 nationalistic site 237 royal progress 154 textiles 125 Western Christendom 104 Palestine archaeology 298 architecture 300 British excavations 245 British Mandate 300 fine arts 300, 301 patronage 70 Palladio, Andrea 237 Pallas Athene 63 Pallavas dynasty 85 Palma 66 artists’ travels 119 metalwork 109 Palma de Mallorca alabaster 111, 118 wall painting 118 Palmerston North, indigenous art 315 Palmyra 68, 71, 80, 81, 128 trade centre 131 Palomino (historian) 179 Pamplona 110, 114, 178, 234 wall painting 118 Pamwak 50 Panakiwuk 50 Panama 152, 153 art event 317 gold-work 99 independence 216, 266 lost-wax process 55 Panama City 266 Panay 254 Panaztepe 32 Pandang 254 Pandua 198 mosque 134 Pandyas dynasty 85 Pan’gudae, rock engravings 88 Panini, Giovanni Paolo 183 Panipat 198 Panjdeh 246 Panjikent 132, 303 Buddhist art 83 Panlongcheng, archaeology 307 Pannonia 69 Pannonia Inferior 66 Pannonia Superior 66 Panopolis 74, 77 Panormus 67 Pantaran, temple 142 Panticapaeum 62, 67, 78 Greek colony 58 Panxian, archaeology 307 Papal States 122, 123, 173, 181, 182 South Netherlands trade 169 Paper-making 125, 125 Asia 193 Central and Eastern Europe 283 Chinese 95, 131, 136, 137 France 177 Japan and Korea 140, 141, 141, 193, 204, 308, 309 Mughal 199 production 132, 137 spread of 132, 136 West Asia 130, 131 Paphlagonia 62, 78 Paphos 68 Papua New Guinea 50, 50, 311, 312, 313 Papua New Guinea, World Crafts Council 316 Papunya, indigenous art 314, 315 Papyrus 69, 69, 74, 75, 78, 129 Paquimé 98 effigy mounds 98 Pará 218, 219 Paracas 57 culture 57 Paradene 81 Paraguay 234 artistic activity 219, 268, 269 Guaraní art 153 World Crafts Council 317 Paramaribo 218 Paramonga 100, 101 Paraná 219 Pampean tradition 56, 57 Paratan 81 Paray-le-Monial 110 Parchment 69, 125 Pardubice 154 Paredao 100 Paredes de Nava, artists’ travels 119 Parietal art 16-17, 16-17, 18-19, 20 Parihasapura, monastery 134 Paris 70, 71, 102, 147 architecture 270, 271 art academy 186 art centre 110, 112, 113, 154, 231, 232, 233, 236, 268, 270, 270, 284, 284, 285, 287 art collection 186, 187, 235 art event 316 Art Nouveau 220 artistic influence 115, 173, 174, 307 artistic institutions 172, 176, 233, 282 artists’ travels 119, 187 auctioneers 316 Bibliothèque Sainte-Geneviève 211 c.1650 175 c.1700 176 Catholicism 104 churches 112 cultural centre 113, 113, 116 ecclesiastical centre 116 ivory-work 109, 112 literary centre 103 palace complex 186 pilgrimage centre 111, 111 Post-Impressionism 283 salon exhibitions 187 sarcophagi 102 Surrealism 283 UNESCO project 316 university 112, 113 urban development 186 Vendôme Column 232, 233 World Fairs 283, 284 World Fair (1867) 239, 245 World Fair (1937) 274 Parma 66, 114, 123 art centre 110, 154 art collections 181, 182 papal court 180 Paros 33, 35 marble 60 pottery 283 Parpalló 19 Parris, Alexander 213 Partais 66 Parthia 52, 62, 80, 81, 82 Parthian empire 82 art style 80-81 migrations 80 Parthyene 80 Pasa Tepe 78 Pasadena 264, 264 Pasai 143, 192 Pasargadae 78 Palace P 79 Pasewalk 172 Pasiteles, silversmith 66 Paso midden 50 Passau 170 Passer, Arent (c.1560-1637) 157 Patagonia 20, 219 Patala 63 Pataliputra 53, 134 archaeology 84 trade 134 Patan mosque 134 palace 198 Patayan tradition 96 Pate 127 Pater, Walter 227 Paterno 64 Patiens, Bishop 70 Patishkhwagar 81 Patna 53 miniatures 198 museum 298 painting 248 Patne, ostrich eggshell 16 Patra, textiles 283 Patrae 66 Patrauti 185 Patrick’s Point 55 Patronage 70-71 countries Abbasid 129 Asia 299 British 162, 226-227, 277 Central Asia 196 Egypt 77 European 95, 109, 220-221 Frankish 105 German 171, 172, 230 Italian 121, 122, 180, 236 Japan and Korea 141, 204, 205 Netherlands and Belgium 229 Northern Europe 116 Ottoman 301 Portugal 155 SE Europe 184-185 South Asia 135 Southern Europe 119 Swedish 156 Swiss 231 West Africa 294 kinds of aristocratic 103, 106, 164 artistic 60 artists’ travels 119 centres 154 church 155, 166 court 105 ecclesiastical 118 industrial millionaires 237 mercantile 120 patriotism 122 royal 158, 174-175 state sponsorship 290 via tourism 291 Pattala 84, 134 Pattani 143, 207, 254 Pattaya, tourism 310 Pattinson, H. L. 213 Pau, castle 118 Paucartambo 101, 101 Paul III, pope 180, 181 Paul III & his Grandsons (Titian) 181 Paulinus of Aquileia 105 Pavia 102, 103, 109, 121, 122, 123 Catholic college 181 Counter-Reformation 180 French defeat 175 South Netherlands trade 169 Pavlov 16 Pavón 54 Pawaya, temple 85 Pawlowice 159 Pawon, temple 142 Pax Lulia 66 Paxton, Joseph 226 Payerne 110 Pazardzhik 185 Pazarli 78 Péc 195 Pech-Merle 17 Pécs 184 town-planning 238 Pedir 143 Pedra Furada, rock shelter 16, 17, 18, 19 Pedralta, megalithic art 29 Pedro Coberta, megalithic art 29 Pedro Oca 100 Pedrosa de la Vega 71 Pegasus 81 Pegu 134, 206, 254, 255 trade centre 207 Pegwell Bay 226, 226 Pei, I. M. 299 Peiligang culture 46 Peiraeus, town-planning 60 Peking 86, 307 Peláez, Amelia (1896-1968) 267 Pella 62 Peloponnesian War 52 Pelusium 74 Pemba 127 Pembroke Clare 96 Penafiel, castle 118 Penang 254 museum 298 Pende 191 Pensacola 212 Pentelikon, marble 35, 60, 67, 69 Penukonda, temple 134 People’s Art Protest Movement 309 Pepper Coast 191 Perati 32, 33 Perdida 100 Peredvizhniki 224-5 Peretu, Thraco-Getic hoard 58 Performing arts, Japan and Korea 252 Pergamum (Pergamon) 62, 63, 66, 67, 67, 68 excavations 245 Great Altar of Zeus 63 kingdom 62, 63 Peri Peri, sites 100 Pericles (general) 61 Périgueux 118 cathedral 110, 111 literary centre 103 Periperí, culture 57 Peristeria 33 Perlak 143 Perm’ 160, 160, 224 Permeke, Constant (1886-1952) 278 Permöser, Balthasar 172 Pernambuco 152, 218, 219 art centre 153 Pernstejn 154 Péronne 103 Perov, Vasily (1833-82) 224 Perovsk 246 Perpignan 109 artists’ travels 119 Perrecy-les-Forges 110 Perret, Auguste 284, 285 Persepolis 62, 74, 81 Apadana reliefs 78, 79, 79 artistic centre 78 fortified terrace 79 Parthian mint/architecture 80 Perseus decapitating Medusa 34 Persian empire 12, 52, 58, 82 Abbasid Caliphate 129 Achaemenid empire 62, 78-79 Achaemenid objects 58 and Afghanistan 244 artistic culture 193 carpet area 301 and Egypt 74 garden architecture 199 invades India 194 and Islam 128 literary language 133, 193 miniature painting 199 partition of Armenia 81 Safavid 195 Shi’i sect 194 trading routes 194 under threat 244 Persian War 52 Persis 62, 78, 80, 81 Persopolis 301 Perth 163, 164, 258 indigenous art 314 Peru 53, 95, 27 artistic activity 152, 219, 268, 268, 269, 269 Bolíva’s campaigns 218 Middle Horizon 100 Perugia 121 academy 182 altarpieces 182 fortifications 180 sculpture 114 Perugino (c.1450-?1523) 123, 175 Perusia 64 Peruzzi family 114 Pesaro 122, 123, 236 culture 180 patrons and projects 181 Peshawar 79, 81, 198, 247 archaeology 84, 85 Buddhist/Kushan art 83 Kushan capital 85 museum 298, 304 Pessac 285 Peter I (Peter the Great) 160-161 Peterborough 108, 112 Petersen, Carl-Hening 272 Petit Mont, megalithic art 29 Petra 62 excavations 245 Mamluk 131 Petraia 180, 181 Petroglyphs 16, 18, 18-19, 20-21, 83, 99 Petrograd, art centre 282 Petturoti, Emilio 268, 268 Pevensey 112, 163 Pfalzfeld, stone carving 59 Phaistos 32, 33 Phan Rang, trade 207 Pharaohs 52, 62-63 Pharsalos 60 Phasis 34 Pheidias (sculptor) 61 Phigaleia Bassai, shrine 60 Philadelphia 68 Philadelphia er-Rubayat 75 Philadelphia (USA) 212, 264 Centennial Exhibition 215, 215 Philae 72, 72, 73, 74, 74 Philip the Bold 116-117 Philip II of Spain 155 Philip IV 179, 187 Philip of Spain, royal progress 154, 155 Philip V 179 Philippi 70 Philippines 147, 234, 254, 255 arts and crafts 310 Bronze Age 90 Catholicism 207 Ice Age 16 museums 298 pottery 51 trade 91, 207 World Crafts Council 316 Philippopolis 184, 185 Phillipe Auguste, King 113 Phimal, temple 142 Phitsanulok 206 Phnom Penh 206, 207, 254, 310 museum 298 Phocaea 35 Phocaean ware 71 Phoenicia 23, 34, 34, 42, 43 artistic influence 43 colonizing by 34, 34, 35, 64 Phophnar, sculpture 85 Photography American 212, 213, 263 Central America/Caribbean 267 Chinese 250, 251 Civil War 214, 214 Daguerreotypes 213 Dutch landscape 228, 228 film-making see Movie and TV Indian centres 248 Kodak camera 214 modernist 263 Netherlands and Belgium 228, 228, 229 Pacific Islands 256, 257 photo realism 275 photo-albums 214, 219, 228, 232, 232 photo-montage 281, 283 Scandinavia and Baltic States 273 Southern Africa 297 West Africa 294, 295 in western Asia 245 Phra Prang Sam Yo, temple 142 Phrygia 43, 60, 78, 80, 81 Phrygians 34, 34 Phu Hoa, iron work 90 Phylakopi 33 Piacenza 110, 114, 182 Pianella 110 Piaosan, temple 142 Piauí 20, 269 Piazza Armerina 71, 71 Piazza S. Marco with the Cathedral (Canaletto) 183 Picabia, Francis (1879-1953) 284 Picasso, Pablo (1881-1973) 233, 235, 267, 271, 284, 285, 286, 287 Pictograms 20, 21, 54, 55 Pictographs 25, 25, 40, 54, 55 Picts 70, 102 Picturearchitecture 283 Picturesque Canada 214, 214 Piedmont 182, 182, 220 Piedra Parada 27 Piedras Negras 54, 98 Pienza 122, 123 Pierre et Gilles 285 Pietermaritzburg, art school 296, 296 Pietersburg, museum 296 Pijevija 185 Pijijiapan 54 Pikes Peak 55 Pikillaqta 101 Pilgram, Franz Anton (1699-1761) 185 Pilgrimages cult of relics 111 European routes 111, 118, 119 Japanese 141 routes in Egypt 77 routes to Mecca 128, 129, 188 Sacri Monti 182 sites 66, 77, 106, 106, 111, 119 South American centres 153 South Netherlands 169 Pils 112 Pilsen 154 Pinczow 154, 159 Pine Lawn Valley 55 Pingitkalik 96 Pinseau, Michel 290 Pinsk 158 Pinson 55 Pinto Basin 96 Pinxton 164 Piombino 123 Piotrkow 158 Pipestone 97 Piranesi, Giovanni Battista 182 Pisa 68, 71, 236 alabaster 109, 111 archbishopric 104 cathedral 110, 120 marble to North Africa 188, 189 metalwork 110 monuments 182 nationalistic site 237 sculpture 114, 121, 181 subject town 122, 180 Pisano Nicola 115 Nicolò and Giovanni 120 Pisaurum 66 Pisco 218 Pisea 70 Pisek, wall painting 116 Pisidia 78 Piska 106 Pissarro, Camille (1831-1903) 217 Pistoia 121, 180, 181 murals 110 Pistoletto, Michelangelo (1933-) 289 Pitane 32 Pithecusae 34 Pithincha 218 Pittsburgh 212, 263, 264 Pius II, pope 123 Pixian 307 Pizen, ecclesiastical centre 116 Pizenec, wall painting 116 Piziwo, archaeology 306 Placenza 181 Plain of Jars 206 Plaster 20, 21, 75, 128 Plataea, hotel 60 Platinum 96 Plato 61, 120 Playa Venado 54 INDEX 342 Noh, sculpture 85 Nohant-Vicq 110 Noirmoutier 103 Nok 126 archaeology 294 culture 73, 190 Nola 64, 66 Nolan, Sydney (1917-92) 314, 315 Nombe rockshelter 50 Non Nok Tha 50, 51 Nonantola 103 Nongpo-dong 49 Nopo-dong 88 Nora 64 Nora Velha, megalithic art 29 Nördlingen, ecclesiastical centre 116 NORDPLUS 273 Nordström, Karl 272 Norfolk Island 312 Norham 108, 226 Noricum 66, 69 Norman conquest 108 Norrköping 156, 157, 222, 272 Norrtalje 273 North Adamas 264 North Africa 34, 64, 76, 77, 94, 188, 189, 240-241, 290-291 architecture 290 artistic influences 12, 124, 125, 188, 291 christianity 76, 77 colonialism 240, 241, 290-291 continuity and change 76 cultural life 290-291 and Islam 124, 128, 188, 240 pottery 76 trade 76, 125 and West Asia 124, 125 North America 26, 54-55, 96-97, 148-149, 212-213, 214-215, 262- 263, 264-265 culture areas of cultural influence 55 art collections 214, 215 art and the earth 265, 265 artists’ travels 214, 263 exhibitions 262, 264, 264, 265 forms 97 indigenous artefacts 26, 27, 215 major archaeological sites 96 National monuments 214 temple mound sites 97 European exploration 148 path to modernization 262 railroads 214, 214 taming the wilderness 214 tribes 26, 55, 55, 97, 97, 97, 148, 149, 211, 215 Buffalo Horn Society headdress 148 Chilkat coat 149 North Korea 307, 308, 308 20th Century 308 museums 298 North Netherlands 166, 166, 167, 167 North Richmond, Heidelberg School 259 North Sea trade route 102, 102 Viking route 104 Northampton, architecture 276 Northern Europe 58-59, 94, 108- 109, 112-113, 116-117 art in the regions 108 art and trade 109 cultural centre of Paris 113 long-distance trade 112 spread of Celtic culture 59 trade and culture 58, 116 Northumbria 102 Norton 55 Norway 156, 156, 169, 222, 222 art in a globalized world 273 arts movement 220, 273 exchange programmes 273 Lutheran 154 museums 272 North Netherlands trade 167 World Crafts Council 316 Norwich 164 artists’ colony 276 castle 108, 108 ecclesiastical centre 116 manuscript painting 112 metalwork 109, 112 Nosara 54 Nosy Manja 127 Nottingham 112, 116, 163, 276 Nouméa, Pacific art 312, 313 Nouveaux Réalistes 285 Nova Scotia 212 Novara 110 Novaya Zemyla 161 Novgorod 156, 157, 222, 224, 225 architecture 160 artistic cross-currents 154 Byzantine 106, 107 Hanseatic League 160 sculpture109 Noviodarum 66 Noviomagus 67 Novonikolayevsk 224 Novosibirsk 161 Nowogredek 158 Nowy Wisnicz 159 Noyon 110 Nsukka, arts and crafts 294, 295 Nswatugi Cave 16 Nubia 37, 37, 72, 74, 78 Nubian Desert 38, 38, 188 Nuceria 66 Nuenen 228 Nuevo Lareda, art movement 216 Nuggihalli, temple 134 Nuk-Do 88 Nukus arts and crafts 302 museum 302, 303, 303 Numa 88 Numantia 64 Numidia 66, 69 Numidians 64 Numinous Beast (Arnott) 297 Nunguvik 96 Nupe 190 Nuraghic art 34, 34 Nuremberg 220, 230 academy 172, 186 architecgture 281 arts centre 154, 158, 170 auction houses 187 ecclesiastical centre 116 metalwork 112 printmaking 171 sculpture 170, 170, 171 Nuri 37, 72, 73 Nushijan 43 Nusretiye Mosque 245 Nyamwezi 191 Nyanga art centre 297 museum 296 Nyirátor 1855 Nymphaeum, Greek colony 58 Nyrup 31 Oak Grove 96 Oakham 108 Oakland 262 Oamaru 259 Oaxaca 54, 99 Muralism 266 Oberaden, Dacian phalerae 58 Óbidos, castle 118 O’Brian, Lucius 214 Obsidian 54, 55, 97, 98 Oc Eo, archaeology 91, 91 Occidentalism 159 Ochrida 106 Ocmulgee 97 Oconto, burial site 26, 27 Ocros art 101 Octavian (later emperor Augustus) 66 Odawara 140 Odense 273 Oder 70, 71, 102, 107 Odessa 160, 225 art colony 282 art movements 275 art studio 224, 224 Odessus 62 Odyssey fresco 67 Oea 65 Oenpelli, bark painting 314, 314 Öensköldsvik 272 Off to War (Savitsky) 224 Offeln 104 Ofu Island, Lapita pottery 51 O’Gorman, Juan (1905-82) 267 Oguz, Scythian burials 58 Ogyozuka 49 Ohatadai 49 Ohio, Serpent Mound 26 Ohrum 104 Oiticica, Hélio 269 Ojibwa tribe 212, 213 Ojo Gaureña 20, 21 Okaku 89 Okaukuejo, museum 296 Okayama 140, 141 O’Keeffe, Georgia (1887-1986) 263, 263 Oker 104 Oki II 88 Okigwi, archaeology 294 Oksong-ni 49, 88 Okvik peoples 53 Oland 156 Olary 16 Olbasa 66 Olbia 34, 62, 67 Greek colony 58 Old Dongola 72 Old Fort 97 Old Urgench 196 Oldenburg 230, 230 Oleneostrovski Cemetery 21 Olenii Ostrov 28 Olite, castle 118 Ollantaytambo 218 Oller, Francisco (1833-1917) 217 Oloron 118 Olot, textiles 234 Olsen-Chubbock 96 Olximché 98 Olympia 35, 62 cult centre 60, 60 Olymthus 60 Olynthus 62 Oma Porco 100 Omaha, World Fair 215 Oman 41, 129, 301 art schools/museums 298 Omana 134 Omega Workshop 276 Omiya 89 Omori 49 Omsk 224 museum 298 Onega, Lake 21, 21, 160, 161 Oni of Ile-Ife 127 Onion Portage 96 Onobulu, Aina (1882-1963) 294 Oostend, art collection 279 Opet Festival 39 Opium Wars 248, 250, 250, 251 Oporto 104, 234 architecture 110, 178, 220 sculpture 235 Oppenheim, ecclesiastical centre 116 Oradea 185 Oran 290 textiles 124 trade centre 178 Orange, ecclesiastical centre 118 Orbais 110 Orccha miniature paintings 198 Rajput cenotaphs 199 Orchomenos 32, 33 Orduna, ecclesiastical centre 118 Örebro 272 Orël 160, 224, 225 Orenburg 160, 196 Orford 108 Orientalism 159, 247 Greek 35 Oriximiná 100 Orkney 104 megalithic art 29 Orléans 103, 174 art centre 154, 175 castle 116 murals 110 pilgrimage route 111 university 112 Orlovo, Dacian phalerae 58 Oropos, theatre 60 Orozco, José Clemente (1883- 1949) 266, 267 Orsza 158 Orthodox religion churches 158, 159 Eastern 154 eastern attitudes to art 154 principalities 106 status in SE Europe 184-5, 185 Turkish rule 184 Ortospana, site of hoard 82 Orvieto 65 cathedrals 114, 120, 121 court 122, 123 metalwork 144 Orville 104 Osaka 204, 204, 205, 252 art centre 309 cultural centre 308 museum 299 woodblock printing 192, 205 Osan-ni, masks 49 Osca 66 Osceola, burial site 26, 27 Oseberg 109 Ösel 156, 157 Osh 246 Oshogbo, arts and crafts 294, 295, 295 Osijek 185 Osiris, god of afterlife 38 Osküb 184 Oslo 220, 222, 222 art college 273 Metaphysical painting 270 palace 186 Vigeland Park 272, 273 Osnabrück 103 Osrhoene, kingdom 80 Ostend 220, 228, 229 Ostergotland 154 Ostia 64, 67, 68, 69, 69 court 122, 123 floor mosaics 71 Ostrich, eggs 16, 32, 33 Ostróg 158 Ostrogoths, kingdom 70 Otago, goldfields 259 Otaki, Maori art 259 Otero, Alejandro 268, 269 Othon of Greece 238 Otok 109 Otranto 180, 181 archbishopric 104 Otrar 132, 133, 302 Otsuka-Saikachido 88 Ottawa 264 Ottedo 279 Otterlo 279 Otterton 163 Otto III 105 Ottoman empire 120, 121, 122, 146, 154, 155, 158, 159, 160, 182, 192, 220, 282 architecture 131, 185, 185, 194-195, 195 artistic influence 131 greatest extent 184 mosques 131, 195, 195 North Africa 188, 240, 240 patronage 196, 301 principalities 131 royal design studios 195, 195 Sub-Saharan Africa 191 trade and culture 194-5, 240 under threat 244 and West Asia 194-195, 244- 245, 301 Ottonian dynasty 104, 104, 105 Ottowa, paintings 214 Ouagadougou, arts and crafts 294, 295 Oud, J. J. P. 278 Oudenaarde 168 Oudna 76 Oujda, textiles 124 Oulu, art gallery 273 Ouro Preto 152 art and architecture 153, 153 church of Sao Francisco 152 Oursler, Tony 260 Outeidat, pottery 36 Ove Arup and Partners 300 Oviedo 102, 234 architecture 110, 154 industrial 220 wood sculpture 118 Owl Creek 97 Owo 190 archaeology 294 Owrucz 158 Oxford 163, 164 art movements 220, 226, 276 Ashmolean Museum 247 ecclesiastical centre 116 university 112 Oxyrhynchus 74, 76, 77 Oyamato-Yanagimoto 89 Oyo 126, 190, 191 Oyu 48, 49 Ozakidai 88 Ozette 55, 96 Ozono 89 Ozuka 89 Paa Ya Paa, tourist/modern art 292, 293 Paarp Karup 31 Pach, Walter 216 Pachacama 56, 57, 100, 101 Pachacuti Inca Yupanqui 101 Pacheco 101 Pachipamwe artists workshop 296 tourist/modern art 292, 293 Pachuca 98 Pacific 10, 11, 50, 51, 92-93, 144- 145, 208-209, 256-257, 312-313 art production 256, 313 art and Surrealism 284 colonigrants, missionaries and producers 256, 257 Padang, gold workshops 206, 254 Paderborn 102, 112, 172 metalwork 108, 109 palace complex 104 Padrao, megalithic art 29 Padua Giotto’s work 120, 121 patrons and projects 121, 123 subject town 122, 180 town planning 181 university 120 Paekche kingdom 89, 89 Paestum 65, 182 Pagan areas 106 art 71, 120 museum 298 Pagan (Burma) arts and crafts 310 lacquerware 255 religious site 206, 254 stupa 142, 143 Pago Pago, Pacific art 312 Pagodas see Buddhism, stupas Pahang, museum 298 Paik, Nam June (1932-) 260, 309 Paimio 272 Paint Peninsula 96 Painting bark 314, 315 calligraphic 291, 301 Greek vase 34, 35 important workshops 170 Korean ink 309 Metaphysical 270 Nihonga School 307, 309 yoga 309 Paintings countries Achaeminid 78 Australia 258, 259 China 136 India 84, 85, 304 Italian 65, 120 Italian cycles 121, 123, 181 Japan and Korea 140, 204, 204, 205, 205 Mediterranean schools 67, 68, 68 Netherlands 166, 167, 168, 168, 169, 169 North Africa 76 Northern Europe 116, 116, 117 Russian 224-225 South America 153 Southeast Asia 310, 311, 311 Southern Europe 118 Spain and Portugal 179, 179 West Africa 294-295 West Asia 194 Western Mediterranean 64-65 general Biblical history 167 calligraphic 291 on canvas 194 encaustic 183 fan 141 historical 224 Ice Age 16-21 militia 167 miniatures 105, 198, 199, 248, 302, 304 oil on copper 168 orientalist 247 religious see Religious royal portraits 81 scroll 140 slip- 57 wall paintings see Frescoes water-colours on linen 168 Pair-non-Pair 17 Paitava, Kushan art 82 Pakistan art movements 298, 304, 305 World Crafts Council 316 Pakpattan, mosque 134 Palace of Westminster 227 Palace/castle sites Aegean 32 associated with Romanticism 226 British 67, 164 China 136 English Renaissance 163 European 108, 109, 110, 186 Germany 172 great estates 164 Hellenistic 62-3 Italian 110, 121, 123, 181 Japan and Korea 89, 140, 204, 204, 205 Northern Europe 116 Poland/Lithuania 159 Sasanian 81 Scandinavia 157 Scotland 162 South Asia 198 Southeast Asia 254, 255, 255 Southern Europe 114, 118 Spain 178-179 West Asia 40, 42, 43 Western Christendom 104 Western Mediterranean 64-5 Palaeolithic art 16-17, 16-17, 18- 19, 24, 28 Palaikastro 33, 33 Palampet, temple 134 Palau 145, 312 Palawan, Bronze Age 90 Palekh 275 Palembang 142, 206, 207, 254 Palencia 234 art centre 154 artists’ travels 119 ecclesiastical centre 118 university 114, 115 INDEX 345 Rajgriha 84 Rajput dynasty 198, 199 Raków 158 Raleigh 212 Ram Hurmizd 81 Rambla de Santa Coloma 234 Ramesses II, temple 39 Ramesses III, temple 39 Ramesvaram 134 Ramingining, indigenous art 314, 315 Ramla 128, 128 Ramsgate 226, 226 Ramtek, sculpture 85 Ramu River 50 Rana Ghundai, early urbanism 25 Rance 168, 168 Ranchillos 100 Rangmahal, imagery 85 Rangoon 254, 255 museum 298 Rangpur, early urbanism 25 Rano Raraku volcano 145, 145 Rapa Nui see Easter Island Raphael (1483-1520) 154, 174, 180, 180, 214, 237 Raqchi 100 Raqqa 128, 129 ceramics 130 Rarotonga, Pacific art 312 Rasinari 185 Rastrelli, Bartollomeo 161 Rat Buri, ceramics 310 Ratisbon 102, 103, 104 Ratnagiri, stupa 134 Ravel, wall painting 118 Ravello 110 Ravenna 70, 70, 71, 71 archbishopric 104 ecclesiastical ruins 102 literary centre 103 Ravensburg, ecclesiastical centre 116 Ravenusa 110 Rawa 158 Rawalpindi, Dacian phalerae 58 Rawlinson, Sir Henry 245 Rayy 81, 128, 129 lustre ware 131 Razet, megalithic art 29 Reading Arts and Crafts 226 sculpture cycle 108 Realism 13, 222, 224, 231, 261, 274-275, 286, 283, 289 Rebecq 229 Rebull, Santiago (1829-1902) 217 Rechenberg 238 Recife 152, 218, 219, 268 art centre 153 Reculver 102 Red River Settlement 212 Redhill 226, 226 Redon 103 Reef Islands, Lapita pottery 51 Reformation 154, 156, 162, 170, 171, 181, 230 centres 158 Counter- 158, 168, 171, 180, 181, 182, 185 post-Counter 183 Regensburg 108, 170 ecclesiastical centre 116 Reggio, archbishopric 104 Reggio Calabria 180, 181 Rego, Paula (1935-) 287 Rehme 104 Reichenau 103 book production 104 murals 108 Reidy, Affonso Eduardo (1909-64) 269 Reims 103, 110, 285 archbishopric 104 cathedral 112, 113 architecture 177 ecclesiastical centre 116 stone carving 59 Religious architecture 76, 77, 184, 184- 185, 185, 192, 193, 196, 197, 207, 270, 271 art 18, 42, 42, 77, 83, 136, 137, 171 cults 68, 106 diversity 106, 192, 192, 193 imagery 42, 106 patronage 121 persecutions 81 rites 67 sites Egyptian 38 South American 56, 57, 100, 101 Rembrandt (1606-69) 166, 167, 193, 229 Remington, Frederic 214 Remojadas 54 Ren Xiong (1820-57) 251, 251 Renaissance countries English 163 France 174-175 Germany 170, 171 Hungary 165 Italy 180, 183 Poland/Lithuania town halls 159 Scotland 162 Spain 178 Switzerland 171 USA 263 culture academic system 182 architecture/style 155, 224, 238 cultural authority 236 ’high art’ 155, 158, 174, 180 revival 236 René of Anjou (d.1480) 119 Rennes 55 architecture 174, 177 panel painting 116 Renoir, Auguste (1841-1919) 236, 233 Renwick, James 213 Repair Work on the Railroad (Savitsky) 224 Repin, Ilya (1844-1930) 224-5 Repton, Humphry (1752-1818) 221 Réseau Guy Martin 19 Resen Mose 21 Resinár 185 Resolute 96 Reszel 158 Reus, textiles 234 Rev Ardashir 81 Reväl 107, 156, 157 Revel’ 160, 222, 224, 225 Revivalist designers 239 Reykjavik 272 Reynolds, Joshua 165 Reza (painter) 195 Reza, Muhammad 301 Rhagae 78, 80, 80, 81 Rhamnous, theatre 60 Rhegion 65 Rhegium 65, 67 Rhine River, trade route 102, 102 Rhineland 28 Rhode 64 Rhodes architecture 195 art centre 35, 62, 66, 68 Byzantine 106 island state 63 Minoan fresco 33 pottery 32, 60, 283 trade centre 67 Rhodesia, stone ruins 127 Rhône River, trade route 102, 103 Rhuddan 112 Rhyl Sands 226 Ribat 124 Ribat Sharaf 132 Ribat-i Eshq 133 Ribat-i Malik 132 Ribat-i Qarabil 133 Ribat-i Qelli 133 Ribat-i Safid 133 Ribe 109 Ribera, Jusepe de (1591-1652) 179 Ribnica 185 Richelieu, cardinal 174, 175 Richmond (Australia), Heidelberg School 259 Richmond (Britain) 108 Richmond (Lesotho) 296 Richmond (US), Civil War site 214 Richter, Gerhard 281 Richtoven, Ferdinand von 247 Ridar 198 Riemenschneider, Tilman 170 Rietveld, Gerrit (1888-1964) 278, 279 Rievaulx 162, 163 Rif tribes 189 Riga 107, 154, 156, 157, 160, 220, 222, 225 contemporary art 273 museum 272 studio programmes 273 Rijeka 185 Rila 184 Rimabánya, wall painting 116 Rimini 122, 122 patrons and projects 123 Ringsaker 108 Ringsted, wall painting 116 Río Azul 54 Río Bec 98 Río Claro 98 Rio de Janeiro, artistic activity 153, 218, 219, 268, 269, 269 Río de la Plata 218 Rio Frente 269 Río Grande 54 Río Magdalena 56 Río Seco 27 Rio Tinto mines 64 Río Viego, pottery 54, 54 Río Viejo 98 Riom, stained glass 118 Ripoli 110 Ripon 102, 103 Rippoll 234 Rishtan, arts and crafts 302 Risinium 66 Rivera, Diego (1886-1957) 217, 266, 267 Riyadh 128 architecture 301 museums 298 Robbins 55 Rocamadour 110 Rochdale 163 Rochefort 168 Rochester 108, 108 Rock art 16, 17, 18, 18, 19, 20-21, 20-21, 23, 24, 26, 28, 43, 53 Africa 36, 36, 37, 72, 73, 126, 126 Bedolina rock carving 30 Caribbean 99 Pan’gudae engravings 88 and raw materials 30 Sasanian 81, 81 traditions 31 Rock Eagle 97 Rock shelters 20-21 Rococo movement 157, 179 Roda, temple 134 Roda da Ribagorça 110 Rodez, wall painting 118 Rodin, Auguste (1840-1917) 236 Roebling, John A. 212, 213 Rogalin 159 Rogers, Richard 277 Rogozen, Achaemenid objects 58, 58 Rokhuadh 81 Rolling Bay 55 Roman Catholic church in Asia 193 Caribbean 216 Central America 216 Eastern Europe 282 Germany 230 Italy 182 SE Europe 184, 184, 185 Southeast Asia 207 Western Christendom 104 culture archbishoprics 158 attitudes to art 154, 155, 171 Byzantine art 106 patronage 158, 181 priests’ colleges 181 Jesuit centres 158, 168, 181 Oratorians 181 see also Reformation Roman Empire 52, 58 art 68, 70, 71 colony and empire 66, 67 control of Egypt 74 cultural authority 236 culture 12, 67 disintegration 70, 70, 94, 102 and environment 69 floor mosaics 71 frontier 73, 76 Hellenic influence 66, 66 partition of Armenia 80, 81 sarcophagi 71 trade 69, 81 Roman Republic 65 Romanesque style 110 Romania 185, 220 architecture 238, 282 diaspora of artists 283 nationalism and neovernacularism 239 Romano, Giulio 171, 180 Romanov, Mikhail 160 Romanov dynasty 194, 282 Romanticism 219, 220, 220, 221, 222, 223, 226, 226, 228, 231, 272 Rome 64, 65, 67, 68 alabaster 109 ancient sites 182 art academy 187 art centre 154, 180, 181, 182, 288 art collections 183, 231 Arte Povera 288, 289 artistic capital 183, 183 artistic influence 173, 236, 236, 270 artists’ club 288, 288 artists’ travels 187 artworks 65, 69, 71 auctioneers 316 book production 103, 104, 114 bronze doors 111 building materials 53 Christendom’s capital 181 churches 70, 104, 110, 121 city 66, 66, 67 controlled from Paris 220 Counter-Reformation 180 cultural centre 122, 288, 289 cultural/political influence 65, 102, 110, 157 ecclesiastical remains 102 excavations 183 French Academy 176, 177 glass-making 71 growth of city 66 looting 52-3 monuments and works 182, 183, 237 museums 183 music 180 Mussolini and the rebuilding 289 palace complex 104, 180 Pantheon 74, 103 patrons and projects 66, 123, 181, 182 printing 180 renovation/restoration/ preservation 183 sack of 154, 175 sculpture 114 stone deposits 69 trade 76, 85, 131 university 120 urban development 186 Vatican 180, 182 Romero, Carlos Orozco (1896- 1984) 267 Romney 163 Romsey 108 Roncesvalles 111, 118 Ronchamp 270, 271, 285 Ronzano 110 Roosevelt, Franklin D. 263 Roquepertuse 64 stone carving 59 Rorke’s Drift 296, 297 Rosales, Eduardo (1836-73) 234 Rosario 219 Roscoff 109, 111 Roscommon 112 Roscrea 112 Rosenborg palace 156, 157 Rosenkians Ferry 96 Rosetta 195 Rosetta Stone 245, 245 Roshen monastery 185 Roskilde 154, 157, 273 ecclesiastical centre 116 wall painting 116 Roslin, Alexander (1718-1793) 157 Rossi, Karl 224-225 Rosso Fiorentino (1494-1540) 175 Rostock 230 Rostov 160 metalwork 224, 224, 225 Rothenburg, ecclesiastical centre 116 Rotorua indigenous art 315 Maori art 259, 312 Rotterdam 168, 228 architecture 278, 279, 279 art centre 278 art event 316 artistic institutions 229 artists 166 Constructivism 270 shipyard 166, 220 Roudnice nad Labem, wall painting 116 Rouen 71, 103, 110 archbishopric 104 art centre 154 ecclesiastical centre 116 porcelain 177 stained glass 110, 116 Rousseau, Henri 233 Rousseau, Jean-Jacques 173 Rovaniemi 272 Roy, Jamini (1887-1972) 248, 304 Royal Academy of Arts 165, 227 Royal College of Art 277 Rozdot 158 Rozwi 191 Rubens, Sir Peter Paul (1597-1640) 162, 162, 168-169, 175, 182 Rudi 185 Rudolph II, emperor 155, 156, 187 Rugendas, Johann Moritz 218, 219 Ruha 128 Rukupo, Raharuhi (c.1800-1873) 259 Rungléo, megalithic art 29 Runzhou 136 Ruoqiang 302 Rupar coins 84 early urbanism 25 Ruralism 276 Rus, and Byzantium 106-107, 107 Rusaddir 64 Rusape, mission art school 296 Rusazu 66 Ruse 130, 185 Rusguniae 66 mosaics 76, 77 Rusinol, Santiago (1861-1931) 234 Ruskin, John 221, 227, 237 Russell, Charles 214 Russia 160-161, 222, 224-225, 274- 275 culture archaelogy 247 art centres 225 art movements 223, 275 art schools/museums 298 art and social tensions 13, 224-225 artistic influence 307 artists’ homes 224 artists’ travels 225 official artistic influence 223 patronage 225 pre-Revolutionary to PostSoviet art 275 rise of Moscow 160 Socialist Realism 283, 283 Union of Artists 274 diaspora of artists 283 politics and Central Asia 196, 246, 246 Communism 298, 302 European Western 160 expansion 161, 161, 244 and Napoleon 224 and Poland/Lithuania 158, 158 serfdom 225, 225 and the Soviet Union 13, 274-275 Postglacial 21 religion Eastern Orthodox 154 Orthodox principalities 106 trade North Netherlands 167 routes 102, 195, 224, 225 Russian empire 159, 161, 220, 224 architecture 238 borders 196, 282 expansion 244 under threat 244 Rustamids 124, 129 Rustenburg, art school 296 Rutak 302 Ruthenia 158 Ruthwell 103 Ruzhou, kiln site 137 Ryazan’ 160, 224 Rydzyna 159 Rye Harvest (Malevich) 274 Ryggen, Hannah 273 Rytwiany 159 Rzeszów 159 S. Francesco 120 S. Lorenzo 123 S. Maria ad Martyres 103 SS Peter and Paul, Kozhevniki church 107 Sa el-Hagar 38 Sa Huynh culture 90, 90, 91 Saadi (poet) 197 Saami 156 Saarbrucken 281 Saarinen Eero 265, 299 Eliel 221 Saatchi, Charles 277 Sabadell 234 Sabah, museum 299 Sabara 153 Sabbioneta 180, 181 Sabratha 65, 68, 70, 71 mosaics 76, 77 Sabzevar, minaret 130 Sachetti, Juan Bautista 179 Sachsen-Weimar-Eisenach, Grand Duchy 231 Sacremento 212 Sadang-ri 204 Sa’dian dynasty 189 Safavid empire 192, 192, 197 border 196 patronage 196 trade and culture 194-195 West Asia 194-5 Saffarid rulers 132 Safi 290 Saga 302 Sagaing arts and crafts 310 Kaunghmudaw pagoda 206, 206 Sagalassus 78 Sagrada Familia (Gaudí) 235 Sagrera, Guillem (d.1454) 119, 119 Sagua la Grande 266 Saguntum 64 Sahagún 110, 118 Sahara 70, 71, 188, 189, 290 Berber dynasty 124 rock art 24, 36, 37 trade patterns 240 Sai, temple 37 Said, Maahmoud (1897-1964) 291 INDEX 344 Plës 225, 255 Pliny 122 Pljevija 185 Pl/ock metalwork 108 religions 154, 158, 159 Plovdiv 130, 185 Plymouth 163, 164 Poblet 110 ecclesiastical centre 118 Podensac 285 Podhorce 159 Podolski 158 Poesia (journal) 288, 288 Poggio a Caiano 122, 123, 181 Pohrebyszcze 158 Poissy 270, 285, 285 Poitiers cathedral 110 ecclesiastical remains 102 literary centre 103 pilgrimage route 111 print-making 118 Polana Baiceni, Thraco-Getic hoard 58 Poland 169, 170 architecture 282 Catholic 104, 106 Christendom 105 diaspora of artists 283 and Electorate of Saxony 173 High Modernism 283 Latin rite 106 and Lithuania 158-9 multiethnicity 158 North Netherlands trade 167 Occidentalism 159 Orientalism 159 and Russia 160 Sarmatism 159 Stanisaw Poniatowski collection 187 Poland-Lithuania 154 Polawy 159 Polenov, Vasely (1844-1927) 224-5 Poligny, ecclesiastical centre 116 Polke, Sigmar 281 Pollentia 66 Polo, Marco 10 Polo de Allande, megalithic art 29 Polock 158, 159 Polotsk 108 Poltava 160, 282, 282, 283 Polybius 65 Polynesia 23, 51, 53, 92, 93, 94, 95, 144, 144, 145, 209, 313 Pomaria 124 Pomerania 156, 158, 170, 222, 230 Pompasa 110 Pompeii 64, 66, 66, 67, 68, 182, 183 Pomuigusok 88 Poncé 110 Pondicherry, trade centre 192 Ponferrada 118 Ponghwang 89 Pont d’Ambon 20 Pont-Aven, art colony 220, 232, 233 Pontefract, castle 116 Pontianak, mosque 254 Pontigny 110 Pontus 66, 69, 80, 81 kingdom 58 Poole 109, 163 Poona, textiles 207 Pop Art 273, 277, 286 Pope, Alexander 164 Pöppelmann, Matthäus Daniel 172 Populism 216 Populonia 64 Porcelain Asia 193 British 164, 227 Central Asia 303 Chinese 136, 139, 141, 200, 202-203 French 177, 177, 221, 232 Japan and Korea 205 Russian 160, 161 Song 130 Porcuna 64 Porec 71 Pori 272 Porphyry 38, 74, 229 Port Arthur (China) 250 Port Arthur (USA) 262 Port aux Choix 55 Port Elizabeth, art gallery 296 Port Guinea 243 Port Hedland, rock art 50 Port Hope, paintings 214 Port Moresby 312, 313, 313 Port of Spain 267 Port Sunlight (housing) 221 Port-au-Prince 266 Port-Vila, Pacific art 312 Portable art 16-17, 16-17, 18-19, 18-19, 20-21, 20-21, 33, 58, 69, 97, 286 Portalegre 154 Porter 55 Pórtici 182 Portland 212, 265 Portland Bill, coins 58 Porto 154 Porto Alegre 152, 153, 219, 268, 269 Porto Seguro 152, 153 Porto-Novo, arts and crafts 294 Portoferraio 180 Portrait of the Duce (Dottori) 289 Portrait of a Man (van Eyck) 117 Portraits Italian 123 medals 122, 123 Netherlands 166 Portsmouth 163 Portugal 18, 178-179, 234-235, 286-287 culture architecture 235 artistic influences 12, 179, 188, 287 artistic patronage 155 monumental art 235 painting and sculpture 118, 179 portable art 234, 286 settlements in Africa 190, 191 politics Miguelista upheavals 234 and North Africa 188, 189 Peninsular War 234 and SE Asia 143 trade in Asia 192, 192 South Netherlands 169 trade routes 154, 178, 190, 234 travel routes 190 World Crafts Council 316 Portzamparc, Christian de 285 Posada, José Guadalupe (1851- 1913) 217 Poseidon, Kouros dedication 35 Poseidonia 34, 64, 65 Posen 230 Post, Frans 153 Postglacial period 20-21, 20-21 Post-modernism 272, 300 Postyen 238 Poto-Poto, tourist/modern art 292, 293 Potosí 152, 153, 218, 219 art centre 153 depiction of silver mountain 153 Potsdam 280 Pottery countries Aegean 60 African 36, 71, 72, 72, 73, 102 Attic 60, 61 British 227 Caribbean 99, 99 Central Asia 45, 133, 247, 303 Chinese, 46, 46, 47, 87, 139, 147, 200, 202, 306 East and Central Africa 292 Egyptian 75 Etruscan 65 European 102, 283 France 177 Graeco-Roman 68 Ice Age 18, 18 India 249 Italian terracotta 65 Japanese 46, 48, 48, 88, 140, 299 Korean 48, 48, 193, 204 Mesoamerica 54 Mesopotamian 129 Mycenaean 32, 33 Neolithic 306 Netherlands 166 North Africa 24, 76, 76, 76, 188, 188, 240, 240, 290, 291, 291 North America 26, 55, 97 Ottoman 194, 195 Pacific and Indonesia 51, 92, 93, 93, 93, 95, 256 Phocaean 71 Scandinavia and the Baltic States 272 South American 27, 56-57, 100-101 South Asia 198 Spanish 64 Sub-Saharan Africa 36, 126-127, 190 West Africa 294 general clay figurines 29, 48, 49, 54 earthenware 164 fritted 130 greyware 54 kiln sites 136, 137, 138, 140, 141, 200, 202, 204, 205, 206, 250, 252 Lapita 23, 50, 51, 51, 51, 92, 93, 93 lustre ware 131 masks 48, 72 Mimbres 96, 97 Nok figures 72, 72 pilgrim flask 76 polychrome bowl 240 slip decoration 76, 133, 133 stoneware 164 terracotta cart 45 workshops 69 stoneware 89 West Asia 130 see also ceramics, porcelain Poussin, Nicholas (1594-1665) 175, 175, 182 Poverty Point 26, 27, 96 Powers, Hiram 213 Poznan architecture 159, 230 art centre 154, 282 religion 158 Pozsony 185 Praaspa 80 Prabhasa, temple 134 Praeneste 64, 65, 67 bronzes 65 Prague 109 architecture 283 art centre 186, 187 art collection 172, 282 art colony 282 Art Nouveau 220 art review magazine 282 art vandalism 187 artistic influences 173 artists’ trave 187 arts centre 154, 156, 170, 281 Bazaar of Modern Art 283 Biennial 316 court centre 154 Czech Eight 282 ecclesiastical centre 116 manuscript painting 112 town planning 238 Praha Sarka, wild boar 59 Prambanan 206 temple 142, 143, 254, 310 Prampolini, Enrico (1894-1977) 289 Pratolino 181 Prazsmár 185 Pre-Raphaelites 226, 227, 237 Preah Koh, temple 142 Predmostí 16 Preii Nokor 206 Prejmer 185 Premostratensians, Jászó monastery 185 Preobrazhenski monastery 185 Preslav 106 Pressburg 238 Preston, Margaret (1875-1963) 314 Pretirua, community art centres 297 Pretoria art museum 296 art school 296, 297 Preuilly 110 Previati, Gaetano (1852-1920) 288 Priene 62, 78 town-planning 60 Primaticcio, Francesco 175 Primitivism 216, 217 Prince Ruper 96 Princess Khovanskaia and Mlle Khrushcheva (Levitsky) 160 Principe I 190 Princzów 158 Printing Asia 192, 193 China 12, 95, 136, 137, 139, 147, 200, 200, 202, 250, 251 France, 174, 177 Germany 170 Italian centres 180 Italy 171 Japan and Korea 204 with movable type 194 Northern Europe 116 Russian 160 Southern Europe 118 see also paper-making Printmaking European 147, 154, 154 Germany 170, 171 Italy 171 Japan and Korea 309 lithography 251, 309 map-making 167 Netherlands 166, 166, 167 Northern Europe 116 silkscreening 309 South America 269 South Netherlands 168, 169 Southern Europe 118 Switzerland 170 tinted 183 West Africa 294 woodblock 192, 193, 204, 205, 252, 253, 309, 309 Pristina 185 Pritzker Architecture Prize 299, 316 Prizren 185 Proconnesian, sarcophagi 68 Proconnesus 35, 68 marble 107, 107 Prokudin-Gorski, Sergei Mikhailovich (1863-1943) 247 Prome 254, 255 Prostejov 154 Prouvé, Jean 285 Provence 120, 121 and the Papacy 118 Provins 110 Prowosze 158 Prüm 103 Prussia 160, 169, 230 North Netherlands trade 167 and Poland/Lithuania 158, 158, 159 Przedbórz 158 Przemysi 158 Pseira 33 Pskov 106, 157, 160, 224, 225 Ptah, god of artists 38 Ptoion Mt, temples 60 Ptolemaic empire 52, 62, 66, 73, 74 Ptolemais 62, 76 Ptolemais Hermiou 74 Ptolemy 74 Ptolemy II 62 Ptolemy Soter 62 Ptolemy XII 75 Pucará 56, 57, 57, 100 Puebla, art movements 216, 217, 266 Pueblo Bonito 96 Puente-la-Reina 111 Puerto Montt 100 Puerto Real 234 Puerto Rico 99, 99 artists 216 World Crafts Council 317 Pugin, A. W. N. (1812-52) 213, 227, 227 Puigcerdà, wall painting 118 Puita River 57 Pukuoka 308 Pulatthinagara, stupa 134 Pulguk-sa, temple 89 Pulicat, textiles 198 Pultus 158 Pumpelly, R. 247 Pumpu 100 Pundravardhana 134 Pungarabato 98 Pungnam-ni 88 Punic settlements 64-65 Wars 65 Punjab 80, 81 Punta Arenas 219 Punta Pedras 100 Punwon-ri 204, 205 Pura 63 Puri folk art 249 miniatures 198 painting 248 temple 134 Purísima del Rincón, art movement 216 Purushapura, Buddhist/Kushan art 83 Pusan 252, 308 Pushkalavati, coins 84 Puskalavati, Kushan art 82 Puso-sansong 89 Pusok-sa, Buddhist temple 89 Puteaux 285 Puteoli 64, 67 Putian kiln site 137 painting 200 Putna 185 Putumayo River 56, 100 Puzhou 136 Pylos 32, 33 Pyongyang 46, 86, 89, 89, 306, 307 textiles 308 Pyramids 25 Nile Valley 38, 72 South American 57, 95, 101 Pyrgi 64 Pyrgos, pottery 283 Pyrgoteles (gem-cutter) 63 Pythias of Priene 63 Qaanaaq 96 Qadesh 32 Qadisiya 128 Qajars patronage 301 and West Asia 244-245 Qala of the Bani Hammad, textiles 124, 125 Qala Bist, mosque 134 Qaramanli mosque, tiles 188 Qarawiyyin mosque 188, 188, 240 Qarmations 132 Qasim al-Jalizi, Sidi 188 Qasimbazar, textiles 198 Qasr al Hayr East 128 Qasr al Hayr West 128 Qatna 32 Qayin 131 Qayrawan 240 Qazvin 195 Ilkhanid monuments 131 Qi 86 Qiang culture 86 Qianzhou 136 Qiao Zhongchang 136 Qiemo 302 Qift 38 Qilalukan 96 Qin 86 Qin dynasty 86, 86, 87 terracotta cavalryman 86 Qin Shihuangdi, emperor 52, 86, 87 Qing dynasty 196, 200, 202 Qingdao 250 Qingliangang 307 Qingzhou 87, 136 art collection 137 Buddhist shrines 307 silk production 137 Qionglai Xian, kiln site 138 Qiongzhou, kiln site 137 Qishan, archaeology 307 Qishicun, kiln site 200 Qixian 86 Qotbi, Mehdi (1951-) 291 Quagadougou 126 Quanzhou 1300-1500 139 kiln site 137 maritime trade textiles Quarenghi, Giacomo 161 Quarries 69, 159, 168, 170, 182, 182, 213 Quarton, Enguerrand (d. after 1466) 119, 119 Quartzite 38, 39 Quchan, lustre ware 131 Que 43 Quebec City 212, 213 paintings 214 Quedlinburg 108, 172 Queen Charlotte Islands 55 Queensland 18 Quelap 100 Quelepa 98, 99 Quetta 298 art centre 304 Quezon City 299 UNESCO project 316 Quhrud 131 Quierzy 104 Quift 38 Quilon 198, 248 Quimbaya 100, 100 Quimper porcelain 177 stained glass 110, 116 Quincy, Massachusetts 213 Quintanilla de las Viñas 102 Quiongzhou, kiln site 136 Quiotepec 54 Quipu 101 Quiriguá 54, 98 Quito 100, 152, 218, 268 art academy 153, 219 Jesuit workshop 153 sculpture school 152, 153 Quivira 96 Qujialing culture 46 Qum 195, 244 Qumm, lustre ware 131 Qurtubah 102 Qus, Mamluk monument 131 Qusayr 240 Qusayr Amra 128 Quseir 188 Qutb Minar 134 Qutb-ud-din-Aibak 134 Raab 185 Rabat 67, 240, 290 architecture 124, 125, 290 Rabatak 83 Radauti 185 Radkan, lustre ware 131 Radoo, textiles 296 Radzyó Podlaski 159 Raetia 66, 69 Ragusa 104, 107 architecture 185 Railways 214, 214, 221, 224, 225, 227, 232, 244, 246, 253 Rajahmundry 198 INDEX 347 Egyptian 74 English 118 Etruscan 64-65, 65 European 110, 112, 170, 170, 186, 283 Finland 273 French 175, 284 Graeco-Roman 67, 68, 70 Greek 12, 35, 60, 61, 64-65, 66 Greek revival 213 Hellenistic 62-63 India 45, 84, 85, 85, 134 Ionian 35 Italian 65, 121, 123, 181, 182, 236, 237 Japan and Korea 140, 141, 204, 205, 252, 309 London monuments 165, 277 Mediterranean 67, 68 Mesopotamian 40, 41 Minoan 33 Netherlands 279 North America 55 Northern Europe 116, 117 Pacific 145, 145 Portugal 235 Russian 13, 274 South American 56-57, 152, 153 South Netherlands 168, 169, 169 Southeast Asia 91, 206, 207, 255, 310 Southern Europe 114, 118 Spanish 64, 235, 286, 287 Sub-Saharan 126, 190, 190, 243 Swedish 157 Viking 109 West Africa 294, 295 Western Mediterranean 64- 65 general antique 164, 171, 180 artistic cross-currents 154 bas-relief 16, 18 clay 24 equestrian 121, 123 figural 293 mythological 180 narrative themes 35 open air parks 270 orientalizing 35 quarries 74 relief carving 40, 106 Romantic 226 terracotta decorative 170 three dimensional 21 New Zealand 209 see also Wood carving Scupi 106 Scythians 34, 35, 58, 58, 84 animal-style objects 58, 59 royal burials 58 Sea of Azoz 106, 160 Sea of Marmara 32, 35, 107 Seaggu-ni 49 Seals Achaemenid 78, 78, 79 Aegean 33 Central Asia 44, 45 cylinder 40 Seattle 262, 263 world fair 215 Sebastea 107, 246 Sebastopol see Sevastopol Seben 185 Secessionism 276, 282, 283 Sechín, temple 26, 27, 27 Sechura Desert 57, 101 Secular sites 102 Sedeinga, temple 37 Sedrata 124 Segesta 64, 65 Segesvàr 185 Segovia 154, 178 castle 118 wool production 234 Segu 191 Seibal 98 Seichur 244 Seidler, Harry (1923-) 314, 314 Seilles 104 Seip 55, 97 Seistan 78 Selamangleng, temple 142 Selbal 54 Selcuk, mosque 131 Seleucia Achaemenid 78 Parthian mint/architecture 80 Seleucid kingdom 62-63, 63, 84 Seleucus Nicator 62 Self-Portrait (Ren Xiong) 251 Seligenstadt 104 Selima, Reyimu 302 Selimiye Barracks 245 Selinus 64, 65 Seljuk Empire 130, 132 Turks 106, 131 Semna, fort 37, 37 Sendai 204, 252, 308 Senegal 243, 290 World Crafts Council 316 Senia 66 Senlis 110 Sennar 72, 191 Senones peoples 65 Sens 103, 107 architecture 110 ecclesiastical centre 116 Senya 88 Senzeille 168 Seoul 141, 306, 307 in the 20th century 309 architecture 192 arts centre 140, 192, 204, 252, 299, 308 Sepik River, pottery 50 Seraing 228 glass-making 229 Seram 143 Serbia 184, 220 architecture 238 church art 107 nationalism and neovernacularism 239 Postglacial 20 Sergeac 176 Sergel, Johan Tobias (1740-1814) 156, 157 Sergiyev Posad 160 monastery 225 toy-making 224, 224 Seringapatam 198 Serlio, Sebastiano 154 Sermermiut 96 Serov, Valentin (1865-1911) 224, 225 Serowe, museum 296 Serpent Mound 96 Serpent Mount 55 Serviac 71 Sesibi, temple 37 Sess Kilgreen, megalithic art 29 Seto, pottery 140 Seunapura, temple 134 Seurat, Georges 221 Sevastopol (Sebastopol) 225 art studio 224, 224 British acquisition 244 Severskaya Stanitsa, Dacian phalerae 58 Seville 129, 234 alabaster 109, 111 architecture 178 art centre 154, 179 Costumbrismo 234, 234, 235 mosque 124, 125 palace 110 paper-making 125 print-making 118 South Netherlands trade 169 textiles 234 university 114, 115 Sèvres 177, 177, 221, 232 Sevruguin, Antoine 245 Sevso, silver treasures 70 Seychelles, World Crafts Council 316 Seymour, Edward 162 Seyou, Fere 127 Sfax 76, 124 Sforza, Ludovico 123 Sha’ar Hagolan 21 Shabona, pottery 36 Shadow Procession 316 Shaftesbury 108 Shahdad 40, 41 Shahi, Ilkhanid monument 131 Shahpur, folk art 249 Shahr-i Qumis 80 Shahrisabz arts and crafts 302 shrine 133 textile centre 246 Shakado, figurines 48, 49 Shalfak, fort 37 Shalu, art centre Shamanism 19, 46, 57, 193 Shamash, god 42 Shan principalities 206 Shanbiaozheng 86 Shandong, Monk Mending Clothes 137 Shang dynasty 47, 47, 306 Shangdu, Shanghai 46, 47, 86, 87 after Opium Wars 251 art event 316 art schools 306, 399 arts and crafts 251 cultural centre 306 museums 251, 307 painting 202, 250 printing 250 School 251 Shangjing, kiln site 137 Shanhaiguan 138 Shantou, kiln site 200, 250 Shanzhou 136 silk production 137 Shaoxin, paper production 137 Shaoxingfu, paper production 137 Shapu I 81 Shaqadud, pottery 36 Sharaku (print designer) 205 Shark teeth 97 Shash 132 Shatial, inscriptions 83 Shaw, Robert 247 Shayaam nMbul aNgoong (king) 191 Shazhou 136 Shebo 91 Sheeler, Charles (1883-1965) 263 Sheffield art gallery 276 Arts and Crafts 226 cutlery/silverware 165 Sheikh Abd El-Aurna 39 Shells 16, 24, 41, 49, 51, 97 middens 88 Shenyang 46, 202, 306 museum 307 Shenzhen 307 Sherborne 108 s’Hertogenbosch, painting 117 Shethane Lake 96 Shexian, printing 192, 200, 202, 250 Shibam 129 Shibanid khans 196, 197 Shiga 204 Shigar 83 Shigaraki, pottery 140 Shigasato, figurines 49 Shigatse 302 art centre, 200, 250 Shigirsky 21, 21 Shijiahe culture 46 Shikashima 88 Shikhan Dheri 82 Shikoku 49, 88, 89, 140, 141, 204, 205, 252 Shilla kingdom 89 Shilluk 191 Shiloh 97 Civil War site 214 Shimoyama 89 Shinam-ni 49 Shinto arts 140 religion 192 Shiraz 81, 83, 129, 132, 133, 195, 196, 244 metalwork 131 museum 298 Shishkin, Ivan (1831-98) 224 Shitao (1642-1707) 203 Shizhaizhan 86 Shizhashan, archaeology 307 Shkeder 185 Shomu, emperor 141 Shoreham 163 Romantic site 220 Shotorak, Kushan art 82 Shouzhou 306 silk production 136 Shrines Aegean 60 Central Asia 132, 133, 196, 197 hero 63 Japan and Korea 204, 204 southern Europe 111, 111 Sub-Saharan Africa 243 West Asia 131 Shroud of St Potentien 107 Shu 86 Shucheng, art collection 137 Shunsho (print designer) 205 Shuruppak, early urbanism 25 Shustar 131 Shuzhou kiln site 136 silk production 137 Siam 254 Chakri dynasty 254 sculpture 255 trade 207, 255 Siavonga, artists’ workshop 296 Siberia Ice Age 16, 18 Russian control 160 shared cultures 46 trade routes 197 Sibiu 185 Sicca 66 Sicilia 69 Sicily 34, 34, 64-5, 103 Arab-Islamic culture 124 art and trade 67, 68, 69 Byzantine 102 captured by Normans 110 castles 114 kingdom 106 late Roman Art 71 Mediterranean world 64-5 mosaics 106, 107 Norman conquest 125 Roman empire 66, 70 Western Christendom 104 Sickert, Walter Richard 276 Sicyon 35, 62 Siddhartha (Guatama Buddha) 84 Sidi Ghirib 76 Sidmouth 163 Sidon Achaemenid 67, 68, 78 Crusader castle 130 Phoenician 32, 34, 43 Siebenburgen 185 Siedlce 159 Siena 104, 181 architecture 110, 114, 115, 120-121 artists’ travels 119 bastions 180 metalwork 109 nationalistic site 237 patronage and projects 121, 123 royal progress 154 trading centre 120 treatises 122 Sierakow 159 Sierniki 159 Sierra Leone 190, 243 arts and crafts 294 Sierra Nevada 34 Sigatoka, Lapita pottery 51 Sigena 110, 114 Siggingen Sighisoara 185 Sigiriya historic site 248 temple 85 Signac, Paul (1863-1935) 233 Signorini, Telemaco (1835-1901) 237 Sigtuna 109 Siguenza, ecclesiastical centre 118 Siine 190 Siirt 80 metalworking 130 Sijilmasa 126 textiles 124 Sikander, Shahzia 305 Sikandra, palace 198 Silesia 170, 230 Silk 53, 63, 69, 69, 70, 115 Byzantine 107, 107 Central Asia 132, 133 Chinese 47, 83, 87, 87, 136, 137, 200 France 177 India 248, 304 Korean 308 Northern Europe 58 panni tartarici 133 Persian 194 St Vitale mosaic 71 Shroud of St Potentien 107 Spanish production 234 tapestry technique 133 Western Islam 125 Silk Road 62, 81, 83, 83, 85, 86, 87,129, 132, 132, 141, 193, 247 Silkeborg 272 Silla dynasty 89, 95, 141, 149 Silos metalwork 109, 110 pilgrimage route 111 Silumiut 96 Silvan, mosque 130 Silver Aegean 33, 33, 60 Akkadian 41 Anatolian 42 British centres 164 Byzantine 107 Central America 150, 151 Central Asia 45 China 200, 202 European centres 109, 154 Greece 59 Hellenistic 62-63, 63 India 84 Japan and Korea 141, 205, 252 Mediterranean 67, 68, 68 Mesopotamian 41 Netherlands 166 North Africa 76, 76 North America 97 Northern Europe 58, 58 Roman empire 67, 69 Sasanian 81 Scandinavia and the Baltic 156 South American 56, 100, 100, 101, 152, 153, 193 South Netherlands 169 Southeast Asia 206, 206, 254, 255, 310, 311 Southern Europe 115 treasures 70, 71 West Asia 42, 81, 301 Western Mediterranean 64-65 workmanship 70 Simberg, Hugo 272 Simchol-li 49 Simferopol 195 Simla architecture 249 artistic centre 304 Simnan 131 minaret 130 Sinai 11, 74, 188 mosaics 77 Sinan (architect) 195 Sind 79 Sinfeld 104 Singapore architecture 254 museum 298 tourism 310 World Crafts Council 316 Singarra 80 Singchang-ni 88 Singhasari, temple 142 Sinkiang 196, 196 Sinmae-ri 49, 88 Sinnar, temple 134 Sinope 34, 66, 69, 70, 130 Greek colony 58 metalwork 78 trading centre 107 Sintra, architecture 235 Sipán 56, 57 Siphnos 33, 59 Sippar 40, 41, 42 early urbanism 25 Siqueiros, David Alfaro (1896- 1975) 266, 267 Siraf 129, 132 lustre ware 131 Sirhind 198 Sirkap 82 Sis 106 Sistan 129 Sistine Chapel 123, 180 Sitil Sierra 54 Sitio Conte 98 Sittow, Michel (c.1468-1525/6) 119, 119 Sivas 244 mosque 130, 131 Siwa 126 Siwa Oasis 38, 74 Sixtus IV, pope 123 Sizhou, silk production 136 Skagen 220 Skallerup 31 Skellefteå 272 Skopje 106 art school 282 Byzantine 130 contemporary art 283 Skovde 272 Skulls, plaster 20, 21 Slave Coast 191 Slave trade 52, 69 Abbasid 129 Africa 126, 147, 190, 191, 242, 243 Caribbean 147, 217 Garibaldi’s army 237 Northern Europe 59 Pacific 312 Roman Empire 69 Western Islam 124 Slavs 70, 102 and Byzantium 106 Slovakia, World Crafts Council 316 Slovenia, diaspora of artists 283 Slovenske Gorice 154 Sluck 159 Sluter, Claus 117 Smielow 159 Smith, George 257 Smith, Joseph 183 Smith River 96 Smithson, Robert (1938-73) 265 Smolensk 107, 225 churches 158 printmaking 154 textiles 160, 224, 224 Smolny Institute 160 Smyrna 35 Byzantine 102 carpet-making centre 244 Ottoman 184, 195 trade centre 107 Smythson, Robert (d.1614) 162 Snaketown 96 ballcourt 55 Snettisham, metalwork 59 Snów 159 Snowy River Cave 18 Soane, Sir John 237 Soba 72 Sobreda, megalithic art 29 Société Anonyme International Exhibition (1926) 262 Society Islands 92, 93, 144, 209 Cook’s voyage 208 Socrates 61 Soest 108 Sofala 127, 190, 191 Sofia 184, 185, 224 INDEX 346 Saigon arts and crafts 310 religious site 254 Sailendra dynasty 95, 142, 143 St Adalbert 105 St Albans 70, 108, 109, 112 ecclesiastical centre 116 St Amand 103 book production 104 St André des Eaux 110 St Andrew (Jamaica) 266 St Andrews 163 St Antonios, monastery 77 St Balthilde, convent 103 St Basil’s Cathedral 155, 160 Saint Benedict’s church, Monte Cassino 111 St Bertin 103, 110 St Catherine’s monastery 70, 71, 71 St Chef 110 St David’s 108 St Denec, megalithic art 29 St Denis cathedral, 102, 103, 110, 110 Charlemagne 104 St Etienne 220 St Evrault 110 St Foi, relics 105 St Francis of Assisi 120 St Francisville 212 St Gall 103, 105 abbey, chartered sites 105 abbey properties 105 book production 104 murals 108 St Germain-des-Prés 103 St Germer-de-Fly 110 St Germigny-des-Près 103 St Gilles-du-Gard 110, 111 St Guilhem le Desert 111 St Helens 163 St Ives 163 artists’ colony 276, 277 Tate Gallery 270 St Jean d’Angely 111 St Joachim Osogovski 185 St John Bigorski Gostivar 185 St Joseph 212 St Lawrence Island 55 St Louis 212, 213, 264 auctioneers 317 world fair 215 St Loup de Naud 110 St Maixent 103 St Mark’s, Venice 105, 115, 122, 180 St Martin’s Lane Academy 165 St Maurice d’Agaune 102, 110 St Michael with a Donor (Bermejo) 119 St Mullin’s 103 St Nazaire 220 St Omer 104 ecclesiastical centre 116 St Paul, USA 264 St Paulos, monastery 77 St Paul’s Cathedral, London 164 St Peter’s, Rome 70, 110, 123, 168, 180 St Petersburg 220, 222, 222 art academy 186 art movements 275 artistic influences 173, 223 city planning 224 Constructivism centre 271 court-sponsored art 160 Ethnographic Museum 247 founded 160, 161 urban development 186 World of Art group 224, 225, 225 St Philibert-de-Grand-Lieu 103 St Piat, megalithic art 29 St Quentin 104 St Riquier, book production 103, 104 St Sabina 71 St Savin 110 St Sophia, church 70 St Tropez art colony 232, 233 Fauvism 270, 270, 284 Saint Truiden 168 St Vaast d’Arras 103 St Vitale, church 70, 71 St Wolfgang, ecclesiastical centre 116 Saint-Amand 110 Saint-Etienne 285 Saint-Floret, wall painting 118 Saint-Flour, wall painting 118 Saint-Gilles 111 Saint-Léonard 118 Saint-Louis 191 Saint-Phalle, Niki de (1930-2002) 285 Saint-Rémy 168 Saint-Romain-le-Puy, wall painting 116 Saintes 103, 111 ecclesiastical centre 118 Saints Peter and Paul, St Petersburg 161 Sais 38, 78 Saitobaru 89 Saivism cult 134 Saka 78 Saka culture 86 Sakai 140, 204, 205 Sakalava, post sculptures 292 Saki 89 Sakitama 89 Sakuragaoka 88 cast bronze bell 89 Sakuramachi 49 Sakuranojo 89 Sakya, art centre, 200 Sala 272 Sala Regia 180 Saladin (ruler) 131 Salaga 126 Salamanca 110, 154, 234 architecture 178 art centre 186 artists’ travels 119 San Esteban altarpiece 178 stained glass 118 university 114, 115 Salamis 60, 60 Saldae 66 Salé 124, 125 Salerno 103 archbishopric 104 bronze doors 111 university 114 Salernum 64 Salim, Jawad 301 Salinar culture 57 Salisbury manuscript painting 112 tourist/modern art 292, 293 traditional arts 292 Salistea, Dacian phalerae 58 Sallas, megalithic art 29 Sallinen, Tyko 273 Salmas 81 Ilkhanid monument 131 Salonae 67, 68, 69 Salonika, Salsette, historic site 248 Salt Cellar (Cellini) 155 Salta 218 Saltash 220 Saluzzo, wall painting 118 Salvador 152 art centre 153 artistic activity 268, 269 Salyany 244 Salz 104 Salzberg-Reingeerg, wild boar 59 Salzburg 238 archbishopric 104 art centre 154, 186 artistic cross-currents 173 book production 103, 104, 108 Degenerate Art exhibition 281 ecclesiastical centre 116 marble quarries 170 Samaipata 100 Samal 43 Samanid rulers 132 Samar 206, 254 trade 207 Samara 160, 224, 225 Achaeminid 78 Samaria 43 Samarinda, textiles 310 Samarkand 80, 81, 83, 84, 95, 129, 132, 195, 198 Achaemenid tribute 82 archaeological survey 247, 247 architecture 197, 197 artistic centre 132, 133 arts and crafts 302 carpet merchant 247 ceramics 79, 132 manuscript centre 196 museum 246, 247, 298, 303 Registan 197 sculpture 302-303 shrine 132, 196 textiles 131, 132, 133, 133, 246 Samarr, lustre ware 131 Samarra 128 Abbasid 129 Dar al-Khilafa 128 Sambaquí tradition 57, 100 Sambhal, mosque 198 Sambor 206 Samnites 65, 65 Samoa 92, 93, 144, 312 art production 256 indigenous trade 209, 209 kava ceremony 256 Pacific art 312, 313 Pacific Sisters 312 pottery 51, 51, 92 World Crafts Council 316 Samokov 185 Samori 243 Samos 33, 35, 60 Samothrace 62 shrine 60 Samoyeds 160 Samrong Sen 51 Samsun 244 Samudra 143 Samun Dukiya, iron smelting 72, 73 Samye, art centre, 200 San Agustín 56, 56, 100 San Blas 100 San Diego 264, 265, 265 San Francisco 98, 213 art centre 262 exhibitions 264, 264 photography 212 San Francisco de Arriba 54, 98 San Gimignano 114, 121 San José 266 San José Mogote 54 San Juan 217, 217 art event 317 San Juan de Baños 102 San Juan de Ortega 118 San Leo 122, 123 San Lorenzo 26, 27 San Luis Obispo 96 San Luis Potosí, Neoclassicism 216 San Marcos 266 San Marino, Republic of 182 San Martín, General José 218, 218, 219 San Miguel 98 San Pedro de Roda 110 San Pedro della Nave 102 San peoples 126 San Sebastian 178, 220, 234 San Vincenzo 103 San Vincenzo al Volturno 102 Sana 129, 132, 188 fine arts 300, 301 Sana’a, museum 298 Sanage, pottery 140 Sanak, architecture 283 Sanandaj 301 Sanchi caves 84, 85 historic site 248 stupas 85 Sanchidrián 234 Sandberg, Willem 279 Sandby, Paul 165 Sandomierz 158, 159 Sandrart, Joachim von (1606-88) 171 Sandwich 163 Sandy Creek, rock shelter 16 Sangam poetry 85 Sangasanga, pottery 50 Sangbast caravanserai 133 minaret 130 Sangela 84 Sangnodae-Do 49 Sanji 127 Sanmenxia, archaeology 307 Sannai Maruyama 48 Sannathi, coins 84 Sansepolcro 181 Sansovino (architect) 180 Sant’ Angelo in Formis 110 Sant’ Antimo 110 Santa 65 Santa Ana, art movement 216 Santa Comba de Bande 102 Santa Croce sull’ Arno 236 Santa Cruz, Lapita pottery 51 Santa Cruz Islands 51 Santa Cruz (Spain), megalithic art 29 Santa Fe 57, 218, 219 262, 264, 265 Santa Fe de Bogotá, Jesuit workshop 153 Santa Leticia 54 Santa Maria 190 Santa Maria de Melque 102 Santa Maris della Salute 158 Santa Marta 152, 153 Santa Monica 264 Santa Rita 98 Santa Rosalia 266 Santander 178, 234, 286 Santarém 100, 114, 234 Santesteban 64 Santiago (Argentina), artistic activity 218, 219, 268, 269 Santiago de Chile 218 Santiago de Compostela alabaster 109 architecture 110, 178 manuscripts 114 pilgrimage 111, 111, 118, 119 Santiago de Cuba 216 Santiago (Leon), archbishopric 104 Santianes de Pravia 102 Santiniketan, art school 304, 305 Santo Domingo art academy 266 cathedral 150, 150 Santo Domingo de la Calzada 118 Sanxingdui, archaeology 307 Sanzen 89 Sao 190 archaeology 294 São Frutuoso de Montelios 102 São Gião de Navaré 102 São Luis 218 São Paulo 152, 153 art event 317 artistic activity 268, 268, 269, 269 Biennial 316 São Salvador 218, 219 Saone, Crusader castle 130 Sapi-Portuguese salt cellar 190 Sapporo 308 Saqqakhana school 301 Saqqara 38 early urbanism 25 excavations 245 Metjetji tomb 38, 38 monastery 77 stone carving 77 Tomb of Ti 23 Saragossa (Zaragoza) 70, 102, 178, 286 artists’ travels 119 festival 154 metalwork 125 print-making 118 sculpture 235 textiles 234 Sarai 133 Sarajevo 184, 185, 238 Byzantine 130 religions 282 Sarakhs 246 tomb 132 Saramana 80 Saran, megalithic art 29 Saratov 160, 224 artists’ centre 225, 225 exhibitions 275 Sarawak 254 arts and crafts 310 Iban culture 311 Sarcham, Ilkhanid monuments 131 Sarcophagi 68, 70, 71, 103 marble 102 Sardinia 32-33, 34, 34, 103, 236 art and trade 67, 68, 69 Byzantine 102 Catholicism 104 late Roman Art 71 Mediterranean world 64, 64-5 metalwork 31 Roman empire 66, 70 to Savoy 182 Sardis 35 Achaemenid 78 patronage 70 Sardonyx cameo 67 Sargent, John Singer (1856-1925) 215 Sargon, Akkad founder 41 Sark, Dacian phalerae 58 Sarkhej, mosque 134 Sarmatian art 58, 59 Sarmatism 158-159, 159 Zbigniew Ossolinski with his sons 158 Sarmisegetuza 68 Sarnath lion capital 84 museum 298 stupa 84, 85 Sárospatak 185 Sarurab, pottery 36 Sarvistan 131 Sasanian Empire 70, 80, 81, 85, 94 art style 81 Zorastrian faith 81 Sasanians 52 Sasaram, tomb 198 Satavahana dynasty 85 Satgaon, temple 134 Satinikeetan 304 Satohama 49, 88 Satrunjaya, temple 134 Sattagydia 79 Saudi Arabia 300, 301 art schools/museums 298 World Crafts Council 316 Sauleu 110 Sault Ste Marie 212 paintings 214 Saumur, château 116 Sauvigny 110 Sava, lustre ware 131 Savage, Augusta 263 Savannah, Civil War site 214 Saveh 195 Savitsky, Konstantin (1844-1905) 224, 224 Savona 122, 123 Savonlinna 272 Savoy 121, 122, 123 Savrana Belgola 134 Savrasov, Aleksey (1830-97) 224 Sawakin 240 Sawankhalok ceramics 310 historical site 254 kiln site 206 Saxons 102 collapse of 70 Saxony 104, 169, 170, 171, 230 Sayhuite 100 Sayil 98 Sayula 98 Sázava, wall painting 116 Sbeitla 124 Scandinavia 70, 95, 102 amber 30 art museums 272 artistic diffusion 223, 272 artistic movement 157 Christendom 105 from Symbolism to Postmodernism 272 Iron Age 58, 58 landscape and culture 272 late Roman Art 71 Norse mythology 222 Postglacial 21, 30 prominent artists 222 Scandinavia and the Baltic 156, 156, 157, 222, 222, 223, 272, 272, 273, 273 Scarborough, art movement 226 Schaffhausen 108 Schapiro, Miriam (1923-) 261 Schendel, Mira 269, 269 Scherpenheuvel 168, 169 Scheveningen architecture 279 art colony 228, 228, 229 Schiele, Egon 280 Schiller 231 Schinkel, Karl Friedrich (1781- 1841) 157, 173, 222 Schjerfbeck, Helene 273 Schlaun, Johann Conrad 173 Schleswig 230 Schleswig-Holstein 172 Schlettstadt 104, 112 Schloss-Bruck 112 Schlüter, Andreas 172 Schmidtsdrif, Khoisan art 296 Scholars in a Garden (Ding Yunpeng) 201 Schöningen 104 School of Athens 180 School of David, Rome 236 Schwerin 170, 230 Schwind, Martin von (1804-71) 231 Scodra 66 Scone 102 Scotland architecture 162 artistic centres 164 Catholicism 104 Christianity 154 kingdoms 102 major country houses 164 North Netherlands trade 167 patronage 116 stone axes 30 Stuart ascendancy 162 Scott, George Gilbert 227 Scott, John 315 Scotts Lake 97 Scripts 20-21 Amharic 73 Arabic 128 Brahmi 85 cuneiform 20, 25, 40, 41, 42, 245 Egyptian 36, 37 Ge’ez 73 Greek 72, 73 hieroglyphs 25, 39, 63, 74, 75 Kharoshti 85 kufic 125, 129, 301 Linear B 32 Maghrebi 125 Manichaean codex 83 Meröe 72 pictographic systems 25, 25, 40, 54, 55 pre-Maya 54, 55 Shang dynasty 47 Scrolls, illustrated 69 Scrovegni, Enrico 120 Sculpture countries Achaemenid 78, 78 Aegean 60 African 73, 284, see also SubSaharan Africa Celto-Ligurian 64-65 Central America 54-55 Central Asia 302 China 136, 137, 139, 307 INDEX 349 Roman remains 68 Syrene 77 Syria 12, 20, 32, 34, 34, 35, 40, 40, 42, 62, 66, 80 Abbasid Caliphate 129 art schools/museums 298 art style 67 fine arts 300, 301 French Mandate 300 Ottoman Possession 188, 194, 195 Roman Empire trade 69, 70 Ummayad province 128, 128 Syrian Desert 32, 188 Syrinx 80 Syro-Palestine 32 Szabadka 238 Szamisújvar 185 Szaszbuzd 185 Szczecin 154, 230 Szeged 185, 238, 282 Székesfehérvár 185 Szentendre 185 Szigetvár 195 Szombathely 185, 238 Tabarka 76 Tabas 195 minaret 130 Tabert 164 Tableau 1 (Mondrian) 278 Tabo, art centre 200 Tabon Caves 50, 90 Tabor, castle 116 Tabriz 129, 133 carpet-making centre 244, 301 Ilkhanid monuments 131 photography 245 Safavid capital 195 Tacitus, historian 69 Tadadayama 89 Tadaepo 49 Tadmekka 126 Taegong-ni 49, 88 Taehuksan-do 49 Taepyong-ni 49 Taesong-ni 88 Taganrog, Dacian phalerae 58 Taghaza 73 Tagore Abanindranth (1871-1951) 304, 304 Gagendranath (1867-1938) 304 Rabindranath (1861-1941) 304 Tagra, pottery 36 Tahert, mosque 124 Tahiti 92 art production 256 Cook’s voyage 208, 209 Pacific art 93, 312 Tahmasp, shah 194, 199 Tahull 110 Taifang 88 Taino culture 99 Taipei 46, 299, 306, 307 auctioneers 316 Taiping, museum 298 Tairona 100, 100 Taiwan 250, 306, 307, 307 museums 298 Taiyuan 136, 200, 202, 250 museum 307 religious art 137 Tajikistan art schools/museums 298 arts and crafts 302 Takahashi 89 Takaita 89 Takanohara 89 Takedda 127 Takehara 89 Takht-i-Bahi, Kushan art 82 Takht-i-Sangin, Kushan art 82 Takht-i-Sulayman 131 Takla Makan, archaeological expeditions 247 Takrur 190 Talas 83, 132 Talasea, Lapita pottery 51 Talashkino, art colony 225, 225 Talaud Islands 50 Talavera, textiles 234 Talavera la Reina 178 Tale of Genji (Murasaki Shikibu) 141 Talho-ri 88 Talkhaytan Baba 132 Tallinn 156, 156, 157, 222, 224, 275 artists’ travels 119 contemporary art 273 Cubism 272 studio programmes 273 Talus Village 55 Tamar Hat 18 Tamaralipti 134 ivory 84 trade centre 83 Tamaya Mellet, pottery 36 Tamayo, Rufino (1899-1984) 267 Tamazukkuri-Uenodai 89 Tamba, pottery 140 Tambería de Inka 100 Tambov 224, 225 Tamerlane see Timur Tampere contemporary art 273 museum 272 Tana 133 Tana Torajaland, Granaries 310 Tanabatake, figurines 49 Tanavoli, Parviz (1937-) 298, 301 Tanda 198 Tang-Tosong 88 Tange, Kenzo 299, 309 Tangier 102, 124, 178, 190, 240, 241 architecture 290 Tangshan 307 archaeology 307 Tanis 38 Tanjavur 134 Tanjore 198 carpets 304 museum 304 painting 248 Tanque, megalithic art 29 Tanzania 16, 260 Tanzhou kiln site 136, 137 silk production 137 Taoism 87, 207, 255 Taormina 110 pre-Islamic 124 Taos 262, 263 Taoudenni 73 Taparura mosaics 76 textiles 124 Tapestry Arras 174 Aubusson 154, 177 Bear and Boar Hunt 117 Beauvais 177 Gobelins 176, 176, 221 Netherlands 117, 166, 168, 169, 169 Northern Europe 117 weaving 57, 247 Tápiószentmarton, Scythian objects 58 Taq-i Kisra 81 Taquera tradition 100 Tara, megalithic art 29 Tarakeshwar Murder 248 Tarantaise, archbishopric 104 Taranto 102 artists’ club 288, 288 Taras 34, 65 Tarentum 64, 65, 68, 69 Tareyanagi 88 Târgu Mures 185 Târgu-Jiu 271, 271 Tarifa, castle 118 Tarim, museum 298 Tarim Basin 47 Tarn 17 Tarnopol 159 Tarnów 158 art collection 159 Tarquinia 182 Tarquinii 64, 65 Tarraco 64, 66, 68, 69 Tarraconensis 66, 69 Tarragona 70, 102, 110, 110, 114, 178, 234 wall painting 118 Tarrakunah 102 Tarrato 67 Tarsus 32, 68, 78, 106 trading centre 130 Tartu 156, 157, 272 Taruga, Nok figures 72, 73 Tarut 40, 41 Tash-Kurghan 83 Tashi Lhunpo, art centre Tashkent 81, 84, 132, 196, 196 arts and crafts 302, 303 carpet market 246 mosque 133 museum 246, 247, 298, 302, 303, 303 sculpture 302-303 textiles 132 town-planning 246 trade centre 131 Tasmania 258, 259 Tassili Sahara 126 Tassilo Chalice 102, 103 decorative style 103 Tatars 160, 161 Tatetsuki 88 Tatlin, Vladimir (1885-1953) 271, 274 Tattooing 16 implements 209 Tavant 110 Tavoy 254 Tawakkel 247 Taxco, Church of San Sebastián and Santa Prisca 151 Taxila 63, 82 archaeology 84, 85, 303 Buddhist/Kushan art 83 ceramics 79 Dacian phalerae 58 Kushan art 82 museum 298 trade 134 Taza, metalwork 125 Tblisi 245, 275 museums 298 Tébessa mosaics 76 textiles 124 Tebtunis 75 Tegea 60 Tegernsee 103 Teheran 80 art school 298, 301 carpet-making centre 244 fine arts 300, 301 museums 298 photography 245 Polytechnic Dar al-Funun 245 Qajar capital 244 traditional arts 301 Tehuacán 54 Teige, Karel 283 Teignmouth 163 Tejada la Vieja 64 Tekirdaq 130 Tel Abu Hawam 32 Tel Asmar, early urbanism 25 Tel Aviv art museum 298 auctioneers 316 museum of art 300 Tel el-Ajjul 32, 42 Tel Kabri 32 Tell Asmar 40, 42 Tell Brak 40, 42 early urbanism 25 Tell el Dab’a 32 Tell el Rimah 42 Tell el ’Ubaid 40 Tell Halaf 43 Tellerup 31 Telloh 245 Temascalcingo, art movements 216 Temesvár 184, 185 Temper 55 Tempio di Clitunno 102 Temples Aztec 150 Central Andean 57 China 136 Greek 60, 65 India 85, 134, 134, 135 Italian 65 Korea 89 Mesopotamia 40, 40, 42 Mississipian sites 97 Nile 37 Nile Valley 40-41, 41 North America 97 Pacific 145 Roman 65, 67 South Asia 198 Southeast Asia 254, 310, 311 Western Mediterranean 64-65 Templestowe, plein-air paintings 259 Tenasserim 207 Tenayuca 98 Tenby 163, 276 Ténes, textiles 124 Tenganyika L 127 Tengxian, kiln site 137 Tenochtitlán 98, 99 Aztec sculpture 99 Tentugal, ecclesiastical centre 118 Teotihuacán 53, 54, 54, 55, 98, 98 Tepe Yahya 40, 41 Tepexic 54 Teplitz 238 Tepotzotlán 98 Ter, ivory 85 Teraji 49 Terengganu, silverware 310 Termeno 110 Termez 129, 303 arts and crafts 302 textiles 132 tomb 133 Ternate 143, 143, 254 trade centre 192, 207 Terracotta see pottery Terrassa, wall painting 118 Teso dos Bichos 56 Tessin the Elder, Nicodemus 156 Tessin the Younger, Nicodemus 157 Tête-du-Lion 19 Tétouan 124, 188, 290, 291 Teuchitlán 98 Tewkesbury 163 ecclesiastical centre 116 Texcoco 98 Textiles countries Abbasid 129 Achaemenid 78 Agean 33, 33, 60 Asia 192, 193, 299 Assyrian 42 Belgium 279 British 227 Central Asia 132, 133, 133, 197, 246, 246, 247, 302, 302, 303 Chinese 46, 47, 87, 139, 141, 201, 202, 250 Egypt 77 European 154, 221, 283 Flanders 168 France 176, 177, 182, 232 India 134, 135, 147, 248, 248, 249, 304 Italian production 182 Japan and Korea 140, 140, 141, 204, 204, 205, 252, 308, 309 Netherlands 166, 279 North Africa 76, 125, 188, 188, 240, 290-291, 291 North America 97, 148 Norway 273 Pacific 256, 313 Polish sashes 159 Russian 160, 224, 274, 283 Sasanian 81, 81 Scandinavia and the Baltic States 272 South American 23, 27, 27, 56-57, 57, 100, 101, 101, 101 South Asia 134, 135, 198, 199 South Netherlands 168, 169 Southeast Asia 206-207, 254, 255, 255, 278, 310, 311, 311 Southern Africa 296, 297 Southern Europe 115, 118 Spain and Portugal 178, 234 Sub-Saharan Africa 126, 126, 243 West Africa 294, 295 West Asia 42, 80-81, 131, 194-195, 194-195, 301, 301 Western Islam 124, 125 East and Central Africa 292 general bark cloth 92, 209, 209, 313 batik 57, 229, 255, 292, 295, 299, 310 carpet-making centres 229, 244, 301, 301, 302 carpets 124, 133, 135, 147, 176, 192, 194-195, 194- 195, 227, 245, 246, 247, 247, 303, 304 cordwain 169 costume-making techniques 309 cotton 246 ethnic/folk 239 flax 169, 229 gift-exchanges 103 ikay 304 lace 229 silk and cotton ikat 246, 247 tie-dyed 292, 295, 304 see also Silk; Tapestry Thabraca, mosaics 76, 76 Thailand art schools/museums 298 arts and crafts 310 Ayutthaya city-state 206 bronze implements 51, 90 Lacquer Pavilion 255 World Crafts Council 316 Thainer, mosque 134 Thalner 198 Tham Ongbah 51 iron work 90 Thamugadi 68, 71 mosaics 76 Thana 198 Thang Long, ceramics 207 Thapong, art school 296 Thapsacus 78 Tharros 34, 64 Thasos 34, 35, 59, 60 Thatta carpets 198 mosque 134 The Hague 168 artistic institutions 228, 229, 279 artists 166, 229 painting 117 Theadelphia 75 Theatres German 230 Italian 181 London 162, 165 Russia 224 Thebes 35, 38, 73, 74 1500 BC 39 Achaemenid 78 architecture 60 early urbanism 25 excavations 245 Nebamun tomb 39 palace site 32, 33 religious site 38 trading centre 107 Theoderic II, count 105 Theodore of Tarsus 102 Theodulf 105 Theotokopoulos, Domenikos see El Greco Thera 32, 32, 33, 35 Thermae 66 Thérouanne 110 Thessalonica (Thessaloniki) 62, 67, 68, 70, 102, 131 architecture 195 art school 282 Byzantine 130 contemporary art 283 Judaism 184 pilgrimage/art centre 106, 107 trading centre 107 vault mosaics 71 Thessaly 28, 35 Theveste, mosaics 76 Thirty Years’ War 156, 171, 172, 172 Third of May (Goya) 235 Thmuis 74 Thököly, Principality 184 Thompson, John 250, 251 Thorey 67 Thorikos, theatre 60 Thornhill, James 165 Thorvaldsen, Bertel (1768/70- 1844) 157, 222, 223 Thrace 28, 35, 58 Thracia 58, 59, 66, 69 dynastic tombs 58 South sphere 58 Thraco-Getic, burials and hoards 58, 58 Thuburbo Maius 71 Thugga, mosaics 76 Thule 96 Thupelo, artists’ workshop 296 Thurburbo Maius, mosaics 76 Thurii 65 Thuringen 104 Thuringia 170, 172, 230 Thysdrys, pottery 76 Ti-n-Torha, pottery 36 Tiahuanaco 101, 101 indigenous art 153 Tianjin 250 museums 307 Tianlong Shan, shrine 306 Tianlongshan, religious art 136 Tianshan 302 Tiberias 71 Tibesti 73, 126, 188, 291 Tibet 47, 138-139, 201, 203, 251 art centres 138, 200, 202, 250 art schools/museums 298 artistic influence 139, 307 arts and crafts 302, 302, 303 Mahakala deity 139 Renaissance 139, 201 Ticino 173 Tidore 143, 143, 254 Tie dye, Central Andean 57 Tiefenbronn 117 Tientsin 250 Tiepolo, Giambattista (1696-1770) 173, 182 Tiflis 129, 132, 133, 224, 225 Kavkazsky Muzei museum 245 museums/carpets 244 trading centre 107 Tigawa, temple 85 Tigranocerta 80 Tigzirt 76 Tikal 54, 54, 55, 98 Tikhvin 160 Tikopia, Lapita pottery 51, 92 Til Barsip 43 Tillya-tepe 41 Kushan art 82 Tiltekin, pottery 36 Tim, tomb 132 Timbuktu 126, 188, 190, 240 Timgad 71, 76 Timor 50, 91, 142, 143, 206, 254, 310 Timur (aka Tamerlane) 95, 132, 132, 247 Timurid empire 132, 133, 192, 193, 195, 196 Tin Assyrian 42 eastern Mediterranean 32 Egyptian 38, 39 Roman empire 67, 69 South American 56 West Asia 42 INDEX 348 art academy 282 art event 316 Biennial 316, 316 Byzantine 130 town-planning 238 trade centre 195 Sogam-ni 88 Soganli 106 Sogdian Rock 79, 84 Sogdiana 63, 80, 81, 82, 82, 83 Sogong-ni 49 Sögüt 130 Sohar 132 Soignies, sculpture 117 Soinhofen 170 Soissons 104 Sojas, Ilkhanid monuments 131 Sokchong-dong 88 Sokkuram Cave, seated Buddha 140 Soknopaiou Nesos 75 Sokoto 188, 240 caliphate 243 Soktal-li 49 Solano, José Gutiérrez (1886-1945) 287 Solar, Xul 268, 268 Solesmes, ecclesiastical centre 116 Solferino 237 Solikamsk 160 Solin 71 Solokha, Scythian burials 58 Solomon Islands 50, 51, 92, 312, 312 art production 256, 257 artistic traditions 93 canoe house 257 Solre-Saint-Géry 168 Sol’vychegodsk 160, 160 Somnathapura 134 Somov, Konstantin (1869-1939) 225 Sonargaon, textiles 198 Sondershausen 230 Song-Do 49 Songgung-ni 49 Songhay 126, 127, 190 Songjiang, painting 200, 202 Songsan 88 Songzhou, silk production 136 Sopatma, trade 134 Sophene 80 Sopocani 106 Sopohang, masks 49 Sopron 238 Sora 66 Sora-ri 88 Sorède 110 Sørenson, Henrik 273 Sorolla, Joaquín (1863-1923) 234 Sorrento, archbishopric 104 Soto Jésus 268, 269 megalithic art 29 Sots art 275 Souliiac 110 Soulme 168 Sounion, temples 60 Sousse 124 South Africa arts and crafts 296, 297 community art centres 297 Dutch 191 European artistic influence 243 San peoples 11 World Crafts Council 316 South America 22, 23, 56-57, 95, 100-101, 147, 152-153, 218-219, 268-269 Arte Popular 269 artisitic activity 153, 218, 219, 219, 268 artistic centres 152 cultural traditions 56, 57, 100 exploration 218, 219 Ice Age 17, 19 indigenous art centres 153 Late Intermediate period 101, 101 materials and means 152 Middle Horizon period 100, 101 modernization 219 national image 219 Postglacial 20 revolution 218 South Asia 44-45, 84-5, 134-135, 198-199, 248-249, 304-305 art and society 198 Japanese expansion 308 materials, techniques and evidence 198 minor dynasties 198 South Korea 307, 308, 308 20th Century 308 cultural influences 309 museums 298 World Crafts Council 316 South Netherlands 168, 168, 169, 169 South Pacific, Japanese imperialism 308 Southeast Europe 184-5, 238-9 Southampton 102, 163, 220 alabaster 109 Southeast Asia 11, 12, 50, 85, 90- 91, 142-143, 206-207, 254-255, 310-311 17th century kingdoms 206 archaeological finds 92 arts and crafts 310 Bronze Age 90, 90 Funan empire 91 Indianized states 142 rise of Islam 143 trade 84, 90-91, 91, 142, 143, 206, 207, 229, 254 Southern Africa 296-297 arts and crafts 296, 297 Southern Europe 94, 110-111, 114- 115, 118-119 art production 110 artists’ travels 119 raw materials 115 trade and artistic influence 111 and ideas 114 and transmission 115 Southwell 112 Souvigny, ecclesiastical centre 118 Souza, Francis Newton (1924- 2002) 305 Soweto art school 296 community art centres 297 Space Age 19 Spain 15, 17, 18, 20-21, 34, 178- 179, 234-235, 286-287 culture architecture 235 art academies/schools 234 artistic influences 12, 119, 179, 179, 188, 234, 286- 287, 290 artistic patronage 119, 155, 178 bishop’s grave wrappings 115 Generation of ’98’ 286 genre paintings 234 Islamic 111, 118, 119, 128 monumental art 235 painting and sculpture 119, 179 portable art 234, 286 retables 118, 119 schools of painting 234, 234 tourist mecca 234 Umayyad architecture 125 politics Carlist Wars 234 and Central America 150, 150, 151, 151 Civil War 286, 287 Fascism 286 and Napoleon 220, 234 and North Africa 188, 189 North African colonies 290, 291 Peninsular War 234 political impotence 234 Reconquista 111, 114, 124 Spanish-American War 286 Treaty of Tordesillas 192 Visgothic 70 War of Succession 179 trade in Asia 192 loss of American 234 Netherlands 167, 169 trade routes 150, 154, 178, 234 World Crafts Council 316 Spalato, Judaism 184 Spalatum 102 Spanish Habsburg lands 182 Spanish Morocco 290 Sparta 35, 61, 62, 63, 68, 70 floor mosaics 71 shrine 60 Spear Hill, rock art 50 Speer, Albert 281 Spence, Basil 277 Spencer, Baldwin 314 Spencer, Stanley 276 Speyer 104 ecclesiastical centre 116 Spice Islands 178 Spice trade 68, 69, 69, 70 pepper-pot 70 Spider God, South American 57 Spies, Walter 311 Spigno 110 Spina 64, 65 Celtic colony 59 Greek colony 58 Spirit Cave, pottery 50 Spiro 96, 97 Spoletium 64 Spoleto 110 Spondylus shell 101 Spring Creek 18 Spring Green 262, 263 Squavakie Hill 55 Sravasti, archaeology 84 Sri Lanka 68, 69, 82, 84, 305 World Crafts Council 316 Srinagar 132, 247 coins 85 diamonds 134 miniature painting 198 Sringeri, temple 134 Srirangam historic site 248 temple 134 Srisailam 134 Srivijaya 91, 91, 142, 143 Srivijaya empire 142, 142 St-Marc 266 St-Samson, megalithic art 29 Sta Elia di Nepi 110 Stabiae 64 Stabroek 218 Staithes 276, 276 Stakhr 81 Stalinabad, museum 298 Stampa 270 Stanislawow 159 Starnina, Gherardo 119 Starobelsk, Dacian phalerae 58 Starved Rock 96 Stavelot 168 literary centre 103, 108 metalworking 110 Stazagora, Dacian phalerae 58 Steenwinckel, Hans van (c.1550- 1601) 157 Stefánsson, Jón 273 Stein, Gertrude (1874-1946) 284, 284 Stein, Aurel 247, 247 Steinfurth 104 Stele Assyrian 43 Central Andean 57 diorite 42 Egyptian funerary 39 Geto-Dacian 58 Italian 65 Naram-Sin 41 Northern Europe 59 South American 101 Stella, Joseph 263 Stellenbosch, art school 296, 297 Stencils, hand 17-18, 18, 20, 21 Step House 55 Step Pyramid 38 Steppe art 58, 59, 80 Sterbak, Jana 265 Sterns Creek 55 Stettin 156, 157, 170, 220, 222, 230 Degenerate Art exhibition 281 Stewart Gardner, Isabella 214 Sthanvisvara 134 Still Life with Fruit and Toad (Bustos) 216 Stirling 164 castle 116, 154 Stockholm 154, 156, 220, 222 academy 222, 223 architecture 157, 271, 272, 273 art centre 273 artistic influences 173, 223 cultural influence 156 Exhibition (1930) 272, 273 IASPIS programme 273 Moderna Museet 270, 273 patronage centre 156 urban development 186 Stockton 220 Stoke-on-Trent Art Deco 276 ceramic centre 164 Stone countries Aegean 33, 33, 60 Central America 55, 98 India 84, 248, 304 Japan and Korea 49 North Africa 76 North America 55, 148 Northern Europe 59 Scandinavia and the Baltic 156 South American 27, 100 South Netherlands 168, 168, 169 Southeast Asia 254, 255 general buildings 52 industrial Britain 165 monolithic sculptures 56 vessels 33, 71, 78, 78 kinds of Bentheim 166 chalcedony 97 granite 23, 213 greenstone 49, 144, 257, 258 hard 30, 35, 38 jade 23, 44, 46, 46, 47, 54, 55, 98, 99, 133, 200, 202, 250 jadeite 30, 48 limestone 14, 20-21, 23, 37, 37, 38, 41, 72, 75, 152 obsidian 49, 51, 54, 55, 98 pipestone 97 sandstone 37, 38, 39, 72, 84, 159, 168, 259 serpentine 17 soapstone 26, 27, 152, 297 soft 35 techniques abrasion 35 carving 248, 254, 256, 296, 310 engraved 16, 18, 20 painted 16 Plateresque 150 three dimensional carving 16, 21 tools 53 Stone City 262, 263 Stonehenge 23 Stones engraved 18, 20-21 hard 16 Stour Valley 226 Strada, Jacopo 171 Strakonice, wall painting 116 Stralsund 156, 157, 173, 222 Strasbourg 103, 154, 170 architecture 177 ecclesiastical centre 116 museum 285 stained glass 110 Strassburg 112, 170, 230, 230 Strathclyde 102 Strathcona Sound 96 Stratos 60 Strauss, Richard 230 Stravanger 108, 273 Streeton, Arthur (1867-1943) 259 Strehlitz 230 Stroganov family 160 Structuralism 19 Studenica 106 Study in Gouache (Fathy) 290 Stupas see Buddhism Sturts Meadows 21 Stuttgart 154, 230 academy 172, 281 industrial 220 Italianate designs 236, 237 National Socialism 281 Style moderne see Art Nouveau Su Shi 136, 137 Suakin 188, 190 Sub-Saharan Africa 94, 126-127, 146, 189, 190-191, 242, 243, 290 Subeibe, Muslim castle 130 Subiaco 114 Suceava 154, 185 Sucevit,a 185 monastery 184, 185 Sucre 153, 268 Sudan 37, 191 Sudbury (Ontario) 263 Sueves, empire 70 Suez 128, 240, 241, 241 Sufetula, textiles 124 Sufi religion 188 Suga-ri 49, 88 Suger, Abbot 110 Sugitani 88 Sugizawadai 49 Sui dynasty 87, 95 Sukhothai 138 historical site 254, 310 kiln site 206 Sukhothai empire 207 temple 142 Sukhumi 224, 225 Suksang-ni 88 Suku Okamoto 88 Sukuk, temple 142 Sukuma, post sculptures 292 Sulawesi 143 Süleyman, sultan 180, 195 Sulis Minerva, temple 67 Sultanabad 244 carpet-weaving 245 lustre ware 131 Sultanganj, sculpture 85 Sultaniya, Ilkhanid monuments 131 Sulu 143 Sumatra 16, 50, 142, 142, 143, 206 architecture 278, 311 arts and crafts 310 Dong Son culture 90 funerary effigies 254 trade 91, 91, 207 Sumba 142, 143, 206, 254, 310 Sumbawa 142, 143, 206 Bronze Age 90 cotton 207, 310 Sümeg 185 Sumer 40, 40, 41 Sumiyoshi painters 205 Sundsvall 272 Sungai Lang, Dong Son culture 90 Sungir 14, 16 Sunium 35, 35 Suoxian 302 Suprematism 274 Suprematist work 279 Surabaya 254 gold work 310 Surabeya 254 Surah 198 Surakarta 206, 254 batik 310 Surakhany 244 Surat 192, 207, 248, 248 Surcea, Dacian phalerae 58 Surikov, Vasily (1848-1916) 225 Surkh Kotal, Kushan art 82 Surkotada, early urbanism 25 Surrealism 261, 267, 270, 270, 273, 275, 278, 278, 279, 283, 284, 285, 287, 288 Surt, textiles 124 Surugacho (100 Famous Prints/Hiroshige) 253 Sus 129 Susa 40, 41, 42, 43, 62 artistic centre 78 early urbanism 25 excavations 245 palace 79 Parthian mint/architecture 80 Sasanian mint 81 Umayyad mosque 128 Susiana 81 Susong-ni 88 Sutherland, Graham 277 Sutton Hoo 102, 103 Suva, Pacific art 312, 313 Suwayamma 89 Suwon 204 Suzhou 136, 200, 306 art school 299 gardens 200, 201, 201, 202 museum 307 painting centre, 251 silk production 200, 202, 250 Svalafeld 104 Svartsjo 154 Svayambhunatha 134 Svishtov 185 Swabian Jura Swahili 190-1 portals 292 Swan, James G. 214 The Swan, No. 17 (Klint) 272 Swansea 226, 276 Swatow 250 Swaziland, arts and crafts 296 Sweden 156, 156, 160, 169, 222 architecture 272 art in a globalized world 273 artistic influence 156, 157, 157, 222-223 arts movement 220, 272, 273 Bernadotte dynasty 223 Catholic 106 exchange programmes 273 Lutheran 154 museums 272 North Netherlands trade 167 World Crafts Council 316 Swieta Lipka 158, 159 Swift Creek 55 Swimming Ducks (Hong Se-sop) 253 Swinton, ceramic centre 164 Swiss Confederacy 121, 122, 123, 182 borders 170 Switzerland 170, 171, 231, 280, 280, 281, 281 architecture 171 artistic workshops 170 Modern movement 280 World Crafts Council 316 Sybaris 34, 65 Sydney architecture 259, 314, 314 art works 258, 258 auctioneers 316 Heidelberg School 259 indigenous art 314 Opera House 314, 314 Sydney Cove 258 Syene 72, 73, 74 Sylvester II (aka Gerbert of Aurillace) 105 Symbolic art 80 Symbolism 225, 228, 229, 232, 272, 272, 287, 288 Syr Darrya River 129 Syracuse 34, 69, 111 architecture 64, 65 excavation 182 Hellenistic monarchy 65 patronage 66 pre-Islamic 124 INDEX 351 Unique Forms of Continuity (Boccioni) 279 United Kingdom 220 Universities 112 Upjohn, Richard 213 Upolu, Lapita pottery 51 Upper Gelderland 168 Upper Palatinate 172 Uppsala 154, 156, 157, 220, 222, 272, 273 Ur 22, 25, 41, 41, 42, 43 early urbanism 25 excavations 245 Royal Cemetery 41 Standard of 41, 41 tablets 78 ziggurat 40 Ur-Nammu, Third Dynasty founder 41 Urartu 43 Urbina 180 Urbino 122 art centre 154 artists’ travels 119 patrons and projects 123, 181 Urbino, Duke of 180 Urbs Vetus 65 Urewera Mural (McCahon) 315 Urfa 195 mosque 130 Urgel 103 Urgench 129, 196 arts and crafts 302 inscriptions 83 tomb 132, 133 Urgut, arts and crafts 302 Urkan e-Rub 18 Urnes 109 Uronarti, fort 37 Uruguay 57 artistic activity 219, 219, 268, 268, 269, 269 World Crafts Council 317 Uruk 40, 41, 42, 43, 80, 81 alabaster trough 24 early urbanism 25 excavations 245 tablets 78 Urumchi (Urumqi) 83, 86, 138, 247, 302 Uruzgan, inscriptions 83 USA African art history 295 architecture 212, 213 art and exploration 212 art institutions 262 artistic influence 13, 270, 270, 290, 291 artists’ travels 213, 236, 262, 263 the Depression 263 education and institutions 213 exhibitions of East European art 283 intervention policies 266 path to modernization 262 socialist art 261 War (1812) 212 World Crafts Council 317 Ushak 195 Usküb 195 Uspjenskaya Stanitsa, Dacian phalerae 58 Utamaro (1753-1806) 205, 308 Utatlán 98 Uthina 66 pottery 76 Utica 64, 66, 67 Utopia, indigenous art 314 Utrecht 103, 109, 168, 228 archbishopric 104 architecture 166, 270, 278, 279 artistic cross-currents 154 artists 166, 167 ecclesiastical centre 116 manuscript painting 112, 117 Utz 97 Utzon, Jørn (1918-) 314 Uvarova, Countess P. S. 245 Uvea, Lapita pottery 51 Uxmal 98 Uzbekistan 192 art schools/museums 298, 303 arts and crafts 302, 302 patronage 196 peoples 194, 198 and Russian expansion 244-45 Uzès, panel painting 118 Uzgend, tomb 132 Uzunköprü 130 Vaasa 272 Vabkent 132 Vace, Bronze situlae 58 Vadodara, art school 298 Vadora, museum 298 Vadstena 154 Vaduz 230 Vaishali, jewellery 84, 85 Vaisnavis cult 134 Vakataka dynasty 85, 85 Valdivia 27, 153, 218, 219 wood carving 152 Vale de Fachas, megalithic art 29 Vale de Rodrigo, megalithic art 29 Valence 154 wall painting 118 Valence-sur-Baise 71 Valencia (South America) 100 Valencia (Spain) 124, 154 architecture 235 art event 316 art school 179, 286, 287 artists’ travels 119, 187 folklore painting 234 Impressionism 234, 235 Life of St George 118 metalwork 109, 114, 125 paper production 234 print-making 118 sculpture 235 textiles 178, 234 Valencia de Don Juan, castle 118 Valenciennes 104, 110, 177 painting 117 Valencioid tradition 100 Valerian, emperor 81 Valladolid 114, 115, 154, 178, 234 art centre 186 Valleia 182 Valley of the Kings 39 Valley of Mexico (Velasco) 217 Valley of the Queens 39 Valliserana 56 Vallodolid, ecclesiastical centre 118 Valparaiso 153, 218, 219 Valpedo, Giovanni Pelizza da (1868-1907) 288 Valsømagle 31 Valverde 154 Van 43, 107, 195 van der Mey, J. M. 278 van der Vlught, L. C. 278 van Doesburg, Theo (1883-1931) 278 Van Dyck, Sir Anthony (1599-1641) 162, 169, 175 van Elk, Ger 279 van Eyck, Jan (d.1441) 117, 117, 119, 119 Van Gameren, Tylman 158 Van Gogh, Vincent (1853-90) 228, 228, 229, 233 Van Horne, Sir William 214 van Mander, Karl 187 Van Ruisdael, Jacob 230 Vanbrugh, John (1664-1726) 164, 165 Vanci 134 Vancouver 212 exhibitions 264, 264 indigenous arts 212 Vancouver Island 55 Vandals 70, 76, 76, 77 Vanderlyn, John 212 Vandiveer Hayden, Dr Ferdinand 214 Vanimo, pottery 50, 92 Vantongerloo, Georges 278 Vanua Levu, indigenous trade 209 Vanuatu 51, 51, 92, 208 Vaphlo 33 Varakhsha 83 Varallo 181, 182, 182 Varanasi coins 84, 85 monolithic pillars 84 museum 298, 304 painting 304 trade 134 Vardar River 35 Vardhamana Mahavira 84 Varese 182, 182 Vargas, Luis 268 Varma, Raja Ravi (1860-1906) 249 Varna 102, 130, 184 Vasari, Giorgio 181 Vasio 67 Vasnetsov, Apollinary (1856-1933) 225 Vasnetsov, Viktor (1848-1926) 225 Vaucelles 112 Vavu ‘U 209 Vega de Guadancil, megalithic art 29 Veh Ardashir 81 Veii 64, 65 Vejrum 109 Velasco, José María (1840-1912) 217, 217 Velázquez, Diego (1599-1660) 179 Velikiy Ustyug 160, 160, 275 Ven 104 Venafrum 66 Vence 284, 285 Vendôme 110 Veneria 66 Veneti peoples 65 Venetian Republic 121, 123, 180, 181, 184 territories 173, 184 trade and culture 120, 122 Venetsianov, Aleksey (1780-1847) 224, 225 Venezuela 56, 100 artistic activity 219, 268, 269, 269 Bolívar’s campaigns 218 World Crafts Council 317 Vengi 134 Venice architecture 110, 121, 122, 154, 180, 182 art centre 186 art collections 154, 181, 182, 187, 236 artistic influence 173, 236 artists’ travels 187 Biennale 316, 316 bronze doors 111 Byzantine art 107 Guggenheim museum 270 industrial 220 ivory-work 109 literary centre 103 mosaics 115 music 180 painted/sculpted cycles 181 painters of veduta 236 patrons and projects 121, 122, 123, 154, 181 printing 180, 181 religion, archbishopric 106 trade gems 111 routes 115 South Netherlands 169 trade centre 102, 107, 111, 114, 120, 122, 131, 194 Venicea, Catholicism 104 Venta de la Perra 17 Venturi, Robert 265 Venus of Galgenberg 17 Venusia 66 Veramin, lustre ware 131 Vercelli 110, 114 Verden 103, 104 Verdun, architecture 177 Veretye Culture 21, 21 Vergina 60, 62 Verlikii Ustiug 160 Vermeer, Jan (1632-75) 167, 167 Vernay, Jean-Baptiste (1786-1833) 217 Vernet, Horace (1789-1863) 232 Verona 64, 102, 121, 180, 236 architecture 110, 114, 123, 181 art academy 182 industrial 220 literary centre 103 patronage 154, 181 ruins 122, 182 South Netherlands trade 169 Versailles 157, 166, 172, 173, 176, 177, 179 palace complex 186 UNESCO project 316 urban development 186 Verulamium 67, 68, 69 Verviers, glass museum 279 Veselovsky, N. I. 247, 247 Vesuvius Mt 220, 221 Veszprern 185 Vézelay, pilgrimage centre 110, 111, 111, 111 Via Hadriana 74 Viborg 108, 156, 157 Viboro 222 Vicarello 67 Vicenza 154, 180, 181 murals 110 Vicksburg, Civil War site 214 Vicoforte di Mondovi 181 Victor Emanuel II 237, 237 Victor Emanuel II with Garibaldi at the Gates of Teano (Aldi) 237 Victoria Aboriginal paintings 314 goldfields 259, 259 Vidisha coins 84 temple 134 Vidor 54, 98 Vieira da Silva, María-Elena (1908- 92) 286, 287 Vienna 68, 195 academy 172, 186, 282 architecture 172, 270, 280 art collection 172, 186, 187, 187, 282 Art Nouveau 220 art review magazine 282 artistic centre 154, 184 artistic cross-currents 173, 236 artists’ travels 187 book production 170 capital city 238 Degenerate Art exhibition 281 ecclesiastical centre 116 influence in Hungary 185 Italianate designs 237 Judaism 184 manuscript painting 112 memorial 281 metalwork 109, 112 painting on porcelain 203 Secession style 239, 283 town-planning 238 urban development 186 World Fair 245 World Fair (1873) 239 Vienne 103 archbishopric 104 ecclesiastical centre 118 Vientiane 254 pagoda 206 timber 207 Viet Khe, Dong Son culture 90 Vietnam 90-91 art schools/museums 298 bronze implements 51 Mahayana Buddhism 206 Nguyen dynasty 254 tourism 311 wooden mask 255 World Crafts Council 316 Vigan, architecture 206 Vigeland, Gustav 273 Vigevano 122, 123 Vignes Jaunes, megalithic art 29 Vijaya 206 Vijayanagara kingdom 135, 198 temples 134, 135 Tiruvengalanatha temple 135 Vikings 105 Abbasid trade 129 and Byzantium 106 main routes 104 sculpture 109 Vikramasila 134 Viktring, stained glass 110, 116 Vilarinho, megalithic art 29 Vilcas Huamán 100 Villa Filosofiana mosaic 69 Villa Madama 180 Villa Rotonda, replicas 159 Villa Savoye (Le Corbusier) 285 Villafranca del Biezo 118 Villanovan art 34 Villanueva, Carlos Raúl (1900- 1975) 269 Vilna 222, 224, 224, 225 Vilnius 154, 156, 157, 223, 272 art schools 282 contemporary art 273 studio programmes 273 Vilvoorde 168 Viñaque art 101 Virgil 67 Virgin Is 99 Viru culture 57 Vis I 21 Visby 108 castle 116 Vischer, Peter 170 Visconti family 121 Viseu 154 Visigoths, kingdom 70, 70 Vitebsk 160, 271, 275 Viterbo 114 Viti Levu indigenous trade 209 Lapita pottery 51 Vitruvius (architect) 122, 154 Vivarium 103 Viye 191 Vizagapatam 198 Vizaknafurdo 238 Vladimir 106, 160, 225 textiles 224, 224 Vladivostok 224 Vo Toan (architect) 290 Vogelherd 16 ivory carvings 17 Volci peoples 65 Voldtofte 31 Volendam, art colony 228, 228 Volgograd, WWII memorial 275 Vologda 154, 160, 161 textiles 224, 224, 225 Vologesias, Parthian architecture 80 Volos 32, 33, 282 Volsinii 64 Voltaire 173 Volterra 110, 114, 181 museum 182 Volturno 237 Volubilis 68 von Guérard, Eugène (1811-1901) 258, 259, 259 Vonones I, gold drachm 80 Vorkuta 160 Vorticism 276 Vries, Adriaen de (1545-1626) 156, 157, 171 Vrubel, Mikhail (1856-1910) 225 Vulcanists 220, 221 Vulci 64, 65 Vyatka 160, 224, 225 artists’ colony 225 Vyshny Volochëk 225, 225 Vyssí Brod, ecclesiastical centre 116 Waalwijk, architecture 279 Wad ben Naqa 72 Wadi Wassa, pottery 36 Wadia 191 Wadjet, cobra goddess 38 Wahhabi clerics 195 reformers in Arabia 244 Waifu 140 Wakamatsu 140 Wakayama 205 Waki 89 Walakpa 55 Walata 126, 188, 190, 240 Walberswick 220, 276, 276 Waldalgesheim, metalwork site 59 Waldendenburg, Degenerate Art exhibition 281 Wales artistic centres 164 major country houses 164 Walewice 159 Walker, Horatio 214 Walkunder Arch, rock shelter 16 Wall paintings see frescoes Wallachia 184, 184, 185, 185 Walloon 168 Wallpaper 192, 192, 193, 203 Walo 191 Walpole, Horace 164 Walters, Gordon 315 Walvis Bay 190 Wambu 191 Wanås 273 Wandu 191 Warangal, temple 134 Ward, James 226 Wareham 163 Wargata Mina 21 Wargata Mina Cavern, rock art 50 Wari Willka 101 Warka 80, 81, 245 Warrnambool, reciprocal portraits 258 Warsaw 160, 224 architecture 158, 158, 159, 283 art review magazines 282 artistic centre 282 artistic cross-currents 173 artists’ travels 187 Formists 282 industrial 220 Palace of Culture and Science 283 urban development 186 Wartburg 108 Wartburg Castle 231 Warwick, stained glass 116 Warwick (Australia) 259 Washington DC 212, 212, 213, 262, 264, 265 Wasit 128, 128 Wasserburg Wat see Buddhism, temples Water Newton 71 Waterford 109, 163 Waterloo, Musée Wellington 229 Watom, Lapita pottery 51 Watson, Homer 214 Wattasids 190 Watteau, Jean-Antoine (1684- 1721) 177 Watts’ Chapel and Pottery 220, 221 Wau-ri 88 Waywaka 27, 27, 57 Wedgwood, Josiah 165 Weeden Island 55, 96 Wegrów 159 Wei 86, 91 Weifang 306 Weihaiwei 250 Weimar academy 172 architecture 230 Bauhaus site 280 Degenerate Art exhibition 281 religion 282 Weingarten 108 Weissenberg 103 Weizhou 136 silk production 137 Well-Governed Town (Lorenzetti) 120 Wellington architecture 315 indigenous art 315 Maori art 259 Pacific art 313 Wells 112 ecclesiastical centre 116 Welsh INDEX 350 Western Mediterranean 64-5 Tinga Tinga, tourist/modern art 292, 293 Tingbao, Yang (architect) 307 Tingis 64, 67, 69 Tinguely, Jean (1925-91) 260, 285 Tinmal 125 Tinnis 129 Tinos 282 pottery 283 Tintagel, amphorae 71 Tintern Abbey 226 Tio 191 Tipasa, mosaics 76 Tirana 130, 185 Biennial 316, 316 Tirani 104 Tiraoa 195 Tiraz factories 129 Tire 130 Tirebon 206 Tirgoviste 154, 185 Tiruvannamalai 134 Tiruvarur 134 Tiruvengalanatha temple 135 Tiryns 32, 32, 33 Tismana 185 Tissarakshita, Queen of Ashoka (A. Tagore) 304 Titian (c.1485/90-1576) 155, 178, 180, 180, 181, 181, 214, 237 Tito Bustillo 19 Tivissi 64 Tivoli 67, 110, 181 Tizapán el Alto 98 Tjeribon 254 Tlacopan 98 Tlalpan 98 Tlanjin, museum 298 Tlemcen 126, 188 mosque 125 pilgrimage route 240 textiles 124 Tlingit land-otter mask 214 Totem Poles 213 Tnoniná 54 Tobago 99 Tobna, textiles 124 Tobol’sk 160 museum 298 Tochi Valley, inscriptions 83 Todai-ji 205 Todi 110, 114, 181 Togari-ish 49 Togiak 96 Togidubnus, king 67 Togo 243 World Crafts Council 316 Tohari ichibanwari 89 Tohwa-ri 88 Toirae-ri 88 Tojin 89 Tok-kala, inscriptions 83 Tokaido 252 Tokat 195 mosque 131 Tokmak, arts and crafts 302, 303 Tokoname, pottery 140 Tokugawa shogunate headquarters 205 shrine 204 Tokyo 204, 252, 253 art school 299 cultural centre 192, 308, 309 National Stadiums 299 Neolithic culture 46 Nihonga painting 309 Tolbaga, bone figurine 16 Toledo 70, 71, 102, 109, 114 architecture 114, 178 art centre 154, 179 artists’ travels 119 Islamic 129 museum 262, 262 paper-making 114, 125 pre-Islamic city 124 stained glass 118 textiles 234 Tolentino 114 Toling, art centre 200 Tollantzinco 54 Tolosa 64, 234 Tolsá, Manuel 216 Tolstoy, Leo 224 Tolstaya Mogila pectoral 58, 59 Scythian burials 58 Toltec peoples 98, 98, 99 Toma 88 Tomar 110, 154, 178 ecclesiastical centre 118 Tomatlán 98 Tombs Aegean 33, 60, 61 Central Asia 132, 133, 133 China 86, 87, 306 decorated 52, 57, 62-63, 65 Egyptian 75 Etruscan 182 Italian 121, 123, 181 Japan and Korea 89, 89 North African 188, 188 South Asia 198 Southeast Asia 143 West Asia 43 Tomi, Greek colony 58 Tomsk 224 Tonalá 54, 98 Tonga 92, 93, 144 art production 256 Cook’s voyage 208, 209, 209 dance apron 209 indigenous trade 209, 209 Pacific art 312, 313 pottery 51, 51, 92 Tong’an, kiln site 137, 138 Tongatapu 209 Lapita pottery 51 Tongchuan, kiln site 136 Tongking 254 Tongnae 49 Tongsam-dong, masks 49 Toniná 98 Tonmere 154 Toolesboro Mounds 55 Toorop, Jan (1858-1928) 228, 229 Toprak-kala, inscriptions 83 Toprakkale 43 Toqay-Timurids 196 Toquepala Cave 20 Torajaland effigies 254, 254 Granaries 310 Toran 81 Torcello 110 Torgau 170, 171 Torihama 49, 49 Toro 88 Torone 32 Toronto 212, 262, 262, 264, 264, 317 Torres-García, Joaquín 268, 269 Torrigiano, Pietro 163 Torriti, Jacopo (fl.1270-1300) 115 Torrs, metalwork 59 Tortosa 114, 154 panel painting 118 Torun 158 ecclesiastical centre 116 Torupgaarde 31 Torwa 190 Tosa painters 205 Toscanos 34 Tosong-ni 49 Toul, ecclesiastical centre 116 Toulouse 64, 71, 102, 104 alabaster 109, 112, 118 architecture 177 art centre 154, 285 cathedral 110 literary centre 103, 118 shrine 111, 111 university 112, 114 Toulouse-Lautrec, Henri (1864- 1901) 221, 233 Toumba tou Skourou 32 Toungoo 254 Tourism 317 African tourist art 243, 295, 297 Pacific cultural centres 257, 312, 313, 313 Southeast Asia 310, 310 West Asia 244, 301 Tournai 168, 228 carpet centre 229 metalwork 108, 112 tapestry 117 Tournant, megalithic art 29 Tours 102, 174 Tours archbishopric 104 artistic centre 105, 175 book production 103, 104 Chateau d’Oíron 285 ecclesiastical centre 116 metalwork 109, 109, 112 murals 110 pilgrimage route 111 Tower Hill 259 Town Creek 96, 97 The Town (Vieira da Silva) 286 Townsville 312 Towosahgy 97 Toy-making 224, 224 Toyama 308 Tozeur, textiles 124 Trade and art 109, 243 and artistic influence 111 and culture 120, 154 fairs/markets 224, 224, 225 and industry 107 long-distance 30 maritime 32, 71, 71, 85, 86, 91, 91, 118, 124, 139, 146, 196 mercantile 198 Trade routes 52-53 Abbasid 129 Aegean 32, 60 African 190, 191 Baltic 156 Byzantine art 106 Central America 98, 150 Central Asia 83, 196, 196, 197, 246 Chinese 86, 87, 139, 252 Egyptian 75 English 163 European 102, 102, 103, 109, 111, 111, 113, 154, 156 Hansa alliances 156 India 85, 134 Italian 120, 122, 180 Japan and Korea 140, 141, 204, 252, 308 Mediterranean 34, 67, 102 North Africa 188, 240, 241 Norther Europe 58 Roman Empire 69 Russian 197, 224 Saharan 73, 124, 125, 126, 126, 188, 189, 190, 191, 240, 241, 243, 290 Scandinavia 156 South American 57, 101 South Asia 134, 198 South Netherlands 169 Southeast Asia 91, 91, 142, 143, 206, 207 Southern Europe 114, 115, 118 West Asia 41, 42, 131, 194 Western Islam 124, 125 Western Mediterranean 64-65 see also Caravanserais; Silk Road Tragurium 66 Traill, Jessie 314 Trajan, emperor 66, 122 Trajan’s Canal 74 Trani 110, 180, 181 Tranquebar, printing 192 Trans-Siberian Railway 224 Transcaspia 247 Transcaspian Railway 246 Transcaucasia, Russian expansion 244 Transoxania 129, 132, 196, 197 Transylvania 154 religious architecture 184-5, 185 Trapani 154 Trapezus 62, 70 Traprain Law 71 Treaty of Gulistan 244 Treaty of Turkmanchay 244 Trebizond 67, 71, 224 Byzantine 130 carpet-making centre 244 Greek colony 58 monastery 106 trading centre 107, 131, 195 Trebonsice, wall painting 116 Trempealeau 55 Trengganu 143 Trent 154, 181 Trento 114, 180 Tres Zapotes 26, 54 Tresguerras, Francisco (1759-1833) 217 Tressini, Domenico 161 Tretyakov, Pavel (1832-98) 225 Treviso 121 university 120 Trichinopoly, painting 248 Trier 69, 70, 102, 172 Archbishop of 105 architecture 108, 109 art centre 186 book production 104 ecclesiastical centre 116 floor mosaics 71 Trieste alabaster 111 art colony 282 murals 110 shipyard 220 town planning 238 Trikala, textiles 283 Trincomalee 198 Trindhoj 31 Trinidad 99, 99, 218 artists 217 Trinity (Masaccio) 122 Tripoli Crusader castle 130 textiles 124 trade centre 131, 240 Tripoli (Libya), architecture 290 Tripoli (Syria) Ayyubid Sultanate 106 Ottoman 195 Tripoli (Tripoli) Ottoman city 188, 194 trade centre 126, 188, 190 Tripolitania 69 Trivento, archbishopric 104 Trocadero 234 Troia 110 Troki 158 Tromsø 272, 273 Trondheim 108, 109, 156, 157, 222 art college 273 Troost, Paul 281 Troppau 238 Trouville 270 Troy 32, 33, 35, 41, 42, 212 artistic finds 41 excavations 245 Troyan monastery 185 Troyes 70, 103, 112, 174 architecture 110 ecclesiastical centre 116 museum 385 royal progress 154 Trujillo 152, 153, 218, 219 Trundholm bronze sun chariot 31 metalwork 31 Tryavna 185 Trzemeszno 108 Tsaparang, art centre 200 Tsaritsyn 160 Tshultrim Rinchen (1698-1774) 203 Tsitsihar 202, 250 Tsuchihashi 89 Tsukamo 48, 49 Tsurpu, art centre 200 Tsutaya Jusaburo (publishers) 205 Tsuzak 89 Tuamotu Islands 208, 209 Tübingen, ecclesiastical centre 116 Tuburon Hills 55 Tucacas 100 Tuccí 66 Tudela 114, 154 ecclesiastical centre 118 Tudmur 80 Tukolor empire 243 Tula 160, 225 industrial 220 metalwork 224, 224 Toltec capital 98, 98, 99 Tularosa Cave 55 Tulaytulah 102 Tulczyn 159 Tulip Chest (Csók) 239 Tulmaitha, textiles 124 Tulum 98 Tumbes 152, 153 Tunacunnhee 55 Tunis 126, 129 architecture 125, 189, 290 artistic centre 188, 290, 241 conquered by Charles V 155 crafts 291 madrasa 125 royal progress 154 Spanish garrison 188 textiles 124, 240 trade centre 124, 188, 190, 240 Western style art 240 Zaytuna mosque 240 Tunisia 64, 195 architecture 290, 290 aristic cross-currents 125, 290 Blue Koran 125 ivory 125 Muslim raids 124 Muslim/Jewish refugees 188 World Crafts Council 316 Tunjur 190 Tunnae-ri 88 Tupusuctu 66 Turbat-i Jam 133 Turfan 87, 132, 196, 247, 302 Turi 100 Turiasso 66 Turin 102, 104, 121 architecture 173, 288 art collections 181, 182, 187 artistic influence 173, 236, 288 artists’ travels 187 bastions 180 churches 123 Futurism 288 industrial 220 murals 110 museums 182 panel painting 118 ruins 122 urban development 186 Turkestan 196, 246, 247 archaeological survey 247 tomb 133 Turkestan Archaeological Society 247 Turkey 300, 301 art schools/museums 298 fine arts 301 naval threat 180, 180 Ottoman 189 Roman alphabet 301 and southeast Europe 184, 185 Turkmenistan 196, 302 art schools/museums 298 tribal weaving 247 Turko-Mongolian peoples 130, 132, 196 Turks & Caicos Is 99 Turku 154, 157, 220, 222, 222, 272, 273 Turner 55 Turner, J. M. W. (1775-1851) 226, 228 Turner Prize 277, 316 Turnstone Beach 96 Turoe, stone carving 59 Turones 102 Turquoise 38 Turtle Mound 96 Turyvannamalai 134 Tus 83 lustre ware 131 Tuscania 110 Tuscany 120, 180 Romanesque style 122 South Netherlands trade 169 Tutankhamun, king 39, 39 Tutbury 109, 116 Tuticorin 198 Tutrakan 130 Tututepac 98 Tver’ 160, 160, 224 Tweespruit, mission school 296 Tybrind Vig 20, 21, 28 Tykocin 158, 159 Tylissos 33 Tyndaris 66 Tyras, Greek colony 58 Tyre Achaeminid 68, 71, 78, 80 Crusader castle 130 Islamic 128 Phoenician 34, 43 trading centre 107, 132 Tyrol 121, 170 Tyrrhenian Sea 64 trading route 120, 122 Tyumen’ 224 museum 298 Tywrów 159 Tzara, Tristan (1896-1963) 283 Tzinzuntan 98 Uai Bobo, pottery 50 Uaxactún 54 Ubayama 49 Ubeda 154 wool production 234 Ubud, museum 299 Uch 198 Uch Turfan 196, 196 Ucubi 66 Udaipur, miniature paintings 198 Udayagiri monastery 84 Udayagiri temple 85 Udayapura, temple 134 Ufa 160, 224 artists’ centre 225, 225 Uffizi 182 Ugarit 32, 32, 41, 42 gold bowl 42 Uijan 198 Ujaini, coins 84 Ujamaa artists’ workshop 296 tourist/modern art 292, 293 Ujazd 159 Ujjain, trade 134 Ujung Pandang, arts and crafts 310 UK, World Crafts Council 316 Ukraine 161 Orthodox 158 pottery 283 Ulan-Batar 298 Ulan-Ude 298 Ulladulla, Aboriginal drawings 258 Ullastret 64 Ulm 170, 281 ecclesiastical centre 116 Ulu Leang, pottery 50 Uluburun 32 wreck 33 Ulugh Beg (Timurid ruler) 197 Ulundi, museums 296 Ulysses, fresco 67 Umami 89 Umanoyama 89 Umayyad Caliphate 102, 124, 125, 128, 128, 129 Umboi, Lapita pottery 51 Umea, art college 273 Umm al Marra 40 Umm an Nar 40, 41 Umma, early urbanism 25 Un episodio de la fiebre... (Blanes) 219 Undae-ri 49 Undi 191 Ungchon 88 Unggi 49 Ungjin 89 INDEX 352 Catholicism 104 states 102 Welwyn Garden City 276, 276 Wenxian 86 Wenzhou 250 kiln site 137 Werden 103, 108 Wessex 102, 104, 105 Catholicism 104 West Africa 95, 126, 242, 290, 294- 295 colonial impact on arts 147, 294 masquerades 295 post colonial 295 West Asia 40-41, 42-43, 78-79, 80- 81, 130-131, 194-195, 244-245, 300-301 Achaemenid Persian empire 78 architecture 300, 300, 300 art 40, 41, 42, 43 artistic traditions 301 colonial rule 300 eastern culture 80 and Egypt 128-9 fine art 300 international borders 300 Parthian empire 80, 80, 81 patronage 196 Sasanian empire 80-81, 81 trade and culture 194-195 see also Byzantine empire; Fatimid Caliphate; Seljuk empire West Indies Company 167 West Prussia 230 West Wales 102 Weston, Edward 263 Westphalia 170, 172, 230 architecture 173 Wettersfelde, Scythian objects 58 Wexford 109, 163 Weymouth 163 Whalebone, figurines 20 Wharton Hill 16 Whistler, James McNeill (1834- 1903) 215, 227 Whitby 103 jet centre 164 White Castle 212 White Cube (gallery) 277 White Mts, New Hampshire 213 Whiteread, Rachel (1963-) 277, 277 Whithorn 103 Whydah 191 Wiener Neustadt, ecclesiastical centre 116 Wiertz, Antoine 228 Wiesbaden 230, 281 Wilde, Oscar 227 Willendorf 16, 17 William the Conqueror 109 Williamson 96 Willington 259 Willumsen, J. F. 272, 272 Wilno 156, 157, 158, 159 Wilson, Richard 165 Wilton 164 Wimar, Charles 214 Winchelsea 163 Winchester 102, 102, 111 ecclesiastical centre 116 manuscripts 108, 112 metalwork 109, 112 palace complex 104 Winckelmann, Joachim 157, 173 Windhoek, museum 296 Winnebago tribe 212 Winnica 158, 159 Winnipeg 264 Winnipeg Lake, paintings 214 Winterveld, textiles 296 Winterville 97 Wismar 170 Witaszkovo, Scythian objects 58 Witebsk 158 Wittenberg 154 book production 170 Witz, Konrad (1400/10-1445/6) 171 Wivenhoe, architecture 276 Wloclawek 158 Wlodzimierz 158 Wolfenbüttel 154 Wolfers, Philippe 221 Wolin 109 Wolmirst 104 Wolof 190 Wolpa 158 wooden synagogue 159 Wolsey, Cardinal 163 Wolverhampton 220 Wood carving 21, 71 Celtic 59 Central Asia 302, 303 East and Central Africa 292, 292, 293, 293 European 28, 109, 170, 170 India 248, 304 Maori 258 North Africa 76 North America 148 Northern Europe 58, 59, 116, 117 Pacific 256 Russian 161, 224, 224 South America 152 Southeast Asia 206, 254, 255, 255, 310, 311, 311 Southern Africa 296 Southern Europe 118 Sub-Saharan Africa 126, 190, 191 West Africa 147, 294, 294 Christian panels 103 Nile Valley products 39, 75 South Netherlands trade 168, 168, 169 stool and foot rest 242 work Aegean 60 Chinese 200, 200, 201, 202, 203, 307 North African 291 West Asia 301, 301 Wood, Christopher 277 Woods, Lake of the 214 Woolley, Sir Leonard 40 Worcester 163, 164 Work (Madox Brown) 226 World Chronicle (Paris) 112 World Crafts Council 316, 316, 316, 317 World Heritage organizations 316- 317, 317 sites in Asia 298, 299 sites in peril 317 World War I 245, 270, 276, 280, 282, 284, 300 World War II 263, 264, 265, 270, 273, 275, 277, 285, 300, 308, 310 Worms ecclesiastical centre 116 major church 112 palace complex 104 Wornie 158 Worpswede 220, 221 Metaphysical painting 270 Modern painting 280, 280 Worth (fashion designer) 233 WPA (Works Progress Administration) 262, 263 Wren, Christopher 164 Wright 55 Wright, Frank Lloyd (1867-1959) 263, 264, 265 Writing see script Wrocl/aw 154, 158, 230, 283 ecclesiastical centre 116 public spirit 230 Wroxeter, coins 58 Wu 86, 205 Wu School 205 Wuari see Huari Wuchang 138, 200, 202, 250 Wuhan 47 museum 307 Wuhu 250 Wuji, silk production 137 Wukszta 158 Wuolvinus Alter 104 Wupatki 96 Wuppertal 281 Württemberg 170, 230 Würzburg 103 architecture 173 art collection 172 artistic cross-currents 173 artists’ travels 187 book production 104 ecclesiastical centre 116 sculpture 170 urban development 186 Wutaishan, religious art 136 Wutuoling 88 Wuxi 87, 250 gardens 200 painting 202 Wuxing, painting centre, 202 Wuzhou 136, 250 print centre 137 Wyoming 212 Xacalla 54 Xaltocan 98 Xanadu Xanathi, textiles 283 Xanthus 78 Xenocrates (historian) 61 Xeste 3 house 32 Xia dynasty 47 Xiamen 192, 250, 306, 307 Xi’an 47, 86, 86, 87, 138, 200, 202, 250, 306, 307 Xiangzhou 136 Xianyang 86, 87, 307 Xicallanco 98 Xico 98 Xicun, kiln site 137 Xigazê 250 Xinglongwa culture 46 Xingtai, early urbanism 25 Xingzhou 136 Xinjiang 250 arts and crafts 302, 303 Manichaean codex 83 Xinle culture 46 Xiuhquilpan 54 Xiuning, printing 192, 200, 250 Xochicalco influence 98 Xochimilco 98 Xu 86 Xuancheng, printing 200, 202, 250 Xuanzang (Buddhist pilgrim) 85 Xuanzhou 136 Xuzhou 87, 307 Yaguajay 266 Yagul 98 Yaizhou 138 Yajiri 89 Yaka 191 Yakke-Parsan 83 Yakut 224 Yakuts 161 Yalangtush Bi Alchin 197 Yamaguchi 140, 141 Yamasaki, Minoru 265 Yamatai 88 Yamato polity 89 Yamghan, shrine 196 Yamhad 42, 42 Yan 86 Yan’an 306, 307 art school 298 Yanchokrak Melitopol, Dacian phalerae 58 Yangbajin 302 Yangdong-ni 88 Yangling 86 Yangpyong-ni 49, 88 Yangsan 88 Yangshao archaeology 306 culture 46, 46 Yangul-li 49 Yangzhou archaeology 307 painting 251 paper production 137 printing 202, 250 silk production 136 Yantaga 49 Yantai 250 Yaoundé, arts and crafts 294, 295 Yaozhou, kiln site 137 Yapese empire 144, 145, 208 Yarkand 132, 196, 196, 302, 303 archaeological survey 247, 247 Buddhist/Kushan art 83 Yarkhoto 247 Yarmouth 163 Yarmukian figurines 21 Yaroslavl’ 106, 160, 224 Yarumela 54 Yasi 196, 246 Ahmad Yasavid’s tomb 132 archaeological survey 247 Yasidharapura, temple 142 Yatra (M. F. Husain) 305 Yaxchilán 54, 98 Yaxuná 54 Yayoi culture 88-89 Yayoi-cho 88 Yazd 129, 195 carpets 301 lustre ware 131 Yaze 49 Yazilikaya, excavations 245 Yean-ni 88 Yeavering 102 Yekaterinburg 160, 224 museum 298 Yekaterinodar 224, 225 Yelets 133 Yellow River 46 Yelwa, archaeology 294 Yemen 129, 301 art schools/museums 298 Yeniseysk, museum 298 Yepoti 91 Yermak, route of 161 Yezo 140, 204 Yi (Choson) Dynasty 141 Yichang 250 Yin Shan, Buddhist shrine 306 Yinan, archaeology 306 Yingtianfu, silk production 137 Yintaowen culture 46 Yirrkala, indigenous art 314 Yixing kiln site 200, 202, 250, 251 teapots 203 Yizhou, silk production 136, 137 Yodong 89 Yogyakarta arts and crafts 298, 310 museum 298 temple 142, 254 Yokohama 252, 308 art event 316 Yoksam-dong 49 Yombon 50 Yonggangni 88 Yongsangong 49 York 69, 70, 102, 103 alabaster 109, 112 archbishopric 104 art destroyed 163 artistic centre 164 ecclesiastical centre 116 stained glass 108, 116 Yoruba 126, 190, 191 Yosemite 213 Yosemite tribe 212 Yoshida 89 Yoshigo 48, 49 Yoshinogari 88, 89 Yoshizuka 89 Yotkan 247 Yotodoki 89 Young Man Leaning against a Tree (Hilliard) 163 Youngfu, kiln site 137 Youzhou 136 Ypres 168 painting 117 Ystad 272 Yu xian, kiln site 138 Yuanling 306 Yuanmou, archaeology 307 Yucatán 99 Yucuita 54 Yucunudahui 54 pottery 54 Yue 86 Yuezhou kiln site 136, 137 silk production 136 Yugoslavia 239 art styles 282 Yulin, religious art 137 Yun, O (1946-85) 309 Yun Du-so, self-portrait 205 Yungang, Buddhist caves 87, 306, 307 Yunnanfu Yunzhou, silk production 137 Yupik tribe 212 Yushu 302 Yuxi xian, kiln site 138 Yväskylä, art gallery 273 Zaachila 98 Zabid 129 Zabludow 158 Zacatecas, art movement 216, 266 Zacoalco 54 Zadracarta 62 Zagorsk 154 Zágráb, wall painting 116 Zagreb 184 architecture 185, 283 art colony 282 Zaire 292 Colonie Belge 293 Zaire (previously Congo) 278 Zakynthos 60 Zama 64 Zaman, Muhammad (fl.1649-1704) 194 Zambia 292 arts and crafts 296 Zamboanga, arts and crafts 310 Zambujeiro, megalithic art 29 Zamora 109, 110, 111, 234 alabaster 118 Zamos´´c 154 architecture 158, 158, 159 Zamostje 21, 21 Zamoyski, Jan 158 Zanbil 42 Zancle 65 Zandane, textiles 133 Zandvoort, art colony 228, 228 Zanzibar 127 trading post 242 wood carving 292, 292, 292 Zaporozh’ye 160 Zara Yaqob 127, 127 Zaragoza see Saragossa Zaramo, post sculptures 292 Zarand, minaret 130 Zaranj 83, 129 Zaria 191 arts and crafts 294, 295 Zariaspa 80 Zavara 131 minaret 130 Zay 302 Zaytunah mosque 188 Zbaraz 159 Zbigniew Ossolinski with his sons 158 Zd’ar u Blovic, wall painting 116 Zealand 156, 157, 222 bronze sun chariot 31 Danish Bronze Age 31 Zedes, megalithic art 29 Zeila 126, 190 Zen religion 141, 205 Zenderoudi, Hussein 301 Zenjan, carpets 301 Zenodoros 66 Zeugma 71, 80 Zeus, Great Altar of 63 Zhang Daqian (1899-1983) 307 Zhao 86 Zhao Mengfu (1254-1322) 139 Zhaxilhüno, art centre Zhdanov, Andrei 275 Zhe School style 205 Zhejiang 306 Zhendingfu, silk production 137 Zhengzhou 46, 47, 306, 307 early urbanism 25 Zhenjiang 250 Zhongdu 200 Zhou dynasty 47, 47, 86 Zhoukoudian 18 Peking man 306 Ziapur, Jalil 301 Ziaret 131 Zibo, kiln site 137 Zichem, stained glass 110, 116 Ziegler and Co, textiles 245 Ziggurats 25, 40, 41, 42 Zimbabwe 127, 260 arts and crafts 296 palette 16 sculpture 190 stone carving 296 World Crafts Council 316 Zimmermann, Dominikus 173 Zirovnice, wall painting 116 Ziwiye 42, 43 Ziyaragah 133 Zizhou, silk production 137 Zofiówka 159 Zoldhalomputza, Scythian objects 58 Zolkiew 159 Zonguldak 130, 244 Zorn, Anders (1860-1920) 223, 223 Zoroastrian faith 81, 132 Zseliz, wall painting 116 Zuccabar 66 Zuchau 109 Zulu 191 Zundert 228 Zurbarán, Francisco de (1598- 1664) 179, 214 Zurich 109, 154, 231 academy 172 architecture 171 auctioneers 316 Dada movement 280, 280, 283, 283 experimental art 270, 270 metalwork 170 Protestantism 171 Surrealism 283 wall painting 116 Zutphen 168 Zuzan 81 Zwetti, ecclesiastical centre 116 Zwolle, painting 117 Zydaców 158 Zytomierz 158